Fantasy 版 (精华区)
发信人: kslive ( 亲吻生活 ), 信区: Fantasy
标 题: Harry Potter and the Order of the Phoenix(5)
发信站: BBS 哈工大紫丁香站 (Mon May 22 19:43:10 2006)
J K Rowling CHAPTER ONE -
Dudley Demented
The hottest day of the summer so far was drawing to a close and a drowsy silen
ce lay over the large, square houses of Privet Drive. Cars that were usually g
leaming stood dusty in their drives and lawns that were once emerald green lay
parched and yellowing - 'for the use of hosepipes had been banned due to drou
ght. Deprived of their usual car-washing and lawn-mowing pursuits, the inhabit
ants of Privet Drive had retreated into the shade of their cool houses, window
s thrown wide in the hope of tempting in a nonexistent breeze. The only person
left outdoors was a teenage boy who was lying flat on his back in a flowerbed
outside number four.
He was a skinny, black-haired, bespectacled boy who had the pinched, sligh
tly unhealthy look of someone who has grown a lot in a short space of time. Hi
s jeans were torn and dirty, his T-shirt baggy and faded, and the soles of his
trainers were peeling away from the uppers. Harry Potters appearance did not
endear him to the neighbours, who were the sort of people who thought scruffin
ess ought to be punishable by law, but as he had hidden himself behind a large
hydrangea bush this evening he was quite invisible to passers-by. In fact, th
e only way he would be spotted was if his Uncle Vernon or Aunt Petunia stuck t
heir heads out of the living-room window and looked straight down into the flo
werbed below.
On the whole, Harry thought he was to be congratulated on his idea of hidi
ng here. He was not, perhaps, very comfortable lying on the hot, hard earth bu
t, on the other hand, nobody was glaring at him, grinding their teeth so loudl
y that he could not hear the news, or shooting nasty questions at him, as had
happened every time he had tried sitting down in the living room to watch tele
vision with his aunt and uncle.
Almost as though this thought had fluttered through the open window, Verno
n Dursley, Harry's uncle, suddenly spoke.
'Glad to see the boy's stopped trying to butt in. Where is he, anyway?'
'I don't know,' said Aunt Petunia, unconcerned. 'Not in the house.'
Uncle Vernon grunted.
'Watching the news . . .' he said scathingly. 'I'd like to know what he's
really up to. As if a normal boy cares what's on the news - 'Dudley hasn't got
a clue what's going on; doubt he knows who the Prime Minister is! Anyway, it'
s not as if there'd be anything about his lot on our news - '
'Vernon, shh!' said Aunt Petunia. The window's open!'
'Oh - yes - sorry, dear.'
The Dursleys fell silent. Harry listened to a jingle about Fruit 'n' Bran
breakfast cereal while he watched Mrs Figg, a batty cat-loving old lady from n
earby Wisteria Walk, amble slowly past. She was frowning and muttering to hers
elf. Harry was very pleased he was concealed behind the bush, as Mrs Figg had
recently taken to asking him round for tea whenever she met him in the street.
She had rounded the corner and vanished from view before Uncle Vernon's voice
floated out of the window again.
'Dudders out for tea?'
'At the Polkisses',' said Aunt Petunia fondly. 'He's got so many little fr
iends, he's so popular . . .'
Harry suppressed a snort with difficulty. The Dursleys really were astonis
hingly stupid about their son, Dudley. They had swallowed all his dim-witted l
ies about having tea with a different member of his gang every night of the su
mmer holidays. Harry knew perfectly well that Dudley had not been to tea anywh
ere; he and his gang spent every evening vandalising the play park, smoking on
street corners and throwing stones at passing cars and children. Harry had se
en them at it during his evening walks around Little Whinging; he had spent mo
st of the holidays wandering the streets, scavenging newspapers from bins alon
g the way.
The opening notes of the music that heralded the seven o'clock news reache
d Harry's ears and his stomach turned over. Perhaps tonight - after a month of
waiting - would be the night.
'Record numbers of stranded holidaymakers fill airports as the Spanish bag
gage-handlers' strike reaches its second week - '
'Give 'em a lifelong siesta, I would,' snarled Uncle Vernon over the end o
f the newsreaders sentence, but no matter: outside in the flowerbed, Harry's s
tomach seemed to unclench. If anything had happened, it would surely have been
the first item on the news; death and destruction were more important than st
randed holidaymakers.
He let out a long, slow breath and stared up at the brilliant blue sky. Ev
ery day this summer had been the same: the tension, the expectation, the tempo
rary relief, and then mounting tension again . . . and always, growing more in
sistent all the time, the question of why nothing had happened yet.
He kept listening, just in case there was some small clue, not recognised
for what it really was by the Muggles - an unexplained disappearance, perhaps,
or some strange accident . . . but the baggage-handlers' strike was followed
by news about the drought in the Southeast ('I hope he's listening next door!'
bellowed Uncle Vernon. 'Him with his sprinklers on at three in the morning!')
, then a helicopter that had almost crashed in a field in Surrey, then a famou
s actress's divorce from her famous husband ('As if we're interested in their
sordid affairs,' sniffed Aunt Petunia, who had followed the case obsessively i
n every magazine she could lay her bony hands on).
Harry closed his eyes against the now blazing evening sky as the newsreade
r said, '- and finally, Bungy the budgie has found a novel way of keeping cool
this summer. Bungy, who lives at the Five Feathers in Barnsley, has learned t
o water ski! Mary Dorkins went to find out more.'
Harry opened his eyes. If they had reached water-skiing budgerigars, there
would be nothing else worth hearing. He rolled cautiously on to his front and
raised himself on to his knees and elbows, preparing to crawl out from under
the window.
He had moved about two inches when several things happened in very quick s
uccession.
A loud, echoing crack broke the sleepy silence like a gunshot; a cat strea
ked out from under a parked car and flew out of sight; a shriek, a bellowed oa
th and the sound of breaking china came from the Dursleys' living room, and as
though this was the signal Harry had been waiting for he jumped to his feet,
at the same time pulling from the waistband of his jeans a thin wooden wand as
if he were unsheathing a sword - but before he could draw himself up to full
height, the top of his head collided with the Dursleys' open window. The resul
tant crash made Aunt Petunia scream even louder.
Harry felt as though his head had been split in two. Eyes streaming, he sw
ayed, trying to focus on the street to spot the source of the noise, but he ha
d barely staggered upright when two large purple hands reached through the ope
n window and closed tightly around his throat.
'Put - it - away!' Uncle Vernon snarled into Harry's ear. 'Now! Before - a
nyone - sees!'
'Get - off - me!' Harry gasped. For a few seconds they struggled, Harry pu
lling at his uncle's sausage-like fingers with his left hand, his right mainta
ining a firm grip on his raised wand; then, as the pain in the top of Harry's
head gave a particularly nasty throb, Uncle Vernon yelped and released Harry a
s though he had received an electric shock. Some invisible force seemed to hav
e surged through his nephew, making him impossible to hold.
Panting, Harry fell forwards over the hydrangea bush, straightened up and
stared around. There was no sign of what had caused the loud cracking noise, b
ut there were several faces peering through various nearby windows. Harry stuf
fed his wand hastily back into his jeans and tried to look innocent.
'Lovely evening!' shouted Uncle Vernon, waving at Mrs Number Seven opposit
e, who was glaring from behind her net curtains. 'Did you hear that car backfi
re just now? Gave Petunia and me quite a turn!'
He continued to grin in a horrible, manic way until all the curious neighb
ours had disappeared from their various windows, then the grin became a grimac
e of rage as he beckoned Harry back towards him.
Harry moved a few steps closer, taking care to stop just short of the poin
t at which Uncle Vernon's outstretched hands could resume their strangling.
'What the devil do you mean by it, boy?' asked Uncle Vernon in a croaky vo
ice that trembled with fury.
'What do I mean by what?' said Harry coldly. He kept looking left and righ
t up the street, still hoping to see the person who had made the cracking nois
e.
'Making a racket like a starting pistol right outside our - '
'I didn't make that noise,' said Harry firmly.
Aunt Petunia's thin, horsy face now appeared beside Uncle Vernon's wide, p
urple one. She looked livid.
'Why were you lurking under our window?'
'Yes - yes, good point, Petunia! What were you doing under our window, boy
?'
'Listening to the news,' said Harry in a resigned voice.
His aunt and uncle exchanged looks of outrage.
'Listening to the news! Again?'
'Well, it changes every day, you see,' said Harry.
'Don't you be clever with me, boy! I want to know what you're really up to
- and don't give me any more of this listening to the news tosh! You know per
fectly well that your lot - '
'Careful, Vernon!' breathed Aunt Petunia, and Uncle Vernon lowered his voi
ce so that Harry could barely hear him,' - that your lot don't get on our news
!'
That's all you know,' said Harry.
The Dursleys goggled at him for a few seconds, then Aunt Petunia said, 'Yo
u're a nasty little liar. What are all those - ' she, too, lowered her voice s
o that Harry had to lip-read the next word, ' - owls doing if they're not brin
ging you news?'
'Aha!' said Uncle Vernon in a triumphant whisper. 'Get out of that one, bo
y! As if we didn't know you get all your news from those pestilential birds!'
Harry hesitated for a moment. It cost him something to tell the truth this
time, even though his aunt and uncle could not possibly know how bad he felt
at admitting it.
'The owls . . . aren't bringing me news,' he said tonelessly.
'I don't believe it,' said Aunt Petunia at once.
'No more do I,' said Uncle Vernon forcefully.
'We know you're up to something funny' said Aunt Petunia.
'We're not stupid, you know,' said Uncle Vernon.
'Well, that's news to me,' said Harry, his temper rising, and before the D
ursleys could call him back, he had wheeled about, crossed the front lawn, ste
pped over the low garden wall and was striding off up the street.
He was in trouble now and he knew it. He would have to face his aunt and u
ncle later and pay the price for his rudeness, but he: did not care very much
just at the moment; he had much more pressing matters on his mind.
Harry was sure the cracking noise had been made by someone Apparating or D
isapparating. It was exactly the sound Dobby the house-elf made when he vanish
ed into thin air. Was it possible that Dobby was here in Privet Drive? Could D
obby be following him right at this very moment? As this thought occurred he w
heeled around and stared back down Privet Drive, but it appeared to be complet
ely deserted and Harry was sure that Dobby did not know how to become invisibl
e.
He walked on, hardly aware of the route he was taking, for he had pounded
these streets so often lately that his feet carried him to his favourite haunt
s automatically. Every few steps he glanced back over his shoulder. Someone ma
gical had been near him as he lay among Aunt Petunia's dying begonias, he was
sure of it. Why hadn't they spoken to him, why hadn't they made contact, why w
ere they hiding now?
And then, as his feeling of frustration peaked, his certainty leaked away.
Perhaps it hadn't been a magical sound after all. Perhaps he was so desper
ate for the tiniest sign of contact from the world to which he belonged that h
e was simply overreacting to perfectly ordinary noises. Could he be sure it ha
dn't been the sound of something breaking inside a neighbour's house?
Harry felt a dull, sinking sensation in his stomach and before he knew it
the feeling of hopelessness that had plagued him all summer rolled over him on
ce again.
Tomorrow morning he would be woken by the alarm at five o'clock so he coul
d pay the owl that delivered the Daily Prophet - but was there any point conti
nuing to take it? Harry merely glanced at the front page before throwing it as
ide these days; when the idiots who ran the paper finally realised that Voldem
ort was back it would be headline news, and that was the only kind Harry cared
about.
If he was lucky, there would also be owls carrying letters from his best f
riends Ron and Hermione, though any expectation he'd had that their letters wo
uld bring him news had long since been dashed.
We can't say much about you-know-what, obviously . . . We've been told not
to say anything important in case our letters go astray . . . We're quite bus
y but I can't give you details here . . . There's a fair amount going on, we'l
l tell you everything when we see you . . .
But when were they going to see him? Nobody seemed too bothered with a pre
cise date. Hermione had scribbled I expect we'll be seeing you quite soon insi
de his birthday card, but how soon was soon? As far as Harry could tell from t
he vague hints in their letters, Hermione and Ron were in the same place, pres
umably at Ron's parents' house. He could hardly bear to think of the pair of t
hem having fun at The Burrow when he was stuck in Privet Drive. In fact, he wa
s so angry with them he had thrown away, unopened, the two boxes of Honeydukes
chocolates they'd sent him for his birthday. He'd regretted it later, after t
he wilted salad Aunt Petunia had provided for dinner that night.
And what were Ron and Hermione busy with? Why wasn't he, Harry, busy? Hadn
't he proved himself capable of handling much more than them? Had they all for
gotten what he had done? Hadn't it been he who had entered that graveyard and
watched Cedric being murdered, and been tied to that tombstone and nearly kill
ed?
Don't think about that, Harry told himself sternly for the hundredth time
that summer. It was bad enough that he kept revisiting the graveyard in his ni
ghtmares, without dwelling on it in his waking moments too.
He turned a corner into Magnolia Crescent; halfway along he passed the nar
row alleyway down the side of a garage where he had first clapped eyes on his
godfather. Sirius, at least, seemed to understand how Harry was feeling. Admit
tedly, his letters were just as empty of proper news as Ron and Hermione's, bu
t at least they contained words of caution and consolation instead of tantalis
ing hints: I know this must be frustrating for you . . . Keep your nose clean
and everything will be OK . . .Be careful and don't do anything rash . . .
Well, thought Harry, as he crossed Magnolia Crescent, turned into Magnolia
Road and headed towards the darkening play park, he had (by and large) done a
s Sirius advised. He had at least resisted the temptation to tie his trunk to
his broomstick and set off for The Burrow by himself. In fact, Harry thought h
is behaviour had been very good considering how frustrated and angry he felt a
t being stuck in Privet Drive so long, reduced to hiding in flowerbeds in the
hope of hearing something that might point to what Lord Voldemort was doing. N
evertheless, it was quite galling to be told not to be rash by a man who had s
erved twelve years in the wizard prison, Azkaban, escaped, attempted to commit
the murder he had been convicted for in the first place, then gone on the run
with a stolen Hippogriff.
Harry vaulted over the locked park gate and set off across the parched gra
ss. The park was as empty as the surrounding streets. When he reached the swin
gs he sank on to the only one that Dudley and his friends had not yet managed
to break, coiled one arm around the chain and stared moodily at the ground. He
would not be able to hide in the Dursleys' flowerbed again. Tomorrow, he woul
d have to think of some fresh way of listening to the news. In the meantime, h
e had nothing to look forward to but another restless, disturbed night, becaus
e even when he escaped the nightmares about Cedric he had unsettling dreams ab
out long dark corridors, all finishing in dead ends and locked doors, which he
supposed had something to do with the trapped feeling he had when he was awak
e. Often the old scar on his forehead prickled uncomfortably, but he did not f
ool himself that Ron or Hermione or Sirius would find that very interesting an
y more. In the past, his scar hurting had warned that Voldemort was getting st
ronger again, but now that Voldemort was back they would probably remind him that its r
egular irritation was only to be expected . . . nothing to worry about . . . o
ld news . . .
The injustice of it all welled up inside him so that he wanted to yell wit
h fury. If it hadn't been for him, nobody would even have known Voldemort was
back! And. his reward was to be stuck in Little Whinging for four solid weeks,
completely cut off from the magical world, reduced to squatting among dying b
egonias so hat he could hear about water-skiing budgerigars! How could Dumbled
ore have forgotten him so easily? Why had Ron and Hermione got together withou
t inviting him along, too? How much longer was he supposed to endure Sirius te
lling him to sit tight and be a good boy; or resist the temptation to write to
the stupid Daily Prophet and point out that Voldemort had returned? These cur
ious thoughts whirled around in Harry's head, and his insides writhed with ang
er as a sultry, velvety night fell around him, the air full of the smell of wa
rm, dry grass, and the only sound that of the low grumble of traffic on the ro
ad beyond the park railings. He did not know how long he had sat on the swing
before the sound of voices interrupted his musings and he looked up. The streetlamps fr
om the surrounding roads were casting a misty glow strong enough to silhouette
a group of people making their way across the park. One of them was singing a
loud, crude song. The others were laughing. A soft ticking noise came from se
veral expensive racing bikes that they were wheeling along.
Harry knew who those people were. The figure in front was unmistakeably hi
s cousin, Dudley Dursley wending his way home, accompanied by his faithful gan
g.
Dudley was as vast as ever, but a year's hard dieting and the discovery of
a new talent had wrought quite a change in his physique. As Uncle Vernon deli
ghtedly told anyone who would listen, Dudley had recently become the Junior He
avyweight Inter-school Boxing Champion of the Southeast. 'The noble sport', as
Uncle Vernon called it, had made Dudley even more formidable than he had seem
ed to Harry in their primary school days when he had served as Dudley's first
punchball. Harry was not remotely afraid of his cousin any more but he still d
idn't think that Dudley earning to punch harder and more accurately was cause
for celebration. Neighbourhood children all around were terrified of him - eve
n more terrified than they were of 'that Potter boy' who, they lad been warned
, was a hardened hooligan and attended St Brutus's secure Centre for Incurably
Criminal Boys.
Harry watched the dark figures crossing the grass and wondered who they ha
d been beating up tonight. Look round, Harry found himself thinking as he watc
hed them. Come on . . . look round . . . I'm sitting here all alone . . . come
and have a go . . .
If Dudley's friends saw him sitting here, they would be sure to make a bee
line for him, and what would Dudley do then? He wouldn't want to lose face in
front of the gang, but he'd be terrified of provoking Harry . . . it would be
really fun to watch Dudley's dilemma, to taunt him, watch him, with him powerl
ess to respond . . . and if any of the others tried hitting Harry, he was read
y - he had his wand. Let them try . . . he'd love to vent some of his frustrat
ion on the boys who had once made his life hell.
But they didn't turn around, they didn't see him, they were almost at the
railings. Harry mastered the impulse to call after them . . . seeking a fight
was not a smart move . . . he must not use magic he would be risking expulsion
again.
The voices of Dudley's gang died away; they were out of sight, heading alo
ng Magnolia Road.
There you go, Sirius, Harry thought dully. Nothing rash. Kept my nose clea
n. Exactly the opposite of what you'd have done.
He got to his feet and stretched. Aunt Petunia and Uncle Vernon seemed to
feel that whenever Dudley turned up was the right time to be home, and any tim
e after that was much too late. Uncle Vernon had threatened to lock Harry in t
he shed if he came home alter Dudley ever again, so, stifling a yawn, and stil
l scowling, Harry set off towards the park gate.
Magnolia Road, like Privet Drive, was full of large, square houses with pe
rfectly manicured lawns, all owned by large, square owners who drove very clea
n cars similar to Uncle Vernon's. Harry preferred Little Whinging by night, wh
en the curtained windows made patches of jewel-bright colour in the darkness a
nd he ran no danger of hearing disapproving mutters about his 'delinquent' app
earance when he passed the householders. He walked quickly, so that halfway al
ong Magnolia Road Dudley's gang came into view again; they were saying their f
arewells at the entrance to Magnolia Crescent. Harry stepped into the shadow o
f a large lilac tree and waited.
'. . . squealed like a pig, didn't he?' Malcolm was saying, to guffaws fro
m the others.
'Nice right hook, Big D,' said Piers.
'Same time tomorrow?' said Dudley.
'Round at my place, my parents will be out,' said Gordon.
'See you then,' said Dudley.
'Bye, Dud!'
'See ya, Big D!'
Harry waited for the rest of the gang to move on before setting off again.
When their voices had faded once more he headed around the corner into Magnol
ia Crescent and by walking very quickly he soon came within hailing distance o
f Dudley, who was strolling along at his ease, humming tunelessly.
'Hey, Big D!'
Dudley turned.
'Oh,' he grunted. 'It's you.'
'How long have you been "Big D" then?' said Harry.
'Shut it,' snarled Dudley, turning away.
'Cool name,' said Harry, grinning and falling into step beside is cousin.
'But you'll always be "Ickle Diddykins" to me.'
'I said, SHUT IT!' said Dudley, whose ham-like hands had curled into fists
.
'Don't the boys know that's what your mum calls you?'
'Shut your face.'
'You don't tell her to shut her face. What about "Popkin" and "Dinky Diddy
dums", can I use them then?'
Dudley said nothing. The effort of keeping himself from hitting Harry seem
ed to demand all his self-control.
'So who've you been beating up tonight?' Harry asked, his grin fading. 'An
other ten-year-old? I know you did Mark Evans two nights ago - '
'He was asking for it,' snarled Dudley.
'Oh yeah?'
'He cheeked me.'
'Yeah? Did he say you look like a pig that's been taught to walk on its hi
nd legs? 'Cause that's not cheek, Dud, that's true.'
A muscle was twitching in Dudley's jaw. It gave Harry enormous satisfactio
n to know how furious he was making Dudley; he felt as though he was siphoning
off his own frustration into his cousin, the only outlet he had.
They turned right down the narrow alleyway where Harry had first seen Siri
us and which formed a short cut between Magnolia Crescent and Wisteria Walk. I
t was empty and much darker than the streets it linked because there were no s
treetlamps. Their footsteps were muffled between garage walls on one side and
a high fence on the other.
Think you're a big man carrying that thing, don't you?' Dudley said after
a few seconds.
'What thing?'
That - that thing you are hiding.'
Harry grinned again.
'Not as stupid as you look, are you, Dud? But I s'pose, if you were, you w
ouldn't be able to walk and talk at the same time.'
Harry pulled out his wand. He saw Dudley look sideways at it.
'You're not allowed,' Dudley said at once. 'I know you're not. You'd get e
xpelled from that freak school you go to.'
'How d'you know they haven't changed the rules, Big D?'
They haven't,' said Dudley, though he didn't sound completely convinced.
Harry laughed softly.
'You haven't got the guts to take me on without that thing, have you?' Dud
ley snarled.
'Whereas you just need four mates behind you before you can beat up a ten
year old. You know that boxing title you keep banging on about? How old was yo
ur opponent? Seven? Eight?'
'He was sixteen, for your information,' snarled Dudley, 'and he was out co
ld for twenty minutes after I'd finished with him and he was twice as heavy as
you. You just wait till I tell Dad you had that thing out -
'Running to Daddy now, are you? Is his ickle boxing champ frightened of na
sty Harry's wand?'
'Not this brave at night, are you?' sneered Dudley.
'This is night, Diddykins. That's what we call it when it goes all dark li
ke this.'
'I mean when you're in bed!' Dudley snarled.
He had stopped walking. Harry stopped too, staring at his cousin.
From the little he could see of Dudley's large face, he was wearing a stra
ngely triumphant look.
'What d'you mean, I'm not brave when I'm in bed?' said Harry, Completely n
onplussed. 'What am I supposed to be frightened of, pillows or something?'
'I heard you last night,' said Dudley breathlessly. Talking in your sleep.
Moaning.'
'What d'you mean?' Harry said again, but there was a cold, plunging sensat
ion in his stomach. He had revisited the graveyard last night in his dreams.
Dudley gave a harsh bark of laughter, then adopted a high-pitched whimperi
ng voice.
' "Don't kill Cedric! Don't kill Cedric!" Who's Cedric - your boyfriend?'
'I - you're lying,' said Harry automatically. But his mouth had gone dry.
He knew Dudley wasn't lying - how else would he know about Cedric?
' "Dad! Help me, Dad! He's going to kill me, Dad! Boo hoo!'' '
'Shut up,' said Harry quietly. 'Shut up, Dudley, I'm warning you!'
' "Come and help me, Dad! Mum, come and help me! He's killed Cedric! Dad,
help me! He's going to - " Don't you point that thing at me!'
Dudley backed into the alley wall. Harry was pointing the wand directly at
Dudley's heart. Harry could feel fourteen years' hatred of Dudley pounding in
his veins - what wouldn't he give to strike now, to jinx Dudley so thoroughly
he'd have to crawl home like an insect, struck dumb, sprouting feelers . . .
'Don't ever talk about that again,' Harry snarled. 'D'you understand me?'
'Point that thing somewhere else!'
'I said, do you understand me?'
'Point it somewhere else!'
'DO YOU UNDERSTAND ME?'
'GET THAT THING AWAY FROM - '
Dudley gave an odd. shuddering gasp, as though he had been doused in icy w
ater.
Something had happened to the night. The star-strewn indigo sky was sudden
ly pitch black and lightless - the stars, the moon, the misty streetlamps at e
ither end of the alley had vanished. The distant rumble of cars and the whispe
r of trees had gone. The balmy evening was suddenly piercingly, bitingly cold.
They were surrounded by total, impenetrable, silent darkness, as though some
giant hand had dropped a thick, icy mantle over the entire alleyway, blinding
them.
For a split second Harry thought he had done magic without meaning to, des
pite the fact that he'd been resisting as hard as he could - then his reason c
aught up with his senses - he didn't have the power to turn off the stars. He
turned his head this way and that, trying to see something, but the darkness p
ressed on his eyes like a weightless veil.
Dudley's terrified voice broke in Harry's ear.
'W-what are you d-doing? St-stop it!'
'I'm not doing anything! Shut up and don't move!'
'I c-can't see! I've g-gone blind! I - '
'I said shut up!'
Harry stood stock still, turning his sightless eyes left and right. The co
ld was so intense he was shivering all over; goose bumps had erupted up his ar
ms and the hairs on the back of his neck were standing up - he opened his eyes
to their fullest extent, staring blankly around, unseeing.
It was impossible . . . they couldn't be here . . . not in Little Whinging
. . . he strained his ears . . . he would hear them before he saw them . . .
'I'll t-tell Dad!' Dudley whimpered. 'W-where are you? What are you d-do-?
'
'Will you shut up?' Harry hissed, 'I'm trying to lis- '
But he fell silent. He had heard just the thing he had been dreading.
There was something in the alleyway apart from themselves, something that
was drawing long, hoarse, rattling breaths. Harry felt a horrible jolt of drea
d as he stood trembling in the freezing air.
'C-cut it out! Stop doing it! I'll h-hit you, I swear I will!'
'Dudley, shut - '
WHAM.
A fist made contact with the side of Harry's head, lifting him off his fee
t. Small white lights popped in front of his eyes. For the second time in an h
our Harry felt as though his head had been cleaved in two; next moment, he had
landed hard on the ground and his wand had flown out of his hand.
'You moron, Dudley!' Harry yelled, his eyes watering with pain as he scram
bled to his hands and knees, feeling around frantically n the blackness. He he
ard Dudley blundering away, hitting the alley fence, stumbling.
'DUDLEY, COME BACK! YOU'RE RUNNING RIGHT AT IT!'
There was a horrible squealing yell and Dudley's footsteps topped. At the
same moment, Harry felt a creeping chill behind him that could mean only one t
hing. There was more than one.
'DUDLEY, KEEP YOUR MOUTH SHUT! WHATEVER YOU DO, KEEP YOUR MOUTH SHUT! Wand
!' Harry muttered frantically, his hands flying over the ground like spiders.
'Where's - wand - come on - lumos!'
He said the spell automatically, desperate for light to help him n his sea
rch - and to his disbelieving relief, light flared inches from his right hand
- the wand tip had ignited. Harry snatched it up, scrambled to his feet and tu
rned around.
His stomach turned over.
A towering, hooded figure was gliding smoothly towards him, hovering over
the ground, no feet or face visible beneath its robes, sucking on the night as
it came.
Stumbling backwards, Harry raised his wand.
'Expecto patronum!'
A silvery wisp of vapour shot from the tip of the wand and the Dementor sl
owed, but the spell hadn't worked properly; tripping over his own feet, Harry
retreated further as the Dementor bore down upon him, panic fogging his brain
- concentrate -
A pair of grey, slimy, scabbed hands slid from inside the Dementor's robes
, reaching for him. A rushing noise filled Harry's ears.
'Expecto patronum!'
His voice sounded dim and distant. Another wisp of silver smoke, feebler t
han the last, drifted from the wand - he couldn't do it any more, he couldn't
work the spell.
There was laughter inside his own head, shrill, high-pitched laughter . .
. he could smell the Dementor's putrid, death-cold breath filling his own lung
s, drowning him - think . . . something happy . . .
But there was no happiness in him . . . the Dementor's icy fingers were cl
osing on his throat - the high-patched laughter was growing louder and louder,
and a voice spoke inside his head: 'Bow to death, Harry . . . it might even b
e painless . . . I would not know . . . I have never died
He was never going to see Ron and Hermione again -
And their faces burst clearly into his mind as he fought for breath.
'EXPECTO PATRONUM!'
An enormous silver stag erupted from the tip of Harry's wand; it's antlers
caught the Dementor in the place where the heart should have been; it was thr
own backwards, weightless as darkness, and as the stag charged, the Dementor s
wooped away, bat-like and defeated.
'THIS WAY!' Harry shouted at the stag. Wheeling around, he sprinted down t
he alleyway, holding the lit wand aloft. 'DUDLEY? DUDLEY!'
He had run barely a dozen steps when he reached them: Dudley was curled up
on the ground, his arms clamped over his face. A second Dementor was crouchin
g low over him, gripping his wrists in its slimy hands, prising them slowly, a
lmost lovingly apart, lowering its hooded head towards Dudley's face as though
about to kiss him.
'GET IT!' Harry bellowed, and with a rushing, roaring sound, the silver st
ag he had conjured came galloping past him. The Dementor's eyeless face was ba
rely an inch from Dudley's when the silver antlers caught it; the thing was th
rown up into the air and, like its fellow, it soared away and was absorbed int
o the darkness; the stag cantered to the end of the alleyway and dissolved int
o silver mist.
Moon, stars and streetlamps burst back into life. A warm breeze swept the
alleyway. Trees rustled in neighbouring gardens and the mundane rumble of cars
in Magnolia Crescent filled the air again.
Harry stood quite still, all his senses vibrating, taking in the abrupt re
turn to normality. After a moment, he became aware that his T-shirt was sticki
ng to him; he was drenched in sweat.
He could not believe what had just happened. Dementors here, in Little Whi
nging.
Dudley lay curled up on the ground, whimpering and shaking. Harry bent dow
n to see whether he was in a fit state to stand up, but then he heard loud, ru
nning footsteps behind him. Instinctively raising his wand again, he span on h
is heel to face the newcomer.
Mrs Figg, their batty old neighbour, came panting into sight. Her grizzled
grey hair was escaping from its hairnet, a clanking String shopping bag was s
winging from her wrist and her feet were halfway out of her tartan carpet slip
pers. Harry made to stow his wand hurriedly out of sight, but -
'Don't put it away, idiot boy!' she shrieked. 'What if there are more of t
hem around? Oh, I'm going to kill Mundungus Fletcher!'
- CHAPTER TWO -
A Peck of Owls
'What?' said Harry blankly.
'He left!' said Mrs Figg, wringing her hands. 'Left to see someone about a
batch of cauldrons that fell off the back of a broom! I told him I'd flay him
alive if he went, and now look! Dementors! It's just lucky I put Mr Tibbles o
n the case! But we haven't got time to stand around! Hurry, now, we've got to
get you back! Oh, the trouble this is going to cause! I will kill him!'
'But - ' The revelation that his batty old cat-obsessed neighbour knew wha
t Dementors were was almost as big a shock to Harry as meeting two of them dow
n the alleyway. 'You're - you're a witch?'
'I'm a Squib, as Mundungus knows full well, so how on earth was I supposed
to help you fight off Dementors? He left you completely without cover when I'
d warned him - '
This Mundungus has been following me? Hang on - it was him! He Disapparate
d from the front of my house!'
'Yes, yes, yes, but luckily I'd stationed Mr Tibbles under a car just in c
ase, and Mr Tibbles came and warned me, but by the time I got to your house yo
u'd gone - and now - oh, what's Dumbledore going to say? You!' she shrieked at
Dudley, still supine on the alley floor. 'Get your fat bottom off the ground,
quick!'
'You know Dumbledore?' said Harry, staring at her.
'Of course I know Dumbledore, who doesn't know Dumbledore? But come on - I
'll be no help if they come back, I've never so much as Transfigured a teabag.
'
She stooped down, seized one of Dudley's massive arms in her wizened hands
and tugged.
'Get up, you useless lump, get up!'
But Dudley either could not or would not move. He remained on the ground,
trembling and ashen-faced, his mouth shut very tight.
'I'll do it.' Harry took hold of Dudley's arm and heaved. With an enormous
effort he managed to hoist him to his feet. Dudley seemed to be on the point
of fainting. His small eyes were rolling in their sockets and sweat was beadin
g his face; the moment Harry let go of him he swayed dangerously.
'Hurry up!' said Mrs Figg hysterically.
Harry pulled one of Dudley's massive arms around his own shoulders and dra
gged him towards the road, sagging slightly under the weight. Mrs Figg tottere
d along in front of them, peering anxiously around the corner.
'Keep your wand out,' she told Harry, as they entered Wisteria Walk. 'Neve
r mind the Statute of Secrecy now, there's going to be hell to pay anyway, we
might as well be hanged for a dragon as an egg. Talk about the Reasonable Rest
riction of Underage Sorcery . . . this was exactly what Dumbledore was afraid
of - What's that at the end of the street? Oh, it's just Mr Prentice . . . don
't put your wand away, boy, don't I keep telling you I'm no use?'
It was not easy to hold a wand steady and haul Dudley along at the same ti
me. Harry gave his cousin an impatient dig in the ribs, but Dudley seemed to h
ave lost all desire for independent movement. He was slumped on Harry's should
er, his large feet dragging along the ground.
'Why didn't you tell me you're a Squib, Mrs Figg?' asked Harry, panting wi
th the effort to keep walking. 'All those times I came round your house - why
didn't you say anything?'
'Dumbledore's orders. I was to keep an eye on you but not say anything, yo
u were too young. I'm sorry I gave you such a miserable time, Harry, but the D
ursleys would never have let you come if they'd thought you enjoyed it. It was
n't easy, you know . . . but oh my word,' she said tragically, wringing her ha
nds once more, 'when Dumbledore hears about this - how could Mundungus have le
ft, he was supposed to be on duty until midnight - where is he? How am I going
to tell Dumbledore what's happened? I can't Apparate.'
'I've got an owl, you can borrow her.' Harry groaned, wondering whether hi
s spine was going to snap under Dudley's weight.
'Harry, you don't understand! Dumbledore will need to act as quickly as po
ssible, the Ministry have their own ways of detecting underage magic, they'll
know already, you mark my words.'
'But I was getting rid of Dementors, I had to use magic - they're going to
be more worried about what Dementors were doing floating around Wisteria Walk
, surely?'
'Oh, my dear, I wish it were so, but I'm afraid - MUNDUNGUS FLETCHER, I AM
GOING TO KILL YOU!'
There was a loud crack and a strong smell of drink mingled with stale toba
cco filled the air as a squat, unshaven man in a tattered overcoat materialise
d right in front of them. He had short, bandy legs, long straggly ginger hair
and bloodshot, baggy eyes that gave him the doleful look of a basset hound. He
was also clutching a silvery bundle that Harry recognised at once as an Invis
ibility Cloak.
' 'S'up, Figgy?' he said, staring from Mrs Figg to Harry and Dudley. 'What
'appened to staying undercover?'
'I'll give you undercover!' cried Mrs Figg. 'Dementors, you useless, skivi
ng sneak thief!'
'Dementors?' repeated Mundungus, aghast. 'Dementors, 'ere?'
'Yes, here, you worthless pile of bat droppings, here!' shrieked Mrs Figg.
'Dementors attacking the boy on your watch!'
'Blimey,' said Mundungus weakly, looking from Mrs Figg to Harry, and back
again. 'Blimey, I - '
'And you off buying stolen cauldrons! Didn't I tell you not to go? Didn't
I?'
'I - well, I -' Mundungus looked deeply uncomfortable. 'It - it was a very
good business opportunity see - '
Mrs Figg raised the arm from which her string bag dangled and whacked Mund
ungus around the lace and neck with it; judging by the clanking noise it made
it was full of cat food.
'Ouch - gerroff - gerroff, you mad old bat! Someone's gotta tell Dumbledor
e!'
'Yes - they - have!' yelled Mrs Figg, swinging the bag of cat food at ever
y bit of Mundungus she could reach. 'And - it - had - better - be - you - and
- you - can - tell - him - why - you - weren't - there - to - help!'
'Keep your 'airnet on!' said Mundungus, his arms over his head, cowering.
'I'm going, I'm going!'
And with another loud crack, he vanished.
'I hope Dumbledore murders him!' said Mrs Figg furiously. 'Now come on, Ha
rry, what are you waiting for?'
Harry decided not to waste his remaining breath on pointing out that he co
uld barely walk under Dudley's bulk. He gave the semi-conscious Dudley a heave
and staggered onwards.
'I'll take you to the door,' said Mrs Figg, as they turned into Privet Dri
ve. 'Just in case there are more of them around . . . oh my word, what a catas
trophe . . . and you had to fight them off yourself . . . and Dumbledore said
we were to keep you from doing magic at all costs . . . well, it's no good cry
ing over spilt potion, I suppose . . . but the cat's among the pixies now.'
'So,' Harry panted, 'Dumbledore's . . . been having . . . me followed?'
'Of course he has,' said Mrs Figg impatiently. 'Did you expect him to let
you wander around on your own after what happened in June? Good Lord, boy, the
y told me you were intelligent . . . right . . . get inside and stay there,' s
he said, as they reached number four. 'I expect someone will be in touch with
you soon enough.'
'What are you going to do?' asked Harry quickly.
'I'm going straight home,' said Mrs Figg, staring around the dark street a
nd shuddering. 'I'll need to wait for more instructions. Just stay in the hous
e. Goodnight.'
'Hang on, don't go yet! I want to know - '
But Mrs Figg had already set off at a trot, carpet slippers flopping, stri
ng bag clanking.
'Wait!' Harry shouted after her. He had a million questions to ask anyone
who was in contact with Dumbledore; but within seconds Mrs Figg was swallowed
by the darkness. Scowling, Harry readjusted Dudley on his shoulder and made hi
s slow, painful way up number four's garden path.
The hall light was on. Harry stuck his wand back inside the waistband of h
is jeans, rang the bell and watched Aunt Petunia's outline grow larger and lar
ger, oddly distorted by the rippling glass in the front door.
'Diddy! About time too, I was getting quite - quite - Diddy, what's the ma
tter?'
Harry looked sideways at Dudley and ducked out from under his arm just in
time. Dudley swayed on the spot for a moment, his face pale green . . . then h
e opened his mouth and vomited all over the doormat.
'DIDDY! Diddy, what's the matter with you? Vernon? VERNON!'
Harry's uncle came galumphing out of the living room, walrus moustache blo
wing hither and thither as it always did when he was agitated. He hurried forw
ards to help Aunt Petunia negotiate a weak-kneed Dudley over the threshold whi
le avoiding stepping in the pool of sick.
'He's ill, Vernon!'
'What is it, son? What's happened7 Did Mrs Polkiss give you something fore
ign for tea?'
'Why are you all covered in dirt, darling? Have you been lying on the grou
nd?'
'Hang on - you haven't been mugged, have you, son?'
Aunt Petunia screamed.
'Phone the police, Vernon! Phone the police! Diddy, darling, speak to Mumm
y! What did they do to you?'
In all the kerfuffle nobody seemed to have noticed Harry, which suited him
perfectly. He managed to slip inside just before Uncle Vernon slammed the doo
r and, while the Dursleys made their noisy progress down the hall towards the
kitchen, Harry moved carefully and quietly towards the stairs.
'Who did it, son? Give us names. We'll get them, don't worry.'
'Shh! He's trying to say something, Vernon! What is it, Diddy? Tell Mummy!
'
Harry's foot was on the bottom-most stair when Dudley found his voice.
'Him.'
Harry froze, foot on the stair, face screwed up, braced for the explosion.
'BOY! COME HERE!'
With a feeling of mingled dread and anger, Harry removed his foot slowly f
rom the stair and turned to follow the Dursleys.
The scrupulously clean kitchen had an oddly unreal glitter after the darkn
ess outside. Aunt Petunia was ushering Dudley into a chair; he was still very
green and clammy-looking. Uncle Vernon was standing in front of the draining b
oard, glaring at Harry through tiny, narrowed eyes.
'What have you done to my son?' he said in a menacing growl.
'Nothing,' said Harry, knowing perfectly well that Uncle Vernon wouldn't b
elieve him.
'What did he do to you. Diddy?' Aunt Petunia said in a quavering voice, no
w sponging sick from the front of Dudley's leather jacket. 'Was it - was it yo
u-know-what, darling? Did he use - his thing?'
Slowly, tremulously, Dudley nodded.
'I didn't!' Harry said sharply, as Aunt Petunia let out a wail and Uncle V
ernon raised his fists. 'I didn't do anything to him, it wasn't me, it was - '
But at that precise moment a screech owl swooped in through the kitchen wi
ndow. Narrowly missing the top of Uncle Vernon's head, it soared across the ki
tchen, dropped the large parchment envelope it was carrying in its beak at Har
ry's feet, turned gracefully, the tips of its wings just brushing the top of t
he fridge, then zoomed outside again and off across the garden.
'OWLS!' bellowed Uncle Vernon, the well-worn vein in his temple pulsing an
grily as he slammed the kitchen window shut. 'OWLS AGAIN! I WILL NOT HAVE ANY
MORE OWLS IN MY HOUSE!'
But Harry was already ripping open the envelope and pulling out the letter
inside, his heart pounding somewhere in the region of his Adam's apple.
Dear Mr Potter,
We have received intelligence that you performed the Patronus Charm at twenty-
three minutes past nine this evening in a Muggle-inhabited area and in the pre
sence of a Muggle.
The severity of this breach of the Decree for the Reasonable Restriction o
f Underage Sorcery has resulted in your expulsion from Hogwarts School of Witc
hcraft and Wizardry. Ministry representatives will be calling at your place of
residence shortly to destroy your wand.
As you have already received an official warning for a previous offence un
der Section 13 of the International Confederation of Warlocks' Statute of Secr
ecy, we regret to inform you that your presence is required at a disciplinary
hearing at the Ministry of Magic at 9 a.m. on the twelfth of August.
Hoping you are well,
Yours sincerely,
Mafalda Hopkirk
Improper Use of Magic Office
Ministry of Magic
Harry read the letter through twice. He was only vaguely aware of Uncle Vernon
and Aunt Petunia talking. Inside his head, all was icy and numb. One fact had
penetrated his consciousness like a paralysing dart. He was expelled from Hog
warts. It was all over. He was never going back.
He looked up at the Dursleys. Uncle Vernon was purple-faced, shouting, his
fists still raised; Aunt Petunia had her arms around Dudley who was retching
again.
Harry's temporarily stupefied brain seemed to reawaken. Ministry represent
atives will be calling at your place of residence shortly to destroy your wand
. There was only one thing for it. He would have to run - now. Where he was go
ing to go, Harry didn't know but he was certain of one thing: at Hogwarts or o
utside it, he needed his wand. In an almost dreamlike state, he pulled his wan
d out and turned to leave the kitchen.
'Where d'you think you're going?' yelled Uncle Venon. When Harry didn't re
ply, he pounded across the kitchen to block the doorway into the hall. 'I have
n't finished with you, boy!'
'Get out of the way,' said Harry quietly.
'You're going to stay here and explain how my son - '
'If you don't get out of the way I'm going to jinx you,' said Harry, raisi
ng the wand.
'You can't pull that one on me!' snarled Uncle Vernon. 'I know
'You're not allowed to use it outside that madhouse you call a school!'
The madhouse has chucked me out,' said Harry. 'So I can do whatever I like
. You've got three seconds. One - two - '
A resounding CRACK filled the kitchen. Aunt Petunia screamed, Uncle Vernon
yelled and ducked, but for the third time that night Harry was searching for
the source of a disturbance he had not made. He spotted it at once: a dazed an
d ruffled-looking barn owl was sitting outside on the kitchen sill, having jus
t collided with the closed window.
Ignoring Uncle Vernon's anguished yell of 'OWLS!' Harry crossed the room a
t a run and wrenched the window open. The owl stuck out its leg, to which a sm
all roll of parchment was tied, shook its feathers, and took off the moment Ha
rry had taken the letter. Hands shaking, Harry unfurled the second message, wh
ich was written very hastily and blotchily in black ink.
Harry -
Dumbledore's just arrived at the Ministry and he's trying to sort it all out.
DO NOT LEAVE YOUR AUNT AND UNCLE'S HOUSE. DO NOT DO ANY MORE MAGIC. DO NOT SUR
RENDER YOUR WAND.
Arthur Weasley
Dumbledore was trying to sort it all out . . . what did that mean? how much po
wer did Dumbledore have to override the Ministry of Magic? Was there a chance
that he might be allowed back to Hogwarts, then? A small shoot of hope burgeon
ed in Harry's chest, almost immediately strangled by panic - how was he suppos
ed to refuse to surrender his wand without doing magic? He'd have to duel with
the Ministry representatives, and if he did that, he'd be lucky to escape Azk
aban, let alone expulsion.
His mind was racing . . . he could run for it and risk being captured by t
he Ministry, or stay put and wait for them to find him here. He was much more
tempted by the former course, but he mew Mr Weasley had his best interests at
heart . . . and after all, Dumbledore had sorted out much worse than this befo
re.
'Right,' Harry said, 'I've changed my mind, I'm staying.'
He flung himself down at the kitchen table and faced Dudley and Aunt Petun
ia. The Dursleys appeared taken aback at his abrupt change of mind. Aunt Petun
ia glanced despairingly at Uncle Vernon. The vein in his purple temple was thr
obbing worse than ever.
'Who are all these ruddy owls from?' he growled.
'The first one was from the Ministry of Magic, expelling me,' said Harry c
almly. He was straining his ears to catch any noises outside, in case the Mini
stry representatives were approaching, and it was easier and quieter to answer
Uncle Vernon's questions than to have him start raging and bellowing. The sec
ond one was from my friend Ron's dad, who works at the Ministry.'
'Ministry of Magic?' bellowed Uncle Vernon. 'People like you in government
? Oh, this explains everything, everything, no wonder the country's going to t
he dogs.'
When Harry did not respond, Uncle Vernon glared at him, then spat out, 'An
d why have you been expelled?'
'Because I did magic.'
'AHA!' roared Uncle Vernon, slamming his fist down on top of the fridge, w
hich sprang open; several of Dudley's low-fat snacks toppled out and burst on
the floor. 'So you admit it! What did you do to Dudley?'
'Nothing,' said Harry, slightly less calmly. That wasn't me - '
'Was,' muttered Dudley unexpectedly, and Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia ins
tantly made flapping gestures at Harry to quieten him while they both bent low
over Dudley.
'Go on, son,' said Uncle Vernon, 'what did he do?'
Tell us, darling,' whispered Aunt Petunia.
'Pointed his wand at me,' Dudley mumbled.
'Yeah, I did, but I didn't use - ' Harry began angrily, but - '
'SHUT UP!' roared Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia in unison.
'Go on, son,' repeated Uncle Vernon, moustache blowing about furiously.
'All went dark,' Dudley said hoarsely, shuddering 'Everything dark. And th
en I h-heard . . . things. Inside m-my head.'
Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia exchanged looks of utter horror. If their le
ast favourite thing in the world was magic - closely followed by neighbours wh
o cheated more than they did on the hosepipe ban - people who heard voices wer
e definitely in the bottom ten. They obviously thought Dudley was losing his m
ind.
'What sort of things did you hear, Popkin?' breathed Aunt Petunia, very wh
ite-faced and with tears in her eyes.
But Dudley seemed incapable of saying. He shuddered again and shook his la
rge blond head, and despite the sense of numb dread that had settled on Harry
since the arrival of the first owl, he felt a certain curiosity. Dementors cau
sed a person to relive the worst moments of their life. What would spoiled, pa
mpered, bullying Dudley have been forced to hear?
'How come you fell over, son?' said Uncle Vernon, in an unnaturally quiet
voice, the kind of voice he might adopt at the Bedside of a very ill person.
'T-tripped,' said Dudley shakily. 'And then - '
He gestured at his massive chest. Harry understood. Dudley was remembering
the clammy cold that filled the lungs as hope and happiness were sucked out o
f you.
'Horrible,' croaked Dudley. 'Cold. Really cold.'
'OK,' said Uncle Vernon, in a voice of forced calm, while Aunt Petunia lai
d an anxious hand on Dudley's forehead to feel his temperature. 'What happened
then, Dudders?'
'Felt . . . felt . . . felt . . . as if . . . as if . . .'
'As if you'd never be happy again,' Harry supplied dully.
'Yes,' Dudley whispered, still trembling.
'So!' said Uncle Vernon, voice restored to full and considerable volume as
he straightened up. 'You put some crackpot spell on my on so he'd hear voices
and believe he was - was doomed to misery, or something, did you?'
'How many times do I have to tell you?' said Harry, temper and voice both
rising. 'It wasn't me! It was a couple of Dementors!'
'A couple of - what's this codswallop?'
'De - men - tors,' said Harry slowly and clearly. Two of them.'
'And what the ruddy hell are Dementors?'
'They guard the wizard prison, Azkaban,' said Aunt Petunia.
Two seconds of ringing silence followed these words before Aunt Petunia cl
apped her hand over her mouth as though she had let slip a disgusting swear wo
rd. Uncle Vernon was goggling at her. Harry's brain reeled. Mrs Figg was one t
hing - but Aunt Petunia?
'How d'you know that?' he asked her, astonished.
Aunt Petunia looked quite appalled with herself. She glanced at Uncle Vern
on in fearful apology, then lowered her hand slightly to reveal her horsy teet
h.
'I heard - that awful boy - telling her about them - years ago,' she said
jerkily.
'If you mean my mum and dad, why don't you use their names?' said Harry lo
udly but Aunt Petunia ignored him. She seemed horribly flustered.
Harry was stunned. Except for one outburst years ago, in the course of whi
ch Aunt Petunia had screamed that Harry's mother had been a freak, he had neve
r heard her mention her sister. He was astounded that she had remembered this
scrap of information about the magical world for so long, when she usually put
all her energies, into pretending it didn't exist.
Uncle Vernon opened his mouth, closed it again, opened it once more, shut
it, then, apparently struggling to remember how to talk, opened it for a third
time and croaked, 'So - so - they - er - they - er - they actually exist, do
they - er - Dementy-whatsits?'
Aunt Petunia nodded.
Uncle Vernon looked from Aunt Petunia to Dudley to Harry as if hoping some
body was going to shout 'April Fool!' When nobody did, he opened his mouth yet
again, but was spared the struggle to find more words by the arrival of the t
hird owl of the evening. It zoomed through the still-open window like a feathe
ry cannon-ball and landed with a clatter on the kitchen table, causing all thr
ee of the Dursleys to jump with fright. Harry tore a second official-looking e
nvelope from the owl's beak and ripped it open as the owl swooped back out int
o the night.
'Enough - effing - owls,' muttered Uncle Vernon distractedly, stomping ove
r to the window and slamming it shut again.
Dear Mr Potter,
Further to our letter of approximately twenty-two minutes ago, the Ministry of
Magic has revised its decision to destroy your wand forthwith. You may retain
your wand until your disciplinary hearing on the twelfth of August, at which
time an official decision will be taken.
Following discussions with the Headmaster of Hogwarts School of Witchcraft
and Wizardry, the Ministry has agreed that the question of your expulsion wil
l also be decided at that time. You should therefore consider yourself suspend
ed from- school pending further enquiries.
With best wishes,
Yours sincerely,
Mafalda Hopkirk
Improper Use of Magic Office
Ministry of Magic
Harry read this letter through three times in quick succession. The miserable
knot in his chest loosened slightly with the relief of knowing he was not yet
definitely expelled, though his fears were by no means banished. Everything se
emed to hang on this hearing on the twelfth of August.
'Well?' said Uncle Vernon, recalling Harry to his surroundings. 'What now?
Have they sentenced you to anything? Do your lot have the death penalty?' he
added as a hopeful afterthought.
'I've got to go to a hearing,' said Harry.
'And they'll sentence you there?'
'I suppose so.'
'I won't give up hope, then,' said Uncle Vernon nastily.
'Well, if that's all,' said Harry, getting to his feet. He was desperate t
o be alone, to think, perhaps to send a letter to Ron, Hermione or Sirius.
'NO, IT RUDDY WELL IS NOT ALL!' bellowed Uncle Vernon. 'SIT BACK DOWN!'
'What now?' said Harry impatiently.
'DUDLEY!' roared Uncle Vernon. 'I want to know exactly what happened to my
son!'
'FINE!' yelled Harry, and in his temper, red and gold sparks shot out of t
he end of his wand, still clutched in his hand. All three Dursleys flinched, l
ooking terrified.
'Dudley and I were in the alleyway between Magnolia Crescent and Wisteria
Walk,' said Harry, speaking fast, fighting to control his temper. 'Dudley thou
ght he'd be smart with me, I pulled out my wand but didn't use it. Then two De
mentors turned up - '
'But what ARE Dementoids?' asked Uncle Vernon furiously. 'What do they DO?
'
'I told you - they suck all the happiness out of you,' said Harry, 'and if
they get the chance, they kiss you - '
'Kiss you?' said Uncle Vernon, his eyes popping slightly. 'Kiss you?'
'It's what they call it when they suck the soul out of your mouth.'
Aunt Petunia uttered a soft scream.
'His soul? They didn't take - he's still got his - '
She seized Dudley by the shoulders and shook him, as though testing to see
whether she could hear his soul rattling around inside hint.
'Of course they didn't get his soul, you'd know if they had,' said Harry,
exasperated.
'Fought 'em off, did you, son?' said Uncle Vernon loudly, with the appeara
nce of a man struggling to bring the conversation back on to a plane he unders
tood. 'Gave 'em the old one-two, did you?'
'You can't give a Dementor the old one-two,' said Harry through clenched t
eeth.
'Why's he all right, then?' blustered Uncle Vernon. 'Why isn't e all empty
, then?'
'Because I used the Patronus - '
WHOOSH. With a clattering, a whirring of wings and a soft fall of dust, a
fourth owl came shooting out of the kitchen fireplace.
'FOR GOD'S SAKE!' roared Uncle Vernon, pulling great clumps of hair out of
his moustache, something he hadn't been driven to do in a long time. 'I WILL
NOT HAVE OWLS HERE, I WILL NOT TOLERATE THIS, I TELL YOU!'
But Harry was already pulling a roll of parchment from the owl's leg. He w
as so convinced that this letter had to be from Dumbledore, explaining everyth
ing - the Dementors, Mrs Figg, what the Ministry was up to, how he, Dumbledore
, intended to sort everything out - that for the first time in his life he was
disappointed to see Sirius's handwriting. Ignoring Uncle Vernons ongoing rant
about owls, and narrowing his eyes against a second cloud of dust as the most
recent owl took off back up the chimney, Harry read Sirius's message.
Arthur has just told us what's happened. Don't leave the house again, what
ever you do.
Harry found this such an inadequate response to everything that had happen
ed tonight that he turned the piece of parchment over, looking for the rest of
the letter, but there was nothing else.
And now his temper was rising again. Wasn't anybody going to say 'well don
e' for fighting off two Dementors single-handed? Both Mr Weasley and Sirius we
re acting as though he'd misbehaved, and were saving their tellings-off until
they could ascertain how much damage had been done.
'. . . a peck, I mean, pack of owls shooting in and out of my house. I won
't have it, boy, I won't - '
'I can't stop the owls coming,' Harry snapped, crushing Sirius's letter in
his fist.
'I want the truth about what happened tonight!' barked Uncle Vernon. 'If i
t was Demenders who hurt Dudley, how come you've been expelled? You did you-kn
ow-what, you've admitted, it!'
Harry took a deep, steadying breath. His head was beginning to ache again.
He wanted more than anything to get out of the kitchen, and away from the Dur
sleys.
'I did the Patronus Charm to get rid of the Dementors,' he said, forcing h
imself to remain calm. 'It's the only thing that works against them.'
'But what were Dementoids doing in Little Whinging?' said Uncle Vernon in
an outraged tone.
'Couldn't tell you,' said Harry wearily. 'No idea.'
His head was pounding in the glare of the strip-lighting now. His anger wa
s ebbing away. He felt drained, exhausted. The Dursleys were all staring at hi
m.
'It's you,' said Uncle Vernon forcefully. 'It's got something to do with y
ou, boy, I know it. Why else would they turn up here? Why else would they be d
own that alleyway? You've got to be the only - the only - ' Evidently, he coul
dn't bring himself to say the word 'wizard'. The only you-know-what for miles.
'
'I don't know why they were here.'
But at Uncle Vernon's words, Harry's exhausted brain had ground back into
action. Why had the Dementors come to Little Whinging? How could it be coincid
ence that they had arrived in the alleyway where Harry was? Had they been sent
? Had the Ministry of Magic lost control of the Dementors? Had they deserted A
zkaban and joined Voldemort, as Dumbledore had predicted they would?
'These Demembers guard some weirdo prison?' asked Uncle Vernon, lumbering
along in the wake of Harry's train of thought.
'Yes,' said Harry.
If only his head would stop hurting, if only he could just leave the kitch
en and get to his dark bedroom and think . . .
'Oho! They were coming to arrest you!' said Uncle Vernon, with the triumph
ant air of a man reaching an unassailable conclusion. That's it, isn't it, boy
? You're on the run from the law!'
'Of course I'm not,' said Harry, shaking his head as though to scare off a
fly, his mind racing now.
Then why - ?'
'He must have sent them,' said Harry quietly, more to himself than to Uncl
e Vernon.
'What's that? Who must have sent them?'
'Lord Voldemort,' said Harry.
He registered dimly how strange it was that the Dursleys, who flinched, wi
nced and squawked if they heard words like 'wizard', 'magic' or 'wand', could
hear the name of the most evil wizard of all time without the slightest tremor
.
'Lord - hang on,' said Uncle Vernon, his face screwed up, a look of dawnin
g comprehension coming into his piggy eyes. 'I've heard that name . . . that w
as the one who - '
'Murdered my parents, yes,' Harry said dully.
'But he's gone,' said Uncle Vernon impatiently, without the slightest sign
that the murder of Harry's parents might be a painful topic. That giant bloke
said so. He's gone.'
'He's back,' said Harry heavily.
It felt very strange to be standing here in Aunt Petunia's surgically clea
n kitchen, beside the top'-of-the-range fridge and the wide-screen television,
talking calmly of Lord Voldemort to Uncle Vernon. The arrival of the Dementor
s in Little Whinging seemed to have breached the great, invisible wall that di
vided the relentlessly non-magical world of Privet Drive and the world beyond.
Harry's two lives had somehow become fused and everything had been turned ups
ide-down; the Dursleys were asking for details about the magical world, and Mr
s Figg knew Albus Dumbledore; Dementors were soaring around Little Whinging, a
nd he might never return to Hogwarts. Harry's head throbbed more painfully.
'Back?' whispered Aunt Petunia.
She was looking at Harry as she had never looked at him before. And all of
a sudden, for the very first time in his life, Harry fully appreciated that A
unt Petunia was his mother's sister. He could not have said why this hit him s
o very powerfully at this moment. All he knew was that he was not the only per
son in the room who had an inkling of what Lord Voldemort being back might mea
n. Aunt Petunia had never in her life looked at him like that before. Her larg
e, pale eyes (so unlike her sisters) were not narrowed in dislike or anger, th
ey were wide and fearful. The furious pretence that Aunt Petunia had maintaine
d all Harry's life - that there was no magic and no world other than the world
she inhabited with Uncle Vernon - seemed to have fallen away.
'Yes,' Harry said, talking directly to Aunt Petunia now. ;He came back a m
onth ago. I saw him.'
Her hands found Dudley's massive leather-clad shoulders and clutched them.
'Hang on,' said Uncle Vernon, looking from his wife to Harry and back agai
n, apparently dazed and confused by the unprecedented understanding that seeme
d to have sprung up between them. 'Hang on. This Lord Voldything's back, you s
ay.'
'Yes.'
The one who murdered your parents.'
'Yes.'
'And now he's sending Dismembers after you?'
'Looks like it,' said Harry.
T see,' said Uncle Vernon, looking from his white-faced wife to Harry and
hitching up his trousers. He seemed to be swelling, his
great purple face stretching before Harry's eyes. 'Well, that settles it,'
he said, his shirt front straining as he inflated himself, 'you can get out o
f this house, boy!'
'What?' said Harry.
'You heard me - OUT!' Uncle Vernon bellowed, and even Aunt Petunia and Dud
ley jumped. 'OUT! OUT! I should've done this years ago! Owls treating the plac
e like a rest home, puddings exploding, half the lounge destroyed, Dudley's ta
il, Marge bobbing around on the ceiling and that flying Ford Anglia - OUT! OUT
! You've had it! You're history! You're not staying here if some loony's after
you, you're not endangering my wife and son, you're not bringing trouble down
on us. It you're going the same way as your useless parents, I've had it! OUT
!'
Harry stood rooted to the spot. The letters from the Ministry, Mr Weasley
and Sirius were all crushed in his left hand. Don't leave the house again, wha
tever you do. DO NOT LEAVE YOUR AUNT AND UNCLE'S HOUSE.
'You heard me!' said Uncle Vernon, bending forwards now, his massive purpl
e face coming so close to Harry's, he actually felt flecks of spit hit his fac
e. 'Get going! You were all keen to leave half an hour ago! I'm right behind y
ou! Get out and never darken our doorstep again! Why we ever kept you in the f
irst place, I don't know, Marge was right, it should have been the orphanage.
We were too damn soft for our own good, thought we could squash it out of you,
thought we could turn you normal, but you've been rotten from the beginning a
nd I've had enough - owls!'
The fifth owl zoomed down the chimney so fast it actually hit the floor be
fore zooming into the air again with a loud screech. Harry raised his hand to
seize the letter, which was in a scarlet envelope, but it soared straight over
his head, flying directly at Aunt Petunia, who let out a scream and ducked, h
er arms over her face. The owl dropped the red envelope on her head, turned, a
nd flew straight back up the chimney.
Harry darted forwards to pick up the letter, but Aunt Petunia beat him to
it.
'You can open it if you like,' said Harry, 'but I'll hear what it says any
way. That's a Howler.'
'Let go of it, Petunia!' roared Uncle Vernon. 'Don't touch it, it could be
dangerous!'
'It's addressed to me,' said Aunt Petunia in a shaking voice. 'It's addres
sed to me, Vernon, look! Mrs Petunia Dursley, The Kitchen, Number Four, Privet
Drive - '
She caught her breath, horrified. The red envelope had begun to smoke.
'Open it!' Harry urged her. 'Get it over with! It'll happen anyway.'
'No.'
Aunt Petunia's hand was trembling. She looked wildly around the kitchen as
though looking for an escape route, but too late - the envelope burst into fl
ames. Aunt Petunia screamed and dropped it.
An awful voice filled the kitchen, echoing in the confined space, issuing
from the burning letter on the table.
'Remember my last, Petunia.'
Aunt Petunia looked as though she might faint. She sank into the chair bes
ide Dudley, her face in her hands. The remains of the envelope smouldered into
ash in the silence.
'What is this?' Uncle Vernon said hoarsely. 'What - I don't - 'Petunia?'
Aunt Petunia said nothing. Dudley was staring stupidly at his mother, his
mouth hanging open. The silence spiralled horribly. Harry was watching his aun
t, utterly bewildered, his head throbbing fit to burst.
'Petunia, dear?' said Uncle Vernon timidly. 'P-Petunia?'
She raised her head. She was still trembling. She swallowed.
'The boy - the boy will have to stay, Vernon,' she said weakly.
'W-what?'
'He stays,' she said. She was not looking at Harry. She got to her feet ag
ain.
'He . . . but Petunia . . .'
'If we throw him out, the neighbours will talk,' she said. She was rapidly
regaining her usual brisk, snappish manner, though she was still very pale. '
They'll ask awkward questions, they'll want to know where he's gone. We'll hav
e to keep him.'
Uncle Vernon was deflating like an old tyre.
'But Petunia, dear - '
Aunt Petunia ignored him. She turned to Harry.
'You're to stay in your room,' she said. 'You're not to leave the house. N
ow get to bed.'
Harry didn't move.
'Who was that Howler from?'
'Don't ask questions,' Aunt Petunia snapped.
'Are you in touch with wizards?'
'I told you to get to bed!'
'What did it mean? Remember the last what?'
'Go to bed!'
'How come - ?'
'YOU HEARD YOUR AUNT, NOW GO UP TO BED!'
- CHAPTER THREE -
The Advance Guard
I've just been attacked by Dementors and I might be expelled from Hogwarts. I
want to know what's going on and when I'm going to get out of here.
Harry copied these words on to three separate pieces of parchment the mome
nt he reached the desk in his dark bedroom. He addressed the first to Sirius,
the second to Ron and the third to Hermione. His owl, Hedwig, was off hunting;
her cage stood empty on the desk. Harry paced the bedroom waiting for her to
come back, his head pounding, his brain too busy for sleep even though his eye
s stung and itched with tiredness. His back ached from hauling Dudley home, an
d the two lumps on his head where the window and Dudley had hit him were throb
bing painfully.
Up and down he paced, consumed with anger and frustration, grinding his te
eth and clenching his fists, casting angry looks out at the empty, star-strewn
sky every time he passed the window. Dementors sent to get him, Mrs Figg and
Mundungus Fletcher tailing him in secret, then suspension from Hogwarts and a
hearing at the Ministry of Magic - and still no one was telling him what was g
oing on.
And what, what, had that Howler been about? Whose voice had echoed so horr
ibly, so menacingly, through the kitchen?
Why was he still trapped here without information? Why was everyone treati
ng him like some naughty kid? Don't do any more magic, stay in the house . . .
He kicked his school trunk as he passed it, but far from relieving his ang
er he felt worse, as he now had a sharp pain in his toe to deal with in additi
on to the pain in the rest of his body
Just as he limped past the window, Hedwig soared through it with a soft ru
stle of wings like a small ghost.
'About time!' Harry snarled, as she landed lightly on top of her cage. 'Yo
u can put that down, I've got work for you!'
Hedwig's large, round, amber eyes gazed at him reproachfully over the dead
frog clamped in her beak.
'Come here,' said Harry, picking up the three small rolls of parchment and
a leather thong and tying the scrolls to her scaly leg. Take these straight t
o Sirius, Ron and Hermione and don't come back here without good long replies.
Keep pecking them till they've written decent-length answers if you've got to
. Understand?'
Hedwig gave a muffled hooting noise, her beak still full of frog.
'Get going, then,' said Harry.
She took off immediately. The moment she'd gone, Harry threw himself down
on his bed without undressing and stared at the dark ceiling. In addition to e
very other miserable feeling, he now felt guilty that he'd been irritable with
Hedwig; she was the only friend he had at number four, Privet Drive But he'd
make it up to her when she came back with the answers from Sirius, Ron and Her
mione.
They were bound to write back quickly; they couldn't possibly ignore a Dem
entor attack. He'd probably wake up tomorrow to three fat letters full of symp
athy and plans for his immediate removal to The Burrow. And with that comforti
ng idea, sleep rolled over him, stifling all further thought.
*
But Hedwig didn't return next morning. Harry spent the day in his bedroom, lea
ving it only to go to the bathroom. Three times that day Aunt Petunia shoved f
ood into his room through the cat-Flap Uncle Vernon had installed three summer
s ago. Every time Harry heard her approaching he tried to question her about t
he Howler, but he might as well have interrogated the doorknob for all the ans
wers he got. Otherwise, the Dursleys kept well clear of his bedroom. Harry cou
ldn't see the point of forcing his company on them; another row would achieve
nothing except perhaps make him so angry he'd perform more illegal magic.
So it went on for three whole days. Harry was alternately filled with rest
less energy that made him unable to settle to anything, during which time he p
aced his bedroom, furious at the whole lot of them for leaving him to stew in
this mess; and with a lethargy so complete that he could lie on his bed for an
hour at a time, staring dazedly into space, aching with dread at the thought
of the Ministry hearing.
What if they ruled against him? What if he was expelled and his wand was s
napped in half? What would he do, where would he go? He could not return to li
ving full-time with the Dursleys, not now he knew the other world, the one to
which he really belonged. Might he be able to move into Sirius's house, as Sir
ius had suggested a year ago, before he had been forced to flee from the Minis
try? Would Harry be allowed to live there alone, given that he was still under
age? Or would the matter of where he went next be decided for him? Had his bre
ach of the International Statute of Secrecy been severe enough to land him in
a cell in Azkaban? Whenever this thought occurred, Harry invariably slid off h
is bed and began pacing again.
On the fourth night after Hedwig's departure Harry was lying in one of his
apathetic phases, staring at the ceiling, his exhausted mind quite blank, whe
n his uncle entered his bedroom. Harry looked slowly around at him. Uncle Vern
on was wearing his best suit and an expression of enormous smugness.
'We're going out,' he said.
'Sorry?'
'We - that is to say, your aunt, Dudley and I - are going out.'
'Fine,' said Harry dully, looking back at the ceiling.
'You are not to leave your bedroom while we are away.'
'OK.'
'You are not to touch the television, the stereo, or any of our possession
s.'
'Right.'
'You are not to steal food from the fridge.'
'OK.'
'I am going to lock your door.'
'You do that.'
Uncle Vernon glared at Harry, clearly suspicious of this lack of argument,
then stomped out of the room and closed the door behind him. Harry heard the
key turn in the lock and Uncle Vernon's footsteps walking heavily down the sta
irs. A few minutes later he heard the slamming of car doors, the rumble of an
engine, and the unmistakeable sound of the car sweeping out of the drive.
Harry had no particular feeling about the Dursleys leaving. It made no dif
ference to him whether they were in the house or not. He could not even summon
the energy to get up and turn on his bedroom light. The room grew steadily da
rker around him as he lay listening to the night sounds through the window he
kept open all the time, waiting for the blessed moment when Hedwig returned.
The empty house creaked around him. The pipes gurgled. Harry ay there in a
kind of stupor, thinking of nothing, suspended in misery.
Then, quite distinctly, he heard a crash in the kitchen below.
He sat bolt upright, listening intently. The Dursleys couldn't be back, it
was much too soon, and in any case he hadn't heard their car.
There was silence for a few seconds, then voices.
Burglars, he thought, sliding off the bed on to his feet - but a split sec
ond later it occurred to him that burglars would keep their voices down, and w
hoever was moving around in the kitchen was certainly not troubling to do so.
He snatched up his wand from the bedside table and stood lacing his bedroo
m door, listening with all his might. Next moment, he jumped as the lock gave
a loud click and his door swung open.
Harry stood motionless, staring through the open doorway at the dark upsta
irs landing, straining his ears for further sounds, but none came. He hesitate
d for a moment, then moved swiftly and silently out of his room to the head of
the stairs.
His heart shot upwards into his throat. There were people standing in the
shadowy hall below, silhouetted against the streetlight glowing through the gl
ass door; eight or nine of them, all, as far as he could see, looking up at hi
m.
'Lower your wand, boy, before you take someone's eye out,' said a low, gro
wling voice.
Harry's heart was thumping uncontrollably. He knew that voice, but he did
not lower his wand.
'Professor Moody?' he said uncertainly.
'I don't know so much about "Professor",' growled the voice, 'never got ro
und to much teaching, did I? Get down here, we want to see you properly.'
Harry lowered his wand slightly but did not relax his grip on it, nor did
he move. He had very good reason to be suspicious. He had recently spent nine
months in what he had thought was Mad-Eye Moody's company only to find out tha
t it wasn't Moody at all, but an impostor; an impostor, moreover, who had trie
d to kill Harry before being unmasked. But before he could make a decision abo
ut what to do next, a second, slightly hoarse voice floated upstairs.
'It's all right, Harry. We've come to take you away.'
Harry's heart leapt. He knew that voice, too, though he hadn't heard it fo
r over a year.
'P-Professor Lupin?' he said disbelievingly. 'Is that you?'
'Why are we all standing in the dark?' said a third voice, this one comple
tely unfamiliar, a woman's. 'Lumos.'
A wand-tip flared, illuminating the hall with magical light. Harry blinked
. The people below were crowded around the loot of the stairs, gazing up at hi
m intently, some craning their heads for a better look.
Remus Lupin stood nearest to him. Though still quite young, Lupin looked t
ired and rather ill; he had more grey hairs than when Harry had last said good
bye to him and his robes were more patched and shabbier than ever. Nevertheles
s, he was smiling broadly at Harry, who tried to smile back despite his state
of shock.
'Oooh, he looks just like I thought he would,' said the witch who was hold
ing her lit wand aloft. She looked the youngest there; she had a pale heart-sh
aped face, dark twinkling eyes, and short spiky hair that was a violent shade
of violet. Wotcher, Harry!'
'Yeah, I see what you mean, Remus,' said a bald black wizard standing furt
hest back - he had a deep, slow voice and wore a single gold hoop in his ear -
'he looks exactly like James.'
'Except the eyes,' said a wheezy-voiced, silver-haired wizard at the back.
'Lily's eyes.'
Mad-Eye Moody, who had long grizzled grey hair and a large chunk missing f
rom his nose, was squinting suspiciously at Harry through his mismatched eyes.
One eye was small, dark and beady, the other large, round and electric blue -
the magical eye that could see through walls, doors and the back of Moody's o
wn head.
'Are you quite sure it's him, Lupin?' he growled. 'I'I'd be a nice lookout
if we bring back some Death Eater impersonating him. We ought to ask him some
thing only the real Potter would know. Unless anyone brought any Veritaserum?'
'Harry, what form does your Patronus take?' Lupin asked.
'A stag,' said Harry nervously.
That's him, Mad-Eye,' said Lupin.
Very conscious of everybody still staring at him, Harry descended the stai
rs, stowing his wand in the back pocket of his jeans as he came.
'Don't put your wand there, boy!' roared Moody. 'What if it ignited? Bette
r wizards than you have lost buttocks, you know!'
'Who d'you know who's lost a buttock?' the violet-haired woman asked Mad-E
ye interestedly.
'Never you mind, you just keep your wand out of your back pocket!' growled
Mad-Eye. 'Elementary wand-safety, nobody bothers about it any more.' He stump
ed off towards the kitchen. 'And I saw that,' he added irritably, as the woman
rolled her eyes towards the ceiling.
Lupin held out his hand and shook Harry's.
'How are you?' he asked, looking closely at Harry.
'F-fine . . .'
Harry could hardly believe this was real. Four weeks with nothing, not the
tiniest hint of a plan to remove him from Privet Drive, and suddenly a whole
bunch of wizards was standing matter-of-factly in the house as though this was
a long-standing arrangement. He glanced at the people surrounding Lupin; they
were still gazing avidly at him. He felt very conscious of the fact that he h
ad riot combed his hair for four days.
'I'm - you're really lucky the Dursleys are out . . .' he mumbled.
'Lucky, ha!' said the violet-haired woman. 'It was me who lured them out o
f the way. Sent a letter by Muggle post telling them
they'd been short-listed for the All-England Best Kept Suburban Lawn Compe
tition. They're heading off to the prize-giving right now . . . or they think
they are.'
Harry had a fleeting vision of Uncle Vernon's face when he realised there
was no All-England Best Kept Suburban Lawn Competition.
'We are leaving, aren't we?' he asked. 'Soon?'
'Almost at once,' said Lupin, 'we're just waiting for the all-clear.'
'Where are we going? The Burrow?' Harry asked hopefully.
'Not The Burrow, no,' said Lupin, motioning Harry towards the kitchen; the
little knot of wizards followed, all still eyeing Harry curiously. Too risky.
We've set up Headquarters somewhere un-detectable. It's taken a while . . .'
Mad-Eye Moody was now sitting at the kitchen table swigging from a hip fla
sk, his magical eye spinning in all directions, taking in the Dursleys' many l
abour-saving appliances.
This is Alastor Moody, Harry,' Lupin continued, pointing towards Moody. 'Y
eah, I know,' said Harry uncomfortably. It felt odd to be introduced to somebo
dy he'd thought he'd known for a year.
'And this is Nymphadora - '
'Don't call me Nymphadora, Remus,' said the young witch with a shudder, 'i
t's Tonks.'
'Nymphadora Tonks, who prefers to be known by her surname only,' finished
Lupin.
'So would you if your fool of a mother had called you Nymphadora,' muttere
d Tonks.
'And this is Kingsley Shacklebolt.' He indicated the tall black wizard, wh
o bowed. 'Elphias Doge.' The wheezy-voiced wizard nodded. 'Dedalus Diggle - '
'We've met before,' squeaked the excitable Diggle, dropping his violet-col
oured top hat.
'Emmeline Vance.' A stately-looking witch in an emerald green shawl inclin
ed her head. 'Sturgis Podmore.' A square-jawed wizard with thick straw-coloure
d hair winked. 'And Hestia Jones.' A pink-cheeked, black-haired witch waved fr
om next to the toaster.
Harry inclined his head awkwardly at each of them as they were introduced.
He wished they would look at something other than him; it was as though he ha
d suddenly been ushered on-stage. He also wondered why so many of their, were
there.
'A surprising number of people volunteered to come and get you,' said Lupi
n, as though he had read Harry's mind; the corners of his mouth twitched sligh
tly.
'Yeah, well, the more the better,' said Moody darkly. 'We're your guard, P
otter.'
'We're just waiting for the signal to tell us it's safe to set off,' said
Lupin, glancing out of the kitchen window. 'We've got about fifteen minutes.'
'Very clean, aren't they, these Muggles?' said the witch called Tonks, who
was looking around the kitchen with great interest. 'My dad's Muggle-born and
he's a right old slob. I suppose it varies, just as it does with wizards?'
'Er - yeah,' said Harry. 'Look - ' he turned back to Lupin, 'what's going
on, I haven't heard anything from anyone, what's Vol-?'
Several of the witches and wizards made odd hissing noises; Dedalus Diggle
dropped his hat again and Moody growled, 'Shut up!'
'What?' said Harry.
'We're not discussing anything here, it's too risky,' said Moody, turning
his normal eye on Harry. His magical eye remained focused on the ceiling. 'Dam
n it,' he added angrily, putting a hand up to the magical eye, 'it keeps getti
ng stuck - ever since that scum wore it.'
And with a nasty squelching sound much like a plunger being pulled from a
sink, he popped out his eye.
'Mad-Eye, you do know that's disgusting, don't you?' said Tonks conversati
onally.
'Get me a glass of water, would you, Harry,' requested Moody.
Harry crossed to the dishwasher, took out a clean glass and filled it with
water at the sink, still watched eagerly by the band of wizards. Their relent
less staring was starting to annoy him.
'Cheers,' said Moody, when Harry handed him the glass. He dropped the magi
cal eyeball into the water and prodded it up and down; the eye whizzed around,
staring at them all in turn. 'I want three hundred and sixty degrees visibili
ty on the return journey.'
'How're we getting - wherever we're going?' Harry asked.
'Brooms,' said Lupin. 'Only way. You're too young to Apparate, they'll be
watching the Floo Network and it's more than our life's worth to set up an una
uthorised Portkey.'
'Remus says you're a good flier,' said Kingsley Shacklebolt in his deep vo
ice.
'He's excellent,' said Lupin, who was checking his watch. 'Anyway, you'd b
etter go and get packed, Harry, we want to be ready to go when the signal come
s.'
'I'll come and help you,' said Tonks brightly.
She followed Harry back into the hall and up the stairs, looking around wi
th much curiosity and interest.
'Funny place,' she said. 'It's a bit too clean, d'you know what I mean? Bi
t unnatural. Oh, this is better,' she added, as they entered Harry's bedroom a
nd he turned on the light.
His room was certainly much messier than the rest of the house. Confined t
o it for four days in a very bad mood, Harry had not bothered tidying up after
himself. Most of the books he owned were strewn over the floor where he'd tri
ed to distract himself with each in turn and thrown it aside; Hedwig's cage ne
eded cleaning out and was starting to smell; and his trunk lay open, revealing
a jumbled mixture of Muggle clothes and wizards' robes that had spilled on to
the floor around it.
Harry started picking up books and throwing them hastily into his trunk. T
onks paused at his open wardrobe to look critically at her reflection in the m
irror on the inside of the door.
'You know, I don't think violets really my colour,' she said pensively, tu
gging at a lock of spiky hair. 'D'you think it makes me look a bit peaky?'
'Er - ' said Harry, looking up at her over the top of Quidditch Teams of B
ritain and Ireland.
'Yeah, it does,' said Tonks decisively. She screwed up her eyes in a strai
ned expression as though she was struggling to remember something. A second la
ter, her hair had turned bubble-gum pink.
'How did you do that?' said Harry, gaping at her as she opened her eyes ag
ain.
'I'm a Metamorphmagus,' she said, looking back at her reflection and turni
ng her head so that she could see her hair from all directions. 'It means I ca
n change my appearance at will,' she added, spotting Harry's puzzled expressio
n in the mirror behind her. 'I was born one. I got top marks in Concealment an
d Disguise during Auror training without any study at all, it was great.'
'You're an Auror?' said Harry, impressed. Being a Dark-wizard-catcher was
the only career he'd ever considered after Hogwarts.
'Yeah,' said Tonks, looking proud. 'Kingsley is as well, he's a bit higher
up than me, though. I only qualified a year ago. Nearly failed on Stealth and
Tracking. I'm dead clumsy, did you hear me break that plate when we arrived d
ownstairs?'
'Can you learn how to be a Metamorphmagus?' Harry asked her, straightening
up, completely forgetting about packing.
Tonks chuckled.
'Bet you wouldn't mind hiding that scar sometimes, eh?'
Her eyes found the lightning-shaped scar on Harry's forehead.
'No, I wouldn't mind,' Harry mumbled, turning away. He did rot like people
staring at his scar.
'Well, you'll have to learn the hard way, I'm afraid,' said Tonks. 'Metamo
rphmagi are really rare, they're born, not made. Most wizards reed to use a wa
nd, or potions, to change their appearance. But we've got to get going, Harry,
we're supposed to be packing,' she added guiltily, looking around at all the
mess on the floor.
'Oh - yeah,' said Harry, grabbing a few more books.
'Don't be stupid, it'll be much quicker if I - pack!' cried Tonks, waving
her wand in a long, sweeping movement over the floor.
Books, clothes, telescope and scales all soared into the air and flew pell
-mell into the trunk.
'It's not very neat,' said Tonks, walking over to the trunk and looking do
wn at the jumble inside. 'My mum's got this knack of getting stuff to fit itse
lf in neatly - she even gets the socks to fold themselves - but I've never mas
tered how she does it - it's a kind of flick - ' She flicked her wand hopefull
y.
One of Harry's socks gave a feeble sort of wiggle and flopped back on top
of the mess in the trunk.
'Ah, well,' said Tonks, slamming the trunk's lid shut, 'at least it's all
in. That could do with a bit of cleaning, too.' She pointed her wand at Hedwig
's cage. 'Scourgify.' A few feathers and droppings vanished. Well, that's a bi
t better - I've never quite got the hang of these householdy sort of spells. R
ight - got everything? Cauldron? Broom? Wow! - A Firebolt?'
Her eyes widened as they fell on the broomstick in Harry's right hand. It
was his pride and joy, a gift from Sirius, an international-standard broomstic
k.
'And I'm still riding a Comet Two Sixty,' said Tonks enviously. 'Ah well .
. . wand still in your jeans? Both buttocks still on? OK, let's go. Locomotor
trunk.'
Harry's trunk rose a few inches into the air. Holding her wand like a cond
uctors baton, Tonks made the trunk hover across the room and out of the door a
head of them, Hedwig's cage in her left hand. Harry followed her down the stai
rs carrying his broomstick.
Back in the kitchen Moody had replaced his eye, which was spinning so fast
after its cleaning it made Harry feel sick to look at it. Kingsley Shacklebol
t and Sturgis Podmore were examining the microwave and Hestia Jones was laughi
ng at a potato peeler she had come across while rummaging in the drawers. Lupi
n was sealing a letter addressed to the Dursleys.
'Excellent,' said Lupin, looking up as Tonks and Harry entered. 'We've got
about a minute, I think. We should probably get out into the garden so we're
ready. Harry, I've left a letter telling your aunt and uncle not to worry - '
They won't,' said Harry.
' - that you're safe - '
That'll just depress them.'
- and you'll see them next summer.'
'Do I have to?'
Lupin smiled but made no answer.
'Come here, boy,' said Moody gruffly, beckoning Harry towards him with his
wand. 'I need to Disillusion you.'
'You need to what?' said Harry nervously.
'Disillusionment Charm,' said Moody, raising his wand. 'Lupin says you've
got an Invisibility Cloak, but it won't stay on while we're flying; this'll di
sguise you better. Here you go - '
He rapped him hard on the top of the head and Harry felt a curious sensati
on as though Moody had just smashed an egg there; cold trickles seemed to be r
unning down his body from the point the wand had struck.
'Nice one, Mad-Eye,' said Tonks appreciatively, staring at Harry's midriff
.
Harry looked down at his body, or rather, what had been his body, for it d
idn't look anything like his any more. It was not invisible; it had simply tak
en on the exact colour and texture of the kitchen unit behind him. He seemed t
o have become a human chameleon.
'Come on,' said Moody, unlocking the back door with his wand.
They all stepped outside on to Uncle Vernon's beautifully kept lawn.
'Clear night,' grunted Moody, his magical eye scanning the heavens. 'Could
've done with a bit more cloud cover. Right, you,' he barked at Harry, 'we're
going to be flying in close formation. Tonks'll be right in front of you, keep
close on her tail. Lupin'll be covering you from below. I'm going to be behin
d you. The rest'll be circling us. We don't break ranks for anything, got me?
If one of us is killed - '
'Is that likely?' Harry asked apprehensively, but Moody ignored him.
' - the others keep flying, don't stop, don't break ranks. If they take ou
t all of us and you survive, Harry, the rear guard are standing by to take ove
r; keep flying east and they'll join you.'
'Stop being so cheerful, Mad-Eye, he'll think we're not taking this seriou
sly,' said Tonks, as she strapped Harry's trunk and Hedwig's cage into a harne
ss hanging from her broom.
'I'm just telling the boy the plan,' growled Moody. 'Our job's to deliver
him safely to Headquarters and if we die in the attempt - '
'No one's going to die,' said Kingsley Shacklebolt in his deep, calming vo
ice.
'Mount your brooms, that's the first signal!' said Lupin sharply, pointing
into the sky.
Far, far above them, a shower of bright red sparks had flared among the st
ars. Harry recognised them at once as wand sparks. He swung his right leg over
his Firebolt, gripped its handle tightly and felt it vibrating very slightly,
as though it was as keen as he was to be up in the air once more.
'Second signal, let's go!' said Lupin loudly as more sparks, green this ti
me, exploded high above them.
Harry kicked off hard from the ground. The cool night air rushed through h
is hair as the neat square gardens of Privet Drive fell away, shrinking rapidl
y into a patchwork of dark greens and blacks, and every thought of the Ministr
y hearing was swept from his mind as though the rush of air had blown it out o
f his head. He felt as though his heart was going to explode with pleasure; he
was flying again, flying away from Privet Drive as he'd been fantasising abou
t all summer, he was going home . . . for a few glorious moments, all his prob
lems seemed to recede to nothing, insignificant in the vast, starry sky.
'Hard left, hard left, there's a Muggle looking up!' shouted Moody from be
hind him. Tonks swerved and Harry followed her, watching his trunk swinging wi
ldly beneath her broom. 'We need more height . . . give it another quarter of
a mile!'
Harry's eyes watered in the chill as they soared upwards: he could see not
hing below now but tiny pinpricks of light that were car headlights and street
lamps. Two of those tiny lights might belong to Uncle Vernon's car . . . the D
ursleys would be heading back to their empty house right now, full of rage abo
ut the nonexistent Lawn Competition . . . and Harry laughed aloud at the thoug
ht, though his voice was drowned by the flapping robes of the others, the crea
king of the harness holding his trunk and the cage, and the whoosh of the wind
in their ears as they sped through the air. He had not felt this alive in a m
onth, or this happy.
'Bearing south!' shouted Mad-Eye. Town ahead!'
They soared right to avoid passing directly over the glittering spider's w
eb of lights below.
'Bear southeast and keep climbing, there's some low cloud ahead we can los
e ourselves in!' called Moody.
'We're not going through clouds!' shouted Tonks angrily, 'we'll get soaked
, Mad-Eye!'
Harry was relieved to hear her say this; his hands were growing numb on th
e Firebolt's handle. He wished he had thought to put on a coat; he was startin
g to shiver.
They altered their course every now and then according to Mad-Eye's instru
ctions. Harry's eyes were screwed up against the rush of icy wind that was sta
rting to make his ears ache; he could remember being this cold on a broom only
once before, during the Quidditch match against Hufflepuff in his third year,
which had taken place in a storm. The guard around him was circling continuou
sly like giant birds of prey. Harry lost track of time. He wondered how long t
hey had been flying, it felt like an hour at least.
'Turning southwest!' yelled Moody 'We want to avoid the motorway!'
Harry was now so chilled he thought longingly of the snug, dry interiors o
f the cars streaming along below, then, even more longingly, of travelling by
Floo powder; it might be uncomfortable to spin around in fireplaces but it was
at least warm in the flames . . . Kingsley Shacklebolt swooped around him, ba
ld pate and earring gleaming slightly in the moonlight .., now Emmeline Vance
was on his right, her wand out, her head turning left and right . . . then she
, too, swooped over him, to be replaced by Sturgis Podmore . . .
'We ought to double back for a bit, just to make sure we're not being foll
owed!' Moody shouted.
'ARE YOU MAD, MAD-EYE?' Tonks screamed from the front. 'We're all frozen t
o our brooms! If we keep going off-course we're not going to get there until n
ext week! Besides, we're nearly there now!'
'Time to start the descent!' came Lupin's voice. 'Follow Tonks, Harry!'
Harry followed Tonks into a dive. They were heading for the Largest collec
tion of lights he had yet seen, a huge, sprawling crisscrossing mass, glitteri
ng in lines and grids, interspersed with patches of deepest black. Lower and l
ower they flew, until Harry could see individual headlights and streetlamps, c
himneys and television aerials. He wanted to reach the ground very much, thoug
h he felt sure someone would have to unfreeze him from his broom.
'Here we go!' called Tonks, and a few seconds later she had landed.
Harry touched down right behind her and dismounted on a patch of unkempt g
rass in the middle of a small square Tonks was already unbuckling Harry's trun
k. Shivering, Harry looked around. The grimy fronts of the surrounding houses
were not welcoming; some of them had broken windows, glimmering dully in the l
ight from the streetlamps, paint was peeling from many of the doors and heaps
of rubbish lay outside several sets of front steps.
'Where are we?' Harry asked, but Lupin said quietly, 'In a minute.'
Moody was rummaging in his cloak, his gnarled hands clumsy with cold.
'Got it,' he muttered, raising what looked like a silver cigarette lighter
into the air and clicking it.
The nearest streetlamp went out with a pop. He clicked the unlighter again
; the next lamp went out; he kept clicking until every lamp in the square was
extinguished and the only remaining light came from curtained windows and the
sickle moon overhead.
'Borrowed it from Dumbledore,' growled Moody, pocketing the Put-Outer. Tha
t'll take care of any Muggles looking out of the window, see? Now come on, qui
ck.'
He took Harry by the arm and led him from the patch of grass, across the r
oad and on to the pavement; Lupin and Tonks followed, carrying Harry's trunk b
etween them, the rest of the guard, all with their wands out, flanking them.
The muffled pounding of a stereo was coming from an upper window in the ne
arest house. A pungent smell of rotting rubbish came from the pile of bulging
bin-bags just inside the broken gate.
'Here,' Moody muttered, thrusting a piece of parchment towards Harry's Dis
illusioned hand and holding his lit wand close to it, so as to illuminate the
writing. 'Read quickly and memorise.'
Harry looked down at the piece of paper. The narrow handwriting was vaguel
y familiar. It said:
The Headquarters of the Order of the Phoenix may be found at number twelve
, Grimmauld Place, London.
- CHAPTER FOUR -
Number Twelve,
Grimmauld Place
'What's the Order of the - ?' Harry began.
'Not here, boy!' snarled Moody. Wait till we're inside!'
He pulled the piece of parchment out of Harry's hand and set fire to it wi
th his wand-tip. As the message curled into flames and floated to the ground,
Harry looked around at the houses again. They were standing outside number ele
ven; he looked to the left and saw number ten; to the right, however, was numb
er thirteen.
'But where's - ?'
'Think about what you've just memorised,' said Lupin quietly.
Harry thought, and no sooner had he reached the part about number twelve,
Grimmauld Place, than a battered door emerged out of nowhere between numbers e
leven and thirteen, followed swiftly by dirty walls and grimy windows. It was
as though an extra house had inflated, pushing those on either side out of its
way. Harry gaped at it. The stereo in number eleven thudded on. Apparently th
e Muggles inside hadn't felt anything.
'Come on, hurry,' growled Moody, prodding Harry in the back.
Harry walked up the worn stone steps, staring at the newly materialised do
or. Its black paint was shabby and scratched. The silver doorknocker was in th
e form of a twisted serpent. There was no keyhole or letterbox.
Lupin, pulled out his wand and tapped the door once. Harry heard many loud
, metallic clicks and what sounded like the clatter o' a chain. The door creak
ed open.
'Get in quick, Harry,' Lupin whispered, 'but don't go far inside and don't
touch anything.'
Harry stepped over the threshold into the almost total darkness of the hal
l. He could smell damp, dust and a sweetish, rotting smell; the place had the
feeling of a derelict building. He looked over his shoulder and saw the others
filing in behind him, Lupin and Tonks carrying his trunk and Hedwig's cage. M
oody was standing on the top step releasing the balls of light the Put-Outer h
ad stolen from the streetlamps; they flew back to their bulbs and the square g
lowed momentarily with orange light before Moody limped inside and closed the
front door, so that the darkness in the hall became complete.
'Here - '
He rapped Harry hard over the head with his wand; Harry felt as though som
ething hot was trickling down his back this time and knew that the Disillusion
ment Charm must have lifted.
'Now stay still, everyone, while I give us a bit of light in here,' Moody
whispered.
The others' hushed voices were giving Harry an odd feeling of foreboding;
it was as though they had just entered the house of a dying person. He heard a
soft hissing noise and then old-fashioned gas lamps sputtered into life all a
long the walls, casting a flickering insubstantial light over the peeling wall
paper and threadbare carpet of a long, gloomy hallway, where a cobwebby chande
lier glimmered overhead and age-blackened portraits hung crooked on the walls.
Harry heard something scuttling behind the skirting board. Both the chandelie
r and the candelabra on a rickety table nearby were shaped like serpents.
There were hurried footsteps and Ron's mother, Mrs Weasley, emerged from a
door at the far end of the hall. She was beaming in welcome as she hurried to
wards them, though Harry noticed that she was rather thinner and paler than sh
e had been last time he had seen her.
'Oh, Harry, it's lovely to see you!' she whispered, pulling him into a rib
-cracking hug before holding him at arm's length and examining him critically.
'You're looking peaky; you need feeding up, but you'll have to wait a bit for
dinner, I'm afraid.'
She turned to the gang of wizards behind him and whispered urgently, 'He's
just arrived, the meeting's started.'
The wizards behind Harry all made noises of interest and excitement and be
gan filing past him towards the door through which Mrs Weasley had just come.
Harry made to follow Lupin, but Mrs Weasley held him back.
'No, Harry, the meeting's only for members of the Order. Ron and Hermione
are upstairs, you can wait with them until the meetings over, then we'll have
dinner. And keep your voice down in the hall,' she added in an urgent whisper.
'Why?'
'I don't want anything to wake up.'
'What d'you - ?'
'I'll explain later, I've got to hurry, I'm supposed to be at the meeting
- I'll just show you where you're sleeping.'
Pressing her finger to her lips, she led him on tiptoe past a pair of long
, moth-eaten curtains, behind which Harry supposed there must be another door,
and after skirting a large umbrella stand that looked as though it had been m
ade from a severed troll's leg they started up the dark staircase, passing a r
ow of shrunken heads mounted on plaques on the wall. A closer look showed Harr
y that the heads belonged to house-elves. All of them had the same rather snou
t-like nose.
Harry's bewilderment deepened with every step he took. What on earth were
they doing in a house that looked as though it belonged to the Darkest of wiza
rds?
'Mrs Weasley, why -?'
'Ron and Hermione will explain everything, dear, I've really got to dash,'
Mrs Weasley whispered distractedly. There - ' they had reached the second lan
ding, ' - you're the door on the right. I'll call you when it's over.'
And she hurried off downstairs again.
Harry crossed the dingy landing, turned the bedroom doorknob, which was sh
aped like a serpent's head, and opened the door.
He caught a brief glimpse of a gloomy high-ceilinged, twin-bedded room; th
en there was a loud twittering noise, followed by an even louder shriek, and h
is vision was completely obscured by a large quantity of very bushy hair. Herm
ione had thrown herself on to him in a hug that nearly knocked him flat, while
Ron's tiny owl, Pigwidgeon, zoomed excitedly round and round their heads.
'HARRY! Ron, he's here, Harry's here! We didn't hear you arrive! Oh, how a
re you? Are you all right? Have you been furious with us? I bet you have, I kn
ow our letters were useless - but we couldn't tell you anything, Dumbledore ma
de us swear we wouldn't, oh, we've got so much to tell you, and you've got thi
ngs to tell us - 'the Dementors! When we heard - and that Ministry hearing - i
t's just outrageous, I've looked it all up, they can't expel you, they just ca
n't, there's provision in the Decree for the Reasonable Restriction of Underag
e Sorcery for the use of magic in life-threatening situations - '
'Let him breathe, Hermione,' said Ron, grinning as he closed the door behi
nd Harry. He seemed to have grown several more inches during their month apart
, making him taller and more gangly looking than ever, though the long nose, b
right red hair and freckles were the same.
Still beaming, Hermione let go of Harry, but before she could say another
word there was a soft whooshing sound and something white soared from the top
of a dark wardrobe and landed gently on Harry's shoulder.
'Hedwig!'
The snowy owl clicked her beak and nibbled his ear affectionately as Harry
stroked her feathers.
'She's been in a right state,' said Ron. 'Pecked us half to death when she
brought your last letters, look at this - '
He showed Harry the index finger of his right hand, which sported a half-h
ealed but clearly deep cut.
'Oh, yeah,' Harry said. 'Sorry about that, but I wanted answers, you know
- '
'We wanted to give them to you, mate,' said Ron. 'Hermione was going spare
, she kept saying you'd do something stupid if you were stuck all on your own
without news, but Dumbledore made us - '
'- swear not to tell me,' said Harry. 'Yeah, Hermione's already said.'
The warm glow that had flared inside him at the sight of his two best frie
nds was extinguished as something icy flooded the pit of his stomach. All of a
sudden - after yearning to see them for a solid month - he felt he would rath
er Ron and Hermione left him alone.
There was a strained silence in which Harry stroked Hedwig automatically,
not looking at either of the others.
'He seemed to think it was best,' said Hermione rather breathlessly. 'Dumb
ledore, I mean.'
'Right,' said Harry. He noticed that her hands, too, bore the marks of Hed
wig's beak and found that he was not at all sorry.
'I think he thought you were safest with the Muggles -' Ron began.
'Yeah?' said Harry, raising his eyebrows. 'Have either of you been attacke
d by Dementors this summer?'
'Well, no - but that's why he's had people from the Order of the Phoenix t
ailing you all the time - '
Harry felt a great jolt in his guts as though he had just missed a step go
ing downstairs. So everyone had known he was being followed, except him.
'Didn't work that well, though, did it?' said Harry, doing his utmost to k
eep his voice even. 'Had to look after myself after all, didn't I?'
'He was so angry,' said Hermione, in an almost awestruck voice. 'Dumbledor
e. We saw him. When he found out Mundungus had left before his shift had ended
. He was scary.'
'Well, I'm glad he left,' Harry said coldly 'II he hadn't, I wouldn't have
done magic and Dumbledore would probably have left me at Privet Drive all sum
mer.'
'Aren't you . . . aren't you worried about the Ministry of Magic hearing?'
said Hermione quietly.
'No,' Harry lied defiantly. He walked away from them, looking around, with
Hedwig nestled contentedly on his shoulder, but this room was not likely to r
aise his spirits. It was dank and dark. A blank stretch of canvas in an ornate
picture frame was all that relieved the bareness of the peeling walls, and as
Harry passed it he thought he heard someone, who was lurking out of sight, sn
igger.
'So why's Dumbledore been so keen to keep me in the dark?'
Harry asked, still trying hard to keep his voice casual. 'Did you - er - b
other to ask him at all?'
He glanced up just in time to see them exchanging a look that told him he
was behaving just as they had feared he would. It did nothing to improve his t
emper.
'We told Dumbledore we wanted to tell you what was going on,' said Ron. 'W
e did, mate. But he's really busy now, we've only seen him twice since we came
here and he didn't have much time, he just made us swear not to tell you impo
rtant stuff when we wrote, he said the owls might be intercepted.'
'He could still've kept me informed if he'd wanted to,' Harry said shortly
. 'You're not telling me he doesn't know ways to send messages without owls.'
Hermione glanced at Ron and then said, 'I thought that, too. But he didn't
want you to know anything.'
'Maybe he thinks I can't be trusted,' said Harry, watching their expressio
ns.
'Don't be thick,' said Ron, looking highly disconcerted.
'Or that I can't take care of myself.'
'Of course he doesn't think that!' said Hermione anxiously.
'So how come I have to stay at the Dursleys' while you two get to join in
everything that's going on here?' said Harry, the words tumbling over one anot
her in a rush, his voice growing louder with every word. 'How come you two are
allowed to know everything that's going on?'
'We're not!' Ron interrupted. 'Mum won't let us near the meetings, she say
s we're too young - '
But before he knew it, Harry was shouting.
'SO YOU HAVEN'T BEEN IN THE MEETINGS, BIG DEAL! YOU'VE STILL BEEN HERE, HA
VEN'T YOU? YOU'VE STILL BEEN TOGETHER! ME, I'VE BEEN STUCK AT THE DURSLEYS' FO
R A MONTH! AND I'VE HANDLED MORE THAN YOU TWO'VE EVER MANAGED AND DUMBLEDORE K
NOWS IT - 'WHO SAVED THE PHILOSOPHER'S STONE? WHO GOT RID OF RIDDLE? WHO SAVED
BOTH YOUR SKINS FROM THE DEMENTORS?'
Every bitter and resentful thought Harry had had in the past month was pou
ring out of him: his frustration at the lack of news, the hurt that they had a
ll been together without him, his fury at being followed and not told about it
- all the feelings he was half-ashamed of finally burst their boundaries. Hed
wig took fright at the noise and soared off to the top of the wardrobe again;
Pigwidgeon twittered in alarm and zoomed even faster around their heads.
'WHO HAD TO GET PAST DRAGONS AND SPHINXES AND EVERY OTHER FOUL THING LAST
YEAR? WHO SAW HIM COME BACK? WHO HAD TO ESCAPE FROM HIM? ME!'
Ron was standing there with his mouth half-open, clearly stunned and at a
loss for anything to say, whilst Hermione looked on the verge of tears.
'BUT WHY SHOULD I KNOW WHAT'S GOING ON? WHY SHOULD ANYONE BOTHER TO TELL M
E WHAT'S BEEN HAPPENING?'
'Harry, we wanted to tell you, we really did - ' Hermione began.
'CAN'T'VE WANTED TO THAT MUCH, CAN YOU, OR YOU'D HAVE SENT ME AN OWL, BUT
DUMBLEDORE MADE YOU SWEAR - '
'Well, he did - '
'FOUR WEEKS I'VE BEEN STUCK IN PRIVET DRIVE, NICKING PAPERS OUT OF BINS TO
TRY AND FIND OUT WHAT'S BEEN GOING ON - '
'We wanted to -
'I SUPPOSE YOU'VE BEEN HAVING A REAL LAUGH, HAVEN'T YOU, ALL HOLED UP HERE
TOGETHER - '
'No, honest - '
'Harry, we're really sorry!' said Hermione desperately, her eyes now spark
ling with tears. 'You're absolutely right, Harry - I'd be furious if it was me
!'
Harry glared at her, still breathing deeply, then turned away from them ag
ain, pacing up and down. Hedwig hooted glumly from the top of the wardrobe. Th
ere was a long pause, broken only by the mournful creak of the floorboards bel
ow Harry's feet.
'What is this place, anyway?' he shot at Ron and Hermione.
'Headquarters of the Order of the Phoenix,' said Ron at once.
'Is anyone going to bother telling me what the Order of the Phoenix - ?'
'It's a secret society,' said Hermione quickly 'Dumbledore's in charge, he
founded it. It's the people who fought against You-Know-Who last time.'
'Who's in it?' said Harry coming to a halt with his hands in his pockets.
'Quite a few people - '
'We've met about twenty of them,' said Ron, 'but we think there are more.'
Harry glared at them.
'Well?' he demanded, looking from one to the other.
'Er,' said Ron. 'Well what?'
'Voldemort!' said Harry furiously, and both Ron and Hermione winced. 'What
's happening? What's he up to? Where is he? What are we doing to stop him?'
'We've told you, the Order don't let us in on their meetings,' said Hermio
ne nervously 'So we don't know the details - but we've got a general idea,' sh
e added hastily, seeing the look on Harry's face.
'Fred and George have invented Extendable Ears, see,' said Ron. They're re
ally useful.'
'Extendable - ?'
'Ears, yeah. Only we've had to stop using them lately because Mum found ou
t and went berserk. Fred and George had to hide them all to stop Mum binning t
hem. But we got a good bit of use out of them before Mum realised what was goi
ng on. We know some of the Order are following known Death Eaters, keeping tab
s on them, you know - '
'Some of them are working on recruiting more people to the Order - ' said
Hermione.
'And some of them are standing guard over something,' said Ron. They're al
ways talking about guard duty.'
'Couldn't have been me, could it?' said Harry sarcastically.
'Oh, yeah,' said Ron, with a look of dawning comprehension.
Harry snorted. He walked around the room again, looking anywhere but at Ro
n and Hermione. 'So, what have you two been doing, if you're not allowed in me
etings?' he demanded. 'You said you'd been busy.'
'We have,' said Hermione quickly. 'We've been decontaminating this house,
it's been empty for ages and stuff's been breeding in here. We've managed to c
lean out the kitchen, most of the bedrooms and I think we're doing the drawing
room tomo- AARGH!'
With two loud cracks, Fred and George, Ron's elder twin brothers, had mate
rialised out of thin air in the middle of the room. Pigwidgeon twittered more
wildly than ever and zoomed off to join Hedwig on top of the wardrobe.
'Stop doing that!' Hermione said weakly to the twins, who were as vividly
red-haired as Ron, though stockier and slightly shorter.
'Hello, Harry' said George, beaming at him. 'We thought we heard your dulc
et tones.'
'You don't want to bottle up your anger like that, Harry, let it all out,'
said Fred, also beaming. There might be a couple of people fifty miles away w
ho didn't hear you.'
'You two passed your Apparation tests, then?' asked Harry grumpily.
'With distinction,' said Fred, who was holding what looked like a piece of
very long, flesh-coloured string.
'It would have taken you about thirty seconds longer to walk down the stai
rs,' said Ron.
'Time is Galleons, little brother,' said Fred. 'Anyway, Harry, you're inte
rfering with reception. Extendable Ears,' he added in response to Harry's rais
ed eyebrows, and held up the string which Harry now saw was trailing out on to
the landing. 'We're trying to hear what's going on downstairs.'
'You want to be careful,' said Ron, staring at the Ear, 'if Mum sees one o
f them again . . .'
'It's worth the risk, that's a major meeting they're having,' said red.
The door opened and a long mane of red hair appeared.
'Oh, hello, Harry!' said Ron's younger sister, Ginny, brightly. 'I thought
I heard your voice.'
Turning to Fred and George, she said, 'Its no-go with the Extendable Ears,
she's gone and put an Imperturbable Charm on the kitchen door.'
'How d'you know?' said George, looking crestfallen.
'Tonks told me how to find out,' said Ginny. 'You just chuck stuff at the
door and if it can't make contact the door's been Imperturbed. I've been flick
ing Dungbombs at it from the top of the stairs and they just soar away from it
, so there's no way the Extendable Ears will be able to get under the gap.'
Fred heaved a deep sigh.
'Shame. I really fancied finding out what old Snape's been up to.'
'Snape!' said Harry quickly. 'Is he here?'
'Yeah,' said George, carefully closing the door and sitting down on one of
the beds; Fred and Ginny followed. 'Giving a report. Top secret.'
'Git,' said Fred idly
'He's on our side now,' said Hermione reprovingly.
Ron snorted. 'Doesn't stop him being a git. The way he looks at us when he
sees us.'
'Bill doesn't like him, either,' said Ginny, as though that settled the ma
tter.
Harry was not sure his anger had abated yet; but his thirst for informatio
n was now overcoming his urge to keep shouting. He sank on to the bed opposite
the others.
'Is Bill here?' he asked. 'I thought he was working in Egypt?'
'He applied for a desk job so he could come home and work for the Order,'
said Fred. 'He says he misses the tombs, but,' he smirked, 'there are compensa
tions.'
'What d'you mean?'
'Remember old Fleur Delacour?' said George. 'She's got a job at Gringotts
to eemprove 'er Eeenglish -
'And Bill's been giving her a lot of private lessons,' sniggered Fred.
'Charlie's in the Order, too,' said George, 'but he's still in Romania. Du
mbledore wants as many foreign wizards brought in as possible, so Charlie's tr
ying to make contacts on his days off.'
'Couldn't Percy do that?' Harry asked. The last he had heard, the third We
asley brother was working in the Department of International Magical Co-operat
ion at the Ministry of Magic.
At Harry's words, all the Weasleys and Hermione exchanged darkly significa
nt looks.
'Whatever you do, don't mention Percy in front of Mum and Dad,' Ron told H
arry in a tense voice.
'Why not?'
'Because every time Percy's name's mentioned, Dad breaks whatever he's hol
ding and Mum starts crying,' Fred said.
'It's been awful,' said Ginny sadly.
'I think we're well shot of him,' said George, with an uncharacteristicall
y ugly look on his face.
'What's happened?' Harry said.
'Percy and Dad had a row,' said Fred. 'I've never seen Dad row with anyone
like that. It's normally Mum who shouts.'
'It was the first week back after term ended,' said Ron. 'We were about to
come and join the Order. Percy came home and told us he'd been promoted.'
'You're kidding?' said Harry.
Though he knew perfectly well that Percy was highly ambitious, Harry's imp
ression was that Percy had not made a great success of his first job at the Mi
nistry of Magic. Percy had committed the fairly large oversight of failing to
notice that his boss was being controlled by Lord Voldemort (not that the Mini
stry had believed it - they all thought Mr Crouch had gone mad).
'Yeah, we were all surprised,' said George, 'because Percy got into a load
of trouble about Crouch, there was an inquiry and everything. They said Percy
ought to have realised Crouch was off his rocker and informed a superior. But
you know Percy, Crouch left him in charge, he wasn't going to complain.'
'So how come they promoted him?'
That's exactly what we wondered,' said Ron, who seemed very keen to keep n
ormal conversation going now that Harry had stopped yelling. 'He came home rea
lly pleased with himself - 'even more pleased than usual, if you can imagine t
hat - and told Dad he'd been offered a position in Fudge's own office. A reall
y good one for someone only a year out of Hogwarts: Junior Assistant to the Mi
nister. He expected Dad to be all impressed, I think.'
'Only Dad wasn't,' said Fred grimly.
'Why not?' said Harry.
'Well, apparently Fudge has been storming round the Ministry checking that
nobody's having any contact with Dumbledore,' said George.
'Dumbledore's name is mud with the Ministry these days, see,' said Fred. T
hey all think he's just making trouble saying You-Know-Who's back.'
'Dad says Fudge has made it clear that anyone who's in league with Dumbled
ore can clear out their desks,' said George.
Trouble is, Fudge suspects Dad, he knows he's friendly with Dumbledore, an
d he's always thought Dad's a bit of a weirdo because of his Muggle obsession.
'
'But what's that got to do with Percy?' asked Harry, confused.
'I'm coming to that. Dad reckons Fudge only wants Percy in his office beca
use he wants to use him to spy on the family - and Dumbledore.'
Harry let out a low whistle.
'Bet Percy loved that.'
Ron laughed in a hollow sort of way.
'He went completely berserk. He said - well, he said loads of terrible stu
ff. He said he's been having to struggle against Dad's lousy reputation ever s
ince he joined the Ministry and that Dad's got no ambition and that's why we'v
e always been - you know - 'not had a lot of money, I mean - '
'What?' said Harry in disbelief, as Ginny made a noise like an angry cat.
'I know,' said Ron in a low voice. 'And it got worse. He said Dad was an i
diot to run around with Dumbledore, that Dumbledore was heading for big troubl
e and Dad was going to go down with him, and that he - Percy - knew where his
loyalty lay and it was with the Ministry. And if Mum and Dad were going to bec
ome traitors to the Ministry he was going to make sure everyone knew he didn't
belong to our family any more. And he packed his bags the same night and left
. He's living here in London now.'
Harry swore under his breath. He had always liked Percy least of Ron's bro
thers, but he had never imagined he would say such things to Mr Weasley.
'Mums been in a right state,' said Ron dully. 'You know - crying and stuff
. She came up to London to try and talk to Percy but he slammed the door in he
r face. I dunno what he does if he meets Dad at work - ignores him, I s'pose.'
'But Percy must know Voldemort's back,' said Harry slowly. 'He's not stupi
d, he must know your mum and dad wouldn't risk everything without proof.'
'Yeah, well, your name got dragged into the row,' said Ron, shooting Harry
a furtive look. 'Percy said the only evidence was your word and . . . I dunno
. . . he didn't think it was good enough.'
'Percy takes the Daily Prophet seriously,' said Hermione tartly, and the o
thers all nodded.
'What are you talking about?' Harry asked, looking around at them all. The
y were all regarding him warily.
'Haven't - haven't you been getting the Daily Prophet?' Hermione asked ner
vously.
'Yeah, I have!' said Harry.
'Have you - er - been reading it thoroughly?' Hermione asked, still more a
nxiously.
'Not cover to cover,' said Harry defensively. 'If they were going to repor
t anything about Voldemort it would be headline news, wouldn't it?'
The others flinched at the sound of the name. Hermione hurried on, 'Well,
you'd need to read it cover to cover to pick it up, but they - um - they menti
on you a couple of times a week.'
'But I'd have seen - '
'Not if you've only been reading the front page, you wouldn't,' said Hermi
one, shaking her head. 'I'm not talking about big articles. They just slip you
in, like you're a standing joke.'
'What d'you - ?'
'It's quite nasty, actually,' said Hermione in a voice of forced calm. The
y're just building on Rita's stuff.'
'But she's not writing for them any more, is she?'
'Oh, no, she's kept her promise - not that she's got any choice,' Hermione
added with satisfaction. 'But she laid the foundation for what they're trying
to do now.'
'Which is what?' said Harry impatiently.
'OK, you know she wrote that you were collapsing all over the place and sa
ying your scar was hurting and all that?'
'Yeah,' said Harry, who was not likely to forget Rita Skeeter's stories ab
out him in a hurry.
'Well, they're writing about you as though you're this deluded, attention-
seeking person who thinks he's a great tragic hero or something,' said Hermion
e, very fast, as though it would be less unpleasant for Harry to hear these fa
cts quickly. 'They keep slipping in snide comments about you. If some far-fetc
hed story appears, they say something like, "A tale worthy of Harry Potter", a
nd if anyone has a funny accident or anything it's, "Let's hope he hasn't got
a scar on his forehead or we'll be asked to worship him next" - '
'I don't want anyone to worship - ' Harry began hotly.
'I know you don't,' said Hermione quickly, looking frightened. 'I know, Ha
rry. But you see what they're doing? They want to turn you into someone nobody
will believe. Fudge is behind it, I'll bet anything. They want wizards on the
street to think you're just some stupid boy who's a bit of a joke, who tells
ridiculous tall stories because he loves being famous and wants to keep it goi
ng.'
'I didn't ask - I didn't want - Voldemort killed my parents!' Harry splutt
ered. 'I got famous because he murdered my family but couldn't kill me! Who wa
nts to be famous for that? Don't I hey think I'd rather it'd never- '
'We know, Harry' said Ginny earnestly.
'And of course, they didn't report a word about the Dementors attacking yo
u,' said Hermione. 'Someone's told them to keep that quiet. That should've bee
n a really big story, out-of-control Dementors. They haven't even reported tha
t you broke the International Statute of Secrecy. We thought they would, it wo
uld be in so well with this image of you as some stupid show-off. We think the
y're biding their time until you're expelled, then they're really going to go
to town - I mean, if you're expelled, obviously,' she went on hastily. 'You re
ally shouldn't be, not if they abide by their own laws, there's no case agains
t you.'
They were back on the hearing and Harry did not want to think about that.
He cast around for another change of subject, but was saved the necessity of f
inding one by the sound of footsteps coming up the stairs.
'Uh oh.'
Fred gave the Extendable Ear a hearty tug; there was another loud crack an
d he and George vanished. Seconds later, Mrs Weasley appeared in the bedroom d
oorway.
The meetings over, you can come down and have dinner now. Everyone's dying
to see you, Harry. And who's left all those Dungbombs outside the kitchen doo
r?'
'Crookshanks,' said Ginny unblushingly. 'He loves playing with them.'
'Oh,' said Mrs Weasley, 'I thought it might have been Kreacher, he keeps d
oing odd things like that. Now don't forget to keep your voices down in the ha
ll. Ginny, your hands are filthy, what have you been doing? Go and wash them b
efore dinner, please.'
Ginny grimaced at the others and followed her mother out of the room, leav
ing Harry alone with Ron and Hermione. Both of them were watching him apprehen
sively, as though they feared he would start shouting again now that everyone
else had gone. The sight of them looking so nervous made him feel slightly ash
amed.
'Look . . .' he muttered, but Ron shook his head, and Hermione said quietl
y, 'We knew you'd be angry, Harry, we really don't blame you, but you've got t
o understand, we did try to persuade Dumbledore -
'Yeah, I know,' said Harry shortly.
He cast around for a topic that didn't involve his headmaster, because the
very thought of Dumbledore made Harry's insides burn with anger again.
Who's Kreacher?' he asked.
The house-elf who lives here,' said Ron. 'Nutter. Never met one like him.'
Hermione frowned at Ron.
'He's not a nutter, Ron.'
'His life's ambition is to have his head cut off and stuck up on plaque ju
st like his mother,' said Ron irritably. 'Is that normal, Hermione?'
'Well - well, if he is a bit strange, it's not his fault.'
Ron rolled his eyes at Harry.
'Hermione still hasn't given up on SPEW.'
'It's not SPEW!' said Hermione heatedly. 'It's the Society for the Promoti
on of Elfish Welfare. And it's not just me, Dumbledore says we should be kind
to Kreacher too.'
'Yeah, yeah,' said Ron. 'C'mon, I'm starving.'
He led the way out of the door and on to the landing, but be ore they coul
d descend the stairs - '
'Hold it!' Ron breathed, flinging out an arm to stop Harry and Hermione wa
lking any further. They're still in the hall, we might be able to hear somethi
ng.'
The three of them looked cautiously over the banisters. The gloomy hallway
below was packed with witches and wizards, including all of Harry's guard. Th
ey were whispering excitedly together. In the very centre of the group Harry s
aw the dark, greasy-haired head and prominent nose of his least favourite teac
her at Hogwarts, Professor Snape. Harry leant further over the banisters. He w
as very interested in what Snape was doing for the Order of the Phoenix . . .
A thin piece of flesh-coloured string descended in front of Harry's eyes.
Looking up, he saw Fred and George on the landing above, cautiously lowering t
he Extendable Ear towards the dark knot of people below. A moment later, howev
er, they all began to move towards the front door and out of sight.
'Dammit,' Harry heard Fred whisper, as he hoisted the Extendable Ear back
up again.
They heard the front door open, then close.
'Snape never eats here,' Ron told Harry quietly. Thank Clod. C'mon.'
'And don't forget to keep your voice down in the hall, Harry,' Hermione wh
ispered.
As they passed the row of house-elf heads on the wall, they saw Lupin, Mrs
Weasley and Tonks at the front door, magically sealing its many locks and bol
ts behind those who had just left.
'We're eating down in the kitchen,' Mrs Weasley whispered, meeting them at
the bottom of the stairs. 'Harry, dear, if you'll just tiptoe across the hall
it's through this door here - '
CRASH.
'Tonks!' cried Mrs Weasley in exasperation, turning to look behind her.
'I'm sorry!' wailed Tonks, who was lying flat on the floor. 'It's that stu
pid umbrella stand, that's the second time I've tripped over - '
But the rest of her words were drowned by a horrible, ear-splitting, blood
-curdling screech.
The moth-eaten velvet curtains Harry had passed earlier had flown apart, b
ut there was no door behind them. For a split second, Harry thought he was loo
king through a window, a window behind which an old woman in a black cap was s
creaming and screaming as though she were being tortured - then he realised it
was simply a life-size portrait, but the most realistic, and the most unpleas
ant, he had ever seen in his life.
The old woman was drooling, her eyes were rolling, the yellowing skin of h
er face stretched taut as she screamed; and all along the hall behind them, th
e other portraits awoke and began to yell, too, so that Harry actually screwed
up his eyes at the noise and clapped his hands over his ears.
Lupin and Mrs Weasley darted forward and tried to tug the curtains shut ov
er the old woman, but they would not close and she screeched louder than ever,
brandishing clawed hands as though trying to tear at their faces.
'Filth! Scum! By-products of dirt and vileness! Half-breeds, mutants, frea
ks, begone from this place! How dare you befoul the house of my fathers - '
Tonks apologised over and over again, dragging the huge, heavy troll's leg
back off the floor; Mrs Weasley abandoned the attempt to close the curtains a
nd hurried up and down the hall, Stunning all the other portraits with her wan
d; and a man with long black hair came charging out of a door facing Harry.
'Shut up, you horrible old hag, shut UP!' he roared, seizing the curtain M
rs Weasley had abandoned.
The old woman's face blanched.
'Yoooou!' she howled, her eyes popping at the sight of the man. 'Blood tra
itor, abomination, shame of my flesh!'
'I said - shut - UP!' roared the man, and with a stupendous effort he and
Lupin managed to force the curtains closed again.
The old woman's screeches died and an echoing silence tell. Panting slight
ly and sweeping his long dark hair out of his eyes, Harry's godfather Sirius t
urned to face him.
'Hello, Harry,' he said grimly, 'I see you've met my mother.'
- CHAPTER FIVE -
The Order of The Phoenix
'Your - ?'
'My dear old mum, yeah,' said Sirius. 'We've been trying to get her down f
or a month but we think she put a Permanent. Sticking Charm on the back of the
canvas. Lets get downstairs, quick, before they all wake up again.'
'But what's a portrait of your mother doing here?' Harry asked, bewildered
, as they went through the door from the hall and led the way down a flight of
narrow stone steps, the others just behind them.
'Hasn't anyone told you? This was my parents' house,' said Sirius. 'But I'
m the last Black left, so it's mine now. I offered it to Dumbledore for Headqu
arters - about the only useful thing I've been able to do.'
Harry, who had expected a better welcome, noted how hard and bitter Sirius
's voice sounded. He followed his godfather to the bottom of the steps and thr
ough a door leading into the basement kitchen.
It was scarcely less gloomy than the hall above, a cavernous room with rou
gh stone walls. Most of the light was coming from a large fire at the far end
of the room. A haze of pipe smoke hung in the air like battle fumes, through w
hich loomed the menacing shapes of heavy iron pots and pans hanging from the d
ark ceiling. Many chairs had been crammed into the room for the meeting and a
long wooden table stood in the middle of them, littered with rolls of parchmen
t, goblets, empty wine bottles, and a heap of what appeared to be rags. Mr Wea
sley and his eldest son Bill were talking quietly with their heads together at
the end of the table.
Mrs Weasley cleared her throat. Her husband, a thin, balding, red-haired m
an who wore horn-rimmed glasses, looked around and jumped to his feet.
'Harry!' Mr Weasley said, hurrying forward to greet him, and shaking his h
and vigorously. 'Good to see you!'
Over his shoulder Harry saw Bill, who still wore his long hair in a ponyta
il, hastily rolling up the lengths of parchment left on the table.
'Journey all right, Harry?' Bill called, trying to gather up twelve scroll
s at once. 'Mad-Eye didn't make you come via Greenland, then?'
'He tried,' said Tonks, striding over to help Bill and immediately topplin
g a candle on to the last piece of parchment. 'Oh no - sorry - '
'Here, dear,' said Mrs Weasley, sounding exasperated, and she repaired the
parchment with a wave of her wand. In the flash of light caused by Mrs Weasle
y's charm Harry caught a glimpse of what looked like the plan of a building.
Mrs Weasley had seen him looking. She snatched the plan off the table and
stuffed it into Bill's already overladen arms.
This sort of thing ought to be cleared away promptly at the end of meeting
s,' she snapped, before sweeping off towards an ancient dresser from which she
started unloading dinner plates.
Bill took out his wand, muttered, 'Evanesce!' and the scrolls vanished.
'Sit down, Harry' said Sirius. 'You've met Mundungus, haven't you?'
The thing Harry had taken to be a pile of rags gave a prolonged, grunting
snore, then jerked awake.
'Some'n say m'name?' Mundungus mumbled sleepily. 'I agree with Sirius . .
.' He raised a very grubby hand in the air as though voting, his droopy, blood
shot eyes unfocused.
Ginny giggled.
The meeting's over, Dung,' said Sirius, as they all sat down around him at
the table. 'Harry's arrived.'
'Eh?' said Mundungus, peering bale fully at Harry through his matted ginge
r hair. 'Blimey, so 'e 'as. Yeah . . . you all right, 'Airy?'
'Yeah,' said Harry.
Mundungus fumbled nervously in his pockets, still staring at Harry, and pu
lled out a grimy black pipe. He stuck it in his mouth, ignited the end of it w
ith his wand and took a deep pull on it. Great billowing clouds of greenish sm
oke obscured him within seconds.
'Owe you a 'pology,' grunted a voice from the middle of the smelly cloud.
'For the last time, Mundungus,' called Mrs Weasley, 'will you please not s
moke that thing in the kitchen, especially not when we're about to eat!'
'Ah,' said Mundungus. 'Right. Sorry, Molly.'
The cloud of smoke vanished as Mundungus stowed his pipe back in his pocke
t, but an acrid smell of burning socks lingered.
'And if you want dinner before midnight I'll need a hand,' Mrs Weasley sai
d to the room at large. 'No, you can stay where you are, Harry dear, you've ha
d a long journey.'
'What can I do, Molly?' said Tonks enthusiastically, bounding forwards.
Mrs Weasley hesitated, looking apprehensive.
'Er - no, it's all right, Tonks, you have a rest too, you've done enough t
oday.'
'No, no, I want to help!' said Tonks brightly, knocking over a chair as sh
e hurried towards the dresser, from which Ginny was collecting cutlery.
Soon, a series of heavy knives were chopping meat and vegetables of their
own accord, supervised by Mr Weasley, while Mrs Weasley stirred a cauldron dan
gling over the fire and the others took out plates, more goblets and food from
the pantry. Harry was left at the table with Sirius and Mundungus, who was st
ill blinking at him mournfully.
'Seen old Figgy since?' he asked.
'No,' said Harry, 'I haven't seen anyone.'
'See, I wouldn't 'ave left,' said Mundungus, leaning forward, a pleading n
ote in his voice, 'but I 'ad a business opportunity - '
Harry felt something brush against his knees and started, but it was only
Crookshanks, Hermione's bandy-legged ginger cat, who wound himself once around
Harry's legs, purring, then jumped on to Sirius's lap and curled up. Sirius s
cratched him absent-mindedly behind the ears as he turned, still grim-faced, t
o Harry.
'Had a good summer so far?'
'No, it's been lousy,' said Harry.
For the first time, something like a grin flitted across Sirius's free.
'Don't know what you're complaining about, myself.'
'What?' said Harry incredulously.
'Personally, I'd have welcomed a Dementor attack. A deadly struggle for my
soul would have broken the monotony nicely. You think you've had it bad, at l
east you've been able to get out and about, stretch your legs, get into a few
fights . . . I've been stuck inside for a month.'
'How come?' asked Harry, frowning.
'Because the Ministry of Magic's still after me, and Voldemort will know a
ll about me being an Animagus by now, Wormtail will have told him, so my big d
isguise is useless. There's not much I can do for the Order of the Phoenix . .
. or so Dumbledore feels.'
There was something about the slightly flattened tone of voice in which Si
rius uttered Dumbledore's name that told Harry that Sirius, too, was not very
happy with the Headmaster. Harry felt a sudden upsurge of affection for his go
dfather.
'At least you've known what's been going on,' he said bracingly.
'Oh yeah,' said Sirius sarcastically. 'Listening to Snape's reports, havin
g to take all his snide hints that he's out there risking his life while I'm s
at on my backside here having a nice comfortable time . . . asking me how the
cleaning's going - '
'What cleaning?' asked Harry.
Trying to make this place fit for human habitation,' said Sirius, waving a
hand around the dismal kitchen. 'No one's lived here for ten years, not since
my dear mother died, unless you count her old house-elf, and he's gone round
the twist - hasn't cleaned anything in ages.'
'Sirius,' said Mundungus, who did not appear to have paid any attention to
the conversation, but had been closely examining an empty goblet. This solid
silver, mate?'
'Yes,' said Sirius, surveying it with distaste. 'Finest fifteenth-century
goblin-wrought silver, embossed with the Black family crest.'
'That'd come orf, though,' muttered Mundungus, polishing it with his cuff.
'Fred - George - NO, JUST CARRY THEM!' Mrs Weasley shrieked.
Harry, Sirius and Mundungus looked round and, within a split second, they
had dived away from the table. Fred and George had bewitched a large cauldron
of stew, an iron flagon of Butterbeer and a heavy wooden breadboard, complete
with knife, to hurtle through the air towards them. The stew skidded the lengt
h of the table and came to a halt just before the end, leaving a long black bu
rn on the wooden surface; the flagon of Butterbeer fell with a crash, spilling
its contents everywhere; the bread knife slipped off the board and landed, po
int down and quivering ominously, exactly where Sirius's right hand had been s
econds before.
'FOR HEAVEN'S SAKE!' screamed Mrs Weasley. THERE WAS NO NEED - I'VE HAD EN
OUGH OF THIS - JUST BECAUSE YOU'RE ALLOWED TO USE MAGIC NOW, YOU DON'T HAVE TO
WHIP YOUR WANDS OUT FOR EVERY TINY LITTLE THING!'
'We were just trying to save a bit of time!' said Fred, hurrying forward t
o wrench the bread knife out of the table. 'Sorry, Sirius, mate - didn't mean
to - '
Harry and Sirius were both laughing; Mundungus, who had toppled backwards
off his chair, was swearing as he got to his feet; Crookshanks had given an an
gry hiss and shot off under the dresser, from where his large yellow eyes glow
ed in the darkness.
'Boys,' Mr Weasley said, lifting the stew back into the middle of the tabl
e, 'your mother's right, you re supposed to show a sense f responsibility now
you've come of age - '
'None of your brothers caused this sort of trouble!' Mrs Weasley raged at
the twins as she slammed a fresh flagon of Butterbeer on lo the table, and spi
lling almost as much again. 'Bill didn't feel the need to Apparate every few f
eet! Charlie didn't charm everything he met! Percy - '
She stopped dead, catching her breath with a frightened look at her husban
d, whose expression was suddenly wooden.
'Let's eat,' said Bill quickly.
'It looks wonderful, Molly,' said Lupin, ladling stew on to a plate lor he
r and handing it across the table.
For a few minutes there was silence but for the chink of plates and cutler
y and the scraping of chairs as everyone settled down to their food. Then Mrs
Weasley turned to Sirius.
'I've been meaning to tell you, Sirius, there's something trapped in that
writing desk in the drawing room, it keeps rattling and shaking. Of course, it
could just be a Boggart, but I thought we ought to ask Alastor to have a look
at it before we let it out.'
'Whatever you like,' said Sirius indifferently.
The curtains in there are full of Doxys, too,' Mrs Weasley went on. 'I tho
ught we might try and tackle them tomorrow.'
'I look forward to it,' said Sirius. Harry heard the sarcasm in his voice,
but he was not sure that anyone else did.
Opposite Harry, Tonks was entertaining Hermione and Ginny by transforming
her nose between mouthfuls. Screwing up her eyes each time with the same paine
d expression she had worn back in Harry's bedroom, her nose swelled to a beak-
like protuberance that resembled Snape's, shrank to the size of a button mushr
oom and then sprouted a great deal of hair from each nostril. Apparently this
was a regular mealtime entertainment, because Hermione and Ginny were soon req
uesting their favourite noses.
'Do that one like a pig snout, Tonks.'
Tonks obliged, and Harry, looking up, had the fleeting impression that a f
emale Dudley was grinning at him from across - 'he table.
Mr Weasley, Bill and Lupin were having an intense discuss on about goblins
.
They're not giving anything away yet,' said Bill. 'I still can't work out
whether or not they believe he's back. Course, they might prefer not to take s
ides at all. Keep out of it.'
'I'm sure they'd never go over to You-Know-Who,' said Mr Weasley, shaking
his head. They've suffered losses too; remember that goblin family he murdered
last time, somewhere near Nottingham?'
'I think it depends what they're offered,' said Lupin. 'And I'm not talkin
g about gold. If they're offered the freedoms we've been denying them for cent
uries they're going to be tempted. Have you still not had any luck with Ragnok
, Bill?'
'He's feeling pretty anti-wizard at the moment,' said Bill, 'he hasn't sto
pped raging about the Bagman business, he reckons the Ministry did a cover-up,
those goblins never got their gold from him, you know - '
A gale of laughter from the middle of the table drowned the rest of Bill's
words. Fred, George, Ron and Mundungus were rolling around in their seats.
'. . . and then,' choked Mundungus, tears running down his face, 'and then
, if you'll believe it, 'e says to me, 'e says, ' "Ere, Dung, where didja get
all them toads from? 'Cos some son of a Sludger's gone and nicked all mine!" A
nd I says, "Nicked all your toads, Will, what next? So you'll be wanting some
more, then?" And if you'll believe me, lads, the gormless gargoyle buys all 'i
s own toads back orf me for a lot more'n what 'e paid in the first place - '
'I don't think we need to hear any more of your business dealings, thank y
ou very much, Mundungus,' said Mrs Weasley sharply, as Ron slumped forwards on
to the table, howling with laughter.
'Beg pardon, Molly,' said Mundungus at once, wiping his eyes and winking a
t Harry. 'But, you know, Will nicked 'em orf Warty Harris in the first place s
o I wasn't really doing nothing wrong.'
'I don't know where you learned about right and wrong, Mundungus, but you
seem to have missed a few crucial lessons,' said Mrs Weasley coldly.
Fred and George buried their faces in their goblets of Butterbeer; George
was hiccoughing. For some reason, Mrs Weasley threw a very nasty look at Siriu
s before getting to her feet and going to fetch a large rhubarb crumble for pu
dding. Harry looked round at his godfather.
'Molly doesn't approve of Mundungus,' said Sirius in an undertone.
'How come he's in the Order?' Harry said, very quietly.
'He's useful,' Sirius muttered. 'Knows all the crooks - well, he would, se
eing as he's one himself. But he's also very loyal to Dumbledore, who helped h
im out of a tight spot once. It pays to have someone like Dung around, he hear
s things we don't. But Molly thinks inviting him to stay for dinner is going t
oo far. She hasn't forgiven him for slipping off duty when he was supposed to
be tailing you.'
Three helpings of rhubarb crumble and custard later and I he waistband on
Harry's jeans was feeling uncomfortably tight (which was saying something as t
he jeans had once been Dudley's). As he laid down his spoon there was a lull i
n the general conversation: Mr Weasley was leaning back in his chair, looking
replete and relaxed; Tonks was yawning widely, her nose now back to normal; an
d Ginny, who had lured Crookshanks out from under the dresser, was sitting cro
ss-legged on the floor, rolling Butterbeer corks for him to chase.
'Nearly time for bed, I think,' said Mrs Weasley with a yawn.
'Not just yet, Molly,' said Sirius, pushing away his empty plate and turni
ng to look at Harry. 'You know, I'm surprised at you. I thought the first thin
g you'd do when you got here would be to start asking questions about Voldemor
t.'
The atmosphere in the room changed with the rapidity Harry associated with
the arrival of Dementors. Where seconds before it had been sleepily relaxed,
it was now alert, even tense. A frisson had gone around the table at the menti
on of Voldemort's name. Lupin, who had been about to take a sip of wine, lower
ed his goblet slowly, looking wary.
'I did!' said Harry indignantly. 'I asked Ron and Hermione but they said w
e're not allowed in the Order, so - '
'And they're quite right,' said Mrs Weasley. 'You're too young.'
She was sitting bolt upright in her chair, her fists clenched an its arms,
every trace of drowsiness gone.
'Since when did someone have to be in the Order of the Phoenix to ask ques
tions?' asked Sirius. 'Harry's been trapped in that Muggle house for a month.
He's got the right to know what's been happen-'
'Hang on!' interrupted George loudly.
'How come Harry gets his questions answered?' said Fred angrily.
'We've been trying to get stuff out of you for a month and y du haven't to
ld us a single stinking thing!' said George.
' "You're too young, you're not in the Order," ' said Fred, in a high-pitc
hed voice that sounded uncannily like his mother's. 'Harry's not even of age!'
'It's not my fault you haven't been told what the Order's doing,' said Sir
ius calmly, 'that's your parents' decision. Harry, on the other hand - '
'It's not down to you to decide what's good for Harry!' said Mrs Weasley s
harply. The expression on her normally kind face looked dangerous. 'You haven'
t forgotten what Dumbledore said, I suppose?'
'Which bit?' Sirius asked politely, but with the air of a man readying him
self for a fight.
The bit about not telling Harry more than he needs to know,' said Mrs Weas
ley, placing a heavy emphasis on the last three words.
Ron, Hermione, Fred and Georges heads swivelled from Sirius to Mrs Weasley
as though they were following a tennis rally. Ginny was kneeling amid a pile
of abandoned Butterbeer corks, watching the conversation with her mouth slight
ly open. Lupin's eyes were fixed on Sirius.
'I don't intend to tell him more than he needs to know, Molly,' said Siriu
s. 'But as he was the one who saw Voldemort come back' (again, there was a col
lective shudder around the table at the name) 'he has more right than most to
- '
'He's not a member of the Order of the Phoenix!' said Mrs Weasley. 'He's o
nly fifteen and - '
'And he's dealt with as much as most in the Order,' said Sirius, 'and more
than some.'
'No one's denying what he's done!' said Mrs Weasley, her voice rising, her
fists trembling on the arms of her chair. 'But he's still - '
'He's not a child!' said Sirius impatiently.
'He's not an adult either!' said Mrs Weasley, the colour rising in her che
eks. 'He's not James, Sirius!'
'I'm perfectly clear who he is, thanks, Molly,' said Sirius coldly.
'I'm not sure you are!' said Mrs Weasley. 'Sometimes, the way you talk abo
ut him, it's as though you think you've got your best friend back!'
'What's wrong with that?' said Harry.
'What's wrong, Harry, is that you are not your father, however much you mi
ght look like him!' said Mrs Weasley, her eyes still boring into Sirius. 'You
are still at school and adults responsible for you should not forget it!'
'Meaning I'm an irresponsible godfather?' demanded Sirius, his voice risin
g.
'Meaning you have been known to act rashly, Sirius, which is why Dumbledor
e keeps reminding you to stay at home and - '
'We'll leave my instructions from Dumbledore out of this, if you please!'
said Sirius loudly.
'Arthur!' said Mrs Weasley rounding on her husband. 'Arthur, back me up!'
Mr Weasley did not speak at once. He took off his glasses and cleaned them
slowly on his robes, not looking at his wife. Only when he had replaced them
carefully on his nose did he reply.
'Dumbledore knows the position has changed, Molly. He accepts that Harry w
ill have to be filled in, to a certain extent, now that he is staying at Headq
uarters.'
'Yes, but there's a difference between that and inviting him to ask whatev
er he likes!'
'Personally,' said Lupin quietly, looking away from Sirius at last, as Mrs
Weasley turned quickly to him, hopeful that finally she was about to get an a
lly, 'I think it better that Harry gets the facts - 'not all the facts, Molly,
but the general picture - from us, rather than a garbled version from . . . o
thers.'
His expression was mild, but Harry felt sure Lupin, at least, knew that so
me Extendable Ears had survived Mrs Weasley's purge.
'Well,' said Mrs Weasley, breathing deeply and looking around the table fo
r support that did not come, 'well . . . I can see I' going to be overruled. I
'll just say this: Dumbledore must have had his reasons for not wanting Harry
to know too much, and speaking as someone who has Harry's best interests at he
art -'
'He's not your son,' said Sirius quietly.
'He's as good as,' said Mrs Weasley fiercely. 'Who else has he got?'
'He's got me!'
'Yes,' said Mrs Weasley, her lip curling, 'the thing is, it's been rather
difficult for you to look after him while you've been locked up in Azkaban, ha
sn't it?'
Sirius started to rise from his chair.
'Molly, you're not the only person at this table who cares about Harry,' s
aid Lupin sharply. 'Sirius, sit down.'
Mrs Weasleys lower lip was trembling. Sirius sank slowly back into his cha
ir, his face white.
'I think Harry ought to be allowed a say in this,' Lupin continued, 'he's
old enough to decide for himself.'
'I want to know what's been going on,' Harry said at once.
He did not look at Mrs Weasley. He had been touched by what she had said a
bout his being as good as a son, but he was also impatient with her mollycoddl
ing. Sirius was right, he was not a child.
'Very well,' said Mrs Weasley, her voice cracking. 'Ginny - Ron - Hermione
- Fred - George - I want, you out of this kitchen, now.'
There was instant uproar.
'We're of age!' Fred and George bellowed together.
'If Harry's allowed, why can't I?' shouted Ron.
'Mum, I want to hear!' wailed Ginny
'NO!' shouted Mrs Weasley, standing up, her eyes overbright. 'I absolutely
forbid - '
'Molly you can't stop Fred and George,' said Mr Weasley wearily. They are
of age.'
They're still at school.'
'But they're legally adults now,' said Mr Weasley, in the same tired voice
.
Mrs Weasley was now scarlet in the face.
'I - oh, all right then, Fred and George can stay, but Ron - '
'Harry'll tell me and Hermione everything you say anyway!' said Ron hotly.
'Won't - won't you?' he added uncertainly, meeting Harry's eyes.
For a split second, Harry considered telling Ron that he wouldn't tell him
a single word, that he could try a taste of being kept in the dark and see ho
w he liked it. But the nasty impulse vanished as they looked at each other.
'Course I will,' Harry said.
Ron and Hermione beamed.
'Fine!' shouted Mrs Weasley. 'Fine! Ginny - BED!'
Ginny did not go quietly. They could hear her raging and storming at her m
other all the way up the stairs, and when she reached the hall Mrs Blacks ear-
splitting shrieks were added to the din. Lupin hurried off to the portrait: to
restore calm. It was only after he had returned, closing the kitchen door beh
ind him and taking his seat at the table again, that Sirius spoke.
'OK, Harry . . . what do you want to know?'
Harry took a deep breath and asked the question that had obsessed him for
the last month.
'Where's Voldemort?' he said, ignoring the renewed shudders and winces at
the name. 'What's he doing? I've been trying to watch the Muggle news, and the
re hasn't been anything that looks like him yet, no funny deaths or anything.'
That's because there haven't been any funny deaths yet,' said Sirius, 'not
as far as we know, anyway . . . and we know quite a let.'
'More than he thinks we do, anyway,' said Lupin.
'How come he's stopped killing people?' Harry asked. He knew Voldemort had
murdered more than once in the last year alone.
'Because he doesn't want to draw attention to himself,' said Sirius. 'It w
ould be dangerous for him. His comeback didn't come off quite the way he wante
d it to, you see. He messed it up.'
'Or rather, you messed it up for him,' said Lupin, with a satisfied smile.
'How?' Harry asked, perplexed.
'You weren't supposed to survive!' said Sirius. 'Nobody apart from his Dea
th Eaters was supposed to know he'd come back. But you survived to bear witnes
s.'
'And the very last person he wanted alerted to his return the moment he go
t back was Dumbledore,' said Lupin. 'And you made sure Dumbledore knew at once
.'
'How has that helped?' Harry asked.
'Are you kidding?' said Bill incredulously. 'Dumbledore was the only one Y
ou-Know-Who was ever scared of!'
Thanks to you, Dumbledore was able to recall the Order of the Phoenix abou
t an hour after Voldemort returned,' said Sirius.
'So, what's the Order been doing?' said Harry, looking around at them all.
'Working as hard as we can to make sure Voldemort can't carry out his plan
s,' said Sirius.
'How d'you know what his plans are?' Harry asked quickly.
'Dumbledore's got a shrewd idea,' said Lupin, 'and Dumbledore's shrewd ide
as normally turn out to be accurate.'
'So what does Dumbledore reckon he's planning?'
'Well, firstly, he wants to build up his army again,' said Sirius. 'In the
old days he had huge numbers at his command: witches and wizards he'd bullied
or bewitched into following him, his faithful Death Eaters, a great variety o
f Dark creatures. You heard him planning to recruit the giants; well, they'll
be just one of the groups he's after. He's certainly not going to try and take
on the Ministry of Magic with only a dozen Death Eaters.'
'So you're trying to stop him getting more followers?'
'We're doing our best,' said Lupin.
'How?'
'Well, the main thing is to try and convince as many people as possible th
at You-Know-Who really has returned, to put them on their guard,' said Bill. '
It's proving tricky, though.'
'Why?'
'Because of the Ministry's attitude,' said Tonks. 'You saw Cornelius Fudge
after You-Know-Who came back, Harry. Well, he hasn't shifted his position at
all. He's absolutely refusing to believe it's happened.'
'But why?' said Harry desperately. 'Why's he being so stupid? If Dumbledor
e - '
'Ah, well, you've put your finger on the problem,' said Mr Weasley with a
wry smile. 'Dumbledore.'
'Fudge is frightened of him, you see,' said Tonks sadly.
'Frightened of Dumbledore?' said Harry incredulously.
'Frightened of what he's up to,' said Mr Weasley. 'Fudge thinks Dumbledore
's plotting to overthrow him. He thinks Dumbledore wants to be Minister for Ma
gic.'
'But Dumbledore doesn't want - '
'Of course he doesn't,' said Mr Weasley. 'He's never wanted the Minister's
job, even though a lot of people wanted him to take it when Millicent Bagnold
retired. Fudge came to power instead, but
he's never quite forgotten how much popular support Dumbledore had, even t
hough Dumbledore never applied for the job.'
'Deep down, Fudge knows Dumbledore's much cleverer than he is, a much more
powerful wizard, and in the early days of his Ministry he was forever asking
Dumbledore for help and advice,' said Lupin. 'But it seems he's become fond of
power, and much more confident. He loves being Minister for Magic and he's m;
n-aged to convince himself that he's the clever one and Dumbledore's simply s
tirring up trouble for the sake of it.'
'How can he think that?' said Harry angrily. 'How can he think Dumbledore
would just make it all up - that I'd make it all up?'
'Because accepting that Voldermort's back would mean trouble like the Mini
stry hasn't had to cope with for nearly fourteen yea 's,' said Sirius bitterly
. 'Fudge just can't bring himself to face it. It's so much more comfortable to
convince himself Dumbledore's lying to destabilise him.'
'You see the problem,' said Lupin. 'While the Ministry insists there is no
thing to fear from Voldemort it's hard to convince people he's back, especiall
y as they really don't want to believe it in the first place. What's more, the
Ministry's leaning heavily on the Daily Prophet not to report any of what the
y're calling Dumbledore's rumour-mongering, so most of the wizarding community
are completely unaware anything's happened, and that makes them easy targets
for the Death Eaters if they're using the Imperius Curse.'
'But you're telling people, aren't you?' said Harry, looking around at Mr
Weasley, Sirius, Bill, Mundungus, Lupin and Tonks. 'You're letting people know
he's back?'
They all smiled humourlessly.
'Well, as everyone thinks I'm a mad mass-murderer and the Ministry's put a
ten thousand Galleon price on my head, I can hardly stroll up the street and
start handing out leaflets, can I?' said Sirius restlessly.
'And I'm not a very popular dinner guest with most of the community,' said
Lupin. 'It's an occupational hazard of being a werewolf.'
'Tonks and Arthur would lose their jobs at the Ministry if they started sh
ooting their mouths off,' said Sirius, 'and it's very important
for us to have spies inside the Ministry, because you can bet Voldemort wi
ll have them.'
'We've managed to convince a couple of people, though,' said Mr Weasley. T
onks here, for one - she's too young to have been in the Order of the Phoenix
last time, and having Aurors on our side is a huge advantage - Kingsley Shackl
ebolt's been a real asset, too; he's in charge of the hunt for Sirius, so he's
been feeding the Ministry information that Sirius is in Tibet.'
'But if none of you are putting the news out that Voldemort's back - ' Har
ry began.
'Who said none of us are putting the news out?' said Sirius. 'Why d'you th
ink Dumbledore's in such trouble?'
'What d'you mean?' Harry asked.
They're trying to discredit him,' said Lupin. 'Didn't you see the Daily Pr
ophet last week? They reported that he'd been voted out of the Chairmanship of
the International Confederation of Wizards because he's getting old and losin
g his grip, but it's not true; he was voted out by Ministry wizards after he m
ade a speech announcing Voldemort's return. They've demoted him from Chief War
lock on the Wizengamot - that's the Wizard High Court - and they're talking ab
out taking away his Order of Merlin, First Class, too.'
'But Dumbledore says he doesn't care what they do as long as they don't ta
ke him off the Chocolate Frog Cards,' said Bill, grinning.
'It's no laughing matter,' said Mr Weasley sharply. 'If he carries on defy
ing the Ministry like this he could end up in Azkaban, and the last thing we w
ant is to have Dumbledore locked up. While You-Know-Who knows Dumbledore's out
there and wise to what he's up to he's going to go cautiously. If Dumbledore'
s out of the way - well, You-Know-Who will have a clear field.'
'But if Voldemort's trying to recruit more Death Eaters it's bound to get
out that he's come back, isn't it?' asked Harry desperately.
'Voldemort doesn't march up to people's houses and bang on their front doo
rs, Harry,' said Sirius. 'He tricks, jinxes and blackmails them. He's well-pra
ctised at operating in secret. In any case, gathering followers is only one th
ing he's interested in. He's got other plans too, plans he can put into operat
ion very quietly indeed, and he's concentrating on those for the moment.'
'What's he after apart from followers?' Harry asked swiftly. He thought he
saw Sirius and Lupin exchange the most fleeting of looks before Sirius answer
ed.
'Stuff he can only get by stealth.'
When Harry continued to look puzzled, Sirius said, 'Like a weapon. Somethi
ng he didn't have last time.'
'When he was powerful before?'
'Yes.'
'Like what kind of weapon?' said Harry. 'Something worse than the Avada Ke
davra - ?'
That's enough!'
Mrs Weasley spoke from the shadows beside the door. Harry hadn't noticed h
er return from taking Ginny upstairs. Her arms were crossed and she looked fur
ious.
'I want you in bed, now. All of you,' she added, looking around at Fred, G
eorge, Ron and Hermione.
'You can't boss us - ' Fred began.
'Watch me,' snarled Mrs Weasley. She was trembling slightly as she looked
at Sirius. 'You've given Harry plenty of information. Any more and you might j
ust as well induct him into the Order straightaway.'
'Why not?' said Harry quickly. 'I'll join, I want to join, I want to fight
.'
'No.'
It was not Mrs Weasley who spoke this time, but Lupin.
The Order is comprised only of overage wizards,' he said. 'Wizards who hav
e left school,' he added, as Fred and George opened their mouths. There are da
ngers involved of which you can have no idea, any of you . . . I think Molly's
right, Sirius. We've said enough.'
Sirius half-shrugged but did not argue. Mrs Weasley beckoned imperiously t
o her sons and Herrnione. One by one they stood up and Harry, recognising defe
at, followed suit.
- CHAPTER SIX -
The Noble and Most
Ancient House of Black
Mrs Weasley followed them upstairs looking grim.
'I want you all to go straight to bed, no talking,' she said as they reach
ed the first landing, 'we've got a busy clay tomorrow. I expect Ginny's asleep
,' she added to Hermione, 'so try not to wake her up.'
'Asleep, yeah, right,' said Fred in an undertone, after Hermione bade them
goodnight and they were climbing to the next floor. 'If Ginny's not lying awa
ke waiting for Hermione to tell her everything they said downstairs then I'm a
Flobberworm . . .'
'All right, Ron, Harry,' said Mrs Weasley on the second landing, pointing
them into their bedroom. 'Off to bed with you.'
"Night,' Harry and Ron said to the twins.
'Sleep tight,' said Fred, winking.
Mrs Weasley closed the door behind Harry with a sharp snap. The bedroom lo
oked, if anything, even danker and gloomier than it had on first sight. The bl
ank picture on the wall was now breathing very slowly and deeply, as though it
s invisible occupant was asleep. Harry put on his pyjamas, took off his glasse
s and climbed into his chilly bed while Ron threw Owl Treats up on top of the
wardrobe to pacify Hedwig and Pigwidgeon, who were clattering around and rustl
ing their wings restlessly.
'We can't let them out to hunt every night,' Ron explained as he pulled on
his maroon pyjamas. 'Dumbledore doesn't want too many owls swooping around th
e square, thinks it'll look suspicious. Oh yeah . . . I forgot . . .'
He crossed to the door and bolted it.
'What're you doing that for?'
'Kreacher,' said Ron as he turned off the light. 'First night I was here h
e came wandering in at three in the morning. Trust me, you don't want to wake
up and find him prowling around your room. Anyway . . .' he got into his bed,
settled down under the co\ers then turned to look at Harry in the darkness; Ha
rry could see his outline by the moonlight filtering in through the grimy wind
ow, 'what d'you reckon?'
Harry didn't need to ask what Ron meant.
'Well, they didn't tell us much we couldn't have guessed, did they?' he sa
id, thinking of all that had been said downstairs. 'I mean, all they've really
said is that the Order's trying to stop pec pie joining Vol-'
There was a sharp intake of breath from Ron. -demon,' said Harry firmly. '
When are you going to start using his name? Sirius and Lupin do.'
Ron ignored this last comment.
'Yeah, you're right,' he said, 'we already knew nearly everything they tol
d us, from using the Extendable Ears. The only new bit was - '
Crack.
'OUCH!'
'Keep your voice down, Ron, or Mum'll be back up here.'
'You two just Apparated on my knees!'
'Yeah, well, it's harder in the dark.'
Harry saw the blurred outlines of Fred and George leaping down from Ron's
bed. There was a groan of bedsprings and Harry's mattress descended a few inch
es as George sat down near his feet.
'So, got there yet?' said George eagerly.
The weapon Sirius mentioned?' said Harry.
'Let slip, more like,' said Fred with relish, now sitting next to Ron. 'We
didn't hear about that on the old Extendables, did we?'
'What d'you reckon it is?' said Harry.
'Could be anything,' said Fred.
'But there can't be anything worse than the Avada Kedavra Curse, can there
?' said Ron. 'What's worse than death?'
'Maybe it's something that can kill loads of people at once,' suggested Ge
orge.
'Maybe it's some particularly painful way of killing people,' said Ron lea
rfully.
'He's got the Cruciatus Curse for causing pain,' said Harry, 'he doesn't n
eed anything more efficient than that.'
There was a pause and Harry knew that the others, like him, were wondering
what horrors this weapon could perpetrate.
'So who d'you think's got it now?' asked George.
'I hope it's our side,' said Ron, sounding slightly nervous.
'If it is, Dumbledore's probably keeping it,' said Fred.
'Where?' said Ron quickly. 'Hogwarts?'
'Bet it is!' said George. That's where he hid the Philosopher's Stone.'
'A weapons going to be a lot bigger than the Stone, though!' said Ron.
'Not necessarily,' said Fred.
'Yeah, size is no guarantee of power,' said George. 'Look at Ginny'
'What d'you mean?' said Harry.
'You've never been on the receiving end of one of her Bat-Bogey Hexes, hav
e you?'
'Shhh!' said Fred, half-rising from the bed. 'Listen!'
They fell silent. Footsteps were coming up the stairs.
'Mum,' said George and without further ado there was a loud crack and Harr
y felt the weight vanish from the end of his bed. A few seconds later, they he
ard the floorboard creak outside their door; Mrs Weasley was plainly listening
to check whether or not they were talking.
Hedwig and Pigwidgeon hooted dolefully. The floorboard creaked again and t
hey heard her heading upstairs to check on Fred and George.
'She doesn't trust us at all, you know,' said Ron regretfully.
Harry was sure he would not be able to fall asleep; the evening had been s
o packed with things to think about that he fully expected to lie awake for ho
urs mulling it all over. He wanted to continue talking to Ron, but Mrs Weasley
was now creaking back downstairs again, and once she had gone he distinctly h
eard others making their way upstairs . . . in fact, many-legged creatures wer
e cantering softly up and down outside the bedroom door, and Hagrid the Care o
f Magical Creatures teacher was saying, 'Beauties, aren'ti they, eh, Harry? We
'll be studyin' weapons this term . . .' and Harry saw hat the creatures had c
annons for heads and were wheeling to ace him . . . he ducked . . .
The next thing he knew, he was curled into a warm ball under his bedclothe
s and George's loud voice was filling the room.
'Mum says get up, your breakfast is in the kitchen and then she needs you
in the drawing room, there are loads more Doxys than she thought and she's fou
nd a nest of dead Puffskeins under the sofa.'
Half an hour later Harry and Ron, who had dressed and breakfasted quickly,
entered the drawing room, a long, high-ceilinged room on the first floor with
olive green walls covered in dirty .ap-estries. The carpet exhaled little clo
uds of dust every time someone put their foot on it and the long, moss green v
elvet curtains were buzzing as though swarming with invisible bees. It was aro
and these that Mrs Weasley, Hermione, Ginny, Fred and George were grouped, all
looking rather peculiar as they had each tied a cloth over their nose and mou
th. Each of them was also holding a large bottle of black liquid with a nozzle
at the end
'Cover your faces and take a spray,' Mrs Weasley said to Harry and Ron the
moment she saw them, pointing to two more boitles of black liquid standing on
a spindle-legged table. 'It's Doxycide. I've never seen an infestation this b
ad - what that house-elf's Veen doing for the last ten years - '
Hermione's face was half concealed by a tea towel but Harry distinctly saw
her throw a reproachful look at Mrs Weasley.
'Kreachers really old, he probably couldn't manage - '
'You'd be surprised what Kreacher can manage when he wnnts to, Hermione,'
said Sirius, who had just entered the room carrying a bloodstained bag of what
appeared to be dead rats. 'I've just been feeding Buckbeak,' he added, in rep
ly to Harry's enquiring look. 'I keep him upstairs in my mother's bedroom. Any
way . . . this writing desk . . .'
He dropped the bag of rats into an armchair, then bent over to examine the
locked cabinet which, Harry now noticed for the first time, was shaking sligh
tly.
'Well, Molly, I'm pretty sure this is a Boggart,' said Sirius, peering thr
ough the keyhole, 'but perhaps we ought to let Mad-Eye have a shifty at it bef
ore we let it out - knowing my mother, it could be something much worse.'
'Right you are, Sirius,' said Mrs Weasley.
They were both speaking in carefully light, polite voices that told Harry
quite plainly that neither had forgotten their disagreement of the night befor
e.
A loud, clanging bell sounded from downstairs, followed at once by the cac
ophony of screams and wails that had been triggered the previous night by Tonk
s knocking over the umbrella stand.
'I keep telling them not to ring the doorbell!' said Sirius exasperatedly,
hurrying out of the room. They heard him thundering clown the stairs as Mrs B
lack's screeches echoed up through the house once more:
'Stains of dishonour, filthy half-breeds, blood traitors, children of flit
h . . .'
'Close the door, please, Harry,' said Mrs Weasley.
Harry took as much time as he dared to close the drawing-room door; he wan
ted to listen to what was going on downstairs. Sirius had obviously managed to
shut the curtains over his mothers portrait because she had stopped screaming
. He heard Sirius walking down the hall, then the clattering of the chain on t
he front door, and then a deep voice he recognised as Kingsley Shacklebolt's s
aying, 'Hestia's just relieved me, so she's got Moody's Cloak now, thought I'd
leave a report for Dumbledore . . .'
Feeling Mrs Weasley's eyes on the back of his head, Harry regretfully clos
ed the drawing-room door and rejoined the Doxy party.
Mrs Weasley was bending over to check the page on Doxys in Gilderoy Lockha
rt's Guide to Household Pests, which was lying open on the sofa.
'Right, you lot, you need to be careful, because Doxys bite and their teet
h are poisonous. I've got a bottle of antidote here, but I'd rather nobody nee
ded it.'
She straightened up, positioned herself squarely in front of the curtains
and beckoned them all forward.
'When I say the word, start spraying immediately,' she said. They'll come
flying out at us, I expect, but it says on the sprays one good squirt will par
alyse them. When they're immobilized, just throw them in this bucket.'
She stepped carefully out of their line of fire, and raised her own spray.
'All right - squirt!'
Harry had been spraying only a few seconds when a fully-grown Doxy came so
aring out of a fold in the material, shiny beetle-like wings whirring, tiny ne
edle-sharp teeth bared, its fairy-like body covered with thick black hair and
its four tiny fists clenched with fury. Harry caught it full in the face with
a blast of Doxycide. It froze in midair and fell, with a surprisingly loud thu
nk, on to the worn carpet below. Harry picked it up and threw it in the bucket
.
'Fred, what are you doing?' said Mrs Weasley sharply. 'Spray that at once
and throw it away!'
Harry looked round. Fred was holding a struggling Doxy between his forefin
ger and thumb.
'Right-o,' Fred said brightly, spraying the Doxy quickly in the face so th
at it fainted, but the moment Mrs Weasley's back was turned he pocketed it wit
h a wink.
'We want to experiment with Doxy venom for our Skiving Snackboxes,' George
told Harry under his breath.
Deftly spraying two Doxys at once as they soared straight for his nose, Ha
rry moved closer to George and muttered out of the corner of his mouth, 'What
are Skiving Snackboxes?'
'Range of sweets to make you ill,' George whispered, keeping a wary eye on
Mrs Weasley's back. 'Not seriously ill, mind, just ill enough to get you out
of a class when you feel like it. Fred and I have been developing them this su
mmer. They're double-ended, colour-coded chews. If you eat the orange half of
the Puking Pastilles, you throw up. Moment you've been rushed out of the lesso
n for the hospital wing, you swallow the purple half - '
' " - which restores you to full fitness, enabling you to pursue the leisu
re activity of your own choice during an hour that would otherwise have been d
evoted to unprofitable boredom." That's what we're putting in the adverts, any
way,' whispered Fred, who had edged over out of Mrs Weasley's line of vision a
nd was now sweeping a few stray Doxys from the floor and adding them to his po
cket. 'But they still need a bit of work. At the moment our testers are having
a bit of trouble stopping themselves puking long enough to swallow the purple
end.'
Testers?'
'Us,' said Fred. 'We take it in turns. George did the Fainting Fancies - w
e both tried the Nosebleed Nougat - '
'Mum thought we'd been duelling,' said George.
'Joke shop still on, then?' Harry muttered, pretending to be adjusting the
nozzle on his spray.
'Well, we haven't had a chance to get premises yet,' said Fred, dropping h
is voice even lower as Mrs Weasley mopped her brow with her scarf before retur
ning to the attack, 'so we're running it as a mail-order service at the moment
. We put advertisements in the Daily Prophet last week.'
'All thanks to you, mate,' said George. 'But don't worry . . . Mum hasn't
got a clue. She won't read the Daily Prophet any more, 'cause of it telling li
es about you and Dumbledore.'
Harry grinned. He had forced the Weasley twins to take the thousand Galleo
ns prize money he had won in the Triwizard Tournament to help them realise the
ir ambition to open a joke shop, but he was still glad to know that his part i
n furthering their plans was unknown to Mrs Weasley. She did not think running
a joke shop was a suitable career for two of her sons.
The de-Doxying of the curtains took most of the morning. It was past midda
y when Mrs Weasley finally removed her protective scarf, sank into a sagging a
rmchair and sprang up again with a cry of disgust, having sat on the bag of de
ad rats. The curtains were no longer buzzing; they hung limp and damp from the
intensive spraying. At the foot of them unconscious Doxys lay crammed in the
bucket beside a bowl of their black eggs, at which Crook-shanks was now sniffi
ng and Fred and George were shooting covetous looks.
'I think we'll tackle (hose after lunch.' Mrs Weasley pointed at the dusty
glass-fronted cabinets standing on either side of the mantelpiece. They were
crammed with an odd assortment of objects: a selection of rusty daggers, claws
, a coiled snakeskin, a number of tarnished silver boxes inscribed with langua
ges Harry could lot understand and, least pleasant of all, an ornate crystal b
ottle with a large opal set into the stopper, full of what Harry was quite sur
e was blood.
The clanging doorbell rang again. Everyone looked at Mrs Weasley
'Stay here,' she said firmly, snatching up the bag of rats as Mrs Blacks s
creeches started up again from down below. 'I'll bring up some sandwiches.'
She left the room, closing the door carefully behind her. At once, everyon
e dashed over to the window to look down on the doorstep. They could see the t
op of an unkempt gingery head and a suck of precariously balanced cauldrons.
'Mundungus!' said Hermione. 'What's he brought all those cauldrons for?'
'Probably looking for a safe place to keep them,' said Harry. 'Isn't that
what he was doing the night he was supposed to be tailing me? Picking up dodgy
cauldrons?'
'Yeah, you're right!' said Fred, as the front door opened; Mundungus heave
d his cauldrons through it and disappeared from view. 'Blimey, Mum won't like
that . . .'
He and George crossed to the door and stood beside it, listening closely.
Mrs Black's screaming had stopped.
'Mundungus is talking to Sirius and Kingsley,' Fred muttered, frowning wit
h concentration. 'Can't hear properly . . . d'you reckon we can risk the Exten
dable Ears?'
'Might be worth it,' said George. 'I could sneak upstairs and get a pair -
'
But at that precise moment there was an explosion of sound from downstairs
that rendered Extendable Ears quite unnecessary. All of them could hear exact
ly what Mrs Weasley was shouting at the top of her voice.
'WE ARE NOT RUNNING A HIDEOUT FOR STOLEN GOODS!'
'I love hearing Mum shouting at someone else,' said Fred, with a satisfied
smile on his face as he opened the door an inch or so to allow Mrs Weasley's
voice to permeate the room better, 'it makes such a nice change.'
' - COMPLETELY IRRESPONSIBLE, AS IF WE HAVEN'T GOT ENOUGH TO WORRY ABOUT W
ITHOUT YOU DRAGGING STOLEN CAULDRONS INTO THE HOUSE - '
The idiots are letting her get into her stride,' said George, shaking his
head. 'You've got to head her off early otherwise she builds up a head of stea
m and goes on for hours. And she's been dying to have a go at Mundungus ever s
ince he sneaked off when he was supposed to be following you, Harry - and ther
e goes Sirius's mum again.'
Mrs Weasley's voice was lost amid fresh shrieks and screams from the portr
aits in the hall.
George made to shut the door to drown the noise, but before he could do so
, a house-elf edged into the room.
Except for the filthy rag tied like a loincloth around its middle, it was
completely naked. It looked very old. Its skin seemed to be several times too
big for it and, though it was bald like all house-elves, there was a quantity
of white hair growing out of its large, batlike ears. Its eyes were a bloodsho
t and watery grey and its fleshy nose was large and rather snoutlike.
The elf took absolutely no notice of Harry and the rest. Acting as though
it could not see them, it shuffled hunchbacked, slowly and doggedly, towards t
he far end of the room, all the while muttering under its breath in a hoarse,
deep voice like a bullfrog's.
'. . . smells like a drain and a criminal to boot, but she's no better, na
sty old blood traitor with her brats messing up my mistress's house, oh, my po
or mistress, if she knew, if she knew the scum they've let into her house, wha
t would she say to old Kreacher, oh, the shame of it, Mudbloods and werewolves
and traitors and thieves, poor old Kreacher, what can he do . . .'
'Hello, Kreacher,' said Fred very loudly, closing the door with a snap.
The house-elf froze in his tracks, stopped muttering, and gave a very pron
ounced and very unconvincing start of surprise.
'Kreacher did not see young master,' he said, turning around and bowing to
Fred. Still lacing the carpet, he added, perfectly audibly, 'Nasty little bra
t of a blood traitor it is.'
'Sorry?' said George. 'Didn't catch that last bit.'
'Kreacher said nothing,' said the elf, with a second box to George, adding
in a clear undertone, 'and there its twin, unnataral little beasts they are.'
Harry didn't know whether to laugh or not. The elf straightened up, eyeing
them all malevolently, and apparently convinced that they could not hear him
as he continued to mutter.
'. . . and there's the Mudblood, standing there bold as brass, oh if my mi
stress knew, oh, how she'd cry, and there's a new boy, Kreacher doesn't know h
is name. What is he doing here? Kreacher doesn't know . . ."
This is Harry, Kreacher,' said Hermione tentatively. 'Harry Potter.'
Kreacher's pale eyes widened and he muttered faster and more furiously tha
n ever.
The Mudblood is talking to Kreacher as though she is my friend, if Kreache
r's mistress saw him in such company, oh, what would she say - '
'Don't call her a Mudblood!' said Ron and Ginny together, very angrily.
'It doesn't matter,' Hermione whispered, 'he's not in his tight mind, he d
oesn't know what he's - '
'Don't kid yourself, Hermione, he knows exactly what he's saying,' said Fr
ed, eyeing Kreacher with great dislike.
Kreacher was still muttering, his eyes on Harry.
'Is it true? Is it Harry Potter? Kreacher can see the scar, it must be tru
e, that's the boy who stopped the Dark Lord, Kreacher wonders how he did it -
'
'Don't we all, Kreacher,' said Fred.
'What do you want, anyway?' George asked.
Kreacher's huge eyes darted towards George.
'Kreacher is cleaning,' he said evasively.
'A likely story,' said a voice behind Harry.
Sirius had come back; he was glowering at the elf from the doorway. The no
ise in the hall had abated; perhaps Mrs Weasley and Mundungus had moved their
argument down into the kitchen.
At the sight of Sirius, Kreacher flung himself into a ridiculously low bow
that flattened his snoutlike nose on the floor.
'Stand up straight,' said Sirius impatiently. 'Now, what are you up to?'
'Kreacher is cleaning,' the elf repeated. 'Kreacher lives to serve lie Nob
le House of Black - '
'And it's getting blacker every day, it's filthy,' said Sirius.
'Master always liked his little joke,' said Kreacher, bowing again, and co
ntinuing in an undertone, 'Master was a nasty ungrateful swine who broke his m
other's heart - '
'My mother didn't have a heart, Kreacher,' snapped Sirius. 'She kept herse
lf alive out of pure spite.'
Kreacher bowed again as he spoke.
'Whatever Master says,' he muttered furiously. 'Master is not fit to wipe
slime from his mother's boots, oh, my poor mistress, what would she say if she
saw Kreacher serving him, how she hated him, what a disappointment he was - '
'I asked you what you were up to,' said Sirius coldly. 'Every time you sho
w up pretending to be cleaning, you sneak something off to your room so we can
't throw it out.'
'Kreacher would never move anything from its proper place in Master's hous
e,' said the elf, then muttered very fast, 'Mistress would never forgive Kreac
her if the tapestry was thrown out, seven centuries it's been in the family, K
reacher must save it, Kreacher will not let Master and the blood traitors and
the brats destroy it - '
'I thought it might be that,' said Sirius, casting a disdainful look at th
e opposite wall. 'She'll have put another Permanent Sticking Charm on the back
of it, I don't doubt, but if I can get rid of it I certainly will. Now go awa
y, Kreacher.'
It seemed that Kreacher did not dare disobey a direct order; nevertheless,
the look he gave Sirius as he shuffled out past him was full of deepest loath
ing and he muttered all the way out of the room.
' - comes back from Azkaban ordering Kreacher around, oh, my poor mistress
, what would she say if she saw the house now, scum living in it, her treasure
s thrown out, she swore he was no son of hers and he's back, they say he's a m
urderer too - '
'Keep muttering and I will be a murderer!' said Sirius irritably as he sla
mmed the door shut on the elf.
'Sirius, he's not right in the head,' Hermione pleaded, 'I don't think he
realises we can hear him.'
'He's been alone too long,' said Sirius, 'taking mad orders from my mother
s portrait and talking to himself, but he was always a foul little - '
'If you could just set him free,' said Hermione hopefully, 'maybe - '
'We can't set him free, he knows too much about the Order; said Sirius cur
tly. 'And anyway, the shock would kill him. You suggest to him that he leaves
this house, see how he takes it.'
Sirius walked across the room to where the tapestry Kreacher had been tryi
ng to protect hung the length of the wall. Harry and the others followed.
The tapestry looked immensely old; it was laded and looked as though Doxys
had gnawed it in places. Nevertheless, the golden thread with which it was em
broidered still glinted brightly enough to show them a sprawling family tree d
ating back (as far as Harry could tell) to the Middle Ages. Large words at the
very top of the tapestry read:
The Noble and Most Ancient House of Black
Toujours pur'
'You're not on here!' said Harry, after scanning the bottom of the tree closel
y.
'I used to be there,' said Sirius, pointing at a small, round, charred hol
e in the tapestry, rather like a cigarette burn. 'My sweet old mother blasted
me off after I ran away from home - Kreacher's quite fond of muttering the sto
ry under his breath.'
'You ran away from home?'
'When I was about sixteen,' said Sirius. 'I'd had enough.'
'Where did you go?' asked Harry, staring at him.
'Your dad's place,' said Sirius. 'Your grandparents were really good about
it; they sort of adopted me as a second son. Yeah, I camped out at your dads
in the school holidays, and when I was seventeen I got a place of my own. My U
ncle Alphard had left me a decent bit of gold - he's been wiped off here, too,
that's probably why - anyway, after that I looked after myself. I was always
welcome at Mr and Mrs Potters for Sunday lunch, though.'
'But . . . why did you . . .?'
'Leave?' Sirius smiled bitterly and ran his fingers through his long, unke
mpt hair. 'Because I hated the whole lot of them: my parents, with their pure-
blood mania, convinced that to be a Black made you practically royal . . . my
idiot brother, soft enough to believe them . . . that's him.'
Sirius jabbed a finger at the very bottom of the tree, at the name 'Regulu
s Black'. A date of death (some fifteen years previously) followed the date of
birth.
'He was younger than me,' said Sirius, 'and a much better son, as I was co
nstantly reminded.'
'But he died,' said Harry.
'Yeah,' said Sirius. 'Stupid idiot . . . he joined the Death Eaters.'
'You're kidding!'
'Come on, Harry, haven't you seen enough of this house to tell what kind o
f wizards my family were?' said Sirius testily.
'Were - were your parents Death Eaters as well?'
'No, no, but believe me, they thought Voldemort had the right idea, they w
ere all for the purification of the wizarding race, getting rid of Muggle-born
s and having pure-bloods in charge. They weren't alone, either, there were qui
te a few people, before Voldemort showed his true colours, who thought he had
the right idea about things . . . they got cold feet when they saw what he was
prepared to do to get power, though. But I bet my parents thought Regulus was
a right little hero for joining up at first.'
'Was he killed by an Auror?' Harry asked tentatively.
'Oh, no,' said Sirius. 'No, he was murdered by Voldemort. Or on Voldemort'
s orders, more likely; I doubt Regulus was ever important enough to be killed
by Voldemort in person. From what I found out after he died, he got in so far,
then panicked about what he: was being asked to do and tried to back out. Wel
l, you don't just hand in your resignation to Voldemort. It's a lifetime of se
rvice or death.'
'Lunch,' said Mrs Weasley's voice.
She was holding her wand high in front of her, balancing a huge tray loade
d with sandwiches and cake on its tip. She was very red in the face and still
looked angry. The others moved over to her, eager for some food, but Harry rem
ained with Sirius, who had bent closer to the tapestry.
'I haven't looked at this for years. There's Phineas Nigellu; . . . my gre
at-great-grandfather, see? . . . least popular Headmaster Hogwarts ever had .
. . and Araminta Meliflua . . . cousin of my mother's . . . tried to force thr
ough a Ministry Bill to make Muggle-hunting legal . . . and dear Aunt Elladora
. . . she started the family tradition of beheading house-elves when they got
too old to carry tea trays . . . of course, any time the family produced some
one halfway decent they were disowned. I see Tonks isn't on here. Maybe that's
why Kreacher won't take orders from her - he's supposed to do whatever anyone
in the family asks him - '
'You and Tonks are related?' Harry asked, surprised.
'Oh, yeah, her mother Andromeda was my favourite col sin, said Sirius, exa
mining the tapestry closely. 'No, Andromeda's not on here either, look - '
He pointed to another small round burn mark between two names, Bellatrix a
nd Narcissa.
'Andromeda's sisters are still here because they made lovely, respectable
pure-blood marriages, but Andromeda married a Muggle-born, Ted Tonks, so - '
Sirius mimed blasting the tapestry with a wand and laughed sourly. Harry,
however, did not laugh; he was too busy staring at the names to the right of A
ndromeda's burn mark. A double line of gold embroidery linked Narcissa Black w
ith Lucius Malfoy and a single vertical gold line from their names led to the
name Draco.
'You're related to the Malfoy's!'
The pure-blood families are all interrelated, said Sirius. 'If you're only
going to let your sons and daughters marry pure-bloods our choice is very lim
ited; there are hardly any of us left. Molly and I are cousins by marriage and
Arthur's something like my second cousin once removed. But there's no point l
ooking for then on here - if ever a family was a bunch of blood traitors it's
the Weaseys.'
But Harry was now looking at the name to the left of Andromeda's burn: Bel
latrix Black, which was connected by a double line to Rodolphus Lestrange.
'Lestrange . . .' Harry said aloud. The name had stirred something in his
memory; he knew it from somewhere, but for a moment he couldn't think where, t
hough it gave him an odd, creeping sensation in the pit of his stomach.
'They're in Azkaban,' said Sirius shortly.
Harry looked at him curiously.
'Bellatrix and her husband Rodolphus came in with Barty Crouch junior,' sa
id Sirius, in the same brusque voice. 'Rodolphuss brother Rabastan was with th
em, too.'
Then Harry remembered. He had seen Bellatrix Lestrange inside Dumbledore's
Pensieve, the strange device in which thoughts and memories could be stored:
a tall dark woman with heavy-lidded eyes, who had stood at her trial and procl
aimed her continuing allegiance to Lord Voldemort, her pride that she had trie
d to find him after his downfall and her conviction that she would one day be
rewarded for her loyalty.
'You never said she was your - '
'Does it matter if she's my cousin?' snapped Sirius. 'As far as I'm concer
ned, they're not my family. She's certainly not my family. I haven't seen her
since I was your age, unless you count a glimpse of her coming into Azkaban. D
'you think I'm proud of having a relative like her?'
'Sorry,' said Harry quickly, 'I didn't mean - I was just surprised, that's
all - '
'It doesn't matter, don't apologise,' Sirius mumbled. He turned away from
the tapestry, his hands deep in his pockets. 'I don't like being back here,' h
e said, staring across the drawing room. 'I never thought I'd be stuck in this
house again.'
Harry understood completely. He knew how he would feel, when he was grown
up and thought he was free of the place for ever, to return and live at number
four, Privet Drive.
'It's ideal for Headquarters, of course; Sirius said. 'My father put every
security measure known to wizardkind on it when he lived here. It's unplottab
le, so Muggles could never come and call - as if they d ever have wanted to -
and now Dumbledore's added his protection, you'd be hard put to find a safer h
ouse anywhere. Dumbledore is Secret Keeper for the Order, you know - nobody ca
n find Headquarters unless he tells them personally where it is - that note Mo
ody showed you last night, that was from Dumbledore . . .' Sirius gave a short
, bark-like laugh. 'If my parents could see the use their house was being put
to now . . . well, my mothers portrait should give you some idea.
He scowled for a moment, then sighed.
'I wouldn't mind if I could just get out occasionally and do something use
ful. I've asked Dumbledore whether I can escort you, to your hearing - as Snuf
fles, obviously - so I can give you a bit of moral support, what d'you think?'
Harry felt as though his stomach had sunk through the dusty carpet. He had
not thought about the hearing once since dinner the previous evening; in the
excitement of being back with the people he liked best, and hearing everything
that was going on, it had completely flown his mind. At Sirius's words, howev
er, the crushing sense of dread returned to him. He stared at Hermione and the
Weasleys, all tucking into their sandwiches, and thought how he would feel if
they went back to Hogwarts without him.
'Don't worry,' Sirius said. Harry looked up and realised that Sirius had b
een watching him. 'I'm sure they'll clear you, there's definitely something in
the International Statute of Secrecy about being allowed to use magic to save
your own life.'
But if they do expel me,' said Harry quietly, 'can I come back here and li
ve with you?'
Sirius smiled sadly.
'We'll see.'
'I'd feel a lot better about the hearing if I knew I didn't have to go bac
k to the Dursleys',' Harry pressed him.
They must be bad if you prefer this place,' said Sirius gloomily.
'Hurry up, you two, or there won't be any food left,' Mrs Weasley called.
Sirius heaved another great sigh, cast a dark look at the tapestry, then h
e and Harry went to join the others.
Harry tried his best not to think about the hearing while he emptied the g
lass-fronted cabinets that afternoon. Fortunately for him, it was a job that r
equired a lot of concentration, as many of the objects in there seemed very re
luctant to leave their dusty shelves. Sirius sustained a bad bite from a silve
r snuffbox; within seconds his bitten hand had developed an unpleasant crusty
covering like a tough brown glove.
'Its OK,' he said, examining the hand with interest before tapping it ligh
tly with his wand and restoring its skin to normal, 'must be Wartcap powder in
there.'
He threw the box aside into the sack where they were depositing the debris
from the cabinets; Harry saw George wrap his own hand carefully in a cloth mo
ments later and sneak the box into his already Doxy-filled pocket.
They found an unpleasant-looking silver instrument, something like a many-
legged pair of tweezers, which scuttled up Harry's arm like a spider when he p
icked it up, and attempted to puncture his skin. Sirius seized it and smashed
it with a heavy book entitled Nature's Nobility: A Wizarding Genealogy. There
was a musical box that emitted a faintly sinister, tinkling tune when wound, a
nd they all found themselves becoming curiously weak and sleepy, until Ginny h
ad the sense to slam the lid shut; a heavy locket that none of them could open
; a number of ancient seals; and, in a dusty box, an Order of Merlin, First Cl
ass, that had been awarded to Sirius's grandfather for 'services to the Minist
ry'.
'It means he gave them a load of gold,' said Sirius contemptuously throwin
g the medal into the rubbish sack.
Several times Kreacher sidled into the room and attempted to smuggle thing
s away under his loincloth, muttering horrible curses every time they caught h
im at it. When Sirius wrested a large go den ring bearing the Black crest from
his grip, Kreacher actually burst into furious tears and left the room sobbin
g under his breath and calling Sirius names Harry had never heard before.
'It was my father's,' said Sirius, throwing the ring into the sack. 'Kreac
her wasn't quite as devoted to him as to my mother, but I still caught him sno
gging a pair of my father's old trousers last week.'
*
Mrs Weasley kept them all working very hard over the next few days. The drawin
g room took three days to decontaminate. Finally, the only undesirable things
left in it were the tapestry of the Black family tree, which resisted all thei
r attempts to remove it from the wall, and the rattling writing desk. Moody ha
d not dropped by Headquarters yet, so they could not be sure what was inside i
t.
They moved from the drawing room to a dining room on the ground floor wher
e they found spiders as large as saucers lurking in the dresser (Ron left the
room hurriedly to make a cup of tea and did not return for an hour and a half)
. The china, which bore the Black crest and motto, was all thrown unceremoniou
sly into a sack by Sirius, and the same fate met a set of old photographs in t
arnished silver frames, all of whose occupants squealed shrilly as the glass c
overing them smashed.
Snape might refer to their work as 'cleaning', but in Harry's opinion they
were really waging war on the house, which was putting up a very good fight,
aided and abetted by Kreacher. The house-elf kept appearing wherever they were
congregated, his muttering becoming more and more offensive as he attempted t
o remove anything he could from the rubbish sacks. Sirius went as far as to th
reaten him with clothes, but Kreacher fixed him with a watery stare and said,
'Master must do as Master wishes,' before turning away and muttering very loud
ly, 'but Master will not turn Kreacher away, no, because Kreacher knows what t
hey are up to, oh yes, he is plotting against the Dark Lord, yes, with these M
udblood and traitors and scum . . .'
At which Sirius, ignoring Hermione's protests, seized Kreacher by the back
of his loincloth and threw him bodily from the room.
The doorbell rang several times a day, which was the cue for Sirius's moth
er to start shrieking again, and for Harry and the others to attempt to eavesd
rop on the visitor, though they gleaned very little from the brief glimpses an
d snatches of conversation they were able to sneak before Mrs Weasley recalled
them to their tasks. Snape flitted in and out of the house several times more
, though to Harry's relief they never came face to face; Harry also caught sig
ht of his Transfiguration teacher Professor McGonagall, looking very odd in a
Muggle dress and coat, and she also seemed too busy to linger. Sometimes, howe
ver, the visitors stayed to help. Tonks joined them for a memorable afternoon
in which they found a murderous old ghoul lurking in an upstairs toilet, and L
upin, who was staying in the house with Sirius but who left it for long period
s to do mysterious work for the Order, helped them repair a grandfather clock
that had developed the unpleasant habit of shooting heavy bolts at passers-by.
Mundungus redeemed himself slightly in Mrs Weasley's eyes by rescuing Ron from an anci
ent set of purple robes that had tried to strangle him when he removed them fr
om their wardrobe.
Despite the fact that he was still sleeping badly, still having dreams abo
ut corridors and locked doors that made his scar prickle, Harry was managing t
o have fun for the first time all summer. As long as he was busy he was happy;
when the action abated, however, whenever he dropped his guard, or lay exhaus
ted in bed watching blurred shadows move across the ceiling, the thought of th
e looming Ministry hearing returned to him. Fear jabbed at his insides like ne
edles as he wondered what was going to happen to him if he was expelled. The i
dea was so terrible that he did not dare voice it aloud, not even to Ron and H
ermione, who, though he often saw them whispering together and casting anxious
looks in his direction, followed his lead in not mentioning it. Sometimes, he
could not prevent his imagination showing him a faceless Ministry official wh
o was snapping his wand in two and ordering him back to the Dursleys' . . . bu
t he would not go. He was determined on that. He would come back here to Grimm
auld Place and live with Sirius.
He felt as though a brick had dropped into his stomach when Mrs Weasley tu
rned to him during dinner on Wednesday evening and said quietly, 'I've ironed
your best clothes for tomorrow morning, Harry, and I want you to wash your hai
r tonight, too. A good first impression can work wonders.'
Ron, Hermione, Fred, George and Ginny all stopped talking and looked over
at him. Harry nodded and tried to keep eating his chop, but his mouth had beco
me so dry he could not chew.
'How am I getting there?' he asked Mrs Weasley, trying to sound unconcerne
d.
'Arthur's taking you to work with him,' said Mrs Weasley gently.
Mr Weasley smiled encouragingly at Harry across the table.
'You can wait in my office until it's time for the hearing,' he said.
Harry looked over at Sirius, but before he could ask the question, Mrs Wea
sley had answered it.
'Professor Dumbledore doesn't think it's a good idea for Sirius to go with
you, and I must say I - '
' - think he's quite right,' said Sirius through clenched teeth.
Mrs Weasley pursed her lips.
'When did Dumbledore tell you that?' Harry said, staring at Sirius.
'He came last night, when you were in bed,' said Mr Weasley
Sirius stabbed moodily at a potato with his fork. Harry lowered his own ey
es to his plate. The thought that Dumbledore had been in the house on the eve
of his hearing and not asked to see him made him feel, if it were possible, ev
en worse.
- CHAPTER SEVEN -
The Ministry of Magic
Harry awoke at half past five the next morning as abruptly and completely as i
f somebody had yelled in his ear. For a few moments he lay immobile as the pro
spect of the disciplinary hearing filled every tiny particle of his brain, the
n, unable to bear it, he leapt out of bed and put on his glasses. Mrs Weasley
had laid out his freshly laundered jeans and T-shirt at the foot of his bed. H
arry scrambled into them. The blank picture on the wall sniggered.
Ron was lying sprawled on his back with his mouth wide open, fast asleep.
He did not stir as Harry crossed the room, stepped out on to the landing and c
losed the door softly behind him. Trying net to think of the next time he woul
d see Ron, when they might no longer be fellow students at Hogwarts, Harry wal
ked quietly down the stairs, past the heads of Kreacher's ancestors, and down
into the kitchen.
He had expected it to be empty, but when he reached the door he heard the
soft rumble of voices on the other side. He pushed it open and saw Mr and Mrs
Weasley, Sirius, Lupin and Tonks sitting there almost as though they were wait
ing for him. All were fully dressed except Mrs Weasley, who was wearing a quil
ted purple dressing gown. She leapt to her feet the moment Harry entered.
'Breakfast,' she said as she pulled out her wand and hurried over to the f
ire.
'M - m - morning, Harry,' yawned Tonks. Her hair was blonde and curly this
morning. 'Sleep all right?'
'Yeah,' said Harry.
'I've b - b - been up all night,' she said, with another shuddering yawn.
'Come and sit down . . .'
She drew out a chair, knocking over the one beside it ir the process.
'What do you want, Harry?' Mrs Weasley called. 'Porridge? Muffins? Kippers
? Bacon and eggs? Toast?'
'Just - just toast, thanks,' said Harry.
Lupin glanced at Harry, then said to Tonks, 'What were you saying about Sc
rimgeour?'
'Oh . . . yeah . . . well, we need to be a bit more careful, he's been ask
ing Kingsley and me funny questions . . .'
Harry felt vaguely grateful that he was not required to join in the conver
sation. His insides were squirming. Mrs Weasley placed a couple of pieces of t
oast and marmalade in front of him; he tried to eat, but it was like chewing c
arpet. Mrs Weasley sat down on his other side and started fussing with his T-s
hirt, tucking in the label and smoothing out the creases across his shoulders.
He wished she wouldn't.
'. . . and I'll have to tell Dumbledore I can't do night duty tomorrow, I'
m just t - t - too tired,' Tonks finished, yawning hugely again.
'Ill cover for you,' said Mr Weasley. 'I'm OK, I've got a report to finish
anyway
Mr Weasley was not wearing wizards' robes but a pair of pinstriped trouser
s and an old bomber jacket. He turned from Tonks to Harry.
'How are you feeling?'
Harry shrugged.
'It'll all be over soon,' Mr Weasley said bracingly. 'In a few hours' time
you'll be cleared.'
Harry said nothing.
The hearings on my floor, in Amelia Bones's office. She's Head of the Depa
rtment of Magical Law Enforcement, and the one who'll be questioning you.'
'Amelia Bones is OK, Harry,' said Tonks earnestly. 'She's fair, she'll hea
r you out.'
Harry nodded, still unable to think of anything to say.
'Don't lose your temper,' said Sirius abruptly. 'Be polite and stick to th
e facts.'
Harry nodded again.
The law's on your side,' said Lupin quietly. 'Even underage wizards are al
lowed to use magic in life-threatening situations.'
Something very cold trickled down the back of Harry's neck; for a moment h
e thought someone was putting a Disillusionment Charm on him, then he realised
that Mrs Weasley was attacking his hair with a wet comb. She pressed hard on
the top of his head.
'Doesn't it ever lie flat?' she said desperately.
Harry shook his head.
Mr Weasley checked his watch and looked up at Harry. I think we'll go now,
' he said. 'We're a bit early, but I think you 11 be better off at the Ministr
y than hanging around here.'
'OK,' said Harry automatically, dropping his toast and getting to his feet
.
'You'll be all right, Harry,' said Tonks, palling him on the arm.
'Good luck,' said Lupin. 'I'm sure it will be fine.'
'And if it's not,' said Sirius grimly, 'I'll see to Amelia Bones for you .
. .'
Harry smiled weakly. Mrs Weasley hugged him.
'We've all got our fingers crossed,' she said.
'Right,' said Harry. 'Well . . . see you later then.'
He followed Mr Weasley upstairs and along the hall. He could hear Sirius's
mother grunting in her sleep behind her curtains. Mr Weasley unbolted the doo
r and they stepped out into the cold, grey dawn.
'You don't normally walk to work, do you?' Harry asked him, as they set of
f briskly around the square.
'No, I usually Apparate,' said Mr Weasley, 'but obviously you can't, and I
think it's best we arrive in a thoroughly non-magical fashion . . . makes a b
etter impression, given what you're being disciplined for . . .'
Mr Weasley kept his hand inside his jacket as they walked. Harry knew it w
as clenched around his wand. The run-down streets were al most deserted, but w
hen they arrived at the miserable little underground station they found it alr
eady lull of early-morning commuters. As ever when he found himself in close p
roximity to Muggles going about their daily business, Mr Weasley was hard put
to contain his enthusiasm.
'Simply fabulous,' he whispered, indicating the automatic ticket machines.
'Wonderfully ingenious.'
They're out of order,' said Harry, pointing at the sign.
'Yes, but even so . . .' said Mr Weasley, beaming at them fondly.
They bought their tickets instead from a sleepy-looking guard (Harry handl
ed the transaction, as Mr Weasley was not very good with Muggle money) and fiv
e minutes later they were boarding an underground train that rattled them off
towards the centre of London. Mr Weasley kept anxiously checking and re-checki
ng the Underground Map above the windows.
'Four more stops, Harry . . . Three stops led now . . . Two stops to go, H
arry . . .'
They got off at a station in the very heart of London, and were swept from
the train in a tide of besuited men and women carrying briefcases. Up the esc
alator they went, through the ticket barrier (Mr Weasley delighted with the wa
y the stile swallowed his ticket), and emerged on to a broad street lined with
imposing-looking buildings and already full of traffic.
'Where are we?' said Mr Weasley blankly, and for one heart-stopping moment
Harry thought they had got off at the wrong station despite Mr Weasley's cont
inual references to the map; but a second later he said, 'Ah yes . . . this wa
y, Harry,' and led him down a side road.
'Sorry,' he said, 'but I never come by train and it all looks rather diffe
rent from a Muggle perspective. As a matter of fact, I've never even used the
visitors' entrance before.'
The further they walked, the smaller and less imposing the buildings becam
e, until finally they reached a street that contained several rather shabby-lo
oking offices, a pub and an overflowing skip. Harry had expected a rather more
impressive location for the Ministry of Magic.
'Here we are,' said Mr Weasley brightly, pointing at an old red telephone
box, which was missing several panes of glass and stood before a heavily graff
itied wall. 'After you, Harry.'
He opened the telephone-box door.
Harry stepped inside, wondering what on earth this was about. Mr Weasley f
olded himself in beside Harry and closed the door. It was a tight fit; Harry w
as jammed against the telephone apparatus, which was hanging crookedly from th
e wall as though a vandal had tried to rip it off. Mr Weasley reached past Har
ry for the receiver.
'Mr Weasley, I think this might be out of order, too,' Harry said.
'No, no, I'm sure its fine,' said Mr Weasley, holding the receiver above h
is head and peering at the dial. 'Let's see . . . six . . .' he dialled the nu
mber, 'two . . . four . . . and another four . . . and another two . . .'
As the dial whirred smoothly back into place, a cool female voice sounded
inside the telephone box, not from the receiver in Mr Weasley's hand, but as l
oudly and plainly as though an invisible woman were standing right beside them
.
'Welcome to the Ministry of Magic. Please state your name and business.'
'Er . . .' said Mr Weasley, clearly uncertain whether or not he should tal
k into the receiver. He compromised by holding the mouthpiece to his ear, 'Art
hur Weasley, Misuse of Muggle Artefacts Office, here to escort Harry Potter, w
ho has been asked to attend a disciplinary hearing . . .'
'Thank you,' said the cool female voice. 'Visitor, please take the badge a
nd attach it to the front of your robes.'
There was a click and a rattle, and Harry saw something slide out of the m
etal chute where returned coins usually appeared. He picked it up: it was a sq
uare silver badge with Harry Potter, Disciplinary Hearing on it. He pinned it
to the front of his T-shirt as the female voice spoke again.
'Visitor to the Ministry, you are required to submit to a search and prese
nt your wand for registration at the security desk, which is located at the fa
r end of the Atrium '
The floor of the telephone box shuddered. They were sinking slowly into th
e ground. Harry watched apprehensively as the pavement seemed to rise up past
the glass windows of the telephone box until darkness closed over their heads.
Then he could see nothing at all; he could hear only a dull grinding noise as
the telephone box made its way down through the earth. After about a minute,
though it felt much longer to Harry, a chink of golden light illuminated his f
eet and, widening, rose up his body, until it hit him in the face and he had t
o blink to stop his eyes watering.
'The Ministry of Magic wishes you a pleasant day,' said the woman's voice.
The door of the telephone box sprang open and Mr Weasley stepped out of it
, followed by Harry, whose mouth had fallen open.
They were standing at one end of a very long and splendid hall with a high
ly polished, dark wood floor. The peacock blue ceiling was inlaid with gleamin
g golden symbols that kept moving and changing like some enormous heavenly not
iceboard. The wall's on each side were panelled in shiny dark wood and had man
y gilded fireplaces set into them. Every few seconds a witch or wizard would e
merge from one of the left-hand fireplaces with a soft whoosh. On the right-ha
nd side, short queues were forming before each fireplace, waiting to depart.
Halfway down the hall was a fountain. A group of golden statues, larger th
an life-size, stood in the middle of a circular pool. Tallest of them all was
a noble-looking wizard with his wand pointing straight up in the air. Grouped
around him were a beautiful witch, a centaur, a goblin and a house-elf. The la
st three were all locking adoringly up at the witch and wizard. Glittering jet
s of water were flying from the ends of their wands, the point of the centaurs
a tow, the tip of the goblin's hat and each of the house-elf's ears, so that
the tinkling hiss of falling water was added to the pops and cracks of the App
arators and the clatter of footsteps as hundreds of witches and wizards, most
of whom were wearing glum, early-morning looks, strode towards a set of golden
gates at the far end of the hall
'This way,' said Mr Weasley.
They joined the throng, wending their way between the Ministry workers, so
me of whom were carrying tottering piles of parchment, others battered briefca
ses; still others were reading the Daily Prophet while they walked. As they pa
ssed the fountain Harry saw silver Sickles and bronze Knuts glinting up at him
from the bottom of the pool. A small smudged sign beside it read:
ALL PROCEEDS FROM THE FOUNTAIN OF MAGICAL BRETHREN WILL BE GIVEN TO ST MUNGO'S
HOSPITAL FOR MAGICAL MALADIES AND INJURIES.
If I'm not expelled from Hogwarts, I'll put in ten Galleons, Harry found himse
lf thinking desperately.
'Over here, Harry,' said Mr Weasley, and they stepped out of the stream of
Ministry employees heading for the golden gates. Seated at a desk to the left
, beneath a sign saying Security, a badly-shaven wizard in peacock blue robes
looked up as they approached and put down his Daily Prophet.
'I'm escorting a visitor,' said Mr Weasley, gesturing towards Harry.
'Step over here,' said the wizard in a bored voice.
Harry walked closer to him and the wizard held up a long golden rod, thin
and flexible as a car aerial, and passed it up and down Harry's front and back
.
'Wand,' grunted the security wizard at Harry, putting down the golden inst
rument and holding out his hand.
Harry produced his wand. The wizard dropped it on to a strange brass instr
ument, which looked something like a set of scales with only one dish. It bega
n to vibrate. A narrow strip of parchment came speeding out of a slit in the b
ase. The wizard tore this off and read the writing on it.
'Eleven inches, phoenix-feather core, been in use four years. That correct
?'
'Yes,' said Harry nervously.
'I keep this,' said the wizard, impaling the slip of parchment on a small
brass spike. 'You get this back,' he added, thrusting the wand at Harry.
Thank you.'
'Hang on . . .' said the wizard slowly.
His eyes had darted from the silver visitor's badge on Harry's chest to hi
s forehead.
Thank you, Eric,' said Mr Weasley firmly, and grasping Harry by the should
er he steered him away from the desk and back into the stream of wizards and w
itches walking through the golden gates.
Jostled slightly by the crowd, Harry followed Mr Weasley through the gates
into the smaller hall beyond, where at least twenty lifts stood behind wrough
t golden grilles. Harry and Mr Weasley joined the crowd around one of them. Ne
arby, stood a big bearded wizard holding a large cardboard box which was emitt
ing rasping noises.
'All right, Arthur?' said the wizard, nodding at Mr Weasley.
What've you got there, Bob?' asked Mr Weasley, looking at the box.
'We're not sure,' said the wizard seriously. 'We thought it was a bog-stan
dard chicken until it started breathing fire. Looks like a serious breach of t
he Ban on Experimental Breeding to me.'
With a great jangling and clattering a lift descended in front of them; th
e golden grille slid back and Harry and Mr Weasley stepped into the lift with
the rest of the crowd and Harry found himself jammed against the back wall. Se
veral witches and wizards were looking at him curiously; he stared at his feet
to avoid catching anyone's eye, flattening his fringe as he did so. The grill
es slid shut with a crash and the lift ascended slowly, chains rattling, while
the same cool female voice Harry had heard in the telephone box rang out agai
n.
'Level Seven, Department of Magical Games and Sports, incorporating the Br
itish and Irish Quidditch League Headquarters, Official Gobstones Club and Lud
icrous Patents Office.'
The lift doors opened. Harry glimpsed an untidy-looking corridor, with var
ious posters of Quidditch teams tacked lopsidedly on the walls. One of the wiz
ards in the lift, who was carrying an armful of broomsticks, extricated himsel
f with difficulty and disappeared down the corridor. The doors closed, the lif
t juddered upwards again and the woman's voice announced:
'Level Six, Department of Magical Transportation, incorporating the Floo N
etwork Authority, Broom Regulatory Control, Portkey Office and Apparation Test
Centre.'
Once again the lift doors opened and four or five witches and wizards got
out; at the same time, several paper aeroplanes swooped into the lift. Harry s
tared up at them as they flapped idly around above his head; they were a pale
violet colour and he could see Ministry of Magic stamped along the edge of the
ir wings.
'Just inter-departmental memos,' Mr Weasley muttered to him. 'We used to u
se owls, but the mess was unbelievable . . . droppings a I over the desks
As they clattered upwards again the memos flapped around the lamp swaying
from the lift's ceiling.
'Level Five, Department of International Magical Co-operation, incorporati
ng the International Magical Trading Standards Body, the International Magical
Office of Law and the International Confederation of Wizards, British Seats.'
When the doors opened, two of the memos zoomed out with a few more of the
witches and wizards, but several more memos zoomed in, so that the light from
the lamp flickered and flashed overhead as they darted around it.
'Level Four, Department for the Regulation and Control of Magical Creature
s, incorporating Beast, Being and Spirit Divisions, Goblin Liaison Office and
Pest Advisory Bureau.
' 'S'cuse,' said the wizard carrying the fire-breathing chicken and he lef
t the lift pursued by a little flock of memos. The doors clanged shut yet agai
n.
'Level Three, Department of Magical Accidents and Catastrophes, including
the Accidental Magic Reversal Squad, Obliviator Headquarters and Muggle-Worthy
Excuse Committee.'
Everybody left the lift on this floor except Mr Weasley, Harry and a witch
who was reading an extremely long piece of parchment that was trailing on the
floor. The remaining memos continued to soar around the lamp as the lift judd
ered upwards again, then the doors opened and the voice made its announcement.
'Level Two, Department of Magical Law Enforcement, including the Improper
Use of Magic Office, Auror Headquarters and Wizengamot Administration Services
.'
'This is us, Harry,' said Mr Weasley, and they followed the witch out of t
he lift into a corridor lined with doors. 'My office is on the other side of t
he floor.'
'Mr Weasley,' said Harry, as they passed a window through which sunlight w
as streaming, 'aren't we still underground?'
'Yes, we are,' said Mr Weasley. Those are enchanted windows. Magical Maint
enance decide what weather we'll get every day. We had two months of hurricane
s last time they were angling for a pay rise . . . Just round here, Harry.'
They turned a corner, walked through a pair of heavy oak doors and emerged
in a cluttered open area divided into cubicles, which was buzzing with talk a
nd laughter. Memos were zooming in and out of cubicles like miniature rockets.
A lopsided sign on the nearest cubicle read: Auror Headquarters.
Harry looked surreptitiously through the doorways as they passed. The Auro
rs had covered their cubicle walls with everything From pictures of wanted wiz
ards and photographs of their families, to posters of their favourite Quidditc
h teams and articles from the Daily Prophet. A scarlet-robed man with a ponyta
il longer than Bill's was sitting with his boots up on his desk, dictating a r
eport to his quill. A little further along, a witch with a patch over one eye
was talking over the top of her cubicle wall to Kingsley Shacklebolt.
'Morning, Weasley,' said Kingsley carelessly, as they drew nearer. I've be
en wanting a word with you, have you got a second?'
'Yes, if it really is a second,' said Mr Weasley, 'I'm in rather a hurry.'
They were talking as though they hardly knew each other and when Harry ope
ned his mouth to say hello to Kingsley, Mr We ashy stood on his foot. They fol
lowed Kingsley along the row and into the very last cubicle.
Harry received a slight shock; blinking down at him from every direction w
as Sirius's face. Newspaper cuttings and old photographs - even the one of Sir
ius being best man at the Potters' wedding - 'papered the walls. The only Siri
us-free space was a map of the world in which little red pins were glowing lik
e jewels.
'Here,' said Kingsley brusquely to Mr Weasley, shoving a sheaf of parchmen
t into his hand. 'I need as much information as possible on flying Muggle vehi
cles sighted in the last twelve months. We've received information that Black
might still be using his old motorcycle.'
Kingsley tipped Harry an enormous wink and added, in a whisper, 'Give him
the magazine, he might find it interesting.' Then he said in normal tones, 'An
d don't take too long, Weasley, the delay on that firelegs report held our inv
estigation up for a month.'
'If you had read my report you would know that the term is firearms,' said
Mr Weasley coolly. 'And I'm afraid you'll have to wait for information on mot
orcycles; we're extremely busy at the moment.' He dropped his voice and said,
'If you can get away before seven, Molly's making meatballs.'
He beckoned to Harry and led him out of Kingsley's cubicle, through a seco
nd set of oak doors, into another passage, turned left, marched along another
corridor, turned right into a dimly lit and distinctly shabby corridor, and fi
nally reached a dead end, where a door on the left stood ajar, revealing a bro
om cupboard, and a door on the right bore a tarnished brass plaque reading: Mi
suse of Muggle Artefacts.
Mr Weasley's dingy office seemed to be slightly smaller than the broom cup
board. Two desks had been crammed inside it and there was barely space to move
around them because of all the overflowing filing cabinets lining the walls,
on top of which were tottering piles of files. The little wall space available
bore witness to Mr Weasley's obsessions: several posters of cars, including o
ne of a dismantled engine; two illustrations of postboxes he seemed to have cu
t out of Muggle children's books; and a diagram showing how to wire a plug.
Sitting on top of Mr Weasley's overflowing in-tray was an old toaster that
was hiccoughing in a disconsolate way and a pair of empty leather gloves that
were twiddling their thumbs. A photograph of the Weasley family stood beside
the in-tray. Harry noticed that Percy appeared to have walked out of it.
'We haven't got a window,' said Mr Weasley apologetically, taking off his
bomber jacket and placing it on the back of his chair. 'We've asked, but they
don't seem to think we need one. Have a seat, Harry, doesn't look as if Perkin
s is in yet.'
Harry squeezed himself into the chair behind Perkins's desk while Mr Weasl
ey riffled through the sheaf of parchment Kingsley Shacklebolt had given him.
'Ah,' he said, grinning, as he extracted a copy of a magazine entitled The
Quibbler from its midst, 'yes . . .' He flicked through it. 'Yes, he's right,
I'm sure Sirius will find that very amusing - oh dear, what's this now?'
A memo had just zoomed in through the open door and fluttered to rest on t
op of the hiccoughing toaster. Mr Weasley unfolded it and read it aloud.
"Third regurgitating public toilet reported in Bethnal Green, kindly inves
tigate immediately." This is getting ridiculous . . .'
'A regurgitating toilet?'
'Anti-Muggle pranksters,' said Mr Weasley, frowning. 'We had two last week
, one in Wimbledon, one in Elephant and Castle. Muggles are pulling the flush
and instead of everything disappearing - well, you can imagine. The poor thing
s keep calling in those - pumbles, I think they're called - you know, the ones
who mend pipes and things.'
'Plumbers?'
'Exactly, yes, but of course they're flummoxed, f only hope we can catch w
hoever's doing it.'
'Will it be Aurors who catch them?'
'Oh no, this is too trivial for Aurors, it'll be the ordinary Magical Law
Enforcement Patrol - ah, Harry, this is Perkins.'
A stooped, timid-looking old wizard with fluffy white hair had just entere
d the room, panting.
'Oh, Arthur!' he said desperately, without looking at Harry. Thank goodnes
s, I didn't know what to do for the best, whether to wait here for you or not.
I've just sent an owl to your home but you've obviously missed it - an urgent
message came ten minutes ago - '
'I know about the regurgitating toilet,' said Mr Weasley.
'No, no, it's not the toilet, it's the Potter boy's hearing - they've chan
ged the time and venue - it starts at eight o'clock now and it's down in old C
ourtroom Ten - '
'Down in old - but they told me - Merlin's beard!'
Mr Weasley looked at his watch, let out a yelp and leapt from his chair.
'Quick, Harry, we should have been there five minutes ago!'
Perkins flattened himself against the filing cabinets as Mr Weasley left t
he office at a run, Harry close on his heels.
'Why have they changed the time?' Harry said breathlessly, as they hurtled
past the Auror cubicles; people poked out their heads and stared as they stre
aked past. Harry felt as though he'd felt all his insides back at Perkins's de
sk.
'I've no idea, but thank goodness we got here so early, if you'd missed it
, it would have been catastrophic!'
Mr Weasley skidded to a halt beside the lifts and jabbed impatiently at th
e 'down' button.
'Come ON!'
The lift clattered into view and they hurried inside. Every time it stoppe
d Mr Weasley cursed furiously and pummelled the number nine button.
'Those courtrooms haven't been used in years,' said Mr Weasley angrily. 'I
can't think why they're doing it down there - unless - but no - '
A plump witch carrying a smoking goblet entered the lift at that moment, a
nd Mr Weasley did not elaborate.
'The Atrium,' said the cool female voice and the golden grilles slid open,
showing Harry a distant glimpse of the golden statues in the fountain. The pl
ump witch got out and a sallow-skinned wizard with a very mournful face got in
.
'Morning, Arthur,' he said in a sepulchral voice as the lift began to desc
end. 'Don't often see you down here.'
'Urgent business, Bode,' said Mr Weasley, who was bouncing on the balls of
his feet and throwing anxious looks over at Harry.
'Ah, yes,' said Bode, surveying Harry unblinkingly. 'Of course.'
Harry barely had emotion to spare for Bode, but his unfaltering gaze did n
ot make him feel any more comfortable.
'Department of Mysteries,' said the cool female voice, and left it at that
.
'Quick, Harry,' said Mr Weasley as the lift doors rattled open, and they s
ped up a corridor that was quite different from those above. The walls were ba
re; there were no windows and no doors apart from a plain black one set at the
very end of the corridor. Harry expected them to go through it, but instead M
r Weasley seized him by the arm and dragged him to the left, where there was a
n opening leading to a flight of steps.
'Down here, down here,' panted Mr Weasley, taking two steps at a time. The
lift doesn't even come down this far . . . why they're doing it down there I
, . .'
They reached the bottom of the steps and ran along yet another corridor, w
hich bore a great resemblance to the one that led to Snape's dungeon at Hogwar
ts, with rough stone walls and torches in brackets. The doors they passed here
were heavy wooden ones with iron bolts and keyholes.
'Courtroom . . . Ten . . . I think . . . we're nearly . . . yes.'
Mr Weasley stumbled to a halt outside a grimy dark door with an immense ir
on lock and slumped against the wall, clutching at a stitch in his chest.
'Go on,' he panted, pointing his thumb at the door. 'Get in there.'
'Aren't - aren't you coming with - ?'
'No, no, I'm not allowed. Good luck!'
Harry's heart was beating a violent tattoo against his Adams apple. He swa
llowed hard, turned the heavy iron door handle and stepped inside the courtroo
m.
- CHAPTER EIGHT -
The Hearing
Harry gasped; he could not help himself. The large dungeon he had entered was
horribly familiar. He had not only seen it before, he had been here before. Th
is was the place he had visited inside Dumbledore's Pensieve, the place where
he had watched the Lestranges sentenced to life imprisonment in Azkaban.
The walls were made of dark stone, dimly lit by torches. Empty benches ros
e on either side of him, but ahead, in the highest benches of all, were many s
hadowy figures. They had been talking in low voices, but as the heavy door swu
ng closed behind Harry an ominous silence fell.
A cold male voice rang across the courtroom.
'You're late.'
'Sorry,' said Harry nervously. 'I - I didn't know the time had been change
d.'
'That is not the Wizengamot's fault,' said the voice. 'An owl was sent to
you this morning. Take your seat.'
Harry dropped his gaze to the chair in the centre of the room, the arms of
which were covered in chains. He had seen those chains spring to life and bin
d whoever sat between them. His footsteps echoed loudly as he walked across th
e stone floor. When he sat gingerly on the edge of the chair the chains clinke
d threateningly, but did not bind him. Feeling rather sick, he looked up at th
e people seated at the bench above.
There were about fifty of them, all, as far as he could see, wearing plum-
coloured robes with an elaborately worked silver 'W' on the left-hand side of
the chest and all staring down their noses at him, some with very austere expr
essions, others looks of frank curiosity.
In the very middle of the front row sat Cornelius Fudge, the Minister for
Magic. Fudge was a portly man who often sported a lime-green bowler hat, thoug
h today he had dispensed with it; he had dispensed, too, with the indulgent sm
ile he had once worn when he spoke to Harry. A broad, square-jawed witch with
very short grey hair sat on Fudges left; she wore a monocle and looked forbidd
ing. On Fudges right was another witch, but she was sitting so far back on the
bench that her face was in shadow.
'Very well,' said Fudge. 'The accused being present - finally - let us beg
in. Are you ready?' he called down the row.
'Yes, sir,' said an eager voice Harry knew. Ron's brother Percy was sittin
g at the very end of the front bench. Harry looked at Percy, expecting some si
gn of recognition from him, but none came. Percy's eyes, behind his horn-rimme
d glasses, were fixed on his parchment, a quill poised in his hand.
'Disciplinary hearing of the twelfth of August,' said Fudge in a ringing v
oice, and Percy began taking notes at once, 'into offences committed under the
Decree for the Reasonable Restriction of Underage Sorcery and the Internation
al Statute of Secrecy by Harry-James Potter, resident at number four, Privet D
rive, Little Whinging, Surrey.
'Interrogators: Cornelius Oswald Fudge, Minister for Magic; Amelia Susan B
ones, Head of the Department of Magical Law Enforcement; Dolores Jane Umbridge
, Senior Undersecretary to the Minister. Court Scribe, Percy Ignatius Weasley
- '
'Witness for the defence, Albus Percival Wulfric Brian Dumbledore,' said a
quiet voice from behind Harry, who turned his head so fast he cricked his nec
k.
Dumbledore was striding serenely across the room wearing long midnight-blu
e robes and a perfectly calm expression. His long silver beard and hair gleame
d in the torchlight as he drew level with Harry and looked up at Fudge through
the half-moon spectacles that rested halfway down his very crooked nose.
The members of the Wizengamot were muttering. All eyes were now on Dumbled
ore. Some looked annoyed, others slightly frightened; two elderly witches in t
he back row, however, raised their hands and waved in welcome.
A powerful emotion had risen in Harry's chest at the sight of Dumbledore,
a fortified, hopeful feeling rather like that which phoenix song gave him. He
wanted to catch Dumbledore's eye, but Dumbledore was not looking his way; he w
as continuing to look up at the obviously flustered Fudge.
'Ah,' said Fudge, who looked thoroughly disconcerted. 'Dumbledore. Yes. Yo
u - er - got our - er - message that the time and - er - place of the hearing
had been changed, then?'
'I must have missed it,' said Dumbledore cheerfully. 'However, due to a lu
cky mistake I arrived at the Ministry three hours early, so no harm done.'
'Yes - well - I suppose we'll need another chair - I - Weasley, could you
- ?'
'Not to worry, not to worry,' said Dumbledore pleasantly; he took out his
wand, gave it a little flick, and a squashy chintz armchair appeared out of no
where next to Harry. Dumbledore sat down, out the tips of his long fingers tog
ether and surveyed Fudge over them with an expression of polite interest. The
Wizengamot was still muttering and fidgeting restlessly; only when Fudge spoke
again did they settle down.
'Yes,' said Fudge again, shuffling his notes. 'Well, then. So. The charges
. Yes.'
He extricated a piece of parchment from the pile before him, took a deep b
reath, and read out, The charges against the accused are as follows:
That he did knowingly, deliberately and in full awareness of the illegalit
y of his actions, having received a previous written warning from the Ministry
of Magic on a similar charge, produce a Patronus Charm in a Muggle-inhabited
area, in the presence of a Muggle, on the second of August at twenty-three min
utes past nine, which constitutes an offence under Paragraph C of the Decree f
or the Reasonable Restriction of Underage Sorcery, 1875, and also under Sectio
n 13 of the International Confederation of Warlocks' Statute of Secrecy.
'You are Harry James Potter, of number four, Privet Drive, Little Whinging
, Surrey?' Fudge said, glaring at Harry over the top of his parchment.
'Yes,' Harry said.
'You received an official warning from the Ministry for using illegal magi
c three years ago, did you not?'
'Yes, but - '
'And yet you conjured a Patronus on the night of the second of August?' sa
id Fudge.
'Yes,' said Harry, 'but - '
'Knowing that you are not permitted to use magic outside school while you
are under the age of seventeen?'
'Yes, but - '
'Knowing that you were in an area full of Muggles?'
'Yes, but - '
'Fully aware that you were in close proximity to a Muggle at the time?'
'Yes,' said Harry angrily, 'but I only used it because we were - '
The witch with the monocle cut across him in a booming voice.
'You produced a fully-fledged Patronus?'
'Yes,' said Harry, 'because - '
'A corporeal Patronus?'
'A - what?' said Harry.
'Your Patronus had a clearly defined form? I mean to say, it was more than
vapour or smoke?'
'Yes,' said Harry, feeling both impatient and slightly desperate, 'it's a
stag, it's always a stag.'
'Always?' boomed Madam Bones. 'You have produced a Patronus before now?'
'Yes,' said Harry, 'I've been doing it for over a year.'
'And you are fifteen years old?'
'Yes, and - '
'You learned this at school?'
'Yes, Professor Lupin taught me in my third year, because of the - '
'Impressive,' said Madam Bones, staring down at him, 'a true Patronus at h
is age . . . very impressive indeed.'
Some of the wizards and witches around her were muttering again; a few nod
ded, but others were frowning and shaking their heads.
'It's not a question of how impressive the magic was,' said Fudge in a tes
ty voice, 'in fact, the more impressive the worse it is, I would have thought,
given that the boy did it in plain view of a Muggle!'
Those who had been frowning now murmured in agreement, but it was the sigh
t of Percy's sanctimonious little nod that goaded Harry into speech.
'I did it because of the Dementors!' he said loudly, before anyone could i
nterrupt him again.
He had expected more muttering, but the silence that fell seemed to be som
ehow denser than before.
'Dementors?' said Madam Bones after a moment, her thick eyebrows rising un
til her monocle looked in danger of falling out. 'What do you mean, boy?'
'I mean there were two Dementors down that alleyway and they went for me a
nd my cousin!'
'Ah,' said Fudge again, smirking unpleasantly as he looked around at the W
izengamot, as though inviting them to share the joke. 'Yes. Yes, I thought we'
d be hearing something like this.'
'Dementors in Little Whinging?' Madam Bones said, in a tone of great surpr
ise. 'I don't understand - '
'Don't you, Amelia?' said Fudge, still smirking. 'Let me explain. He's bee
n thinking it through and decided Dementors would make a very nice little cove
r story very nice indeed. Muggles can't see Dementors, can they, boy? Highly c
onvenient, highly convenient . . . so it's just your word and no witnesses . .
.'
'I'm not lying!' said Harry loudly, over another outbreak of muttering fro
m the court. There were two of them, coming from opposite ends of the alley ev
erything went dark and cold and my cousin felt them and ran for it - '
'Enough, enough!' said Fudge, with a very supercilious look on his face. '
I'm sorry to interrupt what I'm sure would have been a very well-rehearsed sto
ry - '
Dumbledore cleared his throat. The Wizengamot fell silent again.
'We do, in fact, have a witness to the presence of Dementors in that alley
way,' he said, 'other than Dudley Dursley, I mean.'
Fudges plump face seemed to slacken, as though somebody had let air out of
it. He stared down at Dumbledore for a moment or two, then, with the appearan
ce of a man pulling himself back together, said, 'We haven't got time to liste
n to more tarradiddles, I'm afraid, Dumbledore. I want this dealt with quickly
- '
'I may be wrong,' said Dumbledore pleasantly, 'but I am sure that under th
e Wizengamot Charter of Rights, the accused has the right to present witnesses
for his or her case? Isn't that the policy of the Department of Magical Law E
nforcement, Madam Bones?' he continued, addressing the witch in the monocle.
'True,' said Madam Bones. 'Perfectly true.'
'Oh, very well, very well,' snapped Fudge. 'Where is this person?'
'I brought her with me,' said Dumbledore. 'She's just outside the door. Sh
ould I - ?'
'No - Weasley, you go,' Fudge barked at Percy, who got up at once, ran dow
n the stone steps from the judge's balcony and hurried past Dumbledore and Har
ry without glancing at them.
A moment later, Percy returned, followed by Mrs Figg. She looked scared an
d more batty than ever. Harry wished she had thought to change out of her carp
et slippers.
Dumbledore stood up and gave Mrs Figg his chair, conjuring a second one fo
r himself.
'Full name?' said Fudge loudly, when Mrs Figg had perched herself nervousl
y on the very edge of her seat.
'Arabella Doreen Figg,' said Mrs Figg in her quavery voice.
'And who exactly are you?' said Fudge, in a bored and lofty voice
'I'm a resident of Little Whinging, close to where Harry Potter lives,' sa
id Mrs Figg.
'We have no record of any witch or wizard living in Little Whinging, other
than Harry Potter,' said Madam Bones at once 'That situation has always been
closely monitored, given . . . given past events.'
'I'm a Squib,' said Mrs Figg. 'So you wouldn't have me registered, would y
ou?'
'A Squib, eh?' said Fudge, eyeing her closely. 'We'll be checking that. Yo
u'll leave details of your parentage with my assistant Weasley. Incidentally,
can Squibs see Dementors?' he added, looking left and right along the bench.
"Yes, we can!' said Mrs Figg indignantly.
Fudge looked back down at her, his eyebrows raised. 'Very well,' he said a
loofly. 'What is your story?'
'I had gone out to buy cat food from the corner shop at the end of Wisteri
a Walk, around about nine o'clock, on the evening of the second of August,' ga
bbled Mrs Figg at once, as though she had learned what she was saying by heart
, 'when I heard a disturbance down the alleyway between Magnolia Crescent and
Wisteria Walk. On approaching the mouth of the alleyway I saw Dementors runnin
g - '
'Running?' said Madam Bones sharply. 'Dementors don't run, they glide.'
'That's what I meant to say,' said Mrs Figg quickly, patches of pink appea
ring in her withered cheeks. 'Gliding along the alley towards what looked like
two boys.'
'What did they look like?' said Madam Bones, narrowing her eyes so that th
e edge of the monocle disappeared into her flesh.
'Well, one was very large and the other one rather skinny - '
'No, no,' said Madam Bones impatiently. 'The Dementors . . . describe them
.'
'Oh,' said Mrs Figg, the pink flush creeping up her neck now. They were bi
g. Big and wearing cloaks.
Harry felt a horrible sinking in the pit of his stomach. Whatever Mrs Figg
might say, it sounded to him as though the most she had ever seen was a pictu
re of a Dementor, and a picture could never convey the truth of what these bei
ngs were like: the eerie way they moved, hovering inches over the ground; or t
he rotting smell of them; or that terrible rattling noise they made as they su
cked on the surrounding air . . .
In the second row, a dumpy wizard with a large black moustache leaned clos
e to whisper in the ear of his neighbour, a frizzy-haired witch. She smirked a
nd nodded.
'Big and wearing cloaks,' repeated Madam Bones coolly, while Fudge snorted
derisively. 'I see. Anything else?'
'Yes,' said Mrs Figg. 'I felt them. Everything went cold, and this was a v
ery warm summer's night, mark you. And I felt . . . as though all happiness ha
d gone from the world . . . and I remembered . . . dreadful things . . .'
Her voice shook and died.
Madam Bones's eyes widened slightly. Harry could see red marks under her e
yebrow where the monocle had dug into it.
'What did the Dementors do?' she asked, and Harry felt a rush of hope.
They went for the boys,' said Mrs Figg, her voice stronger and more confid
ent now, the pink flush ebbing away from her face. 'One of them had fallen. Th
e other was backing away, trying to repel the Dementor. That was Harry. He tri
ed twice and produced only silver vapour. On the third attempt, he produced a
Patronus, which charged down the first Dementor and then, with his encourageme
nt, chased the second one away from his cousin. And that . . . that is what ha
ppened,' Mrs Figg finished, somewhat lamely.
Madam Bones looked down at Mrs Figg in silence. Fudge was not looking at h
er at all, but fidgeting with his papers. Finally, he raised his eyes and said
, rather aggressively, That's what you saw, is it?'
That is what happened,' Mrs Figg repeated.
'Very well,' said Fudge. 'You may go.'
Mrs Figg cast a frightened look from Fudge to Dumbledore, then got up and
shuffled off towards the door. Harry heard it thud shut behind her.
'Not a very convincing witness,' said Fudge loftily.
'Oh, I don't know,' said Madam Bones, in her booming voice. 'She certainly
described the effects of a Dementor attack very accurately. And I can't imagi
ne why she would say they were there if they weren't.'
'But Dementors wandering into a Muggle suburb and just happening to come a
cross a wizard?' snorted Fudge. The odds on that must be very, very long. Even
Bagman wouldn't have bet - '
'Oh, I don't think any of us believe the Dementors were there by coinciden
ce,' said Dumbledore lightly.
The witch sitting to the right of Fudge, with her face in shade w, moved s
lightly but everyone else was quite still and silent.
'And what is that supposed to mean?' Fudge asked icily.
'It means that I think they were ordered there,' said Dumbledore.
'I think we might have a record of it if someone had ordered a pair of Dem
entors to go strolling through Little Whinging!' barked Fudge.
'Not if the Dementors are taking orders from someone other than the Minist
ry of Magic these days,' said Dumbledore calmly. 'I have already given you my
views on this matter, Cornelius.'
'Yes, you have,' said Fudge forcefully, 'and I have no reason to believe t
hat your views are anything other than bilge, Dumbledore. The Dementors remain
in place in Azkaban and are doing everything we ask them to.'
Then,' said Dumbledore, quietly but clearly, 'we must ask ourselves why so
mebody within the Ministry ordered a pair of Dementors into that alleyway on t
he second of August.'
In the complete silence that greeted these words, the witch to the right o
f Fudge leaned forwards so that Harry saw her for the first time.
He thought she looked just like a large, pale toad. She was rather squat w
ith a broad, flabby face, as little neck as Uncle Vernon and a very wide, slac
k mouth. Her eyes were large, round and slightly bulging. Even the little blac
k velvet bow perched on top of her short curly hair put him in mind of a large
fly she was about to catch on a long sticky tongue.
The Chair recognises Dolores Jane Umbridge, Senior Undersecretary to the M
inister,' said Fudge.
The witch spoke in a fluttery, girlish, high-pitched voice that took Harry
aback; he had been expecting a croak.
'I'm sure I must have misunderstood you, Professor Dumbledore,' she said,
with a simper that felt her big, round eyes as cold as ever. 'So silly of me.
But it sounded for a teensy moment as though you were suggesting that the Mini
stry of Magic had ordered an attack on this boy!'
She gave a silvery laugh that made the hairs on the back of Harry's neck s
tand up. A few other members of the Wizengamot laughed with her. It could not
have been plainer that not one of them was really amused.
'If it is true that the Dementors are taking orders only from the Ministry
of Magic, and it is also true that two Dementors attacked Harry and his cousi
n a week ago, then it follows logically that somebody at the Ministry might ha
ve ordered the attacks,' said Dumbledore politely. 'Of course, these particula
r Dementors may have been outside Ministry control - '
'There are no Dementors outside Ministry control! snapped Fudge, who had t
urned brick red.
Dumbledore inclined his head in a little bow.
'Then undoubtedly the Ministry will be making a full inquiry into why two
Dementors were so very far from Azkaban and why they attacked without authoris
ation.'
'It is not for you to decide what the Ministry of Magic does or does not d
o, Dumbledore!' snapped Fudge, now a shade of magenta of which Uncle Vernon wo
uld have been proud.
'Of course it isn't,' said Dumbledore mildly. 'I was merely expressing my
confidence that this matter will not go uninvestigated.'
He glanced at Madam Bones, who readjusted her monocle and stared back at h
im, frowning slightly.
'I would remind everybody that the behaviour of these Dementors, if indeed
they are not figments of this boy's imagination, is not the subject of this h
earing!' said Fudge. 'We are here to examine Harry Potter's offences under the
Decree for the Reasonable Restriction of Underage Sorcery!'
'Of course we are,' said Dumbledore, 'but the presence of Dementors in tha
t alleyway is highly relevant. Clause Seven of the Decree states that magic ma
y be used before Muggles in exceptional circumstances, and as those exceptiona
l circumstances include situations which threaten the life of the wizard or wi
tch him- or herself, or any witches, wizards or Muggles present at the time of
the - '
'We are familiar with Clause Seven, thank you very much!' snarled Fudge.
'Of course you are,' said Dumbledore courteously. Then we are in agreement
that Harry's use of the Patronus Charm in these circumstances falls precisely
into the category of exceptional circumstances the clause describes?'
'If there were Dementors, which I doubt.'
'You have heard it from an eyewitness,' Dumbledore interrupted.
'If you still doubt her truthfulness, call her back, question her again. I
am sure she would not object.'
'I - that - not -' blustered Fudge, fiddling with the papers before him. '
It's - I want this over with today, Dumbledore!'
'But naturally, you would not care how many times you heard from a witness
, if the alternative was a serious miscarriage of justice,' said Dumbledore.
'Serious miscarriage, my hat!' said Fudge at the top of his voice. 'Have y
ou ever bothered to tot up the number of cock-and-bull stories this boy has co
me out with, Dumbledore, while trying to cover up his flagrant misuse of magic
out of school? I suppose you've forgotten the Hover Charm he used three years
ago - '
'That wasn't me, it was a house-elf!' said Harry.
'YOU SEE?' roared Fudge, gesturing flamboyantly in Harry's direction. 'A h
ouse-elf! In a Muggle house! I ask you.'
The house-elf in question is currently in the employ of Hogwarts School,'
said Dumbledore. 'I can summon him here in an instant to give evidence if you
wish.'
'I - not - I haven't got time to listen to house-elves! Anyway, that's not
the only - he blew up his aunt, for Gods sake!' Fudge shouted, banging his fi
st on the judge's bench and upsetting a bottle of ink.
'And you very kindly did not press charges on that occasion, accepting, I
presume, that even the best wizards cannot always control their emotions,' sai
d Dumbledore calmly, as Fudge attempted to scrub the ink off his notes.
'And I haven't even started on what he gets up to at school.'
'But, as the Ministry has no authority to punish Hogwarts students for mis
demeanours at school, Harry's behaviour there is not relevant to this hearing,
' said Dumbledore, as politely as ever, but now with a suggestion of coolness
behind his words.
'Oho!' said Fudge. 'Not our business what he does at school, eh? You think
so?'
The Ministry does not have the power to expel Hogwarts students, Cornelius
, as I reminded you on the night of the second of August,' said Dumbledore. 'N
or does it have the right to confiscate wands until charges have been successf
ully proven; again, as I reminded you on the night of the second of August, in
your admirable haste to ensure that the law is upheld, you appear, inadverten
tly I am sure, to have overlooked a few laws yourself.'
'Laws can be changed,' said Fudge savagely.
'Of course they can,' said Dumbledore, inclining his head. 'And you certai
nly seem to be making many changes, Cornelius. Why, in the few short weeks sin
ce I was asked to leave the Wizengamot, it has already become the practice to
hold a full criminal trial to deal with a simple matter of underage magic!'
A few of the wizards above them shifted uncomfortably in their seats. Fudg
e turned a slightly deeper shade of puce. The toadlike witch on his right, how
ever, merely gazed at Dumbledore, her face quite expressionless.
'As far as I am aware,' Dumbledore continued, 'there is no law yet in plac
e that says this court's job is to punish Harry for every bit of magic he has
ever performed. He has been charged with a specific offence and he has present
ed his defence. All he and I can do now is to await your verdict.'
Dumbledore put his fingertips together again and said no more. Fudge glare
d at him, evidently incensed. Harry glanced sideways at Dumbledore, seeking re
assurance; he was not at all sure that Dumbledore was right in telling the Wiz
engamot, in effect, that it was about time they made a decision. Again, howeve
r, Dumbledore seemed oblivious to Harry's attempt to catch his eye. He continu
ed to look up at the benches where the entire Wizengamot had fallen into urgen
t, whispered conversations.
Harry looked at his feet. His heart, which seemed to have swollen to an un
natural size, was thumping loudly under his ribs. He had expected the hearing
to last longer than this. He was not at all sure that he had made a good impre
ssion. He had not really said very much. He ought to have explained more fully
about the Dementors, about how he had fallen over, about how both he and Dudl
ey had nearly been kissed . . .
Twice he looked up at Fudge and opened his mouth to speak, but his swollen
heart was now constricting his air passages and both times he merely took a d
eep breath and looked back down at his shoes.
Then the whispering stopped. Harry wanted to look up at the judges, but fo
und that it was really much, much easier to keep examining his laces.
'Those in favour of clearing the witness of all charges?' said Madam Bones
s booming voice.
Harry's head jerked upwards. There were hands in the air, many of them . .
. more than half! Breathing very fast, he tried to count, but before he could
finish, Madam Bones had said, 'And those in favour of conviction?'
Fudge raised his hand; so did half a dozen others, including the witch on
his right and the heavily-moustached wizard and the frizzy-haired witch in the
second row.
Fudge glanced around at them all, looking as though there was something la
rge stuck in his throat, then lowered his own hand. He took two deep breaths a
nd said, in a voice distorted by suppressed rage, 'Very well, very well . . .
cleared of all charges.'
'Excellent,' said Dumbledore briskly, springing to his feel, pulling out h
is wand and causing the two chintz armchairs to vanish. 'Well, I must be getti
ng along. Good-day to you all.'
And without looking once at Harry, he swept from the dungeon.
- CHAPTER NINE -
The Woes of Mrs Weasley
Dumbledore's abrupt departure took Harry completely by surprise. He remained s
itting where he was in the chained chair, struggling with his feelings of shoc
k and relief. The Wizengamot were all getting to their feet, talking, gatherin
g up their papers and packing them away. Harry stood up. Nobody seemed to be p
aying him the slightest bit of attention, except the toadlike witch on Fudge's
right, who was now gazing down at him instead of at Dumbledore. Ignoring her,
he tried to catch Fudge's eye, or Madam Bones's, wanting to ask whether he wa
s free to go, but Fudge seemed quite determined not to notice Harry, and Madam
Bones was busy with her briefcase, so he took a lew tentative steps towards t
he exit and, when nobody called him back, broke into a very fast walk.
He took the last lew steps at a run, wrenched open the door and almost col
lided with Mr Weasley, who was standing right outside, looking pale and appreh
ensive.
'Dumbledore didn't say - '
'Cleared,' Harry said, pulling the door closed behind him, 'of all charges
!'
Beaming, Mr Weasley seized Harry by the shoulders.
'Harry, that's wonderful! Well, of course, they couldn't have found you gu
ilty, not on the evidence, but even so, I can't pretend I wasn't - '
But Mr Weasley broke off, because the courtroom door had ust opened again.
The Wizengamot were filing out.
'Merlin's beard!' exclaimed Mr Weasley wonderingly, pulling Harry aside to
let them all pass. 'You were tried by the lull court?'
'I think so,' said Harry quietly.
One or two of the wizards nodded to Harry as they passed and a few, includ
ing Madam Bones, said, 'Morning, Arthur,' to Mr Weasley, but most averted thei
r eyes. Cornelius Fudge and the toadlike witch were almost the last to leave t
he dungeon. Fudge acted as though Mr Weasley and Harry were part of the wall,
hut again, the witch looked almost appraisingly at Harry as she passed. Last o
f all to pass was Percy. Like Fudge, he completely ignored his father and Harr
y; he marched past clutching a large roll of parchment and a handful of spare
quills, his back rigid and his nose in the air. The lines around Mr Weasley's
mouth tightened slightly, but other than this he gave no sign that he had seen
his third son.
'I'm going to take you straight back so you can tell the others the good n
ews,' he said, beckoning Harry forwards as Percy's heels disappeared up the st
eps to Level Nine. 'I'll drop you off on the way to that toilet in Bethnal Gre
en. Come on . . .'
'So, what will you have to do about the toilet?' Harry asked, grinning. Ev
erything suddenly seemed five times funnier than usual. It was starting to sin
k in: he was cleared, he was going back to Hogwarts.
'Oh, it's a simple enough anti-jinx,' said Mr Weasley as they mounted the
stairs, 'but it's not so much having to repair the damage, it's more the attit
ude behind the vandalism, Harry. Muggle-baiting might strike some wizards as f
unny, but it's an expression of something much deeper and nastier, and I for o
ne - '
Mr Weasley broke off in mid-sentence. They had just reached the ninth-leve
l corridor and Cornelius Fudge was standing a few feet away from them, talking
quietly to a tall man with sleek blond hair and a pointed, pale face.
The second man turned at the sound of their footsteps. He, too, broke off
in mid-conversation, his cold grey eyes narrowed and fixed upon Harry's face.
'Well, well, well . . . Patronus Potter,' said Lucius Malfoy coolly.
Harry felt winded, as though he had just walked into something solid. He h
ad last seen those cold grey eyes through slits in a Death Hater's hood, and l
ast heard that man's voice jeering in a dark graveyard while Lord Voldemort to
rtured him. Harry could not believe that Lucius Malfoy dared look him in the f
ace; he could not believe that he was here, in the Ministry of Magic, or that
Cornelius Fudge was talking to him, when Harry had told Fudge mere weeks ago t
hat Malfoy was a Death Eater.
The Minister was just telling me about your lucky escape, Potter,' drawled
Mr Malfoy. 'Quite astonishing, the way you continue to wriggle out of very ti
ght holes . . . snakelike, in fact.'
Mr Weasley gripped Harry's shoulder in warning.
'Yeah,' said Harry, 'yeah, I'm good at escaping.'
Lucius Malfoy raised his eyes to Mr Weasley's face.
'And Arthur Weasley too! What are you doing here, Arthur?'
'I work here,' said Mr Weasley curtly.
'Not here, surely?' said Mr Malfoy, raising his eyebrows and glancing towa
rds the door over Mr Weasley's shoulder. 'I thought you were up on the second
floor . . . don't you do something that involves sneaking Muggle artefacts hom
e and bewitching them?'
'No,' Mr Weasley snapped, his fingers now biting into Harry's shoulder.
'What are you doing here, anyway?' Harry asked Lucius Malfoy.
'I don't think private matters between myself and the Minister are any con
cern of yours, Potter,' said Malfoy, smoothing the front of his robes. Harry d
istinctly heard the gentle clinking of what sounded like a full pocket of gold
. 'Really, just because you are Dumbledore's favourite boy, you must not expec
t the same indulgence from the rest of us . . . shall we go up to your office,
then, Minister?'
'Certainly,' said Fudge, turning his back on Harry and Mr Weasley. This wa
y, Lucius.'
They strode off together, talking in low voices. Mr Weasley did not let go
of Harry's shoulder until they had disappeared into the lift.
'Why wasn't he waiting outside Fudge's office if they've got business to d
o together?' Harry burst out furiously. What was he doing down here?'
'Trying to sneak down to the courtroom, if you ask me,' said Mr Weasley, l
ooking extremely agitated and glancing over his shoulder as though making sure
they could not be overheard. Trying to find out whether you'd been expelled o
r not. I'll leave a note for Dumbledore when I drop you off, he ought to know
Malfoy's been talking to Fudge again.'
'What private business have they got together, anyway?'
'Gold, I expect,' said Mr Weasley angrily. 'Malfoy's been giving generousl
y to all sorts of things for years . . . gets him in with the right people . .
. then he can ask favours . . . delay laws he doesn't want passed . . . oh, h
e's very well-connected, Lucius Malfoy.'
The lift arrived; it was empty except for a flock of memos that flapped ar
ound Mr Weasley's head as he pressed the button for the Atrium and the doors c
langed shut. He waved them away irritably.
'Mr Weasley,' said Harry slowly, 'if Fudge is meeting Death Eaters like Ma
lfoy, if he's seeing them alone, how do we know they haven't put the Imperius
Curse on him?'
'Don't think it hasn't occurred to us, Harry,' said Mr Weasley quietly. 'B
ut Dumbledore thinks Fudge is acting of his own accord at the moment - which,
as Dumbledore says, is not a lot of comfort. Best not talk about it any more j
ust now, Harry.'
The doors slid open and they stepped out into the now almost-deserted Atri
um. Eric the watchwizard was hidden behind his Daily Prophet again. They had w
alked straight past the golden fountain before Harry remembered.
'Wait . . .' he told Mr Weasley, and, pulling his moneybag from his pocket
, he turned back to the fountain.
He looked up into the handsome wizard's face, but close-to Harry thought h
e looked rather weak and foolish. The witch was wearing a vapid smile like a b
eauty contestant, and from what Harry knew of goblins and centaurs, they were
most unlikely to be caught staring so soppily at humans of any description. On
ly the house-elf's attitude of creeping servility looked convincing. With a gr
in at the thought of what Hermione would say if she could see the statue of th
e elf, Harry turned his moneybag upside-down and emptied not just ten Galleons
, but the whole contents into the pool.
*
'I knew it!' yelled Ron, punching the air. 'You always get away with stuff!'
'They were bound to clear you,' said Hermione, who had looked positively f
aint with anxiety when Harry had entered the kitchen and was now holding a sha
king hand over her eyes, 'there was no case against you, none at all.'
'Everyone seems quite relieved, though, considering you all knew I'd get o
ff,' said Harry, smiling.
Mrs Weasley was wiping her face on her apron, and Fred, George and Ginny w
ere doing a kind of war dance to a chant that went: 'He got off, he got off, h
e got off . . .'
That's enough! Settle down!' shouted Mr Weasley, though he too was smiling
. 'Listen, Sirius, Lucius Malfoy was at the Ministry - '
'What?' said Sirius sharply.
'He got off, he got off, he got off . . .'
'Be quiet, you three! Yes, we saw him talking to Fudge on Level Nine, then
they went up to Fudge's office together. Dumbledore ought to know.'
'Absolutely,' said Sirius. 'We'll tell him, don't worry.'
'Well, I'd better get going, there's a vomiting toilet waiting for me in B
ethnal Green. Molly, I'll be late, I'm covering for Tonks, but Kingsley might
be dropping in for dinner - '
'He got off, he got off, he got off . . .'
That's enough - Fred - George - Ginny!' said Mrs Weasley, as Mr Weasley le
ft the kitchen. 'Harry, dear, come and sit down, have some lunch, you hardly a
te breakfast.'
Ron and Hermione sat themselves down opposite him, looking happier than th
ey had done since he had first arrived at Grimmauld Place, and Harry's feeling
of giddy relief, which had been somewhat dented by his encounter with Lucius
Malfoy, swelled again. The gloomy house seemed warmer and more welcoming all o
f a sudden; even Kreacher looked less ugly as he poked his snoutlike nose into
the kitchen to investigate the source of all the noise.
'Course, once Dumbledore turned up on your side, there was no way they wer
e going to convict you,' said Ron happily, now dishing great mounds of mashed
potato on to everyone's plates.
'Yeah, he swung it for me,' said Harry. He felt it would sound highly ungr
ateful, not to mention childish, to say, 'I wish he'd talked to me, though. Or
even looked at me.'
And as he thought this, the scar on his forehead burned so badlyt:hat he c
lapped his hand to it..
'What's up?' said Hermione, looking alarmed.
'Scar,' Harry mumbled. 'But it's nothing . . . it happens all the time now
. . .'
None of the others had noticed a thing; all of them were now helping thems
elves to food while gloating over Harry's narrow escape; Fred, George and Ginn
y were still singing. Hermione looked rather anxious, but before she could say
anything, Ron had said happily, 'I bet Dumbledore turns up this evening, to c
elebrate with us, you know.'
'[ don't think he'll be able to, Ron,' said Mrs Weasley, setting a huge pl
ate of roast chicken down in front of Harry. 'He's really very busy at the mom
ent.'
'HE GOT OFF, HE GOT OFF. HE GOT OFF'
'SHUT UP!' roared Mrs Weasley.
*
Over the next few days Harry could not help noticing that there was one person
within number twelve, Grimmauld Place, who did not seem wholly overjoyed that
he would be returning to Hogwarts. Sirius had put up a very good show of happ
iness on first hearing the news, wringing Harry's hand and beaming just like t
he rest of them. Soon, however, he was moodier and surlier than before, talkin
g less to everybody, even Harry, and spending increasing amounts of time shut
up in his mother's room with Buckbeak.
'Don't you go feeling guilty!' said Hermione sternly, after Harry had conf
ided some of his feelings to her and Ron while they scrubbed out a mouldy cupb
oard on the third floor a few days later. 'You belong at Hogwarts and Sirius k
nows it. Personally, I think he's being selfish.'
'That's a bit harsh, Hermione,' said Ron, frowning as he attempted to pris
e off a bit of mould that had attached itself firmly to his finger, 'you would
n't want to be stuck inside this house without any company.'
'He'll have company!' said Hermione. 'It's Headquarters to the Order of th
e Phoenix, isn't it? He just got his hopes up that Harry would be coming to li
ve here with him.'
'I don't think that's true,' said Harry, wringing out his cloth. 'He would
n't give me a straight answer when I asked him if I could.'
'He just didn't want to get his own hopes up even more,' said Hermione wis
ely. 'And he probably felt a bit guilty himself, because I think a part of him
was really hoping you'd be expelled. Then you'd both be outcasts together.'
'Come off it!' said Harry and Ron together, but Hermione merely shrugged.
'Suit yourselves. But I sometimes think Ron's mum's right and Sirius gets
confused about whether you're you or your father, Harry.'
'So you think he's touched in the head?' said Harry heatedly.
'No, I just think he's been very lonely for a long time,' said Hermione si
mply.
At this point, Mrs Weasley entered the bedroom behind them.
'Still not finished?' she said, poking her head into the cupboard.
'I thought you might be here to tell us to have a break!' said Ron bitterl
y. 'D'you know how much mould we've got rid of since we arrived here?'
'You were so keen to help the Order,' said Mrs Weasley, 'you can do your b
it by making Headquarters fit to live in.'
'I feel like a house-elf,' grumbled Ron.
'Well, now you understand what dreadful lives they lead, perhaps you'll be
a bit more active in SPEW!' said Hermione hopefully, as Mrs Weasley left them
to it. 'You know, maybe it wouldn't be a bad idea to show people exactly how
horrible it is to clean all the time - we could do a sponsored scrub of Gryffi
ndor common room, all proceeds to SPEW, it would raise awareness as well as fu
nds.'
'I'll sponsor you to shut up about SPEW,' Ron muttered irritably, but only
so Harry could hear him.
*
Harry found himself daydreaming about Hogwarts more and more as the end of the
holidays approached; he could not wait to see Hagrid again, to play Quidditch
, even to stroll across the vegetable patches to the Herbology greenhouses; it
would be a treat just to leave this dusty, musty house, where half of the cup
boards were still bolted shut and Kreacher wheezed insults out of the shadows
as you passed, though Harry was careful not to say any of this within earshot
of Sirius.
The fact as that living at the Headquarters of the anti-Voldemort movement
was not nearly as interesting or exciting as Harry would have expected before
he'd experienced it. Though members of the Order of the Phoenix came and went
regularly, sometimes staying for meals, sometimes only for a few minutes of w
hispered conversation, Mrs Weasley made sure that Harry and the others were ke
pt well out of earshot (whether Extendable or normal) and nobody, not even Sir
ius, seemed to feel that Harry needed to know anything more than he had heard
on the night of his arrival.
On the very last day of the holidays Harry was sweeping up Hedwig's owl dr
oppings from the top of the wardrobe when Ron entered their bedroom carrying a
couple of envelopes.
'Booklists have arrived,' he said, throwing one of the envelopes up to Har
ry, who was standing on a chair. 'About time, I thought they'd forgotten, they
usually come much earlier than this . . .'
Harry swept the last of the droppings into a rubbish bag and threw the bag
over Ron's head into the wastepaper basket in the corner, which swallowed it
and belched loudly. He then opened his letter. It contained two pieces of parc
hment: one the usual reminder that term started on the first of September; the
other telling him which books he would need for the coming year.
'Only two new ones,' he said, reading the list, The Standard Book of Spell
s, Grade 5, by Miranda Goshawk, and Defensive Magical Theory, by Wilbert Slink
hard.'
Crack.
Fred and George Apparated right beside Harry. He was so used to them doing
this by now that he didn't even fall off his chair.
'We were just wondering who set the Slinkhard book,' said Fred conversatio
nally
'Because it means Dumbledore's found a new Defence Against the Dark Arts t
eacher,' said George.
'And about time too,' said Fred.
'What d'you mean?' Harry asked, jumping down beside them.
Well, we overheard Mum and Dad talking on the Extendable Ears a few weeks
back,' Fred told Harry, 'and from what they were saying, Dumbledore was having
real trouble finding anyone to do the job this year.'
'Not surprising, is it, when you look at what's happened to the last four?
' said George.
'One sacked, one dead, one's memory removed and one locked in a trunk for
nine months,' said Harry, counting them off on his fingers. 'Yeah, I see what
you mean.'
'What's up with you, Ron?' asked Fred.
Ron did not answer. Harry looked round. Ron was standing very still with h
is mouth slightly open, gaping at his letter from Hogwarts.
'What's the matter?' said Fred impatiently, moving around Ron to look over
his shoulder at the parchment.
Fred's mouth fell open, too.
'Prefect?' he said, staring incredulously at the letter. 'Prefect?'
George leapt forwards, seized the envelope in Ron's other hand and turned
it upside-down. Harry saw something scarlet and gold fall into George's palm.
'No way,' said George in a hushed voice.
'There's been a mistake,' said Fred, snatching the letter out of Ron's gra
sp and holding it up to the light as though checking for a watermark. 'No one
in their right mind would make Ron a prefect.'
The twins' heads turned in unison and both of them stared at Harry.
'We thought you were a cert!' said Fred, in a tone that suggested Harry ha
d tricked them in some way.
'We thought Dumbledore was bound to pick you!' said George indignantly.
'Winning the Triwizard and everything!' said Fred.
'I suppose all the mad stuff must've counted against him,' said George to
Fred.
'Yeah,' said Fred slowly. 'Yeah, you've caused too much trouble, mate. Wel
l, at least one of you's got their priorities right.'
He strode over to Harry and clapped him on the back while giving Ron a sca
thing look.
'Prefect . . . ickle Ronnie the Prefect.'
'Ohh, Mum's going to be revolting,' groaned George, thrusting the prefect
badge back at Ron as though it might contaminate him.
Ron, who still had not said a word, took the badge, stared at it for a mom
ent, then held it out to Harry as though asking mutely for confirmation that i
t was genuine. Harry took it. A large 'P' was superimposed on the Gryffindor l
ion. He had seen a badge just like this on Percy's chest on his very first day
at Hogwarts.
The door banged open. Hermione came tearing into the room, her cheeks flus
hed and her hair flying. There was an envelope in her hand.
'Did you - did you get - ?'
She spotted the badge in Harry's hand and let out a shriek.
'I knew it!' she said excitedly, brandishing her letter. 'Me too, Harry, m
e too!'
'No,' said Harry quickly, pushing the badge back into Ron's hand. 'It's Ro
n, not me.'
'It - what?'
'Ron's prefect, not me,' Harry said.
'Ron?' said Hermione, her jaw dropping. 'But . . . are you sure? I mean -
'
She turned red as Ron looked round at her with a defiant expression on his
lace.
'It's my name on the letter,' he said.
'I . . .' said Hermione, looking thoroughly bewildered. 'I . . . well . .
. wow! Well done, Ron! That's really - '
'Unexpected,' said George, nodding.
'No,' said Hermione, blushing harder than ever, 'no it's not . . . Ron's d
one loads of . . . he's really . . .'
The door behind her opened a little wider and Mrs Weasley bucked into the
room carrying a pile of freshly laundered robes.
'Ginny said the booklists had come at last,' she said, glancing around at
all the envelopes as she made her way over to the bed and started sorting the
robes into two piles. 'If you give them to me I'll take them over to Diagon Al
ley this afternoon and get your books while you're packing. Ron, I'll have to
get you more pyjamas, these are at least six inches too short, I can't believe
how fast you're growing . . . what colour would you like?'
'Get him red and gold to match his badge,' said George, smirking.
'Match his what?' said Mrs Weasley absently, rolling up a pair of maroon s
ocks and placing them on Ron's pile.
'His badge,' said Fred, with the air of getting the worst over quickly. 'H
is lovely shiny new prefect's badge.'
Fred's words took a moment to penetrate Mrs Weasley's preoccupation with p
yjamas.
'His . . . but . . . Ron, you're not . . .?'
Ron held up his badge.
Mrs Weasley let out a shriek just like Hermione's.
'I don't believe it! I don't believe it! Oh, Ron, how wonderful! A prefect
! That's everyone in the family!'
'What are Fred and I, next-door neighbours?' said George indignantly, as h
is mother pushed him aside and flung her arms around her youngest son.
'Wait until your father hears! Ron, I'm so proud of you, what wonderful ne
ws, you could end up Head Boy just like Bill and Percy, it's the first step! O
h, what a thing to happen in the middle of all this worry, I'm just thrilled,
oh, Ronnie - '
Fred and George were both making loud retching noises behind her back but
Mrs Weasley did not notice; arms tight around Ron's neck, she was kissing him
all over his face, which had turned a brighter scarlet than his badge.
'Mum . . . don't . . . Mum, get a grip . . .' he muttered, trying to push
her away.
She let go of him and said breathlessly, 'Well, what will it be? We gave P
ercy an owl, but you've already got one, of course.'
'W-what do you mean?' said Ron, looking as though he did not dare believe
his ears.
'You've got to have a reward for this!' said Mrs Weasley fondly. 'How abou
t a nice new set of dress robes?'
'We've already bought him some,' said Fred sourly, who looked as though he
sincerely regretted this generosity.
'Or a new cauldron, Charlie's old one's rusting through, or a new rat, you
always liked Scabbers -
'Mum,' said Ron hopefully, 'can I have a new broom?'
Mrs Weasley's face fell slightly; broomsticks were expensive.
'Not a really good one!' Ron hastened to add. 'Just - just a new one for a
change , . .'
Mrs Weasley hesitated, then smiled.
'Of course you can . . . well, I'd better get going if I've got a broom to
buy too. I'll see you all later . . . little Ronnie, a prefect! And don't for
get to pack your trunks . . . a prefect . . . oh, I'm all of a dither!'
She gave Ron yet another kiss on the cheek, sniffed loudly, and bustled fr
om the room.
Fred and George exchanged looks.
'You don't mind if we don't kiss you, do you, Ron?' said Fred in a falsely
anxious voice.
'We could curtsey, if you like,' said George.
'Oh, shut up,' said Ron, scowling at them.
'Or what?' said Fred, an evil grin spreading across his face. 'Going to pu
t us in detention?'
'I'd love to see him try' sniggered George.
'He could if you don't watch out!' said Hermione angrily.
Fred and George burst out laughing, and Ron muttered, 'Drop it, Hermione.'
'We're going to have to watch our step, George,' said Fred, pretending to
tremble, 'with these two on our case . . .'
'Yeah, it looks like our law-breaking days are finally over,' said Cieorge
, shaking his head.
And with another loud crack, the twins Disapparated.
'Those two!' said Hermione furiously, staring up at the ceiling, through w
hich they could now hear Fred and George roaring with laughter in the room ups
tairs. 'Don't pay any attention to them, Ron, they're only jealous!'
'I don't think they are,' said Ron doubtfully, also looking up at the ceil
ing. They've always said only prats become prefects . . . still,' he added on
a happier note, 'they've never had new brooms! I wish I could go with Mum and
choose . . . she'll never be able to afford a Nimbus, but there's the new Clea
nsweep out, that'd be great . . . yeah, I think I'll go and tell her I like th
e Cleansweep, just so she knows . . .'
He dashed from the room, leaving Harry and Hermione alone.
For some reason, Harry found he did not want to look at Hermione. He turne
d to his bed, picked up the pile of clean robes Mrs Weasley had laid on it and
crossed the room to his trunk.
'Harry?' said Hermione tentatively.
'Well done, Hermione,' said Harry, so heartily it did not sound like his v
oice at all, and, still not looking at her, 'brilliant. Prefect. Great.'
'Thanks,' said Hermione. 'Erm - Harry - could I borrow Hedwig so I can tel
l Mum and Dad? They'll be really pleased - I mean prefect is something they ca
n understand.'
'Yeah, no problem,' said Harry, still in the horrible hearty voice that di
d not belong to him. Take her!'
He leaned over his trunk, laid the robes on the bottom of it and pretended
to be rummaging for something while Hermione crossed to the wardrobe and call
ed Hedwig down. A few moments passed; Harry heard the door close but remained
bent double, listening; the only sounds he could hear were the blank picture o
n the wall sniggering again and the wastepaper basket in the corner coughing u
p the owl droppings.
He straightened up and looked behind him. Hermione had left and Hedwig had
gone. Harry hurried across the room, closed the door, then returned slowly to
his bed and sank on to it, gazing unseeingly at the foot of the wardrobe.
He had forgotten completely about prefects being chosen in the fifth year.
He had been too anxious about the possibility of being expelled to spare a th
ought for the fact that badges must be winging their way towards certain peopl
e. But if he had remembered . . . if he had thought about it . . . what would
he have expected?
Not this, said a small and truthful voice inside his head.
Harry screwed up his face and buried it in his hands. He could not lie to
himself; if he had known the prefect badge was on its way, he would have expec
ted it to come to him, not Ron. Did this make him as arrogant as Draco Malfoy?
Did he think himself superior to everyone else? Did he really believe he was
better than Ron?
No, said the small voice defiantly.
Was that true? Harry wondered, anxiously probing his own feelings.
I'm better at Quidditch, said the voice. But I'm not better at anything el
se.
That was definitely true, Harry thought; he was no better than Ron in less
ons. But what about outside lessons? What about those adventures he, Ron and H
ermione had had together since starting at Hogwarts, often risking much worse
than expulsion?
Well, Ron and Hermione were with me most of the time, said the voice in Ha
rry's head.
Not all the time, though, Harry argued with himself. They didn't fight Qui
rrell with me. They didn't take on Riddle and the Basilisk. They didn't get ri
d of all those Dementors the night Sirius escaped. They weren't in that gravey
ard with me, the night Voldemort returned . . .
And the same feeling of ill-usage that had overwhelmed him on the night he
had arrived rose again. I've definitely done more, Harry thought indignantly.
I've done more than either of them!
But maybe, said the small voice fairly, maybe Dumbledore doesn't choose pr
efects because they've got themselves into a load of dangerous situations . .
. maybe he chooses them for other reasons . . . Ron must have something you do
n't . . .
Harry opened his eyes and stared through his fingers at the wardrobe's cla
wed feet, remembering what. Fred had said: 'No one in their right mind would m
ake Ron a prefect . . .'
Harry gave a small snort of laughter. A second later he felt sickened with
himself.
Ron had not asked Dumbledore to give him the prefect badge. This was not R
on's fault. Was he, Harry, Ron's best friend in the world, going to sulk becau
se he didn't, have a badge, laugh with the twins behind Ron's back, ruin this
for Ron when, for the first time, he had beaten Harry at something?
At this point Harry heard Ron's footsteps on the stairs again. He stood up
, straightened his glasses, and hitched a grin on to his face as Ron bounded b
ack through the door.
'Just caught her!' he said happily. 'She says she'll get the Cleansweep if
she can.'
'Cool,' Harry said, and he was relieved to hear that his voice had stopped
sounding hearty. 'Listen - Ron - well done, mate.'
The smile faded off Ron's face.
'I never thought it would be me!' he said, shaking his head. 'I thought it
would be you!'
'Nah, I've caused too much trouble,' Harry said, echoing Fred.
'Yeah,' said Ron, 'yeah, I suppose . . . well, we'd better get our trunks
packed, hadn't we?'
It was odd how widely their possessions seemed to have scattered themselve
s since they had arrived. It took them most of the afternoon to retrieve their
books and belongings from all over the house and stow them back inside their
school trunks. Marry noticed that Ron kept moving his prefect's badge around,
first placing it on his bedside table, then putting it into his jeans pocket,
then taking it out and lying it on his folded robes, as though to see the effe
ct of the red on the black. Only when Fred and George dropped in and offered t
o attach it to his forehead with a Permanent Sticking Charm did he wrap it ten
derly in his maroon socks and lock it in his trunk.
Mrs Weasley returned from Diagon Alley around six o'clock, laden with book
s and carrying a long package wrapped in thick brown paper that Ron took from
her with a moan of longing.
'Never mind unwrapping it now, people are arriving for dinner, I want you
all downstairs,' she said, but the moment she was out of sight Ron ripped off
the paper in a frenzy and examined every inch of his new broom, an ecstatic ex
pression on his face.
Down in the basement Mrs Weasley had hung a scarlet banner over the heavil
y laden dinner table, which read:
CONGRATULATIONS
RON AND HERMIONE
NEW PREFECTS
She looked in a better mood than Harry had seen her all holiday.
'I thought we'd have a little party not a sit-down dinner,' she told Harry
, Ron, Hermione, Fred, George and Ginny as they entered the room. 'Your father
and Bill are on their way, Ron. I've sent them both owls and they're thrilled
,' she added, beaming.
Fred rolled his eyes.
Sirius, Lupin, Tonks and Kingsley Shacklebolt were already
there and Mad-Eye Moody stumped in shortly after Harry had got himself a B
utterbeer.
'Oh, Alastor, I am glad you're here,' said Mrs Weasley brightly, as Mad-Ey
e shrugged off his travelling cloak. 'We've been wanting to ask you for ages -
could you have a look in the writing desk in the drawing room and tell us wha
t's inside it? We haven't wanted to open it. just in case it's something reall
y nasty.'
'No problem, Molly . . .'
Moody's electric-blue eye swivelled upwards and stared fixedly through the
ceiling of the kitchen.
Drawing room . . .' he growled, as the pupil contracted. 'Desk in the corn
er? Yeah, I see it . . . yeah, it's a Boggart . . . want me to go up and get r
id of it, Molly?'
No, no, I'll do it myself later,' beamed Mrs Weasley, 'you have your drink
. We're having a little bit of a celebration, actually . . .' She gestured at
the scarlet banner. 'Fourth prefect in the family!' she said fondly, ruffling
Ron's hair.
'Prefect, eh?' growled Moody, his normal eye on Ron and his magical eye sw
ivelling around to gaze into the side of his head. Harry had the very uncomfor
table feeling it was looking at him and moved away towards Sirius and Lupin.
'Well, congratulations,' said Moody, still glaring at Ron with his normal
eye, 'authority figures always attract trouble, but I suppose Dumbledore think
s you can withstand most major jinxes or he wouldn't have appointed you . . .'
Ron looked rather startled at this view of the matter but was saved the tr
ouble of responding by the arrival of his father and eldest brother. Mrs Weasl
ey was in such a good mood she did not even complain that they had brought Mun
dungus with them; he was wearing a long overcoat that seemed oddly lumpy in un
likely places and declined the offer to remove it and put it with Moody's trav
elling cloak.
'Well, I think a toast is in order,' said Mr Weasley, when everyone had a
drink. He raised his goblet. To Ron and Hermione, the new Gryffindor prefects!
'
Ron and Hermione beamed as everyone drank to them, and then applauded.
'I was never a prefect myself,' said Tonks brightly from behind Harry as e
verybody moved towards the table to help themselves to food. Her hair was toma
to red and waist-length today; she looked like Ginny's older sister. 'My Head
of House said I lacked certain necessary qualities.'
'Like what?' said Ginny, who was choosing a baked potato.
'Like the ability to behave myself,' said Tonks.
Ginny laughed; Hermione looked as though she did not know whether to smile
or not and compromised by taking an extra large gulp of Butterbeer and chokin
g on it.
'What about you, Sirius?' Ginny asked, thumping Hermione on the back.
Sirius, who was right beside Harry, let out his usual bark-like laugh.
'No one would have made me a prefect, I spent too much time in detention w
ith James. Lupin was the good boy, he got the badge.'
'I think Dumbledore might have hoped I would be able to exercise some cont
rol over my best friends,' said Lupin. 'I need scarcely say that I failed dism
ally.'
Harry's mood suddenly lifted. His father had not been a prefect either. Al
l at once the party seemed much more enjoyable; he loaded up his plate, feelin
g doubly fond of everyone in the room.
Ron was rhapsodising about his new broom to anybody who would listen.
'. . . nought to seventy in ten seconds, not bad, is it? When you think th
e Comet Two Ninety's only nought to sixty and that's with a decent tailwind ac
cording to Which Broomstick?'
Hermione was talking very earnestly to Lupin about her view of elf rights.
'I mean, it's the same kind of nonsense as werewolf segregation, isn't it?
It all stems from this horrible thing wizards have of thinking they're superi
or to other creatures . . .'
Mrs Weasley and Bill were having their usual argument about Bill's hair.
'. . . getting really out of hand, and you're so good-looking, it would lo
ok much better shorter, wouldn't it, Harry?'
Oh - I dunno - ' said Harry, slightly alarmed at being asked his opinion;
he slid away from them in the direction of Fred and George, who were huddled i
n a corner with Mundungus.
Mundungus stopped talking when he saw Harry, but Fred winked and beckoned
Harry closer.
'It's OK,' he told Mundungus, 'we can trust Harry, he's our financial back
er.'
'Look what Dung's got us,' said George, holding out his hand to Harry. It
was full of what looked like shrivelled black pods. A faint rattling noise was
coming from them, even though they were completely stationary.
'Venomous Tentacula seeds,' said George. 'We need them for the Skiving Sna
ckboxes but they're a Class C Non-Tradeable Substance so we've been having a b
it of trouble getting hold of them.'
'Ten Galleons the lot, then, Dung?' said Fred.
'Wiv all the trouble I went to to get 'em?' said Mundungus, his saggy, blo
odshot eyes stretching even wider. 'I'm sorry, lads, but I'm not taking a Knut
under twenty.'
'Dung likes his little joke,' Fred said to Harry.
'Yeah, his best one so far has been six Sickles for a bag of Knarl quills,
' said George.
'Be careful,' Harry warned them quietly.
'What?' said Fred. 'Mum's busy cooing over Prefect Ron, we're OK.'
'But Moody could have his eye on you.' Harry pointed out.
Mundungus looked nervously over his shoulder.
'Good point, that,' he grunted. 'All right, lads, ten it is, if you'll tak
e 'em quick.'
'Cheers, Harry!' said Fred delightedly, when Mundungus had emptied his poc
kets into the twins' outstretched hands and scuttled off towards the food. 'We
'd better get these upstairs . . .'
Harry watched them go, feeling slightly uneasy. It had just occurred to hi
m that Mr and Mrs Weasley would want to know how Fred and George were financin
g their joke shop business when, as was inevitable, they finally found out abo
ut it. Giving the twins his Triwizard winnings had seemed a simple thing to do
at the time, but what if it led to another family row and a Percy-like estran
gement? Would Mrs Weasley still feel that Harry was as good as her son if she
found out he had made it possible for Fred and George to start a career she th
ought quite unsuitable?
Standing where the twins had left him, with nothing but a guilty weight in
the pit of his stomach for company, Harry caught the sound of his own name. K
ingsley Shacklebolts deep voice was audible even over the surrounding chatter.
'. . . why Dumbledore didn't make Potter a prefect?' said Kingsley.
'He'll have had his reasons,' replied Lupin.
'But it would've shown confidence in him. It's what I'd've done,' persiste
d Kingsley, ' 'specially with the Daily Prophet having a go at him every few d
ays . . .'
Harry did not look round; he did not want Lupin or Kingsley to know he had
heard. Though not remotely hungry, he followed Mundungus back towards the tab
le. His pleasure in the party had evaporated as quickly as it had come; he wis
hed he were upstairs in bed.
Mad-Eye Moody was sniffing at a chicken-leg with what remained of his nose
; evidently he could not detect any trace of poison, because he then tore a st
rip off it with his teeth.
'. . . the handle's made of Spanish oak with anti-jinx varnish and in-buil
t vibration control - ' Ron was saying to Tonks.
Mrs Weasley yawned widely.
'Well, I think I'll sort out that Boggart before I turn in . . . Arthur, I
don't want this lot up too late, all right? Night, Harry, dear.'
She left the kitchen. Harry set down his plate and wondered whether he cou
ld follow her without attracting attention.
'You all right, Potter?' grunted Moody.
'Yeah, fine,' lied Harry.
Moody took a swig from his hipflask, his electric-blue eye staring sideway
s at Harry.
'Come here, I've got something that might interest you,' he said.
From an inner pocket of his robes Moody pulled a very tattered old wizardi
ng photograph.
'Original Order of the Phoenix,' growled Moody. 'Found it last night when
I was looking for my spare Invisibility Cloak, seeing as Podmore hasn't had th
e manners to return my best one . . . thought people might like to see it.'
Harry took the photograph. A small crowd of people, some waving at him, ot
hers lifting their glasses, looked back up at him.
'There's me,' said Moody, unnecessarily pointing at himself. The Moody in
the picture was unmistakeable, though his hair was slightly less grey and his
nose was intact. 'And there's Dumbledore beside me, Dedalus Diggle on the othe
r side . . . that's Marlene McKinnon, she was killed two weeks after this was
taken, they got her whole family. That's Frank and Alice Longbottom - '
Harry's stomach, already uncomfortable, clenched as he looked at Alice Lon
gbottom; he knew her round, friendly face very well, even though he had never
met her, because she was the image of her son, Neville.
' - poor devils,' growled Moody. 'Better dead than what happened to them .
. . and that's Emmeline Vance, you've met her, and that there's Lupin, obviou
sly . . . Benjy Fenwick, he copped it too, we only ever found bits of him . .
. shift aside there,' he added, poking the picture, and the little photographi
c people edged sideways, so that those who were partially obscured could move
to the front.
'That's Edgar Bones . . . brother of Amelia Bones, they got him and his fa
mily, too, he was a great wizard . . . Sturgis Podmore, blimey, he looks young
. . . Caradoc Dearborn, vanished six months after this, we never found his bo
dy . . . Hagrid, of course, looks exactly the same as ever . . . Elphias Doge,
you've met him, I'd forgotten he used to wear that stupid hat . . . Gideon Pr
ewett, it took five Death Eaters to kill him and his brother Fabian, they foug
ht like heroes . . . budge along, budge along . . .'
The little people in the photograph jostled among themselves and those hid
den right at the back appeared at the forefront of the picture.
That's Dumbledore's brother Aberforth, only time I ever met him, strange b
loke . . . that's Dorcas Meadowes, Voldemort killed her personally . . . Siriu
s, when he still had short hair . . . and . . . there you go, thought that wou
ld interest you!'
Harry's heart turned over. His mother and father were beaming up at him, s
itting on either side of a small, watery-eyed man whom Harry recognised at onc
e as Wormtail, the one who had betrayed his parents' whereabouts to Voldemort
and so helped to bring about their deaths.
'Eh?' said Moody.
Harry looked up into Moody s heavily scarred and pitted face. Evidently Mo
ody was under the impression he had just given Harry a bit of a treat.
'Yeah,' said Harry, once again attempting to grin. 'Er . . . listen, I've
just remembered, I haven't packed my . . .'
He was spared the trouble of inventing an object he had not packed. Sirius
had just said, 'What's that you've got there, Mad-Eye?' and Moody had turned
towards him. Harry crossed the kitchen, slipped through the door and up the st
airs before anyone could call him back.
He did not know why it had been such a shock; he had seen pictures of his
parents before, after all, and he had met Wormtail . . . but to have them spru
ng on him like that, when he was least expecting it . . . no one would like th
at, he thought angrily . . .
And then, to see them surrounded by all those other happy faces . . . Benj
y Fenwick, who had been found in bits, and Gideon Prewett, who had died like a
hero, and the Longbottoms, who had been tortured into madness . . . all wavin
g happily out of the photograph forever more, not knowing that they were doome
d . . . well, Moody might find that interesting . . . he, Harry, found it dist
urbing . . .
Harry tiptoed up the stairs in the hall past the stuffed elf-heads, glad t
o be on his own again, but as he approached the first landing he heard noises.
Someone was sobbing in the drawing room.
'Hello?' Harry said.
There was no answer but the sobbing continued. He climbed the remaining st
airs two at a time, walked across the landing and opened the drawing-room door
.
Someone was cowering against the dark wall, her wand in her hand, her whol
e body shaking with sobs. Sprawled on the dusty old carpet in a patch of moonl
ight, clearly dead, was Ron.
All the air seemed to vanish from Harry's lungs; he felt as though he were
falling through the floor; his brain turned icy cold - Ron dead, no, it could
n't be - '
But wait a moment, it couldn't be - Ron was downstairs -
'Mrs Weasley?' Harry croaked.
'R - r - riddikulus!' Mrs Weasley sobbed, pointing her shaking wand at Ron
's body.
Crack,
Ron's body turned into Bill's, spread-eagled on his back, his eyes wide op
en and empty. Mrs Weasley sobbed harder than ever.
'R - riddikulus!' she sobbed again.
Crack.
Mr Weasley's body replaced Bill's, his glasses askew, a trickle of blood r
unning down his face.
'No!' Mrs Weasley moaned. 'No . . . riddikulus! Riddikulus! RID-DIKULUS!'
Crack. Dead twins. Crack. Dead Percy. Crack. Dead Harry . . .
'Mrs Weasley, just get out of here!' shouted Harry, staring down at his ow
n dead body on the floor. 'Let someone else - '
'What's going on?'
Lupin had come running into the room, closely followed by Sirius, with Moo
dy stumping along behind them. Lupin looked from Mrs Weasley to the dead Harry
on the floor and seemed to understand in an instant. Pulling out his own wand
, he said, very firmly and clearly:
'Riddikulus!'
Harry's body vanished. A silvery orb hung in the air over the spot where i
t had lain. Lupin waved his wand once more and the orb vanished in a puff of s
moke.
'Oh - oh - oh!' gulped Mrs Weasley, and she broke into a storm of crying,
her face in her hands.
'Molly' said Lupin bleakly, walking over to her. 'Molly don't . . .'
Next second, she was sobbing her heart out on Lupin's shoulder.
'Molly it was just a Boggart,' he said soothingly, patting her on the head
. 'Just a stupid Boggart . , .'
'I see them d - d - dead all the time!' Mrs Weasley moaned into his should
er. 'All the t - t - time! I d - d - dream about it . . .'
Sirius was staring at the patch of carpet where the Boggart, pretending to
be Harry's body, had lain. Moody was looking at Harry, who avoided his gaze.
He had a funny feeling Moody's magical eye had followed him all the way out of
the kitchen.
'D - d - don't tell Arthur,' Mrs Weasley was gulping now, mopping her eyes
frantically with her cuffs. 'I d - d - don't want him to know . . . being sil
ly . . .'
Lupin handed her a handkerchief and she blew her nose.
'Harry, I'm so sorry. What must you think of me?' she said shakily. 'Not e
ven able to get rid of a Boggart . . .'
'Don't be stupid,' said Harry, trying to smile.
'I'm just s - s - so worried,' she said, tears spilling out of her eyes ag
ain. 'Half the f - f - family's in the Order, it'll b - b - be a miracle if we
all come through this . . . and P - P - Percy's not talking to us . . . what
if something d-d - dreadful happens and we've never m - m - made it up with hi
m? And what's going to happen if Arthur and I get killed, who's g - g - going
to look after Ron and Ginny?'
'Molly, that's enough,' said Lupin firmly. This isn't like last time. The
Order are better prepared, we've got a head start, we know what Voldemort's up
to - '
Mrs Weasley gave a little squeak of fright at the sound of the name.
'Oh, Molly, come on, it's about time you got used to hearing his name - lo
ok, I can't promise no one's going to get hurt, nobody can promise that, but w
e're much better off than we were last time. You weren't in the Order then, yo
u don't understand. Last time we were outnumbered twenty to one by the Death E
aters and they were picking us off one by one . . .'
Harry thought of the photograph again, of his parents' beaming faces. He k
new Moody was still watching him.
'Don't worry about Percy,' said Sirius abruptly. 'He'll come round. It's o
nly a matter of time before Voldemort moves into the open; once he does, the w
hole Ministry's going to be begging us to forgive them. And I'm not sure I'll
be accepting their apology,' he added bitterly.
'And as for who's going to look after Ron and Ginny if you and Arthur died
,' said Lupin, smiling slightly, 'what do you think we'd do, let them starve?'
Mrs Weasley smiled tremulously.
'Being silly,' she muttered again, mopping her eyes.
But Harry, closing his bedroom door behind him some ten minutes later, cou
ld not think Mrs Weasley silly. He could still see his parents beaming up at h
im from the battered old photograph, unaware that their lives, like so many of
those around them, were drawing to a close. The image of the Boggart posing a
s the corpse of each member of Mrs Weasley's family in turn kept flashing befo
re his eyes.
Without warning, the scar on his forehead seared with pain again and his s
tomach churned horribly.
'Cut it out,' he said firmly, rubbing the scar as the pain receded.
'First sign of madness, talking to your own head,' said a sly voice from t
he empty picture on the wall.
Harry ignored it. He felt older than he had ever felt in his life and it s
eemed extraordinary to him that barely an hour ago he had been worried about a
joke shop and who had got a prefects badge.
- CHAPTER TEN -
Luna Lovegood
Harry had a troubled nights sleep. His parents wove in and out of his dreams,
never speaking; Mrs Weasley sobbed over Kreacher's dead body, watched by Ron a
nd Hermione who were wearing crowns, and yet again Harry found himself walking
clown a corridor ending in a locked door. He awoke abruptly with his scar pri
ckling to find Ron already dressed and talking to him.
'. . . better hurry up, Mums going ballistic, she says we're going to miss
the train . . .'
There was a lot of commotion in the house. From what he heard as he dresse
d at top speed, Harry gathered that Fred and George had bewitched their trunks
to fly downstairs to save the bother of carrying them, with the result that t
hey had hurtled straight into Ginny and knocked her down two flights of stairs
into the hall; Mrs Black and Mrs Weasley were both screaming at the top of th
eir voices.
' - COULD HAVE DONE HER A SERIOUS INJURY, YOU IDIOTS - '
' - FILTHY HALF-BREEDS, BESMIRCHING THE HOUSE OF MY FATHERS - '
Hermione came hurrying into the room looking flustered, just as Harry was
putting on his trainers. Hedwig was swaying or her shoulder, and she was carry
ing a squirming Crookshanks in her arms.
'Mum and Dad just sent Hedwig back.' The owl fluttered obligingly over and
perched on top of her cage. Are you ready yet?'
'Nearly. Is Ginny all right?' Harry asked, shoving on his glasses.
'Mrs Weasley's patched her up,' said Hermione. 'But now Mad-Eye's complain
ing that we can't leave unless Sturgis Podmore's here, otherwise the guard wil
l be one short.'
'Guard?' said Harry. 'We have to go to King's Cross with a guard?'
'You have to go to King's Cross with a guard,' Hermione corrected him.
'Why?' said Harry irritably. 'I thought Voldemort was supposed to be lying
low, or are you telling me he's going to jump out from behind a dustbin to tr
y and do me in.'
'I don't know, it's just what Mad-Eye says,' said Hermione distractedly, l
ooking at her watch, 'but if we don't leave soon we're definitely going to mis
s the train . . .'
'WILL YOU LOT GET DOWN HERE NOW, PLEASE!' Mrs Weasley bellowed and Hermion
e jumped as though scalded and hurried out of the room. Harry seized Hedwig, s
tuffed her unceremoniously into her cage, and set off downstairs after Hermion
e, dragging his trunk.
Mrs Black's portrait was howling with rage but nobody was bothering to clo
se the curtains over her; all the noise in the hall was bound to rouse her aga
in, anyway.
'Harry, you're to come with me and Tonks,' shouted Mrs Weasley over the re
peated screeches of 'MUDBLOODS! SCUM! CREATURES OF DIRT!' - 'Leave your trunk
and your owl, Alastor's going to deal with the luggage . . . oh, for heavens s
ake, Sirius, Dumbledore said no!'
A bear-like black dog had appeared at Harry's side as he was clambering ov
er the various trunks cluttering the hall to get to Mrs Weasley.
'Oh honestly . . .' said Mrs Weasley despairingly. 'Well, on your own head
be it!'
She wrenched open the front door and stepped out into the weak September s
unlight. Harry and the dog followed her. The door slammed behind them and Mrs
Black's screeches were cut off instantly.
'Where's Tonks?' Harry said, looking round as they went down the stone ste
ps of number twelve, which vanished the moment they reached the pavement.
'She's waiting for us just up here,' said Mrs Weasley stiffly, averting he
r eyes from the lolloping black dog beside Harry.
An old woman greeted them on the corner. She had tightly curled grey hair
and wore a purple hat shaped like a pork pie.
'Wotcher, Harry,' she said, winking. 'Better hurry up, hadn't we, Molly?'
she added, checking her watch.
'I know, I know,' moaned Mrs Weasley, lengthening her stride, 'but Mad-Eye
wanted to wait for Sturgis . . . if only Arthur could have got us cars from t
he Ministry again . . . but Fudge won't let him borrow so much as an empty ink
bottle these days . . . how Muggles can stand travelling without magic . . .'
But the great black dog gave a joyful bark and gambolled around them, snap
ping at pigeons and chasing its own tail. Harry couldn't help laughing. Sirius
had been trapped inside for a very long time. Mrs Weasley pursed her lips in
an almost Aunt Petunia-ish way.
It took them twenty minutes to reach King's Cross on foot and nothing more
eventful happened during that time than Sirius scaring a couple of cats for H
arry's entertainment. Once inside the station they lingered casually beside th
e barrier between platforms nine and ten until the coast was clear, then each
of them leaned against it in turn and fell easily through on to platform nine
and three-quarters, where the Hogwarts Express stood belching sooty steam over
a platform packed with departing students and their families. Harry inhaled t
he familiar smell and felt his spirits soar . . . he was really going back . .
.
'I hope the others make it in time,' said Mrs Weasley anxiously, staring b
ehind her at the wrought-iron arch spanning the platform, through which new ar
rivals would come.
'Nice dog, Harry!' called a tall boy with dreadlocks.
Thanks, Lee,' said Harry, grinning, as Sirius wagged his tail frantically.
'Oh good,' said Mrs Weasley, sounding relieved, 'here's Alastor with the l
uggage, look . . .'
A porter's cap pulled low over his mismatched eyes, Moody came limping thr
ough the archway pushing a trolley loaded with their trunks.
'All OK,' he muttered to Mrs Weasley and Tonks, 'don't think we were follo
wed . . .'
Seconds later, Mr Weasley emerged on to the platform with Ron and Hermione
. They had almost unloaded Moody's luggage trolley when Fred, George and Ginny
turned up with Lupin.
'No trouble?' growled Moody.
'Nothing,' said Lupin.
'I'll still be reporting Sturgis to Dumbledore,' said Moody, 'that's the s
econd time he's not turned up in a week. Getting as unreliable as Mundungus.'
'Well, look after yourselves,' said Lupin, shaking hands all round. He rea
ched Harry last and gave him a clap on the shoulder. 'You too, Harry. Be caref
ul.'
'Yeah, keep your head down and your eyes peeled,' said Moody, shaking Harr
y's hand too. 'And don't forget, all of you - careful what you put in writing.
If in doubt, don't put it in a letter at all.'
'It's been great meeting all of you,' said Tonks, hugging Hermione and Gin
ny. 'We'll see you soon, I expect.'
A warning whistle sounded; the students still on the platform started hurr
ying on to the train.
'Quick, quick,' said Mrs Weasley distractedly, hugging them at random and
catching Harry twice, 'Write . . . be good . . . if you've forgotten anything
we'll send it on . . . on to the train, now, hurry . . .'
For one brief moment, the great black dog reared on to its hind legs and p
laced its front paws on Harry's shoulders, but Mrs Weasley shoved Harry away t
owards the train door, hissing, 'For heaven's sake, act more like a dog, Siriu
s!'
'See you!' Harry called out of the open window as the train began to move,
while Ron, Hermione and Ginny waved beside him. The figures of Tonks, Lupin,
Moody and Mr and Mrs Weasley shrank rapidly but the black dog was bounding alo
ngside the window, wagging its tail; blurred people on the platform were laugh
ing to see it chasing the train, then they rounded a bend, and Sirius was gone
.
'He shouldn't have come with us,' said Hermione in a worried voice.
'Oh, lighten up,' said Ron, 'he hasn't seen daylight for months, poor blok
e.'
'Well,' said Fred, clapping his hands together, 'can't stand around chatti
ng all day, we've got business to discuss with Lee. See you later,' and he and
George disappeared down the corridor to the right.
The train was gathering still more speed, so that the houses outside the w
indow flashed past, and they swayed where they stood.
'Shall we go and find a compartment, then?' Harry asked.
Ron and Hermione exchanged looks.
'Er,' said Ron.
'We're - well - Ron and I are supposed to go into the prefect carnage,' He
rmione said awkwardly.
Ron wasn't looking at Harry; he seemed to have become intensely interested
in the fingernails on his left hand.
'Oh,' said Harry. 'Right. Fine.'
'I don't think we'll have to stay there all journey,' said Hermione quickl
y. 'Our letters said we just get instructions from the Head Boy and Girl and t
hen patrol the corridors from time to time.'
'Fine,' said Harry again. 'Well, I - I might see you later, then.'
'Yeah, definitely,' said Ron, casting a shifty, anxious look at Harry. 'It
's a pain having to go down there, I'd rather - but we have to - 'I mean, I'm
not enjoying it, I'm not Percy,' he finished defiantly.
'I know you're not,' said Harry and he grinned. But as Hermione and Ron dr
agged their trunks, Crookshanks and a caged Pigwidgeon off towards the engine
end of the train, Harry felt an odd sense of loss. He had never travelled on t
he Hogwarts Express without Ron.
'Come on,' Ginny told him, 'if we get a move on we'll be able to save them
places.'
'Right,' said Harry, picking up Hedwig's cage in one hand and the handle o
f his trunk in the other. They struggled off down the corridor, peering throug
h the glass-panelled doors into the compartments they passed, which were alrea
dy full. Harry could not help noticing that a lot of people stared back at him
with great interest and that several of them nudged their neighbours and poin
ted him out. After he had met this behaviour in five consecutive carriages he
remembered that the Daily Prophet had been telling its readers all summer what
a lying show-off he was. He wondered dully whether the people now staring and
whispering believed the stories.
In the very last carriage they met Neville Longbottom, Harry's fellow fift
h-year Gryffindor, his round face shining with the effort of pulling his trunk
along and maintaining a one-handed grip on his struggling toad, Trevor.
'Hi, Harry,' he panted. 'Hi, Ginny . . . everywhere's full . . . I can't f
ind a seat . . . '
'What are you talking about?' said Ginny, who had squeezed past Neville to
peer into the compartment behind him. There's room in this one, there's only
Loony Lovegood in here - '
Neville mumbled something about not wanting to disturb anyone.
'Don't be silly,' said Ginny, laughing, 'she's all right.'
She slid the door open and pulled her trunk inside. Harry and Neville foll
owed.
'Hi, Luna.' said Ginny, 'is it OK if we take these seats?'
The girl beside the window looked up. She had straggly, waist-length, dirt
y blonde hair, very pale eyebrows and protuberant eyes that gave her a permane
ntly surprised look. Harry knew at once why Neville had chosen to pass this co
mpartment by. The girl gave oil an aura of distinct dottiness. Perhaps it was
the fact that she had stuck her wand behind her left ear for safekeeping, or t
hat she had chosen to wear a necklace of Butterbeer corks, or that she was rea
ding a magazine upside-down. Her eyes ranged over Neville and came to rest on
Harry. She nodded.
Thanks,' said Ginny, smiling at her.
Harry and Neville stowed the three trunks and Hedwig's cage in the luggage
rack and sat down. Luna watched them over her upside-down magazine, which was
called The Quibbler. She did not seem to need to blink as much as normal huma
ns. She stared and stared at Harry, who had taken the seat opposite her and no
w wished he hadn't.
'Had a good summer, Luna?' Ginny asked.
'Yes,' said Luna dreamily, without taking her eyes off Harry. 'Yes, it was
quite enjoyable, you know. You're Harry Potter,' she added.
'I know I am,' said Harry.
Neville chuckled. Luna turned her pale eyes on him instead.
'And I don't know who you are.'
'I'm nobody,' said Neville hurriedly.
'No you're not,' said Ginny sharply. 'Neville Longbottom - Luna Lovegood.
Luna's in my year, but in Ravenclaw.'
'Wit beyond measure is man's greatest treasure,' said Luna in a singsong v
oice.
She raised her upside-down magazine high enough to hide her face and fell
silent. Harry and Neville looked at each other with their eyebrows raised. Gin
ny suppressed a giggle.
The train rattled onwards, speeding them out into open country. It was an
odd, unsettled sort of day; one moment the carriage was full of sunlight and t
he next they were passing beneath ominously grey clouds.
'Guess what I got for my birthday?' said Neville.
'Another Remembrall?' said Harry, remembering the marble-like device Nevil
le's grandmother had sent him in an effort to improve his abysmal memory.
'No,' said Neville. 'I could do with one, though, I lost the old one ages
ago . . . no, look at this . . .'
He dug the hand that was not keeping a firm grip on Trevor into his school
bag and after a little bit of rummaging pulled out what appeared to be a small
grey cactus in a pot, except that it was covered with what looked like boils
rather than spines.
'Mimbulus mimbletonia,' he said proudly.
Harry stared at the thing. It was pulsating slightly, giving it the rather
sinister look of some diseased internal organ.
'It's really, really rare,' said Neville, beaming. 'I don't know if there'
s one in the greenhouse at Hogwarts, even. I can't wait to show it to Professo
r Sprout. My Great Uncle Algie got it for me in Assyria. I'm going to see if I
can breed from it.'
Harry knew that Neville's favourite subject was Herbology but for the life
of him he could not see what he would want with this stunted little plant.
'Does it - er - do anything?' he asked.
'Loads of stuff!' said Neville proudly. 'It's got an amazing defensive mec
hanism. Here, hold Trevor for me . . .'
He dumped the toad into Harry's lap and took a quill from his schoolbag. L
una Lovegood's popping eyes appeared over the top of her upside-down magazine
again, to watch what Neville was
doing. Neville held the Mimbulus mimblctonia up to his eyes, his tongue be
tween his teeth, chose his spot, and gave the plant a sharp prod with the tip
of his quill.
Liquid squirted from every boil on the plant; thick, stinking, dark green
jets of it. They hit the ceiling, the windows, and spattered Luna Lovegood's m
agazine; Ginny, who had flung her arms up in front of her face just in time, m
erely looked as though she was wearing a slimy green hat, but Harry, whose han
ds had been busy preventing Trevor's escape, received a faceful. It smelled li
ke rancid manure.
Neville, whose face and torso were also drenched, shook his head to get th
e worst out of his eyes.
'S - sorry,' he gasped. 'I haven't tried that before . . . didn't realise
it would be quite so . . . don't worry, though, Stinksap's not poisonous,' he
added nervously, as Harry spat a mouthful on to the floor.
At that precise moment the door of their compartment slid open.
'Oh . . . hello, Harry,' said a nervous voice. 'Urn . . . bad time?'
Harry wiped the lenses of his glasses with his Trevor-free hand. A very pr
etty girl with long, shiny black hair was standing in the doorway smiling at h
im: Cho Chang, the Seeker on the Ravenclaw Quidditch team.
'Oh . . . hi,' said Harry blankly.
'Um . . .' said Cho. 'Well . . . just thought I'd say hello . . . bye then
.'
Rather pink in the face, she closed the door and departed. Harry slumped b
ack in his seat and groaned. He would have liked Cho to discover him sitting w
ith a group of very cool people laughing their heads off at a joke he had just
told; he would not have chosen to be sitting with Neville and Loony Lovegood,
clutching a toad and dripping in Stinksap.
'Never mind,' said Ginny bracingly. 'Look, we can easily get rid of all th
is.' She pulled out her wand. 'Scourgify!'
The Stinksap vanished.
'Sorry.' said Neville again, in a small voice.
Ron and Hermione did not turn up for nearly an hour, by which time the foo
d trolley had already gone by. Harry, Ginny and Neville had finished their pum
pkin pasties and were busy swapping Chocolate Frog Cards when the compartment
door slid open and they walked in, accompanied by Crookshanks and a shrilly ho
oting Pigwidgeon in his cage.
'I'm starving,' said Ron, stowing Pigwidgeon next to Hedwig, grabbing a Ch
ocolate Frog from Harry and throwing himself into the seat next to him. He rip
ped open the wrapper, bit off the frog's head and leaned back with his eyes cl
osed as though he had had a very exhausting morning.
'Well, there are two fifth-year prefects from each house,' said Hermione,
looking thoroughly disgruntled as she took her seat. 'Boy and girl from each.'
'And guess who's a Slytherin prefect?' said Ron, still with his eyes close
d.
'Malfoy,' replied Harry at once, certain his worst fear would be confirmed
.
'Course,' said Ron bitterly, stuffing the rest of the Frog into his mouth
and taking another.
'And that complete cow Pansy Parkinson,' said Hermione viciously. 'How she
got to be a prefect when she's thicker than a concussed troll . . .
'Who are Hufflepuff's?' Harry asked.
'Ernie Macmillan and Hannah Abbott,' said Ron thickly.
'And Anthony Goldstein and Padma Patil for Ravenclaw,' said Hermione.
'You went to the Yule Ball with Padma Patil,' said a vague voice.
Everyone turned to look at Luna Lovegood, who was gazing unblinkingly at R
on over the top of The Quibbler. He swallowed his mouthful of Frog.
'Yeah, I know I did,' he said, looking mildly surprised.
'She didn't enjoy it very much,' Luna informed him. 'She doesn't think you
treated her very well, because you wouldn't dance with her. I don't think I'd
have minded,' she added thoughtfully, 'I don't like dancing very much.'
She retreated behind The Quibbler again. Ron stared at the cover with his
mouth hanging open for a few seconds, then looked around at Ginny for some kin
d of explanation, but Ginny had stuffed her knuckles in her mouth to stop hers
elf giggling. Ron shook his head, bemused, then checked his watch.
'We're supposed to patrol the corridors every so often,' he told Harry and
Neville, 'and we can give out punishments if people are misbehaving. I can't
wait to get Crabbe and Goyle for something . . . '
'You're not supposed to abuse your position, Ron!' said Hermione sharply.
'Yeah, right, because Malfoy won't abuse it at all,' said Ron sarcasticall
y.
'So you're going to descend to his level?'
'No, I'm just going to make sure I get his mates before he gets mine.'
'For heavens sake, Ron - '
'I'll make Goyle do lines, it'll kill him, he hates writing,' said Ron hap
pily. He lowered his voice to Goyle's low grunt and, screwing up his face in a
look of pained concentration, mimed writing in midair. 'I . . . must. . . not
. . . look . . .like . . . a . . . baboon's . . . backside.'
Everyone laughed, but nobody laughed harder than Luna Lovegood. She let ou
t a scream of mirth that caused Hedwig to wake up and flap her wings indignant
ly and Crookshanks to leap up into the luggage rack, hissing. Luna laughed so
hard her magazine slipped out of her grasp, slid down her legs and on to the f
loor.
'That was funny!'
Her prominent eyes swam with tears as she gasped for breath, staring at Ro
n. Utterly nonplussed, he looked around at the others, who were now laughing a
t the expression on Ron's face and at the ludicrously prolonged laughter of Lu
na Lovegood, who was rocking backwards and forwards, clutching her sides.
'Are you taking the mickey?' said Ron, frowning at her.
'Baboon's . . . backside!' she choked, holding her ribs.
Everyone else was watching Luna laughing, but Harry, glancing at the magaz
ine on the floor, noticed something that made him dive for it. Upside-down it
had been hard to tell what the picture on the front was, but Harry now realise
d i! was a fairly bad cartoon of Cornelius Fudge; Harry only recognised him be
cause of the lime-green bowler hat. One of Fudges hands was clenched around a
bag of gold; the other hand was throttling a goblin. The cartoon was captioned
: How Far Will Fudge Go to Gain Gringotts?
Beneath this were listed the titles of other articles inside the magazine.
Corruption in the Quidditch League:
How the Tornados are Taking Control
Secrets of the Ancient Runes Revealed
Sirius Black: Villain or Victim?
'Can I have a look at this?' Harry asked Luna eagerly.
She nodded, still gazing at Ron, breathless with laughter.
Harry opened the magazine and scanned the index. Until this moment he had
completely forgotten the magazine Kingsley had handed Mr Weasley to give to Si
rius, but it must have been this edition of The Quibbler.
He found the page, and turned excitedly to the article.
This, too, was illustrated by a rather bad cartoon; in fact, Harry would n
ot have known it was supposed to be Sirius if it hadn't been captioned. Sirius
was standing on a pile of human bones with his wand out. The headline on the
article said:
SIRIUS - BLACK AS HE'S PAINTED?
Notorious mass murderer or innocent singing sensation?
Harry had to read this first sentence several times before he was convinced th
at he had not misunderstood it. Since when had Sirius been a singing sensation
?
For fourteen years Sirius Black has been believed guilty of the mass murder of
twelve innocent Muggles and one wizard. Black's audacious escape from Azkaban
two years ago has led to the widest manhunt ever conducted by the Ministry of
Magic. None of us has ever questioned that he deserves to be recaptured and h
anded back to the Dementors.
BUT DOES HE?
Startling new evidence has recently come to light that Sirius Black may no
t have committed the crimes for which he was sent to Azhaban. In fact, says Do
ris Purkiss, of 18 Acanthia Way, Little Norton, Black may not even have been p
resent at the killings.
'What people don't realise is that Sirius Black is a false name,' says Mrs
Purkiss. 'The man people believe to be Sirius Black is actually Stubby Boardm
an, lead singer of popular singing group The Hobgoblins, who retired from publ
ic life after being struck on the ear by a turnip at a concert in Little Norto
n Church Hall nearly fifteen years ago. I recognised him the moment I saw his
picture in the paper. Now, Stubby couldn't possibly have committed those crime
s, because on the day in question he happened to be enjoying a romantic candle
lit dinner with me. I have written to the Minister for Magic and am expecting
him to give Stubby, alias Sirius, a full pardon any day now.'
Harry finished reading and stared at the page in disbelief. Perhaps it was a j
oke, he thought, perhaps the magazine often printed spoof items. He flicked ba
ck a few pages and found the piece on Fudge.
Cornelius Fudge, the Minister for Magic, denied that he had any plans to take
over the running of the Wizarding Bank, Gringotts, when he was elected Ministe
r for Magic jive years ago. Fudge has always insisted that he wants nothing mo
re than to 'co-operate peacefully' with the guardians of our gold.
BUT DOES HE?
Sources close to the Minister have recently disclosed that Fudge's dearest
ambition is to seize control of the goblin gold supplies and that he will not
hesitate to use force if need be.
'It wouldn't be the first time, either,' said a Ministry insider. 'Corneli
us "Goblin-Crusher" Fudge, that's what his friends call him. If you could hear
him when he thinks no one's listening, oh, he's always talking about the gobl
ins he's had done in; he's had them drowned, he's had them dropped off buildin
gs, he's had them poisoned, he's had them cooked in pies . . .'
Harry did not read any further. Fudge might have many faults but Harry found i
t extremely hard to imagine him ordering goblins to be cooked in pies. He flic
ked through the rest of the magazine. Pausing every few pages, he read: an acc
usation that the Tutshill Tornados were winning the Quidditch League by a comb
ination of blackmail, illegal broom-tampering and torture; an interview with a
wizard who claimed to have flown to the moon on a Cleansweep Six and brought
back a bag of moon frogs to prove it; and an article on ancient runes which at
least explained why Luna had been reading The Quibbler upside-down. According
to the magazine, if you turned the runes on their heads they revealed a spell
to make your enemy's ears turn into kumquats. In fact, compared to the rest o
f the articles in The Quibbler, the suggestion that Sirius might really be the
lead singer of The Hobgoblins was quite sensible.
'Anything good in there?' asked Ron as Harry closed the magazine.
'Of course not,' said Hermione scathingly, before Harry could answer. The
Quibbler's rubbish, everyone knows that.'
'Excuse me,' said Luna; her voice had suddenly lost its dreamy quality. 'M
y father's the editor.'
'I - oh,' said Hermione, looking embarrassed. 'Well . . . it's got some in
teresting . . . I mean, it's quite
'I'll have it back, thank you,' said Luna coldly, and leaning forwards she
snatched it out of Harry's hands. Riffling through it to page fifty-seven, sh
e turned it resolutely upside-down again and disappeared behind it, just as th
e compartment door opened for the third time.
Harry looked around; he had expected this, but that did not make the sight
of Draco Malfoy smirking at him from between his cronies Crabbe and Goyle any
more enjoyable.
'What?' he said aggressively, before Malfoy could open his mouth.
'Manners, Potter, or I'll have to give you a detention,' drawled Malfoy, w
hose sleek blond hair and pointed chin were just like his father's. 'You see,
I, unlike you, have been made a prefect, which means that I, unlike you, have
the power to hand out punishments.'
'Yeah,' said Harry, 'but you, unlike me, are a git, so get out and leave u
s alone.'
Ron, Hermione, Ginny and Neville laughed. Malfoy's lip curled.
'Tell me, how does it feel being second-best to Weasley, Potter?' he asked
.
'Shut up, Malfoy,' said Hermione sharply.
'I seem to have touched a nerve,' said Malfoy, smirking. 'Well, just watch
yourself, Potter, because I'll be dogging your footsteps in case you step out
of line.'
'Get out!' said Hermione, standing up.
Sniggering, Malfoy gave Harry a last malicious look and departed, with Cra
bbe and Goyle lumbering along in his wake. Hermione slammed the compartment do
or behind them and turned to look at Harry, who knew at once that she, like hi
m, had registered what Malfoy had said and been just as unnerved by it.
'Chuck us another Frog,' said Ron, who had clearly noticed nothing.
Harry could not talk freely in front of Neville and Luna. He exchanged ano
ther nervous look with Hermione, then stared out of the window.
He had thought Sirius coming with him to the station was a bit of a laugh,
but suddenly it seemed reckless, if not downright dangerous . . . Hermione ha
d been right . . . Sirius should not have come. What if Mr Malfoy had noticed
the black dog and told Draco? What if he had deduced that the Weasleys, Lupin,
Tonks and Moody knew where Sirius was hiding? Or had Malfoy's use of the word
'dogging' been a coincidence?
The weather remained undecided as they travelled further and farther north
. Rain spattered the windows in a half-hearted way, then the sun put in a feeb
le appearance before clouds drifted over it once more. When darkness fell and
lamps came on inside the carriages, Luna rolled up The Quibbler, put it carefu
lly away ii her bag and took to staring at everyone in the compartment instead
.
Harry was sitting with his forehead pressed against the train window, tryi
ng to get a first distant glimpse of Hogwarts, but it was a moonless night and
the rain-streaked window was grimy.
'We'd better change,' said Hermione at last, and all of them opened their
trunks with difficulty and pulled on their school robes. She and Ron pinned th
eir prefect badges carefully to their chests. Harry saw Ron checking his refle
ction in the black window.
At last, the train began to slow down and they heard the usual racket up a
nd down it as everybody scrambled to get their luggage and pets assembled, rea
dy to get on. As Ron and Hermione were supposed to supervise all this, they di
sappeared from the carriage again, leaving Harry and the others to look after
Crookshanks and Pigwidgeon.
'I'll carry that owl, if you like,' said Luna to Harry, reaching out for P
igwidgeon as Neville stowed Trevor carefully in an inside pocket.
'Oh - er - thanks,' said Harry, handing her the cage and hoisting Hedwig's
more securely into his arms.
They shuffled out of the compartment feeling the first sting of the night
air on their faces as they joined the crowd in the corridor. Slowly, they move
d towards the doors. Harry could smell the pine trees that lined the path down
to the lake. He stepped down on to the platform and looked around, listening
for the familiar call of 'firs'-years over 'ere . . . firs'-years . . .'
But it did not come. Instead, a quite different voice, a brisk female one,
was calling out, 'First-years line up over here, please! All first-years to m
e!'
A lantern came swinging towards Harry and by its light he saw the prominen
t chin and severe haircut of Professor Grubbly-Plank, the witch who had taken
over Hagrid's Care of Magical Creatures lessons for a while the previous year.
'Where's Hagrid?' he said out loud.
'I don't know,' said Ginny, 'but we'd better get out of the way, we're blo
cking the door.'
'Oh, yeah . . .'
Harry and Ginny became separated as they moved off along the platform and
out through the station. Jostled by the crowd, Harry squinted through the dark
ness for a glimpse of Hagrid; he had to be here, Harry had been relying on it
- seeing Hagrid again was one of the things he'd been looking forward to most.
But there was no sign of him.
He can't have left, Harry told himself as he shuffled slowly through a nar
row doorway on to the road outside with the rest of the crowd. He's just got a
cold or something . . .
He looked around for Ron or Hermione, wanting to know what they thought ab
out the reappearance of Professor Grubbly-Plank, but neither of them was anywh
ere near him, so he allowed himself to be shunted forwards on to the dark rain
-washed road outside Hogsmeade Station.
Here stood the hundred or so horseless stagecoaches that always took the s
tudents above first year up to the castle. Harry glanced quickly at them, turn
ed away to keep a lookout for Ron and Hermione, then did a double-take.
The coaches were no longer horseless. There were creatures standing betwee
n the carriage shafts. If he had had to give them a name, he supposed he would
have called them horses, though there was something reptilian about them, too
. They were completely fleshless, their black coats clinging to their skeleton
s, of which every bone was visible. Their heads were dragonish, and their pupi
l-less eyes white and staring. Wings sprouted from each wither - vast, black l
eathery wings that looked as though they ought to belong to giant bats. Standi
ng still and quiet in the gathering gloom, the creatures looked eerie and sini
ster. Harry could not understand why the coaches were being pulled by these ho
rrible horses when they v/ere quite capable of moving along by themselves.
'Where's Pig?' said Ron's voice, right behind Harry.
That Luna girl was carrying him,' said Harry, turning quickly, eager to co
nsult Ron about Hagrid. 'Where d'you reckon - '
' - Hagrid is? I dunno,' said Ron, sounding worried. 'He'd better be OK .
. .'
A short distance away, Draco Malfoy, followed by a small gang of cronies i
ncluding Crabbe, Goyle and Pansy Parkinson, was pushing some timid-looking sec
ond-years out of the way so that he and his friends could get a coach to thems
elves. Seconds later, Hermione emerged panting from the crowd.
'Malfoy was being absolutely foul to a first-year back there. I swear I'm
going to report him, he's only had his badge three minutes and he's using it t
o bully people worse than ever . . . where's Crookshanks?'
'Ginny's got him,' said Harry. There she is . . .'
Ginny had just emerged from the crowd, clutching a squirming Crookshanks,
Thanks,' said Hermione, relieving Ginny of the cat. 'Come on, let's get a
carriage together before they all fill up . . .'
'I haven't got Pig yet!' Ron said, but Hermione was already heading off to
wards the nearest unoccupied coach. Harry remained behind with Ron.
'What are those things, d'you reckon?' he asked Ron, nodding at the horrib
le horses as the other students surged past them.
'What things?'
'Those horse - '
Luna appeared holding Pigwidgeon's cage in her arms; the tiny owl was twit
tering excitedly as usual.
'Here you are,' she said. 'He's a sweet little owl, isn't he?'
'Er . . . yeah . . . he's all right,' said Ron gruffly. 'Well, come on the
n, let's get in . . . what were you saying, Harry?'
'I was saying, what are those horse things?' Harry said, as he, Ron and Lu
na made for the carriage in which Hermione and Ginny were already sitting.
'What horse things?'
'The horse things pulling the carriages!' said Harry impatiently. They wer
e, after all, about three feet from the nearest one; it was watching them with
empty white eyes. Ron, however, gave Harry a perplexed look.
'What are you talking about?'
'I'm talking about - look!'
Harry grabbed Ron's arm and wheeled him about so that he was face to face
with the winged horse. Ron stared straight at it for a second, then looked bac
k at Harry.
'What am I supposed to be looking at?'
'At the - there, between the shafts! Harnessed to the coach! It's right th
ere in front - '
But as Ron continued to look bemused, a strange thought occurred to Harry.
'Can't . . . can't you see them?'
'See what?'
'Can't you see what's pulling the carriages?'
Ron looked seriously alarmed now.
'Are you feeling all right, Harry?'
'I . . . yeah . . .'
Harry felt utterly bewildered. The horse was there in front of him, gleami
ng solidly in the dim light issuing from the station windows behind them, vapo
ur rising from its nostrils in the chilly night air. Yet, unless Ron was fakin
g - and it was a very feeble joke if he was - Ron could not see it at all.
'Shall we get in, then?' said Ron uncertainly, looking at Harry as though
worried about him.
'Yeah,' said Harry. 'Yeah, go on . . .'
'It's all right,' said a dreamy voice from beside Harry as Ron vanished in
to the coach's dark interior. 'You're not going mad or anything. I can see the
m, too.'
'Can you?' said Harry desperately, turning to Luna. He could see the bat-w
inged horses reflected in her wide silvery eyes.
'Oh, yes,' said Luna, 'I've been able to see them ever since my first day
here. They've always pulled the carriages. Don't worry. You're just as sane as
I am.'
Smiling faintly, she climbed into the musty interior of the carriage alter
Ron. Not altogether reassured, Harry followed her.
- CHAPTER ELEVEN -
The Sorting Hat's
New Song
Harry did not want to tell the others that he and Luna were having the same ha
llucination, if that was what it was, so he said nothing more about the horses
as he sat down inside the carriage and slammed the door behind him. Neverthel
ess, he could not help watching the silhouettes of the horses moving beyond th
e window.
'Did everyone see that Grubbly-Plank woman?' asked Ginny. 'What's she doin
g back here? Hagrid can't have left, can he?'
'I'll be quite glad if he has,' said Luna, 'he isn't a very good teacher,
is he?'
'Yes, he is!' said Harry, Ron and Ginny angrily.
Harry glared at Hermione. She cleared her throat and quickly said, 'Erm .
. . yes . . . he's very good.'
'Well, we in Ravenclaw think he's a bit of a joke,' said Luna, unfazed.
'You've got a rubbish sense of humour then,' Ron snapped, as the wheels be
low them creaked into motion.
Luna did not seem perturbed by Ron's rudeness; on the contrary, she simply
watched him for a while as though he were a mildly interesting television pro
gramme.
Rattling and swaying, the carriages moved in convoy up the road. When they
passed between the tall stone pillars topped with winged boars on either side
of the gates to the school grounds, Harry leaned forwards to try and see whet
her there were any lights on in Hagrid's cabin by the Forbidden Forest, but th
e grounds were in complete darkness. Hogwarts Castle, however, loomed ever
closer: a towering mass of turrets, jet black against the dark sky, here a
nd there a window blazing fiery bright above them.
The carriages jingled to a halt near the stone steps leading up to the oak
front doors and Harry got out of the carriage first. He turned again to look
for lit windows down by the Forest, but there was definitely no sign of life w
ithin Hagrid's cabin. Unwillingly, because he had half-hoped they would have v
anished, he turned his eyes instead upon the strange, skeletal creatures stand
ing quietly in the chill night air, their blank white eyes gleaming.
Harry had once before had the experience of seeing something that Ron coul
d not, but that had been a reflection in a mirror, something much more insubst
antial than a hundred very solid-looking beasts strong enough to pull a fleet
of carriages. If Luna was to be believed, the beasts had always been there but
invisible. Why, then, could Harry suddenly see them, and why could Ron not?
'Are you coming or what?' said Ron beside him.
'Oh . . . yeah,' said Harry quickly and they joined the crowd hurrying up
the stone steps into the castle.
The Entrance Hall was ablaze with torches and echoing with footsteps as th
e students crossed the flagged stone floor for the double doors to the right,
leading to the Great Hall and the start-of-term feast.
The four long house tables in the Great Hall were filling up under the sta
rless black ceiling, which was just like the sky they could glimpse through th
e high windows. Candles floated in midair all along the tables, illuminating t
he silvery ghosts who were dotted about the Hall and the faces of the students
talking eagerly, exchanging summer news, shouting greetings at friends from o
ther houses, eyeing one another's new haircuts and robes. Again, Harry noticed
people putting their heads together to whisper as he passed; he gritted his t
eeth and tried to act as though he neither noticed nor cared.
Luna drifted away from them at the Ravenclaw table. The moment they reache
d Gryffindor's, Ginny was hailed by some fellow fourth-years and left to sit w
ith them; Harry, Ron, Hermione and Neville found seats together about halfway
down the table between Nearly Headless Nick, the Gryffindor house ghost, and P
arvati Patil and Lavender Brown, the last two of whom gave Harry airy, overly-
friendly greetings that made him quite sure they had stopped talking about him
a split second before. He had more important things to worry about, however:
he was looking over the students' heads to the staff table that ran along the
top wall of the Hall.
'He's not there.'
Ron and Hermione scanned the staff table too, though there was no real nee
d; Hagrid's size made him instantly obvious in any lineup.
'He can't have left,' said Ron, sounding slightly anxious.
'Of course he hasn't,' said Harry firmly.
'You don't think he's . . . hurt, or anything, do you?' said Hermione unea
sily.
'No,' said Harry at once.
'But where is he, then?'
There was a pause, then Harry said very quietly, so that Neville, Parvati
and Lavender could not hear, 'Maybe he's not back yet. You know - from his mis
sion - the thing he was doing over the summer for Dumbledore.'
'Yeah . . . yeah, that'll be it,' said Ron, sounding reassured, but Hermio
ne bit her lip, looking up and down the staff table as though hoping for some
conclusive explanation of Hagrid's absence.
'Who's that?' she said sharply, pointing towards the middle of the staff t
able.
Harry's eyes followed hers. They lit first upon Professor Dumbledore, sitt
ing in his high-backed golden chair at the centre of the long staff table, wea
ring deep-purple robes scattered with silvery stars and a matching hat. Dumble
dore's head was inclined towards the woman sitting next to him, who was talkin
g into his ear. She looked, Harry thought, like somebody's maiden aunt: squat,
with short, curly, mouse-brown hair in which she had placed a horrible pink A
lice band that matched the fluffy pink cardigan she wore over her robes. Then
she turned her face slightly to take a sip from her goblet and he saw, with a
shock of recognition, a pallid, toadlike face and a pair of prominent, pouchy
eyes.
'It's that Umbridge woman!'
'Who?' said Hermione.
'She was at my hearing, she works for Fudge!'
'Nice cardigan,' said Ron, smirking.
'She works for Fudge!' Hermione repeated, frowning. 'What on earth's she d
oing here, then?'
'Dunno . . .'
Hermione scanned the staff table, her eyes narrowed.
'No,' she muttered, 'no, surely not . . .'
Harry did not understand what she was talking about but did not ask; his a
ttention had been caught by Professor Grubbly-Plank who had just appeared behi
nd the staff table; she worked her way along to the very end and took the seat
that ought to have been Hagrid's. That meant the first-years must have crosse
d the lake and reached the castle, and sure enough, a few seconds later, the d
oors from the Entrance Hall opened. A long line of scared-looking first-years
entered, led by Professor McGonagall, who was carrying a stool on which sat an
ancient wizards hat, heavily patched and darned with a wide rip near the fray
ed brim.
The buzz of talk in the Great Hall faded away. The first-years lined up in
front of the staff table facing the rest of the students, and Professor McGon
agall placed the stool carefully in front of them, then stood back.
The first-years' faces glowed palely in the candlelight. A small boy right
in the middle of the row looked as though he was trembling. Harry recalled, f
leetingly, how terrified he had felt when he had stood there, waiting for the
unknown test that would determine to which house he belonged.
The whole school waited with bated breath. Then the rip near the hat's bri
m opened wide like a mouth and the Sorting Hat burst into song:
In times of old when I was new
And Hogwarts barely started
The founders of our noble school
Thought never to be parted:
United by a common goal,
They had the selfsame yearning,
To make the world's best magic school
And pass along their learning.
'Together we will build and teach!'
The four good friends decided
And never did they dream that they
Might some day be divided,
For were there such friends anywhere
As Slytherin and Gryffindor?
Unless it was the second pair
Of Hufflepuff and Ravenclaw?
So how could it have gone so wrong?
How could such friendships fail?
Why, I was there and so can tell
The whole sad, sorry tale.
Said Slytherin, 'We'll teach just those
Whose ancestry is purest.'
Said Ravenclaw, 'We'll teach those whose
Intelligence is surest.'
Said Gryffindor, 'We'll teach all those
With brave deeds to their name,'
Said Hufflepuff, 'I'll teach the lot,
And treat them just the same.'
These differences caused little strife
When first they came to light,
For each of the four founders had
A house in which they might
Take only those they wanted, so,
For instance, Slytherin
Took only pure-blood wizards
Of great cunning, just like him,
And only those of sharpest mind
Were taught by Ravenclaw
While the bravest and the boldest
Went to daring Gryffindor.
Good Hufflepuff, she took the rest,
And taught them all she knew,
Thus the houses and their founders
Retained friendships firm and true.
So Hogwarts worked in harmony
For several happy years,
But then discord crept among us
Feeding on our faults and fears.
The houses that, like pillars four,
Had once held up our school,
Now turned upon each other and,
Divided, sought to rule.
And for a while it seemed the school
Must meet an early end,
What with duelling and with fighting
And the clash of friend on friend
And at last there came c morning
When old Slytherin departed
And though the fighting then died out
He left us quite downhearted.
And never since the founders four
Were whittled down to three
Have the houses been united
As they once were meant to be.
And now the Sorting Hat is here
And you all know the score:
I sort you into houses
Because that is what I'm for,
But this year I'll go further,
Listen closely to my song:
Though condemned I am to split you
Still I worry that it's wrong,
Though I must fulfil my duty
And must quarter every year
Still I wonder whether Sorting
May not bring the end I fear.
Oh, know the perils, read the signs,
The warning history shows,
For our Hogwarts is in danger
From external, deadly foes
And we must unite inside her
Or we'll crumble from within
I have told you, I have warned you . . .
Let the Sorting now begin.
The Hat became motionless once more; applause broke out, though it was punctur
ed, for the first time in Harry's memory, with muttering and whispers. All acr
oss the Great Hall students were exchanging remarks with their neighbours, and
Harry, clapping along with everyone else, knew exactly what they were talking
about.
'Branched out a bit this year, hasn't it?' said Ron, his eyebrows raised.
Too right it has,' said Harry.
The Sorting Hat usually confined itself to describing the different qualit
ies looked for by each of the four Hogwarts houses and its own role in Sorting
them. Harry could not remember it ever trying to give the school advice befor
e.
'I wonder if it's ever given warnings before?' said Hermione, sounding sli
ghtly anxious.
'Yes, indeed,' said Nearly Headless Nick knowledgeably, leaning across Nev
ille towards her (Neville winced; it was very uncomfortable to have a ghost le
an through you). The Hat feels itself honour-bound to give the school due warn
ing whenever it feels - '
But Professor McGonagall, who was waiting to read out the list of first-ye
ars' names, was giving the whispering students the sort of look that scorches.
Nearly Headless Nick placed a see-through finger to his lips and sat primly u
pright again as the muttering came to an abrupt end. With a last frowning look
that swept the lour house tables, Professor McGonagall lowered her eyes to he
r long piece of parchment and called out the first name.
'Abercrombie, Euan.'
The terrified-looking boy Harry had noticed earlier stumbled forwards and
put the Hat on his head; it was only prevented from falling right down to his
shoulders by his very prominent ears. The Hat considered for a moment, then th
e rip near the brim opened again and shouted:
'Gryffindor!'
Harry clapped loudly with the rest of Gryffindor house as Euan Abercrombie
staggered to their table and sat down, looking as though he would like very m
uch to sink through the floor and never be looked at again.
Slowly, the long line of first-years thinned. In the pauses between the na
mes and the Sorting Hat's decisions, Harry could hear Ron's stomach rumbling l
oudly. Finally, 'Zeller, Rose' was Sorted into Hufflepuff, and Professor McGon
agall picked up the Hat and stool and marched them away as Professor Dumbledor
e rose to his feet.
Whatever his recent bitter feelings had been towards his Headmaster, Harry
was somehow soothed to see Dumbledore standing before them all. Between the a
bsence of Hagrid and the presence of those dragonish horses, he had felt that
his return to Hogwarts, so long anticipated, was full of unexpected surprises,
like jarring notes in a familiar song. But this, at least, was how it was sup
posed to be: their Headmaster rising to greet them all before the start-of-ter
m feast.
'To our newcomers,' said Dumbledore in a ringing voice, his arms stretched
wide and a beaming smile on his lips, 'welcome! To our old hands - welcome ba
ck! There is a time for speech-making, but this is not it. Tuck in!'
There was an appreciative laugh and an outbreak of applause as Dumbledore
sat down neatly and threw his long beard over his shoulder so as to keep it ou
t of the way of his plate - for food had appeared out of nowhere, so that the
five long tables were groaning under joints and pies and dishes of vegetables,
bread and sauces and flagons of pumpkin juice.
'Excellent,' said Ron, with a kind of groan of longing, and he seized the
nearest plate of chops and began piling them on to his plate, watched wistfull
y by Nearly Headless Nick.
'What were you saying before the Sorting?' Hermione asked the ghost. 'Abou
t the Hat giving warnings?'
'Oh, yes,' said Nick, who seemed glad of a reason to turn away from Ron, w
ho was now eating roast potatoes with almost indecent enthusiasm. 'Yes, I have
heard the Hat give several warnings before, always at times when it detects p
eriods of great danger for the school. And always, of course, its advice is th
e same: stand together, be strong from within.'
'Ow kunnit nofe skusin danger ifzat?' said Ron.
His mouth was so full Harry thought it was quite an achievement for him to
make any noise at all.
'I beg your pardon?' said Nearly Headless Nick politely, while Hermione lo
oked revolted. Ron gave an enormous swallow and said, 'How can it know if the
school's in danger if it's a Hat?'
'I have no idea,' said Nearly Headless Nick. 'Of course, it lives in Dumbl
edore's office, so I daresay it picks things up there.'
'And it wants all the houses to be friends?' said Harry, looking over at t
he Slytherin table, where Draco Malfoy was holding court. 'Fat chance.'
'Well, now, you shouldn't take that attitude,' said Nick reprovingly. 'Pea
ceful co-operation, that's the key. We ghosts, though we belong to separate ho
uses, maintain links of friendship. In spite of the competitiveness between Gr
yffindor and Slytherin, I would never dream of seeking an argument with the Bl
oody Baron.'
'Only because you're terrified of him,' said Ron.
Nearly Headless Nick looked highly affronted.
Terrified? I hope I, Sir Nicholas de Mimsy-Porpington, have never been gui
lty of cowardice in my life! The noble blood that runs in my veins -'
'What blood?' asked Ron. 'Surely you haven't still got - ?'
'It's a figure of speech!' said Nearly Headless Nick, now so annoyed his h
ead was trembling ominously on his partially severed neck. 'I assume I am stil
l allowed to enjoy the use of whichever words I like, even if the pleasures of
eating and drinking are denied me! But I am quite used to students poking fun
at my death, I assure you!'
'Nick, he wasn't really laughing at you!' said Hermione, throwing a furiou
s look at Ron.
Unfortunately, Ron's mouth was packed to exploding point again and all he
could manage was 'Node iddum eentup sechew,' which Nick did not seem to think
constituted an adequate apology. Rising into the air, he straightened his feat
hered hat and swept away from them to the other end of the table, coming to re
st between the Creevey brothers, Colin and Dennis.
'Well done, Ron,' snapped Hermione
'What?' said Ron indignantly, having managed, finally, to swallow his food
. Tin not allowed to ask a simple question?'
'Oh, forget it,' said Hermione irritably, and the pair of them spent the r
est of the meal in huffy silence.
Harry was too used to their bickering to bother trying to reconcile them;
he felt it was a better use of his time to eat his way steadily through his st
eak and kidney pie, then a large plateful of his favourite treacle tart.
When all the students had finished eating and the noise level in the Hall
was starting to creep upwards again, Dumbledore got to his feet once more. Tal
king ceased immediately as all turned to face the Headmaster. Harry was feelin
g pleasantly drowsy now. His four-poster bed was waiting somewhere above, wond
erfully warm and soft . . .
'Well, now that we are all digesting another magnificent feast, I beg a fe
w moments of your attention for the usual start-of-term notices,' said Dumbled
ore. 'First-years ought to know that the Forest in the grounds is out-of-bound
s to students - and a few of our older students ought to know by now, too.' (H
arry, Ron and Hermione exchanged smirks.)
'Mr Filch, the caretaker, has asked me, for what he tells me is the four-h
undred-and-sixty-second time, to remind you all that magic is not permitted in
corridors between classes, nor are a number of other things, all of which can
be checked on the extensive list now fastened to Mr Filch's office door.
'We have had two changes in staffing this year. We are very pleased to wel
come back Professor Grubbly-Plank, who will be taking Care of Magical Creature
s lessons; we are also delighted to introduce Professor Umbridge, our new Defe
nce Against the Dark Arts teacher.'
There was a round of polite but fairly unenthusiastic applause, during whi
ch Harry, Ron and Hermione exchanged slightly panicked looks; Dumbledore had n
ot said for how long Grubbly-Plank would be teaching.
Dumbledore continued, 'Tryouts for the house Quidditch teams will take pla
ce on the - '
He broke off, looking enquiringly at Professor Umbridge. As she was not mu
ch taller standing than sitting, there was a moment when nobody understood why
Dumbledore had stopped talking, but then Professor Umbridge cleared her throa
t, 'Hem, hem,' and it became clear that she had got to her feet and was intend
ing to make a speech.
Dumbledore only looked taken aback for a moment, then he sat down smartly
and looked alertly at Professor Umbridge as though he desired nothing better t
han to listen to her talk. Other members of staff were not as adept at hiding
their surprise. Professor Sprout's eyebrows had disappeared into her flyaway h
air and Professor McGonagall's mouth was as thin as Harry had ever seen it. No
new teacher had ever interrupted Dumbledore before. Many of the students were
smirking; this woman obviously did not know how things were done at Hogwarts.
Thank you, Headmaster,' Professor Umbridge simpered, 'for those kind words
of welcome.'
Her voice was high-pitched, breathy and little-girlish and, again, Harry f
elt a powerful rush of dislike that he could not explain to himself; all he kn
ew was that he loathed everything about her, from her stupid voice to her fluf
fy pink cardigan. She gave another little throat-clearing cough ('hem, hem') a
nd continued.
'Well, it is lovely to be back at Hogwarts, I must say!' She smiled, revea
ling very pointed teeth. 'And to see such happy little faces looking up at me!
'
Harry glanced around. None of the faces he could see looked happy. On the
contrary, they all looked rather taken-aback at being addressed as though they
were five years old.
'I am very much looking forward to getting to know you all and I'm sure we
'll be very good friends!'
Students exchanged looks at this; some of them were barely concealing grin
s.
'I'll be her friend as long as I don't have to borrow that cardigan,' Parv
ati whispered to Lavender, and both of them lapsed into silent giggles.
Professor Umbridge cleared her throat again ('hem, hem'), but when she con
tinued, some of the breathiness had vanished from her voice. She sounded much
more businesslike and now her words had a dull learned-by-heart sound to them.
The Ministry of Magic has always considered the education of young witches
and wizards to be of vital importance. The rare gifts with which you were bor
n may come to nothing if not nurtured and honed by careful instruction. The an
cient skills unique to the wizarding community must be passed down the generat
ions lest we lose them for ever. The treasure trove of magical knowledge amass
ed by our ancestors must be guarded, replenished and polished by those who hav
e been called to the noble profession of teaching.'
Professor Umbridge paused here and made a little bow to her fellow staff m
embers, none of whom bowed back to her. Professor McGonagall's dark eyebrows h
ad contracted so that she looked positively hawklike, and Harry distinctly saw
her exchange a significant glance with Professor Sprout as Umbridge gave anot
her little 'hem, hem' and went on with her speech.
'Every headmaster and headmistress of Hogwarts has brought something new t
o the weighty task of governing this historic school, and that is as it should
be, for without progress there will be stagnation and decay. There again, pro
gress for progress's sake must be discouraged, for our tried and tested tradit
ions often require no tinkering. A balance, then, between old and new, between
permanence and change, between tradition and innovation . . .'
Harry found his attentiveness ebbing, as though his brain was slipping in
and out of tune. The quiet that always filled the Hall when Dumbledore was spe
aking was breaking up as students put t heir heads together, whispering and gi
ggling. Over on the Ravenclaw table Cho Chang was chatting animatedly with her
friends. A few seats along from Cho, Luna Lovegood had got out The Quibbler a
gain. Meanwhile, at the Hufflepuff table Ernie Macmillan was one of the few st
ill staring at Professor Umbridge, but he was glassy-eyed and Harry was sure h
e was only pretending to listen in an attempt to live up to the new prefect's
badge gleaming on his chest.
Professor Umbridge did not seem to notice the restlessness of her audience
. Harry had the impression that a full-scale riot could have broken out under
her nose and she would have ploughed on with her speech. The teachers, however
, were still listening very attentively, and Hermione seemed to be drinking in
every word Umbridge spoke, though, judging by her expression, they were not a
t all to her taste.
'. . . because some changes will be for the better, while others will come
, in the fullness of time, to be recognised as errors of judgement. Meanwhile,
some old habits will be retained, and rightly so, whereas others, outmoded an
d outworn, must be abandoned. Let us move forward, then, into a new era of ope
nness, effectiveness and accountability, intent on preserving what ought to be
preserved, perfecting what needs to be perfected, and pruning wherever we fin
d practices that ought to be prohibited.'
She sat down. Dumbledore clapped. The staff followed his lead, though Harr
y noticed that several of them brought their hands together only once or twice
before stopping. A few students joined in, but most had been taken unawares b
y the end of the speech, not having listened to more than a few words of it, a
nd before they could start applauding properly, Dumbledore had stood up again.
Thank you very much, Professor Umbridge, that was most illuminating,' he s
aid, bowing to her. 'Now, as I was saying, Quidditch tryouts will be held . .
.'
'Yes, it certainly was illuminating,' said Hermione in a low voice.
'You're not telling me you enjoyed it?' Ron said quietly, turning a glazed
face towards Hermione. That was about the dullest speech I've ever heard, and
I grew up with Percy.'
'I said illuminating, not enjoyable,' said Hermione. 'It explained a lot.'
'Did it?' said Harry in surprise. 'Sounded like a load of waffle to me.'
There was some important stuff hidden in the waffle,' said Hermione grimly
.
'Was there?' said Ron blankly.
'How about: "progress for progress's sake must be discouraged"? How about:
"pruning wherever we find practices that ought to be prohibited"?'
'Well, what does that mean?' said Ron impatiently.
'I'll tell you what it means,' said Hermione through gritted teeth. 'It me
ans the Ministry's interfering at Hogwarts.'
There was a great clattering and banging all around them; Dumbledore had o
bviously just dismissed the school, because everyone was standing up ready to
leave the Hall. Hermione jumped up, looking flustered.
'Ron, we're supposed to show the first-years where to go!'
'Oh yeah,' said Ron, who had obviously forgotten. 'Hey - hey, you lot! Mid
gets!'
'Ron!'
'Well, they are, they're titchy . . .'
'I know, but you can't call them midgets! - First-years!' Hermione called
commandingly along the table. 'This way, please!'
A group of new students walked shyly up the gap between the Gryffindor and
Hufflepuff tables, all of them trying hard not to lead the group. They did in
deed seem very small; Harry was sure he had not appeared that young when he ha
d arrived here. He grinned at them. A blond boy next to Euan Abercrombie looke
d petrified; he nudged Euan and whispered something in his ear. Euan Abercromb
ie looked equally frightened and stole a horrified look at Harry, who felt the
grin slide off his face like Stinksap.
'See you later,' he said dully to Ron and Hermione and he made his way out
of the Great Hall alone, doing everything he could to ignore more whispering,
staring and pointing as he passed. He kept his eyes fixed ahead as he wove hi
s way through the crowd in the Entrance Hall, then he hurried up the marble st
aircase, took a couple of concealed short cuts and had soon left most of the c
rowds behind.
He had been stupid not to expect this, he thought angrily as he walked thr
ough the much emptier upstairs corridors. Of course everyone was staring at hi
m; he had emerged from the Triwizard maze two months previously clutching the
dead body of a fellow student and claiming to have seen Lord Voldemort return
to power. There had not been time last term to explain himself before they'd a
ll had to go home - even if he had felt up to giving the whole school a detail
ed account of the terrible events in that graveyard.
Harry had reached the end of the corridor to the Gryffindor common room an
d come to a halt in front of the portrait of the Fat Lady before he realised t
hat he did not know the new password.
'Er . . .' he said glumly, staring up at the Fat Lady, who smoothed the fo
lds of her pink satin dress and looked sternly back at him.
'No password, no entrance,' she said loftily.
'Harry, I know it!' Someone panted up behind him and he turned to see Nevi
lle jogging towards him. 'Guess what it is? I'm actually going to be able to r
emember it for once - ' He waved the stunted little cactus he had shown them o
n the train. 'Mimbuius mimbletonia!'
'Correct,' said the Fat Lady, and her portrait swung open towards them lik
e a door, revealing a circular hole in the wall behind, through which Harry an
d Neville now climbed.
The Gryffindor common room looked as welcoming as ever, a cosy circular to
wer room full of dilapidated squashy armchairs and rickety old tables. A fire
was crackling merrily in the grate and a few people were warming their hands b
y it before going up to their dormitories; on the other side of the room Fred
and George Weasley were pinning something up on the noticeboard. Harry waved g
oodnight to them and headed straight for the door to the boys' dormitories; he
was not in much of a mood for talking at the moment. Neville followed him.
Dean Thomas and Seamus Finnigan had reached the dormitory first and were i
n the process of covering the walls beside their beds with posters and photogr
aphs. They had been talking as Harry pushed open the door but stopped abruptly
the moment they saw him. Harry wondered whether they had been talking about h
im, then whether he was being paranoid.
'Hi,' he said, moving across to his own trunk and opening it.
'Hey, Harry,' said Dean, who was putting on a pair of pyjamas in the West
Ham colours. 'Good holiday?'
'Not bad,' muttered Harry, as a true account of his holiday would have tak
en most of the night to relate and he could not face it. 'You?'
'Yeah, it was OK,' chuckled Dean. 'Better than Seamus's, anyway, he was ju
st telling me.'
'Why, what happened, Seamus?' Neville asked as he placed his Mimbuius mimb
letonia tenderly on his bedside cabinet.
Seamus did not answer immediately; he was making rather a meal of ensuring
that his poster of the Kenmare Kestrels Quidditch team was quite straight. Th
en he said, with his back still turned to Harry, 'Me mam didn't want me to com
e back.'
'What?' said Harry, pausing in the act of pulling off his robes.
'She didn't want me to come back to Hogwarts.'
Seamus turned away from his poster and pulled his own pyjamas out of his t
runk, still not looking at Harry.
'But - why?' said Harry, astonished. He knew that Seamus's mother was a wi
tch and could not understand, therefore, why she should have come over so Durs
leyish.
Seamus did not answer until he had finished buttoning his pyjamas.
'Well,' he said in a measured voice, I suppose . . . because of you.'
What d'you mean?' said Harry quickly.
His heart was beating rather fast. He felt vaguely as though something was
closing in on him.
Well,' said Seamus again, still avoiding Harry's eye, she . . . er . . . w
ell, it's not just you, it's Dumbledore, too . . .'
'She believes the Daily Prophet?' said Harry. 'She thinks I'm a liar and D
umbledore's an old fool?'
Seamus looked up at him.
'Yeah, something like that.'
Harry said nothing. He threw his wand down on to his bedside table, pulled
off his robes, stuffed them angrily into his trunk and pulled on his pyjamas.
He was sick of it: sick of being the person who is stared at and talked about
all the time. If any of them knew, if any of them had the faintest idea what
it felt like to be the one all these things had happened to . . . Mrs Finnigan
had no idea, the stupid woman, he thought savagely.
He got into bed and made to pull the hangings closed around him, but befor
e he could do so, Seamus said, 'Look . . . what did happen that night when . .
. you know, when . . . with Cedric Diggory and all?'
Seamus sounded nervous and eager at the same time. Dean, who had been bend
ing over his trunk trying to retrieve a slipper, went oddly still and Harry kn
ew he was listening hard.
'What are you asking me for?' Harry retorted. 'Just read the Daily Prophet
like your mother, why don't you? That'll tell you all you need to know.'
'Don't you have a go at my mother,' Seamus snapped.
'I'll have a go at anyone who calls me a liar,' said Harry.
'Don't talk to me like that!'
'I'll talk to you how I want,' said Harry, his temper rising so fast he sn
atched his wand back from his bedside table. 'If you've got a problem sharing
a dormitory with me, go and ask McGonagall if you can be moved . . . stop your
mummy worrying - '
'Leave my mother out of this, Potter!'
'What's going on?'
Ron had appeared in the doorway. His wide eyes travelled from Harry, who w
as kneeling on his bed with his wand pointing at Seamus, to Seamus, who was st
anding there with his fists raised.
'He's having a go at my mother!' Seamus yelled.
What?' said Ron. 'Harry wouldn't do that - we met your mother, we liked he
r . . .'
'That's before she started believing every word the stinking Daily Prophet
writes about me!' said Harry at the top of his voice.
'Oh,' said Ron, comprehension dawning across his freckled face. 'Oh . . .
right.'
'You know what?' said Seamus heatedly, casting Harry a venomous look. 'He'
s right, I don't want to share a dormitory with him any more, he's mad.'
'That's out of order, Seamus,' said Ron, whose ears were starting to glow
red - always a danger sign.
'Out of order, am I?' shouted Seamus, who in contrast with Ron was going p
ale. 'You believe all the rubbish he's come out with about You-Know-Who, do yo
u, you reckon he's telling the truth?'
'Yeah, I do!' said Ron angrily.
'Then you're mad, too,' said Seamus in disgust.
'Yeah? Well, unfortunately for you, pal, I'm also a prefect!' said Ron, ja
bbing himself in the chest with a finger. 'So unless you want detention, watch
your mouth!'
Seamus looked for a few seconds as though detention would be a reasonable
price to pay to say what was going through his mind; but with a noise of conte
mpt he turned on his heel, vaulted into bed and pulled the hangings shut with
such violence that they were ripped from the bed and fell in a dusty pile to t
he floor. Ron glared at Seamus, then looked at Dean and Neville.
'Anyone else's parents got a problem with Harry?' he said aggressively.
'My parents are Muggles, mate,' said Dean, shrugging. They don't know noth
ing about no deaths at Hogwarts, because I'm not stupid enough to tell them.'
'You don't know my mother, she'd weasel anything out of anyone!' Seamus sn
apped at him. 'Anyway, your parents don't get the Daily Prophet. They don't kn
ow our Headmaster's been sacked from the Wizengamot and the International Conf
ederation of Wizards because he's losing his marbles - '
'My gran says that's rubbish,' piped up Neville. 'She says it's the Daily
Prophet that's going downhill, not Dumbledore. She's cancelled our subscriptio
n. We believe Harry,' said Neville simply. He climbed into bed and pulled the
covers up to his chin, looking owlishly over them at Seamus. 'My grans always
said You-Know-Who would come back one day. She says if Dumbledore says he's ba
ck, he's back.'
Harry felt a rush of gratitude towards Neville. Nobody else said anything.
Seamus got out his wand, repaired the bed hangings and vanished behind them.
Dean got into bed, rolled over and fell silent. Neville, who appeared to have
nothing more to say either, was gazing fondly at his moonlit cactus.
Harry lay back on his pillows while Ron bustled around the next bed, putti
ng his things away. He fell, shaken by the argument with Seamus, whom he had a
lways liked very much. How many more people were going to suggest that he was
lying, or unhinged?
Had Dumbledore suffered like this all summer, as first the Wizengamot, the
n the International Confederation of Wizards had thrown him from their ranks?
Was it anger at Harry, perhaps, that had stopped Dumbledore getting in touch w
ith him for months? The two of them were in this together, after all; Dumbledo
re had believed Harry, announced his version of events to the whole school and
then to the wider wizarding community. Anyone who thought
Harry was a liar had to think that Dumbledore was, too, or else that Dumbl
edore had been hoodwinked . . .
They'll know we're right in the end, thought Harry miserably, as Ron got i
nto bed and extinguished the last candle in the dormitory. But he wondered how
many more attacks like Seamus's he would have to endure before that time came
.
- CHAPTER TWELVE -
Professor Umbridge
Seamus dressed at top speed next morning and left the dormitory before Harry h
ad even put on his socks.
'Does he think he'll turn into a nutter if he stays in a room with me too
long?' asked Harry loudly as the hem of Seamus's robes wnipped out of sight.
'Don't worry about it, Harry,' Dean muttered, hoisting his schoolbag on to
his shoulder, 'he's just . . .'
But apparently he was unable to say exactly what Seamus was, and after a s
lightly awkward pause followed him out of the room.
Neville and Ron both gave Harry an it's-his-problem-not-yours look, but Ha
rry was not much consoled. How much more of this would he have to take?
'What's the matter?' asked Hermione five minutes later, catching up with H
arry and Ron halfway across the common room as they all headed towards breakfa
st. 'You look absolutely - Oh for heavens sake.'
She was staring at the common-room noticeboard, where a large new sign had
been put up.
GALLONS OF GALLEONS!
Pocket money failing to keep pace with your outgoings?
Like to earn a little extra gold?
Contact Fred and George Weasley, Gryffindor common room,
for simple, part-time, virtually painless jobs.
(We regret that all work is undertaken at applicant's own risk.)
'They are the limit,' said Hermione grimly, taking down the sign, which Fred a
nd George had pinned up ewer a poster giving the date of the first Hogsmeade w
eekend, which was to be in October. 'We'll have to talk to them, Ron.'
Ron looked positively alarmed.
'Why?'
'Because we're prefects!' said Hermione, as they climbed out through the p
ortrait hole. 'It's up to us to stop this kind of thing!'
Ron said nothing; Harry could tell from his glum expression that the prosp
ect of stopping Fred and George doing exactly what they liked was not one he f
ound inviting.
'Anyway, what's up, Harry?' Hermione continued, as they walked down a flig
ht of stairs lined with portraits of old witches and wizards, all of whom igno
red them, being engrossed in their own conversation. 'You look really angry ab
out something.'
'Seamus reckons Harry's lying about You-Know-Who,' said Ron succinctly, wh
en Harry did not respond.
Hermione, who Harry had expected to react angrily on his behalf, sighed.
'Yes, Lavender thinks so too,' she said gloomily.
'Been having a nice little chat with her about whether or not I'm a lying,
attention-seeking prat, have you?' Harry said loudly.
'No,' said Hermione calmly. 'I told her to keep her big fat mouth shut abo
ut you, actually. And it would be quite nice if you stopped jumping down our t
hroats, Harry, because in case you haven't noticed, Ron and I are on your side
.'
There was a short pause.
'Sorry,' said Harry in a low voice.
That's quite all right,' said Hermione with dignity. Then she shook her he
ad. 'Don't you remember what Dumbledore said at the last end-of-term feast?'
Harry and Ron both looked at her blankly and Hermione sighed again.
'About You-Know-Who. He said his "gift for spreading discord and enmity is
very great. We can fight it only by showing an equally strong bond of friends
hip and trust - " '
'How do you remember stuff like that?' asked Ron, looking at her in admira
tion.
'I listen, Ron,' said Hermione, with a touch of asperity.
'So do I, but I still couldn't tell you exactly what - '
The point,' Hermione pressed on loudly, 'is that this sort of thing is exa
ctly what Dumbledore was talking about. You-Know-Who's only been back two mont
hs and we've already started fighting among ourselves. And the Sorting Hat's w
arning was the same: stand together, be united - '
'And Harry got it right last night,' retorted Ron. 'If that means we're su
pposed to get matey with the Slytherins - fat chance.'
'Well, I think it's a pity we're not trying for a bit of inter-house unity
,' said Hermione crossly.
They had reached the foot of the marble staircase. A line of fourth-year R
avenclaws was crossing the Entrance Hall; they caught sight of Harry and hurri
ed to form a tighter group, as though frightened he might attack stragglers.
'Yeah, we really ought to be trying to make friends with people like that,
' said Harry sarcastically.
They followed the Ravenclaws into the Great Hall, all looking instinctivel
y at the staff table as they entered. Professor Grubbly-Plank was chatting to
Professor Sinistra, the Astronomy teacher, and Hagrid was once again conspicuo
us only by his absence. The enchanted ceiling above them echoed Harry's mood;
it was a miserable rain-cloud grey.
'Dumbledore didn't even mention how long that Grubbly-Plank woman's stayin
g,' he said, as they made their way across to the Gryffindor table.
'Maybe . . .' said Hermione thoughtfully.
'What?' said both Harry and Ron together.
'Well . . . maybe he didn't want to draw attention to Hagrid not being her
e.'
'What d'you mean, draw attention to it?' said Ron, half-laughing. 'How cou
ld we not notice?'
Before Hermione could answer, a tall black girl with long braided hair had
marched up to Harry.
'Hi, Angelina.'
'Hi,' she said briskly, 'good summer?' And without waiting for an answer,
'Listen, I've been made Gryffindor Quidditch Captain.'
'Nice one,' said Harry, grinning at her; he suspected Angelina's pep talks
might not be as long-winded as Oliver Wood's had been, which could only be an
improvement.
'Yeah, well, we need a new Keeper now Oliver's left. Tryouts are on Friday
at five o'clock and I want the whole team there, all right? Then we can see h
ow the new person'll fit in.'
'OK,' said Harry.
Angelina smiled at him and departed.
'I'd forgotten Wood had left,' said Hermione vaguely as she sat down besid
e Ron and pulled a plate of toast towards her. 'I suppose that will make quite
a difference to the team?'
'I s'pose,' said Harry, taking the bench opposite. 'He was a good Keeper .
. .'
'Still, it won't hurt to have some new blood, will it?' said Ron.
With a whoosh and a clatter, hundreds of owls came soaring in through the
upper windows. They descended all over the Hall, bringing letters and packages
to their owners and showering the breakfasters with droplets of water; it was
clearly raining hard outside. Hedwig was nowhere to be seen, but Harry was ha
rdly surprised; his only correspondent was Sirius, and he doubted Sirius would
have anything new to tell him after only twenty-four hours apart. Hermione, h
owever, had to move her orange juice aside quickly to make way gor a large dam
p barn owl bearing a sodden Daily Prophet in its beak.
What are you still getting that for?' said Harry irritably, thinking of Se
amus as Hermione placed a Knut in the leather pouch on the owl's leg and it to
ok off again. 'I'm not bothering . . . load of rubbish.'
'It's best to know what the enemy is saying,' said Hermione darkly, and sh
e unfurled the newspaper and disappeared behind it, not emerging until Harry a
nd Ron had finished eating.
'Nothing,' she said simply, rolling up the newspaper and laying it down by
her plate. 'Nothing about you or Dumbledore or anything.'
Professor McGonagall was now moving along the table handing out timetables
.
'Look at today!' groaned Ron. 'History of Magic, double Potions,
Divination and double Defence Against the Dark Arts . . . Binns, Snape, Tr
elawney and that Umbridge woman all in one day! I wish Fred and George'd hurry
up and get those Skiving Snackboxes sorted . . ."
'Do mine ears deceive me?' said Fred, arriving with George and squeezing o
n to the bench beside Harry. 'Hogwarts prefects surely don't wish to skive off
lessons?'
'Look what we've got today,' said Ron grumpily, shoving his timetable unde
r Fred's nose. 'That's the worst Monday I've ever seen.'
'Fair point, little bro,' said Fred, scanning the column. 'You can have a
bit of Nosebleed Nougat cheap if you like.'
'Why's it cheap?' said Ron suspiciously.
'Because you'll keep bleeding till you shrivel up, we haven't got an antid
ote yet,' said George, helping himself to a kipper.
'Cheers,' said Ron moodily, pocketing his timetable, 'but I think I'll tak
e the lessons.'
'And speaking of your Skiving Snackboxes,' said Hermione, eyeing Fred and
George beadily, 'you can't advertise for testers on the Gryffindor noticeboard
.'
'Says who?' said George, looking astonished.
'Says me,' said Hermione. 'And Ron.'
'Leave me out of it,' said Ron hastily.
Hermione glared at him. Fred and George sniggered.
'You'll be singing a different tune soon enough, Hermione,' said Fred, thi
ckly buttering a crumpet. 'You're starting your fifth year, you'll be begging
us for a Snackbox before long.'
'And why would starting fifth year mean I want a Skiving Snackbox?' asked
Hermione.
'Fifth year's OWL year,' said George.
'So?'
'So you've got your exams coming up, haven't you? They'll be keeping your
noses so hard to that grindstone they'll be rubbed raw,' said Fred with satisf
action.
'Half our year had minor breakdowns coming up to OWLs,' said George happil
y. Tears and tantrums . . . Patricia Stimpson kept coming over faint . . .'
'Kenneth Towler came out in boils, d'you remember?' said Fred remmiscently
.
That's 'cause you put Bulbadox powder in his pyjamas,' said George.
'Oh yeah,' said Fred, grinning. 'I'd forgotten . . . hard to keep track so
metimes, isn't it?'
'Anyway, it's a nightmare of a year, the fifth,' said George. 'If you care
about exam results, anyway. Fred and I managed to keep our peckers up somehow
.'
'Yeah . . . you got, what was it, three OWLs each?' said Ron.
'Yep,' said Fred unconcernedly. 'But we feel our futures lie outside the w
orld of academic achievement.'
'We seriously debated whether we were going to bother coming back for our
seventh year,' said George brightly, 'now that we've got-
He broke off at a warning look from Harry, who knew George had been about
to mention the Triwizard winnings he had given them.
' - now that we've got our OWLs,' George said hastily. 'I mean, do we real
ly need NEWTs? But we didn't think Mum could take us leaving school early not
on top of Percy turning out to be the world's biggest prat.'
We're not going to waste our last year here, though,' said Fred, looking a
ffectionately around at the Great Hall. 'We're going to use it to do a bit of
market research, find out exactly what the average Hogwarts student requires f
rom a joke shop, carefully evaluate the results of our research, then produce
products to fit the demand.'
'But where are you going to get the gold to start a joke shop?' Hermione a
sked sceptically. 'You're going to need all the ingredients and materials - an
d premises too, I suppose . . .'
Harry did not look at the twins. His face felt hot; he deliberately droppe
d his fork and dived down to retrieve it. He heard Fred say overhead, 'Ask us
no questions and we'll tell you no lies, Hermione. C'mon, George, if we get th
ere early we might be able to sell a few Extendable Ears before Herbology.'
Harry emerged from under the table to see Fred and George walking away, ea
ch carrying a stack of toast.
'What did that mean?' said Hermione, looking from Harry to F.on. ' "Ask us
no questions . . ." Does that mean they've already got some gold to start a j
oke shop?'
'You know, I've been wondering about that,' said Ron, his brow furrowed. '
They bought me a new set of dress robes this summer and I couldn't understand
where they got the Galleons . . .'
Harry decided it was time to steer the conversation out of these dangerous
waters.
'D'you reckon it's true this year's going to be really tough? Because of t
he exams?'
'Oh, yeah,' said Ron. 'Bound to be, isn't it? OWLs are really important, a
ffect the jobs you can apply for and everything. We get career advice, too, la
ter this year, Bill told me. So you can choose what NEWTs you want to do next
year.'
'D'you know what you want to do after Hogwarts?' Harry asked the other two
, as they left the Great Hall shortly afterwards and set off towards their His
tory of Magic classroom.
'Not really,' said Ron slowly. 'Except . . . well . . .'
He looked slightly sheepish.
What?' Harry urged him.
Well, it'd be cool to be an Auror,' said Ron in an off-hand voice.
'Yeah, it would,' said Harry fervently.
'But they're, like, the elite,' said Ron. 'You've got to be really good. W
hat about you, Hermione?'
'I don't know,' she said. 'I think I'd like to do something really worthwh
ile.'
'An Aurors worthwhile!' said Harry.
'Yes, it is, but it's not the only worthwhile thing,' said Hermione though
tfully, 'I mean, if I could take SPEW further . . .'
Harry and Ron carefully avoided looking at each other.
History of Magic was by common consent the most boring subject ever devise
d by wizardkind. Professor Binns, their ghost teacher, had a wheezy, droning v
oice that was almost guaranteed to cause severe drowsiness within ten minutes,
five in warm weather. He never varied the form of their lessons, but lectured
them without pausing while they took notes, or rather, gazed sleepily into sp
ace. Harry and Ron had so far managed to scrape passes in this subject only by
copying Hermione's notes before exams; she alone seemed able to resist the so
porific power of Binns's voice.
Today, they suffered an hour and a half's droning on the subject of giant
wars. Harry heard just enough within the first ten minutes to appreciate dimly
that in another teacher's hands this subject might have been mildly interesti
ng, but then his brain disengaged, and he spent the remaining hour and twenty
minutes playing hangman on a corner of his parchment with Ron, while Hermione
shot them filthy looks out of the corner of her eye.
'How would it be,' she asked them coldly, as they left the classroom for b
reak (Binns drifting away through the blackboard), 'if I refused to lend you m
y notes this year?'
'We'd fail our OWL, said Ron. 'If you want that on your conscience, Hermio
ne . . .'
'Well, you'd deserve it,' she snapped. 'You don't even try to listen to hi
m, do you?'
'We do try,' said Ron. 'We just haven't got your brains or your memory or
your concentration - you're just cleverer than we are - is it nice to rub it i
n?'
'Oh, don't give me that rubbish,' said Hermione, but she looked slightly m
ollified as she led the way out into the damp courtyard.
A fine misty drizzle was falling, so that the people standing in huddles a
round the edges of the yard looked blurred at the edges. Harry, Ron and Hermio
ne chose a secluded corner under a heavily dripping balcony, turning up the co
llars of their robes against the chilly September air and talking about what S
nape was likely to set them in the first lesson of the year. They had got as f
ar as agreeing that it was likely to be something extremely difficult, just to
catch them off guard after a two-month holiday, when someone walked around th
e corner towards them.
'Hello, Harry!'
It was Cho Chang and, what was more, she was on her own again. This was mo
st unusual: Cho was almost always surrounded by a gang of giggling girls; Harr
y remembered the agony of trying to get her by herself to ask her to the Yule
Ball.
'Hi,' said Harry, feeling his face grow hot. At least you're not covered i
n Stinksap this time, he told himself. Cho seemed to be thinking along the sam
e lines.
'You got that stuff off, then?'
'Yeah,' said Harry, trying to grin as though the memory of their last meet
ing was funny as opposed to mortifying. 'So, did you . . . er . . . have a goo
d summer?'
The moment he had said this he wished he hadn't - Cedric had been Cho's bo
yfriend and the memory of his death must have affected her holiday almost as b
adly as it had affected Harry's. Something seemed to tauten in her face, but s
he said, 'Oh, it was all right, you know . . .'
'Is that a Tornados badge?' Ron demanded suddenly, pointing to the front o
f Cho's robes, where a sky-blue badge emblazoned with a double gold 'T' was pi
nned. 'You don't support them, do you?'
'Yeah, I do,' said Cho.
'Have you always supported them, or just since they started winning the le
ague?' said Ron, in what Harry considered an unnecessarily accusatory tone of
voice.
'I've supported them since I was six,' said Cho coolly. 'Anyway . . . see
you, Harry.'
She walked away. Hermione waited until Cho was halfway across the courtyar
d before rounding on Ron.
'You are so tactless!'
'What? I only asked her if - '
'Couldn't you tell she wanted to talk to Harry on her own?'
'So? She could've done, I wasn't stopping - '
'Why on earth were you attacking her about her Quidditch team?'
'Attacking? I wasn't attacking her, I was only - '
'Who cares if she supports the Tornados?'
'Oh, come on, half the people you see wearing those badges only bought the
m last season - '
'But what does it matter?'
'It means they're not real fans, they're just jumping on the bandwagon - '
That's the bell,' said Harry dully, because Ron and Hermione were bickerin
g too loudly to hear it. They did not stop arguing all the way down to Snapes
dungeon, which gave Harry plenty of time to reflect that between Neville and R
on he would be lucky ever to have two minutes of conversation with Cho that he
could look back on without wanting to leave the country.
And yet, he thought, as they joined the queue lining up outside Snape's cl
assroom door, she had chosen to come and talk to him, hadn't she? She had been
Cedric's girlfriend; she could easily have hated Harry for coming out of the
Triwizard maze alive when Cedric had died, yet she was talking to him in a per
fectly friendly way, not as though she thought him mad, or a liar, or in some
horrible way responsible for Cedric's death . . . yes, she had definitely chos
en to come and talk to him, and that made the second time in two days . . . an
d at this thought, Harry's spirits rose. Even the ominous sound of Snape's dun
geon door creaking open did not puncture the small, hopeful bubble that seemed
to have swelled in his chest. He filed into the classroom behind Ron and Herm
ione and followed them to their usual table at the back, where he sat down bet
ween Ron and Hermione and ignored the huffy, irritable noises now issuing from
both of them.
'Settle down,' said Snape coldly, shutting the door behind him.
There was no real need for the call to order; the moment the class had hea
rd the door close, quiet had fallen and all fidgeting stopped. Snape's mere pr
esence was usually enough to ensure a class's silence.
'Before we begin today's lesson,' said Snape, sweeping over to his desk an
d staring around at them all, 'I think it appropriate to remind you that next
June you will be sitting an important examination, during which you will prove
how much you have learned about the composition and use of magical potions. M
oronic though some of this class undoubtedly are, I expect you to scrape an "A
cceptable" in your OWL, or suffer my . . . displeasure.'
His gaze lingered this time on Neville, who gulped.
'After this year, of course, many of you will cease studying with me,' Sna
pe went on. 'I take only the very best into my NEWT Potions class, which means
that some of us will certainly be saying goodbye.'
His eyes rested on Harry and his lip curled. Harry glared back, feeling a
grim pleasure at the idea that he would be able to give up Potions after fifth
year.
'But we have another year to go before that happy moment of farewell,' sai
d Snape softly, 'so, whether or not you are intending to attempt NEWT, I advis
e all of you to concentrate your efforts upon maintaining the high pass level
I have come to expect from my OWL students.
'Today we will be mixing a potion that often comes up at Ordinary Wizardin
g Level: the Draught of Peace, a potion to calm anxiety and soothe agitation.
Be warned: if you are too heavy-handed with the ingredients you will put the d
rinker into a heavy and sometimes irreversible sleep, so you will need to pay
close attention to what you are doing.' On Harry's left, Hermione sat up a lit
tle straighter, her expression one of utmost attention. The ingredients and me
thod - ' Snape flicked his wand ' - are on the blackboard - (they appeared the
re) ' - you will find everything you need - ' he flicked his wand again ' - in
the store cupboard - ' (the door of the said cupboard sprang open) ' - you ha
ve an hour and a half . . . start.'
Just as Harry, Ron and Hermione had predicted, Snape could hardly have set
them a more difficult, fiddly potion. The ingredients had to be added to the
cauldron in precisely the right order and quantities; the mixture had to be st
irred exactly the right number of times, firstly in clockwise, then in anti-cl
ockwise directions; the heat of the flames on which it was simmering had to be
lowered to exactly the right level for a specific number of minutes before th
e final ingredient was added.
'A light silver vapour should now be rising from your potion,' called Snap
e, with ten minutes left to go.
Harry, who was sweating profusely, looked desperately around the dungeon.
His own cauldron was issuing copious amounts of dark grey steam; Ron's was spi
tting green sparks. Seamus was feverishly prodding the flames at the base of h
is cauldron with the tip of his wand, as they seemed to be going out. The surf
ace of Hermione's potion, however, was a shimmering mist of silver vapour, and
as Snape swept by he looked down his hooked nose at it without comment, which
meant he could find nothing to criticise.
At Harry's cauldron, however, Snape stopped, and looked down at it with a
horrible smirk on his face.
'Potter, what is this supposed to be?'
The Slytherins at the front of the class all looked up eagerly; they loved
hearing Snape taunt Harry.
'The Draught of Peace,' said Harry tensely.
'Tell me, Potter,' said Snape softly, 'can you read?'
Draco Malfoy laughed.
'Yes, I can,' said Harry, his fingers clenched tightly around his wand.
'Read the third line of the instructions for me, Potter.'
Harry squinted at the blackboard; it was not easy to make out the instruct
ions through the haze of multi-coloured steam now filling the dungeon.
' "Add powdered moonstone, stir three times counter-clockwise, allow to si
mmer for seven minutes then add two drops of syrup of hellebore." '
His heart sank. He had not added syrup of hellebore, but had proceeded str
aight to the fourth line of the instructions after allowing his potion to simm
er for seven minutes.
'Did you do everything on the third line, Potter?'
'No,' said Harry very quietly.
'I beg your pardon?'
'No,' said Harry, more loudly. 'I forgot the hellebore.'
'I know you did, Potter, which means that this mess is utterly worthless.
Evanesce.'
The contents of Harry's potion vanished; he was left standing foolishly be
side an empty cauldron.
'Those of you who have managed to read the instructions, fill one flagon w
ith a sample of your potion, label it clearly with your name and bring it up t
o my desk for testing,' said Snape. 'Homework: twelve inches of parchment on t
he properties of moonstone and its uses in potion-making, to be handed in on T
hursday.'
While everyone around him filled their flagons, Harry cleared away his thi
ngs, seething. His potion had been no worse than Ron's, which was now giving o
ff a foul odour of bad eggs; or Neville's, which had achieved the consistency
of just-mixed cement and which
Neville was now having to gouge out of his cauldron; yet it was he, Harry,
who would be receiving zero marks for the day's work. He stuffed his wand bac
k into his bag and slumped down on to his seat, watching everyone else march u
p to Snape's desk with filled and corked flagons. When at long last the bell r
ang, Harry was first out of the dungeon and had already started his lunch by t
he time Ron and Hermione joined him in the Great Hall. The ceiling had turned
an even murkier grey during the morning. Rain was lashing the high windows.
That was really unfair,' said Hermione consolingly, sitting down next to H
arry and helping herself to shepherd's pie. 'Your potion wasn't nearly as bad
as Goyle's; when he put it in his flagon the whole thing shattered and set his
robes on fire.'
'Yeah, well,' said Harry, glowering at his plate, 'since when has Snape ev
er been fair to me?'
Neither of the others answered; all three of them knew that Snape and Harr
y's mutual enmity had been absolute from the moment Harry had set foot in Hogw
arts.
'I did think he might be a bit better this year,' said Hermione in a disap
pointed voice. 'I mean . . . you know . . .' she looked around carefully; ther
e were half a dozen empty seats on either side of them and nobody was passing
the table ' . . . now he's in the Order and everything.'
'Poisonous toadstools don't change their spots,' said Ron sagely. 'Anyway,
I've always thought Dumbledore was cracked to trust Snape. Where's the eviden
ce he ever really stopped working for You-Know-Who?'
'I think Dumbledore's probably got plenty of evidence, even if he doesn't
share it with you, Ron,' snapped Hermione.
'Oh, shut up, the pair of you,' said Harry heavily, as Ron opened his mout
h to argue back. Hermione and Ron both froze, looking angry and offended. 'Can
't you give it a rest?' said Harry. 'You're always having a go at each other,
it's driving me mad.' And abandoning his shepherd's pie, he swung his schoolba
g back over his shoulder and left them sitting there.
He walked up the marble staircase two steps at a time, past the many stude
nts hurrying towards lunch. The anger that had just flared so unexpectedly sti
ll blazed inside him, and the vision of Ron and Hermione's shocked faces affor
ded him a sense of deep satisfaction. Serve them right, he thought, why can't
they give it a rest . . . bickering all the time . . . it's enough to drive an
yone up the wall . . .
He passed the large picture of Sir Cadogan the knight on a landing; Sir Ca
dogan drew his sword and brandished it fiercely at Harry, who ignored him.
'Come back, you scurvy dog! Stand fast and fight!' yelled Sir Cadogan in a
muffled voice from behind his visor, but Harry merely walked on and when Sir
Cadogan attempted to follow him by running into a neighbouring picture, he was
rebuffed by its inhabitant, a large and angry-looking wolfhound.
Harry spent the rest of the lunch hour sitting alone underneath the trapdo
or at the top of North Tower. Consequently, he was the first to ascend the sil
ver ladder that led to Sybill Trelawney's classroom when the bell rang.
After Potions, Divination was Harry's least favourite class, which was due
mainly to Professor Trelawney's habit of predicting his premature death every
few lessons. A thin woman, heavily draped in shawls and glittering with strin
gs of beads, she always reminded Harry of some kind of insect, with her glasse
s hugely magnifying her eyes. She was busy putting copies of battered leather-
bound books on each of the spindly little tables with which her room was litte
red when Harry entered the room, but the light cast by the lamps covered by sc
arves and the low-burning, sickly-scented fire was so dim she appeared not to
notice him as he took a seat in the shadows. The rest of the class arrived ove
r the next five minutes. Ron emerged from the trapdoor, looked around carefull
y, spotted Harry and made directly for him, or as directly as he could while h
aving to wend his way between tables, chairs and overstuffed pouffes.
'Hermione and me have stopped arguing,' he said, sitting down beside Harry
.
'Good,' grunted Harry.
'But Hermione says she thinks it would be nice if you stopped taking out y
our temper on us,' said Ron.
'I'm not - '
'I'm just passing on the message,' said Ron, talking over him. 'But I reck
on she's right. It's not our fault how Seamus and Snape treat you.'
'I never said it - '
'Good-day,' said Professor Trelawney in her usual misty, dreamy voice, and
Harry broke off, again feeling both annoyed and slightly ashamed of himself.
'And welcome back to Divination. I have, of course, been following your fortun
es most carefully over the holidays, and am delighted to see that you have all
returned to Hogwarts safely - as, of course, I knew you would.
'You will find on the tables before you copies of The Dream Oracle, by Ini
go Imago. Dream interpretation is a most important means of divining the futur
e and one that may very probably be tested in your OWL. Not, of course, that I
believe examination passes or failures are of the remotest importance when it
comes to the sacred art of divination. If you have the Seeing Eye, certificat
es and grades matter very little. However, the Headmaster likes you to sit the
examination, so . . .'
Her voice trailed away delicately, leaving them all in no doubt that Profe
ssor Trelawney considered her subject above such sordid matters as examination
s.
Turn, please, to the introduction and read what Imago has to say on the ma
tter of dream interpretation. Then, divide into pairs. Use The Dream Oracle to
interpret each other's most recent dreams. Carry on.'
The one good thing to be said for this lesson was that it was not a double
period. By the time they had all finished reading the introduction of the boo
k, they had barely ten minutes left for dream interpretation. At the table nex
t to Harry and Ron, Dean had paired up with Neville, who immediately embarked
on a long-winded explanation of a nightmare involving a pair of giant scissors
wearing his grandmother's best hat; Harry and Ron merely looked at each other
glumly.
'I never remember my dreams,' said Ron, 'you say one.'
'You must remember one of them,' said Harry impatiently.
He was not going to share his dreams with anyone. He knew perfectly well w
hat his regular nightmare about a graveyard meant, he did not need Ron or Proi
essor Trelawney or the stupid Dream Oracle to tell him.
'Well, I dreamed I was playing Quidditch the other night,' said Ron, screw
ing up his face in an effort to remember. 'What d'you reckon that means?'
'Probably that you're going to be eaten by a giant marshmallow or somethin
g,' said Harry, turning the pages of The Dream Oracle without interest. It was
very dull work looking up bits of dreams in the Oracle and Harry was not chee
red up when Professor Trelawney set them the task of keeping a dream diary for
a month as homework. When the bell went, he and Ron led the way back down the
ladder, Ron grumbling loudly.
'D'you realise how much homework we've got already? Binns set us a foot-an
d-a-half-long essay on giant wars, Snape wants a foot on the use of moonstones
, and now we've got a month's dream diary from Trelawney! Fred and George were
n't wrong about OWL year, were they? That Umbridge woman had better not give u
s any . . .'
When they entered the Defence Against the Dark Arts classroom they found P
rofessor Umbridge already seated at the teachers desk, wearing the fluffy pink
cardigan of the night before and the black velvet bow on top of her head. Har
ry was again reminded forcibly of a large fly perched unwisely on top of an ev
en larger toad.
The class was quiet as it entered the room; Professor Umbridge was, as yet
, an unknown quantity and nobody knew how strict a disciplinarian she was like
ly to be.
'Well, good afternoon!' she said, when finally the whole class had sat dow
n.
A few people mumbled 'good afternoon' in reply.
'Tut, tut,' said Professor Umbridge. 'That won't do, now, will it? I shoul
d like you, please, to reply "Good afternoon, Professor Umbridge". One more ti
me, please. Good afternoon, class!'
'Good afternoon, Professor Umbridge,' they chanted back at her.
There, now,' said Professor Umbridge sweetly. That wasn't too difficult, w
as it? Wands away and quills out, please.'
Many of the class exchanged gloomy looks; the order 'wands away' had never
yet been followed by a lesson they had found interesting. Harry shoved his wa
nd back inside his bag and pulled cut quill, ink and parchment. Professor Umbr
idge opened her handbag, extracted her own wand, which was an unusually short
one, and tapped the blackboard sharply with it; words appeared on the board at
once:
Defence Against the Dark Arts
A Return to Basic Principles
'Well now, your teaching in this subject has been rather disrupted and fragmen
ted, hasn't it?' stated Professor Umbridge, turning to face the class with her
hands clasped neatly in front of her. The constant changing of teachers, many
of whom do not seem to have followed any Ministry-approved curriculum, has un
fortunately resulted in your being far below the standard we would expect to s
ee in your OWL year.
'You will be pleased to know, however, that these problems are now to be r
ectified. We will be following a carefully structured, theory-centred, Ministr
y-approved course of defensive magic this year. Copy down the following, pleas
e.'
She rapped the blackboard again; the first message vanished and was replac
ed by the 'Course Aims'.
1. Understanding the principles underlying defensive magic.
2. Learning to recognise situations in which defensive magic can legally
he used
3. Placing the use of defensive magic in a context for practical use.
For a couple of minutes the room was full of the sound of scratching quills on
parchment. When everyone had copied down Professor Umbridge's three course ai
ms she asked, 'Has everybody got a copy of Defensive Magical Theory by Wilbert
Slinkhard?'
There was a dull murmur of assent throughout the class.
'I think we'll try that again,' said Professor Umbridge. 'When I ask you a
question, I should like you to reply, "Yes, Professor Umbridge", or "No, Prof
essor Umbridge'. So: has everyone got a copy of Defensive Magical Theory by Wi
lbert Slinkhard?'
'Yes, Professor Umbridge,' rang through the room.
'Good,' said Professor Umbridge. I should like you to turn to page five an
d read "Chapter One, Basics for Beginners". There will be no need to talk.'
Professor Umbridge left the blackboard and settled herself in the chair be
hind the teacher's desk, observing them all closely with those pouchy toad's e
yes. Harry turned to page five of his copy of Defensive Magical Theory and sta
rted to read.
It was desperately dull, quite as bad as listening to Professor Binns. He
felt his concentration sliding away from him; he had soon read the same line h
alf a dozen times without taking in more than the first few words. Several sil
ent minutes passed. Next to him, Ron was absent-mindedly turning his quill ove
r and over in his fingers, staring at the same spot on the page. Harry looked
right and received a surprise to shake him out of his torpor. Hermione had not
even opened her copy of Defensive Magical Theory. She was staring fixedly at
Professor Umbridge with her hand in the air.
Harry could not remember Hermione ever neglecting to read when instructed
to, or indeed resisting the temptation to open any book that came under her no
se. He looked at her enquiringly, but she merely shook her head slightly to in
dicate that she was not about to answer questions, and continued to stare at P
rofessor Umbridge, who was looking just as resolutely in another direction.
After several more minutes had passed, however, Harry was not the only one
watching Hermione. The chapter they had been instructed to read was so tediou
s that more and more people were choosing to watch Hermione's mute attempt to
catch Professor Umbridge's eye rather than struggle on with 'Basics for Beginn
ers'.
When more than half the class were staring at Hermione rather than at thei
r books, Professor Umbridge seemed to decide that she could ignore the situati
on no longer.
'Did you want to ask something about the chapter, dear?' she asked Hermion
e, as though she had only just noticed her.
'Not about the chapter, no,' said Hermione.
'Well, we're reading just now,' said Professor Umbridge, showing her small
pointed teeth. 'If you have other queries we can deal with them at the end of
class.'
'I've got a query about your course aims,' said Hermione.
Professor Umbridge raised her eyebrows.
'And your name is?'
'Hermione Granger,' said Hermione.
'Well, Miss Granger, I think the course aims are perfectly clear if you re
ad them through carefully' said Professor Umbridge in a voice of determined sw
eetness.
'Well, I don't,' said Hermione bluntly. There's nothing written up there a
bout using defensive spells.'
There was a short silence in which many members of the class turned their
heads to frown at the three course aims still written on the blackboard.
'Using defensive spells?' Professor Umbridge repeated with a little laugh.
'Why, I can't imagine any situation arising in my classroom that would requir
e you to use a defensive spell, Miss Granger. You surely aren't expecting to b
e attacked during class?'
'We're not going to use magic?' Ron exclaimed loudly.
'Students raise their hands when they wish to speak in my class, Mr - ?'
'Weasley,' said Ron, thrusting his hand into the air.
Professor Umbridge, smiling still more widely, turned her back or. him. Ha
rry and Hermione immediately raised their hands too. Professor Umbridge's pouc
hy eyes lingerec. on Harry for a moment before she addressed Hermione.
'Yes, Miss Granger? You wanted to ask something else?'
'Yes,' said Hermione. 'Surely the whole point of Defence Against the Dark
Arts is to practise defensive spells?'
'Are you a Ministry-trained educational expert, Miss Granger?' asked Profe
ssor Umbridge, in her falsely sweet voice.
'No, but - '
'Well then, I'm afraid you are not qualified to decide what the "whole poi
nt" of any class is. Wizards much older and cleverer than you have devised our
new programme of study. You will be learning about defensive spells in a secu
re, risk-free way - '
'What use is that?' said Harry loudly. 'If we're going to be attacked, it
won't be in a - '
'Hand, Mr Potter!' sang Professor Umbridge.
Harry thrust his fist in the air. Again, Professor Umbridge promptly turne
d away from him, but now several other people had their hands up, too.
'And your name is?' Professor Umbridge said to Dean.
'Dean Thomas.'
'Well, Mr Thomas?'
'Well, it's like Harry said, isn't it?' said Dean. 'If we're going to be a
ttacked, it won't be risk free.'
'I repeat,' said Professor Umbridge, smiling in a very irritating fashion
at Dean, 'do you expect to be attacked during my classes?'
'No, but - '
Professor Umbridge talked over him. 'I do not wish to criticise the way th
ings have been run in this school,' she said, an unconvincing smile stretching
her wide mouth, 'but you have been exposed to some very irresponsible wizards
in this class, very irresponsible indeed - not to mention,' she gave a nasty
little laugh, 'extremely dangerous half-breeds.'
'If you mean Professor Lupin,' piped up Dean angrily, 'he was the best we
ever -
'Hand, Mr Thomas! As I was saying - you have been introduced to spells tha
t have been complex, inappropriate to your age group and potentially lethal. Y
ou have been frightened into believing that you are likely to meet Dark attack
s every other day - '
'No we haven't,' Hermione said, 'we just - '
'Your hand is not up, Miss Granger!'
Hermione put up her hand. Professor Umbridge turned away from her.
'It is my understanding that my predecessor not only performed illegal cur
ses in front of you, he actually performed them on you.'
'Well, he turned out to be a maniac, didn't he?' said Dean hotly. 'Mind yo
u, we still learned loads.'
'Your hand is not up, Mr Thomas!' trilled Professor Umbridge. 'Now, it is
the view of the Ministry that a theoretical knowledge will be more than suffic
ient to get you through your examination, which, after all, is what school is
all about. And your name is?' she added, staring at Parvati, whose hand had ju
st shot up.
'Parvati Patil, and isn't there a practical bit in our Defence Against
the Dark Arts OWL? Aren't we supposed to show that we can actually do the
counter-curses and things?'
As long as you have studied the theory hard enough, there is no reason why
you should not be able to perform the spells under carefully controlled exami
nation conditions,' said Professor Umbridge dismissively.
'Without ever practising them beforehand?' said Parvati incredulously. Are
you telling us that the first time we'll get to do the spells will be during
our exam?'
'I repeat, as long as you have studied the theory hard enough - '
And what good's theory going to be in the real world?' said Harry loudly,
his fist in the air again.
Professor Umbridge looked up.
'This is school, Mr Potter, not the real world,' she said softly.
'So we're not supposed to be prepared for what's waiting for us out there?
'
'There is nothing waiting out there, Mr Potter.'
'Oh, yeah?' said Harry. His temper, which seemed to have been bubbling jus
t beneath the surface all day, was reaching boiling point.
'Who do you imagine wants to attack children like yourselves?' enquired Pr
ofessor Umbridge in a horribly honeyed voice.
'Hmm, let's think . . .' said Harry in a mock thoughtful voice. 'Maybe . .
. Lord Voldemort?'
Ron gasped; Lavender Brown uttered a little scream; Neville slipped sidewa
ys off his stool. Professor Umbridge, however, did not flinch. She was staring
at Harry with a grimly satisfied expression on her face.
'Ten points from Gryffindor, Mr Potter.'
The classroom was silent and still. Everyone was staring at either Umbridg
e or Harry.
'Now, let me make a few things quite plain.'
Professor Umbridge stood up and leaned towards them, her stubby-fingered h
ands splayed on her desk.
'You have been told that a certain Dark wizard has returned from the dead
- '
'He wasn't dead,' said Harry angrily, 'but yeah, he's returned!'
'Mr-Potter-you-have-already-lost-your-house-ten-points-do-not-make-matters
-worse-for-yourself,' said Professor Umbridge in one breath without looking at
him. 'As I was saying, you have been informed that a certain Dark wizard is a
t large once again. This is a lie.'
'It is NOT a lie!' said Harry. 'I saw him, I fought him!'
'Detention, Mr Potter!' said Professor Umbridge triumphantly. Tomorrow eve
ning. Five o'clock. My office. I repeat, this is a lie. The Ministry of Magic
guarantees that you are not in danger from any Dark wizard. If you are still w
orried, by all means come and see me outside class hours. If someone is alarmi
ng you with fibs about reborn Dark wizards, I would like to hear about it. I a
m here to help. I am your friend. And now, you will kindly continue your readi
ng. Page five, "Basics for Beginners".'
Professor Umbridge sat down behind her desk. Harry, however, stood up. Eve
ryone was staring at him; Seamus looked half-scared, half-fascinated.
'Harry, no!' Hermione whispered in a warning voice, tugging at his sleeve,
but Harry jerked his arm out of her reach.
'So, according to you, Cedric Diggory dropped dead of his own accord, did
he?' Harry asked, his voice shaking.
There was a collective intake of breath from the class, for none of them,
apart from Ron and Hermione, had ever heard Harry talk about what had happened
on the night Cedric had died. They stared avidly from Harry to Professor Umbr
idge, who had raised her eyes and was staring at him without a trace of a fake
smile on her face.
'Cedric Diggory's death was a tragic accident,' she said coldly.
'It was murder,' said Harry. He could feel himself shaking. He had hardly
spoken to anyone about this, least of all thirty eagerly listening classmates.
'Voldemort killed him and you know it.'
Professor Umbridge's face was quite blank. For a moment, Harry thought she
was going to scream at him. Then she said, in her softest, most sweetly girli
sh voice, 'Come here, Mr Potter, dear.'
He kicked his chair aside, strode around Ron and Hermione and up to the te
acher's desk. He could feel the rest of the class holding its breath. He felt
so angry he did not care what happened next.
Professor Umbridge pulled a small roll of pink parchment out of her handba
g, stretched it out on the desk, dipped her quill into a bottle of ink and sta
rted scribbling, hunched over so that Harry could not see what she was writing
. Nobody spoke. After a minute or so she rolled up the parchment and tapped it
with her wand; it sealed itself seamlessly so that he could not open it.
Take this to Professor McGonagall, dear,' said Professor Umbridge, holding
out the note to him.
He took it from her without saying a word, turned on his heel and left the
room, not even looking back at Ron and Hermione, slamming the classroom door
shut behind him. He walked very fast along the corridor, the note to McGonagal
l clutched tight in his hand, and turning a corner walked slap into Peeves the
poltergeist, a wide-mouthed little man floating on his back in midair, juggli
ng several inkwells.
'Why, it's Potty Wee Potter!' cackled Peeves, allowing two of the inkwells
to fall to the ground where they smashed and spattered the walls with ink; Ha
rry jumped backwards out of the way with a snarl.
'Get out of it, Peeves.'
'Oooh, Crackpot's feeling cranky,' said Peeves, pursuing Harry along the c
orridor, leering as he zoomed along above him. 'What is; it this time, my fine
Potty friend? Hearing voices? Seeing visions? Speaking in - ' Peeves blew a g
igantic raspberry '- tongues?'
'I said, leave me ALONE!' Harry shouted, running down the nearest flight o
f stairs, but Peeves merely slid down the banister on his back beside him.
'Oh, most think he's barking, the potty wee lad,
But some are more kindly and think he's just sad,
But Peevesy knows better and says that he's mad - '
'SHUT UP!'
A door to his left flew open and Professor McGonagall emerged from her off
ice looking grim and slightly harassed.
'What on earth are you shouting about, Potter?' she snapped, as Peeves cac
kled gleefully and zoomed out of sight. 'Why aren't you in class?'
'I've been sent to see you,' said Harry stiffly.
'Sent? What do you mean, sent?'
He held out the note from Professor Umbridge. Professor McGonagall took it
from him, frowning, slit it open with a tap of her wand, stretched it out and
began to read. Her eyes zoomed from side to side behind their square spectacl
es as she read what Umbridge had written, and with each line they became narro
wer.
'Come in here, Potter.'
He followed her inside her study. The door closed automatically behind him
.
'Well?' said Professor McGonagall, rounding on him. "Is this true?'
'Is what true?' Harry asked, rather more aggressively than he had intended
. 'Professor?' he added, in an attempt to sound more polite.
'Is it true that you shouted at Professor Umbridge?'
'Yes,' said Harry.
'You called her a liar?'
'Yes.'
'You told her He Who Must Not Be Named is back?'
'Yes.'
Professor McGonagall sat down behind her desk, watching Harry closely. The
n she said, 'Have a biscuit, Potter.'
'Have - what?'
'Have a biscuit,' she repeated impatiently, indicating a tartan tin lying
on top of one of the piles of papers on her desk. 'And sit down.'
There had been a previous occasion when Harry, expecting to be caned by Pr
ofessor McGonagall, had instead been appointed by her to the Gryffindor Quiddi
tch team. He sank into a chair opposite her and helped himself to a Ginger New
t, feeling just as confused and wrong-footed as he had done on that occasion.
Professor McGonagall set down Professor Umbridge's note and looked very se
riously at Harry.
'Potter, you need to be careful.'
Harry swallowed his mouthful of Ginger Newt and stared at her. Her tone of
voice was not at all what he was used to; it was not brisk, crisp and stern;
it was low and anxious and somehow much more human than usual.
'Misbehaviour in Dolores Umbridge's class could cost you much more than ho
use points and a detention.'
'What do you - ?'
'Potter, use your common sense,' snapped Professor McGonagall, with an abr
upt return to her usual manner. 'You know where she comes from, you must know
to whom she is reporting.'
The bell rang for the end of the lesson. Overhead and all around came the
elephantine sounds of hundreds of students on the move.
'It says here she's given you detention every evening this week, starting
tomorrow,' Professor McGonagall said, looking down at Umbridge's note again.
'Every evening this week!' Harry repeated, horrified. 'But, Professor, cou
ldn't you - ?'
'No, I couldn't,' said Professor McGonagall flatly.
'But - '
'She is your teacher and has every right to give you detention. You will g
o to her room at five o'clock tomorrow for the first one. Just remember: tread
carefully around Dolores Umbridge.'
'But I was telling the truth!' said Harry, outraged. 'Voldemort is back, y
ou know he is; Professor Dumbledore knows he is - '
'For heaven's sake, Potter!' said Professor McGonagall, straightening her
glasses angrily (she had winced horribly when he had used Voldemort's name). '
Do you really think this is about truth or lies? It's about keeping your head
down and your temper under control!'
She stood up, nostrils wide and mouth very thin, and Harry stood up, too.
'Have another biscuit,' she said irritably, thrusting the tin at him.
'No, thanks,' said Harry coldly.
'Don't be ridiculous,' she snapped.
He took one.
Thanks,' he said grudgingly.
'Didn't you listen to Dolores Umbridge's speech at the start-of-term feast
, Potter?'
'Yeah,' said Harry. 'Yeah . . . she said . . . progress will be prohibited
or . . . well, it meant that . . . that the Ministry of Magic is trying to in
terfere at Hogwarts.'
Professor McGonagall eyed him closely for a moment, then sniffed, walked a
round her desk and held open the door for him.
'Well, I'm glad you listen to Hermione Granger at any rate,' she said, poi
nting him out of her office.
- CHAPTER THIRTEEN -
Dentention with Delores
Dinner in the Great Hall that night was not a pleasant experience for Harry. T
he news about his shouting match with Umbridge had travelled exceptionally fas
t even by Hogwarts' standards. He heard whispers all around him as he sat eati
ng between Ron and Hermione. The funny thing was that none of the whisperers s
eemed to mind him overhearing what they were saying about him. On the contrary
, it was as though they were hoping he would get angry and start shouting agai
n, so that they could hear his story first-hand.
'He says he saw Cedric Diggory murdered . . .'
'He reckons he duelled with You-Know-Who . . .'
'Come off it . . .'
'Who does he think he's kidding?'
'Pur-lease . . .'
'What I don't get,' said Harry through clenched teeth, laying down his kni
fe and fork (his hands were shaking too much to hold them steady), 'is why the
y all believed the story two months ago when Dumbledore told them . . .'
The thing is, Harry, I'm not sure they did,' said Hermione grimly. 'Oh, le
t's get out of here.'
She slammed down her own knife and fork; Ron looked longingly at his half-
finished apple pie but followed suit. People stared s t them all the way out o
f the Hall.
'What d'you mean, you're not sure they believed Dumbledore?' Harry asked H
ermione when they reached the first-floor landing.
'Look, you don't understand what it was like after it happened,' said Herm
ione quietly. 'You arrived back in the middle of the lawn clutching Cedric's d
ead body . . . none of us saw what what happened in the maze . . . we just had
Dumbledore's word for it that You-Know-Who had come back and killed Cedric an
d fought you.'
'Which is the truth!' said Harry loudly.
'I know it is, Harry, so will you please stop biting my head off?' said He
rmione wearily. 'It's just that before the truth could sink in, everyone went
home for the summer, where they spent two months reading about how you're a nu
tcase and Dumbledore's going senile!'
Rain pounded on the windowpanes as they strode along the empty corridors b
ack to Gryffindor Tower. Harry felt as though his first day had lasted a week,
but he still had a mountain of homework to do before bed. A dull pounding pai
n was developing over his right eye. He glanced out of a rain-washed window at
the dark grounds as they turned into the Fat Lady's corridor. There was still
no light in Hagrid's cabin.
'Mimbulus mimbletonia,' said Hermione, before the Fat Lady could ask. The
portrait swung open to reveal the hole behind it and the three of them scrambl
ed through it.
The common room was almost empty; nearly everyone was still down at dinner
. Crookshanks uncoiled himself from an armchair and trotted to meet them, purr
ing loudly, and when Harry, Ron and Hermione took their three favourite chairs
at the fireside he leapt lightly on to Hermione's lap and curled up there lik
e a furry ginger cushion. Harry gazed into the flames, feeling drained and exh
austed.
'How can Dumbledore have let this happen?' Hermione cried suddenly, making
Harry and Ron jump; Crookshanks leapt off her, looking affronted. She pounded
the arms of her chair in fury, so that bits of stuffing leaked out of the hol
es. 'How can he let that terrible woman teach us? And in our OWL year, too!'
'Well, we've never had great Defence Against the Dark Arts teachers, have
we?' said Harry. 'You know what it's like, Hagrid told us, nobody wants the jo
b; they say it's jinxed.'
'Yes, but to employ someone who's actually refusing to let us do magic! Wh
at's Dumbledore playing at?'
'And she's trying to get people to spy for her,' said Ron darkly.
'Remember when she said she wanted us to come and tell her if we hear anyo
ne saying You-Know-Who's back?'
'Of course she's here to spy on us all, that's obvious, why else would Fud
ge have wanted her to come?' snapped Hermione.
'Don't start arguing again,' said Harry wearily, as Ron opened his mouth t
o retaliate. 'Can't we just. . . let's just do that homework, get it out of th
e way. . .'
They collected their schoolbags from a corner and returned to the chairs b
y the fire. People were coming back from dinner now. Harry kept his face avert
ed from the portrait hole, but could still sense the stares he was attracting.
'Shall we do Snape's stuff first?' said Ron, dipping his quill into his in
k. "The properties. . . of moonstone. . . and its uses . . . in potion-making.
. ." ' he muttered, writing the words across the top of his parchment as he
spoke them. There.' He underlined the title, then looked up expectantly at Her
mione.
'So, what are the properties of moonstone and its uses in potion-making?'
But Hermione was not listening; she was squinting over into the far corner
of the room, where Fred, George and Lee Jordan were now sitting at the centre
of a knot of innocent-looking first-years, all of whom were chewing something
that seemed to have come out of a large paper bag that Fred was holding.
'No, I'm sorry, they've gone too far,' she said, standing up and looking p
ositively furious. 'Come on, Ron.'
'I - what?' said Ron, plainly playing for time. 'No - come on, Hermione -
we can't tell them off for giving out sweets.'
'You know perfectly well that those are bits of Nosebleed Nougat or - or P
uking Pastilles or - '
'Fainting Fancies?' Harry suggested quietly.
One by one, as though hit over the head with an invisible mallet, the firs
t-years were slumping unconscious in their seats; some slid right on to the fl
oor, others merely hung over the arms of their chairs, their tongues lolling o
ut. Most of the people watching were laughing; Hermione, however, squared her
shoulders and marched directly over to where Fred and George now stood with cl
ipboards, closely observing the unconscious first-years. Ron rose halfway out
of his chair, hovered uncertainly for a moment or two, then muttered to Harry,
'She's got it under control,' before sinking as low in his chair as his lanky
frame permitted.
That's enough!' Hermione said forcefully to Fred and George, both of whom
looked up in mild surprise.
'Yeah, you're right,' said George, nodding, 'this dosage looks strong enou
gh, doesn't it?'
'I told you this morning, you can't test your rubbish on students!'
'We're paying them!' said Fred indignantly.
'I don't care, it could be dangerous!'
'Rubbish,' said Fred.
'Calm clown, Hermione, they're fine!' said Lee reassuringly as he walked f
rom first-year to first-year, inserting purple sweets into their open mouths.
'Yeah, look, they're coming round now,' said George.
A few of the first-years were indeed stirring. Several looked so shocked t
o find themselves lying on the floor, or dangling off their chairs, that Harry
was sure Fred and George had not warned them what the sweets were going to do
.
'Feel all right?' said George kindly to a small dark-haired girl lying at
his feet.
'I - I think so,' she said shakily.
'Excellent,' said Fred happily, but the next second Hermione had snatched
both his clipboard and the paper bag of Fainting Fancies from his hands.
'It is NOT excellent!'
'Course it is, they're alive, aren't they?' said Fred angrily.
'You can't do this, what if you made one of them really ill?'
'We're not going to make them ill, we've already tested them all on oursel
ves, this is just to see if everyone reacts the same - '
'If you don't stop doing it, I'm going to - '
'Put us in detention?' said Fred, in an I'd-like-to-see-you-try-it voice.
'Make us write lines?' said George, smirking.
Onlookers all over the room were laughing. Hermione drew herself up to her
full height; her eyes were narrowed and her bushy hair seemed to crackle with
electricity.
'No,' she said, her voice quivering with anger, 'but I will write to your
mother.'
'You wouldn't,' said George, horrified, taking a step back from her.
'Oh, yes, I would,' said Hermione grimly. 'I can't stop you eating the stu
pid things yourselves, but you're not to give them to the first-years,'
Fred and George looked thunderstruck. It was clear that as far as they wer
e concerned, Hermione's threat was way below the belt. With a last threatening
look at them, she thrust Fred's clipboard and the bag of Fancies back into hi
s arms, and stalked back to her chair by the fire.
Ron was now so low in his seat that his nose was roughly level with his kn
ees.
Thank you for your support, Ron,' Hermione said acidly.
'You handled it fine by yourself,' Ron mumbled.
Hermione stared down at her blank piece of parchment for a few seconds, th
en said edgily, 'Oh, it's no good, I can't concentrate now. I'm going to bed.'
She wrenched her bag open; Harry thought she was about to put her books aw
ay, but instead she pulled out two misshapen woolly objects, placed them caref
ully on a table by the fireplace, covered them with a few screwed-up bits of p
archment and a broken quill and stood back to admire the effect.
'What in the name of Merlin are you doing?' said Ron, watching her as thou
gh fearful for her sanity.
They're hats for house-elves,' she said briskly now stuffing her books bac
k into her bag. 'I did them over the summer. I'm a really slow knitter without
magic but now I'm back at school I should be able to make lots more.'
'You're leaving out hats for the house-elves?' said Ron slowly. 'And you'r
e covering them up with rubbish first?'
'Yes,' said Hermione defiantly, swinging her bag on to her back.
That's not on,' said Ron angrily. 'You're trying to trick them into pickin
g up the hats. You're setting them free when they might not want to be free.'
'Of course they want to be free!' said Hermione at once, though
her face was turning pink. 'Don't you dare touch those hats, Ron!'
She turned on her heel and left. Ron waited until she had disappeared thro
ugh the door to the girls' dormitories, then cleared the rubbish off the wooll
y hats.
They should at least see what they're picking up,' he said firmly. 'Anyway
. . .' he rolled up the parchment on which he had written the title of Snape'
s essay, 'there's no point trying to finish this now, I can't do it without He
rmione, I haven't got a clue what you're supposed to do with moonstones, have
you?'
Harry shook his head, noticing as he did so that the ache in his right tem
ple was getting worse. He thought of the long essay on giant wars and the pain
stabbed at him sharply. Knowing perfectly well that when the morning came, he
would regret not finishing his homework that night, he piled his books back i
nto his bag.
'I'm going to bed too.'
He passed Seamus on the way to the door leading to the dormitories, but di
d not look at him. Harry had a fleeting impression that Seamus had opened his
mouth to speak, but he sped up and reached the soothing peace of the stone spi
ral staircase without having to endure any more provocation.
*
The following day dawned just as leaden and rainy as the previous one. Hagrid
was still absent from the staff table at breakfast.
'But on the plus side, no Snape today,' said Ron bracingly.
Hermione yawned widely and poured herself some coffee. She looked mildly p
leased about something, and when Ron asked her what she had to be so happy abo
ut, she simply said, The hats have gone. Seems the house-elves do want freedom
after all.'
'I wouldn't bet on it,' Ron told her cuttingly. They might not count as cl
othes. They didn't look anything like hats to me, more like woolly bladders.'
Hermione did not speak to him all morning.
Double Charms was succeeded by double Transfiguration. Professor Flitwick
and Professor McGonagall both spent the first fifteen minutes of their lessons
lecturing the class on the importance of OWLs.
'What you must remember,' said little Professor Flitwick squeakily, perche
d as ever on a pile of books so that he could see over the top of his desk, 'i
s that these examinations may influence your futures for many years to come! I
f you have not already given serious thought to your careers, now is the time
to do so. And in :he meantime, I'm afraid, we shall be working harder than eve
r to ensure that you all do yourselves justice!'
They then spent over an hour revising Summoning Charms, which according to
Professor Flitwick were bound to come up in their OWL, and he rounded off the
lesson by setting them their largest ever amount of Charms homework.
It was the same, if not worse, in Transfiguration.
'You cannot pass an OWL,' said Professor McGonagall grimly, 'without serio
us application, practice and study. I see no reason why everybody in this clas
s should not achieve an OWL in Transfiguration as long as they put in the work
.' Neville made a sad little disbelieving noise. 'Yes, you too, Longbottom,' s
aid Professor McGonagall. There's nothing wrong with your work except lack of
confidence. So . . . today we are starting Vanishing Spells. These are easier
than Conjuring Spells, which you would not usually attempt until NEWT level, b
ut they are still among the most difficult magic you will be tested on in your
OWL.'
She was quite right; Harry found the Vanishing Spells horribly difficult.
By the end of a double period, neither he nor Ron had managed to vanish the sn
ails on which they were practising, though Ron said hopefully he thought his l
ooked a bit paler. Hermione, on the other hand, successfully vanished her snai
l on the third attempt, earning her a ten-point bonus for Gryffindor from Prof
essor McGonagall. She was the only person not given homework; everybody else w
as told to practise the spell overnight, ready for a fresh attempt on their sn
ails the following afternoon.
Now panicking slightly about the amount of homework they had to do, Harry
and Ron spent their lunch hour in the library looking up the uses of moonstone
s in potion-making. Still angry about Ron's slur on her woolly hats, Hermione
did not join them. By the time they reached Care of Magical Creatures in the a
fternoon, Harry's head was aching again.
The day had become cool and breezy, and as they walked down the sloping la
wn towards Hagrid's cabin on the edge of the Forbidden Forest, they felt the o
ccasional drop of rain on their faces. Professor Grubbly-Plank stood waiting f
or the class some ten yards from Hagrid's front door, a long trestle table in
front of her laden with twigs. As Harry and Ron reached her, a loud shout of l
aughter sounded behind them; turning, they saw Draco Malfoy striding towards t
hem, surrounded by his usual gang of Slytherin cronies. He had clearly just sa
id something highly amusing, because Crabbe, Goyle, Pansy Parkinson and the re
st continued to snigger heartily as they gathered around the trestle table and
, judging by the way they all kept looking over at Harry, he was able to guess
the subject of the joke without too much difficulty.
'Everyone here?' barked Professor Grubbly-Plank, once all the Slytherins a
nd Gryffindors had arrived. 'Let's crack on then. Who can tell me what these t
hings are called?'
She indicated the heap of twigs in front of her. Hermione's hand shot into
the air. Behind her back, Malfoy did a buck-toothed imitation of her jumping
up and down in eagerness to answer a question. Pansy Parkinson gave a shriek o
f laughter that turned almost at once into a scream, as the twigs on the table
leapt into the air and revealed themselves to be what looked like tiny pixie-
ish creatures made of wood, each with knobbly brown arms and legs, two twiglik
e fingers at the end of each hand and a funny flat, barklike face in which a p
air of beetle-brown eyes glittered.
'Oooooh!' said Parvati and Lavender, thoroughly irritating Harry. Anyone w
ould have thought Hagrid had never shown them impressive creatures; admittedly
, the Flobberworms had been a bit dull, but the Salamanders and Hippogriffs ha
d been interesting enough, and the Blast-Ended Skrewts perhaps too much so.
'Kindly keep your voices down, girls!' said Professor Grubbly-Plank sharpl
y, scattering a handful of what looked like brown rice among the stick-creatur
es, who immediately fell upon the food. 'So - anyone know the names of these c
reatures? Miss Granger?'
'Bowtruckles,' said Hermione. They're tree-guardians, usually live in wand
-trees.'
'Five points for Gryffindor,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank. 'Yes, these ar
e Bowtruckles, and as Miss Granger rightly says, they generally live in trees
whose wood is of wand quality. Anybody know what they eat?'
'Woodlice,' said Hermione promptly, which explained why what Harry had tak
en to be grains of brown rice were moving. 'But fairy eggs if they can get the
m.'
'Good girl, take another five points.. So, whenever you need leaves or woo
d from a tree in which a Bowtruckle lodges, it is wise to have a gift of woodl
ice ready to distract or placate it. They may not look dangerous, but if anger
ed they will try to gouge at human eyes with their fingers, which, as you can
see, are very sharp and not at all desirable near the eyeballs. So if you'd li
ke to gather closer, take a few woodlice and a Bowtruckle - I have enough here
for one between three - you can study them more closely. I want a sketch from
each of you with all body-parts labelled by the end of the lesson.'
The class surged forwards around the trestle table. Harry deliberately cir
cled around the back so that he ended up right next to Professor Grubbly-Plank
.
'Where's Hagrid?' he asked her, while everyone else was choosing Bowtruckl
es.
'Never you mind,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank repressively, which had bee
n her attitude last time Hagrid had failed to turn up for a class, too. Smirki
ng all over his pointed face, Draco Malfoy leaned across Harry and seized the
largest Bowtruckle.
'Maybe,' said Malfoy in an undertone, so that only Harry could hear him, '
the stupid great oaf's got himself badly injured.'
'Maybe you will if you don't shut up,' said Harry out of the side of his m
outh.
'Maybe he's been messing with stuff that's too big for him, if you get my
drift.'
Malfoy walked away, smirking over his shoulder at Harry, who felt suddenly
sick. Did Malfoy know something? His father was a Death Eater after all; what
if he had information about Hagrid's fate that had not yet reached the ears o
f the Order? He hurried back around the table to Ron and Hermione who were squ
atting on the grass some distance away and attempting to persuade a Bowtruckle
to remain still long enough for them to draw it. Harry pulled out parchment a
nd quill, crouched down beside the others and related in a whisper what Malfoy
had just said.
'Dumbledore would know if something had happened to Hagrid,' said Hermione
at once. 'It's just playing into Malfoy's hands to look worried; it tells him
we don't know exactly what's going on. We've got to ignore him, Harry. Here,
hold the Bowtruckle for a moment, just so I can draw its face . . .'
'Yes,' came Malfoy's clear drawl from the group nearest them, 'Father was
talking to the Minister just a couple of days ago, you know, and it sounds as
though the Ministry's really determined to crack down on sub-standard teaching
in this place. So even if that overgrown moron does show up again, he'll prob
ably be sent packing straightaway.'
'OUCH!'
Harry had gripped the Bowtruckle so hard that it had almost snapped, and i
t had just taken a great retaliatory swipe at his hand with its sharp fingers,
leaving two long deep cuts there. Harry dropped it. Crabbe and Goyle, who had
already been guffawing at the idea of Hagrid being sacked, laughed still hard
er as the Bowtruckle set off at full tilt towards the Forest, a little moving
stick-man soon swallowed up among the tree roots. When the bell echoed distant
ly over the grounds, Harry rolled up his blood-stained Bowtruckle picture and
marched off to Herbology with his hand wrapped in Hermione's handkerchief, and
Malfoy's derisive laughter still ringing in his ears.
'If he calls Hagrid a moron one more time . . .' said Harry through gritte
d teeth.
'Harry, don't go picking a row with Malfoy, don't forget, he's a prefect n
ow, he could make life difficult for you . . .'
'Wow, I wonder what it'd be like to have a difficult life?' said Harry sar
castically. Ron laughed, but Hermione frowned. Together, they traipsed across
the vegetable patch. The sky still appeared unable to make up its mind whether
it wanted to rain or not.
'I just wish Hagrid would hurry up and get back, that's all,' said Harry i
n a low voice, as they reached the greenhouses. 'And don't say that Grubbly-Pl
ank woman's a better teacher!' he added threateningly.
'I wasn't going to,' said Hermione calmly.
'Because she'll never be as good as Hagrid,' said Harry firmly, fully awar
e that he had just experienced an exemplary Care of Magical Creatures lesson a
nd was thoroughly annoyed about it.
The door of the nearest greenhouse opened and some fourth-years spilled ou
t of it, including Ginny.
'Hi,' she said brightly as she passed. A few seconds later, Luna Lovegood
emerged, trailing behind the rest of the class, a smudge of earth on her nose,
and her hair tied in a knot on the top of her head. When she saw Harry, her p
rominent eyes seemed to bulge excitedly and she made a beeline straight for hi
m. Many of his classmates turned curiously to watch. Luna took a great breath
and then said, without so much as a preliminary hello, 'I believe He Who Must
Not Be Named is back and I believe you fought him and escaped from him.'
'Er - right,' said Harry awkwardly. Luna was wearing what looked like a pa
ir of orange radishes for earrings, a fact that Parvati and Lavender seemed to
have noticed, as they were both giggling and pointing at her earlobes.
'You can laugh,' Luna said, her voice rising, apparently under the impress
ion that Parvati and Lavender were laughing at what she had said rather than w
hat she was wearing, 'but people used to believe there were no such things as
the Blibbering Humdinger or the Crumple-Horned Snorkack!'
'Well, they were right, weren't they?' said Hermione impatiently. There we
ren't any such things as the Blibbering Humdinger or the Crumple-Horned Snorka
ck.'
Luna gave her a withering look and flounced away, radishes swinging madly.
Parvati and Lavender were not the only ones hooting with laughter now.
'D'you mind not offending the only people who believe me?' Harry asked Her
mione as they made their way into class.
'Oh, for heaven's sake, Harry, you can do better than her,' said Hermione.
'Ginny's told me all about her; apparently, she'll only believe in things as
long as there's no proof at all. Well, I wouldn't expect anything else from so
meone whose father runs The Quibbler.'
Harry thought of the sinister winged horses he had seen on the night he ha
d arrived and how Luna had said she could see them too. His spirits sank sligh
tly. Had she been lying? But before he could devote much more thought to the m
atter, Ernie Macmillan had stepped up to him.
'I want you to know, Potter,' he said in a loud, carrying voice, 'that it'
s not only weirdos who support you. I personally believe you one hundred per c
ent. My family have always stood firm behind Dumbledore, and so do I.'
'Er - thanks very much, Ernie,' said Harry, taken aback but pleased. Ernie
might be pompous on occasions like this, but Harry was in a mood to deeply ap
preciate a vote of confidence from somebody who did not have radishes dangling
from their ears. Ernie's words had certainly wiped the smile from Lavender Br
owns face and as he turned to talk to Ron and Hermione, Harry caught Seamus's
expression, which looked both confused and defiant.
To nobody's surprise, Professor Sprout started their lesson by lecturing t
hem about the importance of OWLs. Harry wished all the teachers would stop doi
ng this; he was starting to get an anxious, twisted feeling in his stomach eve
ry time he remembered how much homework he had to do, a feeling that worsened
dramatically when Professor Sprout gave them yet another essay at the end of c
lass. Tired and smelling strongly of dragon dung, Professor Sprouts preferred
type of fertiliser, the Gryffindors trooped back up to the castle an hour and
a half later, none of them talking very much; it had been another long day.
As Harry was starving, and he had his first detention with Umbridge at fiv
e o'clock, he headed straight for dinner without dropping off his bag in Gryff
indor Tower so that he could bolt something down before facing whatever she ha
d in store for him. He had barely reached the entrance of the Great Hall, howe
ver, when a loud and angry voice yelled, 'Oi, Potter!'
'What now?' he muttered wearily, turning to face Angelina Johnson, who loo
ked as though she was in a towering temper.
'I'll tell you what now,' she said, marching straight up to him and poking
him hard in the chest with her finger. 'How come you've landed yourself in de
tention for five o'clock on Friday?'
'What?' said Harry. 'Why . . . oh yeah, Keeper tryouts!'
'Now he remembers!' snarled Angelina. 'Didn't I tell you I wanted to do a
tryout with the whole team, and find someone who fitted in with everyone? Didn
't I tell you I'd booked the Quidditch pitch specially? And now you've decided
you're not going to be there!'
'I didn't decide not to be there!' said Harry, stung by the injustice of t
hese words. 'I got detention from that Umbridge woman, just because I told her
the truth about You-Know-Who.'
'Well, you can just go straight to her and ask her to let you off en Frida
y,' said Angelina fiercely, 'and I don't care how you do it. Tell her You-Know
-Who's a figment of your imagination if you like, just make sure you're there!
'
She turned on her heel and stormed away.
'You know what.?' Harry said to Ron and Hermione as they entered the Great
Hall. 'I think we'd better check with Puddlemere United whether Oliver Wood's
been killed during a training session, because Angelina seems to be channelli
ng his spirit.'
'What d'you reckon are the odds of Umbridge letting you off on Friday?' sa
id Ron sceptically, as they sat down at the Gryffindor table.
'Less than zero,' said Harry glumly, tipping lamb chops on to his plate an
d starting to eat. 'Better try, though, hadn't I? I'll offer to do two more de
tentions or something, I dunno . . .' He swallowed a mouthful of potato and ad
ded, 'I hope she doesn't keep me too long this evening. You realise we've got
to write three essays, practise Vanishing Spells for McGonagall, work out a co
unter-charm for Flitwick, finish the Bowtruckle drawing and start that stupid
dream diary for Trelawney?'
Ron moaned and for some reason glanced up at the ceiling.
'And it looks like it's going to rain.'
'What's that got to do with our homework?' said Hermione, her eyebrows rai
sed.
'Nothing,' said Ron at once, his ears reddening.
At five to five Harry bade the other two goodbye and set off for Umbridge'
s office on the third floor. When he knocked on the door she called, 'Come in,
' in a sugary voice. He entered cautiously, looking around.
He had known this office under three of its previous occupants.
In the days when Gilderoy Lockhart had lived here it had been plastered in
beaming portraits of himself. When Lupin had occupied it, it was likely you w
ould meet some fascinating Dark creature in a cage or tank if you came to call
. In the impostor Moody's days it had been packed with various instruments and
artefacts for the detection of wrongdoing and concealment.
Now, however, it looked totally unrecognisable. The surfaces had all been
draped in lacy covers and cloths. There were several vases full of dried flowe
rs, each one residing on its own doily, and on one of the walls was a collecti
on of ornamental plates, each decorated with a large technicolour kitten weari
ng a different bow around its neck. These were so foul that Harry stared at th
em, transfixed, until Professor Umbridge spoke again.
'Good evening, Mr Potter.'
Harry started and looked around. He had not noticed her at first because s
he was wearing a luridly flowered set of robes that blended only too well with
the tablecloth on the desk behind her.
'Evening, Professor Umbridge,' Harry said stiffly.
'Well, sit down,' she said, pointing towards a small table draped in lace
beside which she had drawn up a straight-backed chair. A piece of blank parchm
ent lay on the table, apparently waiting for him.
'Er,' said Harry, without moving. 'Professor Umbridge. Er - before we star
t, I - I wanted to ask you a . . . a favour.'
Her bulging eyes narrowed.
'Oh, yes?'
'Well, I'm . . . I'm in the Gryffindor Quidditch team. And I was supposed
to be at the tryouts for the new Keeper at five o'clock on Friday and I was -
was wondering whether I could skip detention that night and do it - do it anot
her night . . . instead . . .'
He knew long before he reached the end of his sentence that it was no good
.
'Oh, no,' said Umbridge, smiling so widely that she looked as though she h
ad just swallowed a particularly juicy fly. 'Oh, no, no, no. This is your puni
shment for spreading evil, nasty, attention-seeking stories, Mr Potter, and pu
nishments certainly cannot be adjusted to suit the guilty one's convenience. N
o, you will come here at five o'clock tomorrow, and the next day, and on Frida
y too, and you will do your detentions as planned. I think it rather a good th
ing that you are missing something you really want to do. It ought to reinforc
e the lesson I am trying to teach you.'
Harry felt the blood surge to his head and heard a thumping noise in his e
ars. So he told 'evil, nasty, attention-seeking stones', did he?
She was watching him with her head slightly to one side, still smiling wid
ely, as though she knew exactly what he was thinking and was waiting to see wh
ether he would start shouting again. With a massive effort, Harry looked away
from her, dropped his schoolbag beside the straight-backed chair and sat down.
'There,' said Umbridge sweetly, 'we're getting better at controlling our t
emper already, aren't we? Now, you are going to be doing some lines for me, Mr
Potter. No, not with your quill,' she added, as Harry bent down to open his b
ag. 'You're going to be using a rather special one of mine. Here you are.'
She handed him a long, thin black quill with an unusually sharp point.
'I want you to write, I must not tell lies,' she told him softly.
'How many times?' Harry asked, with a creditable imitation of politeness.
'Oh, as long as it takes for the message to sink in,' said Umbridge sweetl
y. 'Off you go.'
She moved over to her desk, sat down and bent over a stack of parchment th
at looked like essays for marking. Harry raised the sharp black quill, then re
alised what was missing.
'You haven't given me any ink,' he said.
'Oh, you won't need ink,' said Professor Umbridge, with the merest suggest
ion of a laugh in her voice.
Harry placed the point of the quill on the paper and wrote: I must not tel
l lies.
He let out a gasp of pain. The words had appeared on the parchment in what
appeared to be shining red ink. At the same time, the words had appeared on t
he back of Harry's right hand, cut into his skin as though traced there by a s
calpel - yet even as he stared at the shining cut, the skin healed over again,
leaving the place where it had been slightly redder than before but quite smo
oth.
Harry looked round at Umbridge. She was watching him, her wide, toadlike m
outh stretched in a smile.
'Yes?'
'Nothing,' said Harry quietly.
He looked back at the parchment, placed the quill on it once more, wrote I
must not tell lies, and felt the searing pain on the back of his hand for a s
econd time; once again, the words had been cut into his skin; once again, they
healed over seconds later.
And on it went. Again and again Harry wrote the words on the parchment in
what he soon came to realise was not ink, but his own blood. And, again and ag
ain, the words were cut into the back of his hand, healed, and reappeared the
next time he set quill to parchment.
Darkness fell outside Umbridge's window. Harry did not ask when he would b
e allowed to stop. He did not even check his watch. He knew she was watching h
im for signs of weakness and he was not going to show any, not even if he had
to sit there all night, cutting open his own hand with this quill . . .
'Come here,' she said, after what seemed hours.
He stood up. His hand was stinging painfully. When he looked down at it he
saw that the cut had healed, but that the skin there was red raw.
'Hand,' she said.
He extended it. She took it in her own. Harry repressed a shudder as she t
ouched him with her thick, stubby fingers on which she wore a number of ugly o
ld rings.
'Tut, tut, I don't seem to have made much of an impression yet,' she said,
smiling. 'Well, we'll just have to try again tomorrow evening, won't we? You
may go.'
Harry left her office without a word. The school was quite deserted; it wa
s surely past midnight. He walked slowly up the corridor, then, when he had tu
rned the corner and was sure she would not hear him, broke into a run.
*
He had not had time to practise Vanishing Spells, had not written a single dre
am in his dream diary and had not finished the drawing of the Bowtruckle, nor
had he written his essays. He skipped breakfast next morning to scribble down
a couple of made-up dreams for Divination, their first lesson, and was surpris
ed to find a dishevelled Ron keeping him company.
'How come you didn't do it last night?' Harry asked, as Ron stared wildly
around the common room for inspiration. Ron, who had been fast asleep when Har
ry got back to the dormitory, muttered something about 'doing other stuff, ben
t low over his parchment and scrawled a few words.
'That'll have to do,' he said, slamming the diary shut. 'I've said I dream
ed I was buying a new pair of shoes, she can't make anything weird out of that
, can she?'
They hurried off to North Tower together.
'How was detention with Umbridge, anyway? What did she make you do?'
Harry hesitated for a fraction of a second, then said, 'Lines.'
That's not too bad, then, eh?' said Ron.
'Nope,' said Harry.
'Hey - I forgot - did she let you off for Friday?'
'No,' said Harry.
Ron groaned sympathetically.
It was another bad day for Harry; he was one of the worst in Transfigurati
on, not having practised Vanishing Spells at all. He had to give up his lunch
hour to complete the picture of the Bowtruckle and, meanwhile, Professors McGo
nagall, Grubbly-Plank and Sinistra gave them yet more homework, which he had n
o prospect of finishing that evening because of his second detention with Umbr
idge. To cap it all, Angelina Johnson tracked him down at dinner again and, on
learning that he would not be able to attend Friday's Keeper tryouts, told hi
m she was not at all impressed by his attitude and that she expected players w
ho wished to remain on the team to put training before their other commitments
.
'I'm in detention!' Harry yelled after her as she stalked away. 'D'you thi
nk I'd rather be stuck in a room with that old toad or playing Quidditch?'
'At least it's only lines,' said Hermione consolingly, as Harry sank back
on to his bench and looked down at his steak and kidney pie, which he no longe
r fancied very much. 'It's not as it it's a dreadful punishment, really . . .'
Harry opened his mouth, closed it again and nodded. He was not really sure
why he was not telling Ron and Hermione exactly what was happening in Umbridg
e's room: he only knew that he did not want to see their looks of horror; that
would make the whole thing seem worse and therefore more difficult to face. H
e also felt dimly that this was between himself and Umbridge, a private battle
of wills, and he was not going to give her the satisfaction of hearing that h
e had complained about it.
'I can't believe how much homework we've got,' said Ron miserably.
'Well, why didn't you do any last night?' Hermione asked him. 'Where were
you, anyway?'
'I was . . . I fancied a walk,' said Ron shiftily.
Harry had the distinct impression that he was not alone in concealing thin
gs at the moment.
*
The second detention was just as bad as the previous one. The skin on the back
of Harry's hand became irritated more quickly now and was soon red and inflam
ed. Harry thought it unlikely that it would keep healing as effectively for lo
ng. Soon the cut would remain etched into his hand and Umbridge would, perhaps
, be satisfied. He let no gasp of pain escape him, however, and from the momen
t of entering the room to the moment of his dismissal, again past midnight, he
said nothing but 'good evening' and 'goodnight'.
His homework situation, however, was now desperate, and when he returned t
o the Gryffindor common room he did not, though exhausted, go to bed, but open
ed his books and began Snape's moonstone essay. It was half past two by the ti
me he had finished it. He knew he had done a poor job, but there was no help f
or it; unless he had something to give in he would be in detention with Snape
next. He then dashed off answers to the questions Professor McGonagall had set
them, cobbled together something on the proper handling of Bowtruckles for Pr
ofessor Grubbly-Plank, and staggered up to bed, where he fell fully clothed on
top of the covers and fell asleep immediately.
*
Thursday passed in a haze of tiredness. Ron seemed very sleepy too, though Har
ry could not see why he should be. Harry's third detention passed in the same
way as the previous two, except that after two hours the words 'I must not tel
l lies' did not fade from the back of Harry's hand, but remained scratched the
re, oozing droplets of blood. The pause in the pointed quills scratching made
Professor Umbridge look up.
'Ah,' she said softly, moving around her desk to examine his hand herself.
'Good. That ought to serve as a reminder to you, oughtn't it? You may leave f
or tonight.'
'Do I still have to come back tomorrow?' said Harry, picking up his school
bag with his left hand rather than his smarting right one.
'Oh yes,' said Professor Umbridge, smiling as widely as before. 'Yes, I th
ink we can etch the message a little deeper with another evenings work.'
Harry had never before considered the possibility that there might be anot
her teacher in the world he hated more than Snape, but as he walked back towar
ds Gryffindor Tower he had to admit he had found a strong contender. She's evi
l, he thought, as he climbed a staircase to the seventh floor, she's an evil,
twisted, mad old-
'Ron?'
He had reached the top of the stairs, turned right and almost walked into
Ron, who was lurking behind a statue of Lachlan the Lanky, clutching his broom
stick. He gave a great leap of surprise when he saw Harry and attempted to hid
e his new Cleansweep Eleven behind his back.
'What are you doing?'
'Er - nothing. What are you doing?'
Harry frowned at him.
'Come on, you can tell me! What are you hiding here for?'
'I'm - I'm hiding from Fred and George, if you must know,' said Ron. They
just went past with a bunch of first-years, I bet they're testing stuff on the
m again, I mean, they can't do it in the common room now, can they, not with H
ermione there.'
He was talking in a very fast, feverish way.
'But what have you got your broom for, you haven't been flying, have you?'
Harry asked.
'I - well - well, OK, I'll tell you, but don't laugh, all right?' Ron said
defensively, turning redder with every second. 'I - I thought I'd try out for
Gryffindor Keeper now I've got a decent broom. There. Go on. Laugh.'
'I'm not laughing,' said Harry. Ron blinked. 'It's a brilliant idea! It'd
be really cool if you got on the team! I've never seen you play Keeper, are yo
u good?'
'I'm not bad,' said Ron, who looked immensely relieved at Harry's reaction
. 'Charlie, Fred and George always made me keep for them when they were traini
ng during the holidays.'
'So you've been practising tonight?'
'Every evening since Tuesday . . . just on my own, though. I've been tryin
g to bewitch Quaffles to fly at me, but it hasn't been easy and I don't know h
ow much use it'll be.' Ron looked nervous and anxious. 'Fred and George are go
ing to laugh themselves stupid when I turn up for the tryouts. They haven't st
opped taking the mickey out of me since I got made a prefect.'
'I wish I was going to be there,' said Harry bitterly, as they set off tog
ether towards the common room.
'Yeah, so do - Harry, what's that on the back of your hand?'
Harry, who had just scratched his nose with his free right hand, tried to
hide it, but had as much success as Ron with his Cleansweep.
'It's just a cut - it's nothing - it's - '
But Ron had grabbed Harry's forearm and pulled the back of Harry's hand up
level with his eyes. There was a pause, during which he stared at the words c
arved into the skin, then, looking sick, he released Harry
'I thought you said she was just giving you lines?'
Harry hesitated, but after all, Ron had been honest with him, so he told R
on the truth about the hours he had been spending in Umbridge's office.
The old hag!' Ron said in a revolted whisper as they came to a halt in fro
nt of the Fat Lady, who was dozing peacefully with her head against her frame.
'She's sick! Go to McGonagall, say something!'
'No,' said Harry at once. 'I'm not giving her the satisfaction of knowing
she's got to me.'
'Got to you? You can't let her get away with this!'
'I don't know how much power McGonagall's got over her,' said Harry.
'Dumbledore, then, tell Dumbledore!'
'No,' said Harry flatly.
'Why not?'
'He's got enough on his mind,' said Harry, but that was not the true reaso
n. He was not going to go to Dumbledore for help when Dumbledore had not spoke
n to him once since June.
'Well, I reckon you should - ' Ron began, but he was interrupted by the Fa
t Lady, who had been watching them sleepily and now burst out, 'Are you going
to give me the password or will I have to stay awake all night waiting for you
to finish your conversation?'
*
Friday dawned sullen and sodden as the rest of the week. Though Harry automati
cally glanced towards the staff table when he entered the Great Hall, it was w
ithout any real hope of seeing Hagrid, and he turned his mind immediately to h
is more pressing problems, such as the mountainous pile of homework he had to
do and the prospect of yet another detention with Umbridge.
Two things sustained Harry that day. One was the thought that it was almos
t the weekend; the other was that, dreadful though his final detention with Um
bridge was sure to be, he had a distant view of the Quidditch pitch from her w
indow and might, with luck, be able to see something of Ron's tryout. These we
re rather feeble rays of light, it was true, but Harry was grateful for anythi
ng that might lighten his present darkness; he had never had a worse first wee
k of term at Hogwarts.
At five o'clock that evening he knocked on Professor Umbridge's office doo
r for what he sincerely hoped would be the final time, and was told to enter.
The blank parchment lay ready for him on the lace-covered table, the pointed b
lack quill beside it.
'You know what to do, Mr Potter,' said Umbridge, smiling sweetly at him.
Harry picked up the quill and glanced through the window. If he just shift
ed his chair an inch or so to the right . . . on the pretext of shifting himse
lf closer to the table, he managed it. He now had a distant view of the Gryffi
ndor Quidditch team soaring up and down the pitch, while half a dozen black fi
gures stood at the foot of the three high goalposts, apparently awaiting their
turn to Keep. It was impossible to tell which one was Ron at this distance.
I must not tell lies, Harry wrote. The cut in the back of his right hand o
pened and began to bleed afresh.
I must not tell lies. The cut dug deeper, stinging and smarting.
I must not tell lies. Blood trickled down his wrist.
He chanced another glance out of the window. Whoever was defending the goa
lposts now was doing a very poor job indeed. Katie Bell scored twice in the fe
w seconds Harry dared to watch. Hoping very much that the Keeper wasn't Ron, h
e dropped his eyes back to the parchment shining with blood.
I must not tell lies.
I must not tell lies.
He looked up whenever he thought he could risk it; when he could hear the
scratching of Umbridge's quill or the opening of a desk drawer. The third pers
on to try out was pretty good, the fourth was terrible, the fifth dodged a Blu
dger exceptionally well but then fumbled an easy save. The sky was darkening,
and Harry doubted he would be able to see the sixth and seventh people at all.
I must not tell lies.
I must not tell lies.
The parchment was now dotted with drops of blood from the back of his hand
, which was searing with pain. When he next looked up, night had fallen and th
e Quidditch pitch was no longer visible.
'Lets see if you've got the message yet, shall we?' said Umbridge's soft v
oice half an hour later.
She moved towards him, stretching out her short ringed fingers for his arm
. And then, as she took hold of him to examine the words now cut into his skin
, pain seared, not across the back of his hand, but across the scar on his for
ehead. At the same time, he had a most peculiar sensation somewhere around his
midriff.
He wrenched his arm out of her grip and leapt to his feet, staring at her.
She looked back at him, a smile stretching her wide, slack mouth.
'Yes, it hurts, doesn't it?' she said softly.
He did not answer. His heart was thumping very hard and fast. Was she talk
ing about his hand or did she know what he had just felt in his forehead?
'Well, I think I've made my point, Mr Potter. You may go.'
He caught up his schoolbag and left the room as quickly as he could.
Stay calm, he told himself, as he sprinted up the stairs. Stay calm, it do
esn't necessarily mean what you think it means . . .
'Mimbulus mimbletonia!' he gasped at the Fat Lady, who swung forwards once
more.
A roar of sound greeted him. Ron came running towards him, beaming all ove
r his face and slopping Butterbeer down his front from the goblet he was clutc
hing.
'Harry, I did it, I'm in, I'm Keeper!'
'What? Oh - brilliant!' said Harry, trying to smile naturally, while his h
eart continued to race and his hand throbbed and bled.
'Have a Butterbeer.' Ron pressed a bottle on him. 'I can't believe it - '-
where's Hermione gone?'
'She's there,' said Fred, who was also swigging Butterbeer, and pointed to
an armchair by the fire. Hermione was dozing in it, her drink tipping precari
ously in her hand.
'Well, she said she was pleased when I told her,' said Ron, looking slight
ly put out.
'Let her sleep,' said George hastily. It was a few moments before Harry no
ticed that several of the first-years gathered around them bore unmistakeable
signs of recent nosebleeds.
Come here, Ron, and see if Oliver's old robes fit you,' called Kade Bell,
'we can take off his name and put yours on instead . . .'
As Ron moved away, Angelina came striding up to Harry.
Sorry I was a bit short with you earlier, Potter,' she said abruptly. 'It'
s stressful this managing lark, you know, I'm starting to think I was a bit ha
rd on Wood sometimes.' She was watching Ron over the rim of her goblet with a
slight frown on her face.
'Look, I know he's your best mate, but he's not fabulous,' she said bluntl
y. 'I think with a bit of training he'll be all right, though. He comes from a
family of good Quidditch players. I'm banking on him turning out to have a bi
t more talent than he showed today, to be honest. Vicky Frobisher and Geoffrey
Hooper both flew better this evening, but Hooper's a real whiner, he's always
moaning about something or other, and Vicky's involved in all sorts of societ
ies. She admitted herself that if training clashed with her Charms Club she'd
put Charms first. Anyway, we're having a practice session at two o'clock tomor
row, so just make sure you're there this time. And do me a favour and help Ron
as much as you can, OK?'
He nodded, and Angelina strolled back to Alicia Spinnet. Harry moved over
to sit next to Hermione, who awoke with a jerk as he put down his bag.
'Oh, Harry, it's you . . . good about Ron, isn't it?' she said blearily. '
I'm just so - so - so tired,' she yawned. 'I was up until one o'clock making m
ore hats. They're disappearing like mad!'
And sure enough, now that he looked, Harry saw that there were woolly hats
concealed all around the room where unwary elves might accidentally pick them
up.
'Great,' said Harry distractedly; if he did not tell somebody soon, he wou
ld burst. 'Listen, Hermione, I was just up in Umbridge's office and she touche
d my arm . . .'
Hermione listened closely. When Harry had finished, she said slowly, 'You'
re worried You-Know-Who's controlling her like he controlled Quirrell?'
'Well,' said Harry, dropping his voice, 'it's a possibility, isn't it?'
'I suppose so,' said Hermione, though she sounded unconvinced. 'But I don'
t think he can be possessing her the way he possessed Quirrell, I mean, he's p
roperly alive again now, isn't he, he's got his own body, he wouldn't need to
share someone else's. He could have her under the Imperius Curse, I suppose .
. .'
Harry watched Fred, George and Lee Jordan juggling empty Butterbeer bottle
s for a moment. Then Hermione said, 'But last year your scar hurt when nobody
was touching you, and didn't Dumbledore say it had to do with what You-Know-Wh
o was feeling at the time? I mean, maybe this hasn't got anything to do with
Umbridge at all, maybe it's just coincidence it happened while you were wi
th her?'
'She's evil,' said Harry flatly. Twisted.'
'She's horrible, yes, but . . . Harry, I think you ought to tell Dumbledor
e your scar hurt.'
It was the second time in two days he had been advised to go to Dumbledore
and his answer to Hermione was just the same as his answer to Ron.
'I'm not bothering him with this. Like you just said, it's not a big deal.
It's been hurting on and off all summer - it was just a bit worse tonight, th
at's all - '
'Harry, I'm sure Dumbledore would want to be bothered by this - '
'Yeah,' said Harry, before he could stop himself, 'that's the only bit of
me Dumbledore cares about, isn't it, my scar?'
'Don't say that, it's not true!'
'I think I'll write and tell Sirius about it, see what he thinks - '
'Harry, you can't put something like that in a letter!' said Hermione, loo
king alarmed. 'Don't you remember, Moody told us to be careful what we put in
writing! We just can't guarantee owls aren't being intercepted any more!'
'All right, all right, I won't tell him, then!' said Harry irritably. He g
ot to his feet. 'I'm going to bed. Tell Ron for me, will you?'
'Oh no,' said Hermione, looking relieved, 'if you're going that means I ca
n go too, without being rude. I'm absolutely exhausted and I want to make some
more hats tomorrow. Listen, you can help me if you like, it's quite fun, I'm
getting better, I can do patterns and bobbles and all sorts of things now.'
Harry looked into her face, which was shining with glee, and tried to look
as though he was vaguely tempted by this offer.
'Er . . . no, I don't think I will, thanks,' he said. 'Er - not tomorrow.
I've got loads of homework to do . . .'
And he traipsed off to the boys' stairs, leaving her looking slightly disa
ppointed.
- CHAPTER FOURTEEN -
Percy and Padfoot
Harry was first to wake up in his dormitory next morning. He lay for a moment
watching dust swirl in the ray of sunlight coming through the gap in his four-
poster's hangings, and savoured the thought that it was Saturday. The first we
ek of term seemed to have dragged on for ever, like one gigantic History of Ma
gic lesson.
Judging by the sleepy silence and the freshly minted look of that beam of
sunlight, it was just after daybreak. He pulled open the curtains around his b
ed, got up and started to dress. The only sound apart from the distant twitter
ing of birds was the slow, deep breathing of his fellow Gryffindors. He opened
his schoolbag carefully, pulled out parchment and quill and headed out of the
dormitory for the common room.
Making straight for his favourite squashy old armchair beside the now exti
nct fire, Harry settled himself down comfortably and unrolled his parchment wh
ile looking around the room. The detritus of crumpled-up bits of parchment, ol
d Gobstones, empty ingredient jars and sweet wrappers that usually covered the
common room at the end of each day was gone, as were all Hermione's elf hats.
Wondering vaguely how many elves had now been set free whether they wanted to
be or not, Harry uncorked his ink bottle, dipped his quill into it, then held
it suspended an inch above the smooth yellowish surface of his parchment, thi
nking hard . . . but after a minute or so he found himself staring into the em
pty grate, at a complete loss for what to say.
He could now appreciate how hard it had been for Ron and Hermione to write
him letters over the summer. How was he supposed to tell Sirius everything th
at had happened over the past week and pose all the questions he was burning t
o ask without giving potential letter-thieves a lot of information he did not
want them to have?
He sat quite motionless for a while, gazing into the fireplace, then, fina
lly coming to a decision, he dipped his quill into the ink bottle once more an
d set it resolutely on the parchment.
Dear Snuffles,
Hope you're OK, the first week back here's been terrible, I'm really glad it's
the weekend.
We've got a new Defence Against the Dark Arts teacher, Professor Umbridge.
She's nearly as nice as your mum. I'm writing because that thing I wrote to y
ou about last summer happened again last night when I was doing a detention wi
th Umbridge.
We're all missing our biggest friend, we hope he'll be back soon.
Please write back quickly.
Best,
Harry
Harry reread the letter several times, trying to see it from the point of view
of an outsider. He could not see how they would know what he was talking abou
t - or who he was talking to - just from reading this letter. He did hope Siri
us would pick up the hint about Hagrid and tell them when he might be back. Ha
rry did not want to ask directly in case it drew too much attention to what Ha
grid might be up to while he was not at Hogwarts.
Considering it was a very short letter, it had taken a long time to write;
sunlight had crept halfway across the room while he had been working on it an
d he could now hear distant sounds of movement from the dormitories above. Sea
ling the parchment carefully, he climbed through the portrait hole and headed
off for the Owlery.
'I would not go that way if I were you,' said Nearly Headless Nick, drifti
ng disconcertingly through a wall just ahead of Harry as he walked down the pa
ssage. 'Peeves is planning an amusing . joke on the next person to pass the bu
st of Paracelsus halfway down the corridor.'
'Does it involve Paracelsus falling on top of the persons head?' asked Har
ry.
'Funnily enough, it does,' said Nearly Headless Nick in a bored voice. 'Su
btlety has never been Peeves's strong point. I'm off to try and find the Blood
y Baron . . . he might be able to put a stop to it . . . see you, Harry . . .'
'Yeah, bye,' said Harry and instead of turning right, he turned left, taki
ng a longer but safer route up to the Owlery. His spirits rose as he walked pa
st window after window showing brilliantly blue sky; he had training later, he
would be back on the Quidditch pitch at last.
Something brushed his ankles. He looked down and saw the caretaker's skele
tal grey cat, Mrs Norris, slinking past him. She turned lamplike yellow eyes o
n him for a moment before disappearing behind a statue of Wilfred the Wistful.
'I'm not doing anything wrong,' Harry called after her. She had the unmist
akeable air of a cat that was off to report to her boss, yet Harry could not s
ee why; he was perfectly entitled to walk up to the Owlery on a Saturday morni
ng.
The sun was high in the sky now and when Harry entered the Owlery the glas
sless windows dazzled his eyes; thick silvery beams of sunlight crisscrossed t
he circular room in which hundreds of owls nestled on rafters, a little restle
ss in the early-morning light, some clearly just returned from hunting. The st
raw-covered floor crunched a little as he stepped across tiny animal bones, cr
aning his neck for a sight of Hedwig.
There you are,' he said, spotting her somewhere near the very top of the v
aulted ceiling. 'Get down here, I've got a letter for you.'
With a low hoot she stretched her great white wings and soared down on to
his shoulder.
'Right, I know this says Snuffles on the outside,' he told her, giving her
the letter to clasp in her beak and, without knowing exactly why, whispering,
'but it's for Sirius, OK?'
She blinked her amber eyes once and he took that to mean that she understo
od.
'Safe flight, then,' said Harry and he carried her to one of the windows;
with a moments pressure on his arm, Hedwig took off into the blindingly bright
sky. He watched her until she became a tiny black speck and vanished, then sw
itched his gaze to Hagrid's hut, clearly visible from this window, and just as
clearly uninhabited, the chimney smokeless, the curtains drawn.
The treetops of the Forbidden Forest swayed in a light breeze. Harry watch
ed them, savouring the fresh air on his face, thinking about Quidditch later .
. . then he saw it. A great, reptilian winged hcrse, just like the ones pulli
ng the Hogwarts carriages, with leahery black wings spread wide like a pteroda
ctyl's, rose up out of the trees like a grotesque, giant bird. It soared in a
great circle, then plunged back into the trees. The whole thing had happened s
o quickly, Harry could hardly believe what he had seen, except that his heart
was hammering madly.
The Owlery door opened behind him. He leapt in shock and, turning quickly,
saw Cho Chang holding a letter and a parcel in his hands.
'Hi,' said Harry automatically.
'Oh . . . hi,' she said breathlessly. 'I didn't think anyone would be up h
ere this early . . . I only remembered five minutes ago, it's my mum's birthda
y'
She held up the parcel.
Right,' said Harry. His brain seemed to have jammed. He wanted to say some
thing funny and interesting, but the memory of that terrible winged horse was
fresh in his mind.
Nice day,' he said, gesturing to the windows. His insides seemed to shrive
l with embarrassment. The weather. He was talking about the weather . . .
'Yeah,' said Cho, looking around for a suitable owl. 'Good Quidditch condi
tions. I haven't been out all week, have you?'
'No,' said Harry.
Cho had selected one of the school barn owls. She coaxed it down on to her
arm where it held out an obliging leg so that she could attach the parcel.
'Hey has Gryffindor got a new Keeper yet?' she asked.
'Yeah,' said Harry. 'It's my friend Ron Weasley, d'you know him?'
'The Tornados-hater?' said Cho rather coolly. 'Is he any good?'
'Yeah,' said Harry, 'I think so. I didn't see his tryout, though, I was in
detention.'
Cho looked up, the parcel only half-attached to the owls legs.
That Umbridge woman's foul,' she said in a low voice. 'Putting you in dete
ntion just because you told the truth about how - how - how he died. Everyone
heard about it, it was all over the school. You were really brave standing up
to her like that.'
Harry's insides re-inflated so rapidly he felt as though he might actually
float a few inches off the dropping-strewn floor. Who cared about a stupid fl
ying horse; Cho thought he had been really brave. For a moment, he considered
accidentally-on-purpose showing her his cut hand as he helped her tie her parc
el on to her owl . . . but the very instant this thrilling thought occurred, t
he Owlery door opened again.
Filch the caretaker came wheezing into the room. There were purple patches
on his sunken, veined cheeks, his jowls were aquiver and his thin grey hair d
ishevelled; he had obviously run here. Mrs Norris came trotting at his heels,
gazing up at the owls overhead and mewing hungrily. There was a restless shift
ing of wings from above and a large brown owl snapped his beak in a menacing f
ashion.
'Aha!' said Filch, taking a flat-footed step towards Harry, his pouchy che
eks trembling with anger. Tve had a tip-off that you are intending to place a
massive order for Dungbombs!'
Harry folded his arms and stared at the caretaker.
'Who told you I was ordering Dungbombs?'
Cho was looking from Harry to Filch, also frowning; the barn owl on her ar
m, tired of standing on one leg, gave an admonitory hoot but she ignored it.
'I have my sources.' said Filch in a self-satisfied hiss. 'Now hand over w
hatever it is you're sending.'
Feeling immensely thankful that he had not dawdled in posting off the lett
er, Harry said, 'I can't, it's gone.'
'Gone?' said Filch, his face contorting with rage.
'Gone,' said Harry calmly.
Filch opened his mouth furiously, mouthed for a few seconds, then raked Ha
rry's robes with his eyes.
'How do I know you haven't got it in your pocket?'
'Because - '
'I saw him send it,' said Cho angrily.
Filch rounded on her.
'You saw him - ?'
That's right, I saw him,' she said fiercely.
There was a moment's pause in which Filch glared at Cho and Cho glared rig
ht back, then the caretaker turned on his heel and shuffled back towards the d
oor. He stopped with his hand on the handle and looked back at Harry.
'If I get so much as a whiff of a Dungbomb . . .'
He stumped off down the stairs. Mrs Norris cast a last longing look at the
owls and followed him.
Harry and Cho looked at each other.
Thanks,' Harry said.
No problem,' said Cho, finally fixing the parcel to the barn owl's other l
eg, her face slightly pink. 'You weren't ordering Dungbombs, were you?'
'No,' said Harry.
'I wonder why he thought you were, then?' she said as she carried the owl
to the window.
Harry shrugged. He was quite as mystified by that as she was, though oddly
it was not bothering him very much at the moment.
They left the Owlery together. At the entrance of a corridor that led towa
rds the west wing of the castle, Cho said, 'I'm going this way. Well, I'll . .
. I'll see you around, Harry.'
'Yeah . . . see you.'
She smiled at him and departed. Harry walked on, feeling quietly elated. H
e had managed to have an entire conversation with her and not embarrassed hims
elf once . . . you were really brave standing up to her like that . . . Cho ha
d called him brave . . . she did not hate him for being alive . . .
Of course, she had preferred Cedric, he knew that . . . though if he'd onl
y asked her to the Ball before Cedric had, things might have turned out differ
ently . . . she had seemed sincerely sorry that she'd had to refuse when Harry
asked her . . .
'Morning,' Harry said brightly to Ron and Hermione as he joined them at th
e Gryffindor table in the Great Hall.
'What are you looking so pleased about?' said Ron, eyeing Harry in surpris
e.
'Erm . . . Quidditch later,' said Harry happily, pulling a large platter o
f bacon and eggs towards him.
'Oh . . . yeah . . .' said Ron. He put down the piece of toast he was eati
ng and took a large swig of pumpkin juice. Then he said, 'Listen . . . you don
't fancy going out a bit earlier with me, do you? Just to - er - give me some
practice before training? So I can, you know, get my eye in a bit.'
'Yeah, OK,' said Harry.
'Look, I don't think you should,' said Hermione seriously. 'You're both re
ally behind on homework as it - '
But she broke off; the morning post was arriving and, as usual, the Daily
Prophet was soaring towards her in the beak of a screech owl, which landed per
ilously close to the sugar bowl and held out a leg. Hermione pushed a Knut int
o its leather pouch, took the newspaper, and scanned the front page critically
as the owl took off.
'Anything interesting?' said Ron. Harry grinned, knowing Ron was keen to k
eep her off the subject of homework.
'No,' she sighed, 'just some guff about the bass player in the Weird Siste
rs getting married.'
Hermione opened the paper and disappeared behind it. Harry devoted himself
to another helping of eggs and bacon. Ron was staring up at the high windows,
looking slightly preoccupied.
'Wait a moment,' said Hermione suddenly. 'Oh no . . . Sirius!'
'What's happened?' said Harry, snatching at the paper so violently it ripp
ed down the middle, with him and Hermione each holding one half.
' "The Ministry of Magic has received a tip-off from a reliable source tha
t Sirius Black, notorious mass murderer . . . blah blah blah . . .is currently
hiding in London!" ' Hermione read from her half in an anguished whisper.
'Lucius Malfoy, I'll bet anything,' said Harry in a low, furious voice. 'H
e did recognise Sirius on the platform . . .'
What?' said Ron, looking alarmed. 'You didn't say - '
'Shh!' said the other two.
'. . . "Ministry warns wizarding community that Black is very dangerous .
. . killed thirteen people . . . broke out of Azkaban . . ." the usual rubbish
,' Hermione concluded, laying down her half of the paper and looking fearfully
at Harry and Ron. 'Well, he just won't be able to leave the house again, that
's all,' she whispered. 'Dumbledore did warn him not to.'
Harry looked down glumly at the bit of the Prophet he had torn off. Most o
f the page was devoted to an advertisement for Madam Malkin's Robes for All Oc
casions, which was apparently having a sale.
'Hey!' he said, flattening it down so Hermione and Ron could see it. 'Look
at this!'
'I've got all the robes I want,' said Ron 'No,' said Harry. 'Look . . . th
is little piece here . . ." Ron and Hermione bent closer to read it; the item
was barely an inch long and placed right at the bottom of a column. It was hea
dlined:
TRESPASS AT MINISTRY
Sturgis Podmore, 38, of number two, Laburnum Gardens, Clapham, has appeared in
front of the Wizcngamot charged with trespass and attempted robbery at the Mi
nistry of Magic on 31" August. Podmore was arrested by Ministry of Magic watch
wizard Eric Munch, who found him attempting to force his way through a top-sec
urity door at one o'clock in the morning. Podmore, who refused to speak, in hi
s own defence, was convicted on both charges and sentenced to six months in Az
kaban.
'Sturgis Podmore?' said Ron slowly. 'He's that bloke who looks like his head's
been thatched, isn't he? He's one of the Ord-
'Ron, shhl' said Hermione, casting a terrified look around them.
'Six months in Azkaban!' whispered Harry, shocked. 'Just for trying to get
through a door!'
'Don't be silly, it wasn't just for trying to get through a door. What on
earth was he doing at the Ministry of Magic at one o'clock in the morning?' br
eathed Hermione.
D'you reckon he was doing something for the Order?' Ron muttered.
'Wait a moment . . .' said Harry slowly. 'Sturgis was supposed to come and
see us off, remember?'
The other two looked at him.
'Yeah, he was supposed to be part of our guard going to King's Cross, reme
mber? And Moody was all annoyed because he didn't turn up; so he couldn't have
been on a job for them, could he?'
'Well, maybe they didn't expect him to get caught,' said Hermione.
'It could be a frame-up!' Ron exclaimed excitedly. 'No - listen!' he went
on, dropping his voice dramatically at the threatening look on Hermione's face
. The Ministry suspects he's one of Dumbledore's lot so - I dunno - they lured
him to the Ministry, and he wasn't trying to get through a door at all! Maybe
they've just made something up to get him!'
There was a pause while Harry and Hermione considered this. Harry thought
it seemed far-fetched. Hermione, on the other hand, looked rather impressed.
'Do you know, I wouldn't be at all surprised if that were true.'
She folded up her half of the newspaper thoughtfully. As Harry laid down h
is knife and fork, she seemed to come out of a reverie.
'Right, well, I think we should tackle that essay for Sprout on self-ferti
lising shrubs first and if we're lucky we'll be able to start McGonagall's Ina
nimatus Conjurus Spell before lunch . . .'
Harry felt a small twinge of guilt at the thought of the pile of homework
awaiting him upstairs, but the sky was a clear, exhilarating blue, and he had
not been on his Firebolt for a week . . .
'I mean, we can do it tonight,' said Ron, as he and Harry walked down the
sloping lawns towards the Quidditch pitch, their broomsticks over their should
ers, and with Hermione's dire warnings that they would fail all their OWLs sti
ll ringing in their ears. 'And we've got tomorrow. She gets too worked up abou
t work, that's her trouble . . .' There was a pause and he added, in a slightl
y more anxious tone, 'D'you think she meant it when she said we weren't copyin
g from her?'
'Yeah, I do,' said Harry. 'Still, this is important, too, we've got to pra
ctise if we want to stay on the Quidditch team . . .'
'Yeah, that's right,' said Ron, in a heartened tone. 'And we have got plen
ty of time to do it all . . .'
As they approached the Quidditch pitch, Harry glanced over to his right to
where the trees of the Forbidden Forest were swaying darkly. Nothing flew out
of them; the sky was empty but for a few distant owls fluttering around the O
wlery tower. He had enough to worry about; the flying horse wasn't doing him a
ny harm; he pushed it out of his mind.
They collected balls from the cupboard in the changing room and set to wor
k, Ron guarding the three tall goalposts, Harry playing Chaser and trying to g
et the Quaffle past Ron. Harry thought Ron was pretty good; he blocked three-q
uarters of the goals Harry attempted to put past him and played better the lon
ger they practised. After a couple of hours they returned to the castle for lu
nch - during which Hermione made it quite clear she thought they were irrespon
sible - then returned to the Quidditch pitch for the real training session. Al
l their teammates but Angelina were already in the changing room when they ent
ered.
All right, Ron?' said George, winking at him.
Yeah,' said Ron, who had become quieter and quieter all the way down to th
e pitch.
'Ready to show us all up, Ickle Prefect?' said Fred, emerging tousle-haire
d from the neck of his Quidditch robes, a slightly malicious grin on his face.
'Shut up,' said Ron, stony-faced, pulling on his own team robes for the fi
rst time. They fitted him well considering they had been Oliver Wood's, who wa
s rather broader in the shoulder.
'OK, everyone,' said Angelina, entering from the Captain's office, already
changed. 'Let's gel to it; Alicia and Fred, if you can jus: bring out the bal
l crate for us. Oh, and there are a couple of people out there watching but I
want you to just ignore them, all right?'
Something in her would-be casual voice made Harry think he might know who
the uninvited spectators were, and sure enough, when they left the changing ro
om for the bright sunlight of the pitch it was to a storm of catcalls and jeer
s from the Slytherin Quidditch team and assorted hangers-on, who were grouped
halfway up the empty stands and whose voices echoed loudly around the stadium.
'What's that Weasley's riding?' Malfoy called in his sneering drawl. 'Why
would anyone put a flying charm on a mouldy old log like that?'
Crabbe, Goyle and Pansy Parkinson guffawed and shrieked with laughter. Ron
mounted his broom and kicked off from the ground and Harry followed him, watc
hing his ears turn red from behind.
'Ignore them,' he said, accelerating to catch up with Ron, 'we'll see who'
s laughing after we play them . . .'
'Exactly the attitude I want, Harry' said Angelina approvingly soaring aro
und them with the Quaffle under her arm and slowing to hover on the spot in fr
ont of her airborne team. 'OK, everyone, we're going to start with some passes
just to warm up, the whole team please - '
'Hey, Johnson, what's with that hairstyle, anyway?' shrieked Pansy Parkins
on from below. 'Why would anyone want to look like they've got worms coming ou
t of their head?'
Angelina swept her long braided hair out of her face and continued calmly,
'Spread out, then, and let's see what we can do . . .'
Harry reversed away from the others to the far side of the pitch. Ron fell
back towards the opposite goal. Angelina raised the Quaffle with one hand and
threw it hard to Fred, who passed to George, who passed to Harry, who passed
to Ron, who dropped it.
The Slytherins, led by Malfoy, roared and screamed with laughter. Ron, who
had pelted towards the ground to catch the Quaffle before it landed, pulled o
ut of the dive untidily, so that he slipped sideways on his broom, and returne
d to playing height, blushing. Harry saw Fred and George exchange looks, but u
ncharacteristically neither of them said anything, for which he was grateful.
'Pass it on, Ron,' called Angelina, as though nothing had happened.
Ron threw the Quaffle to Alicia, who passed back to Harry, who passed to G
eorge . . .
'Hey, Potter, how's your scar feeling?' called Malfoy. 'Sure you don't nee
d a lie down? It must be, what, a whole week since you were in the hospital wi
ng, that's a record for you, isn't it?'
George passed to Angelina; she reverse-passed to Harry, who had not been e
xpecting it, but caught it in the very tips of his fingers and passed it quick
ly to Ron, who lunged for it and missed by inches.
'Come on now, Ron,' said Angelina crossly, as he dived for the ground agai
n, chasing the Quaffle. 'Pay attention.'
It would have been hard to say whether Ron's face or the Quaffle was a dee
per scarlet when he again returned to playing height. Malfoy and the rest of t
he Slytherin team were howling with laughter.
On his third attempt, Ron caught the Quaffle; perhaps out of relief he pas
sed it on so enthusiastically that it soared straight though Katie's outstretc
hed hands and hit her hard in the face.
'Sorry!' Ron groaned, zooming forwards to see whether he had done any dama
ge.
'Get back in position, she's fine!' barked Angelina. 'But as you're passin
g to a teammate, do try not to knock her off her broom, won't you? We've got B
ludgers for that!'
Katie's nose was bleeding. Down below, the Slytherins were stamping their
feet and jeering. Fred and George converged on Katie.
'Here, take this,' Fred told her, handing her something small anc purple f
rom out of his pocket, 'it'll clear it up in no time.'
'All right,' called Angelina, 'Fred, George, go and get your bats and a Bl
udger. Ron, get up to the goalposts. Harry, release the Snitch when I say so.
We're going to aim for Ron's goal, obviously.'
Harry zoomed off after the twins to fetch the Snitch.
'Ron's making a right pig's ear of things, isn't he?' muttered George, as
the three of them landed at the crate containing the balls and opened it to ex
tract one of the Bludgers and the Snitch.
'He's just nervous,' said Harry, 'he was fine when I was practising with h
im this morning.'
'Yeah, well, I hope he hasn't peaked too soon,' said Fred gloomily.
They returned to the air. When Angelina blew her whistle, Harry released t
he Snitch and Fred and George let fly the Bludger. From that moment on, Harry
was barely aware of what the others were doing. It was his job to recapture th
e tiny fluttering golden ball that was worth a hundred and fifty points to the
Seeker's team and doing so required enormous speed and skill. He accelerated,
rolling and swerving in and out of the Chasers, the warm autumn air whipping
his face, and the distant yells of the Slytherins so much meaningless roaring
in his ears . . . but too soon, the whistle brought him to a halt again.
'Stop - stop - STOP!' screamed Angelina. 'Ron - you're not covering your m
iddle post!'
Harry looked round at Ron, who was hovering in front of the left-hand hoop
, leaving the other two completely unprotected.
'Oh . . . sorry . . .'
'You keep shifting around while you're watching the Chasers!' said Angelin
a. 'Either stay in centre position until you have to move to defend a hoop, or
else circle the hoops, but don't drift vaguely off to one side, that's how yo
u let in the last three goals!'
'Sorry . . .' Ron repeated, his red face shining like a beacon against the
bright blue sky.
'And Katie, can't you do something about that nosebleed?'
'It's just getting worse!' said Katie thickly, attempting to stem the flow
with her sleeve.
Harry glanced round at Fred, who was looking anxious and checking his pock
ets. He saw Fred pull out something purple, examine it for a second and then l
ook round at Katie, evidently horror-struck.
'Well, let's try again,' said Angelina. She was ignoring the Slytherins, w
ho had now set up a chant of 'Gryffindor are losers, Gryffindor are losers,' b
ut there was a certain rigidity about her seat on the broom nevertheless.
This time they had been flying for barely three minutes when Angelinas whi
stle sounded. Harry, who had just sighted the Snitch circling the opposite goa
lpost, pulled up feeling distinctly aggrieved.
'What now?' he said impatiently to Alicia, who was nearest.
'Katie,' she said shortly.
Harry turned and saw Angelina, Fred and George all flying as fast as they
could towards Katie. Harry and Alicia sped towards her, too. It was plain that
Angelina had stopped training just in time; Katie was now chalk white and cov
ered in blood.
'She needs the hospital wing,' said Angelina.
'We'll take her,' said Fred. 'She - er - might have swallowed a Blood Blis
terpod by mistake - '
'Well, there's no point continuing with no Beaters and a Chaser gone,' sai
d Angelina glumly as Fred and George zoomed off towards the castle supporting
Katie between them. 'Come on, let's go and get changed.'
The Slytherins continued to chant as they trailed back into the changing r
ooms.
'How was practice?' asked Hermione rather coolly half an hour later, as Ha
rry and Ron climbed through the portrait hole into the Gryffindor common room.
'It was - ' Harry began.
'Completely lousy,' said Ron in a hollow voice, sinking into a chair besid
e Hermione. She looked up at Ron and her frost mess seemed to melt.
'Well, it was only your first one,' she said consolingly, 'it's bound to t
ake time to - '
'Who said it was me who made it lousy?' snapped Ron.
'No one,' said Hermione, looking taken aback, 'I thought - '
'You thought I was bound to be rubbish?'
'No, of course I didn't! Look, you said it was lousy so I just - '
'I'm going to get started on some homework,' said Ron angrily and stomped
off to the staircase to the boys' dormitories and vanished from sight. Hermion
e turned to Harry.
'Was he lousy?'
No,' said Harry loyally.
Hermione raised her eyebrows.
'Well, I suppose he could've played better,' Harry muttered, 'but it was o
nly the first training session, like you said . . .'
Neither Harry nor Ron seemed to make much headway with their homework that
night. Harry knew Ron was too preoccupied with how badly he had performed at
Quidditch practice and he himself was having difficulty in getting the 'Gryffi
ndor are losers' chant out of his head.
They spent the whole of Sunday in the common room, buried in ! heir books
while the room around them filled up, then emptied. It was another clear, fine
day and most of their fellow Gryffindors spent the day out in the grounds, en
joying what might well be some of the last sunshine that year. By the evening,
Harry felt as though somebody had been beating his brain against the inside o
f his skull.
'You know, we probably should try and get more homework done during the we
ek, Harry muttered to Ron, as they finally laid aside Professor McGonagall's l
ong essay on the Inanimatus Conjurus Spell and turned miserably to Professor S
inistra's equally long and difficult essay about Jupiter's many moons.
'Yeah,' said Ron, rubbing slightly bloodshot eyes and throwing his fifth s
poiled bit of parchment into the fire beside them. 'Listen . . . shall we just
ask Hermione if we can have a look at what she's done?'
Harry glanced over at her; she was sitting with Crookshanks on her lap and
chatting merrily to Ginny as a pair of knitting needles flashed in midair in
front of her, now knitting a pair of shapeless elf socks.
'No,' he said heavily, 'you know she won't let us.'
And so they worked on while the sky outside the windows became steadily da
rker. Slowly, the crowd in the common room began to thin again. At half past e
leven, Hermione wandered over to them, yawning.
'Nearly done?'
'No,' said Ron shortly.
'Jupiter's biggest moon is Ganymede, not Callisto,' she said, pointing ove
r Ron's shoulder at a line in his Astronomy essay, 'and it's lo that's got the
volcanoes.'
Thanks,' snarled Ron, scratching out the offending sentences.
'Sorry, I only - '
'Yeah, well, if you've just come over here to criticise - '
'Ron - '
'I haven't got time to listen to a sermon, all right, Hermione, I'm up to
my neck in it here - '
'No - look!'
Hermione was pointing to the nearest window. Harry and Ron both looked ove
r. A handsome screech owl was standing on the windowsill, gazing into the room
at Ron.
'Isn't that Hermes?' said Hermione, sounding amazed.
'Blimey, it is!' said Ron quietly, throwing down his quill and getting to
his feet. 'What's Percy writing to me for?'
He crossed to the window and opened it; Hermes flew inside, landed on Ron'
s essay and held out a leg to which a letter was attached. Ron took the letter
off it and the owl departed at once, leaving inky footprints across Ron's dra
wing of the moon Io.
That's definitely Percy's handwriting,' said Ron, sinking back into his ch
air and staring at the words on the outside of the scroll: Ronald Weasley, Gry
ffindor House, Hogwarts. He looked up at the other two. 'What d'you reckon?'
'Open it!' said Hermione eagerly, and Harry nodded.
Ron unrolled the scroll and began to read. The further clown the parchment
his eyes travelled, the more pronounced became his scowl. When he had finishe
d reading, he looked disgusted. He thrust the letter at Harry and Hermione, wh
o leaned towards each other to read it together:
Dear Ron,
I have only just heard (from no less a person than the Minister for Magic hims
elf, who has it from your new teacher, Professor Umbridge) that you have becom
e a Hogwarts prefect.
I was most pleasantly surprised when f heard this news and must firstly of
fer my congratulations. I must admit that I have always been afraid that you w
ould take what we might call the 'Fred and George' route, rather than followin
g in my footsteps, so you can imagine my feelings on hearing you have stopped
flouting authority and have decided to shoulder some real responsibility.
But I want to give you more than congratulations, Ron, I want to give you
some advice, which is why I am sending this at night rather than by the usual
morning post. Hopefully, you will be able 'o read this away from prying eyes a
nd avoid awkward questions.
From something the Minister let slip when telling me you are now a prefect
, I gather that you are still seeing a lot of Harry Potter. I must tell you, R
on, that nothing could put you in danger of losing your badge more than contin
ued fraternisation with that boy. Yes, I am sure you are surprised to hear thi
s - no doubt you will say that Potter has always been Dumbledore's favourite -
but I feel bound to tell you that Dumbledore may not be in charge at Hogwarts
much longer and the people who count have a very different - and probably mor
e accurate - view of Potter's behaviour. I shall say no more here, but if you
look at the Daily Prophet tomorrow you will get a good idea of the way the win
d is blowing - and see if you can spot yours truly!
Seriously, Ron, you do not want to be tarred with the same brush as Potter
, it could be very damaging to your future prospects, and I am talking here ab
out life after school, too. As you must be aware, given that our father escort
ed him to court, Potter had a disciplinary hearing this summer in front of the
whole Wizengamot and he did not come out of it looking too good. He got off o
n a mere technicality, if you ask me, and many of the people I've spoken to re
main convinced of his guilt.
It may be that you are afraid to sever ties with Potter - I know that he c
an be unbalanced and, for all I know, violent - but if you have any worries ab
out this, or have spotted anything else in Potter's behaviour that is troublin
g you, I urge you to speak to Dolores Umbridge, a truly delightful woman who I
know will be only too happy to advise you.
This leads me to my other bit of advice. As I have hinted above, Dumbledor
e's regime at Hogwarts may soon be over. Your loyalty, Ron, should be not to h
im, but to the school and the Ministry. I am very sorry to hear that, so far,
Professor Umbridge is encountering very little co-operation from staff as she
strives to make those necessary changes within Hogwarts that the Ministry so a
rdently desires (although she should find this easier from next week - again,
see the Daily Prophet tomorrow!). I shall say only this - a student who shows
himself willing to help Professor Umbridge now may be very well-placed for Hea
d Boy ship in a couple of years!
I am sorry that I was unable to see more of you over the summer. It pains
me to criticise our parents, but I am afraid I can no longer live under their
roof while they remain mixed up with the dangerous crowd around Dumbledore. (I
f you are writing to Mother at any point, you might tell her that a certain St
urgis Podmore, who is a great friend of Dumbledore's, has recently been sent t
o Azkaban for trespass at the Ministry. Perhaps that will open their eyes to t
he kind of petty criminals with whom they are currently rubbing shoulders.) I
count myself very lucky to have escaped the stigma of association with such pe
ople - the Minister really could not be more gracious to me - and I do hope, R
on, that you will not allow family ties to blind you to the misguided nature o
f our parents' beliefs and actions, either. I sincerely hope that, in time, th
ey will realise how mistaken they were and I shall, of course, be ready to acc
ept a full apology when that day comes.
Please think over what I have said most carefully, particularly the bit ab
out Harry Potter, and congratulations again on becoming prefect.
Your brother,
Percy
Harry looked up at Ron.
'Well,' he said, trying to sound as though he found the whole thing a joke
, 'if you want to - er - what is it?' - he checked Percy's letter - 'Oh yeah -
"sever ties" with me, I swear I won't get violent.'
'Give it back,' said Ron, holding out his hand. 'He is - ' Ron said jerkil
y, tearing Percy's letter in half 'the world's - ' he tore it into quarters 'b
iggest - ' he tore it into eighths 'git.' He threw the pieces into the fire.
'Come on, we've got to get this finished sometime before dawn,' he said br
iskly to Harry, pulling Professor Sinistra's essay back towards him.
Hermione was looking at Ron with an odd expression on her face.
'Oh, give them here,' she said abruptly.
'What?' said Ron.
'Give them to me, I'll look through them and correct them,' she said.
'Are you serious? Ah, Hermione, you're a life-saver,' said Ron, 'what can
I - ?'
'What you can say is, "We promise we'll never leave our homework this late
again," ' she said, holding out both hands for their essays, but she looked s
lightly amused all the same.
'Thanks a million, Hermione,' said Harry weakly, passing over his essay an
d sinking back into his armchair, rubbing his eyes.
It was now past midnight and the common room was deserted but for the thre
e of them and Crookshanks. The only sound was that of Hermione's quill scratch
ing out sentences here and there on their essays and the ruffle of pages as sh
e checked various facts in the reference books strewn across the table. Harry
was exhausted. He also felt an odd, sick, empty feeling in his stomach that ha
d nothing to do with tiredness and everything to do with the letter now curlin
g blackly in the heart of the fire.
He knew that half the people inside Hogwarts thought him strange, even mad
; he knew that the Daily Prophet had been making snide allusions to him for mo
nths, but there was something about seeing it written down like that in Percy'
s writing, about knowing that Percy was advising Ron to drop him and even to t
ell tales about him to Umbridge, that made his situation real to him as nothin
g else had. He had known Percy for four years, had stayed in his house during
the summer holidays, shared a tent with him during the Quidditch World Cup, ha
d even been awarded full marks by him in the second task of the Triwizard Tour
nament last year, yet now, Percy thought him unbalanced and possibly violent.
And with a surge of sympathy for his godfather, Harry thought Sirius was p
robably the only person he knew who could really understand how he felt at the
moment, because Sirius was in the same situation. Nearly everyone in the wiza
rding world thought Sirius a dangerous murderer and a great Voldemort supporte
r and he had had to live with that knowledge for fourteen years . . .
Harry blinked. He had just seen something in the fire that could not have
been there. It had flashed into sight and vanished immediately. No . . . it co
uld not have been . . . he had imagined it because he had been thinking about
Sirius . . .
'OK, write that down,' Hermione said to Ron, pushing his essay and a sheet
covered in her own writing back to Ron, 'then add this conclusion I've writte
n for you.'
'Hermione, you are honestly the most wonderful person I've ever met,' said
Ron weakly, 'and if I'm ever rude to you again - '
- I'll know you're back to normal,' said Hermione. 'Harry, yours is OK exc
ept for this bit at the end, I think you must have misheard Professor Sinistra
, Europa's covered in ice, not mice - 'Harry?'
Harry had slid off his chair on to his knees and was now crouching on the
singed and threadbare hearthrug, gazing into the flames.
'Er - Harry?' said Ron uncertainly. 'Why are you down there?'
'Because I've just seen Sirius's head in the fire,' said Harry.
He spoke quite calmly; after all, he had seen Sirius's head in this very f
ire the previous year and talked to it, too; nevertheless, he could not be sur
e that he had really seen it this time . . . it had vanished so quickly . . .
'Sirius's head?' Hermione repeated. 'You mean like when he wanted to talk
to you during the Triwizard Tournament? But he wouldn't do that now, it would
be too - Sirius!'
She gasped, gazing at the fire; Ron dropped his quill. There in the middle
of the dancing flames sat Sirius's head, long dark hair failing around his gr
inning face.
'I was starting to think you'd go to bed before everyone else had disappea
red,' he said. 'I've been checking every hour.'
'You've been popping into the fire every hour?' Harry said, half-laughing.
'Just for a few seconds to check if the coast was clear.'
'But what if you'd been seen?' said Hermione anxiously.
'Well, I think a girl - first-year, by the look of her - might've get a gl
impse of me earlier, but don't worry,' Sirius said hastily, as Hermione clappe
d a hand to her mouth, '] was gone the moment she looked back at me and I'll b
et she just thought I was an oddly-shaped log or something.'
'But, Sirius, this is taking an awful risk - ' Hermione began.
'You sound like Molly,' said Sirius. This was the only way I could come up
with of answering Harry's letter without resorting to a code - and codes are
breakable.'
At the mention of Harry's letter, Hermione and Ron both turned to stare at
him.
'You didn't say you'd written to Sirius! said Hermione accusingly.
'I forgot,' said Harry, which was perfectly true; his meeting with Cho in
the Owlery had driven everything before it out of his mind. 'Don't look at me
like that, Hermione, there was no way anyone would have got secret information
out of it, was there, Sirius?'
'No, it was very good,' said Sirius, smiling. 'Anyway, we'd better be quic
k, just in case we're disturbed - your scar.'
'What about - ?' Ron began, but Hermione interrupted him.
'We'll tell you afterwards. Go on, Sirius.'
'Well, I know it can't be fun when it hurts, but we don't think its anythi
ng to really worry about. It kept aching all last year, didn't it?'
'Yeah, and Dumbledore said it happened whenever Voldemort was feeling a po
werful emotion,' said Harry, ignoring, as usual, Ron and Hermione's winces. 'S
o maybe he was just, I dunno, really angry or something the night I had that d
etention.'
'Well, now he's back it's bound to hurt more often,' said Sirius.
'So you don't think it had anything to do with Umbridge touching me when I
was in detention with her?' Harry asked.
'I doubt it,' said Sirius. 'I know her by reputation and I'm sure she's no
Death Eater - '
'She's foul enough to be one,' said Harry darkly, and Ron and Hermione nod
ded vigorously in agreement.
'Yes, but the world isn't split into good people and Death Eaters,' said S
irius with a wry smile. 'I know she's a nasty piece of work, though - you shou
ld hear Remus talk about her.'
'Does Lupin know her?' asked Harry quickly, remembering Umbridge's comment
s about dangerous half-breeds during her first lesson.
'No,' said Sirius, 'but she drafted a bit of anti-werewolf legislation two
years ago thai makes it almost impossible for him to get a job.'
Harry remembered how much shabbier Lupin looked these days and his dislike
of Umbridge deepened even further.
'What's she got against werewolves?' said Hermione angrily.
'Scared of them, I expect,' said Sirius, smiling at her indignation. 'Appa
rently, she loathes part-humans; she campaigned to have merpeople rounded up a
nd tagged last year, too. Imagine wasting your time and energy persecuting mer
people when there are little toerags like Kreacher on the loose.'
Ron laughed but Hermione looked upset.
'Sirius!' she said reproachfully. 'Honestly, if you made a bit of an effor
t with Kreacher, I'm sure he'd respond. After all, you are the only member of
his family he's got left, and Professor Dumbledore said - '
'So, what are Umbridge's lessons like?' Sirius interrupted. 'Is she traini
ng you all to kill half-breeds?'
'No,' said Harry, ignoring Hermione's affronted look at being cut off in h
er defence of Kreacher. 'She's not letting us use magic at all!'
'All we do is read the stupid textbook,' said Ron.
'Ah, well, that figures,' said Sirius. 'Our information from inside the Mi
nistry is that Fudge doesn't want you trained in combat.'
'Trained in combat!' repeated Harry incredulously. 'What does he think we'
re doing here, forming some sort of wizard army?'
That's exactly what he thinks you're doing,' said Sirius, 'or, rather, tha
t's exactly what he's afraid Dumbledore's doing - forming his own private army
, with which he will be able to take on the Ministry of Magic.'
There was a pause at this, then Ron said, That's the most stupid thing I'v
e ever heard, including all the stuff that Luna Lovegood comes out with.'
'So we're being prevented from learning Defence Against the Dark Arts beca
use Fudge is scared we'll use spells against the Ministry?' said Hermione, loo
king furious.
'Yep,' said Sirius. 'Fudge thinks Dumbledore will stop at nothing to seize
power. He's getting more paranoid about Dumbledore by the day. It's a matter
of time before he has Dumbledore arrested on some trumped-up charge.'
This reminded Harry of Percy's letter.
'D'you know if there's going to be anything about Dumbledore in the Daily
Prophet tomorrow? Ron's brother Percy reckons there will be - '
'I don't know,' said Sirius, 'I haven't seer, anyone from the Order all we
ekend, they're all busy. It's just been Kreacher and me here
There was a definite note of bitterness in Sirius's voice.
'So you haven't had any news about Hagrid, either?'
'Ah . . .' said Sirius, 'well, he was supposed to be back by now, no one's
sure what's happened to him.' Then, seeing their stricken faces, he added qui
ckly, 'But Dumbledore's not worried, so don't you three get yourselves in a st
ate; I'm sure Hagrid's fine.'
'But if he was supposed to be back by now . . .' said Hermione in a small,
anxious voice.
'Madame Maxime was with him, we've been in touch with her and she says the
y got separated on the journey home - but there's nothing to suggest he's hurt
or - well, nothing to suggest he's not perfectly OK.'
Unconvinced, Harry, Ron and Hermione exchanged worried looks.
'Listen, don't go asking too many questions about Hagrid,' said Sirius has
tily, 'it'll just draw even more attention to the fact that he's not back and
I know Dumbledore doesn't want that. Hagrid's tough, he'll be OK.' And when th
ey did not appear cheered by this, Sirius added, 'When's your next Hogsmeade w
eekend, anyway? I was thinking, we got away with the dog disguise at the stati
on, didn't we? I thought I could - '
'NO!' said Harry and Hermione together, very loudly.
'Sirius, didn't you see the Daily Prophet?' said Hermione anxiously.
'Oh, that,' said Sirius, grinning, 'they're always guessing where I am, th
ey haven't really got a clue - '
'Yeah, but we think this time they have,' said Harry. 'Something Malfoy sa
id on the train made us think he knew it was you, and his father was on the pl
atform, Sirius - you know, Lucius Malfoy - so don't come up here, whatever you
do. If Malfoy recognises you again - '
'All right, all right, I've got the point,' said Sirius. He looked most di
spleased. 'Just an idea, thought you might like to get together.'
'I would, I just don't want you chucked back in Azkaban!' said Harry.
There was a pause in which Sirius looked out of the fire at Harry, a creas
e between his sunken eyes.
'You're less like your father than I thought,' he said finally, a definite
coolness in his voice. 'The risk would've been what made it fun for James.'
'Look - '
'Well, I'd better get going, I can hear Kreacher coming down the stairs,'
said Sirius, but Harry was sure he was lying. 'I'll write to tell you a time I
can make it back into the fire, then, shall I? If you can stand to risk it?'
There was a tiny pop, and the place where Sirius's head had been was flick
ering flame once more.
- CHAPTER FIFTEEN -
The Hogwart's High
Inquisitor
They had expected to have to comb Hermione's Daily Prophet carefully next morn
ing to find the article Percy had mentioned in his letter. However, the depart
ing delivery owl had barely cleared the top of the milk jug when Hermione let
out a huge gasp and flattened the newspaper to reveal a large photograph of Do
lores Umbridge, smiling widely and blinking slowly at them from beneath the he
adline.
MINISTRY SEEKS EDUCATIONAL REFORM
DOLORES UMBRIDGE APPOINTED
FIRST EVER HIGH INQUISITOR
'Umbridge - "High Inquisitor"?' said Harry darkly, his half-eaten piece of toa
st slipping from his fingers. 'What does that mean?'
Hermione read aloud:
'In a surprise move last night the Ministry of Magic passed new legislation gi
ving itself an unprecedented level of control at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft
and Wizardry.
' "The Minister has been growing uneasy about goings-on at Hogwarts for so
me time," said Junior Assistant to the Minister, Percy Weasley. "He is now res
ponding to concerns, voiced by anxious parents, who feel the school may be mov
ing in a direction they do not approve of."
'This is not the first time in recent weeks that the Minister, Cornelius F
udge, has used new laws to effect improvements at the wizarding school. As rec
ently as 30th August, Educational Decree Number Twenty-two was passed, to ensu
re that, in the event of the current Headmaster being unable to provide a cand
idate for a teaching post, the Ministry should select an appropriate person.
' "That's how Dolores Umbridge came to be appointed to the teaching staff
at Hogwarts," said Weasley last night. "Dumbledore couldn't find anyone so the
Minister put in Umbridge, and of course, she's been an immediate success - "
'
'She's been a WHAT?' said Harry loudly.
'Wait, there's more,' said Hermione grimly.
' "- an immediate success, totally revolutionising the teaching of Defence Aga
inst the Dark Arts and providing the Minister with on-the-ground feedback abou
t what's really happening at Hogwarts."
'It is this last function that the Ministry has now formalised with the pa
ssing of Educational Decree Number Twenty-three, which creates the new positio
n of Hogwarts High Inquisitor.
' "This is an exciting new phase in the Minister's plan to get to grips wi
th what some are calling the falling standards at Hogwarts," said Weasley. "Th
e Inquisitor will have powers to inspect her fellow educators and make sure th
at they are coming up to scratch. Professor Umbridge has been offered this pos
ition in addition to her own teaching post and we are delighted to say that sh
e has accepted."
'The Ministry's new moves have received enthusiastic support from parents
of students at Hogwarts.
' "I feel much easier in my mind now that I know Dumbledore is being subje
cted to fair and objective evaluation," said Mr Lucius Malfoy, 41, speaking fr
om his Wiltshire mansion last night. "Many of us with our children's best inte
rests at heart have been concerned about some of Dumbledore's eccentric decisi
ons in the last few years and are glad to know that the Ministry is keeping an
eye on the situation."
'Among those eccentric decisions are undoubtedly the controversial staff a
ppointments previously described in this newspaper, which have included the em
ployment of werewolf Remus Lupin, half-giant Rubeus Hagrid and delusional ex-A
uror, "Mad-Eye" Moody.
'Rumours abound, of course, that Albus Dumbledore, once Supreme Mugwump of
the International Confederation of Wizards and Chief Warlock of the Wizengamo
t, is no longer up to the task of managing the prestigious school of Hogwarts.
' "I think the appointment of the Inquisitor is a first step towards ensur
ing that Hogwarts has a headmaster in whom we can all repose our confidence,"
said a Ministry insider last night.
'Wizengamot elders Griselda Marchbanks and Tiberius Ogden have resigned in
protest at the introduction of the post of Inquisitor to Hogwarts.
' "Hogwarts is a school, not an outpost of Cornelius Fudge's office," said
Madam Marchbanks. "This is a further, disgusting attempt to discredit Albus D
umbledore."
'(For a full account of Madam Marchbanks's alleged links to subversive gob
lin groups, turn to page seventeen.)'
Hermione finished reading and looked across the table at the other two.
'So now we know how we ended up with Umbridge! Fudge passed this "Educatio
nal Decree" and forced her on us! And now he's given her the power to inspect
the other teachers!' Hermione was breathing fast and her eyes were very bright
. 'I can't believe this. It's outrageous!'
'I know it is,' said Harry. He looked down at his right hand, clenched on
the table-top, and saw the faint white outline of the words Umbridge had force
d him to cut into his skin.
But a grin was unfurling on Ron's face.
'What?' said Harry and Hermione together, staring at him.
'Oh, I can't wait to see McGonagall inspected,' said Ron happily. 'Umbridg
e won't know what's hit her.'
'Well, come on,' said Hermione, jumping up, 'we'd better get going, if she
's inspecting Binns's class we don't want to be late . . .'
But Professor Umbridge was not inspecting their History of Magic lesson, w
hich was just as dull as the previous Monday, nor was she in Snape's dungeon w
hen they arrived for double Potions, where Harry's moonstone essay was handed
back to him with a large, spiky black 'D' scrawled in an upper corner.
'I have awarded you the grades you would have received if you presented th
is work in your OWL,' said Snape with a smirk, as he swept among them, passing
back their homework. 'This should give you a realistic idea of what to expect
in the examination.'
Snape reached the front of the class and turned on his heel to face them.
The general standard of this homework was abysmal. Most of you would have
failed had this been your examination. I expect to see a great deal more effor
t for this week's essay on the various varieties of venom antidotes, or I shal
l have to start handing out detentions to those dunces who get a "D".'
He smirked as Malfoy sniggered and said in a carrying whisper, 'Some peopl
e got a "D"? Ha!'
Harry realised that Hermione was looking sideways to see what grade he had
received; he slid his moonstone essay back into his bag as quickly as possibl
e, feeling that he would rather keep that information private.
Determined not to give Snape an excuse to tail him this lesson, Harry read
and reread every line of instructions on the blackboard at least three times
before acting on them. His Strengthening Solution was not precisely the clear
turquoise shade of Hermione's but it was at least blue rather than pink, like
Neville's, and he delivered a flask of it to Snape's desk at the end of the le
sson with a feeling of mingled defiance and relief.
'Well, that wasn't as bad as last week, was it?' said Hermione, as they cl
imbed the steps out of the dungeon and made their way across the Entrance Hall
towards lunch. 'And the homework didn't go too badly, either, did it?'
When neither Ron nor Harry answered, she pressed on, 'I mean, all right, I
didn't expect the top grade, not if he's marking to OWL standard, but a pass
is quite encouraging at this stage, wouldn't you say?'
Harry made a non-committal noise in his throat.
'Of course, a lot can happen between now and the exam, we've got plenty of
time to improve, but the grades we're getting now are a sort of baseline, are
n't they? Something we can build on . . .'
They sat down together at the Gryffindor table.
'Obviously, I'd have been thrilled if I'd got an "O" - '
'Hermione,' said Ron sharply, 'if you want to know what grades we got, ask
.'
'I don't - I didn't mean - well, if you want to tell me - '
'I got a "P",' said Ron, ladling soup into his bowl. 'Happy?'
'Well, that's nothing to be ashamed of,' said Fred, who had just arrived a
t the table with George and Lee Jordan and was sitting down on Harry's right.
'Nothing wrong with a good healthy "P".'
'But,' said Hermione, 'doesn't "P" stand for . . .'
'"Poor", yeah,' said Lee Jordan. 'Still, better than "D", isn't it? 'Dread
ful"?'
Harry felt his face grow warm and faked a small coughing fit over his roll
. When he emerged from this he was sorry to find that Hermione was still in fu
ll flow about OWL grades.
'So top grade's "O" for "Outstanding",' she was saying, 'and then there's
"A" - '
'No, "E",' George corrected her, '"E" for "Exceeds Expectations". And I've
always thought Fred and I should've got "E" in everything, because we exceede
d expectations just by turning up for the exams.'
They all laughed except Hermione, who ploughed on, 'So, after "E" it's "A"
for "Acceptable", and that's the last pass grade, isn't it?'
'Yep,' said Fred, dunking an entire roll in his soup, transferring it to h
is mouth and swallowing it whole.
'Then you get "P" for "Poor"- ' Ron raised both his arms in mock celebrati
on - 'and "D" for "Dreadful".
'And then "T",' George reminded her.
'"T"?' asked Hermione, looking appalled. 'Even lower than a "D"? What on e
arth does "T" stand for?'
'"Troll",' said George promptly.
Harry laughed again, though he was not sure whether or not George was joki
ng. He imagined trying to conceal from Hermione I hat he had received 'T's in
all his OWLs and immediately resolved to work harder from now on.
'You lot had an inspected lesson yet?' Fred asked them.
'No,' said Hermione at once. 'Have you?'
'Just now, before lunch,' said George. 'Charms.'
'What was it like?' Harry and Hermione asked together.
Fred shrugged.
'Not that bad. Umbridge just lurked in the corner making notes on a clipbo
ard. You know what Flitwick's like, he treated her like a guest, didn't seem t
o bother him at all. She didn't say much. Asked Alicia a couple of questions a
bout what the classes are normally like, Alicia told her they were really good
, that was it.'
'I can't see old Flitwick getting marked down,' said George, 'he usually g
ets everyone through their exams all right.'
'Who've you got this afternoon?' Fred asked Harry.
Trelawney - '
'A "T" if ever I saw one.'
' - and Umbridge herself.'
'Well, be a good boy and keep your temper with Umbridge today,' said Georg
e. 'Angelina'll do her nut if you miss any more Quidditch practices.'
But Harry did not have to wait for Defence Against the Dark Arts to meet P
rofessor Umbridge. He was pulling out his dream diary in a seat at the very ba
ck of the shadowy Divination room when Ron elbowed him in the ribs and, lookin
g round, he saw Professor Umbridge emerging through the trapdoor in the floor.
The class, which had been talking cheerily, fell silent at once. The abrupt f
all in the noise level made Professor Trelawney, who had been wafting about ha
nding out copies of The Dream Oracle, look round.
'Good afternoon, Professor Trelawney,' said Professor Umbridge with her wi
de smile. "You received my note, I trust? Giving the time and date of your ins
pection?'
Professor Trelawney nodded curtly and, looking very disgruntled, turned he
r back on Professor Umbridge and continued to give out books. Still smiling, P
rofessor Umbridge grasped the back of the nearest armchair and pulled it to th
e front of the class so that it was a few inches behind Professor Trelawney's
seat. She then sat down, took her clipboard from her flowery bag and looked up
expectantly, waiting for the class to begin.
Professor Trelawney pulled her shawls tight about her with slightly trembl
ing hands and surveyed the class through her hugely magnifying lenses.
'We shall be continuing our study of prophetic dreams today,' she said in
a brave attempt at her usual mystic tones, though her voice shook slightly. 'D
ivide into pairs, please, and interpret each others latest night-time visions
with the aid of the Oracle.'
She made as though to sweep back to her seat, saw Professor Umbridge sitti
ng right beside it, and immediately veered left towards Parvati and Lavender,
who were already deep in discussion about Parvati's most recent dream.
Harry opened his copy of The Dream Oracle, watching Umbridge covertly. She
was already making notes on her clipboard. After a few minutes she got to her
feet and began to pace the room in "Trelawney's wake, listening to her conver
sations with students and posing questions here and there. Harry bent his head
hurriedly over his book.
Think of a dream, quick,' he told Ron, 'in case the old toad comes our way
.'
'I did it last time,' Ron protested, 'it's your turn, you tell me one.'
'Oh, I dunno . . .' said Harry desperately, who could not remember dreamin
g anything at all over the last few days. 'Let's say I dreamed I was . . . dro
wning Snape in my cauldron. Yeah, that'll do . . .'
Ron chortled as he opened his Dream Oracle.
'OK, we've got to add your age to the date you had the dream, the number o
f letters in the subject . . . would that be "drowning" or "cauldron" or "Snap
e"?'
'It doesn't matter, pick any of them.' said Harry, chancing a glance behin
d him. Professor Umbridge was now standing at Professor Trelawney's shoulder m
aking notes while the Divination teacher questioned Neville about his dream di
ary.
'What night did you dream this again?' Ron said, immersed in calculations.
'I dunno, last night, whenever you like,' Harry told him, trying to listen
to what Umbridge was saying to Professor Trelawney. They were only a table aw
ay from him and Ron now. Professor Umbridge was making another note on her cli
pboard and Professor Trelawney was looking extremely put out.
'Now,' said Umbridge, looking up at Trelawney, 'you've been in this post h
ow long, exactly?'
Professor Trelawney scowled at her, arms crossed and shoulders hunched as
though wishing to protect herself as much as possible from the indignity of th
e inspection. After a slight pause in which she seemed to decide that the ques
tion was not so offensive that she could reasonably ignore it, she said in a d
eeply resentful tone, 'Nearly sixteen years.'
'Quite a period,' said Professor Umbridge, making a note on her clipboard.
'So it was Professor Dumbledore who appointed you?'
That's right,' said Professor Trelawney shortly.
Professor Umbridge made another note.
'And you are a great-great-granddaughter of the celebrated Seer Cassandra
Trelawney?'
'Yes,' said Professor Trelawney, holding her head a little higher.
Another note on the clipboard.
'But I think - correct me if I am mistaken - that you are the first in you
r family since Cassandra to be possessed of Second Sight?'
These things often skip - er - three generations,' said Professor Trelawne
y.
Professor Umbridge's toadlike smile widened.
'Of course,' she said sweetly, making yet another note. 'Well, if you coul
d just predict something for me, then?' And she looked up enquiringly, still s
miling.
Professor Trelawney stiffened as though unable to believe her ears. 'I don
't understand you,' she said, clutching convulsively at the shawl around her s
crawny neck.
'I'd like you to make a prediction for me,' said Professor Umbridge very c
learly.
Harry and Ron were not the only people now watching and listening sneakily
from behind their books. Most of the class were staring transfixed at Profess
or Trelawney as she drew herself up to her lull height, her beads and bangles
clinking.
The Inner Eye does not See upon command!' she said in scandalised tones.
'I see,' said Professor Umbridge softly, making yet another note on her cl
ipboard.
'I - but - but . . . wait!' said Professor Trelawney suddenly, in an attem
pt at her usual ethereal voice, though the mystical effect was ruined somewhat
by the way it was shaking with anger. 'I . . . I think I do see something . .
. something that concerns you . . . why, I sense something . . . something da
rk . . . some grave peril . . .'
Professor Trelawney pointed a shaking finger at Professor Umbridge who con
tinued to smile blandly at her, eyebrows raised.
'I am afraid . . . I am afraid that you are in grave danger!' Professor Tr
elawney finished dramatically.
There was a pause. Professor Umbridge surveyed Professor Trelawney.
'Right,' she said softly, scribbling on her clipboard once more. 'Well, if
that's really the best you can do . . .'
She turned away, leaving Professor Trelawney standing rooted to the spot,
her chest heaving. Harry caught Ron's eye and knew that Ron was thinking exact
ly the same as he was: they both knew that Professor Trelawney was an old frau
d, but on the other hand, they loathed Umbridge so much that they felt very mu
ch on Trelawney's side - until she swooped down on them a few seconds later, t
hat is.
'Well?' she said, snapping her long fingers under Harry's nose, uncharacte
ristically brisk. 'Let me see the start you've made on your dream diary, pleas
e.'
And by the time she had interpreted Harry's dreams at the top of her voice
(all of which, even the ones that involved eating porridge, apparently foreto
ld a gruesome and early death), he was feeling much less sympathetic towards h
er. All the while, Professor Umbridge stood a few feet away, making notes on t
hat clipboard, and when the bell rang she descended the silver ladder first an
d was waiting for them all when they reached their Defence Against the Dark Ar
ts lesson ten minutes later.
She was humming and smiling to herself when they entered the room. Harry a
nd Ron told Hermione, who had been in Arithmancy, exactly what had happened in
Divination while they all took out their copies of Defensive Magical Theory,
but before Hermione could ask any questions Professor Umbridge had called them
all to order and silence fell.
'Wands away,' she instructed them all with a smile, and those people who h
ad been hopeful enough to take them out, sadly returned them to their bags. 'A
s we finished Chapter One last lesson, I would like you all to turn to page ni
neteen today and commence "Chapter Two, Common Defensive Theories and their De
rivation". There will be no need to talk.'
Still smiling her wide, self-satisfied smile, she sat down at her desk. Th
e class gave an audible sigh as it turned, as one, to page nineteen. Harry won
dered dully whether there were enough chapters in the book to keep them readin
g through all this years lessons and was on the point of checking the contents
page when he noticed that Hermione had her hand in the air again.
Professor Umbridge had noticed, too, and what was more, she seemed to have
worked out a strategy for just such an eventuality. Instead of trying to pret
end she had not noticed Hermione she got to her feet and walked around the fro
nt row of desks until they were face to face, then she bent down and whispered
, so that the rest of the class could not hear, 'What is it this time, Miss Gr
anger?'
'I've already read Chapter Two,' said Hermione.
'Well then, proceed to Chapter Three.'
'I've read that too. I've read the whole book.'
Professor Umbridge blinked but recovered her poise almost instantly.
'Well, then, you should be able to tell me what Slinkhard says about count
er-jinxes in Chapter Fifteen.'
'He says that counter-jinxes are improperly named,' said Hermione promptly
. 'He says "counter-jinx" is just a name people give their jinxes when they wa
nt to make them sound more acceptable.'
Professor Umbridge raised her eyebrows and Harry knew she was impressed, a
gainst her will.
'But I disagree,' Hermione continued.
Professor Umbridge's eyebrows rose a little higher and her gaze became dis
tinctly colder.
'You disagree?' she repeated.
'Yes, I do,' said Hermione, who, unlike Umbridge, was not whispering, but
speaking in a clear, carrying voice that had by now attracted the attention of
the rest of the class. 'Mr Slinkhard doesn't like jinxes, does he? But I thin
k they can be very useful when they're used defensively.'
'Oh, you do, do you?' said Professor Umbridge, forgetting to whisper and s
traightening up. 'Well, I'm afraid it is Mr Slinkhard's opinion, and not yours
, that matters within this classroom, Miss Granger.'
'But - ' Hermione began.
That is enough,' said Professor Umbridge. She walked back to the front of
the class and stood before them, all the jauntiness she had shown at the begin
ning of the lesson gone. 'Miss Granger, I am going to take five points from Gr
yffindor house.'
There was an outbreak of muttering at this.
'What for?' said Harry angrily.
'Don't you get involved!' Hermione whispered urgently to him.
'For disrupting my class with pointless interruptions,' said Professor Umb
ridge smoothly. 'I am here to teach you using a Ministry-approved method that
does not include inviting students to give their opinions on matters about whi
ch they understand very little. Your previous teachers in this subject may hav
e allowed you more licence, but as none of them - with the possible exception
of Professor Quirrell, who did at least appear to have restricted himself to a
ge-appropriate subjects - would have passed a Ministry inspection - '
'Yeah, Quirrell was a great teacher,' said Harry loudly, 'there was just t
hat minor drawback of him having Lord Voldemort sticking out of the back of hi
s head.'
This pronouncement was followed by one of the loudest silences Harry had e
ver heard. Then -
'I think another week's detentions would do you some good, Mr Potter,' sai
d Umbridge sleekly.
*
The cut on the back of Harry's hand had barely healed and, by the following mo
rning, it was bleeding again. He did not complain during the evening's detenti
on; he was determined not to give Umbridge the satisfaction; over and over aga
in he wrote I must not tell lies and not a sound escaped his lips, though the
cut deepened with every letter.
The very worst part of this second week's worth of detentions v/as, just a
s George had predicted, Angslina's reaction. She cornered him just as he arriv
ed at the Gryffindor table for breakfast on Tuesday and shouted so loudly that
Professor McGonagall came sweeping down upon the pair of them from the staff
table.
'Miss Johnson, how dare you make such a racket in the Great Hall! Five poi
nts from Gryffindor!'
'But Professor - he's gone and landed himself in detention again - '
'What's this, Potter?' said Professor McGonagall sharply, rounding on Harr
y. 'Detention? From whom?'
'From Professor Umbridge,' muttered Harry, not meeting Professor McGonagal
l's beady, square-framed eyes.
'Are you telling me,' she said, lowering her voice so that the group of cu
rious Ravenclaws behind them could not hear, that after the warning I gave you
last Monday you lost your temper in Professor Umbridge's class again?'
'Yes,' Harry muttered, speaking to the floor.
'Potter, you must get a grip on yourself! You are heading for serious trou
ble! Another five points from Gryffindor!'
'But - what - '? Professor, no!' Harry said, furious at this injustice, 'I
'm already being punished by her, why do you have to take points as well?'
'Because detentions do not appear to have any effect on you whatsoever!' s
aid Professor McGonagall tartly. 'No, not another word of complaint, Potter! A
nd as for you, Miss Johnson, you will confine your shouting matches to the Qui
dditch pitch in future or risk losing the team captaincy!'
Professor McGonagall strode back towards the staff table. Angelina gave Ha
rry a look of deepest disgust and stalked away, upon which he flung himself on
to the bench beside Ron, fuming.
'She's taken points off Gryffindor because I'm having my hand sliced open
every night! How is that fair, how?'
'I know, mate,' said Ron sympathetically, tipping bacon on to Harry's plat
e, 'she's bang out of order.'
Hermione, however, merely rustled the pages of her Daily Prophet and said
nothing.
'You think McGonagall was right, do you?' said Harry angrily to the pictur
e of Cornelius Fudge obscuring Hermione's face.
'I wish she hadn't taken points from you, but I think she's right to warn
you not to lose your temper with Umbridge,' said Hermione's voice, while Fudge
gesticulated forcefully from the front page, clearly giving some kind of spee
ch.
Harry did not speak to Hermione all through Charms, but when they entered
Transfiguration he forgot about being cross with her. Professor Umbridge and h
er clipboard were sitting in a corner and the sight of her drove the memory of
breakfast right out of his head.
'Excellent,' whispered Ron, as they sat down in their usual seats. 'Let's
see Umbridge get what she deserves.'
Professor McGonagall marched into the room without giving the slightest in
dication that she knew Professor Umbridge was there.
That will do,' she said and silence fell immediately. 'Mr Finnigan, kindly
come here and hand back the homework - Miss Brown, please take this box of mi
ce - don't be silly, girl, they won't hurt you - and hand one to each student
- '
'Hem, hem,' said Professor Umbridge, employing the same silly little cough
she had used to interrupt Dumbledore on the first night of term. Professor Mc
Gonagall ignored her. Seamus handed back Harry's essay; Harry took it without
looking at him and saw, to his relief, that he had managed an 'A'.
'Right then, everyone, listen closely - Dean Thomas, if you do that to the
mouse again I shall put you in detention - most of you have now successfully
Vanished your snails and even those who were left with a certain amount of she
ll have got the gist of the spell. Today, we shall be - '
'Hem, hem,' said Professor Umbridge.
'Yes?' said Professor McGonagall, turning round, her eyebrows so close tog
ether they seemed to form one long, severe line.
'I was just wondering, Professor, whether you received my note telling you
of the date and time of your inspec - '
'Obviously I received it, or I would have asked you what you are doing in
my classroom,' said Professor McGonagall, turning her back firmly on Professor
Umbridge. Many of the students exchanged looks of glee. 'As I was saying: tod
ay, we shall be practising the altogether more difficult Vanishment of mice. N
ow, the Vanishing Spell - '
'Hem, hem.'
'I wonder,' said Professor McGonagall in cold fury, turning on Professor U
mbridge, 'how you expect to gain an idea of my usual teaching methods if you c
ontinue to interrupt me? You see, I do not generally permit people to talk whe
n I am talking.'
Professor Umbridge looked as though she had just been slapped in the face.
She did not speak, but straightened the parchment on her clipboard and began
scribbling furiously.
Looking supremely unconcerned, Professor McGonagall addressed the class on
ce more.
'As I was saying: the Vanishing Spell becomes more difficult with the comp
lexity of the animal to be Vanished. The snail, as an invertebrate, does not p
resent much of a challenge; the mouse, as a mammal, offers a. much greater one
. This is not, therefore, magic you can accomplish with your mind on your dinn
er. So - you know the incantation, let me see what you can do . . .'
'How she can lecture me about not losing my temper with Umbridge!' Harry m
uttered to Ron under his breath, but he was grinning - his anger with Professo
r McGonagall had quite evaporated.
Professor Umbridge did not follow Professor McGonagall around the class as
she had followed Professor Trelawney; perhaps she realised Professor McGonaga
ll would not permit it. She did, however, take many more notes while sitting i
n her corner, and when Professor McGonagall finally told them all to pack away
, she rose with a grim expression on her face.
'Well, it's a start,' said Ron, holding up a long wriggling mouse-tail and
dropping it back into the box Lavender was passing around.
As they filed out of the classroom, Harry saw Professor Umbndge approach t
he teachers desk; he nudged Ron, who nudged Hermione in turn, and the three of
them deliberately fell back to eavesdrop.
'How long have you been teaching at Hogwarts? Professor Umbridge asked.
Thirty-nine years this December,' said Professor McGonagall brusquely, sna
pping her bag shut.
Professor Umbridge made a note.
'Very well,' she said, 'you will receive the results of your inspection in
ten days' time.
'I can hardly wait,' said Professor McGonagall, in a coldly indifferent vo
ice, and she strode off towards the door. 'Hurry up, you three,' she added, sw
eeping Harry, Ron and Hermione before her.
Harry could not help giving her a faint smile and could have sworn he rece
ived one in return.
He had thought that the next time he would see Umbridge would be in his de
tention that evening, but he was wrong. When they walked down the lawns toward
s the Forest for Care of Magical Creatures, they found her and her clipboard w
aiting for them beside Professor Grubbly-Plank.
'You do not usually take this class, is that correct?' Harry heard her ask
as they arrived at the trestle table where the group of captive Bowtruckles w
ere scrabbling around for woodlice like so many living twigs.
'Quite correct,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank, hands behind her back and b
ouncing on the balls of her feet. 'I am a substitute teacher standing in for P
rofessor Hagrid.'
Harry exchanged uneasy looks with Ron and Hermione. Malfoy was whispering
with Crabbe and Goyle; he would surely love this opportunity to tell tales on
Hagrid to a member of the Ministry.
'Hmm,' said Professor Umbridge, dropping her voice, though Harry could sti
ll hear her quite clearly. 'I wonder - the Headmaster seems strangely reluctan
t to give me any information on the matter - can you tell me what is causing P
rofessor Hagrid's very extended leave of absence?'
Harry saw Malfoy look up eagerly and watch Umbridge and Grubbly-Plank clos
ely.
' 'Fraid I can't,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank breezily. 'Don't know anyt
hing more about it than you do. Got an owl from Dumbledore, would I like a cou
ple of weeks' teaching, work. I accepted. That's as much as I know. Well . . .
shall I get started then?'
'Yes, please do,' said Professor Umbridge, scribbling on her clipboard.
Umbridge took a different tack in this class and wandered amongst the stud
ents, questioning them on magical creatures. Most people were able to answer w
ell and Harry's spirits lifted somewhat; at least the class was not letting Ha
grid down.
'Overall,' said Professor Umbridge, returning to Professor Grubbly-Plank's
side after a lengthy interrogation of Dean Thomas, 'how do you, as a temporar
y member of staff- an objective outsider,
I suppose you might say - how do you find Hogwarts? Do you feel you receiv
e enough support from the school management?'
'Oh, yes, Dumbledore's excellent,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank heartily.
'Yes, I'm very happy with the way things are run, very happy indeed.'
Looking politely incredulous, Umbridge made a tiny note on her clipboard a
nd went on, 'And what are you planning to cover with this class this year - as
suming, of course, that Professor Hagrid does not return?'
'Oh, I'll take them through the creatures that most often come up in OWL,'
said Professor Grubbly-Plank. 'Not much left to do - they've studied unicorns
and Nifflers, I thought we'd cover Porlocks and Kneazles, make sure they can
recognise Crups and Knarls, you know . . .'
'Well, you seem to know what you're doing, at any rate,' said Professor Um
bridge, making a very obvious tick on her clipboard. Harry did not like the em
phasis she put on 'you' and liked it even less when she put her next question
to Goyle. 'Now, I hear there have been injuries in this class?'
Goyle gave a stupid grin. Malfoy hastened to answer the question.
That was me,' he said. 'I was slashed by a Hippogriff.'
'A Hippogriff?' said Professor Umbridge, now scribbling frantically.
'Only because he was too stupid to listen to what Hagrid told him to do,'
said Harry angrily.
Both Ron and Hermione groaned. Professor Umbridge turned her head slowly i
n Harry's direction.
'Another night's detention, I think,' she said softly. 'Well, thank you ve
ry much, Professor Grubbly-Plank, I think that's all I need here. You will be
receiving the results of your inspection within ten days.'
'Jolly good,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank, and Professor Umbridge set off
back across the lawn to the castle.
*
It was nearly midnight when Harry left Umbridge's office that night, his hand
now bleeding so severely that it was staining the scarf he had wrapped around
it. He expected the common room to be empty when he returned, but Ron and Herm
ione had sat up waiting for him. He was pleased to see them, especially as Her
mione was disposed to be sympathetic rather than critical.
'Here,' she said anxiously, pushing a small bowl of yellow liquid towards
him, 'soak your hand in that, it's a solution of strained and pickled Murtlap
tentacles, it should help.'
Harry placed his bleeding, aching hand into the bowl and experienced a won
derful feeling of relief. Crookshanks curled around his legs, purring loudly,
then leapt into his lap and settled down.
Thanks,' he said gratefully, scratching behind Crookshanks's ears with his
left hand.
'I still reckon you should complain about this,' said Ron in a low voice.
'No,' said Harry flatly.
'McGonagall would go nuts if she knew - '
'Yeah, she probably would,' said Harry dully. 'And how long do you reckon
it'd take Umbridge to pass another decree saying anyone who complains about th
e High Inquisitor gets sacked immediately?'
Ron opened his mouth to retort but nothing came out and, after a moment, h
e closed it again, defeated.
'She's an awful woman,' said Hermione in a small voice. 'Awful. You know,
I was just saying to Ron when you came in . . . we've got to do something abou
t her.'
'I suggested poison,' said Ron grimly.
'No . . . I mean, something about what a dreadful teacher she is, and how
we're not going to learn any Defence from her at all,' said Hermione.
'Well, what can we do about that?' said Ron, yawning. "S too late, isn't i
t? She's got the job, she's here to stay. Fudge'll make sure of that.'
'Well,' said Hermione tentatively. 'You know, I was thinking today . . .'
she shot a slightly nervous look at Harry and then plunged on, 'I was thinking
that - maybe the time's come when we should just - just do it ourselves.'
'Do what ourselves?' said Harry suspiciously, still floating his hand in t
he essence of Murtlap tentacles.
'Well - learn Defence Against the Dark Arts ourselves, said Hermione.
'Come off it,' groaned Ron. 'You want us to do extra work? D'you realise H
arry and I are behind on homework again and it's only the second week?'
'But this is much more important than homework!' said Hermione.
Harry and Ron goggled at her.
'I didn't think there was anything in the universe more important than hom
ework!' said Ron.
'Don't be silly, of course there is,' said Hermione, and Harry saw, with a
n ominous feeling, that her face was suddenly alight with the kind of fervour
that SPEW usually inspired in her. 'It's about preparing ourselves, like Harry
said in Umbridge's first lesson, for what's waiting for us out there. It's ab
out making sure we really can defend ourselves. If we don't learn anything for
a whole year - '
'We can't do much by ourselves,' said Ron in a defeated voice. 'I mean, al
l right, we can go and look jinxes up in the library and try and practise them
, I suppose - '
'No, I agree, we've gone past the stage where we can just learn things out
of books,' said Hermione. 'We need a teacher, a proper one, who can show us h
ow to use the spells and correct us if we're going wrong.'
'If you're talking about Lupin . . .' Harry began.
'No, no, I'm not talking about Lupin,' said Hermione. 'He's too busy with
the Order and, anyway, the most we could see him is during Hogsmeade weekends
and that's not nearly often enough.'
'Who, then?' said Harry, frowning at her.
Hermione heaved a very deep sigh.
'Isn't it obvious?' she said. 'I'm talking about you, Harry.'
There was a moment's silence. A light night breeze rattled the windowpanes
behind Ron, and the fire guttered.
'About me what?' said Harry.
'I'm talking about you teaching us Defence Against the Dark Arts.'
Harry stared at her. Then he turned to Ron, ready to exchange the exaspera
ted looks they sometimes shared when Hermione elaborated on far-fetched scheme
s like SPEW. To Harry's consternation, however, Ron did not look exasperated.
He was frowning slightly, apparently thinking. Then he said, 'That's an id
ea.'
'What's an idea?' said Harry.
'You,' said Ron. Teaching us to do it.'
'But . . .'
Harry was grinning now, sure the pair of them were pulling his leg.
'But I'm not a teacher, I can't - '
'Harry, you're the best in the year at Defence Against the Dark Arts,' sai
d Hermione.
'Me?' said Harry now grinning more broadly than ever. 'No I'm rot, you've
beaten me in every test - '
'Actually I haven't,' said Hermione coolly. 'You beat me in our turd year
- the only year we both sat the test and had a teacher who actually knew the s
ubject. But I'm not talking about test results, Harry. Think what you've clone
!'
'How d'you mean?'
'You know what, I'm not sure I want someone this stupid teaching me,' Ron
said to Hermione, smirking slightly. He turned to Harry.
'Let's think,' he said, pulling a face like Goyle concentrating. 'Uh . . .
first year - you saved the Philosopher's Stone from You-Know-Who.'
'But that was luck,' said Harry, 'it wasn't skill - '
'Second year,' Ron interrupted, 'you killed the Basilisk and destroyed Rid
dle.'
'Yeah, but if Fawkes hadn't turned up, I - '
Third year,' said Ron, louder still, 'you fought off about a hundred Demen
tors at once - '
'You know that was a fluke, if the Time-Turner hadn't - '
'Last year,' Ron said, almost shouting now, 'you fought off You-know-Who a
gain - '
'Listen to me!' said Harry, almost angrily, because Ron and Hermione were
both smirking now. 'Just listen to me, all right? It sounds great when you say
it like that, but all that stuff was luck - I didn't know what I was doing ha
lf the time, I didn't plan any of it, I just did whatever I could think of, an
d I nearly always had help - '
Ron and Hermione were still smirking and Harry felt his temper rise; he wa
sn't even sure why he was feeling so angry.
'Don't sit there grinning like you know better than I do, I was there, was
n't I?' he said heatedly. 'I know what went on, all right? And I didn't get th
rough any of that because I was brilliant at Defence Against the Dark Arts, I
got through it all because - because help came at the right time, or because I
guessed right - but I just blundered through it all, I didn't have a clue wha
t I was doing - 'STOP LAUGHING!'
The bowl of Murtlap essence fell to the floor and smashed. He became aware
that he was on his feet, though he couldn't remember standing up. Crookshanks
streaked away under a sofa. Ron and Hermione's smiles had vanished.
'You don't know what it's like! You - neither of you - you've never had to
face him, have you? You think it's just memorising a bunch of spells and thro
wing them at him, like you're in class or something? The whole time you're sur
e you know there's nothing between you and dying except your own - your own br
ain or guts or whatever - 'like you can think straight when you know you're ab
out a nanosecond from being murdered, or tortured, or watching your friends di
e - 'they've never taught us that in their classes, what it's like to deal wit
h things like that - and you two sit there acting like I'm a clever little boy
to be standing here, alive, like Diggory was stupid, like he messed up - you
just don't get it, that could just as easily have been me, it would have been
if Voldemort hadn't needed me -'
'We weren't saying anything like that, mate,' said Ron, looking aghast. 'W
e weren't having a go at Diggory, we didn't - you've got the wrong end of the
- '
He looked helplessly at Hermione, whose face was stricken.
'Harry,' she said timidly, 'don't you see? This . . . this is exactly why
we need you . . . we need to know what it's r-really like . . . facing him . .
. facing V-Voldemort.'
It was the first time she had ever said Voldemort's name and it was this,
more than anything else, that calmed Harry. Still breathing hard, he sank back
into his chair, becoming aware as he did so that his hand was throbbing horri
bly again. He wished he had not smashed the bowl of Murtlap essence
'Well . . . think about it,' said Hermione quietly. 'Please?'
Harry could not think of anything to say. He was feeling ashamed of his ou
tburst already. He nodded, hardly aware of what he was agreeing to.
Hermione stood up.
'Well, I'm off to bed,' she said, in a voice that was clearly as natural a
s she could make it. 'Erm . . . night.'
Ron had got to his feet, too.
'Coming?' he said awkwardly to Harry.
'Yeah,' said Harry. 'In . . . in a minute. I'll just clear this up.'
He indicated the smashed bowl on the floor. Ron nodded and left.
'Reparo,' Harry muttered, pointing his wand at the broken pieces of china.
They flew back together, good as new, but there was no returning the Murtlap
essence to the bowl.
He was suddenly so tired he was tempted to sink back into his armchair and
sleep there, but instead he forced himself to his feet and followed Ron upsta
irs. His restless night was punctuated once more by dreams of long corridors a
nd locked doors and he awoke next day with his scar prickling again.
- CHAPTER SIXTEEN -
In the Hog's Head
Hermione made no mention of Harry giving Defence Against the Dark Arts lessons
for two whole weeks after her original suggestion. Harry's detentions with Um
bridge were finally over (he doubted whether the words now etched into the bac
k of his hand would ever fade entirely); Ron had had four more Quidditch pract
ices and not been shouted at during the last two; and all three of them had ma
naged to Vanish their mice in Transfiguration (Hermione had actually progresse
d to Vanishing kittens), before the subject was broached again, on a wild, blu
stery evening at the end of September, when the three of them were sitting in
the library, looking up potion ingredients for Snape.
'I was wondering,' Hermione said suddenly, 'whether you'd thought any more
about Defence Against the Dark Arts, Harry.'
'Course I have,' said Harry grumpily, 'can't forget it, can we, with that
hag teaching us - '
'I meant the idea Ron and I had - ' Ron cast her an alarmed, threatening k
ind of look. She frowned at him, '- Oh, all right, the idea I had, then - abou
t you teaching us.'
Harry did not answer at once. He pretended to be perusing a page of Asiati
c Anti-Venoms, because he did not want to say what was in his mind.
He had given the matter a great deal of thought over the past fortnight. S
ometimes it seemed an insane idea, just as it had on the night Hermione had pr
oposed it, but at others, he had found himself thinking about the spells that
had served him best in his various encounters with Dark creatures and Death Ea
ters - found himself, in fact, subconsciously planning lessons . . .
'Well,' he said slowly, when he could no longer pretend to find Asiatic An
ti-Venoms interesting, 'yeah, I - I've thought about it a bit.'
'And?' said Hermione eagerly.
'I dunno,' said Harry, playing for time. He looked up at Ron.
'I thought it was a good idea from the start,' said Ron, who seemed keener
to join in this conversation now that he was sure Harry was not going to star
t shouting again.
Harry shifted uncomfortably in his chair.
'You did listen to what I said about a load of it being luck, didn't you?'
'Yes, Harry,' said Hermione gently, 'but all the same, there's no point pr
etending that you're not good at Defence Against the Dark Arts, because you ar
e. You were the only person last year who could throw off the Imperius Curse c
ompletely, you can produce a Patronus, you can do all sorts of stuff that full
-grown wizards can't, Viktor always said - '
Ron looked round at her so fast he appeared to crick his neck. Rubbing it,
he said, 'Yeah? What did Vicky say?'
'Ho ho,' said Hermione in a bored voice. 'He said Harry knew how to do stu
ff even he didn't, and he was in the final year at Durmstrang.'
Ron was looking at Hermione suspiciously.
'You're not still in contact with him, are you?'
'So what if I am.?' said Hermione coolly, though her face was a little pin
k. 'I can have a pen-pal if I - '
'He didn't only want to be your pen-pal,' said Ron accusingly.
Hermione shook her head exasperatedly and, ignoring Ron, who was continuin
g to watch her, said to Harry, 'Well, what do you think? Will you teach us?'
'Just you and Ron, yeah?'
'Well,' said Hermione, looking a mite anxious again. 'Well . . . now, don'
t fly off the handle again, Harry, please . . . but I really think you ought t
o teach anyone who wants to learn. I mean, we're talking about defending ourse
lves against V-Voldemort. Oh, don't be pathetic, Ron. It doesn't seem fair if
we don't offer the chance to other people.'
Harry considered this for a moment, then said, 'Yeah, but I doubt anyone e
xcept you two would want to be taught by me. I'm a nutter, remember?'
'Well, I think you might be surprised how many people would be interested
in hearing what you've got to say,' said Hermione seriously. 'Look,' she leane
d towards him - Ron, who was still watching her with a frown on his face, lean
ed forwards to listen too - 'you know the first weekend in October's a Hogsmea
de weekend? How would it be if we tell anyone who's interested to meet us in t
he village and we can talk it over?'
'Why do we have to do it outside school?' said Ron.
'Because,' said Hermione, returning to the diagram of the Chinese Chomping
Cabbage she was copying, 'I don't think Umbridge would be very happy if she f
ound out what we were up to.'
*
Harry had been looking forward to the weekend trip into Hogsmeade, but there w
as one thing worrying him. Sirius had maintained a stony silence since he had
appeared in the fire at the beginning of September; Harry knew they had made h
im angry by saying they didn't want him to come - but he still worried from ti
me to time that Sirius might throw caution to the winds and turn up anyway. Wh
at were they going to do if the great black dog came bounding up the street to
wards them in Hogsmeade, perhaps under the nose of Draco Malfoy?
'Well, you can't blame him for wanting to get out and about,' said Ron, wh
en Harry discussed his fears with him and Hermione. 'I mean, he's been on the
run for over two years, hasn't he, and I know that can't have been a laugh, bu
t at least he was free, wasn't he? And now he's just shut up all the time with
that ghastly elf.'
Hermione scowled at Ron, but otherwise ignored the slight on Kreacher.
The trouble is,' she said to Harry, 'until V-Voldemort - oh, for heaven's
sake, Ron - comes out into the open, Sirius is going to have to stay hidden, i
sn't he? I mean, the stupid Ministry isn't going to realise Sirius is innocent
until they accept that Dumbledore's been telling the truth about him all alon
g. And once the fools start catching real Death Eaters again, it'll be obvious
Sirius isn't one . . . I mean, he hasn't got the Mark, for one thing.'
'I don't reckon he'd be stupid enough to turn up,' said Ron bracingly. 'Du
mbledore'd go mad if he did and Sirius listens to Dumbledore even if he doesn'
t like what he hears.'
When Harry continued to look worried, Hermione said, 'Listen, Ron and I ha
ve been sounding out people who we thought might want to learn some proper Def
ence Against the Dark Arts, and there are a couple who seem interested. We've
told them to meet us in Hogsmeade.'
'Right,' said Harry vaguely, his mind still on Sirius.
'Don't worry, Harry,' Hermione said quietly. 'You've got enough on your pl
ate without Sirius, too.'
She was quite right, of course, he was barely keeping up with his homework
, though he was doing much better now that he was no longer spending every eve
ning in detention with Umbridge. Ron was even further behind with his work tha
n Harry, because while they both had Quidditch practice twice a week, Ron also
had his prefect duties. However, Hermione, who was taking more subjects than
either of them, had not only finished all her homework but was also finding ti
me to knit more elf clothes. Harry had to admit that she was getting better; i
t was now almost always possible to distinguish between the hats and the socks
.
The morning of the Hogsmeade visit dawned bright but windy. Alter breakfas
t they queued up in front of Filch, who matched their names to the long list o
f students who had permission from their parents or guardian to visit the vill
age. With a slight pang, Harry remembered that if it hadn't been for Sirius, h
e would not have been going at all.
When Harry reached Filch, the caretaker gave a great sniff as though tryin
g to detect a whiff of something from Harry. Then he gave a curt nod that set
his jowls aquiver again and Harry walked on, out on to the stone steps and the
cold, sunlit day.
'Er - why was Filch sniffing you?' asked Ron, as he, Harry and Hermione se
t off at: a brisk pace down the wide drive to the gates.
'I suppose he was checking for the smell of Dungbombs,' said Harry with a
small laugh. T forgot to tell you . . .'
And he recounted the story of sending his letter to Sirius and Filch burst
ing in seconds later, demanding to see the letter. To his slight surprise, Her
mione found this story highly interesting, much more, indeed, than he did hims
elf.
'He said he was tipped off you were ordering Dungbombs? But who tipped him
off?'
'I dunno,' said Harry, shrugging. 'Maybe Malfoy he'd think it was a laugh.
'
They walked between the tall stone pillars topped with winged boars and tu
rned left on to the road into the village, the wind whip-, ping their hair int
o their eyes.
'Malfoy?' said Hermione, sceptically. 'Well . . . yes . . . maybe . . .'
And she remained deep in thought all the way into the outskirts of Hogsmea
de.
'Where are we going, anyway?' Harry asked. The Three Broomsticks?'
'Oh - no,' said Hermione, coming out of her reverie, 'no, it's always pack
ed and really noisy. I've told the others to meet us in the Hog's Head, that o
ther pub, you know the one, it's not on the main road. I think it's a bit . .
. you know . . . dodgy . . . but students don't normally go in there, so I don
't think we'll be overheard.'
They walked down the main street past Zonko's Wizarding Joke Shop, where t
hey were not surprised to see Fred, George and Lee Jordan, past the post offic
e, from which owls issued at regular intervals, and turned up a side-street at
the top of which stood a small inn. A battered wooden sign hung from a rusty
bracket over the door, with a picture on it of a wild boar's severed head, lea
king blood on to the white cloth around it. The sign creaked in the wind as th
ey approached. All three of them hesitated outside the door.
'Well, come on,' said Hermione, slightly nervously. Harry led the way insi
de.
It was not at all like the Three Broomsticks, whose large bar gave an impr
ession of gleaming warmth and cleanliness. The Hog's Head bar comprised one sm
all, dingy and very dirty room that smelled strongly of something that might h
ave been goats. The bay windows were so encrusted with grime that very little
daylight could permeate the room, which was lit instead with the stubs of cand
les sitting on rough wooden tables. The floor seemed at first glance to be com
pressed earth, though as Harry stepped on to it he realised that there was sto
ne beneath what seemed to be the accumulated filth of centuries.
Harry remembered Hagrid mentioning this pub in his first year: 'Yeh get a
lot o' funny folk in the Hog's Head,' he had said, explaining how he had won a
dragon's egg from a hooded stranger there. At the time Harry had wondered why
Hagrid had not found it odd that the stranger kept his face hidden throughout
their encounter; now he saw that keeping your face hidden was something of a
fashion in the Hog's Head. There was a man at the bar whose whole head was wra
pped in dirty grey bandages, though he was still managing to gulp endless glas
ses of some smoking, fiery substance through a slit over his mouth; two figure
s shrouded in hoods sat at a table in one of the windows; Harry might have tho
ught them Dementors if they had not been talking in strong Yorkshire accents,
and in a shadowy corner beside the fireplace sat a witch with a thick, black v
eil that fell to her toes. They could just see the tip of her nose because it
caused the veil to protrude slightly.
'I don't know about this, Hermione,' Harry muttered, as they crossed to th
e bar. He was looking particularly at the heavily veiled witch. 'Has it occurr
ed to you Umbridge might be under that?'
Hermione cast an appraising eye over the veiled figure.
'Umbridge is shorter than that woman,' she said quietly. 'And anyway, even
if Umbridge does come in here there's nothing she can do to stop us, Harry, b
ecause I've double- and triple-checked the school rules. We're not out of boun
ds; I specifically asked Professor Flitwick whether students were allowed to c
ome in the Hog's Head, and he said yes, but he advised me strongly to bring ou
r own glasses. And I've looked up everything I can think of about study groups
and homework groups and they're definitely allowed. I just don't think it's a
good idea if we parade what we're doing.'
'No,' said Harry drily, 'especially as it's not exactly a homework group y
ou're planning, is it?'
The barman sidled towards them out of a back room. He was a grumpy-looking
old man with a great deal of long grey hair and beard. He was tall and thin a
nd looked vaguely familiar to Harry.
What? he grunted.
'Three Butterbeers, please,' said Hermione.
The man reached beneath the counter and pulled up three very dusty, very d
irty bottles, which he slammed on the bar.
'Six Sickles,' he said.
'I'll get them,' said Harry quickly, passing over the silver. The barman's
eyes travelled over Harry, resting for a fraction of a second on his scar. Th
en he turned away and deposited Harry's money in an ancient wooden till whose
drawer slid open automatically to receive it. Harry, Ron and Hermione retreate
d to the furthest table from the bar and sat down, looking around. The man in
the dirty grey bandages rapped the counter with his knuckles and received anot
her smoking drink from the barman.
'You know what?' Ron murmured, looking over at the bar with enthusiasm. 'W
e could order anything we liked in here. I bet that bloke would sell us anythi
ng, he wouldn't care. I've always wanted to try Firewhisky - '
'You - are - a - prefect,' snarled Hermione.
'Oh,' said Ron, the smile fading from his face. 'Yeah . . .'
'So, who did you say is supposed to be meeting us?' Harry asked, wrenching
open the rusty top of his Butterbeer and taking a swig.
'Just a couple of people,' Hermione repeated, checking her watch and looki
ng anxiously towards the door. 'I told them to be here about now and I'm sure
they all know where it is - oh, look, this might be them now.'
The door of the pub had opened. A thick band of dusty sunlight split the r
oom in two for a moment and then vanished, blocked by the incoming rush of a c
rowd of people.
First came Neville with Dean and Lavender, who were closely followed by Pa
rvati and Padma Patil with (Harry's stomach did a back-flip) Cho and one of he
r usually-giggling girlfriends, then (on her own and looking so dreamy she mig
ht have walked in by accident) Luna Lovegood; then Katie Bell, Alicia Spinnet
and Angelina Johnson, Colin and Dennis Creevey Ernie Macmillan, Justin Finch-F
letchley, Hannah Abbott, a Hufflepuff girl with a long plait clown her back wh
ose name Harry did not know; three Ravenclaw boys he was pretty sure were call
ed Anthony Goldstein, Michael Corner and Terry Boot, Ginny, closely followed b
y a tall skinny blond boy with an upturned nose whom Harry recognised vaguely
as being a member of the Hufflepuff Quidditch team and, bringing up the rear,
Fred and George Weasley with their friend Lee Jordan, all three of whom were c
arrying large paper bags crammed with Zonko's merchandise.
'A couple of people?' said Harry hoarsely to Hermione. 'A couple of people
?'
'Yes, well, the idea seemed quite popular,' said Hermione happily. 'Ron, d
o you want to pull up some more chairs?'
The barman had frozen in the act of wiping out a glass with a rag so filth
y it looked as though it had never been washed. Possibly, he had never seen hi
s pub so full.
'Hi,' said Fred, reaching the bar first and counting his companions quickl
y, 'could we have . . . twenty-five Butterbeers, please?'
The barman glared at him for a moment, then, throwing down his rag irritab
ly as though he had been interrupted in something very important, he started p
assing up dusty Butterbeers from under the bar.
'Cheers,' said Fred, handing them out. 'Cough up, everyone, I haven't got
enough gold for all of these . . .'
Harry watched numbly as the large chattering group took their beers from F
red and rummaged in their robes to find coins. He could not imagine what all t
hese people had turned up for until the horrible thought occurred to him that
they might be expecting same kind of speech, at which he rounded on Hermione.
'What have you been telling people?' he said in a low voice. 'What are the
y expecting?'
'I've told you, they just want to hear what you've got to say,' said Hermi
one soothingly; but Harry continued to look at her so furiously that she added
quickly, 'you don't have to do anything yet, I'll speak to them first.'
'Hi, Harry' said Neville, beaming and taking a seat opposite him.
Harry tried to smile back, but did not speak; his mouth was exceptionally
dry. Cho had just smiled at him and sat down on Ron's right. Her friend, who h
ad curly reddish-blonde hair, did not smile, but gave Harry a thoroughly mistr
ustful look which plainly told him that, given her way, she would not be here
at all.
In twos and threes the new arrivals settled around Harry, Ron and Hermione
, some looking rather excited, others curious, Luna Lovegood gazing dreamily i
nto space. When everybody had pulled up a chair, the chatter died out. Every e
ye was upon Harry.
'Er,' said Hermione, her voice slightly higher than usual out of nerves. '
Well - er - hi.'
The group focused its attention on her instead, though eyes continued to d
art back regularly to Harry.
'Well . . . erm . . . well, you know why you're here. Erm . . . well, Harr
y here had the idea - I mean' (Harry had thrown her a sharp look) 'I had the i
dea - that it might be good if people who wanted to study Defence Against the
Dark Arts - and I mean, really study it, you know, not the rubbish that Umbrid
ge is doing with us - '(Hermione's voice became suddenly much stronger and mor
e confident) ' - because nobody could call that Defence Against the Dark Arts
- ' ('Hear, hear,' said Anthony Goldstein, and Hermione looked heartened) ' -
Well, I thought it would be good if we, well, took matters into our own hands.
'
She paused, looked sideways at Harry and went on, 'And by that I mean lear
ning how to defend ourselves properly, not just in theory but doing the real s
pells - '
'You want to pass your Defence Against the Dark Arts OWL too, though, I be
t?' said Michael Corner, who was watching her closely.
'Of course I do,' said Hermione at once. 'But more than that, I want to be
properly trained in defence because . . . because . . .' she took a great bre
ath and finished, 'because Lord Voldemort is back.'
The reaction was immediate and predictable. Clio's friend shrieked and slo
pped Butterbeer down herself; Terry Boot gave a kind of involuntary twitch; Pa
dma Patil shuddered, and Neville gave an odd yelp that he managed to turn into
a cough. All of them, however, looked fixedly, even eagerly, at Harry.
Well . . . that's the plan, anyway,' said Hermione. 'If you want to join u
s, we need to decide how we're going to -
'Where's the proof You-Know-Who's back?' said the blond Hufflepuff player
in a rather aggressive voice.
'Well, Dumbledore believes it - ' Hermione began.
'You mean, Dumbledore believes him,' said the blond boy, nodding at Harry.
'Who are you?' said Ron, rather rudely.
'Zacharias Smith,' said the boy, 'and I think we've got the right to know
exactly what makes him say You-Know-Who's back.'
'Look,' said Hermione, intervening swiftly, 'that's really not what this m
eeting was supposed to be about - '
'It's OK, Hermione,' said Harry.
It had just dawned on him why there were so many people there. He thought
Hermione should have seen this coming. Some of these people - maybe even most
of them - had turned up in the hopes of hearing Harry's story firsthand.
'What makes me say You-Know-Who's back?' he repeated, looking Zacharias st
raight in the face. 'I saw him. But Dumbledore told the whole school what happ
ened last year, and if you didn't believe him, you won't believe me, and I'm n
ot wasting an afternoon trying to convince anyone.'
The whole group seemed to have held its breath while Harry spoke. Harry ha
d the impression that even the barman was listening. He was wiping the same gl
ass with the filthy rag, making it steadily dirtier.
Zacharias said dismissively, 'All Dumbledore told us last year was that Ce
dric Diggory got killed by You-Know-Who and that you brought Diggory's body ba
ck to Hogwarts. He didn't give us details, he didn't tell us exactly how Diggo
ry got murdered, I think we'd all like to know - '
'If you've come to hear exactly what it looks like when Voldemort murders
someone I can't help you,' Harry said. His temper, always so close to the surf
ace these days, was rising again. He did not take his eyes from Zacharias Smit
h's aggressive face, and was determined not to look at Cho. 'I don't want to t
alk about Cedric Diggory, all right? So if that's what you're here for, you mi
ght as well clear out.'
He cast an angry look in Hermione's direction. This was, he felt, all her
fault; she had decided to display him like some sort of freak and of course th
ey had all turned up to see just now wild his story was. But none of them left
their seats, not even Zacharias Smith, though he continued to gaze intently a
t Harry.
'So,' said Hermione, her voice very high-pitched again. 'So . . . like I w
as saying . . . if you want to learn some defence, then we need to work out ho
w we're going to do it, how often we're going to meet and where we're going to
- '
'Is it true,' interrupted the girl with the long plait down her back, look
ing at Harry, 'that you can produce a Patronus?'
There was a murmur of interest around the group at this.
'Yeah,' said Harry slightly defensively.
'A corporeal Patronus?'
The phrase stirred something in Harry's memory.
'Er - you don't know Madam Bones, do you?' he asked.
The girl smiled.
'She's my auntie,' she said. 'I'm Susan Bones. She told me about your hear
ing. So - is it really true? You make a stag Patronus?'
'Yes,' said Harry.
'Blimey, Harry!' said Lee, looking deeply impressed. 'I never knew that!'
'Mum told Ron not to spread it around,' said Fred, grinning at Harry. 'She
said you got enough attention as it was.'
'She's not wrong,' mumbled Harry, and a couple of people laughed.
The veiled witch sitting alone shifted very slightly in her seat.
'And did you kill a Basilisk with that sword in Dumbledore's office?' dema
nded Terry Boot. That's what one of the portraits on the wall told me when I w
as in there last year . . .'
'Er - yeah, I did, yeah,' said Harry.
Justin Finch-Fletchley whistled; the Creevey brothers exchanged awestruck
looks and Lavender Brown said 'Wow!' softly. Harry was feeling slightly hot ar
ound the collar now; he was determinedly looking anywhere but at Cho.
'And in our first year,' said Neville to the group at large, 'he saved tha
t Philological Stone - '
'Philosopher's,' hissed Hermione.
'Yes, that - from You-Know-Who,' finished Neville.
Hannah Abbotts eyes were as round as Galleons.
'And that's not to mention,' said Cho (Harry's eyes snapped across to her;
she was looking at him, smiling; his stomach did another somersault) 'all the
tasks he had to get through in the Triwizard Tournament last year - getting p
ast dragons and merpeople and Acromantula and things . . .'
There was a murmur of impressed agreement around the table. Harry's inside
s were squirming. He was trying to arrange his face so that he did not look to
o pleased with himself. The fact that Cho had just praised him made it much, m
uch harder for him to say the thing he had sworn to himself he would tell them
.
'Look,' he said, and everyone fell silent at once, 'I . . . I don't want t
o sound like I'm trying to be modest or anything, but . . . I had a lot of hel
p with all that stuff . . .'
'Not with the dragon, you didn't,' said Michael Corner at once. 'That was
a seriously cool bit of flying . . .'
'Yeah, well - ' said Harry, feeling it would be churlish to disagree.
'And nobody helped you get rid of those Dementors this summer,' said Susan
Bones.
'No,' said Harry, 'no, OK, I know I did bits of it without help, but the p
oint I'm trying to make is - '
'Are you trying to weasel out of showing us any of this stuff?' said Zacha
rias Smith.
'Here's an idea,' said Ron loudly, before Harry could speak, 'why don't yo
u shut your mouth?'
Perhaps the word 'weasel' had affected Ron particularly strongly. In any c
ase, he was now looking at Zacharias as though he would like nothing better th
an to thump him. Zacharias flushed.
'Well, we've all turned up to learn from him and now he's telling us he ca
n't really do any of it,' he said.
That's not what he said,' snarled Fred.
'Would you like us to clean out you: ears for you?' enquired Greorge, pull
ing a long and lethal-looking metal instrument from inside one of the Zonko's
bags.
'Or any part of your body, really, we're not fussy where we stick this,' s
aid Fred.
'Yes, well, said Hermione hastily, moving on . . . the point is, are we ag
reed we want to take lessons from Harry?'
There was a murmur of general agreement. Zacharias folded his arms and sai
d nothing, though perhaps this was because he was too busy keeping an eye on t
he instrument in Fred's hand.
'Right,' said Hermione, looking relieved that something had at last been s
ettled. 'Well, then, the next question is how often we do it. I really don't t
hink there's any point in meeting less than once a week - '
'Hang on,' said Angelina, 'we need to make sure this doesn't clash with ou
r Quidditch practice.'
'No,' said Cho, 'nor with ours.'
'Nor ours,' added Zacharias Smith.
'I'm sure we can find a night that suits everyone,' said Hermione, slightl
y impatiently, 'but you know, this is rather important, we're talking about le
arning to defend ourselves against V-Voldemort's Death Eaters - '
'Well said!' barked Ernie Macmillan, who Harry had been expecting to speak
long before this. 'Personally, I think this is really important, possibly mor
e important than anything else we'll do this year, even with our OWLs coming u
p!'
He looked around impressively, as though waiting for people to cry 'Surely
not!' When nobody spoke, he went on, 'I, personally, am at a loss to see why
the Ministry has foisted such a useless teacher on us at this critical period.
Obviously, they are in denial about the return of You-Know-Who, but to give u
s a teacher who is trying to actively prevent us from using defensive spells -
'
'We think the reason Umbridge doesn't want us trained in Defence Against t
he Dark Arts,' said Hermione, 'is that she's got some . . . some mad idea that
Dumbledore could use the students in the school as a kind of private army. Sh
e thinks he'd mobilise us against the Ministry'
Nearly everybody looked stunned at this news; everybody except Luna Lovego
od, who piped up, 'Well, that makes sense. After all, Cornelius Fudge has got
his own private army'
'What?' said Harry, completely thrown by this unexpected piece of informat
ion.
'Yes, he's got an army of Heliopaths,' said Luna solemnly.
'No, he hasn't,' snapped Hermione.
'Yes, he has,' said Luna.
'What are Heliopaths?' asked Neville, looking blank.
They're spirits of fire,' said Luna, her protuberant eyes widening so that
she looked madder than ever, 'great tall flaming creatures that gallop across
the ground burning everything in front of - '
They don't exist, Neville,' said Hermione tartly.
'Oh, yes, they do!' said Luna angrily.
'I'm sorry, but where's the proof of that?' snapped Hermione.
There are plenty of eye-witness accounts. Just because you're so narrow-mi
nded you need to have everything shoved under your nose before you - '
'Hem, hem,' said Ginny, in such a good imitation of Professor Umbridge tha
t several people looked around in alarm and then laughed. 'Weren't we trying t
o decide how often we're going to meet and have defence lessons?'
'Yes,' said Hermione at once, 'yes, we were, you're right, Ginny.'
Well, once a week sounds cool,' said Lee Jordan.
'As long as - ' began Angelina.
'Yes, yes, we know about the Quidditch,' said Hermione in a tense voice. '
Well, the other thing to decide is where we're going to meet . . .'
This was rather more difficult; the whole group fell silent.
'Library?' suggested Katie Bell after a few moments.
'I can't see Madam Pince being too chuffed with us doing jinxes in the lib
rary,' said Harry.
'Maybe an unused classroom?' said Dean.
'Yeah,' said Ron, 'McGonagall might let us have hers, she did when Harry w
as practising for the Tri wizard.'
But Harry was pretty certain that McGonagall would not be so accommodating
this time. For all that Hermione had said about study and homework groups bei
ng allowed, he had the distinct feeling that this one might be considered a lo
t more rebellious.
'Right, well, we'll try to find somewhere,' said Hermione. 'We'll send a m
essage round to everybody when we've got a time and a place for the first meet
ing.'
She rummaged in her bag and produced parchment and a quill, then hesitated
, rather as though she was steeling herself to say something.
'I - I think everybody should write their name down, just so we know who w
as here. But I also think,' she took a deep breath, 'that we all ought to agre
e not to shout about what we're doing. So if you sign, you're agreeing not to
tell Umbridge or anybody else what we're up to.'
Fred reached out for the parchment and cheerfully wrote his signature, but
Harry noticed at once that several people looked less than happy at the prosp
ect of putting their names on the list.
'Er . . .' said Zacharias slowly, not taking the parchment that George was
trying to pass to him, 'well . . . I'm sure Ernie will tell me when the meeti
ng is.'
But Ernie was looking rather hesitant about signing, too. Hermione raised
her eyebrows at him.
'I - well, we are prefects,' Ernie burst out. 'And if this list was found
. . . well, I mean to say . . . you said yourself, if Umbridge finds out - '
'You just said this group was the most important thing you'd do this year,
' Harry reminded him.
'I - yes,' said Ernie, 'yes, I do believe that, it's just - '
'Ernie, do you really think I'd leave that list lying around?' said Hermio
ne testily.
'No. No, of course not,' said Ernie, looking slightly less anxious. 'I - y
es, of course I'll sign.'
Nobody raised objections after Ernie, though Harry saw Cho's friend give h
er a rather reproachful look before adding her own name. When the last person
- Zacharias - had signed, Hermione took the parchment back and slipped it care
fully into her bag. There was an odd feeling in the group now. It was as thoug
h they had just signed some kind of contract.
'Well, time's ticking on,' said Fred briskly, getting to his feet. 'George
, Lee and I have got items of a sensitive nature to purchase, we'll be seeing
you all later.'
In twos and threes the rest of the group took their leave, too.
Cho made rather a business of fastening the catch on her bag before leavin
g, her long dark curtain of hair swinging forwards to hide her face, but her f
riend stood beside her, arms folded, clicking her tongue, so that Cho had litt
le choice but to leave with her. As her friend ushered her through the door, C
ho looked back and waved at Harry.
'Well, I think that went quite well,' said Hermione happily, as she, Harry
and Ron walked out of the Hog's Head into the bright sunlight a few moments l
ater. Harry and Ron were clutching their bottles of Butterbeer.
'That Zacharias bloke's a wart,' said Ron, who was glowering after the fig
ure of Smith, just discernible in the distance.
'I don't like him much, either,' admitted Hermione, 'but he overheard me t
alking to Ernie and Hannah at the Hufflepuff table and he seemed really intere
sted in coming, so what could I say? But the more people the better really - I
mean, Michael Corner and his friends wouldn't have come if he hadn't been goi
ng out with Ginny - '
Ron, who had been draining the last few drops from his Butterbeer bottle,
gagged and sprayed Butterbeer down his front.
'He's WHAT?' spluttered Ron, outraged, his ears now resembling curls of ra
w beef. 'She's going out with - my sister's going - what d'you mean, Michael C
orner?'
'Well, that's why he and his friends came, I think - well, they're obvious
ly interested in learning defence, but if Ginny hadn't told Michael what was g
oing on - '
'When did this - when did she -?'
'They met at the Yule Ball and got together at the end of last year,' said
Hermione composedly. They had turned into the High Street and she paused outs
ide Scrivenshaft's Quill Shop, where there was a handsome display of pheasant
feather quills in the window. 'Hmm . . . I could do with a new quill.'
She turned into the shop. Harry and Ron followed her.
'Which one was Michael Corner?' Ron demanded furiously.
The dark one,' said Hermione.
'I didn't like him,' said Ron at once.
'Big surprise,' said Hermione under her breath.
'But, said Ron, following Hermione along a row of quills in copper pots, '
I thought Ginny fancied Harry!'
Hermione looked at him rather pityingly and shook her head.
'Ginny used to fancy Harry, but she gave up on him months ago. Not that sh
e doesn't like you, of course,' she added kindly to Harry while she examined a
long black and gold quill.
Harry, whose head was still full of Cho's parting wave, did not find this
subject quite as interesting as Ron, who was positively quivering with indigna
tion, but it did bring something home to him that until now he had not really
registered.
'So that's why she talks now?' he asked Hermione. 'She never used to talk
in front of me.'
'Exactly,' said Hermione. 'Yes, I think I'll have this one . . .'
She went up to the counter and handed over fifteen Sickles and two Knuts,
with Ron still breathing down her neck.
'Ron,' she said severely as she turned and trod on his feet, 'this is exac
tly why Ginny hasn't told you she's seeing Michael, she knew you'd take it bad
ly. So don't harp on about it, for heaven's sake.'
'What d'you mean? Who's taking anything badly? I'm not going to harp on ab
out anything . . .' Ron continued to chunter under his breath all the way down
the street.
Hermione rolled her eyes at Harry and then said in an undertone, while Ron
was still muttering imprecations about Michael Corner, 'And talking about Mic
hael and Ginny . . . what about Cho and you?'
'What d'you mean?' said Harry quickly.
It was as though boiling water was rising rapidly inside him; a burning se
nsation that was causing his face to smart in the cold - had he been that obvi
ous?
'Well,' said Hermione, smiling slightly, 'she just couldn't keep her eyes
off you, could she?'
Harry had never before appreciated just how beautiful the village of Hogsm
eade was.
- CHAPTER SEVENTEEN -
Educational Decree
Number Twenty-four
Harry felt happier for the rest of the weekend than he had done all term. He a
nd Ron spent much of Sunday catching up with all their homework again, and alt
hough this could hardly be called fun, the last burst of autumn sunshine persi
sted, so rather than sitting hunched over tables in the common room they took
their work outside and lounged in the shade of a large beech tree on the edge
of the lake. Hermione, who of course was up to date with all her work, brought
more wool outside with her and bewitched her knitting needles so that they fl
ashed and clicked in midair beside her, producing more hats and scarves.
Knowing they were doing something to resist Umbridge and the Ministry and
that he was a key part of the rebellion, gave Harry a feeling of immense satis
faction. He kept reliving Saturdays meeting in his mind: all those people, com
ing to him to learn Defence Against the Dark Arts . . . and the looks on their
faces as they had heard some of the things he had done . . . and Cho praising
his performance in the Triwizard Tournament - knowing all those people did no
t think him a lying weirdo, but someone to be admired, buoyed him up so much t
hat he was still cheerful on Monday morning, despite the imminent prospect of
all his least favourite classes.
He and Ron headed downstairs from their dormitory, discussing Angelina's i
dea that they were to work on a new move called the Sloth Grip Roll during tha
t nights Quidditch practice, and not until they were halfway across the sunlit
common room did they notice the addition to the room that had already attract
ed the attention of a small group of people.
A large sign had been affixed to the Grffindor noticeboard, so large it co
vered everything else on it - the lists of secondhand spellbooks for sale, the
regular reminders of school rules from Argus Filch, the Quidditch team traini
ng timetable, the offers to barter certain Chocolate Frog Cards for others, th
e Weasleys' latest advertisement for testers, the dates of the Hogsmeade weeke
nds and the lost and found notices. The new sign was printed in large black le
tters and there was a highly official-looking seal at the bottom beside a neat
and curly signature.
BY ORDER OF THE HIGH INQUISITOR OF HOGWARTS
All student organisations, societies, teams, groups and clubs are
henceforth disbanded.
An organisation, society, team, group or club is hereby defined
as a regular meeting of three or more students.
Permission to re-form may be sought from the High Inquisitor
(Professor Umbridge).
No student organisation, society, team, group or club may exist
without the knowledge and approval of the High Inquisitor.
Any student found to have formed, or to belong to, an organisation,
society, team, group or club that has not been approved by
the High Inquisitor will be expelled.
The above is in accordance with Educational Decree
Number Twenty-four.
Signed: Dolores Jane Umbridge, High Inquisitor
Harry and Ron read the notice over the heads of some anxious-looking second-ye
ars.
'Does this mean they're going to shut down the Gobstones Club?' one of the
m asked his friend.
'I reckon you'll be OK with Gobstones,' Ron said darkly, making the second
-year jump. I don't think we're going to be as lucky, though, do you?' he aske
d Harry as the second-years hurried away.
Harry was reading the notice through again. The happiness that had filled
him since Saturday was gone. His insides were pulsing with rage.
'This isn't a coincidence,' he said, his hands forming fists. 'She knows.'
'She can't,' said Ron at once.
There were people listening in that pub. And let's face it, we don't know
how many of the people who turned up we can trust . . . any of them could have
run off and told Umbridge . . .'
And he had thought they believed him, thought they even admired him . . .
'Zacharias Smith!' said Ron at once, punching a fist into his hand. 'Or -
I thought that Michael Corner had a really shifty look, too - '
'I wonder if Hermione's seen this yet?' Harry said, looking round at the d
oor to the girls' dormitories.
'Let's go and tell her,' said Ron. He bounded forwards, pulled open the do
or and set off up the spiral staircase.
He was on the sixth stair when there was a loud, wailing, klaxon-like soun
d and the steps melted together to make a long, smooth stone slide like a helt
er-skelter. There was a brief moment when Ron tried to keep running, arms work
ing madly like windmills, then he toppled over backwards and shot down the new
ly created slide, coming to rest on his back at Harry's feet.
'Er - I don't think we're allowed in the girls' dormitories,' said Harry,
pulling Ron to his feet and trying not to laugh.
Two fourth-year girls came zooming gleefully down the stone slide.
'Oooh. who tried to get upstairs?' they giggled happily, leaping to their
feet and ogling Harry and Ron.
'Me,' said Ron, who was still rather dishevelled. T didn't realise that wo
uld happen. It's not fair!' he added to Harry, as the girls headed off for the
portrait hole, still giggling madly. 'Hermione's allowed in our dormitory, ho
w come we're not allowed - ?'
'Well, it's an old-fashioned rule,' said Hermione, who had just slid neatl
y on to a rug in front of them and was now getting to her feet, 'but it says i
n Hogwarts: A History, that the founders thought boys were less trustworthy th
an girls. Anyway, why were you trying to get in there?'
To see you - look at this!' said Ron, dragging her over to the noticeboard
.
Hermione's eyes slid rapidly down the notice. Her expression became stony.
'Someone must have blabbed to her!' Ron said angrily.
'They can't have done,' said Hermione in a low voice.
'You're so naive,' said Ron, 'you think just because you're all honourable
and trustworthy - '
'No, they can't have done, because I put a jinx on that piece of parchment
we all signed,' said Hermione grimly. 'Believe me, if anyone's run off and to
ld Umbridge, we'll know exactly who they are and they will really regret it.'
'What'll happen to them?' said Ron eagerly.
'Well, put it this way,' said Hermione, 'it'll make Eloise Midgeon's acne
look like a couple of cute freckles. Come on, let's get down to breakfast and
see what the others think . . . I wonder whether this has been put up in all t
he houses?'
It was immediately apparent on entering the Great Hall that Umbridge's sig
n had not only appeared in Gryffindor Tower. There was a peculiar intensity ab
out the chatter and an extra measure of movement in the Hall as people scurrie
d up and down their tables conferring on what they had read. Harry, Ron and He
rmione had barely taken their seats when Neville, Dean, Fred, George and Ginny
descended upon them.
'Did you see it?'
'D'you reckon she knows?'
'What are we going to do?'
They were all looking at Harry. He glanced around to make sure there were
no teachers near them.
'We're going to do it anyway, of course,' he said quietly.
'Knew you'd say that,' said George, beaming and thumping Harry on the arm.
The prefects as well?' said Fred, looking quizzically at Ron and Hermione.
'Of course,' said Hermione coolly.
'Here come Ernie and Hannah Abbott,' said Ron, looking over his shoulder.
'And those Ravenclaw blokes and Smith . . . and no one looks very spotty.'
Hermione looked alarmed.
'Never mind spots, the idiots can't come over here now, it'll look really
suspicious - sit down!' she mouthed to Ernie and Hannah, gesturing frantically
to them to rejoin the Hufflepuff table. 'Later! We'll - talk - to - you - lat
er!'
'I'll tell Michael,' said Ginny impatiently, swinging herself off her benc
h, 'the fool, honestly . . .'
She hurried off towards the Ravenclaw table; Harry watched her go. Cho was
sitting not far away, talking to the curly-haired friend she had brought alon
g to the Hog's Head. Would Umbridge's notice scare her off meeting them again?
But the full repercussions of the sign were not felt until they were leavi
ng the Great Hall for History of Magic.
'Harry! Ron!'
It was Angelina and she was hurrying towards them looking perfectly desper
ate.
'It's OK,' said Harry quietly, when she was near enough to hear him. 'We'r
e still going to - '
'You realise she's including Quidditch in this?' Angelina said over him. '
We have to go and ask permission to re-form the Gryffindor team!'
'What?' said Harry.
'No way,' said Ron, appalled.
'You read the sign, it mentions teams too! So listen, Harry . . . I am say
ing this for the last time . . . please, please don't lose your temper with Um
bridge again or she might not let us play any more!'
'OK, OK,' said Harry, for Angelina looked as though she was on the verge o
f tears. 'Don't worry, I'll behave myself . . .'
'Bet Umbridge is in History of Magic,' said Ron grimly, as they set off fo
r Binns's lesson. 'She hasn't inspected Binns yet . . . bet you anything she's
there . . .'
But he was wrong; the only teacher present when they entered was Professor
Binns, floating an inch or so above his chair as usual and preparing to conti
nue his monotonous drone on giant wars. Harry did not even attempt to follow w
hat he was saying today; he doodled idly on his parchment ignoring Hermione's
frequent glares and nudges, until a particularly painful poke in the ribs made
him look up angrily.
'What?'
She pointed at the window. Harry looked round. Hedwig was perched on the n
arrow window ledge, gazing through the thick glass at him, a letter tied to he
r leg. Harry could not understand it; they had just had breakfast, why on eart
h hadn't she delivered the letter then, as usual? Many of his classmates were
pointing out Hedwig to each other, too.
'Oh, I've always loved that owl, she's so beautiful,' Harry heard Lavender
sigh to Parvati.
He glanced round at Professor Binns who continued to read his notes, seren
ely unaware that the class's attention was even less focused upon him than usu
al. Harry slipped quietly off his chair, crouched down and hurried along the r
ow to the window, where he slid the catch and opened it very slowly.
He had expected Hedwig to hold out her leg so that he could remove the let
ter and then fly off to the Owlery, but the moment the window was open wide en
ough she hopped inside, hooting dolefully. He closed the window with an anxiou
s glance at Professor Binns, crouched low again and sped back to his seat with
Hedwig on his shoulder. He regained his seat, transferred Hedwig to his lap a
nd made to remove the letter tied to her leg.
Only then did he realise that Hedwig's feathers were oddly ruffled; some w
ere bent the wrong way, and she was holding one of her wings at an odd angle.
'She's hurt!' Harry whispered, bending his head low over her. Hermione and
Ron leaned in closer; Hermione even put down her quill. 'Look - there's somet
hing wrong with her wing - '
Hedwig was quivering; when Harry made to touch the wing she gave a little
jump, all her feathers on end as though she was inflating herself, and gazed a
t him reproachfully.
'Professor Binns,' said Harry loudly, and everyone in the class turned to
look at him. 'I'm not feeling well.'
Professor Binns raised his eyes from his notes, looking amazed, as always,
to find the room in front of him full of people.
'Not feeling well?' he repeated hazily.
'Not at all well,' said Harry firmly, getting to his feet with Hedwig conc
ealed behind his back. 'I think I need to go to the hospital wing.'
'Yes,' said Professor Binns, clearly very much wrong-footed. 'Yes . . . ye
s, hospital wing . . . well, off you go, then, Perkins . . .'
Once outside the room, Harry returned Hedwig to his shoulder and hurried o
ff up the corridor, pausing to think only when he was out of sight of Binns's
door. His first choice of somebody to cure Hedwig would have been Hagrid, of c
ourse, but as he had no idea where Hagrid was his only remaining option was to
find Professor Grubbly-Plank and hope she would help.
He peered out of a window at the blustery, overcast grounds. There was no
sign of her anywhere near Hagrid's cabin; if she was not teaching, she was pro
bably in the staff room. He set off downstairs, Hedwig hooting feebly as she s
wayed on his shoulder.
Two stone gargoyles flanked the staff-room door. As Harry approached, one
of them croaked, 'You should be in class, Sonny Jim.'
This is urgent,' said Harry curtly.
'Ooooh, urgent, is it?' said the other gargoyle in a high-pitched voice. '
Well, that's put us in our place, hasn't it?'
Harry knocked. He heard footsteps, then the door opened and he found himse
lf face to face with Professor McGonagall.
'You haven't been given another detention!' she said at once, her square s
pectacles flashing alarmingly.
'No, Professor!' said Harry hastily.
'Well then, why are you out of class?'
'It's urgent, apparently,' said the second gargoyle snidely.
'I'm looking for Professor Grubbly-Plank,' Harry explained. 'It's my owl,
she's injured.'
'Injured owl, did you say?'
Professor Grubbly-Plank appeared at Professor McGonagall's shoulder, smoki
ng a pipe and holding a copy of the Daily Prophet.
'Yes,' said Harry, lifting Hedwig carefully off his shoulder, 'she turned
up after the other post owls and her wing's all funny, look - '
Professor Grubbly-Plank stuck her pipe firmly between her teeth and took H
edwig from Harry while Professor McGonagall watched.
'Hmm,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank, her pipe waggling slightly as she tal
ked. 'Looks like something's attacked her. Can't think what would have done it
, though. Thestrals will sometimes go for birds, of course, but Hagrid's got t
he Hogwarts Thestrals well-trained not to touch owls.'
Harry neither knew nor cared what Thestrals were; he just wanted to know t
hat Hedwig was going to be all right. Professor McGonagall, however, looked sh
arply at Harry and said, 'Do you know how far this owl's travelled, Potter?'
'Er,' said Harry. 'From London, I think.'
He met her eyes briefly and knew, by the way her eyebrows had joined in th
e middle, that she understood 'London' to mean 'number twelve, Grimmauld Place
'.
Professor Grubbly-Plank pulled a monocle out of the inside of her robes an
d screwed it into her eye, to examine Hedwig's wing closely. 'I should be able
to sort this out if you leave her with me, Potter,' she said, 'she shouldn't
be flying long distances for a few days, in any case.'
'Er - right - thanks,' said Harry, just as the bell rang for break.
'No problem,' said Professor Grubbly-Plank gruffly, turning back into the
staff room.
'Just a moment, Wilhelmina!' said Professor McGonagall. 'Potter's letter!'
'Oh yeah!' said Harry, who had momentarily forgotten the scroll tied to He
dwig's leg. Professor Grubbly-Plank handed it over and then disappeared into t
he staff room carrying Hedwig, who was staring at Harry as though unable to be
lieve he would give her away like this. Feeling slightly guilty, he turned to
go, but Professor McGonagall called him back.
'Potter!'
'Yes, Professor?'
She glanced up and down the corridor; there were students coming from both
directions.
'Bear in mind,' she said quickly and quietly, her eyes on the scroll in hi
s hand, 'that channels of communication in and out of Hogwarts may be being wa
tched, won't you?'
'I - ' said Harry, but the flood of students rolling along the
corridor was almost upon him. Professor McGonagall gave him a curt nod and
retreated into the staff room, leaving Harry to be swept out into the courtya
rd with the crowd. He spotted Ron and Hermione already standing in a sheltered
corner, their cloak collars turned up against the wind. Harry slit open the s
croll as he hurried towards them and found five words in Sirius's handwriting:
Today, same time, same place.
'Is Hedwig OK?' asked Hermione anxiously, the moment he was within earshot
.
'Where did you take her?' asked Ron.
'To Grubbly-Plank,' said Harry. 'And I met McGonagall . . . listen . . .'
And he told them what Professor McGonagall had said. To his surprise, neit
her of the others looked shocked. On the contrary, they exchanged significant
looks.
'What?' said Harry, looking from Ron to Hermione and back again.
'Well, I was just saying to Ron . . . what if someone had tried to interce
pt Hedwig? I mean, she's never been hurt on a flight before, has she?'
'Who's the letter from, anyway?' asked Ron, taking the note from Harry.
'Snuffles,' said Harry quietly.
'"Same time, same place?" Does he mean the fire in the common room?'
'Obviously,' said Hermione, also reading the note. She looked uneasy. 'I j
ust hope nobody else has read this . . .'
'But it was still sealed and everything,' said Harry, trying to convince h
imself as much as her. 'And nobody would understand what it meant if they didn
't know where we'd spoken to him before, would they?'
T don't know,' said Hermione anxiously, hitching her bag back over her sho
ulder as the bell rang again, 'it wouldn't be exactly difficult to re-seal the
scroll by magic . . . and if anyone's watching the Floo Network . . . but I d
on't really see how we can warn him not to come without that being intercepted
, too!'
They trudged down the stone steps to the dungeons for Potions, all three o
f them, lost in thought, but as they reached the bottom of the steps they were
recalled to themselves by the voice of Draco Malfoy, who was standing just ou
tside Snape's classroom door, waving around an official-looking piece of parch
ment and talking much louder than was necessary so that they could hear every
word.
'Yeah, Umbridge gave the Slytherin Quidditch team permission to continue p
laying straightaway, I went to ask her first thing this morning. Well, it was
pretty much automatic, I mean, she knows my father really well, he's always po
pping in and out of the Ministry . . . it'll be interesting to see whether Gry
ffindor are allowed to keep playing, won't it?'
'Don't rise,' Hermione whispered imploringly to Harry and Ron, who were bo
th watching Malfoy, faces set and fists clenched. 'It's what he wants.'
'I mean,' said Malfoy, raising his voice a little more, his grey eyes glit
tering malevolently in Harry and Ron's direction, 'if it's a question of influ
ence with the Ministry, I don't think they've got much chance . . . from what
my father says, they've been looking for an excuse to sack Arthur Weasley for
years . . . and as for Potter . . . my father says it's a matter of time befor
e the Ministry has him carted off to St Mungo's . . . apparently they've got a
special ward for people whose brains have been addled by magic.'
Malfoy made a grotesque face, his mouth sagging open and his eyes rolling.
Crabbe and Goyle gave their usual grunts of laughter; Pansy Parkinson shrieke
d with glee.
Something collided hard with Harry's shoulder, knocking him sideways. A sp
lit second later he realised that Neville had just charged past him, heading s
traight for Malfoy.
'Neville, no!'
Harry leapt forward and seized the back of Neville's robes; Neville strugg
led frantically, his fists flailing, trying desperately to get at Malfoy who l
ooked, for a moment, extremely shocked.
'Help me!' Harry flung at Ron, managing to get an arm around Neville's nec
k and dragging him backwards, away from the Slytherins. Crabbe and Goyle were
flexing their arms as they stepped in front of Malfoy, ready for the fight. Ro
n seized Neville's arms, and together he and Harry succeeded in dragging Nevil
le back into the Gryffindor line. Nevilles face was scarlet; the pressure Harr
y was exerting on his throat rendered him quite incomprehensible, but odd word
s spluttered from his mouth.
'Not . . . funny . . . don't . . . Mungo's . . . show . . . him . . .'
The dungeon door opened. Snape appeared there. His black eyes swept up the
Gryffindor line to the point where Harry and Ron were wrestling with Neville.
'Fighting, Potter, Weasley, Longbottom?' Snape said in his cold, sneering
voice. 'Ten points from Gryffindor. Release Longbottom, Potter, or it will be
detention. Inside, all of you.'
Harry let go of Neville, who stood panting and glaring at him.
'I had to stop you,' Harry gasped, picking up his bag. 'Crabbe and Goyle w
ould've torn you apart.'
Neville said nothing; he merely snatched up his own bag and stalked off in
to the dungeon.
'What in the name of Merlin,' said Ron slowly, as they followed Neville, '
was that about?'
Harry did not answer. He knew exactly why the subject of people who were i
n St Mungo's because of magical damage to their brains was highly distressing
to Neville, but he had sworn to Dumbledore that he would not tell anyone Nevil
le's secret. Even Neville did not know Harry knew.
Harry, Ron and Hermione took their usual seats at the back of the class, p
ulled out parchment, quills and their copies of One Thousand Magical Herbs and
Fungi. The class around them was whispering about what Neville had just done,
but when Snape closed the dungeon door with an echoing bang, everybody immedi
ately fell silent.
'You will notice,' said Snape, in his low, sneering voice, 'that we have a
guest with us today.'
He gestured towards the dim corner of the dungeon and Harry saw Professor
Umbridge sitting there, clipboard on her knee. He glanced sideways at Ron and
Hermione, his eyebrows raised. Snape and Umbridge, the two teachers he hated m
ost. It was hard to decide which one he wanted to triumph over the other.
'We are continuing with our Strengthening Solution today. You will find yo
ur mixtures as you left them last lesson; it correctly made they should have m
atured well over the weekend - instructions - ' he waved his wand again ' - on
the board. Carry on.'
Professor Umbridge spent the first half hour of the lesson making notes in
her corner. Harry was very interested in hearing her question Snape; so inter
ested, that he was becoming careless with his potion again.
'Salamander blood, Harry!' Hermione moaned, grabbing his wrist to prevent
him adding the wrong ingredient for the third time, 'not pomegranate juice!'
'Right,' said Harry vaguely, putting down the bottle and continuing to wat
ch the corner. Umbridge had just got to her feet. 'Ha,' he said softly, as she
strode between two lines of desks towards Snape, who was bending over Dean Th
omas's cauldron.
'Well, the class seem fairly advanced for their level,' she said briskly t
o Snape's back. 'Though I would question whether it is advisable to teach them
a potion like the Strengthening Solution. I think the Ministry would prefer i
t if that was removed from the syllabus.'
Snape straightened up slowly and turned to look at her.
'Now . . . how long have you been teaching at Hogwarts?' she asked, her qu
ill poised over her clipboard.
'Fourteen years,' Snape replied. His expression was unfathomable. Harry, w
atching him closely, added a few drops to his potion; it hissed menacingly and
turned from turquoise to orange.
'You applied first for the Defence Against the Dark Arts post, I believe?'
Professor Umbridge asked Snape.
'Yes,' said Snape quietly.
'But you were unsuccessful?'
Snape's lip curled.
'Obviously.'
Professor Umbridge scribbled on her clipboard.
'And you have applied regularly for the Defence Against the Dark Arts post
since you first joined the school, I believe?'
'Yes,' said Snape quietly, barely moving his lips. He looked very angry.
'Do you have any idea why Dumbledore has consistently refused to appoint y
ou?' asked Umbridge.
'I suggest you ask him,' said Snape jerkily.
'Oh, I shall,' said Professor Umbridge, with a sweet smile.
'I suppose this is relevant?' Snape asked, his black eyes narrowed.
'Oh yes,' said Professor Umbridge, 'yes, the Ministry wants a thorough und
erstanding of teachers' - er - backgrounds.'
She turned away, walked over to Pansy Parkinson and began questioning her
about the lessons. Snape looked round at Harry and their eyes met for a second
. Harry hastily dropped his gaze to his potion, which was now congealing foull
y and giving off a. strong smell of burned rubber.
'No marks again, then, Potter,' said Snape maliciously, emptying Harry's c
auldron with a wave of his wand. 'You will write me an essay on the correct co
mposition of this potion, indicating how and why you went wrong, to be handed
in next lesson, do you understand?'
'Yes,' said Harry furiously. Snape had already given them homework and he
had Quidditch practice this evening; this would mean another couple of sleeple
ss nights. It did not seem possible that he had awoken that morning feeling ve
ry happy. All he felt now was a fervent desire for this day to end.
'Maybe I'll skive off Divination,' he said glumly, as they stood in the co
urtyard after lunch, the wind whipping at the hems of robes and brims of hats.
'I'll pretend to be ill and do Snape's essay instead, then I won't have to st
ay up half the night.'
'You can't skive off Divination,' said Hermione severely.
'Hark who's talking, you walked oui of Divination, you hate Trelawney!' sa
id Ron indignantly.
'I don't hate her,' said Hermione loftily. 'I just think she's an absolute
ly appalling teacher and a real old fraud. But Harry's already missed History
of Magic and I don't think he ought to miss anything else today!'
There was too much truth in this to ignore, so half an hour later Harry to
ok his seat in the hot, overperfumed atmosphere of the Divination classroom, f
eeling angry at everybody. Professor Trelawney was yet again handing out copie
s of The Dream Oracle. Harry thought he'd surely be much better employed doing
Snape's
punishment essay than sitting here trying to nnd meaning in a lot of made-
up dreams.
It seemed, however, that he was not the only person in Divination who was
in a temper. Professor Trelawney slammed a copy of the Oracle down on the tabl
e between Harry and Ron and swept away, her lips pursed; she threw the next co
py of the Oracle at Seamus and Dean, narrowly avoiding Seamus's head, and thru
st the final one into Neville's chest with such force that he slipped off his
pouffe.
'Well, carry on!' said Professor Trelawney loudly, her voice high-pitched
and somewhat hysterical, 'you know what to do! Or am I such a sub-standard tea
cher that you have never learned how to open a book?'
The class stared perplexedly at her, then at each other. Harry, however, t
hought he knew what was the matter. As Professor Trelawney flounced back to th
e high-backed teachers chair, her magnified eyes full of angry tears, he leane
d his head closer to Ron's and muttered, 'I think she's got the results of her
inspection back.'
'Professor?' said Parvati Patil in a hushed voice (she and Lavender had al
ways rather admired Professor Trelawney). 'Professor, is there anything - er -
wrong?'
'Wrong!' cried Professor Trelawney in a voice throbbing with emotion. 'Cer
tainly not! I have been insulted, certainly . . . insinuations have been made
against me . . . unfounded accusations levelled . . . but no, there is nothing
wrong, certainly not!'
She took a great shuddering breath and looked away from Parvati, angry tea
rs spilling from under her glasses.
'I say nothing,' she choked, 'of sixteen years of devoted service . . . it
has passed, apparently, unnoticed . . . but I shall not be insulted, no, I sh
all not!'
'But, Professor, who's insulting you?' asked Parvati timidly.
The Establishment!' said Professor Trelawney, in a deep, dramatic, waverin
g voice. 'Yes, those with eyes too clouded by the mundane to See as I See, to
Know as I Know . . . of course, we Seers have always been feared, always perse
cuted . . . it is - alas - 'our fate.'
She gulped, dabbed at her wet cheeks with the end of her shawl, then she p
ulled a small embroidered handkerchief from her sleeve, and blew her nose very
hard with a sound like Peeves blowing a raspberry.
Ron sniggered. Lavender shot him a disgusted look.
'Professor,' said Parvati, 'do you mean . . . is it something Professor Um
bridge - ?'
'Do not speak to me about that woman!' cried Professor Trelawney leaping t
o her feet, her beads rattling and her spectacles flashing. 'Kindly continue w
ith your work!'
And she spent the rest of the lesson striding among them, tears still leak
ing from behind her glasses, muttering what sounded like threats under her bre
ath.
'. . . may well choose to leave . . . the indignity of it . . . on probati
on . . . we shall see . . . how she dares . . .'
'You and Umbridge have got something in common,' Harry told Hermione quiet
ly when they met again in Defence Against the Dark Arts. 'She obviously reckon
s Trelawney's an old fraud, too . . . looks like she's put her on probation.'
Umbridge entered the room as he spoke, wearing her black velvet bow and an
expression of great smugness.
'Good afternoon, class.'
'Good afternoon, Professor Umbridge,' they chanted dully.
'Wands away, please.'
But there was no answering flurry of movement this time; nobody had bother
ed to take out their wands.
'Please turn to page thirty-four of Defensive Magical Theory and read the
third chapter, entitled "The Case for Non-Offensive Responses to Magical Attac
k". There will be - '
' - no need to talk,' Harry, Ron and Hermione said together, under their b
reaths.
*
'No Quidditch practice,' said Angelina in hollow tones when Harry, Ron and Her
mione entered the common room after dinner that night.
'But I kept my temper!' said Harry, horrified. 'I didn't say anything to h
er, Angelina, I swear, I - '
'I know, I know, said Angelina miserably. 'She just said she needed a bit
of time to consider.'
'Consider what?' said Ron angrily. 'She's given the Slytherins permission,
why not us?'
But Harry could imagine how much Umbridge was enjoying holding the threat
of no Gryffindor Quidditch team over their heads and could easily understand w
hy she would not want to relinquish that weapon over them too soon.
'Well,' said Hermione, 'look on the bright side - at least now you'll have
time to do Snape's essay!'
That's a bright side, is it?' snapped Harry, while Ron stared incredulousl
y at Hermione. 'No Quidditch practice, and extra Potions?'
Harry slumped down into a chair, dragged his Potions essay reluctantly fro
m his bag and set to work. It was very hard to concentrate; even though he kne
w Sirius was not due in the fire until much later, he could not help glancing
into the flames every few minutes just in case. There was also an incredible a
mount of noise in the room: Fred and George appeared finally to have perfected
one type of Skiving Snackbox, which they were taking turns to demonstrate to
a cheering and whooping crowd.
First, Fred would take a bite out of the orange end of a chew, at which he
would vomit spectacularly into a bucket they had placed in front of them. The
n he would force down the purple end of the chew, at which the vomiting would
immediately cease. Lee Jordan, who was assisting the demonstration, was lazily
Vanishing the vomit at regular intervals with the same Vanishing Spell Snape
kept using on Harry's potions.
What with the regular sounds of retching, cheering and the sound of Fred a
nd George taking advance orders from the crowd, Harry was finding it exception
ally difficult to focus on the correct method for Strengthening Solution. Herm
ione was not helping matters; the cheers and the sound of vomit hitting the bo
ttom of Fred and George's bucket were punctuated by her loud and disapproving
sniffs, which Harry found, if anything, more distracting.
'Just go and stop them, then!' he said irritably, after crossing out the w
rong weight of powdered griffin claw for the fourth time.
'I can't, they're not technically doing anything wrong,' said Hermione thr
ough gritted teeth. They're quite within their rights to eat the foul things t
hemselves and I can't find a rule that says the other idiots aren't entitled t
o buy them, not unless they're proven to be dangerous in some way and it doesn
't look as though they are.'
She, Harry and Ron watched George projectile-vomit into the bucket, gulp d
own the rest of the chew and straighten up, beaming with his arms wide to prot
racted applause.
'You know, I don't get why Fred and George only got three OWLs each,' said
Harry, watching as Fred, George and Lee collected gold from the eager crowd.
They really know their stuff.'
'Oh, they only know flashy stuff that's of no real use to anyone,' said He
rmione disparagingly.
'No real use?' said Ron in a strained voice. 'Hermione, they've made about
twenty-six Galleons already.'
It was a long while before the crowd around the Weasley twins dispersed, t
hen Fred, Lee and George sat up counting their takings even longer, so it was
well past midnight when Harry, Ron and Hermione finally had the common room to
themselves. At long last, Fred had closed the doorway to the boys' dormitorie
s behind him, rattling his box of Galleons ostentatiously so that Hermione sco
wled. Harry, who was making very little progress with his Potions essay, decid
ed to give it up for the night. As he put his books away, Ron, who was dozing
lightly in an armchair, gave a muffled grunt, awoke, and looked blearily into
the fire.
'Sirius!' he said.
Harry whipped round. Sirius's untidy dark head was sitting in the fire aga
in.
'Hi,' he said, grinning.
'Hi,' chorused Harry, Ron and Hermione, all three kneeling down on the hea
rthrug. Crookshanks purred loudly and approached the fire, trying, despite the
heat, to put his face close to Sirius's.
'How're things?' said Sirius.
'Not that good,' said Harry, as Hermione pulled Crookshanks back to stop h
im singeing his whiskers. The Ministry's forced through another decree, which
means we're not allowed to have Quidditch teams - '
'Or secret Defence Against the Dark Arts groups? Said Sirius.
There was a short pause.
'How did you know about that?' Harry demanded.
'You want to choose your meeting places more carefully,' said Sirius, grin
ning still more broadly. The Hog's Head, I ask you.'
'Well, it was better than the Three Broomsticks!' said Hermione defensivel
y. That's always packed with people - '
'Which means you'd have been harder to overhear,' said Sirius. 'You've got
a lot to learn, Hermione.'
'Who overheard us?' Harry demanded.
'Mundungus, of course,' said Sirius, and when they all looked puzzled he l
aughed. 'He was the witch under the veil.'
That was Mundungus?' Harry said, stunned. 'What was he doing in the Hog's
Head?'
'What do you think he was doing?' said Sirius impatiently. 'Keeping an eye
on you, of course.'
'I'm still being followed?' asked Harry angrily.
'Yeah, you are,' said Sirius, 'and just as well, isn't it, if the first th
ing you're going to do on your weekend off is organise an illegal defence grou
p.'
But he looked neither angry nor worried. On the contrary, he was looking a
t Harry with distinct pride.
'Why was Dung hiding from us?' asked Ron, sounding disappointed. 'We'd've
liked to've seen him.'
'He was banned from the Hog's Head twenty years ago,' said Sirius, 'and th
at barman's got a long memory. We lost Moody's spare Invisibility Cloak when S
turgis was arrested, so Dung's been dressing as a witch a lot lately . . . any
way . . . first of all, Ron - I've sworn to pass on a message from your mother
.'
'Oh yeah?' said Ron, sounding apprehensive.
'She says on no account whatsoever are you to take part in an illegal secr
et Defence Against the Dark Arts group. She says you'll be expelled for sure a
nd your future will be ruined. She says there will be plenty of time to learn
how to defend yourself later and that you are too young to be worrying about t
hat right now. She also' (Sirius's eyes turned to the other two) 'advises Harr
y and Hermione not to proceed with the group, though she accepts that she has
no authority over either of them and simply begs them to remember that she has
their best interests at heart. She would have written all this to you, but if
the owl had been intercepted you'd all have been in real trouble, and she can
't say it for herself because she's on duty tonight.'
'On duty doing what?' said Ron quickly.
'Never you mind, just stuff for the Order,' said Sirius. 'So it's fallen t
o me to be the messenger and make sure you tell her I passed it all on, becaus
e I don't think she trusts me to.'
There was another pause in which Crookshanks, mewing, attempted to paw Sir
ius's head, and Ron fiddled with a hole in the hearthrug.
'So, you want me to say I'm not going to take part in the Defence group?'
he muttered finally.
'Me? Certainly not!' said Sirius, looking surprised. 'I think it's an exce
llent idea!'
'You do?' said Harry, his heart lifting.
'Of course I do!' said Sirius. 'D'you think your father and I would've lai
n down and taken orders from an old hag like Umbridge?'
'But - last term all you did was tell me to be careful and not take risks
- '
'Last year, all the evidence was that someone inside Hogwarts was trying t
o kill you, Harry!' said Sirius impatiently. This year, we know there's someon
e outside Hogwarts who'd like to kill us all, so I think learning to defend yo
urselves properly is; a very good idea!'
'And if we do get expelled?' Hermione asked, a quizzical look on her face.
'Hermione, this whole thing was your idea!' said Harry, staring at her.
'I know it was. I just wondered what Sirius thought,' she said, shrugging.
'Well, better expelled and able to defend yourselves than sitting safely i
n school without a clue,' said Sirius.
'Hear, hear,' said Harry and Ron enthusiastically.
'So,' said Sirius, 'how are you organising this group? Where are you meeti
ng?'
'Well, mats a bit of a problem now, said Harry. Dunno where we're going to
be able to go.'
'How about the Shrieking Shack?' suggested Sirius.
'Hey, that's an idea!' said Ron excitedly, but Hermione made a sceptical n
oise and all three of them looked at her, Sirius's head turning in the flames.
'Well, Sirius, it's just that there were only four of you meeting in the S
hrieking Shack when you were at school,' said Hermione, 'and all of you could
transform into animals and I suppose you could all have squeezed under a singl
e Invisibility Cloak if you'd wanted to. But there are twenty-eight of us and
none of us is an Animagus, so we wouldn't need so much an Invisibility Cloak a
s an Invisibility Marquee - '
'Fair point,' said Sirius, looking slightly crestfallen. 'Well, I'm sure y
ou'll come up with somewhere. There used to be a pretty roomy secret passagewa
y behind that big mirror on the fourth floor, you might have enough space to p
ractise jinxes in there.'
'Fred and George told me it's blocked,' said Harry, shaking his head. 'Cav
ed in or something.'
'Oh . . .' said Sirius, frowning. 'Well, I'll have a think and get back to
- '
He broke off. His face was suddenly tense, alarmed. He turned sideways, ap
parently looking into the solid brick wall of the fireplace.
'Sirius?' said Harry anxiously.
But he had vanished. Harry gaped at the flames for a moment, then turned t
o look at Ron and Hermione.
'Why did he - ?'
Hermione gave a horrified gasp and leapt to her feet, still staring at the
fire.
A hand had appeared amongst the flames, groping as though to catch hold of
something; a stubby, short-fingered hand covered in ugly old-fashioned rings.
The three of them ran for it. At the door of the boys' dormitory Harry loo
ked back. Umbridge's hand was still making snatching movements amongst the fla
mes, as though she knew exactly where Sirius's hair had been moments before an
d was determined to seize it.
- CHAPTER EIGHTEEN -
Dumbledore's Army
'Umbridge has been reading your mail, Harry. There's no other explanation.'
'You think Umbridge attacked Hedwig?' he said, outraged.
'I'm almost certain of it,' said Hermione grimly. 'Watch your frog, it's e
scaping.'
Harry pointed his wand at the bullfrog that had been hopping hopefully tow
ards the other side of the table - 'Accio!' - and it zoomed gloomily back into
his hand.
Charms was always one of the best lessons in which to enjoy a private chat
; there was generally so much movement and activity that the danger of being o
verheard was very slight. Today, with the room full of croaking bullfrogs and
cawing ravens, and with a heavy downpour of rain clattering and pounding again
st the classroom windows, Harry, Ron and Hermione's whispered discussion about
how Umbridge had nearly caught Sirius went quite unnoticed.
'I've been suspecting this ever since Filch accused you of ordering Dungbo
mbs, because it seemed such a stupid lie,' Hermione whispered. 'I mean, once y
our letter had been read it would have been quite clear you weren't ordering t
hem, so you wouldn't have been in trouble at all - it's a bit of a feeble joke
, isn't it? But then I thought, what if somebody just wanted an excuse to read
your mail? Well then, it would be a perfect way for Umbridge to manage it - t
ip off Filch, let him do the dirty work and confiscate the letter, then either
find a way of stealing it from him or else demand to see it - I don't think F
ilch would object, when's he ever stuck up for a student's rights? Harry, you'
re squashing your frog.'
Harry looked down; he was indeed squeezing his bullfrog so tightly its eye
s were popping; he replaced it hastily upon the desk.
'It was a very, very close call last night,' said Hermione. 'I just wonder
if Umbridge knows how close it was. Silendo.'
The bullfrog on which she was practising her Silencing Charm was struck du
mb mid-croak and glared at her reproachfully.
'If she'd caught Snuffles - '
Harry finished the sentence for her.
' - He'd probably be back in Azkaban this morning.' He waved his wand with
out really concentrating; his bullfrog swelled like a green balloon and emitte
d a high-pitched whistle.
'Silencio!' said Hermione hastily, pointing her wand at Harry's frog, whic
h deflated silently before them. 'Well, he mustn't do it again, that's all. I
just don't know how we're going to let him know. We can't send him an owl.'
'I don't reckon he'll risk it again,' said Ron. 'He's not stupid, he knows
she nearly got him. Silencio.'
The large and ugly raven in front of him let out a derisive caw.
'Silencio. SILENCIO!'
The raven cawed more loudly.
'It's the way you're moving your wand,' said Hermione, watching Ron critic
ally, 'you don't want to wave it, it's more a sharp jab.'
'Ravens are harder than frogs,' said Ron through clenched teeth.
'Fine, let's swap,' said Hermione, seizing Ron's raven and replacing it wi
th her own fat bullfrog. 'Silencio!' The raven continued to open and close its
sharp beak, but no sound came out.
'Very good, Miss Granger!' said Professor Flitwick's squeaky little voice,
making Harry, Ron and Hermione all jump. 'Now, let me see you try, Mr Weasley
'
'Wha-? Oh - oh, right,' said Ron, very flustered. 'Er - silencio!'
He jabbed at the bullfrog so hard he poked it in the eye: the frog gave a
deafening croak and leapt off the desk.
It came as no surprise to any of them that Harry and Ron were given additi
onal practice of the Silencing Charm for homework.
They were allowed to remain inside over break due to the downpour outside.
They found seats in a noisy and overcrowded classroom on the first floor in w
hich Peeves was floating dreamily up near the chandelier, occasionally blowing
an ink pellet at the top of somebody's head. They had barely sat down when An
gelina came struggling towards them through the groups of gossiping students.
'I've got permission!' she said. To re-form the Quidditch team!'
'Excellent!' said Ron and Harry together.
'Yeah,' said Angelina, beaming. 'I went to McGonagall and I think she migh
t have appealed to Dumbledore. Anyway, Umbridge had to give in. Ha! So I want
you down at the pitch at seven o'clock tonight, all right, because we've got t
o make up time. You realise we're only three weeks away from our first match?'
She squeezed away from them, narrowly dodged an ink pellet from Peeves, wh
ich hit a nearby first-year instead, and vanished from sight.
Ron's smile slipped slightly as he looked out of the window, which was now
opaque with hammering rain.
'Hope this clears up. What's up with you, Hermione?'
She, too, was gazing at the window, but not as though she really saw it. H
er eyes were unfocused and there was a frown on her face.
'Just thinking . . .' she said, still frowning at the rain-washed window.
'About Siri - Snuffles?' said Harry.
'No . . . not exactly . . ." said Hermione slowly. 'More . . . wondering .
. . I suppose we're doing the right thing . . . I think . . . aren't
Harry and Ron looked at each other.
'Well, that clears that up,' said Ron. 'It would've been really annoying i
f you hadn't explained yourself properly.'
Hermione looked at him as though she had only just realised he was there.
'I was just wondering,' she said, her voice stronger now, 'whether we're d
oing the right thing, starting this Defence Against the Dark Arts group.'
'What?' said Harry and Ron together.
'Hermione, it was your idea in the first place!' said Ron indignantly.
'I know,' said Hermione, twisting her fingers together. 'But after talking
to Snuffles . . .'
'But he's all for it,' said Harry.
'Yes,' said Hermione, staring at the window again. 'Yes, that's what made
me think maybe it wasn't a good idea after all . . .'
Peeves floated over them on his stomach, peashooter at the ready; automati
cally all three of them lifted their bags to cover their heads until he had pa
ssed.
'Let's get this straight,' said Harry angrily, as they put their bags back
on the floor, 'Sirius agrees with us, so you don't think we should do it any
more?'
Hermione looked tense and rather miserable. Now staring at her own hands,
she said, 'Do you honestly trust his judgement?'
'Yes, I do!' said Harry at once. 'He's always given us great advice!'
An ink pellet whizzed past them, striking Katie Bell squarely in the ear.
Hermione watched Katie leap to her feet and start throwing things at Peeves; i
t was a few moments before Hermione spoke again and it sounded as though she w
as choosing her words very carefully.
'You don't think he has become . . . sort of . . . reckless . . . since he
's been cooped up in Grimmauld Place? You don't think he's . . . kind of . . .
living through us?'
'What d'you mean, "living through us"?' Harry retorted.
'I mean . . . well, I think he'd love to be forming secret Defence societi
es right under the nose of someone from the Ministry . . . I think he's really
frustrated at how little he can do where he is . . . so I think he's keen to
kind of . . . egg us on.'
Ron looked utterly perplexed.
'Sirius is right,' he said, 'you do sound just like my mother.'
Hermione bit her lip and did not answer. The bell rang just as Peeves swoo
ped down on Katie and emptied an entire ink bottle over her head.
*
The weather did not improve as the day wore on, so that at seven o'clock that
evening, when Harry and Ron went down to the Quidditch pitch for practice, the
y were soaked through within minutes, their feet slipping and sliding on the s
odden grass. The sky was a deep, thundery grey and it was a relief to gain the
warmth and light of the changing rooms, even if they knew the respite was onl
y temporary. They found Fred and George debating whether to use one of their o
wn Skiving Snackboxes to get out of flying.
'. . . but I bet she'd know what we'd done,' Fred said out of the corner o
f his mouth. 'If only I hadn't offered to sell her some Puking Pastilles yeste
rday.'
'We could try the Fever Fudge,' George muttered, 'no one's seen that yet -
'
'Does it work?' enquired Ron hopefully, as the hammering of rain on the ro
of intensified and wind howled around the building.
'Well, yeah,' said Fred, 'your temperature'll go right up.'
'But you get these massive pus-filled boils, too,' said George, 'and we ha
ven't worked out how to get rid of them yet.'
'I can't see any boils,' said Ron, staring at the twins.
'No, well, you wouldn't,' said Fred darkly, 'they're not in a place we gen
erally display to the public.'
'But they make sitting on a broom a right pain in the - '
'All right, everyone, listen up,' said Angelina loudly, emerging from the
Captain's office. 'I know it's not ideal weather, but there's a chance we'll b
e playing Slytherin in conditions like this so it's a good idea to work out ho
w we're going to cope with them. Harry, didn't you do something to your glasse
s to stop the rain fogging them up when we played Hufflepuff in that storm?'
'Hermione did it,' said Harry. He pulled out his wand, tapped h s glasses
and said, 'Impervius!'
'I think we all ought to try that,' said Angelina. 'If we could just keep
the rain off our faces it would really help visibility - all together, come on
- Imperviusl OK. Let's go.'
They all stowed their wands back in the inside pockets of their robes, sho
uldered their brooms and followed Angelina out of the changing rooms.
They squelched through the deepening mud to the middle of the pitch; visib
ility was still very poor even with the Impervius Charm; light was fading fast
and curtains of rain were sweeping the grounds.
'All right, on my whistle,' shouted Angelina.
Harry kicked off from the ground, spraying mud in all directions, and shot
upwards, the wind pulling him slightly off course.
He had no idea how he was going to see the Snitch in this weather; he was
having enough difficulty seeing the one Bludger with which they were practisin
g; a minute into the practice it almost unseated him and he had to use the Slo
th Grip Roll to avoid it. Unfortunately, Angelina did not see this. In fact, s
he did not appear to be able to see anything; none of them had a clue what the
others were doing. The wind was picking up; even at a distance Harry could he
ar the swishing, pounding sounds of the rain pummelling the surface of the lak
e.
Angelina kept them at it for nearly an hour before conceding defeat. She l
ed her sodden and disgruntled team back into the changing rooms, insisting tha
t the practice had not been a waste of time, though without any real convictio
n in her voice. Fred and George were looking particularly annoyed; both were b
andy-legged and winced with every movement. Harry could hear them complaining
in low voices as he towelled his hair dry.
'I think a few of mine have ruptured,' said Fred in a hollow voice.
'Mine haven't,' said George, through clenched teeth, 'they're throbbing li
ke mad . . . feel bigger if anything.'
'OUCH!' said Harry.
He pressed the towel to his face, his eyes screwed tight with pain. The sc
ar on his forehead had seared again, more painfully than it had in weeks.
'What's up?' said several voices.
Harry emerged from behind his towel; the changing room was blurred because
he was not wearing his glasses, but he could still tell that everyone's face
was turned towards him.
'Nothing,' he muttered, 'I - poked myself in the eye, that's all.'
But he gave Ron a significant look and the two of them hung back as the re
st of the team filed back outside, muffled in their cloaks, their hats pulled
low over their ears.
'What happened?' said Ron, the moment Alicia had disappeared through the d
oor. 'Was it your scar?'
Harry nodded.
'But . . .' looking scared, Ron strode across to the window and stared out
into the rain, 'he - he can't be near us now, can he?'
'No,' Harry muttered, sinking on to a bench and rubbing his forehead. 'He'
s probably miles away. It hurt because . . . he's . . . angry.'
Harry had not meant to say that at all, and heard the words as though a st
ranger had spoken them - yet knew at once that they were true. He did not know
how he knew it, but he did; Voldemort, wherever he was, whatever he was doing
, was in a towering temper.
'Did you see him?' said Ron, looking horrified. 'Did you . . . get a visio
n, or something?'
Harry sat quite still, staring at his feet, allowing his mind and his memo
ry to relax in the aftermath of the pain.
A confused tangle of shapes, a howling rush of voices . . .
'He wants something done, and it's not happening fast enough,' he said.
Again, he felt surprised to hear the words coming out of his mouth, and ye
t was quite certain they were true.
'But . . . how do you know?' said Ron.
Harry shook his head and covered his eyes with his hands, pressing down up
on them with his palms. Little stars erupted in them. He felt Ron sit down on
the bench beside him and knew Ron was staring at him.
'Is this what it was about last time?' said Ron in a hushed voice. 'When y
our scar hurt in Umbridge's office? You-Know-Who was angry?'
Harry shook his head.
'What is it, then?'
Harry was thinking himself back. He had been looking into Umbridge's face
. . . his scar had hurt . . . and he had had that odd feeling in his stomach .
. . a strange, leaping feeling . . . a happy feeling . . . but of course, he
had not recognised it for what it was, as he had been feeling so miserable him
self . . .
'Last time, it was because he was pleased,' he said. 'Really pleased. He t
hought . . . something good was going to happen. And the night before we came
back to Hogwarts . . .' he thought back to the moment when his scar had hurt s
o badly in his and Ron's bedroom in Grimmauld Place . . . 'he was furious
He looked round at Ron, who was gaping at him.
'You could take over from Trelawney, mate, he said in an awed voice.
'I'm not making prophecies,' said Harry.
'No, you know what you're doing?' Ron said, sounding both scared and impre
ssed. 'Harry, you're reading You-Know-Who's mind!'
'No,' said Harry, shaking his head. 'It's more like . . . his mood, I supp
ose. I'm just getting flashes of what mood he's in. Dumbledore said something
like this was happening last year. He said that when Voldemort was near me, or
when he was feeling hatred, I could tell. Well, now I'm feeling it when he's
pleased, too . . .'
There was a pause. The wind and rain lashed at the building.
'You've got to tell someone,' said Ron.
'I told Sirius last time.'
'Well, tell him about this time!'
'Can't, can I?' said Harry grimly. 'Umbridge is watching the owls and the
fires, remember?'
'Well then, Dumbledore.'
'I've just told you, he already knows,' said Harry shortly, getting to his
feet, taking his cloak off his peg and swinging it around him. There's no poi
nt telling him again.'
Ron did up the fastening of his own cloak, watching Harry thoughtfully.
'Dumbledore'd want to know,' he said.
Harry shrugged.
'C'mon . . . we've still got Silencing Charms to practise.'
They hurried back through the dark grounds, sliding and stumbling up the m
uddy lawns, not talking. Harry was thinking hard. What was it that Voldemort w
anted done that was not happening quickly enough?
'. . . he's got other plans . . . plans he can put into operation very qui
etly indeed . . . stuff he can only get by stealth . . . like a weapon. Someth
ing he didn't have last time.'
Harry had not thought about those words in weeks; he had been too absorbed
in what was going on at Hogwarts, too busy dwelling on the ongoing battles wi
th Umbridge, the injustice of all the Ministry interference . . . but now they
came back to him and made him wonder . . . Voldemort s anger would make sense
if he was no nearer to laying hands on the weapon, whatever it was. Had the O
rder thwarted him, stopped him from seizing it? Where was it kept? Who had it
now?
'Mimbulus mimbletonia,' said Ron's voice and Harry came back to his senses
just in time to clamber through the portrait hole into the common room.
It appeared that Hermione had gone to bed early, leaving Crookshanks curle
d in a nearby chair and an assortment of knobbly knitted elf hats lying on a t
able by the fire. Harry was rather grateful that she was not around, because h
e did not much want to discuss his scar hurting and have her urge him to go to
Dumbledore, too. Ron kept throwing him anxious glances, but Harry pulled out
his Charms books and set to work on finishing his essay, though he was only pr
etending to concentrate and by the time Ron said he was going up to bed, too,
he had written hardly anything.
Midnight came and went while Harry was reading and rereading a passage abo
ut the uses of scurvy-grass, lovage and sneezewort and not taking in a word of
it.
These plantes are moste efficacious in the inflaming of the braine, and ar
e therefore much used in Confusing and Befuddlement Draughts, where the wizard
is desirous of producing hot-headedness and recklessness . . .
. . . Hermione said Sirius was becoming reckless cooped up in Grimmauld Pl
ace . . .
. . . moste efficacious in the inflaming of the braine, and are therefore
much used . . .
. . . the Daily Prophet would think his brain was inflamed if they found o
ut that he knew what Voldemort was feeling . . .
. . . therefore much used in Confusing and Befuddlement Draughts . . .
. . . confusing was the word, all right; why did he know what Voldemort wa
s feeling? What was this weird connection between them, which Dumbledore had n
ever been able to explain satisfactorily?
. . . where the wizard is desirous . . .
. . . how Harry would like to sleep . . .
. . . of producing hot-headedness . . .
. . . it was warm and comfortable in his armchair before the fire, with th
e rain still beating heavily on the windowpanes, Crookshanks purring, and the
crackling of the flames . . .
The book slipped from Harry's slack grip and landed with a dull thud on th
e hearthrug. His head lolled sideways . . .
He was walking once more along a windowless corridor, his footsteps echoin
g in the silence. As the door at the end of the passage loomed larger, his hea
rt beat fast with excitement . . . if he could only open it . . . enter beyond
. . .
He stretched out his hand . . . his fingertips were inches from it . . .
'Harry Potter, sir!'
He awoke with a start. The candles had all been extinguished in the common
room, but there was something moving close by.
'Whozair?' said Harry, sitting upright in his chair. The fire was almost o
ut, the room very dark.
'Dobby has your owl, sir!' said a squeaky voice.
'Dobby?' said Harry thickly, peering through the gloom towards the source
of the voice.
Dobby the house-elf was standing beside the table on which Hermione had le
ft half a dozen of her knitted hats. His large, pointed ears were now sticking
out from beneath what looked like all the hats Hermione had ever knitted; he
was wearing one on top of the other, so that his head seemed elongated by two
or three feet, and on the very topmost bobble sat Hedwig, hooting serenely and
obviously cured.
'Dobby volunteered to return Harry Potter's owl,' said the elf squeakily,
with a look of positive adoration on his face, 'Professor Grubbly-Plank says s
he is all well now, sir.' He sank into a deep bow so that his pencil-like nose
brushed the threadbare surface of the hearthrug and Hedwig gave an indignant
hoot and fluttered on to the arm of Harry's chair.
Thanks, Dobby!' said Harry, stroking Hedwig's head and blinking hard, tryi
ng to rid himself of the image of the door in his dream . . . it had been very
vivid. Surveying Dobby more closely, he noticed that the elf was also wearing
several scarves and innumerable socks, so that his feet looked far too big fo
r his body.
'Er . . . have you been taking all the clothes Hermione's been leaving out
?'
'Oh, no, sir,' said Dobby happily. 'Dobby has been taking some for Winky,
too, sir.'
'Yeah, how is Winky?' asked Harry.
Bobby's ears drooped slightly.
'Winky is still drinking lots, sir,' he said sadly, his enormous round gre
en eyes, large as tennis balls, downcast. 'She still does not care for clothes
, Harry Potter. Nor do the other house-elves. None of them will clean Gryffind
or Tower any more, not with the hats and socks hidden everywhere, they finds t
hem insulting, sir. Dobby does it all himself, sir, but Dobby does not mind, s
ir, for he always hopes to meet Harry Potter and tonight, sir, he has got his
wish!' Dobby sank into a deep bow again. 'But Harry Potter does not seem happy
,' Dobby went on, straightening up again and kicking timidly at Harry. 'Dobby
heard him muttering in his sleep. Was Harry Potter having bad dreams?'
'Not really bad,' said Harry, yawning and rubbing his eyes. 'I've had wors
e.'
The elf surveyed Harry out of his vast, orb-like eyes. Then he said very s
eriously, his ears drooping, 'Dobby wishes he could help Harry Potter, for Har
ry Potter set Dobby free and Dobby is much, much happier now.'
Harry smiled.
'You can't help me, Dobby, but thanks for the offer.'
He bent and picked up his Potions book. He'd have to try to finish the ess
ay tomorrow. He closed the book and as he did so the firelight illuminated the
thin white scars on the back of his hand - the result of his detentions with
Umbridge . . .
Wait a moment - there is something you can do for me, Dobby,' said Harry s
lowly.
The elf looked round, beaming.
'Name it, Harry Potter, sir!'
'I need to find a place where twenty-eight people can practise Defence Aga
inst the Dark Arts without being discovered by any of the teachers. Especially
,' Harry clenched his hand on the book, so that the scars shone pearly white,
'Professor Umbridge.'
He expected the elf's smile to vanish, his ears to droop; he expected him
to say it was impossible, or else that he would try to find somewhere, but his
hopes were not high. What he had not expected was for Dobby to give a little
skip, his ears waggling cheerfully, and clap his hands together.
'Dobby knows the perfect place, sir!' he said happily. 'Dobby heard tell o
f it from the other house-elves when he came to Hogwarts, sir. It is known by
us as the Come and Go Room, sir, or else as the Room of Requirement!'
'Why?' said Harry curiously.
'Because it is a room that a person can only enter,' said Dobby seriously,
'when they have real need of it. Sometimes it is there, and sometimes it is n
ot, but when it appears, it is always equipped for the seeker's needs. Dobby h
as used it, sir,' said the elf, dropping his voice and looking guilty, 'when W
inky has been very drunk; he has hidden her in the Room of Requirement and he
has found antidotes to Butterbeer there, and a nice elf-sized bed to settle he
r on while she sleeps it off, sir . . . and Dobby knows Mr Filch has found ext
ra cleaning materials there when he has run short, sir, and - '
'And if you really needed a bathroom,' said Harry, suddenly remembering so
mething Dumbledore had said at the Yule Ball the previous Christmas, 'would it
fill itself with chamber pots?'
'Dobby expects so, sir,' said Dobby, nodding earnestly. 'It is a most amaz
ing room, sir.'
'How many people know about it?' said Harry, sitting up straight er in his
chair.
'Very few, sir. Mostly people stumbles across it when they needs it, sir,
but often they never finds it again, for they do not know that it is always th
ere waiting to be called into service, sir.'
'It sounds brilliant,' said Harry, his heart racing. 'It sounds perfect, D
obby. When can you show me where it is?'
'Any time, Harry Potter, sir,' said Dobby, looking delighted at Harry's en
thusiasm. 'We could go now, if you like!'
For a moment Harry was tempted to go with Dobby. He was halfway out of his
seat, intending to hurry upstairs for his Invisibility Cloak when, not for th
e first time, a voice very much like Hermione's whispered in his ear: reckless
. It was, after all, very late, he was exhausted, and had Snape's essay to fin
ish.
'Not tonight, Dobby,' said Harry reluctantly, sinking back into his chair.
This is really important . . . I don't want to blow it, it'll need proper pla
nning. Listen, can you just tell me exactly where this Room of Requirement is,
and how to get in there?'
*
Their robes billowed and swirled around them as they splashed across the flood
ed vegetable patch to double Herbology where they could hardly hear what Profe
ssor Sprout was saying over the hammering of raindrops hard as hailstones on t
he greenhouse roof. The afternoon's Care of Magical Creatures lesson was to be
relocated from the storm-swept grounds to a free classroom on the ground floo
r and, to their intense relief, Angelina had sought out her team at lunch to t
ell them that Quidditch practice was cancelled.
'Good,' said Harry quietly, when she. told him, 'because we've found somew
here to have our first Defence meeting. Tonight, eight o'clock, seventh floor
opposite that tapestry of Barnabas the Barmy being clubbed by those trolls. Ca
n you tell Katie and Alicia?'
She looked slightly taken aback but promised to tell the others. Harry ret
urned hungrily to his sausages and mash. When he looked up to take a drink of
pumpkin juice, he found Hermione watching him.
'What?' he said thickly.
Well . . . it's just that Dobby's plans aren't always that safe. Don't you
remember when he lost you all the bones in your arm?'
This room isn't just some mad idea of Dobby's; Dumbledore knows about it,
too, he mentioned it to me at the Yule Ball.'
Hermione's expression cleared.
'Dumbledore told you about it?'
'Just in passing,' said Harry, shrugging.
'Oh, well, that's all right then,' said Hermione briskly and raised no mor
e objections.
Together - 'with Ron they had spent most of the day seeking out those peop
le who had signed their names to the list in the Hog's Head and telling them w
here to meet that evening. Somewhat to Harry's disappointment, it was Ginny wh
o managed to find Cho Chang and her friend first; however, by the end of dinne
r he was confident that the news had been passed to every one of the twenty-fi
ve people who had turned up in the Hog's Head.
At half past seven Harry, Ron and Hermione left the Gryffindor common room
, Harry clutching a certain piece of aged parchment in his hand. Fifth-years w
ere allowed to be out in the corridors until nine o'clock, but all three of th
em kept looking around nervously as they made their way along the seventh floo
r.
'Hold it,' Harry warned, unfolding the piece of parchment at the top of th
e last staircase, tapping it with his wand and muttering, 'I solemnly swear th
at I am up to no good."
A map of Hogwarts appeared on the blank surface of the parchment. Tiny bla
ck moving dots, labelled with names, showed where various people were.
'Filch is on the second floor,' said Harry, holding the map close to his e
yes, 'and Mrs Norris is on the fourth.'
'And Umbridge?' said Hermione anxiously.
'In her office,' said Harry, pointing. 'OK, let's go.'
They hurried along the corridor to the place Dobby had described to Harry,
a stretch of blank wall opposite an enormous tapestry depicting Barnabas the
Barmy's foolish attempt to train trolls for the ballet.
'OK,' said Harry quietly, while a moth-eaten troll paused in his relentles
s clubbing of the would-be ballet teacher to watch them. 'Dobby said to walk p
ast this bit of wall three times, concentrating hard on what we need.'
They did so, turning sharply at the window just beyond the blank stretch o
f wall, then at the man-sized vase on its other side. Ron had screwed up his e
yes in concentration; Hermione was whispering something under her breath; Harr
y's fists were clenched as he stared ahead of him.
We need somewhere to learn to fight . . . he thought. Just give us a place
to practise . . . somewhere they can't find us . . .
'Harry!' said Hermione sharply, as they wheeled around after their third w
alk past.
A highly polished door had appeared in the wall. Ron was staring at it, lo
oking slightly wary. Harry reached out, seized the brass handle, pulled open t
he door and led the way into a spacious room lit with flickering torches like
those that illuminated the dungeons eight floors below.
The walls were lined with wooden bookcases and instead of chairs the re we
re large silk cushions on the floor. A set of shelves at the far end of the ro
om carried a range of instruments such as Sneakoscopes, Secrecy Sensors and a
large, cracked Foe-Glass that Harry was sure had hung, the previous year, in t
he fake Moody's office.
These will be good when we're practising Stunning,' said Ron enthusiastica
lly, prodding one of the cushions with his foot.
'And just look at these books!' said Hermione excitedly, running a finger
along the spines of the large leather-bound tomes. 'A Compendium of Common Cur
ses and their Counter-Actions . . . The Dark Arts Outsmarted . . . Self-Defens
ive Spellwork . . . wow . . .' She looked around at Harry, her face glowing, a
nd he saw that the presence of hundreds of books had finally convinced Hermion
e that what they were doing was right. 'Harry, this is wonderful, there's ever
ything we need here!'
And without further ado she slid Jinxes for the Jinxed from its shelf, san
k on to the nearest cushion and began to read.
There was a gentle knock on the door. Harry looked round. Ginny, Neville,
Lavender, Parvati and Dean had arrived.
'Whoa,' said Dean, staring around, impressed. 'What is this place?'
Harry began to explain, but before he had finished more people had arrived
and he had to start all over again. By the time eight o'clock arrived, every
cushion was occupied. Harry moved across to the door and turned the key protru
ding from the lock; it clicked in a satisfyingly loud way and everybody fell s
ilent, looking at him. Hermione carefully marked her page of Jinxes for the Ji
nxed and set the book aside.
'Well,' said Harry, slightly nervously. This is the place we've found for
practice sessions, and you've - er - obviously found it OK.'
'It's fantastic!' said Cho, and several people murmured their agreement.
'It's bizarre,' said Fred, frowning around at it. 'We once hid from Filch
in here, remember, George? But it was just a broom cupboard then.'
'Hey, Harry, what's this stuff?' asked Dean from the rear of the room, ind
icating the Sneakoscopes and the Foe-Glass.
'Dark detectors,' said Harry, stepping between the cushions to reach them.
'Basically they all show when Dark wizards or enemies are around, but you don
't want to rely on them too much, they can be fooled
He gazed for a moment into the cracked Foe-Glass; shadowy figures were mov
ing around inside it, though none was recognisable. He turned his back on it.
'Well, I've been thinking about the sort of stuff we ought to do first and
- er - ' He noticed a raised hand. 'What, Hermione?'
'I think we ought to elect a leader,' said Hermione.
'Harry's leader,' said Cho at once, looking at Hermione as though she were
mad.
Harry's stomach did yet another back-flip.
'Yes, but I think we ought to vote on it properly,' said Hermione, unpertu
rbed. 'It makes it formal and it gives him authority. So - 'everyone who think
s Harry ought to be our leader?'
Everybody put up their hand, even Zacharias Smith, though he did it very h
alf-heartedly.
'Er - right, thanks,' said Harry, who could feel his face burning. 'And -
what, Hermione?'
'I also think we ought to have a name,' she said brightly, her hand still
in the air. 'It would promote a feeling of team spirit and unity, don't you th
ink?'
'Can we be the Anti-Umbridge League?' said Angelina hopefully.
'Or the Ministry of Magic are Morons Group?' suggested Fred.
'I was thinking,' said Hermione, frowning at Fred, 'more of a name that di
dn't tell everyone what we were up to, so we can refer to it safely outside me
etings.'
The Defence Association?' said Cho. 'The DA for short, so nobody knows wha
t we're talking about?'
'Yeah, the DA's good,' said Ginny. 'Only let's make it stand for Dumbledor
e's Army, because that's the Ministry's worst fear, isn't it?'
There was a good deal of appreciative murmuring and laughter at this.
'All in favour of the DA?' said Hermione bossily, kneeling up on her cushi
on to count. That's a majority - motion passed!'
She pinned the piece of parchment with all of their signatures on it on to
the wall and wrote across the top in large letters:
DUMBLEDORE'S ARMY
'Right,' said Harry, when she had sat down again, 'shall we get practising the
n? I was thinking, the first thing we should do is Expelliarmus, you know, the
Disarming Charm. I know it's pretty basic but I've found it really useful - '
'Oh, please,' said Zacharias Smith, rolling his eyes and folding his arms.
'I don't think Expelliarmus is exactly going to help us against You-Know-Who,
do you?'
'I've used it against him,' said Harry quietly. 'It saved my life in June.
'
Smith opened his mouth stupidly. The rest of the room was very quiet.
'But if you think it's beneath you, you can leave,' Harry said.
Smith did not move. Nor did anybody else.
'OK,' said Harry, his mouth slightly drier than usual with all these eyes
upon him, 'I reckon we should all divide into pairs and practise.'
It felt very odd to be issuing instructions, but not nearly as odd as seei
ng them followed. Everybody got to their feet at once and divided up. Predicta
bly, Neville was left partnerless.
You can practise with me,' Harry told him. 'Right - on the count of three,
then - one, two, three - '
The room was suddenly full of shouts of Expelliarmus. Wands flew in all di
rections; missed spells hit books on shelves and sent them flying into the air
. Harry was too quick for Neville, whose wand went spinning out of his hand, h
it the ceiling in a shower of sparks and landed with a clatter on top of a boo
kshelf, from which Harry retrieved it with a Summoning Charm. Glancing around,
he thought he had been right to suggest they practise the basics first; there
was a lot of shoddy spellwork going on; many people were not succeeding in Di
sarming their opponents at all, but merely causing them to jump backwards a fe
w paces or wince as their feeble spell whooshed over them.
'Expelliarmus! said Neville, and Harry, caught unawares, tell his wand fly
out of his hand.
'I DID IT!' said Neville gleefully. 'I've never done it before - I DID IT!
'
'Good one!' said Harry encouragingly, deciding not to point out that in a
real duel Neville's opponent was unlikely to be staring in the opposite direct
ion with his wand held loosely at his side. 'Listen, Neville, can you take it
in turns to practise with Ron and Hermione for a couple of minutes so I can wa
lk around and see how the rest are doing?'
Harry moved off into the middle of the room. Something very odd was happen
ing to Zacharias Smith. Every time he opened his mouth to disarm Anthony Golds
tein, his own wand would fly out of his hand, yet Anthony did not seem to be m
aking a sound. Harry did not have to look far to solve the mystery: Fred and G
eorge were several feet from Smith and taking it in turns to point their wands
at his back.
'Sorry Harry,' said George hastily, when Harry caught his eye. 'Couldn't r
esist.'
Harry walked around the other pairs, trying to correct those who were doin
g the spell wrong. Ginny was teamed with Michael Corner; she was doing very we
ll, whereas Michael was either very bad or unwilling to jinx her. Ernie Macmil
lan was flourishing his wand unnecessarily, giving his partner time to get in
under his guard; the Creevey brothers were enthusiastic but erratic and mainly
responsible for all the books leaping off the shelves around them; Luna Loveg
ood was similarly patchy, occasionally sending Justin Finch-Fletchleys wand sp
inning out of his hand, at other times merely causing his hair to stand on end
.
'OK, stop!' Harry shouted. 'Stop.' STOP!'
I need a whistle, he thought, and immediately spotted one lying on top of
the nearest row of books. He caught it up and blew hard. Everyone lowered thei
r wands.
That wasn't bad,' said Harry, 'but there's definite room for improvement.'
Zacharias Smith glared at him. 'Let's try again.'
He moved off around the room again, stopping here and there to make sugges
tions. Slowly, the general performance improved.
He: avoided going near Cho and her friend for a while, but after walking t
wice around every other pair in the room felt he could not ignore them any lon
ger.
'Oh no,' said Cho rather wildly as he approached. 'Expelliarmious! I mean,
Expellimellius! I - oh, sorry, Marietta!'
Her curly-haired friend's sleeve had caught fire; Marietta extinguished it
with her own wand and glared at Harry as though it was his fault.
'You made me nervous, I was doing all right before then!' Cho told Harry r
uefully.
That was quite good,' Harry lied, but when she raised her eyebrows he said
, 'Well, no, it was lousy, but I know you can do it properly, I was watching f
rom over there.'
She laughed. Her friend Marietta looked at them rather sourly and turned a
way.
'Don't mind her,' Cho muttered. 'She doesn't really want to be here but I
made her come with me. Her parents have forbidden her to do anything that migh
t upset Umbridge. You see - her mum works for the Ministry.'
What about your parents?' asked Harry.
Well, they've forbidden me to get on the wrong side of Umbridge, too,' sai
d Cho, drawing herself up proudly. 'But if they think I'm not going to fight Y
ou-Know-Who after what happened to Cedric - '
She broke off, looking rather confused, and an awkward silence fell betwee
n them; Terry Boot's wand went whizzing past Harry's ear and hit Alicia Spinne
t hard on the nose.
Well, my dad is very supportive of any anti-Ministry action!' said Luna Lo
vegood proudly from just behind Harry; evidently she had been eavesdropping on
his conversation while Justin Finch - 'Fletchley attempted to disentangle him
self from the robes that had flown up over his head. 'He's always saying he'd
believe anything of Fudge; I mean, the number of goblins Fudge has had assassi
nated! And of course he uses the Department of Mysteries to develop terrible p
oisons, which he secretly feeds to anybody who disagrees with him. And then th
ere's his Umgubular Slashkilter - '
'Don't ask,' Harry muttered to Cho as she opened her mouth, looking puzzle
d. She giggled.
'Hey, Harry,' Hermione called from the other end of the room, 'have you ch
ecked the time?'
He looked down at his watch and was shocked to see it was already ten past
nine, which meant they needed to get back to their common rooms immediately o
r risk being caught and punished by Filch for being out of bounds. He blew his
whistle; everybody stopped shouting 'Expelliarmus' and the last couple of wan
ds clattered to the floor.
'Well, that was pretty good,' said Harry, 'but we've overrun, we'd better
leave it here. Same time, same place next week?'
'Sooner!' said Dean Thomas eagerly and many people nodded in agreement.
Angelina, however, said quickly, The Quidditch season's about to start, we
need team practices too!'
'Let's say next Wednesday night, then,' said Harry, 'we can decide on addi
tional meetings then. Come on, we'd better get going.'
He pulled out the Marauder's Map again and checked it carefully for signs
of teachers on the seventh floor. He let them all leave in threes and fours, w
atching their tiny dots anxiously to see that they returned safely to their do
rmitories: the Hufflepuffs to the basement corridor that also led to the kitch
ens; the Ravenclaws to a tower on the west side of the castle, and the Gryffin
dors along the corridor to the Fat Lady's portrait.
That was really, really good, Harry,' said Hermione, when finally it was j
ust her, Harry and Ron who were left.
'Yeah, it was!' said Ron enthusiastically, as they slipped out of the door
and watched it melt back into stone behind them. 'Did you see me disarm Hermi
one, Harry?'
'Only once,' said Hermione, stung. 'I got you loads more than you got me -
'
'I did not only get you once, I got you at least three times - '
'Well, if you're counting the one where you tripped over your own feet and
knocked the wand out of my hand - '
They argued all the way back to the common room, but Harry was not listeni
ng to them. He had one eye on the Marauder's Map, but he was also thinking of
Cho saying he made her nervous.
- CHAPTER NINETEEN -
The Lion and the Serpant
Harry felt as though he were carrying some kind of talisman inside his chest o
ver the following two weeks, a glowing secret that supported him through Umbri
dge's classes and even made it possible for him to smile blandly as he looked
into her horrible bulging eyes. He and the DA were resisting her under her ver
y nose, doing the very thing she and the Ministry most feared, and whenever he
was supposed to be reading Wilbert Slinkhard's book during her lessons he dwe
lled instead on satisfying memories of their most recent meetings, remembering
how Neville had successfully disarmed Hermione, how Colin Creevey had mastere
d the Impediment Jinx after three meetings' hard effort, how Parvati Patil had
produced such a good Reductor Curse that she had reduced the table carrying a
ll the Sneakoscopes to dust.
He was finding it almost impossible to fix a regular night of the week for
the DA meetings, as they had to accommodate three separate: team's Quidditch
practices, which were often rearranged due to bad weather conditions; but Harr
y was not sorry about this; he had a feeling that it was probably better to ke
ep the timing of their meetings unpredictable. If anyone was watching them, it
would be hard to make out a pattern.
Hermione soon devised a very clever method of communicating the time and d
ate of the next meeting to all the members in case they needed to change it at
short notice, because it would look suspicious if people from different House
s were seen crossing the Great Hall to talk to each other too often. She gave
each of the members of the DA a fake Galleon (Ron became very excited when he
first saw the basket and was convinced she was actually giving out gold).
'You see the numerals around the edge of the coins?' Hermione said, holdin
g one up for examination at the end of their fourth meeting. The coin gleamed
fat and yellow in the light from the torches. 'On real Galleons that's just a
serial number referring to the goblin who cast the coin. On these fake coins,
though, the numbers will change to reflect the time and date of the next meeti
ng. The coins will grow hot when the date changes, so if you're carrying them
in a pocket you'll be able to feel them. We take one each, and when Harry sets
the date of the next meeting he'll change the numbers on his coin, and becaus
e I've put a Protean Charm on them, they'll all change to mimic his.'
A blank silence greeted Hermione's words. She looked around at all the fac
es upturned to her, rather disconcerted.
'Well - I thought it was a good idea,' she said uncertainly, 'I mean, even
if Umbridge asked us to turn out our pockets, there's nothing fishy about car
rying a Galleon, is there? But . . . well, if you don't want to use them - '
'You can do a Protean Charm?' said Terry Boot
'Yes,' said Hermione.
'But that's . . . that's NEWT standard, that is,' he said weakly.
'Oh,' said Hermione, trying to look modest. 'Oh . . . well . . . yes, I su
ppose it is.'
'How come you're not in Ravenclaw?' he demanded, staring at Hermione with
something close to wonder. 'With brains like yours?'
Well, the Sorting Hat did seriously consider putting me in Ravenclaw durin
g my Sorting,' said Hermione brightly, 'but it decided on Gryffindor in the en
d. So, does that mean we're using the Galleons?'
There was a murmur of assent and everybody moved forwards to collect one f
rom the basket. Harry looked sideways at Hermione.
'You know what these remind me of?'
'No, what's that?'
The Death Eaters' scars. Voldemort touches one of them, and all their scar
s burn, and they know they've got to join him.'
'Well . . . yes,' said Hermione quietly, 'that is where I got the idea . .
. but you'll notice I decided to engrave the date on bits of metal rather tha
n on our members' skin.'
'Yeah . . . I prefer your way,' said Harry, grinning, as he slipped his; G
alleon into his pocket. 'I suppose the only danger with these is that we might
accidentally spend them.'
'Fat chance,' said Ron, who was examining his own fake Galleon with a slig
htly mournful air, 'I haven't got any real Galleons to confuse it with.'
As the first Quidditch match of the season, Gryffindor versus Slytherin, d
rew nearer, their DA meetings were put on hold because Angelina insisted on al
most daily practices. The fact that the Quidditch Cup had not been held for so
long added considerably to the interest and excitement surrounding the forthc
oming game; the: Ravenclaws and Hufflepuffs were taking a lively interest in t
he outcome, for they, of course, would be playing both teams over the coming y
ear; and the Heads of House of the competing teams, though they attempted to d
isguise it under a decent pretence of sportsmanship, were determined to see th
eir own side victorious. Harry realised how much Professor McGonagall cared ab
out beating Slytherin when she abstained from giving them homework in the week
leading up to the match.
I think you've got enough to be getting on with at the moment,' she; said
loftily. Nobody could quite believe their ears until she looked directly at Ha
rry and Ron and said grimly, 'I've become accustomed to seeing the Quidditch C
up in my study, boys, and I really don't want to have to hand it over to Profe
ssor Snape, so use the extra time to practise, won't you?'
Snape was no less obviously partisan; he had booked the Quidditch pitch fo
r Slytherin practice so often that the Gryffindors had difficulty getting on i
t to play. He was also turning a deaf ear to the many reports of Slytherin att
empts to hex Gryffindor players in the corridors. When Alicia Spinnet turned u
p in the hospital wing with her eyebrows growing so thick and fast they obscur
ed her vision and obstructed her mouth, Snape insisted that she must have atte
mpted a Hair-thickening Charm on herself and refused to listen to the fourteen
eye-witnesses who insisted they had seen the Slytherin Keeper, Miles Bletchle
y, hit her from behind with a jinx while she worked in the library.
Harry felt optimistic about Gryffindors chances; they had, after all, neve
r lost to Malfoy's team. Admittedly, Ron was still not performing to Wood's st
andard, but he was working extremely hard to improve. His greatest weakness wa
s a tendency to lose confidence after he'd made a blunder; if he let in one go
al he became flustered and was therefore likely to miss more. On the other han
d, Harry had seen Ron make some truly spectacular saves when he was on form; d
uring one memorable practice he had hung one-handed from his broom and kicked
the Quaffle so hard away from the goalhoop that it soared the length of the pi
tch and through the centre hoop at the other end; the rest of the team felt th
is save compared favourably with one made recently by Barry Ryan, the Irish In
ternational Keeper, against Poland's top Chaser, Ladislaw Zamojski. Even Fred
had said that Ron might yet make him and George proud, and that they were seri
ously considering admitting he was related to them, something they assured him
they had been trying to deny for four years.
The only thing really worrying Harry was how much Ron was allowing the tac
tics of the Slytherin team to upset him before they even got on to the pitch.
Harry, of course, had endured their snide comments for over four years, so whi
spers of, 'Hey, Potty, I heard Warrington's sworn to knock you off your broom
on Saturday', far from chilling his blood, made him laugh. 'Warrington's aim's
so pathetic I'd be more worried if he was aiming for the person next to me,'
he retorted, which made Ron and Hermione laugh and wiped the smirk off Pansy P
arkinson's face.
But Ron had never endured a relentless campaign of insults, jeers and inti
midation. When Slytherins, some of them seventh-years and considerably larger
than he was, muttered as they passed in the corridors, 'Got your bed booked in
the hospital wing, Weasley?' he didn't laugh, but turned a delicate shade of
green. When Draco Malfoy imitated Ron dropping the Quaffle (which he did whene
ver they came within sight of each other), Ron's ears glowed red and his hands
shook so badly that he was likely to drop whatever he was holding at the time
, too.
October extinguished itself in a rush of howling winds and driving rain an
d November arrived, cold as frozen iron, with hard frosts every morning and ic
y draughts that bit at exposed hands and faces. The skies and the ceiling of t
he Great Hall turned a pale, pearly grey, the mountains around Hogwarts were s
nowcapped, and the temperature in the castle dropped so low that many students
wore their thick protective dragonskin gloves in the corridors between lesson
s.
The morning of the match dawned bright and cold. When Harry awoke he looke
d round at Ron's bed and saw him sitting bolt upright, his arms around his kne
es, staring fixedly into space.
'You all right?' said Harry.
Ron nodded but did not speak. Harry was reminded forcibly of the time Ron
had accidentally put a Slug-vomiting Charm on himself; he looked just as pale
and sweaty as he had done then, not to mention as reluctant to open his mouth.
'You just need some breakfast,' Harry said bracingly. 'C'mon.'
The Great Hall was filling up fast when they arrived, the talk louder and
the mood more exuberant than usual. As they passed the Slytherin table there w
as an upsurge of noise. Harry looked round and saw that, in addition to the us
ual green and silver scarves and hats, every one of them was wearing a silver
badge in the shape of what seemed to be a crown. For some reason many of them
waved at Ron, laughing uproariously. Harry tried to see what was written on th
e badges as he walked by, but he was too concerned to get Ron past their table
quickly to linger long enough to read them.
They received a rousing welcome at the Gryffindor table, where everyone wa
s wearing red and gold, but far from raising Ron's spirits the cheers seemed t
o sap the last of his morale; he collapsed on to the nearest bench looking as
though he were facing his final meal.
'I must've been mental to do this,' he said in a croaky whisper. 'Mental.'
'Don't be thick,' said Harry firmly, passing him a choice of cereals, 'you
're going to be fine. It's normal to be nervous.'
'I'm rubbish,' croaked Ron. 'I'm lousy. I can't play to save my life. What
was I thinking?'
'Get a grip,' said Harry sternly. 'Look at that save you made with your fo
ot the other day, even Fred and George said it was brilliant.'
Ron turned a tortured face to Harry.
'That was an accident,' he whispered miserably. 'I didn't mean to do it -
I slipped off my broom when none of you were looking and when I was trying to
get back on I kicked the Quaffle by accident.'
'Well,' said Harry, recovering quickly from this unpleasant surprise, 'a f
ew more accidents like that and the game's in the bag, isn't it?'
Hermione and Ginny sat down opposite them wearing red and gold scarves, gl
oves and rosettes.
'How're you feeling?' Ginny asked Ron, who was now staring into the dregs
of milk at the bottom of his empty cereal bowl as though seriously considering
attempting to drown himself in them.
'He's just nervous,' said Harry.
'Well, that's a good sign, I never feel you perform as well in exams if yo
u're not a bit nervous,' said Hermione heartily.
'Hello,' said a vague and dreamy voice from behind them. Harry looked up:
Luna Lovegood had drifted over from the Ravenclaw table. Many people were star
ing at her and a few were openly laughing and pointing; she had managed to pro
cure a hat shaped like a life-size lion's head, which was perched precariously
on her head.
'I'm supporting Gryffindor,' said Luna, pointing unnecessarily at her hat.
'Look what it does . . .'
She reached up and tapped the hat with her wand. It opened its mouth wide
and gave an extremely realistic roar that made everyone in the vicinity jump.
'It's good, isn't it?' said Luna happily. 'I wanted to have it chewing up
a serpent to represent Slytherin, you know, but there wasn't time. Anyway . .
. good luck, Ronald!'
She drifted away. They had not quite recovered from the shock of Luna's ha
t before Angelina came hurrying towards them, accompanied by Katie and Alicia,
whose eyebrows had mercifully been returned to normal by Madam Pomfrey.
'When you're ready,' she said, 'we're going to go straight down to the pit
ch, check out conditions and change.'
'We'll be there in a bit,' Harry assured her. 'Ron's just got to have some
breakfast.'
It became clear after ten minutes, however, that Ron was not capable of ea
ting anything more and Harry thought it best to get him down to the changing r
ooms. As they rose from the table, Hermione go; up, too, and taking Harry's ar
m she drew him to one side.
'Don't let Ron see what's on those Slytherins' badges,' she whispered urge
ntly.
Harry looked questioningly at her, but she shook her head warningly; Ron h
ad just ambled over to them, looking lost and desperate.
'Good luck, Ron,' said Hermione, standing on tiptoe and kissing him on the
cheek. 'And you, Harry - '
Ron seemed to come to himself slightly as they walked back across the Grea
t Hall. He touched the spot on his face where Hermione had kissed him, looking
puzzled, as though he was not quite sure what had just happened. He seemed to
o distracted to notice much around him, but Harry cast a curious glance at the
crown-shaped badges as they passed the Slytherin table, and this time he made
out the words etched on to them:
Weasley is our King
With an unpleasant feeling that this could mean nothing good, he hurried Ron a
cross the Entrance Hall, clown the stone steps and out into the icy air.
The frosty grass crunched under their feet as they hurried down the slopin
g lawns towards the stadium. There was no wind at all and the sky was a unifor
m pearly white, which meant that visibility would be good without the drawback
of direct sunlight in the eyes. Harry pointed out these encouraging factors t
o Ron as they walked, but he was not sure that Ron was listening.
Angelina had changed already and was talking to the rest of the team when
they entered. Harry and Ron pulled on their robes (Ron attempted to do his up
back-to-front for several minutes before Alicia took pity on him and went to h
elp), then sat down to listen to the pre-match talk while the babble of voices
outside grew steadily louder as the crowd came pouring out of the castle towa
rds the pitch.
'OK, I've only just found out the final line-up for Slytherin,' said Angel
ina, consulting a piece of parchment. 'Last year's Beaters,
Derrick and Bole, have left, but it looks as though Montague's replaced th
em with the usual gorillas, rather than anyone who c an fly particularly well.
They're two blokes called Crabbe and Goyle, I don't know much about them - '
'We do,' said Harry and Ron together.
'Well, they don't look bright enough to tell one end of a broom from the o
ther,' said Angelina, pocketing her parchment, 'but then I was always surprise
d Derrick and Bole managed to find their way on to the pitch without signposts
.'
'Crabbe and Goyle are in the same mould,' Harry assured her.
They could hear hundreds of footsteps mounting the banked benches of the s
pectators' stands. Some people were singing, though Harry could not make out t
he words. He was starting to feel nervous, but he knew his butterflies were as
nothing compared to Ron's, who was clutching his stomach and staring straight
ahead again, his jaw set and his complexion pale grey.
'It's time,' said Angelina in a hushed voice, looking at her watch. 'C'mon
everyone . . . good luck.'
The team rose, shouldered their brooms and marched in single file out of t
he changing room and into the dazzling sunlight, A roar of sound greeted them
in which Harry could still hear singing, though it was muffled by the cheers a
nd whistles.
The Slytherin team was standing waiting for them. They, too, were wearing
those silver crown-shaped badges. The new Captain, Montague, was built along t
he same lines as Dudley Dursley with massive forearms like hairy hams. Behind
him lurked Crabbe and Goyle, almost as large, blinking stupidly in the sunligh
t, swinging their new Beaters' bats. Malfoy stood to one side, the sunlight gl
eaming on his white-blond head. He caught Harry's eye and smirked, tapping the
crown-shaped badge on his chest.
'Captains, shake hands,' ordered the referee Madam Hooch, as Angelina and
Montague reached each other. Harry could tell that Montague was trying to crus
h Angelina's fingers, though she did not wince. 'Mount your brooms . . .'
Madam Hooch placed her whistle in her mouth and blew.
The balls were released and the fourteen players shot upwards. Out of the
corner of his eye Harry saw Ron streak off towards the goalhoops. Harry zoomed
higher, dodging a Bludger, and set off on a wide lap of the pitch, gazing aro
und for a glint of gold; on the other side of the stadium, Draco Malfoy was do
ing exactly the same.
'And it's Johnson - 'Johnson with the Quaffle, what a player that girl is,
I've been saying it for years but she still won't go out with me - '
JORDAN!' yelled Professor McGonagall.
' - just a fun fact, Professor, adds a bit of interest - and she's ducked
Warrington, she's passed Montague, she's - ouch - been hit from behind by a Bl
udger from Crabbe . . . Montague catches the Quaffle, Montague heading back up
the pitch and - nice Bludger there from George Weasley, that's a Bludger to t
he head for Montague, he drops the Quaffle, caught by Katie Bell, Katie Bell o
f Gryffindor reverse-passes to Alicia Spinnet and Spinnet's away - '
Lee Jordan's commentary rang through the stadium and Harry listened as har
d as he could through the wind whistling in his ears and the din of the crowd,
all yelling and booing and singing.
' - dodges Warrington, avoids a Bludger - close call, Alicia - and the cro
wd are loving this, just listen to them, what's that they're singing?'
And as Lee paused to listen, the song rose loud and clear from the sea of
green and silver in the Slytherin section of the stands:
'Weasley cannot save a thing,
He cannot block a single ring,
That's why Slytherins all sing:
Weasley is our King.
'Weasley was born in a bin
He always lets the Quaffle in
Weasley will make sure we win
Weasley is our King.'
' - and Alicia passes back to Angelina!' Lee shouted, and as Harry swerved, hi
s insides boiling at what he had just heard, he knew Lee was trying to drown o
ut the words of the song. 'Come on now, Angelina - looks like she's got just t
he Keeper to beat! - SHE SHOOTS - SHE - aaaah . . .'
Bletchley, the Slytherin Keeper, had saved the goal; he threw the Quaffle
to Warrington who sped off with it, zig-zagging in between Alicia and Katie; t
he singing from below grew louder and louder as he drew nearer and nearer Ron.
'Weasley is our King,
Weasley is our King,
He always lets the Quaffle in
Weasley is our King.'
Harry could not help himself: abandoning his search for the Snitch, he wheeled
around to watch Ron, a lone figure at the far end of the pitch, hovering befo
re the three goalhoops while the massive Warrington pelted towards him.
' - and it's Warrington with the Quaffle, Warrington heading for goal, he'
s out of Bludger range with just the Keeper ahead - '
A great swell of song rose from the Slytherin stands below:
'Weasley cannot save a thing,
He cannot block a single ring . . .'
' - so it's the first test for new Gryffindor Keeper Weasley, brother of Beate
rs Fred and George, and a promising new talent on the team - come on, Ron!'
But the scream of delight came from the Slytherins' end: Ron had dived wil
dly, his arms wide, and the Quaffle had soared between them straight through R
on's central hoop.
'Slytherin score!' came Lee's voice amid the cheering and booing from the
crowds below, 'so that's ten-nil to Slytherin - bad luck, Ron.'
The Slytherins sang even louder:
'WEASLEY WAS BORN IN A BIN
HE ALWAYS LETS THE QUAFFLE IN. . .'
' - and Gryffindor back in possession and it's Katie Bell tanking up the pitch
- ' cried Lee valiantly, though the singing was now so deafening that he coul
d hardly make himself heard above it.
'WEASLEY WILL MAKE SURE WE WIN
WEASLEY IS OUR KING . . .'
'Harry, WHAT ARE YOU DOING?' screamed Angelina, soaring past him to keep up wi
th Katie. 'GET GOING!'
Harry realised he had been stationary in midair for over a minute, watchin
g the progress of the match without sparing a thought for the whereabouts of t
he Snitch; horrified, he went into a dive and started circling the pitch again
, staring around, trying to ignore the chorus now thundering through the stadi
um:
'WEASLEY IS OUR KING,
WEASLEY IS OUR KING . . .'
There was no sign of the Snitch anywhere he looked; Malfoy was still circling
the stadium just as he was. They passed one another midway around the pitch, g
oing in opposite directions, and Harry heard Malfoy singing loudly:
'WEASLEY WAS BORN IN A BIN . . .'
' - and it's Warrington again,' bellowed Lee, 'who passes to Pucey, Pucey's of
f past Spinnet, come on now, Angelina, you can take him - turns out you can't
- but nice Bludger from Fred Weasley I mean, George Weasley, oh, who cares, on
e of them, anyway, and Warrington drops the Quaffle and Katie Bell - er - drop
s it, too - so that's Montague with the Quaffle, Slytherin Captain Montague ta
kes the Quaffle and he's off up the pitch, come on now, Gryffindor, block him!
'
Harry zoomed around the end of the stadium behind the Slytherin goalhoops,
willing himself not to look at what was going on at Ron's end. As he sped pas
t the Slytherin Keeper, he heard Bletchley singing along with the crowd below:
'WEASLEY CANNOT SAVE A THING . . .'
' - and Pucey's dodged Alicia again and he's heading straight for goal, stop i
t, Ron!'
Harry did not have to look to see what had happened: there was a terrible
groan from the Gryffindor end, coupled with fresh screams and applause from th
e Slytherins. Looking down, Harry saw the pug-faced Pansy Parkinson right at t
he front of the stands, her back to the pitch as she conducted the Slytherin s
upporters who were roaring:
'THAT'S WHY SLYTHERINS ALL SING
WEASLEY IS OUR KING.'
But twenty-nil was nothing, there was still time for Gryffindor to catch up or
catch the Snitch. A few goals and they would be in the lead as usual, Harry a
ssured himself, bobbing and weaving through the other players in pursuit of so
mething shiny that turned out to be Montague's watchstrap.
But Ron let in two more goals. There was an edge of panic in Harry's desir
e to find the Snitch now. If he could just get it soon and finish the game qui
ckly.
' - and Katie Bell of Gryffindor dodges Pucey, ducks Montague, nice swerve,
Katie, and she throws to Johnson, Angelina Johnson takes the Quaffle, she's p
ast Warrington, she's heading for goal, come on now, Angelina - GRYFFINDOR SCO
RE! It's forty-ten, forty-ten to Slytherin and Pucey has the Quaffle . . .'
Harry could hear Luna's ludicrous lion hat roaring amidst the Gryffindor c
heers and felt heartened; only thirty points in it, that was nothing, they cou
ld pull back easily. Harry ducked a Bludger that Crabbe had sent rocketing in
his direction and resumed his frantic scouring of the pitch for the Snitch, ke
eping one eye on Malfoy in case he showed signs of having spotted it, but Malf
oy, like him, was continuing to soar around the stadium, searching fruitlessly
. . .
' - Pucey throws to Warrington, Warrington to Montague, Montague back to P
ucey - 'Johnson intervenes, Johnson takes the Quaffle, Johnson to Bell, this l
ooks good - I mean bad - Bell's hit by a Bludger from Goyle of Slytherin and i
t's Pucey in possession again . . .'
'WEASLEY WAS BORN IN A BIN
HE ALWAYS LETS THE QUAFFLE IN
WEASLEY WILL MAKE SURE WE WIN . . .'
But Harry had seen it at last: the tiny fluttering Golden Snitch was hover
ing feet from the ground at the Slytherin end of the pitch.
He dived . . .
In a matter of seconds, Malfoy was streaking out of the sky on Harry's lef
t, a green and silver blur lying flat on his broom . . .
The Snitch skirted the foot of one of the goalhoops and scooted off toward
s the other side of the stands; its change of direction suited Malfoy, who was
nearer; Harry pulled his Firebolt around, he and Malfoy were now neck and nec
k . . .
Feet from the ground, Harry lifted his right hand from his broom, stretchi
ng towards the Snitch . . . to his right, Malfoy's arm extended too, was reach
ing, groping . . .
It was over in two breathless, desperate, windswept seconds - 'Harry's fin
gers closed around the tiny, struggling ball - Malfoy's fingernails scrabbled
the back of Harry's hand hopelessly - Harry pulled his broom upwards, holding
the struggling ball in his hand and the Gryffindor spectators screamed their a
pproval . . .
They were saved, it did not matter that Ron had let in those goals, nobody
would remember as long as Gryffindor had won - '
WHAM.
A Bludger hit Harry squarely in the small of the back and he flew forwards
off his broom. Luckily he was only five or six feet above the ground, having
dived so low to catch the Snitch, but he was winded all the same as he landed
flat on his back on the frozen pitch. He heard Madam Hooch's shrill whistle, a
n uproar in the stands compounded of catcalls, angry yells and jeering, a thud
, then Angelina's frantic voice.
'Are you all right?'
Course I am, said Harry grimly, taking her hand and allowing her to pull h
im to his feet. Madam Hooch was zooming towards one of the Slytherin players a
bove him, though he could not see who it was from this angle.
'It was that thug Crabbe,' said Angelina angrily, 'he whacked the Bludger
at you the moment he saw you'd got the Snitch - but we won, Harry, we won!'
Harry heard a snort from behind him and turned around, still holding the S
nitch tightly in his hand: Draco Malfoy had landed close by. White-faced with
fury, he was still managing to sneer.
'Saved Weasley's neck, haven't you?' he said to Harry. 'I've never seen a
worse Keeper . . . but then he was born in a bin . . . did you like my lyrics,
Potter?'
Harry didn't answer. He turned away to meet the rest of the team who were
now landing one by one, yelling and punching the air in triumph; all except Ro
n, who had dismounted from his broom over by the goalposts and seemed to be ma
king his way slowly back to the changing rooms alone.
'We wanted to write another couple of verses!' Malfoy called, as Katie and
Alicia hugged Harry. 'But we couldn't find rhymes for fat and ugly - we wante
d to sing about his mother, see - '
Talk about sour grapes,' said Angelina, casting Malfoy a disgusted look.
' - we couldn't fit in useless loser either - for his father, you know - '
Fred and George had realised what Malfoy was talking about. Halfway throug
h shaking Harry's hand, they stiffened, looking round at Malfoy.
'Leave it!' said Angelina at once, taking Fred by the arm. 'Leave it, Fred
, let him yell, he's just sore he lost, the jumped-up little -
' - but you like the Weasleys, don't you, Potter?' said Malfoy, sneering.
'Spend holidays there and everything, don't you? Can't see how you stand the s
tink, but I suppose when you've been dragged up by Muggles, even the Weasleys'
hovel smells OK - '
Harry grabbed hold of George. Meanwhile, it was taking the combined effort
s of Angelina, Alicia and Katie to stop Fred leaping on Malfoy, who was laughi
ng openly. Harry looked around for Madam Hooch, but she was still berating Cra
bbe for his illegal Bludger attack.
'Or perhaps,' said Malfoy, leering as he backed away, 'you can remember wh
at your mother's house stank like, Potter, and Weasley's pigsty reminds you of
it - '
Harry was not aware of releasing George, all he knew was that a second lat
er both of them were sprinting towards Malfoy. He had completely forgotten tha
t all the teachers were watching: all he wanted to do was cause Malfoy as much
pain as possible; with no time to draw out his wand, he merely drew back the
fist clutching the Snitch and sank it as hard as he could into Malfoy's stomac
h - '
'Harry! HARRY! GEORGE! NO!'
He could hear girls' voices screaming, Malfoy yelling, George swearing, a
whistle blowing and the bellowing of the crowd around him, but he did not care
. Not until somebody in the vicinity yelled 'Impedimenta!' and he was knocked
over backwards by the force of the spell, did he abandon the attempt to punch
every inch of Malfoy he could reach.
'What do you think you're doing?' screamed Madam Hooch, as Harry leapt to
his feet. It seemed to have been her who had hit him with the Impediment Jinx;
she was holding her whistle in one hand and a wand in the other; her broom la
y abandoned several feet away. Malfoy was curled up on the ground, whimpering
and moaning, his nose bloody; George was sporting a swollen lip; Fred was stil
l being forcibly restrained by the three Chasers, and Crabbe was cackling in t
he background. 'I've never seen behaviour like it - back up to the castle, bot
h of you, and straight to your Head of House's office! Go! Now.''
Harry and George turned on their heels and marched off the pitch, both pan
ting, neither saying a word to the other. The howling and jeering of the crowd
grew fainter and fainter until they reached the Entrance Hall, where they cou
ld hear nothing except the sound of their own footsteps. Harry became aware th
at something was still struggling in his right hand, the knuckles of which he
had bruised against Malfoy's jaw. Looking down, he saw the Snitch's silver win
gs protruding from between his fingers, struggling for release.
They had barely reached the door of Professor McGonagalls office when she
came marching along the corridor behind them. She was wearing a Gryffindor sca
rf, but tore it from her throat with shaking hands as she strode towards them,
looking livid.
'In!' she said furiously, pointing to the door. Harry and George entered.
She strode around behind her desk and faced them, quivering with rage as she t
hrew the Gryffindor scarf aside on to the floor.
'Well?' she said. 'I have never seen such a disgraceful exhibition. Two on
one! Explain yourselves!'
'Malfoy provoked us,' said Harry stiffly.
'Provoked you?' shouted Professor McGonagall, slamming a fist on to her de
sk so that her tartan tin slid sideways off it and burst open, littering the f
loor with Ginger Newts. 'He'd just lost, hadn't he? Of course he wanted to pro
voke you! But what on earth he can have said that justified what you two - '
'He insulted my parents,' snarled George. 'And Harry's mother.'
'But instead of leaving it to Madam Hooch to sort out, you two decided to
give an exhibition of Muggle duelling, did you?' bellowed Professor McGonagall
. 'Have you any idea what you've - ?'
'Hem, hem.'
Harry and George both wheeled round. Dolores Umbridge was standing in the
doorway wrapped in a green tweed cloak that greatly enhanced her resemblance t
o a giant toad, and was smiling in the horrible, sickly, ominous way that Harr
y had come to associate with imminent misery.
'May I help, Professor McGonagall?' asked Professor Umbridge in her most p
oisonously sweet voice.
Blood rushed into Professor McGonagall's face.
'Help?' she repeated, in a constricted voice. 'What do you mean, help?'
Professor Umbridge moved forwards into the office, still smiling her sickl
y smile.
'Why, I thought you might be grateful for a little extra authority.'
Harry would not have been surprised to see sparks fly from Professor McGon
agall's nostrils.
'You thought wrong,' she said, turning her back on Umbridge.
'Now, you two had better listen closely. I do not care what provocation Ma
lfoy offered you, I do not care if he insulted every family member you possess
, your behaviour was disgusting and I am giving each of you a week's worth of
detentions! Do not look at me like that, Potter, you deserve it! And if either
of you ever - '
'Hem, hem.'
Professor McGonagall closed her eyes as though praying for patience as she
turned her face towards Professor Umbridge again.
'Yes?'
'I think they deserve rather more than detentions,' said Umbridge, smiling
still more broadly.
Professor McGonagall's eyes flew open.
'But unfortunately,' she said, with an attempt at a reciprocal smile that
made her look as though she had lockjaw, 'it is what I think that counts, as t
hey are in my House, Dolores.'
'Well, actually, Minerva,' simpered Professor Umbridge, 'I think you'll fi
nd that what I think does count. Now, where is it? Cornelius just sent it . .
. I mean,' she gave a false little laugh as she rummaged in her handbag, 'the
Minister just sent it . . . ah yes . . .'
She had pulled out a piece of parchment which she now unfurled, clearing h
er throat fussily before starting to read what it said.
'Hem, hem . . . "Educational Decree Number Twenty-five".'
'Not another one!' exclaimed Professor McGonagall violently.
'Well, yes,' said Umbridge, still smiling. 'As a matter of fact, Minerva,
it was you who made me see that we needed a further amendment . . . you rememb
er how you overrode me, when I was unwilling to allow the Gryffindor Quidditch
team to re-form? How you took the case to Dumbledore, who insisted that the t
eam be allowed to play? Well, now, I couldn't have that. I contacted the Minis
ter at once, and he quite agreed with me that the High Inquisitor has to have
the power to strip pupils of privileges, or she - that is to say, I - would ha
ve less authority than common teachers! And you see now, don't you, Minerva, h
ow right I was in attempting to stop the Gryffindor team re-forming? Dreadful
tempers . . . anyway, I was reading out our amendment . . . hem, hem . . . "th
e High Inquisitor will henceforth have supreme authority over all punishments,
sanctions and removal of privileges pertaining to the students of Hogwarts, a
nd the power to alter such punishments, sanctions and removals of privileges a
s may have been ordered by other staff members. Signed, Cornelius Fudge, Minister for M
agic, Order of Merlin First Class, etc., etc." '
She rolled up the parchment and put it back into her handbag still smiling
.
'So . . . I really think I will have to ban these two from playing Quiddit
ch ever again,' she said, looking from Harry to George and back again.
Harry felt the Snitch fluttering madly in his hand.
'Ban us?' he said, and his voice sounded strangely distant. 'From playing
. . . ever again?'
'Yes, Mr Potter, I think a lifelong ban ought to do the trick,' said Umbri
dge, her smile widening still further as she watched him struggle to comprehen
d what she had said. 'You and Mr Weasley here. And I think, to be safe, this y
oung man's twin ought to be stopped, too - if his teammates had not restrained
him, I feel sure he would have attacked young Mr Malfoy as well. I will want
their broomsticks confiscated, of course; I shall keep them safely in my offic
e, to make sure there is no infringement of my ban. But I am not unreasonable,
Professor McGonagall,' she continued, turning back to Professor McGonagall wh
o was now standing as still as though carved from ice, staring at her. The res
t of the team can continue playing, I saw no signs of violence from any of the
m. Well . . . good afternoon to you.'
And with a look of the utmost satisfaction, Umbridge left the room, leavin
g a horrified silence in her wake.
*
'Banned,' said Angelina in a hollow voice, late that evening in the common roo
m. 'Banned. No Seeker and no Beaters . . . what on earth are we going to do?'
It did not feel as though they had won the match at all. Everywhere Harry
looked there were disconsolate and angry faces; the team themselves were slump
ed around the fire, all apart from Ron, who had not been seen since the end of
the match.
'Its just so unfair,' said Alicia numbly. 'I mean, what about
Crabbe and that Bludger he hit after the whistle had been blown? Has she b
anned him?'
'No,' said Ginny miserably; she and Hermione were sitting on either side o
f Harry. 'He just got lines, I heard Montague laughing about it at dinner.'
'And banning Fred when he didn't even do anything!' said Alicia furiously,
pummelling her knee with her fist.
'It's not my fault I didn't,' said Fred, with a very ugly look on his face
, 'I would've pounded the little scumbag to a pulp if you three hadn't been ho
lding me back.'
Harry stared miserably at the dark window. Snow was falling. The Snitch he
had caught earlier was now zooming around and around the common room; people
were watching its progress as though hypnotised and Crookshanks was leaping fr
om chair to chair, trying to catch it.
'I'm going to bed,' said Angelina, getting slowly to her feet. 'Maybe this
will all turn out to have been a bad dream . . . maybe I'll wake up tomorrow
and find we haven't played yet . . .'
She was soon followed by Alicia and Katie. Fred and George sloped off to b
ed some time later, glowering at everyone they passed, and Ginny went not long
after that. Only Harry and Hermione were left beside the fire.
'Have you seen Ron?' Hermione asked in a low voice.
Harry shook his head.
'I think he's avoiding us,' said Hermione. 'Where do you think he - ?'
But at that precise moment, there was a creaking sound behind them as the
Fat Lady swung forwards and Ron came clambering through the portrait hole. He
was very pale indeed and there was snow in his hair. When he saw Harry and Her
mione, he stopped dead in his tracks.
'Where have you been?' said Hermione anxiously, springing up.
'Walking,' Ron mumbled. He was still wearing his Quidditch things.
'You look frozen,' said Hermione. 'Come and sit down!'
Ron walked to the fireside and sank into the chair furthest from Harry's,
not looking at him. The stolen Snitch zoomed over their heads.
'I'm sorry, Ron mumbled, looking at his feet.
'What for?' said Harry.
'For thinking I can play Quidditch,' said Ron. 'I'm going to resign first
thing tomorrow.'
'If you resign,' said Harry testily, 'there'll only be three players left
on the team.' And when Ron looked puzzled, he said, 'I've been given a lifetim
e ban. So've Fred and George.'
'What?' Ron yelped.
Hermione told him the full story; Harry could not bear to tell it again. W
hen she had finished, Ron looked more anguished than ever.
This is all my fault - '
'You didn't make me punch Malfoy,' said Harry angrily.
' - if I wasn't so terrible at Quidditch - '
' - it's got nothing to do with that.'
' - it was that song that wound me up - '
' - it would've wound anyone up.'
Hermione got up and walked to the window, away from the argument, watching
the snow swirling down against the pane.
'Look, drop it, will you!' Harry burst out. 'It's bad enough, without you
blaming yourself for everything!'
Ron said nothing but sat gazing miserably at the damp hem of his robes. Af
ter a while he said in a dull voice, 'This is the worst I've ever felt in my l
ife.'
'Join the club,' said Harry bitterly.
'Well,' said Hermione, her voice trembling slightly. 'I can think of one t
hing that might cheer you both up.'
'Oh yeah?' said Harry sceptically.
'Yeah,' said Hermione, turning away from the pitch-black, snow-flecked win
dow, a broad smile spreading across her face. 'Hagrid's back.'
- CHAPTER TWENTY-
Hagrid's Tale
Harry sprinted up to the boys' dormitories to fetch the Invisibility Cloak and
the Marauder's Map from his trunk; he was so quick that he and Ron were ready
to leave at least five minutes before Hermione hurried back down from the gir
ls' dormitories, wearing scarf, gloves and one of her own knobbly elf hats.
'Well, it's cold out there!' she said defensively, as Ron clicked his tong
ue impatiently.
They crept through the portrait hole and covered themselves hastily in the
Cloak - Ron had grown so much he now needed to crouch to prevent his feet sho
wing - then, moving slowly and cautiously, they proceeded down the many stairc
ases, pausing at intervals to check on the map for signs of Filch or Mrs Morri
s. They were lucky; they saw nobody but Nearly Headless Nick, who was gliding
along absent-mindedly humming something that sounded horribly like 'Weasley is
our King'. They crept across the Entrance Hall and out into the silent, snowy
grounds. With a great leap of his heart, Harry saw little golden squares of l
ight ahead and smoke coiling up from Hagrid's chimney. He set off at a quick m
arch, the other two jostling and bumping along behind him. They crunched excit
edly through the thickening snow until at last they reached the wooden front d
oor. When Harry raised his fist and knocked three times, a dog started barking
frantically inside.
'Hagrid, it's us!' Harry called through the keyhole.
'Shoulda known!' said a gruff voice.
They beamed at each other under the Cloak; they could tell by Hagrid's voi
ce that he was pleased. 'Bin home three seconds . . . out the way, Fang . . .
out the way, yeh dozy dog . . .'
The bolt was drawn back, the door creaked open and Hagrid's head appeared
in the gap.
Hermione screamed.
'Merlin's beard, keep it down!' said Hagrid hastily, staring wildly over t
heir heads. 'Under that Cloak, are yeh? Well, get in, get in!'
'I'm sorry!' Hermione gasped, as the three of them squeezed past Hagrid in
to the house and pulled the Cloak off themselves so he could see them. 'I just
- oh, Hagrid!'
'It's nuthin', it's nuthin'!' said Hagrid hastily, shutting the door behin
d them and hurrying to close all the curtains, but Hermione continued to gaze
up at him in horror.
Hagrid's hair was matted with congealed blood and his left eye had been re
duced to a puffy slit amid a mass of purple and black bruising. There were man
y cuts on his face and hands, some of them still bleeding, and he was moving g
ingerly, which made Harry suspect broken ribs. It was obvious that he had only
just got home: a thick black travelling cloak lay over the back of a chair an
d a haversack large enough to carry several small children leaned against the
wall inside the door. Hagrid himself, twice the size of a normal man, was now
limping over to the fire and placing a copper kettle over it.
'What happened to you?' Harry demanded, while Fang danced around them all,
trying to lick their faces.
Told yeh, nuthin',' said Hagrid firmly. 'Want a cuppa?'
'Come off it,' said Ron, 'you're in a right state!'
'I'm tellin' yeh, I'm fine,' said Hagrid, straightening up and turning to
beam at them all, but wincing. 'Blimey, it's good ter see yeh three again - ha
d good summers, did yeh?'
'Hagrid, you've been attacked!' said Ron.
'Per the las' time, it's nuthin'!' said Hagrid firmly.
'Would you say it was nothing if one of us turned up with a pound of mince
instead of a face?' Ron demanded.
'You ought to go and see Madam Pomfrey, Hagrid,' said Hermione anxiously,
'some of those cuts look nasty.'
'I'm dealin' with it, all righ?' said Hagrid repressively.
He walked across to the enormous wooden table that stood in the middle of
his cabin and twitched aside a tea towel that had been lying on it. Underneath
was a raw, bloody, green-tinged steak slightly larger than the average car ty
re.
'You're not going to eat that, are you, Hagrid?' said Ron, leaning in for
a closer look. 'It looks poisonous.'
'It's s'posed ter look like that, it's dragon meat,' Hagrid said. 'An' I d
idn' get it ter eat.'
He picked up the steak and slapped it over the left side of his face. Gree
nish blood trickled down into his beard as he gave a soft moan of satisfaction
.
'Tha's better. It helps with the stingin', yeh know.'
'So, are you going to tell us what's happened to you?' Harry asked.
'Can't, Harry. Top secret. More'n me job's worth ter tell yeh that.'
'Did the giants beat you up, Hagrid?' asked Hermione quietly.
Hagrid's fingers slipped on the dragon steak and it slid squelchily on to
his chest.
'Giants?' said Hagrid, catching the steak before it reached his belt and s
lapping it back over his face, 'who said anythin' abou' giants? Who yeh bin ta
lkin' to? Who's told yeh what I've - who's said I've bin - eh?'
'We guessed,' said Hermione apologetically.
'Oh, yeh did, did yeh?' said Hagrid, surveying her sternly with the eye th
at was not hidden by the steak.
'It was kind of . . . obvious,' said Ron. Harry nodded.
Hagrid glared at them, then snorted, threw the steak back on to the table
and strode over to the kettle, which was now whistling.
'Never known kids like you three fer knowin' more'n yeh oughta,' he mutter
ed, splashing boiling water into three of his bucket-shaped mugs. 'An' I'm not
complimentin' yeh, neither. Nosy, some'd call it. Interferin'.'
But his beard twitched.
'So you have been to look for giants?' said Harry, grinning as he sat down
at the table.
Hagrid set tea in front of each of them, sat down, picked up his steak aga
in and slapped it back over his face.
'Yeah, all righ',' he grunted, 'I have.'
'And you found them?' said Hermione in a hushed voice.
'Well, they're not that difficult ter find, ter be honest, said Hagrid. 'P
retty big, see.'
'Where are they?' said Ron.
'Mountains,' said Hagrid unhelpfully.
'So why don't Muggles - ?'
They do,' said Hagrid darkly. 'On'y their deaths are always put down ter m
ountaineerin' accidents, aren' they?'
He adjusted the steak a little so that it covered the worst of the bruisin
g.
'Come on, Hagrid, tell us what you've been up to!' said Ron. Tell us about
being attacked by the giants and Harry can tell you about being attacked by t
he Dementors - '
Hagrid choked in his mug and dropped his steak at the same time; a large q
uantity of spit, tea and dragon blood was sprayed over the table as Hagrid cou
ghed and spluttered and the steak slid, with a soft splat, on to the floor.
'Whadda yeh mean, attacked by Dementors?' growled Hagrid.
'Didn't you know?' Hermione asked him, wide-eyed.
'I don' know any thin' that's bin happenin' since I left. I was on a secre
t mission, wasn' I, didn' wan' owls followin' me all over the place - ruddy De
mentors! Yeh're not serious?'
'Yeah, I am, they turned up in Little Whinging and attacked my cousin and
me, and then the Ministry of Magic expelled me - '
'WHAT?'
' - and I had to go to a hearing and everything, but tell us about the gia
nts first.'
'You were expelled!'
Tell us about your summer and I'll tell you about mine.'
Hagrid glared at him through his one open eye. Harry looked right back, an
expression of innocent determination on his face.
'Oh, all righ',' Hagrid said in a resigned voice.
He bent down and tugged the dragon steak out of Fang's mouth.
'Oh, Hagrid, don't, it's not hygien-' Hermione began, but Hagrid had alrea
dy slapped the meat back over his swollen eye.
He took another fortifying gulp of tea, then said, 'Well, we set off righ'
after term ended - '
'Madame Maxime went with you, then?' Hermione interjected.
'Yeah, tha's righ',' said Hagrid, and a softened expression appeared on th
e few inches of face that were not obscured by beard or green steak. 'Yeah, it
was jus' the pair of us. An' I'll tell yen this, she's not afraid of roughin'
it, Olympe. Yeh know, she's a fine, well-dressed woman, an' knowin' where we
was goin' I wondered 'ow she'd feel abou' clamberin' over boulders an' sleepin
' in caves an' tha', bu' she never complained once.'
'You knew where you were going?' Harry repeated. 'You knew where the giant
s were?'
'Well, Durnbledore knew, an' he told us,' said Hagrid.
'Are they hidden?' asked Ron. 'Is it a secret, where they are?'
'Not really,' said Hagrid, shaking his shaggy head. 'It's jus' that mos' w
izards aren' bothered where they are, 's'long as it's a good long way away. Bu
t where they are's very difficult ter get ter, fer humans anyway, so we needed
Dumbledore's instructions. Took us abou' a month ter get there - '
'A month?' said Ron, as though he had never heard of a journey lasting suc
h a ridiculously long time. 'But - why couldn't you just grab a Portkey or som
ething?'
There was an odd expression in Hagrid's unobscured eye as he surveyed Ron;
it was almost pitying.
'We're bein' watched, Ron,' he said gruffly.
'What d'you mean?'
'Yeh don' understand,' said Hagrid. The Ministry's keepin' an eye on Dumbl
edore an' anyone they reckon's in league with 'im, an' - '
'We know about that,' said Harry quickly, keen to hear the rest of Hagrid'
s story, 'we know about the Ministry watching Dumbledore - '
'So you couldn't use magic to get there?' asked Ron, looking thunderstruck
, 'you had to act like Muggles all the way?'
'Well, not exactly all the way' said Hagrid cagily. 'We jus' had ter be ca
reful, 'cause Olympe an' me, we stick out a bit -
Ron made a stifled noise somewhere between a snort and a sniff and hastily
took a gulp of tea.
' - so we're not hard ter follow. We was pretendin' we was goin' on holida
y together, so we got inter France an' we made like we was headin' fer where O
lympe's school is, 'cause we knew we was bein' tailed by someone from the Mini
stry. We had to go slow, 'cause I'm not really s'posed ter use magic an' we kn
ew the Mimstry'd be lookin' fer a reason ter run us in. But we managed ter giv
e the berk tailin' us the slip round abou' Dee-John - '
'Ooooh, Dijon?' said Hermione excitedly. 'I've been there on holiday, did
you see - ?'
She fell silent at the look on Ron's face.
'We chanced a bit o' magic after that an' it wasn' a bad journey. Ran inte
r a couple o' mad trolls on the Polish border an' I had a sligh' disagreement
with a vampire in a pub in Minsk, bu' apart from tha' couldn't'a bin smoother.
'An' then we reached the place, an' we started trekkin' up through the mou
ntains, lookin' fer signs of 'em . . .
'We had ter lay off the magic once we got near 'em. Partly 'cause they don
' like wizards an' we didn' want ter put their backs up too soon, an' partly '
cause Dumbledore had warned us You-Know-Who was bound ter be after the giants
an' all. Said it was odds on he'd sent a messenger off ter them already. Told
us ter be verv careful of drawin' attention ter ourselves as we got nearer in
case there was Death Eaters around.'
Hagrid paused for a long draught of tea.
'Go on!' said Harry urgently.
'Found 'em,' said Hagrid baldly. 'Went over a ridge one nigh' an' there th
ey was, spread ou' underneath us. Little fires burnin' below an' huge shadows
. . . it was like watchin' bits o' the mountain movin'.'
'How big are they?' asked Ron in a hushed voice.
"Bout twenty feet,' said Hagrid casually. 'Some o' the bigger ones mighta
bin twenty-five.'
'And how many were there?' asked Harry.
'I reckon abou' seventy or eighty,' said Hagrid.
'Is that all?' said Hermione.
'Yep,' said Hagrid sadly, 'eighty left, an' there was loads once, musta bi
n a hundred diff'rent tribes from all over the world. Bu' they've bin dyin' ou
t fer ages. Wizards killed a few, o' course, bu' mostly they killed each other
, an' now they're dyin' out faster than ever. They're not made ter live bunche
d up together like tha'. Dumbledore says it's our fault, it was the wizards wh
o forced 'em to go an' made 'em live a good long way from us an' they had no c
hoice bu' ter stick together fer their own protection.'
'So,' said Harry, 'you saw them and then what?'
'Well, we waited till morning, didn' want ter go sneakin' up on 'em in the
dark, fer our own safety' said Hagrid. "Bout three in the mornin' they fell a
sleep jus' where they was sittin'. We didn' dare sleep. Fer one thing, we want
ed ter make sure none of 'em woke up an' came up where we were, an' fer anothe
r, the snorin' was unbelievable. Caused an avalanche near mornin'.
'Anyway once it was light we wen' down ter see 'em.'
'Just like that?' said Ron, looking awestruck. 'You just walked right into
a giant camp?'
'Well, Dumbledore'd told us how ter do it,' said Hagrid. 'Give the Gurg gi
fts, show some respect, yeh know.'
'Give the what gifts?' asked Harry.
'Oh, the Gurg - means the chief.'
'How could you tell which one was the Gurg?' asked Ron.
Hagrid grunted in amusement.
'No problem,' he said. 'He was the biggest, the ugliest an1 the laziest. S
ittin' there waitin' ter be brought food by the others. Dead goats an' such li
ke. Name o' Karkus. I'd put him at twenty-two, twenty-three feet an' the weigh
t o' a couple o' bull elephants. Skin like rhino hide an' all.'
'And you just walked up to him?' said Hermione breathlessly.
'Well . . . down ter him, where he was lyin' in the valley. They was in th
is dip between four pretty high mountains, see, beside a mountain lake, an' Ka
rkus was lyin' by the lake roarin' at the others ter feed him an' his wife. Ol
ympe an' I went down the mountainside -'
'But didn't they try and kill you when they saw you?' asked Ron incredulou
sly.
'It was def'nitely on some o' their minds,' said Hagrid, shrugging, 'but w
e did what Dumbledore told us ter do, which was ter hold our gift up high an'
keep our eyes on the Gurg an' ignore the others. So tha's what we did. An' the
rest of 'em went quiet an'
watched us pass an' we got right up ter Karkuss leet an we bowed an' put o
ur present down in front o' him.'
'What do you give a giant?' asked Ron eagerly. 'Food?'
'Nah, he can get food all righ' fer himself,' said Hagrid. 'We took him ma
gic. Giants like magic, jus' don' like us usin' it against 'em. Anyway, that f
irs' day we gave 'im a branch o' Gubraithian fire.'
Hermione said, 'Wow!' softly, but Harry and Ron both frowned in puzzlement
.
'A branch of - ?'
'Everlasting fire,' said Hermione irritably, 'you ought to know that by no
w. Professor Flitwick's mentioned it at least twice in class!'
'Well, anyway,' said Hagrid quickly, intervening before Ron could answer b
ack, 'Dumbledore'd bewitched this branch to burn fer evermore, which isn' some
thin' any wizard could do, an' so I lies it down in the snow by Karkuss feet a
nd says, "A gift to the Gurg of the giants from Albus Dumbledore, who sends hi
s respectful greetings."'
'And what did Karkus say?' asked Harry eagerly.
'Nothin',' said Hagrid. 'Didn' speak English.'
'You're kidding!'
'Didn' matter,' said Hagrid imperturbably, 'Dumbledore had warned us tha'
migh' happen. Karkus knew enough to yell fer a couple o' giants who knew our l
ingo an' they translated fer us.'
'And did he like the present?' asked Ron.
'Oh yeah, it went down a storm once they understood what it was,' said Hag
rid, turning his dragon steak over to press the cooler side to his swollen eye
. 'Very pleased. So then I said, "Albus Dumbledore asks the Gurg to speak with
his messenger when he returns tomorrow with another gift." '
'Why couldn't you speak to them that day?' asked Hermione.
'Dumbledore wanted us ter take it very slow,' said Hagrid. 'Let 'em see we
kept our promises. We'll come back tomorrow with another present, an' then we
do come back with another present - gives a good impression, see? An' gives t
hem time ter test out the firs' present an' iind out it's a good one, an' get
'em eager ier more. In any case, giants like Karkus - overload 'em with inform
ation an' they'll kill yeh jus' to simplify things. So we bowed outta the way
an' went off an' found ourselves a nice little cave ter spend that night in an
' the followin' mornin' we went back an' this time we found Karkus sittin' up
waitin' fer us lookin' all eager.'
'And you talked to him?'
'Oh yeah. Firs' we presented him with a nice battle helmet - 'goblin-made
an' indestructible, yeh know - an' then we sat down an' we talked.'
'What did he say?'
'Not much,' said Hagrid. 'Listened mostly. Bu' there were good signs. He'd
heard o' Dumbledore, heard he'd argued against the killin' o' the last giants
in Britain. Karkus seemed ter be quite int'rested in what Dumbledore had ter
say. An' a few o' the others, 'specially the ones who had some English, they g
athered round an' listened too. We were hopeful when we left that day. Promise
d ter come back next mornin' with another present.
'Bu' that night it all wen' wrong.'
'What d'you mean?' said Ron quickly.
'Well, like I say, they're not meant ter live together, giants,' said Hagr
id sadly. 'Not in big groups like that. They can' help themselves, they half k
ill each other every few weeks. The men fight each other an' the women fight e
ach other; the remnants of the old tribes fight each other, an' that's even wi
thout squabbles over food an' the best fires an' sleepin' spots. Yeh'd think,
seein' as how their whole race is abou' finished, they'd lay off each other, b
u' . . .'
Hagrid sighed deeply.
That night a fight broke out, we saw it from the mouth of our cave, lookin
' down on the valley. Went on fer hours, yeh wouldn' believe the noise. An' wh
en the sun came up the snow was scarlet an' his head was lyin' at the bottom o
' the lake.'
'Whose head?' gasped Hermione.
'Karkus's,' said Hagrid heavily. There was a new Gurg, Golgomath.' He sigh
ed deeply. 'Well, we hadn' bargained on a new Gurg two days after we'd made fr
iendly contact with the firs' one, an' we had a funny feelin' Golgomath wouldn
' be so keen ter listen to us, bu' we had ter try'
'You went to speak to him?' asked Ron incredulously. 'After you'd watched
him rip off another giant's head?'
'Course we did,' said Hagrid, 'we hadn' gone all that way ter give up afte
r two days! We wen' down with the next present we'd meant ter give ter Karkus.
'I knew it was no go before I'd opened me mouth. He was sitting there wear
in' Karkus's helmet, leerin' at us as we got nearer. He's massive, one o' the
biggest ones there. Black hair an' matchin' teeth an' a necklace o' bones. Hum
an-lookin' bones, some of 'em. Well, I gave it a go - held out a great roll o'
dragon skin - an' said, "A gift fer the Gurg of the giants - '" Nex' thing I
knew, I was hangin' upside-down in the air by me feet, two of his mates had gr
abbed me.'
Hermione clapped her hands to her mouth.
'How did you get out of that!' asked Harry.
'Wouldn'ta done if Olympe hadn' bin there,' said Hagrid. 'She pulled out h
er wand an' did some o' the fastes' spellwork I've ever seen. Ruddy marvellous
. Hit the two holdin' me right in the eyes with Conjunctivitus Curses an' they
dropped me straightaway - 'bu' we were in trouble then, 'cause we'd used magi
c against 'em, an' that's what giants hate abou' wizards. We had ter leg it an
' we knew there was no way we was going ter be able ter march inter the camp a
gain.'
'Blimey, Hagrid,' said Ron quietly.
'So, how come it's taken you so long to get home if you were only there fo
r three days?' asked Hermione.
'We didn' leave after three days!' said Hagrid, looking outraged. 'Dumbled
ore was relyin' on us!'
'But you've just said there was no way you could go back!'
'Not by daylight we couldn', no. We just had ter rethink a bit. Spent a co
uple o' days lyin' low up in the cave an' watchin'. An' wha' we saw wasn' good
.'
'Did he rip off more heads?' asked Hermione, sounding squeamish.
'No,' said Hagrid, 'I wish he had.'
'What d'you mean?'
'I mean we soon found out he didn' object ter all wizards - 'just us.'
'You went to speak to him?' asked Ron incredulously. 'After you'd watched
him rip off another giant's head?'
'Course we did,' said Hagrid, 'we hadn' gone all that way ter give up afte
r two days! We wen' down with the next present we'd meant ter give ter Karkus.
'I knew it was no go before I'd opened me mouth. He was sitting there wear
in' Karkus's helmet, leerin' at us as we got nearer. He's massive, one o' the
biggest ones there. Black hair an' matchin' teeth an' a necklace o' bones. Hum
an-lookin' bones, some of 'em. Well, I gave it a go - held out a great roll o'
dragon skin - an' said, "A gift fer the Gurg of the giants - '" Nex' thing I
knew, I was hangin' upside-down in the air by me feet, two of his mates had gr
abbed me.'
Hermione clapped her hands to her mouth.
'How did you get out of that?' asked Harry.
'Wouldn'ta done if Olympe hadn' bin there,' said Hagrid. 'She pulled out h
er wand an' did some o' the fastes' spellwork I've ever seen. Ruddy marvellous
. Hit the two holdin' me right in the eyes with Conjunctivitus Curses an' they
dropped me straightaway - 'bu' we were in trouble then, 'cause we'd used magi
c against 'em, an' that's what giants hate abou' wizards. We had ter leg it an
' we knew there was no way we was going ter be able ter march inter the camp a
gain.'
'Blimey, Hagrid,' said Ron quietly.
'So, how come it's taken you so long to get home if you were only there fo
r three days?' asked Hermione.
'We didn' leave after three days!' said Hagrid, looking outraged. 'Dumbled
ore was relyin' on us!'
'But you've just said there was no way you could go back!'
'Not by daylight we couldn', no. We just had ter rethink a bit. Spent a co
uple o' days lyin' low up in the cave an' watchin'. An' wha' we saw wasn' good
.'
'Did he rip off more heads?' asked Hermione, sounding squeamish.
'No,' said Hagrid, 'I wish he had.'
'What d'you mean?'
'I mean we soon found out he didn' object ter all wizards - 'just us.'
'Death Eaters?' said Harry quickly.
'Yep,' said Hagrid darkly. 'Couple oi 'em were visitin' him ev'ry clay, br
ingin' gifts ter the Gurg, an' he wasn' dangling them upside - 'c.own.'
'How d'you know they were Death Eaters?' said Ron.
'Because I recognised one of 'em,' Hagrid growled. 'Macnair, remember him?
Bloke they sent ter kill Buckbeak? Maniac, he is. L.ikes killin' as much as G
olgomath; no wonder they were gettin' on so well.'
'So Macnair's persuaded the giants to join You-Know-Who?' said Hermione de
sperately.
'Hold yer Hippogriffs, I haven' finished me story yet!' said Hagrid indign
antly, who, considering he had not wanted to tell them anything in the first p
lace, now seemed to be rather enjoying himself. 'Me an' Olympe talked it over
an' we agreed, jus' 'cause the Gurg looked like favourin' You-Know-Who didn' m
ean all of 'em would. We had ter try an' persuade some o' the others, the ones
who hadn' wanted Golgomath as Gurg.'
'How could you tell which ones they were?' asked Ron.
Well, they were the ones bein' beaten to a pulp, weren' they?' said Hagrid
patiently. The ones with any sense were keepin' outta Golgomath's way, hidin'
out in caves roun' the gully jus' like we were. So we decided we'd go pokin'
round the caves by night an' see if we couldn' persuade a few o' them.'
'You went poking around dark caves looking for giants?' said Ron, with awe
d respect in his voice.
Well, it wasn' the giants who worried us most,' said Hagrid. 'We were more
concerned abou' the Death Eaters. Dumbledore had told us before we wen' not t
er tangle with 'em if we could avoid it, an' the trouble was they knew we was
around - 'spect Golgomath told 'em abou' us. At night, when the giants were sl
eepin' an' we wanted ter be creepin' inter the caves, Macnair an' the other on
e were sneakin' round the mountains lookin' fer us. I was hard put to stop Oly
mpe jumpin' out at 'em,' said Hagrid, the corners of h s mouth lifting his wil
d beard, 'she was rarin' ter attack 'em . . . she's somethin' when she's rouse
d, Olympe . . . fiery, yeh know . . . 'spect it's the French in her . . .'
Hagrid gazed misty-eyed into the fire. Harry allowed him thirty seconds of
reminiscence before clearing his throat loudly.
'So, what happened? Did you ever get near any of the other giants?'
'What? Oh . . . oh, yeah, we did. Yeah, on the third night after Karkus wa
s killed we crept outta the cave we'd bin hidin' in an' headed back down inter
the gully, keepin' our eyes skinned fer the Death Eaters. Got inside a few o'
the caves, no go - then, in abou' the sixth one, we found three giants hidin'
.'
'Cave must've been cramped,' said Ron.
'Wasn' room ter swing a Kneazle,' said Hagrid.
'Didn't they attack you when they saw you?' asked Hermione.
'Probably woulda done if they'd bin in any condition,' said Hagrid, 'but t
hey was badly hurt, all three o' them; Golgomath's lot had beaten 'em unconsci
ous; they'd woken up an' crawled inter the nearest shelter they could find. An
yway, one o' them had a bit of English an' 'e translated fer the others, an' w
hat we had ter say didn' seem ter go down too badly. So we kep' goin' back, vi
sitin' the wounded . . . I reckon we had abou' six or seven o' them convinced
at one poin'.'
'Six or seven?' said Ron eagerly. 'Well that's not bad - are they going to
come over here and start fighting You-Know-Who with us?'
But Hermione said, 'What do you mean "at one point", Hagrid?'
Hagrid looked at her sadly.
'Golgomath's lot raided the caves. The ones tha' survived didn' wan' no mo
re ter to do with us after that.'
'So . . . so there aren't any giants coming?' said Ron, looking disappoint
ed.
'Nope,' said Hagrid, heaving a deep sigh as he turned over his steak and a
pplied the cooler side to his face, 'but we did wha' we meant ter do, we gave
'em Dumbledore's message an' some o' them heard it an' I spect some o' them'll
remember it. Jus' maybe, them that don' want ter stay around Golgomath'll mov
e outta the mountains, an' there's gotta be a chance they'll remember Dumbledo
re's friendly to 'em . . . could be they'll come.'
Snow was filling up the window now. Harry became aware that the knees of h
is robes were soaked through: Fang was drooling with his head in Harry's lap.
'Hagrid?' said Hermione quietly after a while.
'Mmm?'
'Did you . . . was there any sign of . . . did you hear anything asout you
r . . . your . . . mother while you were there?'
Hagrids unobscured eye rested upon her and Hermione looked rather scared.
'I'm sorry . . . I . . . forget it - '
'Dead,' Hagrid grunted. 'Died years ago. They told me.'
'Oh . . . I'm . . . I'm really sorry,' said Hermione in a very small voice
. Hagrid shrugged his massive shoulders.
'No need,' he said shortly. 'Can't remember her much. Wasn' a great mother
.'
They were silent again. Hermione glanced nervously at Harry and Ron, plain
ly wanting them to speak.
'But you still haven't explained how you got in this state, Hagrid,' Ron s
aid, gesturing towards Hagrid's bloodstained face.
'Or why you're back so late,' said Harry. 'Sirius says Madame Maxime got b
ack ages ago - '
'Who attacked you?' said Ron.
'I haven' bin attacked!' said Hagrid emphatically. 'I - '
But the rest of his words were drowned in a sudden outbreak of rapping on
the door. Hermione gasped; her mug slipped through her fingers and smashed on
the floor; Fang yelped. All four of them stared at the window beside the doorw
ay. The shadow of somebody small and squat rippled across the thin curtain.
'It's her!' Ron whispered.
'Get under here!' Harry said quickly, seizing the Invisibility Cloak, he w
hirled it over himself and Hermione while Ron tore around the table and dived
under the Cloak as well. Huddled together, they backed away into a corner. Fan
g was barking madly at the door. Hagrid looked thoroughly confused.
'Hagrid, hide our mugs!'
Hagrid seized Harry and Ron's mugs and shoved them under the cushion in Fa
ng's basket. Fang was now leaping up at the door; Hagrid pushed him out of the
way with his foot and pulled it open.
Professor Umbridge was standing in the doorway wearing her green tweed clo
ak and a matching hat with earflaps. Lips pursed, she leaned back so as to see
Hagrid's face; she barely reached his navel.
'So,' she said slowly and loudly, as though speaking to somebody deaf. 'Yo
u're Hagrid, are you?'
Without waiting for an answer she strolled into the room, her bulging eyes
rolling in every direction.
'Get away,' she snapped, waving her handbag at Fang, who had bounded up to
her and was attempting to lick her face.
'Er - I don' want ter be rude,' said Hagrid, staring at her, 'but who the
ruddy hell are you?'
'My name is Dolores Umbridge.'
Her eyes were sweeping the cabin. Twice they stared directly into the corn
er where Harry stood, sandwiched between Ron and Hermione.
'Dolores Umbridge?' Hagrid said, sounding thoroughly confused. 'I thought
you were one o' them Ministry - don' you work with Fudge?'
'I was Senior Undersecretary to the Minister, yes,' said Umbridge, now pac
ing around the cabin, taking in every tiny detail within, from the haversack a
gainst the wall to the abandoned travelling cloak. 'I am now the Defence Again
st the Dark Arts teacher - '
Tha's brave of yeh,' said Hagrid, 'there's not many'd take tha' job any mo
re.'
' - and Hogwarts High Inquisitor,' said Umbridge, giving no sign that she
had heard him.
'Wha's that?' said Hagrid, frowning.
'Precisely what I was going to ask,' said Umbridge, pointing at the broken
shards of china on the floor that had been Hermione's mug.
'Oh,' said Hagrid, with a most unhelpful glance towards the corner where H
arry, Ron and Hermione stood hidden, 'oh, tha' was . . . was Fang. He broke a
mug. So I had ter use this one instead.'
Hagrid pointed to the mug from which he had been drinking, one hand still
clamped over the dragon steak pressed to his eye. Umbridge stood facing him no
w, taking in every detail of his appearance instead of the cabins.
'I heard voices,' she said quietly.
'I was talkin' ter Fang,' said Hagrid stoutly.
'And was he talking back to you?'
'Well . . . in a manner o' speakin',' said Hagrid, looking uncomfortable.
'I sometimes say Fang's near enough human - '
There are three sets of footprints in the snow leading from the castle doo
rs to your cabin,' said Umbridge sleekly.
Hermione gasped; Harry clapped a hand over her mouth. Luckily, Fang was sn
iffing loudly around the hem of Professor Umbridge's robes and she did not app
ear to have heard.
'Well, I on'y jus' got back,' said Hagrid, waving an enormous hand at the
haversack. 'Maybe someone came ter call earlier an' I missed 'em.'
There are no footsteps leading away from your cabin door.'
'Well, I . . . I don' know why that'd be . . .' said Hagrid, tugging nervo
usly at his beard and again glancing towards the corner where Harry, Ron and H
ermione stood, as though asking for help. 'Erm . . .'
Umbridge wheeled round and strode the length of the cabin, looking around
carefully. She bent and peered under the bed. She opened Hagrid's cupboards. S
he passed within two inches of where Harry, Ron and Hermione stood pressed aga
inst the wall; Harry actually pulled in his stomach as she walked by. After lo
oking carefully inside the enormous cauldron Hagrid used for cooking, she whee
led round again and said, 'What has happened to you? How did you sustain those
injuries?'
Hagrid hastily removed the dragon steak from his face, which in Harry's op
inion was a mistake, because the black and purple bruising all around his eye
was now clearly visible, not to mention the large amount of fresh and congeale
d blood on his face. 'Oh, I . . . had a bit of an accident,' he said lamely.
'What sort of accident?'
'I - I tripped.'
'You tripped,' she repeated coolly.
'Yeah, tha's right. Over . . . over a friends broomstick. I don' fly, mese
lf. Well, look at the size o' me, I don' reckon there's a broomstick that'd ho
ld me. Friend o' mine breeds Abraxan horses, I dunno if you ve ever seen em, b
ig beasts, winged, yen know, I've had a bit of a ride on one o' them an' it wa
s - '
'Where have you been?' asked Umbridge, cutting coolly through Hagrid's bab
bling.
"Where've I - ?'
'Been, yes,' she said. Term started two months ago. Another teacher has ha
d to cover your classes. None of your colleagues has been able to give me any
information as to your whereabouts. You left no address. Where have you been?'
There was a pause in which Hagrid stared at her with his newly uncovered e
ye. Harry could almost hear his brain working furiously.
'I - I've been away for me health,' he said.
'For your health,' repeated Professor Umbridge. Her eyes travelled over Ha
grid's discoloured and swollen face; dragon blood dripped gently and silently
on to his waistcoat. 'I see.'
'Yeah,' said Hagrid, 'bit o' - o' fresh air, yeh know - '
'Yes, as gamekeeper fresh air must be so difficult to come by' said Umbrid
ge sweetly. The small patch of Hagrid's face that was not black or purple, flu
shed.
'Well - change o' scene, yeh know - '
'Mountain scenery?' said Umbridge swiftly.
She knows, Harry thought desperately.
'Mountains?' Hagrid repeated, clearly thinking fast. 'Nope, South o' Franc
e fer me. Bit o' sun an' . . . an' sea.'
'Really?' said Umbridge. 'You don't have much of a tan.'
'Yeah . . . well . . . sensitive skin,' said Hagrid, attempting an ingrati
ating smile. Harry noticed that two of his teeth had been knocked out. Umbridg
e looked at him coldly; his smile faltered. Then she hoisted her handbag a lit
tle higher into the crook of her arm and said, 'I shall, of course, be informi
ng the Minister of your late return.'
'Righ',' said Hagrid, nodding.
'You ought to know, too, that as High Inquisitor it is my unfortunate but
necessary duty to inspect my fellow teachers. So I daresay we shall meet again
soon enough.'
She turned sharply and marched back to the door.
'You're inspectin' us?' Hagrid repeated blankly, looking after her.
'Oh, yes; said Umbridge softly, looking back at him with her hand on the d
oor handle. The Ministry is determined to weed out unsatisfactory teachers, Ha
grid. Goodnight.'
She left, closing the door behind her with a snap. Harry made to pull off
the Invisibility Cloak but Hermione seized his wrist.
'Not yet,' she breathed in his ear. 'She might not be gone yet.'
Hagrid seemed to be thinking the same way; he stumped across the room and
pulled back the curtain an inch or so.
'She's goin' back ter the castle,' he said in a low voice. 'Blimey . . . i
nspectin' people, is she?'
'Yeah,' said Harry, pulling off the Cloak. Trelawney's on probation alread
y . . .'
'Um . . . what sort of thing are you planning to do with us in class, Hagr
id?' asked Hermione.
'Oh, don' you worry abou' that, I've got a great load o' lessons planned,'
said Hagrid enthusiastically, scooping up his dragon steak from the table and
slapping it over his eye again. 'I've bin keepin' a couple o' creatures saved
fer yer OWL year; you wait, they're somethin' really special.'
'Erm . . . special in what way?' asked Hermione tentatively.
'I'm not sayin',' said Hagrid happily. 'I don' want ter spoil the surprise
.'
'Look, Hagrid,' said Hermione urgently, dropping all pretence, 'Professor
Umbridge won't be at all happy if you bring anything to class that's too dange
rous.'
'Dangerous?' said Hagrid, looking genially bemused. 'Don' be silly, I woul
dn' give yeh anythin' dangerous! I mean, all righ', they can look after themse
lves - '
'Hagrid, you've got to pass Umbridge's inspection, and to do that it would
really be better if she saw you teaching us how to look after Porlocks, how t
o tell the difference between Knarls and hedgehogs, stuff like that!' said Her
mione earnestly.
'But tha's not very interestin', Hermione,' said Hagrid. 'The stuff I've g
ot's much more impressive. I've bin bringin' 'em on ler years, I reckon I've g
ot the on'y domestic herd in Britain.'
'Hagrid . . . please . . .' said Hermione, a note of real desperation in h
er voice. 'Umbridge is looking for any excuse to get rid of
teachers she thinks are too close to Dumbledore. Please, Hagrid, teach us
something dull that's bound to come up in our OWL.'
But Hagrid merely yawned widely and cast a one-eyed look of longing toward
s the vast bed in the corner.
'Lis'en, it's bin a long day an' it's late,' he said, patting Hermione gen
tly on the shoulder, so that her knees gave way and hit the floor with a thud.
'Oh - sorry - ' He pulled her back up by the neck of her robes. 'Look, don' y
ou go worryin' abou' me, I promise yeh I've got really good stuff planned fer
yer lessons now I'm back . . . now you lot had better get back up to the castl
e, an' don' forget ter wipe yer tootprints out behind yeh!'
'I dunno if you got through to him,' said Ron a short while later when, ha
ving checked that the coast was clear, they walked back up to the castle throu
gh the thickening snow, leaving no trace behind them due to the Obliteration C
harm Hermione was performing as they went.
Then I'll go back again tomorrow,' said Hermione determinedly. 'I'll plan
his lessons for him if I have to. I don't care if she throws out Trelawney but
she's not getting rid of Hagrid!'
- CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE -
The Eye of the Snake
Hermione ploughed her way back to Hagrid's cabin through two feet of snow on S
unday morning. Harry and Ron wanted to go with her, but their mountain of home
work had reached an alarming height again, so they remained grudgingly in the
common room, Tying to ignore the gleeful shouts drifting up from the grounds o
utside, where students were enjoying themselves skating on the frozen lake, to
bogganing and, worst of all, bewitching snowballs to zoom up to Gryffindor Tow
er and rap hard on the windows.
'Oi!' bellowed Ron, finally losing patience and sticking his head out of t
he window, 'I am a prefect and if one more snowball hits this window - OUCH!'
He withdrew his head sharply, his face covered in snow.
'It's Fred and George,' he said bitterly, slamming the window behind him.
'Gits . . .'
Hermione returned from Hagrid's just before lunch, shivering slightly, her
robes damp to the knees.
'So?' said Ron, looking up when she entered. 'Got all his lessons planned
for him?'
'Well, I tried,' she said dully, sinking into a chair beside Harry. She pu
lled out her wand and gave it a complicated little wave so that hot air stream
ed out of the tip; she then pointed this at her robes, which began to steam as
they dried out. 'He wasn't even there when I arrived, I was knocking for at l
east half an hour. And then he came stumping out of the Forest - '
Harry groaned. The Forbidden Forest was teeming with the kind of creatures
most likely to get Hagrid the sack. 'What's he keeping in there? Did he say?'
he asked.
'No,' said Hermione miserably. 'He says he wants them to be a surprise. I
tried to explain about Umbridge, but he just doesn't get it. He kept saying no
body in their right mind would rather study Knarls than Chimaeras - oh, I don'
t think he's got a Chimaera,' she added at the appalled look on Harry and Ron'
s faces, 'but that's not for lack of trying, from what he said about how hard
it is to get eggs. I don't know how many times I told him he'd be better off f
ollowing Grubbly-Plank's plan, I honestly don't think he listened to half of w
hat I said. He's in a bit of a funny mood, you know. He still won't say how he
got all those injuries.'
Hagrid's reappearance at the staff table at breakfast next day was not gre
eted by enthusiasm from all students. Some, like Fred, George and Lee, roared
with delight and sprinted up the aisle between the Gryffindor and Hufflepuff t
ables to wring Hagrid's enormous hand; others, like Parvati and Lavender, exch
anged gloomy looks and shook their heads. Harry knew that many of them preferr
ed Professor Grubbly-Planks lessons, and the worst of it was that a very small
, unbiased part of him knew that they had good reason: Grubbly-Plank's idea of
an interesting class was not one where there was a risk that somebody might h
ave their head ripped off.
It was with a certain amount of apprehension that Harry, Ron and Hermione
headed down to Hagrid's on Tuesday, heavily muffled against the cold. Harry wa
s worried, not only about what Hagrid might have decided to teach them, but al
so about how the rest of the class, particularly Malfoy and his cronies, would
behave if Umbridge was watching them.
However, the High Inquisitor was nowhere to be seen as they struggled thro
ugh the snow towards Hagrid, who stood waiting for them on the edge of the For
est. He did not present a reassuring sight; the bruises that had been purple o
n Saturday night were now tinged with green and yellow and some of his cuts st
ill seemed to be bleeding. Harry could not understand this: had Hagrid perhaps
been attacked by some creature whose venom prevented the wounds it inflicted
from healing? As though to complete the ominous picture, Hagrid was carrying w
hat looked like half a dead cow over his shoulder.
'We're workin' in here today!' Hagrid called happily to the approaching st
udents, jerking his head back at the dark trees behind him. 'Bit more sheltere
d! Anyway, they prefer the dark.'
'What prefers the dark?' Harry heard Malfoy say sharply to Crabbe and Goyl
e, a trace of panic in his voice. 'What did he say prefers the dark - did you
hear?'
Harry remembered the only other occasion on which Malfoy had entered the F
orest before now; he had not been very brave then, either. He smiled to himsel
f; after the Quidditch match anything that caused Malfoy discomfort was all ri
ght with him.
'Ready?' said Hagrid cheerfully, looking around at the class. 'Right, well
, I've bin savin' a trip inter the Forest fer yer fifth year. Thought we'd go
an' see these creatures in their natural habitat. Now, what we're studyin' tod
ay is pretty rare, I reckon I'm probably the on'y person in Britain who's mana
ged ter train 'em.'
'And you're sure they're trained, are you?' said Malfoy, the panic in his
voice even more pronounced. 'Only it wouldn't be the first time you'd brought
wild stuff to class, would it?'
The Slytherins murmured agreement and a few Gryffindors looked as though t
hey thought Malfoy had a fair point, too.
'Course they're trained,' said Hagrid, scowling and hoisting the dead cow
a little higher on his shoulder.
'So what happened to your face, then?' demanded Malfoy.
'Mind yer own business!' said Hagrid, angrily. 'Now, if yeh've finished as
kin' stupid questions, follow me!'
He turned and strode straight into the Forest. Nobody seemed much disposed
to follow. Harry glanced at Ron and Hermione, who sighed but nodded, and the
three of them set off after Hagrid, leading the rest of the class.
They walked for about ten minutes until they reached a place where the tre
es stood so closely together that it was as dark as twilight and there was no
snow at all on the ground. With a grunt, Hagrid deposited his half a cow on th
e ground, stepped back and turned to face his class, most of whom were creepin
g from tree to tree towards him, peering around nervously as though expecting
to be set upon at any moment.
'Gather roun', gather roun',' Hagrid encouraged. 'Now, they'll be attracte
d by the smell o the meat but I'm going ter give em a call anyway, 'cause they
'll like ter know it's me.'
He turned, shook his shaggy head to get the hair out of his face and gave
an odd, shrieking cry that echoed through the dark trees like the call of some
monstrous bird. Nobody laughed: most of them looked too scared to make a soun
d.
Hagrid gave the shrieking cry again. A minute passed in which the class co
ntinued to peer nervously over their shoulders and around trees for a first gl
impse of whatever it was that was coming. And then, as Hagrid shook his hair b
ack for a third lime and expanded his enormous chest, Harry nudged Ron and poi
nted into the black space between two gnarled yew trees.
A pair of blank, white, shining eyes were growing larger through the gloom
and a moment later the dragonish face, neck and then skeletal body of a great
, black, winged horse emerged from the darkness. It surveyed the class for a f
ew seconds, swishing its long black tail, then bowed its head and began to tea
r flesh from the dead cow with its pointed fangs.
A great wave of relief broke over Harry. Here at last was proof that he ha
d not imagined these creatures, that they were real: Hagrid knew about them to
o. He looked eagerly at Ron, but Ron was still staring around into the trees a
nd after a few seconds he whispered, 'Why doesn't Hagrid call again?'
Most of the rest of the class were wearing expressions as confused and ner
vously expectant as Ron's and were still gazing everywhere but at the horse st
anding feet from them. There were only two other people who seemed to be able
to see them: a stringy Slytherin boy standing just behind Goyle was watching t
he horse eating with an expression of great distaste on his face; and Neville,
whose eyes were following the swishing progress of the long black tail.
'Oh, an' here comes another one!' said Hagrid proudly, as a second black h
orse appeared out of the dark trees, folded its leathery-wings closer to its b
ody and dipped its head to gorge on the meat. 'Now . . . put yer hands up, who
can see 'em?'
Immensely pleased to feel that he was at last going to understand the myst
ery of these horses, Harry raised his hand. Hagrid nodded at him.
'Yeah . . . yeah, I knew you'd be able ter, Harry,' he said seriously. 'An
' you too, Neville, eh? An' - '
'Excuse me,' said Malfoy in a sneering voice, 'but what exactly are we sup
posed to be seeing?'
For an answer, Hagrid pointed at the cow carcass on the ground. The whole
class stared at it for a few seconds, then several people gasped and Parvati s
quealed. Harry understood why: bits of flesh stripping themselves away from th
e bones and vanishing into thin air had to look very odd indeed.
'What's doing it?' Parvati demanded in a terrified voice, retreating behin
d the nearest tree. 'What's eating it?'
Thestrals,' said Hagrid proudly and Hermione gave a soft 'Oh!' of comprehe
nsion at Harry's shoulder. 'Hogwarts has got a whole herd of 'em in here. Now,
who knows - ?'
'But they're really, really unlucky!' interrupted Parvati, looking alarmed
. They're supposed to bring all sorts of horrible misfortune on people who see
them. Professor Trelawney told me once - '
'No, no, no,' said Hagrid, chuckling, 'tha's jus' superstition, that is, t
hey aren' unlucky, they're dead clever an' useful! Course, this lot don' get a
lot o' work, it's mainly jus' pullin' the school carriages unless Dumbledore'
s takin' a long journey an' don' want ter Apparate - an' here's another couple
, look - '
Two more horses came quietly out of the trees, one of them passing very cl
ose to Parvati, who shivered and pressed herself closer to the tree, saying, '
I think I felt something, I think it's near me!'
'Don' worry, it won' hurt yeh,' said Hagrid patiently. 'Righ', now, who ca
n tell me why some o' yeh can see 'em an' some can't?'
Hermione raised her hand.
'Go on then,' said Hagrid, beaming at her.
The only people who can see Thestrals,' she said, 'are people who have see
n death.'
Tha's exactly right,' said Hagrid solemnly, 'ten points ter Gryffindor. No
w, Thestrals - '
'Hem, hem.'
Professor Umbridge had arrived. She was standing a few feet away from Harr
y, wearing her green hat and cloak again, her clipboard at the ready. Hagrid.
who had never heard Umbridge's fake cough before, was gazing in some concern a
t the closest Thestral, evidently under the impression that it had made the so
und.
'Hem, hem.'
'Oh, hello!' Hagrid said, smiling, having located the source of the noise.
'You received the note I sent to your cabin this morning?' said Umbridge,
in the same loud, slow voice she had used with him earlier, as though she were
addressing somebody both foreign and very slow. Telling you that I would be i
nspecting your lesson?'
'Oh, yeah,' said Hagrid brightly. 'Glad yeh found the place all righ'! Wel
l, as you can see - or, I dunno - can you? We're doin' Thestrals today - '
'I'm sorry?' said Professor Umbridge loudly, cupping her hand around her e
ar and frowning. 'What did you say?'
Hagrid looked a little confused.
'Er - Thestrals!' he said loudly. 'Big - er - winged horses, yeh know!'
He flapped his gigantic arms hopefully. Professor Umbridge raised her eyeb
rows at him and muttered as she made a note on her clipboard: 'Has . . . to .
. . resort . . . to . . . crude . . . sign . . . language.'
'Well . . . anyway . . .' said Hagrid, turning back to the class and looki
ng slightly flustered, 'erm . . . what was I sayin?'
'Appears . . . to . . . have . . . poor . . . short . . . term . . . memor
y,' muttered Umbridge, loudly enough for everyone to hear her. Draco Malfoy lo
oked as though Christmas had come a month early; Hermione, on the other hand,
had turned scarlet with suppressed rage.
'Oh, yeah,' said Hagrid, throwing an uneasy glance at Umbridge's clipboard
, but ploughing on valiantly. 'Yeah, I was gonna tell yeh how come we got a he
rd. Yeah, so, we started off with a male an' five females. This one,' he patte
d the first horse to have appeared, 'name o' Tenebrus, he's my special favouri
te, firs' one born here in the Forest - '
'Are you aware,' Umbridge said loudly, interrupting him, 'that the Ministr
y of Magic has classified Thestrals as "dangerous"?'
Harry's heart sank like a stone, but Hagrid merely chuckled.
Thestrals aren' dangerous! All righ', they might take a bite outta yeh if
yeh really annoy them - '
'Shows . . . signs . . . of. . . pleasure . . . at . . . idea . . . of. .
. violence,' muttered Umbridge, scribbling on her clipboard again.
'No - come on!' said Hagrid, looking a little anxious now. 'I mean, a dog'
ll bite if yeh bait it, won' it - but Thestrals have jus' got a bad reputation
because o' the death thing - people used ter think they were bad omens, didn'
they? Jus' didn' understand, did they?'
Umbridge did not answer; she finished writing her last note, then looked u
p at Hagrid and said, again very loudly and slowly, 'Please continue teaching
as usual. I am going to walk,' she mimed walking (Malfoy and Pansy Parkinson w
ere having silent fits of laughter) 'among the students' (she pointed around a
t individual members of the class) 'and ask them questions.' She pointed at he
r mouth to indicate talking.
Hagrid stared at her, clearly at a complete loss to understand why she was
acting as though he did not understand normal English. Hermione had tears of
fury in her eyes now.
'You hag, you evil hag!' she whispered, as Umbridge walked towards Pansy P
arkinson. 'I know what you're doing, you awiul, twisted, vicious - '
'Erm . . . anyway,' said Hagrid, clearly struggling to regain the flow of
his lesson, 'so - Thestrals. Yeah. Well, there's loads o' good stuff abou' the
m . . .'
'Do you find,' said Professor Umbridge in a ringing voice to Pansy Parkins
on, 'that you are able to understand Professor Hagrid when he talks?'
Just like Hermione, Pansy had tears in her eyes, but these were tears of l
aughter; indeed, her answer was almost incoherent because she was trying to su
ppress her giggles.
'No . . . because . . . well . . . it sounds . . . like grunting a lot of
the time . . .'
Umbridge scribbled on her clipboard. The few unbruised bits of Hagrid's fa
ce flushed, but he tried to act as though he had not heard Pansy's answer.
'Er . . . yeah . . . good stuff abou' Thestrals. Well, once they're tamed,
like this lot, yeh'll never be lost again. 'Mazin' sense o' direction, jus' t
ell 'em where yeh want ter go - '
'Assuming they can understand you, of course,' said Malfoy loudly, and Pan
sy Parkinson collapsed in a fit of renewed giggles. Professor Umbridge smiled
indulgently at them and then turned to Neville.
'You can see the Thestrals, Longbottom, can you?' she said.
Neville nodded.
'Who did you see die?' she asked, her tone indifferent.
'My . . . my grandad,' said Neville.
'And what do you think of them?' she said, waving her stubby hand at the h
orses, who by now had stripped a great deal of the carcass down to bone.
'Erm,' said Neville nervously, with a glance at Hagrid. 'Well, they're . .
. er . . . OK . . .'
'Students . . . are . . . too . . . intimidated . . . to . . . admit . . .
they . . . are . . . frightened,' muttered Umbridge, making another note on h
er clipboard.
'No!' said Neville, looking upset. 'No, I'm not scared of them!'
'It's quite all right,' said Umbridge, patting Neville on the shoulder wit
h what she evidently intended to be an understanding smile, though it looked m
ore like a leer to Harry. 'Well, Hagrid,' she turned to look up at him again,
speaking once more in that loud, slow voice, 'I think I've got enough to be ge
tting along with. You will receive' (she mimed taking something from the air i
n front of her) 'the results of your inspection' (she pointed at the clipboard
) 'in ten days' time.' She held up ten stubby little fingers, then, her smile
wider and more toadlike than ever before beneath her green hat, she bustled fr
om their midst, leaving Malfoy and Pansy Parkinson in fits of laughter, Hermio
ne actually shaking with fury and Neville looking confused and upset.
That foul, lying, twisting old gargoyle!' stormed Hermione half an hour la
ter, as they made their way back up to the castle through the channels they ha
d made earlier in the snow. 'You see what she's up to? It's her thing about ha
lf-breeds all over again - she's trying to make out Hagrid's some kind of dimw
itted troll, just because he had a giantess for a mother - and. oh, it's not f
air, that really wasn't a bad lesson at all - I mean, all right, if it had bee
n Blast-Ended Skrewts again, but Thestrals are fine - in fact, for Hagrid, the
y're really good!'
'Umbridge said they're dangerous,' said Ron.
'Well, it's like Hagrid said, they can look after themselves,' said Hermio
ne impatiently, 'and I suppose a teacher like Grubbly-Plank wouldn't usually s
how them to us before NEWT level, but, well, they are very interesting, aren't
they? The way some people can see them and some can't! I wish I could.'
'Do you?' Harry asked her quietly.
She looked suddenly horrorstruck.
'Oh, Harry - I'm sorry - no, of course I don't - that was a really stupid
thing to say.'
'It's OK,' he said quickly, 'don't worry'
'I'm surprised so many people could see them,' said Ron. 'Three in a class
- '
'Yeah, Weasley, we were just wondering,' said a malicious voice. Unheard b
y any of them in the muffling snow, Malfoy, Crabbe and Goyle were walking alon
g right behind them. 'D'you reckon if you saw someone snuff it you'd be able t
o see the Quaffle better?'
He, Crabbe and Goyle roared with laughter as they pushed past on their way
to the castle, then broke into a chorus of 'Weasley is our King'. Ron's ears
turned scarlet.
'Ignore them, just ignore them,' intoned Hermione, pulling out her wand an
d performing the charm to produce hot air again, so that she could melt them a
n easier path through the untouched snow between them and the greenhouses.
*
December arrived, bringing with it more snow and a positive avalanche of homew
ork for the fifth-years. Ron and Hermione's prefect duties also became more an
d more onerous as Christmas approached. They were called upon to supervise the
decoration of the castle ('You try putting up tinsel when Peeves has got the
other end and is trying to strangle you with it,' said Ron), to watch over fir
st- and second-years spending their break-times inside because of the bitter c
old ('And they're cheeky little snot-rags, you know, we definitely weren't tha
t rude when we were in first year, said Ron) and to patrol the corridors in sh
ifts with Argus Filch, who suspected that the holiday spirit might show itself
in an outbreak of wizard duels ('He's got dung for brains, that one,' said Ro
n furiously). They were so busy that Hermione had even stopped knitting elf ha
ts and was fretting that she was down to her last three.
'All those poor elves I haven't set free yet, having to stay here over Chr
istmas because there aren't enough hats!'
Harry, who had not had the heart to tell her that Dobby was taking everyth
ing she made, bent lower over his History of Magic essay. In any case, he did
not want to think about Christmas. For the first time in his school career, he
very much wanted to spend the holidays away from Hogwarts. Between his Quiddi
tch ban and worry about whether or not Hagrid was going to be put on probation
, he felt highly resentful towards the place at the moment. The only thing he
really looked forward to were the DA meetings, and they would have to stop ove
r the holidays, as nearly everybody in the DA would be spending the time with
their families. Hermione was going skiing with her parents, something that gre
atly amused Ron, who had never heard of Muggles strapping narrow strips of woo
d on to their feet to slide down mountains. Ron was going home to The Burrow.
Harry endured several days of envy before Ron said, in response to Harry askin
g him how he was going to get home for Christmas: :But you're coming too! Didn
't I say? Mum wrote and told me to invite you weeks ago!'
Hermione rolled her eyes, but Harry's spirits soared: the thought of Chris
tmas at The Burrow was truly wonderful, though slightly marred by Harry's guil
ty feeling that he would not be able to spend the holiday with Sirius. He wond
ered whether he could possibly persuade Mrs Weasley to invite his godfather fo
r the festivities. Even though he doubted whether Dumbledore would permit Siri
us to leave Grimmauld Place anyway, he could not help but think Mrs Weasley mi
ght not want him; they were so often at loggerheads. Sirius had not contacted
Harry at all since his last appearance in the fire, and although Harry knew th
at with Umbridge on constant watch it would be unwise to attempt to contact hi
m, he did not like to think of Sirius alone in his mother's old house, perhaps
pulling a lonely cracker with Kreacher.
Harry arrived early in the Room of Requirement for the last DA meeting bef
ore the holidays and was very glad he had, because when the torches burst into
flame he saw that Dobby had taken it upon himself to decorate the place for C
hristmas. He could tell the elf had done it, because nobody else would have st
rung a hundred golden baubles from the ceiling, each showing a picture of Harr
y's face and bearing the legend: 'HAVE A VERY HARRY CHRISTMAS!'
Harry had only just managed to get the last of them down before the door c
reaked open and Luna Lovegood entered, looking as dreamy as usual.
'Hello,' she said vaguely, looking around at what remained of the decorati
ons. These are nice, did you put them up?'
'No,' said Harry, 'it was Dobby the house-elf.'
'Mistletoe,' said Luna dreamily, pointing at a large clump of white berrie
s placed almost over Harry's head. He jumped out from under it. 'Good thinking
,' said Luna very seriously. 'It's often infested with Nargles.'
Harry was saved the necessity of asking what Nargles are by the arrival of
Angelina, Katie and Alicia. All three of them were breathless and looked very
cold.
'Well,' said Angelina dully, pulling off her cloak and throwing it into a
corner, 'we've finally replaced you.'
'Replaced me?' said Harry blankly.
You and Fred and George,' she said impatiently. 'We've got another Seeker!
'
'Who?' said Harry quickly.
'Ginny Weasley,' said Katie.
Harry gaped at her.
'Yeah, I know,' said Angelina, pulling out her wand and flexing her arm, '
but she's pretty good, actually. Nothing on you, of course,' she said, throwin
g him a very dirty look, 'but as we can't have you . . .'
Harry bit back the retort he was longing to utter: did she imagine for a s
econd that he did not regret his expulsion from the team a hundred times more
than she did?
'And what about the Beaters? he asked, trying to keep his voice even.
'Andrew Kirke,' said Alicia without enthusiasm, 'and Jack Sloper. Neither
of them are brilliant, but compared to the rest of the idiots who turned up .
. .'
The arrival of Ron, Hermione and Neville brought this depressing discussio
n to an end, and within five minutes the room was full enough to prevent Harry
seeing Angelina's burning, reproachful looks.
'OK,' he said, calling them all to order. 'I thought this evening we shoul
d just go over the things we've done so far, because it's the last meeting bef
ore the holidays and there's no poin: starting anything new right before a thr
ee-week break - '
'We're not doing anything new?' said Zacharias Smith, in a disgruntled whi
sper loud enough to carry through the room. 'If I'd known that, I wouldn't hav
e come.'
'We're all really sorry Harry didn't tell you, then,' said Fred loudly.
Several people sniggered. Harry saw Cho laughing and felt the familiar swo
oping sensation in his stomach, as though he had missed a step going downstair
s.
' - we can practise in pairs,' said Harry. 'We'll start with the Impedimen
t Jinx, for ten minutes, then we can get out the cushions and try Stunning aga
in.'
They all divided up obediently; Harry partnered Neville as usual. The room
was soon full of intermittent cries of 'Impedimenta!' People froze for a minu
te or so, during which their partner would stare aimlessly around the room wat
ching other pairs at work, then would unfreeze and take their turn at the jinx
.
Neville had improved beyond all recognition. After a while, when Harry had
unfrozen three times in a row, he had Neville join Ron and Hermione again so
that he could walk around the room and watch the others. When he passed Cho sh
e beamed at him; he resisted the temptation to walk past her several more time
s.
After ten minutes on the Impediment Jinx, they laid out cushions all over
the floor and started practising Stunning again. Space was really too confined
to allow them all to work this spell at once; half the group observed the oth
ers for a while, then swapped over.
Harry felt himself positively swelling with pride as he watched them all.
True, Neville did Stun Padma Patil rather than Dean, at whom he had been aimin
g, but it was a much closer miss than usual, and everybody else had made enorm
ous progress.
At the end of an hour, Harry called a halt.
'You're getting really good,' he said, beaming around at them. 'When we ge
t back from the holidays we can start doing some of the big stuff - maybe even
Patronuses.'
There was a murmur of excitement. The room began to clear in the usual two
s and threes; most people wished Harry a 'Happy Christmas' as they went. Feeli
ng cheerful, he collected up the cushions with Ron and Hermione and stacked th
em neatly away. Ron and Hermione left before he did; he hung back a little, be
cause Cho was still there and he was hoping to receive a 'Merry Christmas' fro
m her.
'No, you go on,' he heard her say to her friend Marietta and his heart gav
e a jolt that seemed to take it into the region of his Adam's apple.
He pretended to be straightening the cushion pile. He was quite sure they
were alone now and waited for her to speak. Instead, he heard a hearty sniff.
He turned and saw Cho standing in the middle of the room, tears pouring do
wn her face.
'Wha-?'
He didn't know what to do. She was simply standing there, crying silently.
'What's up?' he said, feebly.
She shook her head and wiped her eyes on her sleeve.
'I'm - sorry,' she said thickly. 'I suppose . . . it's just . . . learning
all this stuff . . . it just makes me . . . wonder whether . . . if he'd know
n it all . . . he'd still be alive.'
Harry's heart sank right back past its usual spot and settled somewhere ar
ound his navel. He ought to have known. She wanted to talk about Cedric.
'He did know this stuff,' Harry said heavily. 'He was really good a': it,
or he could never have got to the middle of that maze. But if Voldemort really
wants to kill you, you don't stand a chance.'
She hiccoughed at the sound of Voldemort's name, but stared at Harry witho
ut flinching.
'You survived when you were just a baby,' she said quietly.
'Yeah, well,' said Harry wearily, moving towards the door, 'I dunno why, n
or does anyone else, so it's nothing to be proud of.'
'Oh, don't go!' said Cho, sounding tearful again. 'I'm really sorry to get
all upset like this . . . I didn't mean to . . .'
She hiccoughed again. She was very pretty even when her eyes were red and
puffy. Harry felt thoroughly miserable. He'd have been so pleased with just a
'Merry Christmas'.
'I know it must be horrible for you,' she said, mopping her eyes on her sl
eeve again. 'Me mentioning Cedric, when you saw him die . . . I suppose you ju
st want to forget about it?'
Harry did not say anything to this; it was quite true, but he felt heartle
ss saying it.
'You're a r-really good teacher, you know,' said Cho, with a watery smile.
'I've never been able to Stun anything before.'
'Thanks,' said Harry awkwardly.
They looked at each other for a long moment. Harry felt a burning desire t
o run from the room and, at the same time, a complete inability to move his fe
et.
'Mistletoe,' said Cho quietly, pointing at the ceiling over his head.
'Yeah,' said Harry. His mouth was very dry. 'It's probably full of Nargles
, though.'
'What are Nargles?'
'No idea,' said Harry. She had moved closer. His brain seemed to have been
Stunned. 'You'd have to ask Loony. Luna, I mean.'
Cho made a funny noise halfway between a sob and a laugh. She was even nea
rer to him now. He could have counted the freckles on her nose.
'I really like you, Harry.'
He could not think. A tingling sensation was spreading through him, paraly
sing his arms, legs and brain.
She was much too close. He could see every tear clinging to her eyelashes
. . .
*
He returned to the common room half an hour later to find Hermione and Ron in
the best seats by the fire; nearly everybody else had gone to bed. Hermione wa
s writing a very long letter; she had already filled half a roll of parchment,
which was dangling from the edge of the table. Ron was lying on the hearthrug
, trying to finish his Transfiguration homework.
'What kept you?' he asked, as Harry sank into the armchair next to Hermion
e's.
Harry didn't answer. He was in a state of shock. Half of him wanted to tel
l Ron and Hermione what had just happened, but the other half wanted to take t
he secret with him to the grave.
'Are you all right, Harry?' Hermione asked, peering at him over the tip of
her quill.
Harry gave a half-hearted shrug. In truth, he didn't know whether he was a
ll right or not. 'What's up?' said Ron, hoisting himself up on his elbow to ge
t a clearer view of Harry. What's happened?'
Harry didn't quite know how to set about telling them, and still wasn't su
re whether he wanted to. Just as he had decided not to say anything, Hermione
took matters out of his hands.
'Is it Cho?' she asked in a businesslike way. 'Did she corner you after th
e meeting?'
Numbly surprised, Harry nodded. Ron sniggered, breaking off when Hermione
caught his eye.
'So - er - what did she want?' he asked in a mock casual voice.
'She - ' Harry began, rather hoarsely, he cleared his throat and tried aga
in. 'She - er - '
'Did you kiss?' asked Hermione briskly.
Ron sat up so fast he sent his ink bottle flying all over the rug. Disrega
rding this completely, he stared avidly at Harry.
'Well?' he demanded.
Harry looked from Ron's expression of mingled curiosity and hilarity to He
rmione's slight frown, and nodded.
'HA!'
Ron made a triumphant gesture with his fist and went into a raucous peal o
f laughter that made several timid-looking second-years over beside the window
jump. A reluctant grin spread over Harry's face as he watched Ron rolling aro
und on the hearthrug.
Hermione gave Ron a look or deep disgust and returned to her letter.
'Well?' Ron said finally, looking up at Harry. 'How was it?'
Harry considered for a moment.
'Wet,' he said truthfully.
Ron made a noise that might have indicated jubilation or disgust, it was h
ard to tell.
'Because she was crying,' Harry continued heavily.
'Oh,' said Ron, his smile fading slightly. 'Are you that bad at kissing?'
'Dunno,' said Harry, who hadn't considered this, and immediately felt rath
er worried. 'Maybe I am.'
'Of course you're not,' said Hermione absently, still scribbling away at h
er letter.
'How do you know?' said Ron very sharply.
'Because Cho spends half her time crying these days,' said Hermione vaguel
y. 'She does it at mealtimes, in the loos, all over the place.'
'You'd think a bit of kissing would cheer her up,' said Ron, grinning.
'Ron,' said Hermione in a dignified voice, dipping the point of her quill
into her inkpot, 'you are the most insensitive wart I have ever had the misfor
tune to meet.'
'What's that supposed to mean?' said Ron indignantly. 'What sort of person
cries while someone's kissing them?'
'Yeah,' said Harry, slightly desperately, 'who does?'
Hermione looked at the pair of them with an almost pitying expression on h
er face.
'Don't you understand how Cho's feeling at the moment?' she asked.
'No,' said Harry and Ron together.
Hermione sighed and laid down her quill.
'Well, obviously, she's feeling very sad, because of Cedric dying. Then I
expect she's feeling confused because she liked Cedric and now she likes Harry
, and she can't work out who she likes best. Then she'll be feeling guilty, th
inking it's an insult to Cedric's memory to be kissing Harry at all, and she'l
l be worrying about what everyone else might say about her if she starts going
out with Harry. And she probably can't work out what her feelings towards Har
ry are, anyway, because he was the one who was with Cedric when Cedric died, s
o that's all very mixed up and painful. Oh, and she's afraid she's going to be
thrown off the Ravenclaw Quidditch team because she's been flying so badly.'
A slightly stunned silence greeted the end of this speech, then Ron said,
'One person can't feel all that at once, they'd explode.'
'Just because you've got the emotional range of a teaspoon doesn't mean we
all have,' said Hermione nastily, picking up her quill again.
'She was the one who started it,' said Harry. 'I wouldn't've - she just so
rt of came at me - and next thing she's crying all over me - I didn't know wha
t to do - '
'Don't blame you, mate,' said Ron, looking alarmed at the very thought.
'You just had to be nice to her,' said Hermione, looking up anxiously. 'Yo
u were, weren't you?'
'Well,' said Harry, an unpleasant heat creeping up his face, 'I sort of -
patted her on the back a bit.'
Hermione looked as though she was restraining herself from rolling her eye
s with extreme difficulty.
'Well, I suppose it could have been worse,' she said. 'Are you going to se
e her again?'
'I'll have to, won't I?' said Harry. 'We've got DA meetings, haven't we?'
'You know what I mean,' said Hermione impatiently.
Harry said nothing. Hermione's words opened up a whole new vista of fright
ening possibilities. He tried to imagine going somewhere with Cho - Hogsmeade,
perhaps - and being alone with her for hours at a time. Of course, she would
have been expecting him to ask her out after what had just happened . . . the
thought made his stomach clench painfully.
'Oh well,' said Hermione distantly, buried in her letter once more, 'you'l
l have plenty of opportunities to ask her.'
'What if he doesn't want to ask her?' said Ron, who had been watching Harr
y with an unusually shrewd expression on his face.
'Don t be silly, said Hermione vaguely, Harry's liked her lor ages, haven'
t you, Harry?'
He did not answer. Yes, he had liked Cho for ages, but whenever he had ima
gined a scene involving the two of them it had always featured a Cho who was e
njoying herself, as opposed to a Cho who was sobbing uncontrollably into his s
houlder.
'Who're you writing the novel to, anyway?' Ron asked Hermione, trying to r
ead the bit of parchment now trailing on the floor. Hermione hitched it up out
of sight.
'Viktor.'
'Krum?'
'How many other Viktors do we know?'
Ron said nothing, but looked disgruntled. They sat in silence for another
twenty minutes, Ron finishing his Transfiguration essay with many snorts of im
patience and crossings-out, Hermione writing steadily to the very end of the p
archment, rolling it up carefully and sealing it, and Harry staring into the f
ire, wishing more than anything that Sirius's head would appear there and give
him some advice about girls. But the fire merely crackled lower and lower, un
til the red-hot embers crumbled into ash and, looking around, Harry saw that t
hey were, yet again, the last ones in the common room.
'Well, night,' said Hermione, yawning widely as she set off up the girls'
staircase.
'What does she see in Krum?' Ron demanded, as he and Harry climbed the boy
s' stairs.
'Well,' said Harry, considering the matter, 'I s'pose he's older, isn't he
. . . and he's an international Quidditch player . . .'
'Yeah, but apart from that,' said Ron, sounding aggravated. 'I mean, he's
a grouchy git, isn't he?'
'Bit grouchy, yeah,' said Harry, whose thoughts were still on Cho.
They pulled off their robes and put on pyjamas in silence; Dean, Seamus an
d Neville were already asleep. Harry put his glasses on his bedside table and
got into bed but did not pull the hangings closed around his four-poster; inst
ead, he stared at the patch of starry sky visible through the window next to N
eville's bed. If he had known, this time last night, that in twenty-four hours
' time he would have kissed Cho Chang . . .
'Night,' grunted Ron, from somewhere to his right.
'Night,' said Harry.
Maybe next time . . . if there was a next time . . . she'd be a bit happie
r. He ought to have asked her out; she had probably been expecting it and was
now really angry with him . . . or was she lying in bed, still crying about Ce
dric? He did not know what to think. Hermione's explanation had made it all se
em more complicated rather than easier to understand.
That's what they should teach us here, he thought, turning over on to his
side, how girls' brains work . . . it'd be more useful than Divination, anyway
. . .
Neville snuffled in his sleep. An owl hooted somewhere out in the night.
Harry dreamed he was back in the DA room. Cho was accusing him of luring h
er there under false pretences; she said he had promised her a hundred and fif
ty Chocolate Frog Cards if she showed up. Harry protested . . . Cho shouted, '
Cedric gave me loads of Chocolate Frog Cards, look!' And she pulled out fistfu
ls of Cards from inside her robes and threw them into the air. Then she turned
into Hermione, who said, 'You did promise her, you know, Harry . . . I think
you'd better give her something else instead . . . how about your Firebolt?' A
nd Harry was protesting that he could not give Cho his Firebolt, because Umbri
dge had it, and anyway the whole thing w;3s ridiculous, he'd only come to the
DA room to put up some Christmas baubles shaped like Dobby's head . . .
The dream changed . . .
His body felt smooth, powerful and flexible. He was gliding between shinin
g metal bars, across dark, cold stone . . . he was flat against the floor, sli
ding along on his belly . . . it was dark, yet he could see objects around him
shimmering in strange, vibrant colours . . . he was turning his head . . . at
first glance the corridor was empty . . . but no . . . a man was sitting on t
he floor ahead, his chin drooping on to his chest, his outline gleaming in the
dark . . .
Harry put out his tongue . . . he tasted the man's scent on the air . . .
he was alive but drowsy . . . sitting in front of a door at the end of the cor
ridor ..
Harry longed to bite the man . . . but he must master the impulse . . . he
had more important work to do . . .
But the man was stirring . . . a silver Cloak fell from his legs as he jum
ped to his feet; and Harry saw his vibrant, blurred outline towering above him
, saw a wand withdrawn from a belt . . . he had no choice . . . he reared high
from the floor and struck once, twice, three times, plunging his fangs deeply
into the mans flesh, feeling his ribs splinter beneath his jaws, feeling the
warm gush of blood . . .
The man was yelling in pain . . . then he fell silent . . . he slumped bac
kwards against the wall . . . blood was splattering on to the floor . . .
His forehead hurt terribly . . . it was aching fit to burst . . .
'Harry! HARRY!'
He opened his eyes. Every inch of his body was covered in icy sweat; his b
ed covers were twisted all around him like a strait-jacket; he felt as though
a white-hot poker were being applied to his forehead.
'Harry!'
Ron was standing over him looking extremely frightened. There were more fi
gures at the foot of Harry's bed. He clutched his head in his hands; the pain
was blinding him . . . he rolled right over and vomited over the edge of the m
attress.
'He's really ill,' said a scared voice. 'Should we call someone?'
'Harry! Harry!'
He had to tell Ron, it was very important that he tell him . . . taking gr
eat gulps of air, Harry pushed himself up in bed, willing himself not to throw
up again, the pain half-blinding him.
'Your dad,' he panted, his chest heaving. 'Your dad's . . . been attacked
. . .'
'What?' said Ron uncomprehendingly.
'Your dad! He's been bitten, it's serious, there was blood everywhere . .
.'
'I'm going for help,' said the same scared voice, and Harry heard footstep
s running out of the dormitory.
'Harry, mate,' said Ron uncertainly, 'you . . . you were just dreaming
'No!' said Harry furiously; it was crucial that Ron understand.
'It wasn't a dream . . . not an ordinary dream . . . I was there, I saw it
. . . I did it . . .'
He could hear Seamus and Dean muttering but did not care. The pain in his
forehead was subsiding slightly, though he was still sweating and shivering fe
verishly. He retched again and Ron leapt backwards out of the way.
'Harry, you're not well,' he said shakily. 'Neville's gone for help.'
'I'm fine!' Harry choked, wiping his mouth on his pyjamas and shaking unco
ntrollably. There's nothing wrong with me, it's your dad you've got to worry a
bout - we need to find out where he is - he's bleeding like mad - I was - it w
as a huge snake.'
He tried to get out of bed but Ron pushed him back into it; Dean and Seamu
s were still whispering somewhere nearby. Whether one minute passed or ten, Ha
rry did not know; he simply sat there shaking, feeling the pain recede very sl
owly from his scar . . . then there were hurried footsteps coming up the stair
s and he heard Neville's voice again.
'Over here, Professor.'
Professor McGonagall came hurrying into the dormitory in her tartan dressi
ng gown, her glasses perched lopsidedly on the bridge of her bony nose.
'What is it, Potter? Where does it hurt?'
He had never been so pleased to see her; it was a member of the Order of t
he Phoenix he needed now, not someone fussing over him and prescribing useless
potions.
'It's Ron's dad,' he said, sitting up again. 'He's been attacked by a snak
e and it's serious, I saw it happen.'
'What do you mean, you saw it happen?' said Professor McGonagall, her dark
eyebrows contracting.
'I don't know . . . I was asleep and then I was there . . .'
'You mean you dreamed this?'
'No!' said Harry angrily; would none of them understand? 'I was having a d
ream at first about something completely different, something stupid . . . and
then this interrupted it. It was real, I didn't imagine it. Mr Weasley was as
leep on the floor and he was attacked by a gigantic snake, there was a load of
blood, he collapsed, someone's got to find out where he is . . .'
Professor McGonagall was gazing at him through her lopsided spectacles as
though horrified at what she was seeing.
'I'm not lying and I'm not mad!' Harry told her, his voice rising to a sho
ut. 'I tell you, I saw it happen!'
'I believe you, Potter,' said Professor McGonagall curtly. 'Put on your dr
essing gown - we're going to see the Headmaster.'
- CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO -
St Mungo's Hosptial
for Magical Maladies
and Injuries
Harry was so relieved she was taking him seriously that he did not hesitate, h
ut jumped out of bed at once, pulled on his dressing gown and pushed his glass
es back on to his nose.
'Weasley, you ought to come too,' said Professor McGonagall.
They followed Professor McGonagall past the silent figures of Neville, Dea
n and Seamus, out of the dormitory down the spiral stairs into the common room
, through the portrait hole and off along the Fat Lady's moonlit corridor. Har
ry felt as though the panic inside him might spill over at any moment; he want
ed to run, to yell for Dumbledore; Mr Weasley was bleeding as they walked alon
g so sedately and what if those fangs (Harry tried hard not to think 'my fangs
') had been poisonous? They passed Mrs Norris, who turned her lamplike eyes up
on them and hissed faintly but Professor McGonagall said, 'Shoo!' Mrs Norris s
lunk away into the shadows, and in a few minutes they had reached the stone ga
rgoyle guarding the entrance to Dumbledore s office.
'Fizzing Whizzbee,' said Professor McGonagall.
The gargoyle sprang to life and leapt aside; the wall behind it split in t
wo to reveal a stone staircase that was moving continually upwards like a spir
al escalator. The three of them stepped on to the moving stairs; the wall clos
ed behind them with a thud and they were moving upwards in tight circles until
they reached the highly polished oak door with the brass knocker shaped like
a griffin.
Though it was now well past midnight there were voices coming
from inside the room, a positive babble of them. It sounded as though Dumb
ledore was entertaining at least a dozen people.
Professor McGonagall rapped three times with the griffin knocker and the v
oices ceased abruptly as though someone had switched them all off. The door op
ened of its own accord and Professor McGonagall led Harry and Ron inside.
The room was in half-darkness; the strange silver instruments standing on
tables were silent and still rather than whirring and emitting puffs of smoke
as they usually did; the portraits of old headmasters and headmistresses cover
ing the walls were all snoozing in their frames. Behind the door, a magnificen
t red and gold bird the size of a swan dozed on its perch with its head under
its wing.
'Oh, it's you, Professor McGonagall . . . and . . . ah.'
Dumbledore was sitting in a high-backed chair behind his desk; he leaned f
orward into the pool of candlelight illuminating the papers laid out before hi
m. He was wearing a magnificently embroidered purple and gold dressing gown ov
er a snowy white nightshirt, but seemed wide-awake, his penetrating light blue
eyes fixed intently upon Professor McGonagall.
'Professor Dumbledore, Potter has had a . . . well, a nightmare,' said Pro
fessor McGonagall. 'He says . . .'
'It wasn't a nightmare,' said Harry quickly.
Professor McGonagall looked round at Harry, frowning slightly.
'Very well, then, Potter, you tell the Headmaster about it.'
'I . . . well, I was asleep . . .' said Harry and, even in his terror and
his desperation to make Dumbledore understand, he felt slightly irritated that
the Headmaster was not looking at him, but examining his own interlocked fing
ers. 'But it wasn't an ordinary dream . . . it was real . . . I saw it happen
. . .' He took a deep breath, 'Ron's dad - Mr Weasley - has been attacked by a
giant snake.'
The words seemed to reverberate in the air after he had said them, soundin
g slightly ridiculous, even comic. There was a pause in which Dumbledore leane
d back and stared meditatively at the ceiling. Ron looked from Harry to Dumble
dore, white-faced and shocked.
'How did you see this?' Dumbledore asked quietly, still not looking at Har
ry.
'Well . . . I don't know,' said Harry, rather angrily - what did it matter
? 'Inside my head, I suppose - '
'You misunderstand me,' said Dumbledore, still in the same calm tone. 'I m
ean . . . can you remember - er - where you were positioned as you watched thi
s attack happen? Were you perhaps standing beside the victim, or else looking
down on the scene from above?'
This was such a curious question that Harry gaped at Dumbledore; it was al
most as though he knew . . .
'I was the snake,' he said. 'I saw it all from the snake's point of view.'
Nobody else spoke for a moment, then Dumbledore, now looking at Ron who wa
s still whey-faced, asked in a new and sharper voice, 'Is Arthur seriously inj
ured?'
'Yes,' said Harry emphatically - why were they all so slow on the uptake,
did they not realise how much a person bled when fangs that long pierced their
side? And why could Dumbledore not do him the courtesy of looking at him?
But Dumbledore stood up, so quickly it made Harry jump, and addressed one
of the old portraits hanging very near the ceiling. 'Everard?' he said sharply
. 'And you too, Dilys!'
A sallow-faced wizard with a short black fringe and an elderly witch with
long silver ringlets in the frame beside him, both of whom seemed to have been
in the deepest of sleeps, opened their eyes immediately.
'You were listening?' said Dumbledore.
The wizard nodded; the witch said, 'Naturally.'
The man has red hair and glasses,' said Dumbledore. 'Everard, you will nee
d to raise the alarm, make sure he is found by the right people - '
Both nodded and moved sideways out of their frames, but instead of emergin
g in neighbouring pictures (as usually happened at Hogwarts) neither reappeare
d. One frame now contained nothing but a backdrop of dark curtain, the other a
handsome leather arm-el" air. Harry noticed that many of the other headmaster
s and mistresses on the walls, though snoring and drooling most convincingly,
kept sneaking peeks at him from under their eyelids, and he suddenly understoo
d who had been talking when they had knocked.
'Everard and Dilys were two of Hogwartss most celebrated Heads,' Dumbledor
e said, now sweeping around Harry, Ron and Professor McGonagall to approach th
e magnificent sleeping bird on his perch beside the door. 'Their renown is suc
h that both have portraits hanging in other important wizarding institutions.
As they are free to move between their own portraits, they can tell us what ma
y be happening elsewhere . . .'
'But Mr Weasley could be anywhere!' said Harry.
'Please sit down, all three of you,' said Dumbledore, as though Harry had
not spoken, 'Everard and Dilys may not be back for several minutes. Professor
McGonagall, if you could draw up extra chairs.'
Professor McGonagall pulled her wand from the pocket of her dressing gown
and waved it; three chairs appeared out of thin air, straight-backed and woode
n, quite unlike the comfortable chintz armchairs that Dumbledore had conjured
up at Harry's hearing. Harry sat down, watching Dumbledore over his shoulder.
Dumbledore was now stroking Fawkes's plumed golden head with one finger. The p
hoenix awoke immediately. He stretched his beautiful head high and observed Du
mbledore through bright, dark eyes.
'We will need,' Dumbledore said very quietly to the bird, 'a warning.'
There was a flash of fire and the phoenix had gone.
Dumbledore now swooped down upon one of the fragile silver instruments who
se function Harry had never known, carried it over to his desk, sat down facin
g them again and tapped it gently with the tip of his wand.
The instrument tinkled into life at once with rhythmic clinking noises. Ti
ny puffs of pale green smoke issued from the minuscule silver tube at the top.
Dumbledore watched the smoke closely, his brow furrowed. After a few seconds,
the tiny puffs became a steady stream of smoke that thickened and coiled in t
he air . . . a serpent's head grew out of the end of it, opening its mouth wid
e. Harry wondered whether the instrument was confirming his story: he looked e
agerly at Dumbledore for a sign that he was right, but Dumbledore did not look
up.
'Naturally, naturally,' murmured Dumbledore apparently to himself, still o
bserving the stream of smoke without the slightest sign of surprise. 'But in e
ssence divided?'
Harry could make neither head nor tail of this question. The smoke serpent
, however, split itself instantly into two snakes, both coiling and undulating
in the dark air. With a look of grim satisfaction, Dumbledore gave the instru
ment another gentle tap with h.s wand: the clinking noise slowed and died and
the smoke serpents grew faint, became a formless haze and vanished.
Dumbledore replaced the instrument on its spindly little table. Harry saw
many of the old headmasters in the portraits follow him with their eyes, then,
realising that Harry was watching them, hastily pretend to be sleeping again.
Harry wanted to ask what the strange silver instrument was for, but before he
could do so, there was a shout from the top of the wall to their right; the w
izard called Everard had reappeared in his portrait., panting slightly.
'Dumbledore!'
'What news?' said Dumbledore at once.
'I yelled until someone came running,' said the wizard, who was mopping hi
s brow on the curtain behind him, 'said I'd heard something moving downstairs
- they weren't sure whether to believe me but went down to check - you know th
ere are no portraits down there to watch from. Anyway, they carried him up a f
ew minutes later. He doesn't look good, he's covered in blood, I ran along to
Elfrida Cragg's portrait to get a good view as they left - '
'Good,' said Dumbledore as Ron made a convulsive movement. 'I take it Dily
s will have seen him arrive, then - '
And moments later, the silver-ringleted witch had reappeared in her pictur
e, too; she sank, coughing, into her armchair and said, "Yes, they've taken hi
m to St Mungo's, Dumbledore . . . they carried him past my portrait . . . he l
ooks bad . . ."
'Thank you,' said Dumbledore. He looked round at Professor McGonagall.
'Minerva, I need you to go and wake the other Weasley children.'
'Of course . . .'
Professor McGonagall got up and moved swiftly to the door. Harry cast a si
deways glance at Ron, who was looking terrified.
And Dumbledore - what about Molly? said Professor McGonagall, pausing at t
he door.
That will be a job for Fawkes when he has finished keeping a lookout for a
nybody approaching,' said Dumbledore. 'But she may already know . . . that exc
ellent clock of hers . . .'
Harry knew Dumbledore was referring to the clock that told, not the time,
but the whereabouts and conditions of the various Weasley family members, and
with a pang he thought that Mr Weasley's hand must, even now, be pointing at m
ortal peril. But it was very late. Mrs Weasley was probably asleep, not watchi
ng the clock. Harry felt cold as he remembered Mrs Weasley's Boggart turning i
nto Mr Weasley's lifeless body, his glasses askew, blood running down his face
. . . but Mr Weasley wasn't going to die . . . he couldn't . . .
Dumbledore was now rummaging in a cupboard behind Harry and Ron. He emerge
d from it carrying a blackened old kettle, which he placed carefully on his de
sk. He raised his wand and murmured, 'Portus!' For a moment the kettle tremble
d, glowing with an odd blue light; then it quivered to rest, as solidly black
as ever.
Dumbledore marched over to another portrait, this time of a clever-looking
wizard with a pointed beard, who had been painted wearing the Slytherin colou
rs of green and silver and was apparently sleeping so deeply that he could not
hear Dumbledore's voice when he attempted to rouse him.
'Phineas. Phineas.'
The subjects of the portraits lining the room were no longer pretending to
be asleep; they were shifting around in their frames, the better to watch wha
t was happening. When the clever-looking wizard continued to feign sleep, some
of them shouted his name, too.
'Phineas! Phineas! PHINEAS!'
He could not pretend any longer; he gave a theatrical jerk and opened his
eyes wide.
'Did someone call?'
'I need you to visit your other portrait again, Phineas,' said Dumbledore.
'I've got another message.'
'Visit my other portrait?' said Phineas in a reedy voice, giving a long, f
ake yawn (his eyes travelling around the room and focusing on Harry). 'Oh, no,
Dumbledore, I am too tired tonight.'
Something about Phineas's voice was familiar to Harry, where had he heard
it before? But before he could think, the portraits on the surrounding walls b
roke into a storm of protest.
'Insubordination, sir!' roared a corpulent, red-nosed wizard, brandishing
his fists. 'Dereliction of duty!'
'We are honour-bound to give service to the present Headmaster o:~ Hogwart
s!' cried a frail-looking old wizard whom Harry recognised as Dumbledore's pre
decessor, Armando Dippet. 'Sharne on you, Phineas!'
'Shall I persuade him, Dumbledore?' called a gimlet-eyed witch, raising an
unusually thick wand that looked not unlike a birch rod.
'Oh, very well,' said the wizard called Phineas, eyeing the wand with mild
apprehension, 'though he may well have destroyed my picture by now, he's done
away with most of the family - '
'Sirius knows not to destroy your portrait,' said Dumbledore, and Harry re
alised immediately where he had heard Phineas's voice before: issuing from the
apparently empty frame in his bedroom in Grimmauld Place. 'You are to give hi
m the message that Arthur Weasley has been gravely injured and that his wife,
children and Harry Potter will be arriving at his house shortly. Do you unders
tand?'
'Arthur Weasley, injured, wife and children and Harry Potter coming to sta
y,' repeated Phineas in a bored voice. 'Yes, yes . . . very well . . .'
He sloped away into the frame of the portrait and disappeared from view at
the very moment the study door opened again. Fred, George and Ginny were ushe
red inside by Professor McGonagall, all three of them looking dishevelled and
shocked, still in their night things.
'Harry - what's going on?' asked Ginny, who looked frightened. 'Professor
McGonagall says you saw Dad get hurt - '
'Your father has been injured in the course of his work for the Order of t
he Phoenix,' said Dumbledore, before Harry could speak. 'He has been taken to
St Mungo's Hospital for Magical Maladies and Injuries. I am sending you back t
o Sirius's house, which is much more convenient for the hospital than The Burr
ow. You will meet your mother there.'
'How're we going?' asked Fred, looking shaken. Floo powder?'
'No,' said Dumbledore, 'Floo powder is not safe at the moment, the Network
is being watched. You will be taking a Portkey.' He indicated the old kettle
lying innocently on his desk. "We are just waiting for Phineas Nigellus to rep
ort back . . . I want to be sure that the coast is clear before sending you -
'
There was a flash of flame in the very middle of: the office, leaving behi
nd a single golden feather that floated gently to the floor.
'It is Fawkes's warning,' said Dumbledore, catching the feather as it fell
. 'Professor Umbridge must know you're out of your beds . . . Minerva, go and
head her off - tell her any story - '
Professor McGonagall was gone in a swish of tartan.
'He says he'll be delighted,' said a bored voice behind Dumbledore; the wi
zard called Phineas had reappeared in front of his Slytherin banner. 'My great
-great-grandson has always had an odd taste in house-guests.'
'Come here, then,' Dumbledore said to Harry and the Weasleys. 'And quickly
, before anyone else joins us.'
Harry and the others gathered around Dumbledore's desk.
'You have all used a Portkey before?' asked Dumbledore, and they nodded, e
ach reaching out to touch some part of the blackened kettle. 'Good. On the cou
nt of three, then . . . one . . . two . . .'
It happened in a fraction of a second: in the infinitesimal pause before D
umbledore said 'three', Harry looked up at him - they were very close together
- and Dumbledore's clear blue gaze moved from the Portkey to Harry's face.
At once, Harry's scar burned white-hot, as though the old wound had burst
open again - and unbidden, unwanted, but terrifyingly strong, there rose withi
n Harry a hatred so powerful he felt, for that instant, he would like nothing
better than to strike - to bite - to sink his fangs into the man before him -
'
'. . . three.'
Harry felt a powerful jerk behind his navel, the ground vanished from bene
ath his feet, his hand was glued to the kettle; he was banging into the others
as they all sped forwards in a swirl of colours and a rush of wind, the kettl
e pulling them onwards . . . until his feet hit the ground so hard his knees b
uckled, the kettle clattered to the ground, and somewhere close at hand a voic
e said:
'Back again, the blood-traitor brats. Is it true their father's dying?'
'OUT!' roared a second voice.
Harry scrambled to his feet and looked around; they had arrived in the glo
omy basement kitchen of number twelve, Grimmauld Place. The only sources of li
ght were the fire and one guttering candle, which illuminated the remains of a
solitary supper. Kreacher was disappearing through the door to the hall, look
ing back at them malevolently as he hitched up his loincloth; Sirius was hurry
ing towards them all, looking anxious. He was unshaven and still in his day cl
othes; there was also a slightly Mundungus-like whiff of stale drink about him
.
'What's going on?' he said, stretching out a hand to help Ginny up. Thinea
s Nigellus said Arthur's been badly injured - '
'Ask Harry,' said Fred.
'Yeah, I want to hear this for myself,' said George.
The twins and Ginny were staring at him. Kreacher's footsteps had stopped
on the stairs outside.
'It was - ' Harry began; this was even worse than telling McGonagall and D
umbledore. 'I had a - a kind of- vision . . .'
And he told them all that he had seen, though he altered the story so that
it sounded as though he had watched from the sidelines as the snake attacked,
rather than from behind the snake's own eyes. Ron, who was still very white,
gave him a fleeting look, but did not speak. When Harry had finished, Fred, Ge
orge and Ginny continued to stare at him for a moment. Harry did not know whet
her he was imagining it or not, but he fancied there was something accusatory
in their looks. Well, if they were going to blame him just for seeing the atta
ck, he was glad he had not told them that he had been inside the snake at the
lime.
'Is Mum here?' said Fred, turning to Sirius.
'She probably doesn't even know what's happened yet,' said Sirius. The imp
ortant thing was to get you away before Umbridge could interfere. I expect Dum
bledore's letting Molly know now.'
We've got to go to St Mungos, said Ginny urgently, She looked around at he
r brothers; they were of course still in their pyjamas. 'Sirius, can you lend
us cloaks or anything?'
'Hang on, you can't go tearing off to St Mungo's!' said Sirius.
'Course we can go to St Mungo's if we want,' said Fred, with a mulish expr
ession. 'He's our dad!'
'And how are you going to explain how you knew Arthur was attacked before
the hospital even let his wife know?'
'What does that matter?' said George hotly.
'It matters because we don't want to draw attention to the fact that Harry
is having visions of things that are happening hundreds of miles away!' said
Sirius angrily. 'Have you any idea what the Ministry would make oifthat inform
ation?'
Fred and George looked as though they could not care less what the Ministr
y made of anything. Ron was still ashen-faced and silent.
Ginny said, 'Somebody else could have told us . . . we could have heard it
somewhere other than Harry.'
'Like who?' said Sirius impatiently. 'Listen, your dad's been hurt while o
n duty for the Order and the circumstances are fishy enough without his childr
en knowing about it seconds after it happened, you could seriously damage the
Order's - '
'We don't care about the dumb Order!' shouted Fred.
'It's our dad dying we're talking about!' yelled George.
'Your father knew what he was getting into and he won't thank you for mess
ing things up for the Order!' said Sirius, equally angry. This is how it is -
this is why you're not in the Order - you don't understand - there are things
worth dying for!'
'Easy for you to say, stuck here!' bellowed Fred. 'I don't see you risking
your neck!'
The little colour remaining in Sirius's face drained from it. He looked fo
r a moment as though he would quite like to hit Fred, but when he spoke, it wa
s in a voice of determined calm.
'I know it's hard, but we've all got to act as though we don't know anythi
ng yet. We've got to stay put, at least until we hear from your mother, all ri
ght?'
Fred and George still looked mutinous. Ginny, however, took a few steps ov
er to the nearest chair and sank into it. Harry looked at Ron, who made a funn
y movement somewhere between a nod and a shrug, and they sat down too. The twi
ns glared at Sirius for another minute, then took seats either side of Ginny.
'That's right,' said Sirius encouragingly, 'come on, lets all . . . let's
all have a drink while we're waiting. Accio Butterbeer!'
He raised his wand as he spoke and half a dozen bottles came flying toward
s them out of the pantry, skidded along the table, scattering the debris of Si
rius's meal, and stopped neatly in front of t le six of them. They all drank,
and for a while the only sounds were those of the crackling of the kitchen fir
e and the soft thud of their bottles on the table.
Harry was only drinking to have something to do with his hands. His stomac
h was full of horrible hot, bubbling guilt. They would not be here if it were
not for him; they would all still be asleep in bed. And it was no good telling
himself that by raising the alarm he had ensured that Mr Weasley was found, b
ecause there was also the inescapable business of it being he who had attacked
Mr Weasley in the first place.
Don't be stupid, you haven't got fangs, he told himself, trying to keep ca
lm, though the hand on his Butterbeer bottle was shaking, you were lying in be
d, you weren't attacking anyone . . .
But then, what just happened in Dumbledore's office? he asked himself. I f
elt like I wanted to attack Dumbledore, too . . .
He put the bottle down a little harder than he meant to, and it slopped ov
er on to the table. No one took any notice. Then a burst of fire in midair ill
uminated the dirty plates in front of them and, as they gave cries of shock, a
scroll of parchment fell with a thud on to the table, accompanied by a single
golden phoenix tail feather.
'Fawkes!' said Sirius at once, snatching up the parchment. 'That's not Dum
bledore s writing - it must be a message from your mother - here - '
He thrust the letter into Georges hand, who ripped it open and read aloud:
'Dad is still alive. I am setting out for St Mungo's now. Stay where you are.
I will send news as soon as I can. Mum.'
George looked around the table.
'Still alive . . .' he said slowly. 'But that makes it sound . . .'
He did not need to finish the sentence. It sounded to Harry, too, as thoug
h Mr Weasley was hovering somewhere between life and death. Still exceptionall
y pale, Ron stared at the back of his mother's letter as though it might speak
words of comfort to him. Fred pulled the parchment out of George's hands and
read it for himself, then looked up at Harry, who felt his hand shaking on his
Butterbeer bottle again and clenched it more tightly to stop the trembling.
If Harry had ever sat through a longer night than this one, he could not r
emember it. Sirius suggested once, without any real conviction, that they all
go to bed, but the Weasleys' looks of disgust were answer enough. They mostly
sat in silence around the table, watching the candle wick sinking lower and lo
wer into liquid wax, occasionally raising a bottle to their lips, speaking onl
y to check the time, to wonder aloud what was happening, and to reassure each
other that if there was bad news, they would know straightaway, for Mrs Weasle
y must long since have arrived at St Mungo's.
Fred fell into a doze, his head lolling sideways on to his shoulder. Ginny
was curled like a cat on her chair, but her eyes were open; Harry could see t
hem reflecting the firelight. Ron was sitting with his head in his hands, whet
her awake or asleep it was impossible to tell. Harry and Sirius looked at each
other every so often, intruders upon the family grief, waiting . . . waiting
. . .
At ten past five in the morning by Ron's watch, the kitchen door swung ope
n and Mrs Weasley entered the kitchen. She was extremely pale, but when they a
ll turned to look at her, Fred, Ron and Harry half rising from their chairs, s
he gave a wan smile.
'He's going to be all right,' she said, her voice weak with tiredness. 'He
's sleeping. We can all go and see him later. Bill's sitting with him now; he'
s going to take the morning off work.'
Fred fell back into his chair with his hands over his face. George and Gin
ny got up, walked swiftly over to their mother and hugged her. Ron gave a very
shaky laugh and downed the rest of his Butterbeer in one.
'Breakfast!' said Sirius loudly and joyfully, jumping to his feet. 'Where'
s that accursed house-elf? Kreacher! KREACHER!'
But Kreacher did not answer the summons.
'Oh, forget it, then,' muttered Sirius, counting the people in front of hi
m. 'So, it's breakfast for - let's see - seven . . . bacon and eggs, I think,
and some tea, and toast - '
Harry hurried over to the stove to help. He did not want to intrude on the
Weasleys' happiness and he dreaded the moment when Mrs Weasley would ask him
to recount his vision. However, he had barely taken plates from the dresser wh
en Mrs Weasley lifted them out of his hands and pulled him into a hug.
'I don't know what would have happened if it hadn't been for you, Harry' s
he said in a muffled voice. 'They might not have found Arthur for hours, and t
hen it would have been too late, but thanks to you he's alive and Dumbledore's
been able to think up a good cover story for Arthur being where he was, you'v
e no idea what trouble he would have been in otherwise, look at poor Sturgis .
. .'
Harry could hardly bear her gratitude, but fortunately she soon released h
im to turn to Sirius and thank him for looking after her children through the
night. Sirius said he was very pleased to have been able to help, and hoped th
ey would all stay with him as long as Mr Weasley was in hospital.
Oh, Sirius, I'm so grateful . . . they think he'll be there a little while
and it would be wonderful to be nearer . . . of course, that might mean we're
here for Christmas.'
The more the merrier!' said Sirius with such obvious sincerity that Mrs We
asley beamed at him, threw on an apron and began to help with breakfast.
Sirius,' Harry muttered, unable to stand it a moment longer. 'Can I have a
quick word? Er - now?'
He walked into the dark pantry and Sirius followed. Without preamble, Harr
y told his godfather every detail of the vision he had had, including the fact
that he himself had been the snake who had attacked Mr Weasley.
When he paused for breath, Sirius said, 'Did you tell Dumbledore this?'
'Yes,' said Harry impatiently 'but he didn't tell me what it meant. Well,
he doesn't tell me anything any more.'
'I'm sure he would have told you if it was anything to worry about,' said
Sirius steadily
'But that's not all,' said Harry, in a voice only a little above a whisper
. 'Sirius, I . . . I think I'm going mad. Back in Dumbledore's office, just be
fore we took the Portkey . . . for a couple of seconds there I thought I was a
snake, I felt like one - my scar really hurt when I was looking at Dumbledore
- Sirius, I wanted to attack him!'
He could only see a sliver of Sirius's face; the rest was in darkness.
"It must have been the aftermath of the vision, that's all,' said Sirius.
'You were still thinking of the dream or whatever it was and - '
'It wasn't that,' said Harry, shaking his head, 'it was like something ros
e up inside me, like there's a snake inside me.'
'You need to sleep,' said Sirius firmly. 'You're going to have breakfast,
then go upstairs to bed, and after lunch you can go and see Arthur with the ot
hers. You're in shock, Harry; you're blaming yourself for something you only w
itnessed, and it's lucky you did witness it or Arthur might have died. Just st
op worrying.'
He clapped Harry on the shoulder and left the pantry, leaving Harry standi
ng alone in the dark.
*
Everyone but Harry spent the rest of the morning sleeping. He went up to the b
edroom he and Ron had shared over the last few weeks of summer, but while Ron
crawled into bed and was asleep within minutes, Harry sat fully clothed, hunch
ed against the cold metal bars of the bedstead, keeping himself deliberately u
ncomfortable, determined not to fall into a doze, terrified that he might beco
me the serpent again in his sleep and wake to find that he had attacked Ron, o
r else slithered through the house after one of the others . . .
When Ron woke up, Harry pretended to have enjoyed a refreshing nap too. Th
eir trunks arrived from Hogwarts while they were eating lunch, so they could d
ress as Muggles for the trip to St Mungo's. Everybody except Harry was riotous
ly happy and talkative as they changed out of their robes into jeans and sweat
shirts. When Tonks and Mad-Eye turned up to escort them across London, they gr
eeted them gleefully, laughing at the bowler hat Mad-Eye was wearing at an ang
le to conceal his magical eye and assuring him, truthfully,
that Tonks, whose hair was short and bright pink again, would attract far
less attention on the Underground.
Tonks was very interested in Harry's vision of the attack on Mr Weasley, s
omething Harry was not remotely interested in discussing.
There isn't any Seer blood in your family, is there?' she enquired curious
ly, as they sat side by side on a train rattling towards the heart of the city
.
'No,' said Harry thinking of Professor Trelawney and feeling insulted.
'No,' said Tonks musingly, 'no, I suppose it's not really prophecy you're
doing, is it? I mean, you're not seeing the future, you're seeing the present
. . . it's odd, isn't it? Useful, though . . .'
Harry didn't answer; fortunately, they got out at the next stop, a station
in the very heart of London, and in the bustle of leaving the train he was ab
le to allow Fred and George to get between himself and Tonks, who was leading
the way. They all followed her up the escalator, Moody clunking along at the b
ack of the group, his bowler 'I'llted low and one gnarled hand stuck in betwee
n the buttons of his coat, clutching his wand. Harry thought he sensed the con
cealed eye staring hard at him. Trying to avoid any more questions about his d
ream, he asked Mad-Eye where St Mungo's was hidden.
'Not far from here,' grunted Moody as they stepped out into the wintry air
on a broad store-lined street packed with Christmas shoppers. He pushed Harry
a little ahead of him and stumped along just behind; Harry knew the eye was r
olling in all directions under the tilted hat. 'Wasn't easy to find a good loc
ation for a hospital. Nowhere in Diagon Alley was big enough and we couldn't h
ave it underground like the Ministry - wouldn't be healthy. In the end they ma
naged to get hold of a building up here. Theory was, sick wizards could come a
nd go and just blend in with the crowd.'
He seized Harry's shoulder to prevent them being separated by a gaggle of
shoppers plainly intent on nothing but making it into a nearby shop full of el
ectrical gadgets.
'Here we go,' said Moody a moment later.
They had arrived outside a large, old-fashioned, red-brick department st
ore called Purge & Dowse Ltd. The place had a shabby, miserable air; the windo
w displays consisted of a few chipped dummies with their wigs askew, standing
at random and modelling fashions at least ten years out of date. Large signs o
n all the dusty doors read: 'Closed for Refurbishment'. Harry distinctly heard
a large woman laden with plastic shopping bags say to her friend as they pass
ed, 'It's never open, that place . . .'
'Right,' said Tonks, beckoning them towards a window displaying nothing bu
t a particularly ugly female dummy. Its false eyelashes were hanging off and i
t was modelling a green nylon pinafore dress. 'Everybody ready?'
They nodded, clustering around her. Moody gave Harry another shove between
the shoulder blades to urge him forward and Tonks leaned close to the glass,
looking up at the very ugly dummy, her breath steaming up the glass. 'Wotcher,
' she said, 'we're here to see Arthur Weasley.'
Harry thought how absurd it was for Tonks to expect the dummy to hear her
talking so quietly through a sheet of glass, with buses rumbling along behind
her and all the racket of a street full of shoppers. Then he reminded himself
that dummies couldn't hear anyway. Next second, his mouth opened in shock as t
he dummy gave a tiny nod and beckoned with its jointed finger, and Tonks had s
eized Ginny and Mrs Weasley by the elbows, stepped right through the glass and
vanished.
Fred, George and Ron stepped after them. Harry glanced around at the jostl
ing crowd; not one of them seemed to have a glance to spare for window display
s as ugly as those of Purge & Dowse Ltd; nor did any of them seem to have noti
ced that six people had just melted into thin air in front of them.
'C'mon,' growled Moody, giving Harry yet another poke in the back, and tog
ether they stepped forward through what felt like a sheet of cool water, emerg
ing quite warm and dry on the other side.
There was no sign of the ugly dummy or the space where she had stood. They
were in what seemed to be a crowded reception area where rows of witches and
wizards sat upon rickety wooden chairs, some looking perfectly normal and peru
sing out-of-date copies of Witch Weekly, others sporting gruesome disfiguremen
ts such as elephant trunks or extra hands sticking out of their chests. The ro
om was scarcely less quiet than the street outside, for many of the patients w
ere making very peculiar noises: a sweaty-faced witch in the centre of the fro
nt row, who was fanning herself vigorously with a copy of the Daily Prophet, k
ept letting off a high-pitched whistle as steam came pouring out of her mouth;
a grubby-looking warlock in the corner clanged like a bell every time he move
d and, with each clang, his head vibrated horribly so that he had to seize him
self by the ears to hold it steady.
Witches and wizards in lime-green robes were walking up and down the rows,
asking questions and making notes on clipboards like Umbridge's. Harry notice
d the emblem embroidered on their chests: a wand and bone, crossed.
'Are they doctors?' he asked Ron quietly.
'Doctors?' said Ron, looking startled. Those Muggle nutters that cut peopl
e up? Nah, they're Healers.'
'Over here!' called Mrs Weasley, above the renewed clanging of the warlock
in the corner, and they followed her to the queue in front of a plump blonde
witch seated at a desk marked Enquiries. The wall behind her was covered in no
tices and posters saying things like: A CLEAN CAULDRON KEEPS POTIONS FROM BECO
MING POISONS and ANTIDOTES ARE ANTI-DON'TS UNLESS APPROVED BY A QUALIFIED HEAL
ER. There was also a large portrait of a witch with long silver ringlets which
was labelled:
Dilys Derwent
St Mungo's Healer 1722-1741
Headmistress of Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry
1741-1768
Dilys was eyeing the Weasley party closely as though counting them; when Harry
caught her eye she gave a tiny wink, walked sideways out of her portrait and
vanished.
Meanwhile, at the front of the queue, a young wizard was performing an odd
on-the-spot jig and trying, in between yelps of pain, to explain his predicam
ent to the witch behind the desk.
'It's these - ouch - shoes my brother gave me - ow - they re eating my - O
UCH - feet - look at them, there must be some kind of - AARGH - jinx on them a
nd I can't - AAAAARGH - get them off.' He hopped from one foot to the other as
though dancing on hot coals.
The shoes don't prevent you reading, do they?' said the blonde witch, irri
tably pointing at a large sign to the left of her desk. 'You want Spell Damage
, fourth floor. Just like it says on the floor guide. Next!'
As the wizard hobbled and pranced sideways out of the way, the Weasley par
ty moved forward a few steps and Harry read the floor guide:
ARTEFACT ACCIDENTS...................................... Gound floor
Cauldron explosion, wand backfiring, broom
crashes, etc.
CREATURE-INDUCED INJURIES........................ First floor
Bites, stings, burns, embedded spines, etc.
MAGICAL BUGS.................................................... Second flo
or
Contagious maladies, e.g. dragon pox,
vanishing sickness, scrofungulus, etc.
POTION AND PLANT POISONING...................... Third floor
Rashes, regurgitation, uncontrollable
giggling, etc.
SPELL DAMAGE..................................................... Fourth fl
oor
Unliftable jinxes, hexes, incorrectly
applied charms, etc.
VISITORS' TEAROOM / HOSPITAL SHOP.......... Fifth floor
IF YOU ARE UNSURE WHERE TO GO, INCAPABLE OF NORMAL SPEECH OR UNABLE TO REMEMBE
R WHY YOU ARE HERE, OUR WELCOMEWITCH WILL BE PLEASED TO HELP.
Avery old, stooped wizard with a hearing trumpet had shuffled to the front of
the queue now. 'I'm here to see Broderick Bode!' he wheezed.
'Ward forty-nine, but I'm afraid you're wasting your time,' said the witch
dismissively. 'He's completely addled, you know - still thinks he's a teapot.
Next!'
A harassed-looking wizard was holding his small daughter tightly by the an
kle while she flapped around his head using the immensely large, feathery wing
s that had sprouted right out through the back of her romper suit.
'Fourth floor,' said the witch, in a bored voice, without asking, and the
man disappeared through the double doors beside the desk, holding his daughter
like an oddly shaped balloon. 'Next!'
Mrs Weasley moved forward to the desk.
'Hello,' she said, 'my husband, Arthur Weasley, was supposed to be moved t
o a different ward this morning, could you tell us - ?'
'Arthur Weasley?' said the witch, running her finger down a long list in f
ront of her. 'Yes, first floor, second door on the right, Dai Llewellyn Ward.'
Thank you,' said Mrs Weasley. 'Come on, you lot.'
They followed her through the double doors and along the narrow corridor b
eyond, which was lined with more portraits of famous Healers and lit by crysta
l bubbles full of candles that floated up on the ceiling, looking like giant s
oapsuds. More witches and wizards in lime-green robes walked in and out of the
doors they passed; a foul-smelling yellow gas wafted into the passageway as t
hey passed one door, and every now and then they heard distant wailing. They c
limbed a flight of stairs and entered the Creature-Induced Injuries corridor,
where the second door on the right bore the words: 'Dangerous' Dai Llewellyn W
ard: Serious Bites. Underneath this was a card in a brass holder on which had
been handwritten: Healer-in-Charge: Hippocrates Smethwyck. Trainee Healer: Aug
ustus Pye.
'We'll wait outside, Molly,' Tonks said. 'Arthur won't want too many visit
ors at once . . . it ought to be just the family first.'
Mad-Eye growled his approval of this idea and set himself with his back ag
ainst the corridor wall, his magical eye spinning in all directions. Harry dre
w back, too, but Mrs Weasley reached out a hand and pushed him through the doo
r, saying, 'Don't be silly, Harry, Arthur wants to thank you.'
The ward was small and rather dingy, as the only window was narrow and set
high in the wall facing the door. Most of the light came from more shining cr
ystal bubbles clustered in the middle of the ceiling. The walls were of panell
ed oak and there was a portrait of a rather vicious-looking wizard on the wall
, captioned: Urquhart Rackharrow, 1612-1697, Inventor of the Entrail-expelling
Curse.
There were only three patients. Mr Weasley was occupying the bed at the fa
r end oi the ward beside the tiny window. Harry was pleased and relieved to se
e that he was propped up on several pillows and reading the Daily Prophet by t
he solitary ray of sunlight falling on to his bed. He looked up as they walked
towards him and, seeing who it was, beamed.
'Hello!' he called, throwing the Prophet aside. 'Bill just left, Molly, ha
d to get back to work, but he says he'll drop in on you later.'
'How are you, Arthur?' asked Mrs Weasley, bending down to kiss his cheek a
nd looking anxiously into his face. 'You're still looking a bit peaky.'
'I feel absolutely fine,' said Mr Weasley brightly, holding out his good a
rm to give Ginny a hug. 'If they could only take the bandages off, I'd be fit
to go home.'
'Why can't they take them off, Dad?' asked Fred.
'Well, I start bleeding like mad every time they try,' said Mr Weasley che
erfully, reaching across for his wand, which lay on his bedside cabinet, and w
aving it so that six extra chairs appeared at his bedside to seat them all. 'I
t seems there was some rather unusual kind of poison in that snakes fangs that
keeps wounds open. They're sure they'll find an antidote, though; they say th
ey've had much worse cases than mine, and in the meantime I just have to keep
taking a Blood-Replenishing Potion every hour. But that fellow over there,' he
said, dropping his voice and nodding towards the bed opposite in which a man
lay looking green and sickly and staring at the ceiling. 'Bitten by a werewolf
, poor chap. No cure at all.'
'A werewolf?' whispered Mrs Weasley, looking alarmed. 'Is he safe in a pub
lic ward? Shouldn't he be in a private room?'
'It's two weeks till full moon,' Mr Weasley reminded her quietly. They've
been talking to him this morning, the Healers, you know, trying to persuade hi
m he'll be able to lead an almost normal life. I said to him - didn't mention
names, of course - but I said I knew a werewolf personally, very nice man, who
finds the condition quite easy to manage.'
'What did he say?' asked George.
'Said he'd give me another bite if I didn't shut up,' said Mr Weasley sadl
y. 'And that woman over there,' he indicated the only other occupied bed, whic
h was right beside the door, 'won't tell the Healers what bit her, which makes
us all think it must have been something she was handling illegally. Whatever
it was took a real chunk out of her leg, very nasty smell when they take off
the dressings.'
'So, you going to tell us what happened, Dad?' asked Fred, pulling his cha
ir closer to the bed.
'Well, you already know, don't you?' said Mr Weasley, with a significant s
mile at Harry. 'It's very simple - I'd had a very long day, dozed off, got sne
aked up on and bitten.'
'Is it in the Prophet, you being attacked?' asked Fred, indicating the new
spaper Mr Weasley had cast aside.
'No, of course not,' said Mr Weasley, with a slightly bitter smile, 'the M
inistry wouldn't want everyone to know a dirty great serpent got - '
'Arthur!' Mrs Weasley warned him.
' - got - er - me,' Mr Weasley said hastily, though Harry was quite sure t
hat was not what he had meant to say.
'So where were you when it happened, Dad?' asked George.
'That's my business,' said Mr Weasley, though with a small smile. He snatc
hed up the Daily Prophet, shook it open again and said, '] was just reading ab
out Willy Widdershins's arrest when you arrived. You know Willy turned out to
be behind those regurgitating toilets back in the summer? One of his jinxes ba
ckfired, the toilet exploded and they found him lying unconscious in the wreck
age covered from head to foot in - '
When you say you were "on duty",' Fred interrupted in a low voice, 'what w
ere you doing?'
'You heard your father,' whispered Mrs Weasley, 'we are not discussing thi
s here! Go on about Willy Widdershins, Arthur.'
'Well, don't ask me how, but he actually got off the toilet charge,' said
Mr Weasley grimly. 'I can only suppose gold changed hands - '
'You were guarding it, weren't you?' said George quietly. The weapon? The
thing You-Know-Who's after?'
'George, be quiet!' snapped Mrs Weasley.
'Anyway,' said Mr Weasley, in a raised voice, 'this time Willys been caugh
t selling biting doorknobs to Muggles and I don't think he'll be able to worm
his way out of it because, according to this article, two Muggles have lost fi
ngers and are now in St Mungo's for emergency bone re-growth and memory modifi
cation. Just think of it, Muggles in St Mungo's! I wonder which ward they're i
n?'
And he looked eagerly around as though hoping to see a signpost.
'Didn't you say You-Know-Who's got a snake, Harry?' asked Fred, looking at
his father for a reaction. 'A massive one? You saw it the night he returned,
didn't you?'
That's enough,' said Mrs Weasley crossly. 'Mad-Eye and Tonks are outside,
Arthur, they want to come and see you. And you lot can wait outside,' she adde
d to her children and Harry. 'You can come and say goodbye afterwards. Go on.'
They trooped back into the corridor. Mad-Eye and Tonks went in and closed
the door of the ward behind them. Fred raised his eyebrows.
'Fine,' he said coolly, rummaging in his pockets, 'be like that. Don't tel
l us anything.'
'Looking for these?' said George, holding out what looked like a tangle of
flesh-coloured string.
'You read my mind,' said Fred, grinning. 'Let's see if St Mungo's puts Imp
erturbable Charms on its ward doors, shall we?'
He and George disentangled the string and separated five Extendable Ears f
rom each other. Fred and George handed them around. Harry hesitated to take on
e.
'Go on, Harry, take it! You saved Dad's life. If anyone's got the right to
eavesdrop on him, it's you.'
Grinning in spite of himself, Harry took the end of the string and inserte
d it into his ear as the twins had done.
'OK, go!' Fred whispered.
The flesh-coloured strings wriggled like long skinny worms and snaked unde
r the door. At first, Harry could hear nothing, then he jumped as he heard Ton
ks whispering as clearly as though she were standing right beside him.
'. . . they searched the whole area taut couldn't find the snake anywhere.
It just seems to have vanished after it attacked you, Arthur . . . but You-Kn
ow-Who can't have expected a snake to get in, can he?'
'I reckon he sent it as a lookout,' growled Moody, "cause he's not had any
luck so far, has he? No, I reckon he's trying to get a clearer picture of wha
t he's facing and if Arthur hadn't been there the beast would've had a lot mor
e time to look around. So, Potter says he saw it all happen?'
'Yes,' said Mrs Weasley. She sounded rather uneasy. 'You know, Dumbledore
seems almost to have been waiting for Harry to see something like this.'
'Yeah, well,' said Moody, 'there's something funny about the Potter kid, w
e all know that.'
'Dumbledore seemed worried about Harry when I spoke to him this morning,'
whispered Mrs Weasley.
'Course he's worried,' growled Moody. The boy's seeing things from inside
You-Know-Who's snake. Obviously, Potter doesn't realise what that means, but i
f You-Know-Who's possessing him - '
Harry pulled the Extendable Ear out of his own, his heart hammering very f
ast and heat rushing up his face. He looked around at the others. They were al
l staring at him, the strings still trailing from their ears, looking suddenly
fearful.
- CHAPTER TWENTY-THREE -
Christmas on the Closed Ward
Was this why Dumbledore would no longer meet Harry's eyes? Did he expect to se
e Voldemort staring out of them, afraid, perhaps, that their vivid green might
turn suddenly to scarlet, with catlike slits for pupils? Harry remembered how
the snakelike face of Voldemort had once forced itself out of the back of Pro
fessor Quirrell's head and ran his hand over the back of his own, wondering wh
at it would feel like if Voldemort burst out of his skull.
He felt dirty, contaminated, as though he were carrying some deadly germ,
unworthy to sit on the Underground train back from the hospital with innocent,
clean people whose minds and bodies were free of the taint of Voldemort . . .
he had not merely seen the snake, he had been the snake, he knew it now . . .
A truly terrible thought then occurred to him, a memory bobbing to the sur
face of his mind, one that made his insides writhe and squirm like serpents.
What's he after, apart from followers?
Stuff he can only get by stealth . . . like a weapon. Something he didn't
have last time.
I'm the weapon, Harry thought, and it was as though poison were pumping th
rough his veins, chilling him, bringing him out in a sweat as he swayed with t
he train through the dark tunnel. I'm the one Voldemort's trying to use, that'
s why they've got guards around me everywhere I go, it's not for my protection
, it's for other people's, only it's not working, they can't have someone on m
e all the time at Hogwarts . . . I did attack Mr Weasley last night, it was me
. Voldemort made me do it and he could be inside me, listening to my thoughts
right now - '
'Are you all right, Harry, dear?' whispered Mrs Weasley, leaning across Gi
nny to speak to him as the train rattled along through its dark tunnel. 'You d
on't look very well. Are you feeling sick?'
They were all watching him. He shook his head violently and stared up at a
n advertisement for home insurance.
'Harry, dear, are you sure you're all right?' said Mrs Weasley in a worrie
d voice, as they walked around the unkempt patch of grass in the middle of Gri
mmauld Place. 'You look ever so pale . . . are you sure you slept this morning
? You go upstairs to bed right now and you can have a couple of hours of sleep
before dinner, all right?'
He nodded; here was a ready-made excuse not to talk to any of the others,
which was precisely what he wanted, so when she opened the front door he hurri
ed straight past the trolls-leg umbrella stand, up the stairs and into his and
Ron's bedroom.
Here, he began to pace up and down, past the two beds and Phineas Nigellus
's empty picture frame, his brain teeming and seething with questions and ever
more dreadful ideas.
How had he become a snake? Perhaps he was an Animagus . . . no, he couldn'
t be, he would know . . . perhaps Voldemort was an Animagus . . . yes, thought
Harry, that would fit, he would turn into a snake of course . . . and when he
's possessing me, then we both transform . . . that still doesn't explain how
I got to London and back to my bed in the space of about five minutes . . . bu
t then Voldemort's about the most powerful wizard in the world, apart from Dum
bledore, it's probably no problem at all to him to transport people like that.
And then, with a terrible stab of panic, he thought, but this is insane -
if Voldemort's possessing me, I'm giving him a clear view into the Headquarter
s of the Order of the Phoenix right now! He'll know who's in the Order and whe
re Sirius is . . . and I've heard loads of stuff I shouldn't have, everything
Sirius told me the first night I was here . . .
There was only one thing for it: he would have to leave Grimmauld Place st
raightaway. He would spend Christmas at Hogwarts without the others, which wou
ld keep them sate over the holidays at least . . . but no, that wouldn't do, t
here were still plenty of people at Hogwarts to maim and injure. What if it wa
s Seamus, Dean or Neville next time? He stopped his pacing and stood staring a
t Phineas Nigellus's empty frame. A leaden sensation was settling in the pit o
f his stomach. He had no alternative: he was going to have to return to Privet
Drive, cut himself off from other wizards entirely.
Well, if he had to do it, he thought, there was no point hanging around. T
rying with all his might not to think how the Dursleys were going to react whe
n they found him on their doorstep six months earlier than they had expected,
he strode over to his trunk, slammed the lid shut and locked it, then glanced
around automatically for Hedwig before remembering that she was still at Hogwa
rts - well, her cage would be one less thing to carry - he seized one end of h
is trunk and had dragged it halfway towards the door when a snide voice said,
'Running away, are we?'
He looked around. Phineas Nigellus had appeared on the canvas of his portr
ait and was leaning against the frame, watching Harry with an amused expressio
n on his face.
'Not running away, no,' said Harry shortly, dragging his trunk a few more
feet across the room.
'I thought,' said Phineas Nigellus, stroking his pointed beard, 'that to b
elong in Gryffindor house you were supposed to be brave? It looks to me as tho
ugh you would have been better off in my own house. We Slytherins are brave, y
es, but not stupid. For instance, given the choice, we will always choose to s
ave our own necks.'
'It's not my own neck I'm saving,' said Harry tersely, tugging the trunk o
ver a patch of particularly uneven, moth-eaten carpet right in front of the do
or.
'Oh, I see,' said Phineas Nigellus, still stroking his beard, 'this is no
cowardly flight - you are being noble.'
Harry ignored him. His hand was on the doorknob when Phineas Nigellus said
lazily, 'I have a message for you from Albus Dumbledore.'
Harry span round.
'What is it?'
' "Stay where you are." '
'I haven't moved!' said Harry, his hand still upon the doorknob. 'So what'
s the message?'
'I have just given it to you, dolt,' said Phineas Nigellus smoothly. 'Dumb
ledore says, "Stay where you are." '
'Why?' said Harry eagerly, dropping the end of his trunk. 'Why does he wan
t me to stay? What else did he say?'
'Nothing whatsoever,' said Phineas Nigellus, raising a thin black eyebrow
as though he found Harry impertinent.
Harry's temper rose to the surface like a snake rearing from long grass. H
e was exhausted, he was confused beyond measure, he had experienced terror, re
lief, then terror again in the last twelve hours, and still Dumbledore did not
want to talk to him!
'So that's it, is it?' he said loudly. ' "Stay where you are"? That's all
anyone could tell me after I got attacked by those Dementors, loo! Just stay p
ut while the grown-ups sort it out, Harry! We won't bother telling you anythin
g, though, because your tiny little brain might not be able to cope with it!'
'You know,' said Phineas Nigellus, even more loudly than Harry, 'this is p
recisely why I loathed being a teacher! Young people are so infernally convinc
ed that they are absolutely right about everything. Has it not occurred to you
, my poor puffed-up popinjay, that there might be an excellent reason why the
Headmaster of Hogwarts is not confiding every tiny detail of his plans to you?
Have you never paused, while feeling hard-done-by, to note that following Dum
bledore's orders has never yet led you into harm? No. No, like all young peopl
e, you are quite sure that you alone feel and think, you alone recognise dange
r, you alone are the only one clever enough to realise what the Dark Lord may
be planning - '
'He is planning something to do with me, then?' said Harry swiftly.
'Did I say that?' said Phineas Nigellus, idly examining his silk gloves. '
Now, if you will excuse me, I have better things to do than listen to adolesce
nt agonising . . . good-day to you.'
And he strolled to the edge of his frame and out of sight.
'Fine, go then!' Harry bellowed at the empty frame. 'And tell Dumbledore t
hanks for nothing!'
The empty canvas remained silent. Fuming, Harry dragged his trunk back to
the foot of his bed, then threw himself face down on the moth-eaten covers, hi
s eyes shut, his body heavy and aching.
He felt as though he had journeyed for miles and miles . . . it seemed imp
ossible that less than twenty-four hours ago Cho Chang had been approaching hi
m under the mistletoe . . . he was so tired . . . he was scared to sleep . . .
yet he did not know how long he could fight it . . . Dumbledore had told him
to stay . . . that must mean he was allowed to sleep . . . but he was scared .
. . what if it happened again?
He was sinking into shadows . . .
It was as though a film in his head had been waiting to start. He was walk
ing down a deserted corridor towards a plain black door, past rough stone wall
s, torches, and an open doorway on to a flight of stone steps leading downstai
rs on the left . . .
He reached the black door but could not open it. . . he stood gazing at it
, desperate for entry . . . something he wanted with all his heart lay beyond
. . . a prize beyond his dreams . . . if only his scar would stop prickling .
. . then he would be able to think more clearly . . .
'Harry,' said Ron's voice, from far, far away, 'Mum says dinners ready, bu
t she'll save you something if you want to stay in bed.'
Harry opened his eyes, but Ron had already left the room.
He doesn't want to be on his own with me, Harry thought. Not after what he
heard Moody say.
He supposed none of them would want him there any more, now that they knew
what was inside him.
He would not go down to dinner; he would not inflict his company on them.
He turned over on to his other side and, after a while, dropped back off to sl
eep. He woke much later, in the early hours of the morning, his insides aching
with hunger and Ron snoring in the next bed. Squinting around the room, he sa
w the dark outline of Phineas Nigellus standing again in his portrait and it o
ccurred to Harry that Dumbledore had probably sent Phineas Nigellus to watch o
ver him, in case he attacked somebody else.
The feeling of being unclean intensified. He half-wished he had not obeyed
Dumbledore . . . if this was how life was going to be for him in Grimmauld Pl
ace from now on, maybe he would be better off in Privet Drive after all.
*
Everybody else spent the following morning putting up Christmas decorations. H
arry could not remember Sirius ever being in such a good mood; he was actually
singing carols, apparently delighted that he was to have company over Christm
as. Harry could hear his voice echoing up through the floor in the cold drawin
g room where he was sitting alone, watching the sky growing whiter outside the
windows, threatening snow, all the time feeling a savage pleasure that he was
giving the others the opportunity to keep talking about him, as they were bou
nd to be doing. When he heard Mrs Weasley calling his name softly up the stair
s around lunchtime, he retreated further upstairs and ignored her.
Around six o'clock in the evening the doorbell rang and Mrs Black started
screaming again. Assuming that Mundungus or some other Order member had come t
o call, Harry merely settled himself more comfortably against the wall of Buck
beak's room where he was hiding, trying to ignore how hungry he felt as he fed
dead rats to the Hippogriff. It came as a slight shock when somebody hammered
hard on the door a few minutes later.
'I know you're in there,' said Hermione's voice. 'Will you please come out
? I want to talk to you.'
'What are you doing here?' Harry asked her, pulling open the door as Buckb
eak resumed his scratching at the straw-strewn floor for any fragments of rat
he may have dropped. 'I thought you were skiing with your mum and dad?'
'Well, to tell the truth, skiing's not really my thing,' said Hermione. 'S
o, I've come here for Christmas.' There was snow in her hair and her face was
pink with cold. 'But don t tell Ron. I told him skiing's really good because h
e kept laughing so much. Mum and Dad are a bit disappointed, but I've told the
m that everyone who is serious about the exams is staying at Hogwarts to study
. They want me to do well, they'll understand. Anyway,' she said briskly, 'let
's go to your bedroom, Ron's mum has lit a fire in there and she's sent up san
dwiches.'
Harry followed her back to the second floor. When he entered the bedroom,
he was rather surprised to see both Ron and Ginny waiting for them, sitting on
Ron's bed.
'I came on the Knight Bus,' said Hermione airily, pulling off her jacket b
efore Harry had time to speak. 'Dumbledore told me what had happened first thi
ng this morning, but I had to wait for term to end officially before setting o
ff. Umbridge is already livid that you lot disappeared right under her nose, e
ven though Dumbledore told her Mr Weasley was in St Mungo's and he'd given you
all permission to visit. So . . .'
She sat down next to Ginny, and the two girls and Ron all looked up at Har
ry.
'How're you feeling?' asked Hermione.
'Fine,' said Harry stiffly.
'Oh, don't lie, Harry,' she said impatiently. 'Ron and Ginny say you've be
en hiding from everyone since you got back from St Mungo's.'
They do, do they?' said Harry, glaring at Ron and Ginny. Ron looked down a
t his feet but Ginny seemed quite unabashed.
'Well, you have!' she said. 'And you won't look at any of us!'
'It's you lot who won't look at me!' said Harry angrily.
'Maybe you're taking it in turns to look, and keep missing each other,' su
ggested Hermione, the corners of her mouth twitching.
'Very funny,' snapped Harry, turning away.
'Oh, stop feeling all misunderstood,' said Hermione sharply. 'Look, the ot
hers have told me what you overheard last night on the Extendable Ears - '
'Yeah?' growled Harry, his hands deep in his pockets as he watched the sno
w now falling thickly outside. 'All been talking about me, have you? Well, I'm
getting used to it.'
'We wanted to talk to you, Harry' said Ginny, 'but as you've been hiding e
ver since we got back - '
'I didn't want anyone to talk to me,' said Harry, who was feeling more and
more nettled.
'Well, that was a bit stupid of you,' said Ginny angrily, 'seeing as you d
on't know anyone but me who's been possessed by You-Know-Who, and I can tell y
ou how it feels.'
Harry remained quite still as the impact of these words hit him. Then he w
heeled round.
'I forgot,' he said.
'Lucky you,' said Ginny coolly.
Tin sorry,' Harry said, and he meant it. 'So . . . so, do you think I'm be
ing possessed, then?'
'Well, can you remember everything you've been doing?' Ginny asked. 'Are t
here big blank periods where you don't know what you've been up to?'
Harry racked his brains.
'No,' he said.
Then You-Know-Who hasn't ever possessed you,' said Ginny simply. 'When he
did it to me, I couldn't remember what I'd been doing for hours at a time. I'd
find myself somewhere and not know how I got there.'
Harry hardly dared believe her, yet his heart was lightening almost in spi
te of himself.
'That dream I had about your dad and the snake, though - '
'Harry, you've had these dreams before,' Hermione said. 'You had flashes o
f what Voldemort was up to last year.'
This was different,' said Harry, shaking his head. T was inside that snake
. It was like I was the snake . . . what if Voldemort somehow transported me t
o London - ?'
'One day,' said Hermione, sounding thoroughly exasperated, 'you'll read Ho
gwarts: A History, and perhaps it will remind you that you can't Apparate or D
isapparaie inside Hogwarts. Even Voldemort couldn't just make you fly out of y
our dormitory, Harry.'
'You didn't leave your bed, male,' said Ron. T saw you thrashing around in
your sleep for at least a minute before we could wake you up.'
Harry started pacing up and down the room again, thinking. What they were
all saying was not only comforting, it made sense . . . without really thinkin
g, he took a sandwich from the plate on the bed and crammed it hungrily into h
is mouth.
I'm not the weapon after all, thought Harry. His heart swelled with happin
ess and relief, and he felt like joining in as they heard
Sirius tramping past their door towards Buckbeaks room, singing 'God Rest
Ye, Merry Hippogriffs' at the top of his voice.
*
How could he have dreamed of returning to Privet Drive for Christmas? Sirius's
delight at having the house full again, and especially at having Harry back,
was infectious. He was no longer their sullen host of the summer; now he seeme
d determined that everyone should enjoy themselves as much, if not more than t
hey would have done at Hogwarts, and he worked tirelessly in the run-up to Chr
istmas Day, cleaning and decorating with their help, so that by the time they
all went to bed on Christmas Eve the house was barely recognisable. The tarnis
hed chandeliers were no longer hung with cobwebs but with garlands of holly an
d gold and silver streamers; magical snow glittered in heaps over the threadba
re carpets; a great Christmas tree, obtained by Mundungus and decorated with l
ive fairies, blocked Sirius's family tree from view, and even the stuffed elf-
heads on the hall wall wore Father Christmas hats and beards.
Harry awoke on Christmas morning to find a stack of presents at the foot o
f his bed and Ron already halfway through opening his own, rather larger, pile
.
'Good haul this year,' he informed Harry through a cloud of paper. Thanks
for the Broom Compass, it's excellent; beats Hermione's - she got me a homewor
k planner - '
Harry sorted through his presents and found one with Hermione's handwritin
g on it. She had given him, too, a book that resembled a diary except that eve
ry time he opened a page it said aloud things like: 'Do it today or later you'
ll pay!'
Sirius and Lupin had given Harry a set of excellent books entitled Practic
al Defensive Magic and its Use Against the Dark Arts, which had superb, moving
colour illustrations of all the counter-jinxes and hexes it described. Harry
flicked through the first volume eagerly; he could see it was going to be high
ly useful in his plans for the DA. Hagrid had sent a furry brown wallet that h
ad fangs, which were presumably supposed to be an anti-theft device, but unfor
tunately prevented Harry putting any money in without getting his fingers ripp
ed off. Tonks's present was a small, working model of a Firebolt, which Harry
watched fly around the room, wishing he still had his full-size version; Ron h
ad given him an enormous box of Every-Flavour Beans, Mr and Mrs Weasley the us
ual hand-knitted jumper and some mince pies, and Dobby a truly dreadful painti
ng that Harry suspected had been done by the elf himself. He had just turned i
t upside-down to see whether it looked better that way when, with a loud crack
, Fred and George Apparated at the foot of his bed.
'Merry Christmas,' said George. 'Don't go downstairs for a bit.'
'Why not?' said Ron.
'Mum's crying again,' said Fred heavily. 'Percy sent back his Christmas ju
mper.'
'Without a note,' added George. 'Hasn't asked how Dad is or visited him or
anything.'
'We tried to comfort her,' said Fred, moving around the bed to look at Har
ry's portrait. Told her Percy's nothing more than a humungous pile of rat drop
pings.'
'Didn't work,' said George, helping himself to a Chocolate Frog. 'So Lupin
took over. Best let him cheer her up before we go down for breakfast, I recko
n.'
'What's that supposed to be, anyway?' asked Fred, squinting at Dobbys pain
ting. 'Looks like a gibbon with two black eyes.'
'It's Harry!' said George, pointing at the back of the picture, 'says so o
n the back!'
'Good likeness,' said Fred, grinning. Harry threw his new homework diary a
t him; it hit the wall opposite and fell to the floor where it said happily: '
If you've dotted the "i"s and crossed the "t"s then you may do whatever you pl
ease!'
They got up and dressed. They could hear the various inhabitants of the ho
use calling 'Merry Christmas' to one another. On their way downstairs they met
Hermione.
Thanks for the book, Harry,' she said happily. 'I've been wanting that New
Theory of Numerology for ages! And that perfume's really unusual, Ron.'
'No problem,' said Ron. 'Who's that for, anyway?' he added, nodding at the
neatly wrapped present she was carrying.
'Kreacher,' said Hermione brightly.
'It had better not be clothes!' Ron warned her. 'You know what Sirius said
: Kreacher knows too much, we can't set him free!'
'It isn't clothes,' said Hermione, 'although if I had my way I'd certainly
give him something to wear other than that filthy old rag. No, it's a patchwo
rk quilt, I thought it would brighten up his bedroom.'
'What bedroom?' said Harry, dropping his voice to a whisper as they were p
assing the portrait of Sirius's mother.
'Well, Sirius says it's not so much a bedroom, more a kind of - 'den,' sai
d Hermione. 'Apparently he sleeps under the boiler in that cupboard off the ki
tchen.'
Mrs Weasley was the only person in the basement when they arrived there. S
he was standing at the stove and sounded as though she had a bad head cold as
she wished them 'Merry Christmas', and they all averted their eyes.
'So, is this Kreacher's bedroom?' said Ron, strolling over to a dingy door
in the corner opposite the pantry. Harry had never seen it open.
'Yes,' said Hermione, now sounding a little nervous. 'Er . . . I think we'
d better knock.'
Ron rapped on the door with his knuckles but there was no reply.
'He must be sneaking around upstairs,' he said, and without further ado pu
lled open the door. 'Urgh!'
Harry peered inside. Most of the cupboard was taken up with a very large a
nd old-fashioned boiler, but in the foot of space underneath the pipes Kreache
r had made himself something that looked like a nest. A jumble of assorted rag
s and smelly old blankets were piled on the floor and the small dent in the mi
ddle of it showed where Kreacher curled up to sleep every night. Here and ther
e among the material were stale bread crusts and mouldy old bits of cheese. In
a far corner glinted small objects and coins that Harry guessed Kreacher had
saved, magpie-like, from Sirius's purge of the house, and he had also managed
to retrieve the silver-framed family photographs that Sirius had thrown away o
ver the summer. Their glass might be shattered, but still the little black-and
-white people inside them peered up at him haughtily, including - he felt a li
ttle jolt in his stomach - the dark, heavy-lidded woman whose trial he had wit
nessed in Dumbledore's Pensieve: Bellatrix Lestrange. By the looks of it, hers
was Kreachers favourite photograph; he had placed it to the fore of all the others and
had mended the glass clumsily with Spellotape.
'I think I'll just leave his present here,' said Hermione, laying the pack
age neatly in the middle of the depression in the rags and blankets and closin
g the door quietly. 'He'll find it later, that'll be fine.'
'Come to think of it,' said Sirius, emerging from the pantry carrying a la
rge turkey as they closed the cupboard door, 'has anyone actually seen Kreache
r lately?'
'I haven't seen him since the night we came back here,' said Harry. 'You w
ere ordering him out of the kitchen.'
'Yeah . . .' said Sirius, frowning. 'You know, I think that's the last tim
e I saw him, too . . . he must be hiding upstairs somewhere.'
'He couldn't have left, could he?' said Harry. 'I mean, when you said "out
", maybe he thought you meant get out of the house?'
'No, no, house-elves can't leave unless they're given clothes. They're tie
d to their family's house,' said Sirius.
They can leave the house if they really want to,' Harry contradicted him.
'Dobby did, he left the Malfoy's' to give me warnings two years ago. He had to
punish himself afterwards, but he still managed it.'
Sirius looked slightly disconcerted for a moment, then said, 'I'll look fo
r him later, I expect I'll find him upstairs crying his eyes out over my mothe
r's old bloomers or something. Of course, he might have crawled into the airin
g cupboard and died . . . but I mustn't get my hopes up.'
Fred, George and Ron laughed; Hermione, however, looked reproachful.
Once they had eaten their Christmas lunch, the Weasleys, Harry a:id Hermio
ne were planning to pay Mr Weasley another visit, escorted by Mad-Eye and Lupi
n. Mundungus turned up in time for Christmas pudding and trifle, having manage
d to 'borrow' a car for the occasion, as the Underground did not run on Christ
mas Day. The car, which Harry doubted very much had been taken with the consen
t of its owner, had been enlarged with a spell like the Weasleys' old Ford Ang
lia had once been. Although normally proportioned outside, ten people with Mun
dungus driving were able to fit into it quite comfortably. Mrs Weasley hesitat
ed before getting inside - Harry knew her disapproval of Mundungus was battlin
g with her dislike of travelling without magic - but, finally, the cold outsid
e and her children's pleading triumphed, and she settled herself into the back
seat between Fred and Bill with good grace.
The journey to St Mungo's was quite quick as there was very little traffic
on the roads. A small trickle of witches and wizards was creeping furtively u
p the otherwise deserted street to visit the hospital. Harry and the others go
t out of the car, and Mundungus drove off around the corner to wait for them.
They strolled casually towards the window where the dummy in green nylon stood
, then, one by one, stepped through the glass.
The reception area looked pleasantly festive: the crystal orbs that illumi
nated St Mungo's had been coloured red and gold to become gigantic, glowing Ch
ristmas baubles; holly hung around every doorway; and shining white Christmas
trees covered in magical snow and icicles glittered in every corner, each one
topped with a gleaming gold star. It was less crowded than the last time they
had been there, although halfway across the room Harry found himself shunted a
side by a witch with a satsuma jammed up her left nostril.
'Family argument, eh?' smirked the blonde witch behind the desk. 'You're t
he third I've seen today . . . Spell Damage, fourth floor.'
They found Mr Weasley propped up in bed with the remains of his turkey din
ner on a tray on his lap and a rather sheepish expression on his face.
'Everything all right, Arthur?' asked Mrs Weasley, after they had all gree
ted Mr Weasley and handed over their presents.
'Fine, fine,' said Mr Weasley, a little too heartily. 'You - er - 'haven't
seen Healer Smethwyck, have you?'
'No,' said Mrs Weasley suspiciously, 'why?'
'Nothing, nothing,' said Mr Weasley airily, starting to unwrap his pile of
gifts. 'Well, everyone had a good day? What did you all get for Christmas? Oh
, Harry - this is absolutely wonderful!' For he had just opened Harry's gift o
f fuse-wire and screwdrivers.
Mrs Weasley did not seem entirely satisfied with Mr Weasley's answer. As h
er husband leaned over to shake Harry's hand, she peered at the bandaging unde
r his nightshirt.
'Arthur,' she said, with a snap in her voice like a mousetrap, 'you've had
your bandages changed. Why have you had your bandages changed a day early, Ar
thur? They told me they wouldn't need doing until tomorrow.'
'What?' said Mr Weasley, looking rather frightened and pulling the bed cov
ers higher up his chest. 'No, no - it's nothing - it's - 'I - '
He seemed to deflate under Mrs Weasley's piercing gaze.
Well - now don't get upset, Molly, but Augustus Pye had an idea . . . he's
the Trainee Healer, you know, lovely young chap and very interested in . . .
um . . . complementary medicine . . . I mean, some of these old Muggle remedie
s . . . well, they're called stitches, Molly, and they work very well on - on
Muggle wounds - '
Mrs Weasley let out an ominous noise somewhere between a shriek and a snar
l. Lupin strolled away from the bed and over to the werewolf, who had no visit
ors and was looking rather wistfully at the crowd around Mr Weasley; Bill mutt
ered something s.bout getting himself a cup of tea and Fred and George leapt u
p to accompany him, grinning.
'Do you mean to tell me,' said Mrs Weasley, her voice growing louder with
every word and apparently unaware that her fellow visitors were scurrying for
cover, 'that you have been messing about with Muggle remedies?'
'Not messing about, Molly, dear,' said Mr Weasley imploringly, 'it was jus
t - just something Pye and I thought we'd try - only, most unfortunately - wel
l, with these particular kinds of wounds - it doesn't seem to work as well as
we'd hoped - '
'Meaning?'
'Well . . . well, I don't know whether you know what - what stitches are?'
'It sounds as though you've been trying to sew your skin back together,' s
aid Mrs Weasley with a snort of mirthless laughter, 'but even you, Arthur, wou
ldn't be that stupid - '
'I fancy a cup of tea, too,' said Harry, jumping to his feet.
Hermione, Ron and Ginny almost sprinted to the door with him. As it swung
closed behind them, they heard Mrs Weasley shriek, 'WHAT DO YOU MEAN, THAT'S T
HE GENERAL IDEA?'
'Typical Dad,' said Ginny, shaking her head as they set off up the corrido
r. 'Stitches . . . I ask you . . .'
'Well, you know, they do work well on non-magical wounds,' said Hermione f
airly. 'I suppose something in that snake's venom dissolves them or something.
I wonder where the tearoom is?'
'Fifth floor,' said Harry, remembering the sign over the welcomewitch's de
sk.
They walked along the corridor, through a set of double doors and found a
rickety staircase lined with more portraits of brutal-looking Healers. As they
climbed it, the various Healers called out to them, diagnosing odd complaints
and suggesting horrible remedies. Ron was seriously affronted when a medieval
wizard called out that he clearly had a bad case of spattergroit.
'And what's that supposed to be?' he asked angrily, as the Healer pursued
him through six more portraits, shoving the occupants out of the way.
' 'Tis a most grievous affliction of the skin, young master, that will lea
ve you pockmarked and more gruesome even than you are now - '
'Watch who you're calling gruesome!' said Ron, his ears turning red.
' - the only remedy is to take the liver of a toad, bind it tight about yo
ur throat, stand naked at the full moon in a barrel of eels' eyes - '
'I have not got spattergroit!'
'But the unsightly blemishes upon your visage, young master - '
'They're freckles!' said Ron furiously. 'Now get back in your own picture
and leave me alone!'
He rounded on the others, who were all keeping determinedly straight faces
.
'What floor's this?'
'I think it's the fifth,' said Hermione.
'Nah, it's the fourth,' said Harry, 'one more -
But as he stepped on to the landing he came to an abrupt halt, staring at
the small window set into the double doors that marked the start of a corridor
signposted SPELL DAMAGE. A man was peering out at them all with his nose pres
sed against the glass. He had wavy blond hair, bright blue eyes and a broad va
cant smile that revealed dazzlingly white teeth.
'Blimey!' said Ron, also staring at the man.
'Oh, my goodness,' said Hermione suddenly, sounding breathless. 'Professor
Lockhart.'
Their ex-Defence Against the Dark Arts teacher pushed open the doors and m
oved towards them, wearing a long lilac dressing gown.
'Well, hello there!' he said. 'I expect you'd like my autograph, would you
?'
'Hasn't changed much, has he?' Harry muttered to Ginny, who grinned.
'Er - how are you, Professor?' said Ron, sounding slightly guilty. It had
been Ron's malfunctioning wand that had damaged Professor Lockhart's memory so
badly that he had landed in St Mungo's in the first place, though as Lockhart
had been attempting to permanently wipe Harry and Ron's memories at the time,
Harry's sympathy was limited.
'I'm very well indeed, thank you!' said Lockhart exuberantly, palling a ra
ther battered peacock-feather quill from his pocket. 'Mow, how many autographs
would you like? I can do joined-up writing now, you know!'
'Er - we don't want any at the moment, thanks,' said Ron, raising his eyeb
rows at Harry, who asked, 'Professor, should you be wandering around the corri
dors? Shouldn't you be in a ward?'
The smile faded slowly from Lockhart's face. For a few moments he gazed in
tently at Harry, then he said, 'Haven't we met?'
'Er . . . yeah, we have,' said Harry. 'You used to teach us at Hogwarts, r
emember?'
Teach?' repeated Lockhart, looking faintly unsettled. 'Me? Did I?'
And then the smile reappeared upon his face so suddenly it was rather alar
ming.
Taught you everything you know, I expect, did I? Well, how about those aut
ographs, then? Shall we say a round dozen, you can give them to all your littl
e friends then and nobody will be left out!'
But just then a head poked out of a door at the far end of the corridor an
d a voice called, 'Gilderoy, you naughty boy, where have you wandered off to?'
A motherly-looking Healer wearing a tinsel wreath in her hair came bustlin
g up the corridor, smiling warmly at Harry and the others.
'Oh, Gilderoy, you've got visitors! How lovely, and on Christmas Day, too!
Do you know, he never gets visitors, poor lamb, and I can't think why, he's s
uch a sweetie, aren't you?'
'We're doing autographs!' Gilderoy told the Healer with another glittering
smile. They want loads of them, won't take no for an answer! I just hope we'v
e got enough photographs!'
'Listen to him,' said the Healer, taking Lockhart's arm and beaming fondly
at him as though he were a precocious two-year-old. 'He was rather well known
a few years ago; we very much hope that this liking for giving autographs is
a sign that his memory might be starting to come back. Will you step this way?
He's in a closed ward, you know, he must have slipped out while I was bringin
g in the Christmas presents, the door's usually kept locked . . . not that he'
s dangerous! But,' she lowered her voice to a whisper, 'he's a bit of a danger
to himself, bless him . . . doesn't know who he is, you see, wanders off and
can't remember how to get back . . . it is nice of you to have come to see him
.'
'Er,' said Ron, gesturing uselessly at the floor above, 'actually, we were
just - er -'
But the Healer was smiling expectantly at them, and Ron's feeble mutter of
'going to have a cup of tea' trailed away into nothingness. They looked at ea
ch other helplessly, then followed Lockhart and his Healer along the corridor.
'Let's not stay long,' Ron said quietly.
The Healer pointed her wand at the door of the Janus Thickey Ward and mutt
ered, 'Alohomora.' The door swung open and she led the way inside, keeping a f
irm grasp on Gilderoy's arm until she had settled him into an armchair beside
his bed.
This is our long-term residents' ward,' she informed Harry, Ron,
Hermione and Ginny in a low voice. 'For permanent spell damage, you know.
Of course, with intensive remedial potions and charms and a bit of luck, we ca
n produce some improvement. Gilderoy does seem to be getting back some sense o
f himself; and we've seen a real improvement in Mr Bode, he seems to be regain
ing the power of speech very well, though he isn't speaking any language w: re
cognise yet. Well, I must finish giving out the Christmas presents, I'll leave
you all to chat.'
Harry looked around. The ward bore unmistakeable signs of being a permanen
t home to its residents. They had many more personal effects around their beds
than in Mr Weasley's ward; the wall around Gilderoy's headboard, for instance
, was papered with pictures of himself, all beaming toothily and waving at the
new arrivals. He had autographed many of them to himself in disjointed, child
ish writing. The moment he had been deposited in his chair b> the Healer, Gild
eroy pulled a fresh stack of photographs towards him, seized a quill and start
ed signing them all feverishly.
'You can put them in envelopes,' he said to Ginny, throwing the signed pic
tures into her lap one by one as he finished them. 'I am not forgotten, you kn
ow, no, I still receive a very great deal of fan mail . . . Gladys Gudgeon wri
tes weekly . . . I just wish I knew why . . .' He paused, looking faintly puzz
led, then beamed again and returned to his signing with renewed vigour. 'I sus
pect it is simply my good looks . . .'
A sallow-skinned, mournful-looking wizard lay in the bed opposite staring
at the ceiling; he was mumbling to himself and seemed quite unaware of anythin
g around him. Two beds along was a woman whose entire head was covered in fur;
Harry remembered something similar happening to Hermione during their second
year, although fortunately the damage, in her case, had not been permanent. At
the far end of the ward flowery curtains had been drawn around two beds to gi
ve the occupants and their visitors some privacy.
'Here you are, Agnes,' said the Healer brightly to the furry-faced woman,
handing her a small pile of Christmas presents. 'See, not forgotten, are you?
And your son's sent an owl to say he's visiting tonight, so that's nice, isn't
it?'
Agnes gave several loud barks.
'And look, Broderick, you've been sent a pot plant and a lovely calendar w
ith a different fancy Hippogriff for each month; they'll brighten things up, w
on't they?' said the Healer, bustling along to the mumbling man, setting a rat
her ugly plant with long, swaying tentacles on the bedside cabinet and fixing
the calendar to the wall with her wand. 'And - oh, Mrs Longbottom, are you lea
ving already?'
Harry's head span round. The curtains had been drawn back from the two bed
s at the end of the ward and two visitors were walking back down the aisle bet
ween the beds: a formidable-looking old witch wearing a long green dress, a mo
th-eaten fox fur and a pointed hat decorated with what was unmistakeably a stu
ffed vulture and, trailing behind her looking thoroughly depressed - Neville.
With a sudden rush of understanding, Harry realised who the people in the
end beds must be. He cast around wildly for some means of distracting the othe
rs so that Neville could leave the ward unnoticed and unquestioned, but Ron ha
d also looked up at the sound of the name 'Longbottom', and before Harry could
stop him had called out, 'Neville!'
Neville jumped and cowered as though a bullet had narrowly missed him.
'It's us, Neville!' said Ron brightly, getting to his feet. 'Have you seen
- '? Lockhart's here! Who've you been visiting?'
'Friends of yours, Neville, dear?' said Neville's grandmother graciously,
bearing down upon them all.
Neville looked as though he would rather be anywhere in the world but here
. A dull purple flush was creeping up his plump face and he was not making eye
contact with any of them.
'Ah, yes,' said his grandmother, looking closely at Harry and sticking out
a shrivelled, clawlike hand for him to shake. 'Yes, yes, I know who you are,
of course. Neville speaks most highly of you.'
'Er - thanks,' said Harry, shaking hands. Neville did not look at him, but
surveyed his own feet, the colour deepening in his face all the while.
'And you two are clearly Weasleys,' Mrs Longbottom continued, proffering h
er hand regally to Ron and Ginny in turn. 'Yes, I know your parents - not well
, of course - but fine people, fine people . . . and you must be Hermione Gran
ger?'
Hermione looked rather startled that Mrs Longbottom knew her name, but sho
ok hands all the same.
'Yes, Neville's told me all about you. Helped him out of a few sticky spot
s, haven't you? He's a good boy,' she said, casting a sternly appraising look
down her rather bony nose at Neville, 'but be hasn't got his father's talent,
I'm afraid to say.' And she jerked her head in the direction of the two beds a
t the end of the ward, so that the stuffed vulture on her hat trembled alarmin
gly.
'What?' said Ron, looking amazed. (Harry wanted to stamp on Ron's foot, bu
t that sort of thing is much harder to bring off unnoticed when you're wearing
jeans rather than robes.) 'Is that your dad down the end, Neville?'
'What's this?' said Mrs Longbottom sharply. 'Haven't you told your friends
about your parents, Neville?'
Neville took a deep breath, looked up at the ceiling and shook his head. H
arry could not remember ever feeling sorrier for anyone, but he could not thin
k of any way of helping Neville out of the situation.
Well, it's nothing to be ashamed of!' said Mrs Longbottom angrily. 'You sh
ould be proud, Neville, proud! They didn't give their health and their sanity
so their only son would be ashamed of them, you know!'
'I'm not ashamed,' said Neville, very faintly, still looking anywhere but
at Harry and the others. Ron was now standing on tiptoe to look over at the in
habitants of the two beds.
Well, you've got a funny way of showing it!' said Mrs Longbottom. 'My son
and his wife,' she said, turning haughtily to Harry, Ron, Hermione and Ginny,
'were tortured into insanity by You-Know-Who's followers.'
Hermione and Ginny both clapped their hands over their mouths. Ron stopped
craning his neck to catch a glimpse of Neville's parents and looked mortified
.
They were Aurors, you know, and very well respected within the wizarding c
ommunity,' Mrs Longbottom went on. 'Highly gifted, the pair of them. I - yes,
Alice dear, what is it?'
Neville's mother had come edging down the ward in her nightdress. She no l
onger had the plump, happy-looking face Harry had seen in Moody's old photogra
ph of the original Order of the Phoenix. Her face was thin and worn now, her e
yes seemed overlarge and her hair, which had turned white, was wispy and dead-
looking. She did not seem to want to speak, or perhaps she was not able to, bu
t she made timid motions towards Neville, holding something in her outstretche
d hand.
'Again?' said Mrs Longbottom, sounding slightly weary. 'Very well, Alice d
ear, very well - Neville, take it, whatever it is.'
But Neville had already stretched out his hand, into which his mother drop
ped an empty Drooble's Best Blowing Gum wrapper.
'Very nice, dear,' said Neville's grandmother in a falsely cheery voice, p
atting his mother on the shoulder.
But Neville said quietly, Thanks, Mum.'
His mother tottered away, back up the ward, humming to herself. Neville lo
oked around at the others, his expression defiant, as though daring them to la
ugh, but Harry did not think he'd ever found anything less funny in his life.
'Well, we'd better get back,' sighed Mrs Longbottom, drawing on long green
gloves. 'Very nice to have met you all. Neville, put that wrapper in the bin,
she must have given you enough of them to paper your bedroom by now.'
But as they left, Harry was sure he saw Neville slip the sweet wrapper int
o his pocket.
The door closed behind them.
'I never knew,' said Hermione, who looked tearful.
'Nor did I,' said Ron rather hoarsely.
'Nor me,' whispered Ginny.
They all looked at Harry.
'I did,' he said glumly. 'Dumbledore told me but I promised I wouldn't tel
l anyone . . . that's what Bellatrix Lestrange got sent to Azkaban for, using
the Cruciatus Curse on Neville's parents until they lost their minds.'
'Bellatrix Lestrange did that?' whispered Hermione, horrified. That woman
Kreacher's got a photo of in his den?'
There was a long silence, broken by Lockhart's angry voice.
'Look, I didn't learn joined-up writing for nothing, you know!'
- CHAPTER TWENTY-FOUR -
Occlumency
Kreacher, it transpired, had been lurking in the attic. Sirius said he had fou
nd him up there, covered in dust, no doubt looking for more relics of the Blac
k family to hide in his cupboard. Though Sirius seemed satisfied with this sto
ry, it made Harry uneasy. Kreacher seemed to be in a better mood on his reappe
arance, his bitter muttering had subsided somewhat and he submitted to orders
more docilely than usual, though once or twice Harry caught the house-elf star
ing at him avidly, but always looking quickly away whenever he saw that Harry
had noticed.
Harry did not mention his vague suspicions to Sirius, whose cheerfulness w
as evaporating fast now that Christmas was over. As the date of their departur
e back to Hogwarts drew nearer, he became more and more prone to what Mrs Weas
ley called 'fits of the sullens', in which he would become taciturn and grumpy
, often withdrawing to Buckbeak's room for hours at a time. His gloom seeped t
hrough the house, oozing under doorways like some noxious gas, so that all of
them became infected by it.
Harry didn't want to leave Sirius again with only Kreacher for company; in
fact, for the first time in his life, he was not looking forward to returning
to Hogwarts. Going back to school would mean placing himself once again under
the tyranny of Dolores Umbridge, who had no doubt managed to force through an
other dozen decrees in their absence; there was no Quidditch to look forward t
o now that he had been banned, there was every likelihood that their burden of
homework would increase as the exams drew even nearer; and Dumbledore remaine
d as remote as ever. In fact, if it hadn't been for the DA, Harry thought he m
ight have begged Sirius to let him leave Hogwarts and remain in Grimmauld Plac
e.
Then, on the very last day of the holidays, something happened that made H
arry positively dread his return to school.
'Harry, dear,' said Mrs Weasley poking her head into his and Ron's bedroom
, where the pair of them were playing wizard chess watched by Hermione, Ginny
and Crookshanks, 'could you come down to the kitchen? Professor Snape would li
ke a word with you.'
Harry did not immediately register what she had said; one of his castles w
as engaged in a violent tussle with a pawn of Ron's and he was egging it on en
thusiastically.
'Squash him - squash him, he's only a pawn, you idiot. Sorry, Mrs Weasley,
what did you say?'
'Professor Snape, dear. In the kitchen. He'd like a word.'
Harry's mouth fell open in horror. He looked around at Ron, Hermione and G
inny, all of whom were gaping back at him. Crookshanks, whom Hermione had been
restraining with difficulty for the past quarter of an hour, leapt gleefully
on to the board and set the pieces running for cover, squealing at the top of
their voices.
'Snape?' said Harry blankly.
'Professor Snape, dear,' said Mrs Weasley reprovingly. 'Now come on, quick
ly, he says he can't stay long.'
'What's he want with you?' said Ron, looking unnerved as Mrs Weasley withd
rew from the room. 'You haven't done anything, have you?'
'No!' said Harry indignantly, racking his brains to think what he could ha
ve done that would make Snape pursue him to Grimmauld Place. Had his last piec
e of homework perhaps earned a 'T'?
A minute or two later, he pushed open the kitchen door to find Sirius and
Snape both seated at the long kitchen table, glaring in opposite directions. T
he silence between them was heavy with mutual dislike. A letter lay open on th
e table in front of Sirius.
'Er,' said Harry, to announce his presence.
Snape looked around at him, his face framed between curtains of greasy bla
ck hair.
'Sit down, Potter.'
'You know,' said Sirius loudly, leaning back on his rear chair legs and sp
eaking to the ceiling, 'I think I'd prefer it if you didn't give orders here,
Snape. It's my house, you see.'
An ugly flush suffused Snape's pallid face. Harry sat down in a chair besi
de Sirius, facing Snape across the table.
'I was supposed to see you alone, Potter,' said Snape, the familiar sneer
curling his mouth, 'but Black - '
'I'm his godfather,' said Sirius, louder than ever.
'I am here on Dumbledore's orders.' said Snape, whose voice, by contrast,
was becoming more and more quietly waspish, 'but by all means stay, Black, I k
now you like lo feel . . . involved.'
'What's that supposed to mean?' said Sirius, letting his chair fall back o
n to all four legs with a loud bang.
'Merely that I am sure you must feel - ah - frustrated by the fact that yo
u can do nothing useful,' Snape laid a delicate stress on the word, 'for the O
rder.'
It was Sirius's turn to flush. Snape's lip curled in triumph as he turned
to Harry.
The Headmaster has sent me to tell you, Potter, that it is his wish for yo
u to study Occlumency this term.'
'Study what?' said Harry blankly.
Snape's sneer became more pronounced.
'Occlumency, Potter. The magical defence of the mind against external pene
tration. An obscure branch of magic, but a highly useful one.'
Harry's heart began to pump very fast indeed. Defence against external pen
etration? But he was not being possessed, they had all agreed on that . . .
'Why do I have to study Occlu - thing?' he blurted out.
'Because the Headmaster thinks it a good idea,' said Snape smoothly. 'You
will receive private lessons once a week, but you will not tell anybody what y
ou are doing, least of all Dolores Umbridge. You understand?'
'Yes,' said Harry. 'Who's going to be teaching me?'
Snape raised an eyebrow.
'I am,' he said.
Harry had the horrible sensation that his insides were melting.
Extra lessons with Snape - what on earth had he done to deserve this? He l
ooked quickly round at Sirius for support.
'Why can't Dumbledore teach Harry?' asked Sirius aggressively. 'Why you?'
'I suppose because it is a headmasters privilege to delegate less enjoyabl
e tasks,' said Snape silkily. 'I assure you I did not beg for the job.' He got
to his feet. 'I will expect you at six o'clock on Monday evening, Potter. My
office. If anybody asks, you are taking remedial Potions. Nobody who has seen
you in my classes could deny you need them.'
He turned to leave, his black travelling cloak billowing behind him.
'Wait a moment,' said Sirius, sitting up straighter in his chair.
Snape turned back to face them, sneering.
'I am in rather a hurry, Black. Unlike you, I do not have unlimited leisur
e time.'
'I'll get to the point, then,' said Sirius, standing up. He was rather tal
ler than Snape who, Harry noticed, balled his fist in the pocket of his cloak
over what Harry was sure was the handle of his wand. 'If I hear you're using t
hese Occlumency lessons to give Harry a hard time, you'll have me to answer to
.'
'How touching,' Snape sneered. 'But surely you have noticed that Potter is
very like his father?'
'Yes, I have,' said Sirius proudly.
'Well then, you'll know he's so arrogant that criticism simply bounces off
him,' Snape said sleekly.
Sirius pushed his chair roughly aside and strode around the table towards
Snape, pulling out his wand as he went. Snape whipped out his own. They were s
quaring up to each other, Sirius looking livid, Snape calculating, his eyes da
rting from Sirius's wand-tip to his face.
'Sirius!' said Harry loudly, but Sirius appeared not to hear him.
'I've warned you, Snivelus,' said Sirius, his face barely a foot from Snap
e's, 'I don't care if Dumbledore thinks you've reformed, I know better - '
'Oh, but why don't you tell him so?' whispered Snape. 'Or are you afraid h
e might not take very seriously the advice of a man who has been hiding inside
his mother's house for six months?'
Tell me, how is Lucius Malfoy these days? I expect he's delighted his lapd
og's working at Hogwarts, isn't he?'
'Speaking of dogs,' said Snape softly, 'did you know that Lucius Malfoy re
cognised you last time you risked a little jaunt outside? Clever idea, Black,
getting yourself seen on a safe station platform . . . gave you a cast-iron ex
cuse not to leave your hidey-hole in future, didn't it?'
Sirius raised his wand.
'NO!' Harry yelled, vaulting over the table and trying to get in between t
hem. 'Sirius, don't!'
'Are you calling me a coward?' roared Sirius, trying to push Harry out of
the way, but Harry would not budge.
'Why, yes, I suppose I am,' said Snape.
'Harry - get - out - of - it!' snarled Sirius, pushing him aside with his
free hand.
The kitchen door opened and the entire Weasley family, plus Hermione, came
inside, all looking very happy, with Mr Weasley walking proudly in their mids
t dressed in a pair of striped pyjamas covered by a mackintosh.
'Cured!' he announced brightly to the kitchen at large. 'Completely cured!
'
He and all the other Weasleys froze on the threshold, gazing at the scene
in front of them, which was also suspended in mid-action, both Sirius and Snap
e looking towards the door with their wands pointing into each other's faces a
nd Harry immobile between them, a hand stretched out to each, trying to force
them apart.
'Merlins beard,' said Mr Weasley, the smile sliding off his face, 'what's
going on here?'
Both Sirius and Snape lowered their wands. Harry looked from one to the ot
her. Each wore an expression of utmost contempt, yet the unexpected entrance o
f so many witnesses seemed to have brought them to their senses. Snape piocket
ed his wand, turned on his heel and swept back across the kitchen, passing the
Weasleys without comment. At the door he looked back.
'Six o'clock, Monday evening, Potter.'
And he was gone. Sirius glared after him, his wand at his side.
'What's been going on?' asked Mr Weasley again.
'Nothing, Arthur,' said Sirius, who was breathing heavily as though he had
just run a long distance. 'Just a friendly little chat between two old school
friends.' With what looked like an enormous effort, he smiled. 'So . . . you'
re cured? That's great news, really great.'
'Yes, isn't it?' said Mrs Weasley, leading her husband forward to a chair.
'Healer Smethwyck worked his magic in the end, found an antidote to whatever
that snake's got in its fangs, and Arthur's learned his lesson about dabbling
in Muggle medicine, haven't you, dear?' she added, rather menacingly.
'Yes, Molly dear,' said Mr Weasley meekly.
That nights meal should have been a cheerful one, with Mr Weasley back amo
ngst them. Harry could tell Sirius was trying to make it so, yet when his godf
ather was not forcing himself to laugh loudly at Fred and George's jokes or of
fering everyone more food, his face fell back into a moody, brooding expressio
n. Harry was separated from him by Mundungus and Mad-Eye, who had dropped in t
o offer Mr Weasley their congratulations. He wanted to talk to Sirius, to tell
him he shouldn't listen to a word Snape said, that Snape was goading him deli
berately and that the rest of them didn't think Sirius was a coward for doing
as Dumbledore told him and remaining in Grimmauld Place. But he had no opportu
nity to do so, and, eyeing the ugly look on Sirius's face, Harry wondered occa
sionally whether he would have dared to mention it even if he had the chance.
Instead, he told Ron and Hermione under his voice about having to take Occlume
ncy lessons with Snape.
'Dumbledore wants to stop you having those dreams about Voldemort,' said H
ermione at once. Well, you won't be sorry not to have them any more, will you?
'
'Extra lessons with Snape?' said Ron, sounding aghast. 'I'd rather have th
e nightmares!'
They were to return to Hogwarts on the Knight Bus the following day, escor
ted once again by Tonks and Lupin, both of whom were eating breakfast in the k
itchen when Harry, Ron and Hermione came down next morning. The adults seemed
to have been mid-
way through a whispered conversation as Harry opened the door; a I of them
looked round hastily and fell silent.
After a hurried breakfast, they all pulled on jackets and scarves against
the chilly grey January morning. Harry had an unpleasant constricted sensation
in his chest; he did not want to say goodbye to Sirius. He had a bad feeling
about this parting; he didn't know when they would next see each other and he
felt it was incumbent upon him to say something to Sirius to stop him doing an
ything stupid - Harry was worried that Snape's accusation of cowardice had stu
ng Sirius so badly he might even now be planning some foolhardy trip beyond Gr
immauld Place. Before he could think of what to say, however, Sirius had becko
ned him to his side.
'I want you to take this,' he said quietly, thrusting a badly wrapped pack
age roughly the size of a paperback book into Harry's hands.
'What is it?' Harry asked.
'A way of letting me know if Snape's giving you a hard time. No, don't ope
n it in here!' said Sirius, with a wary look at Mrs Weasley, who was trying to
persuade the twins to wear hand-knitted mittens. 'I doubt Molly would approve
- but I want you to use it if you need me, all right?'
'OK,' said Harry, stowing the package away in the inside pocket of his jac
ket, but he knew he would never use whatever it was. It would not be he, Harry
, who lured Sirius from his place of safety, no matter how foully Snape treate
d him in their forthcoming Occlumency classes.
'Let's go, then,' said Sirius, clapping Harry on the shoulder and smiling
grimly, and before Harry could say anything else, they were heading upstairs,
stopping before the heavily chained and bolted front door, surrounded by Weasl
eys.
'Goodbye, Harry, take care,' said Mrs Weasley, hugging him.
'See you, Harry, and keep an eye out for snakes for me!' said Mr Weasley g
enially, shaking his hand.
'Right - yeah,' said Harry distractedly; it was his last chance to tell Si
rius to be careful; he turned, looked into his godfathers face and opened his
mouth to speak, but before he could do so Sirius was giving him a brief, one-a
rmed hug, and saying gruffly, 'Look after yourself, Harry.' Next moment, Harry
found himself being shunted out into the icy winter air, with Tonks (today he
avily disguised as a tall, tweedy woman with iron-grey hair) chivvying him dow
n the steps.
The door of number twelve slammed shut behind them. They followed Lupin do
wn the front steps. As he reached the pavement, Harry looked round. Number twe
lve was shrinking rapidly as those on either side of it stretched sideways, sq
ueezing it out of sight. One blink later, it had gone.
'Come on, the quicker we get on the bus the better,' said Tonks, and Harry
thought there was nervousness in the glance she threw around the square. Lupi
n flung out his right arm.
BANG.
A violently purple, triple-decker bus had appeared out of thin air in fron
t of them, narrowly avoiding the nearest lamppost, which jumped backwards out
of its way.
A thin, pimply, jug-eared youth in a purple uniform leapt down on to the p
avement and said, 'Welcome to the - '
'Yes, yes, we know, thank you,' said Tonks swiftly. 'On, on, get on - '
And she shoved Harry forwards towards the steps, past the conductor, who g
oggled at Harry as he passed.
"Ere - it's 'Any - '!'
'If you shout his name I will curse you into oblivion,' muttered Tonks men
acingly, now shunting Ginny and Hermione forwards.
'I've always wanted to go on this thing,' said Ron happily, joining Harry
on board and looking around.
It had been evening the last time Harry had travelled by Knight Bus and it
s three decks had been full of brass bedsteads. Now, in the early morning, it
was crammed with an assortment of mismatched chairs grouped haphazardly around
windows. Some of these appeared to have fallen over when the bus stopped abru
ptly in Grimmauld Place; a few witches and wizards were still getting to their
feet, grumbling, and somebody's shopping bag had slid the length of the bus:
an unpleasant mixture of frogspawn, cockroaches and custard creams was scatter
ed all over the floor.
'Looks like we'll have to split up,' said Tonks briskly, looking a.round f
or empty chairs. 'Fred, George and Ginny, if you just take those seats at the
back . . . Remus can stay with you.'
She, Harry, Ron and Hermione proceeded up to the very top deck, where ther
e were two unoccupied chairs at the very front of the bus and two at the back.
Stan Shunpike, the conductor, followed Harry and Ron eagerly to the back. Hea
ds turned as Harry passed and, when he sat down, he saw all the faces flick ba
ck to the front again.
As Harry and Ron handed Stan eleven Sickles each, the bus set off again, s
waying ominously. It rumbled around Grimmauld Place, v/eaving on and off the p
avement, then, with another tremendous BANG, they were all flung backwards; Ro
n's chair toppled right over and Pigwidgeon, who had been on his lap, burst ou
t of his cage and flew twittering wildly up to the front of the bus where he f
luttered down on to Hermione s shoulder instead. Harry, who had narrowly avoid
ed falling by seizing a candle bracket, looked out of the window: they were no
w speeding down what appeared to be a motorway.
'Just outside Birmingham,' said Stan happily, answering Harry's unasked qu
estion as Ron struggled up from the floor. 'You keepin' well, then, 'Any? I se
en your name in the paper loads over the sammer, but it weren't never nuflink
very nice. I said to Ern, I said, 'e didn't seem like a nutter when we met 'im
, just goes to siow, dunnit?'
He handed over their tickets and continued to gaze, enthralled, at Harry.
Apparently, Stan did not care how nutty somebody was, if they were famous enou
gh to be in the paper. The Knight Bus swayed alarmingly, overtaking a line of
cars on the inside. Looking towards the front of the bus, Harry saw Hermione c
over her eyes with her hands, Pigwidgeon swaying happily on her shoulder.
BANG.
Chairs slid backwards again as the Knight Bus jumped from the Birmingham m
otorway to a quiet country lane full of hairpin bends. Hedgerows on either sid
e of the road were leaping out of their way as they mounted the verges. From h
ere they moved to a main street in the middle of a busy town, then to a viaduc
t surrounded by tall hills, then to a windswept road between high-rise flats,
each time with a loud BANG.
'I've changed my mind,' muttered Ron, picking himself up from the floor fo
r the sixth time, 'I never want to ride on this thing again.'
'Listen, it's 'Ogwarts stop after this,' said Stan brightly, swaying towar
ds them. That bossy woman up front 'oo got on with you, she's given us a littl
e tip to move you up the queue. We're just gonna let Madam Marsh off first, th
ough - ' there was a retching sound from downstairs, followed by a horrible sp
attering noise - she's not feeling 'er best.'
A few minutes later, the Knight Bus screeched to a halt outside a small pu
b, which squeezed itself out of the way to avoid a collision. They could hear
Stan ushering the unfortunate Madam Marsh out of the bus and the relieved murm
urings of her fellow passengers on the second deck. The bus moved on again, ga
thering speed, until - '
BANG.
They were rolling through a snowy Hogsmeade. Harry caught a glimpse of the
Hog's Head down its side street, the severed boar's head sign creaking in the
wintry wind. Flecks of snow hit the large window at the front of the bus. At
last they rolled to a halt outside the gates to Hogwarts.
Lupin and Tonks helped them off the bus with their luggage, then got off t
o say goodbye. Harry glanced up at the three decks of the Knight Bus and saw a
ll the passengers staring down at them, noses flat against the windows.
'You'll be safe once you're in the grounds,' said Tonks, casting a careful
eye around at the deserted road. 'Have a good term, OK?'
'Look after yourselves,' said Lupin, shaking hands all round and reaching
Harry last. 'And listen . . .' he lowered his voice while the rest of them exc
hanged last-minute goodbyes with Tonks, 'Harry, I know you don't like Snape, b
ut he is a superb Occlumens and we all - Sirius included - want you to learn t
o protect yourself, so work hard, all right?'
'Yeah, all right,' said Harry heavily, looking up into Lupin's prematurely
lined face. 'See you, then.'
The six of them struggled up the slippery drive towards the castle, draggi
ng their trunks. Hermione was already talking about knitting a few elf hats be
fore bedtime. Harry glanced back when they reached the oaken front doors; the
Knight Bus had already gone and he half-wished, given what was coming the foll
owing evening, that he was still on board.
*
Harry spent most of the next day dreading the evening. His morning double-Poti
ons lesson did nothing to dispel his trepidation, as Snape was as unpleasant a
s ever. His mood was further lowered by the DA members constantly approaching
him in the corridors between classes, asking hopefully if there would be a mee
ting that night.
'I'll let you know in the usual way when the next one is,' Harry said over
and over again, 'but I can't do it tonight, I've got to go to - er - remedial
Potions.'
'You take remedial Potions?' asked Zacharias Smith superciliously, having
cornered Harry in the Entrance Hall after lunch. 'Good Lord, you must be terri
ble. Snape doesn't usually give extra lessons, does he?'
As Smith strode away in an annoyingly buoyant fashion, Ron g'.ared after h
im.
'Shall I jinx him? I can still get him from here,' he said, raising his wa
nd and taking aim between Smith's shoulder blades.
'Forget it,' said Harry dismally. 'It's what everyone's going to think, is
n't it? That I'm really stup - '
'Hi, Harry,' said a voice behind him. He turned round and found Cho standi
ng there.
'Oh,' said Harry as his stomach leapt uncomfortably. 'Hi.'
'We'll be in the library, Harry,' said Hermione firmly as she seized Ron a
bove the elbow and dragged him off towards the marble staircase.
'Had a good Christmas?' asked Cho.
'Yeah, not bad,' said Harry.
'Mine was pretty quiet,' said Cho. For some reason, she was looking rather
embarrassed. 'Erm . . . there's another Hogsmeade trip next month, did you se
e the notice?'
'What? Oh, no, I haven't checked the noticeboard since I got back.'
'Yes, it's on Valentines Day . . .'
'Right,' said Harry, wondering why she was telling him this. 'Well, I supp
ose you want to - ?'
'Only if you do,' she said eagerly.
Harry stared. He had been about to say, 'I suppose you want to know when t
he next DA meeting is?' but her response did not seem to fit.
'I - er - ' he said.
'Oh, it's OK if you don't,' she said, looking mortified. 'Don't worry. I -
I'll see you around.'
She walked away. Harry stood staring after her, his brain working frantica
lly. Then something clunked into place.
'Cho! Hey - CHO!'
He ran after her, catching her halfway up the marble staircase.
'Er - d'you want to come into Hogsmeade with me on Valentine s Day?'
'Oooh, yes!' she said, blushing crimson and beaming at him.
'Right . . . well . . . that's settled then,' said Harry, and feeling that
the day was not going to be a complete loss after all, he virtually bounced o
ff to the library to pick up Ron and Hermione before their afternoon lessons.
By six o'clock that evening, however, even the glow of having successfully
asked out Cho Chang could not lighten the ominous feelings that intensified w
ith every step Harry took towards Snape's office.
He paused outside the door when he reached it, wishing he were almost anyw
here else, then, taking a deep breath, he knocked and entered.
The shadowy room was lined with shelves bearing hundreds of glass jars in
which slimy bits of animals and plants were suspended in variously coloured po
tions. In one corner stood the cupboard full of ingredients that Snape had onc
e accused Harry - not without reason - of robbing. Harry's attention was drawn
towards the desk, however, where a shallow stone basin engraved with runes an
d symbols lay in a pool of candlelight. Harry recognised it at once - it was D
umbledore's Pensieve. Wondering what on earth it was doing there, he jumped wh
en Snape's cold voice came out of the shadows.
'Shut the door behind you, Potter.'
Harry did as he was told, with the horrible feeling that he was imprisonin
g himself. When he turned back into the room, Snape had moved into the light a
nd was pointing silently at the chair opposite his desk. Harry sat down and so
did Snape, his cold black eyes fixed unblinkingly upon Harry, dislike etched
in every line of his face.
'Well, Potter, you know why you are here,' he said. 'The Headmaster has as
ked me to teach you Occlumency. I can only hope that you prove more adept at i
t than at Potions.'
'Right,' said Harry tersely.
This may not be an ordinary class, Potter,' said Snape, his eyes narrowed
malevolently, 'but I am still your teacher and you will therefore call me "sir
" or "Professor" at all times.'
'Yes . . . sir,' said Harry.
Snape continued to survey him through narrowed eyes for a moment, then sai
d, 'Now, Occlumency. As I told you back in your dear godfather's kitchen, this
branch of magic seals the mind against magical intrusion and influence.'
'And why does Professor Dumbledore think I need it, sir?' said Harry looki
ng directly into Snape's eyes and wondering whether Snape would answer.
Snape looked back at him for a moment and then said contemptuously, 'Surel
y even you could have worked that out by now, Potter? The Dark Lord is highly
skilled at Legilimency - '
'What's that? Sir?'
'It is the ability to extract feelings and memories from another person's
mind - '
'He can read minds?' said Harry quickly, his worst fears confirmed.
'You have no subtlety, Potter,' said Snape, his dark eyes glit-te'ing. 'Yo
u do not understand fine distinctions. It is one of the shortcomings that make
s you such a lamentable potion-maker.'
Snape paused for a moment, apparently to savour the pleasure of insulting
Harry, before continuing.
'Only Muggles talk of "mind-reading". The mind is not a book, to be opened
at will and examined at leisure. Thoughts are not etched on the inside of sku
lls, to be perused by any invader, ihe mind is a complex and many-layered thin
g, Potter - or at least, most minds are.' He smirked. 'It is true, however, th
at those who have mastered Legilimency are able, under certain conditions, to
delve into the minds of their victims and to interpret their findings correctl
y. The Dark Lord, for instance, almost always knows when somebody is lying to
him. Only those skilled at Occlumency are able to shut down those feelings and
memories that contradict the lie, and so can utter falsehoods in his presence
without detection.'
Whatever Snape said, Legilimency sounded like mind-reading to Harry, and h
e didn't like the sound of it at all.
'So he could know what we're thinking right now? Sir?'
The Dark Lord is at a considerable distance and the walls and grounds of H
ogwarts are guarded by many ancient spells and charms to ensure the bodily and
mental safety of those who dwell within them,' said Snape. Time and space mat
ter in magic, Potter. Eye contact is often essential to Legilimency.'
'Well then, why do I have to learn Occlumency?'
Snape eyed Harry, tracing his mouth with one long, thin finger as he did s
o.
The usual rules do not seem to apply with you, Potter. The curse that fail
ed to kill you seems to have forged some kind of connection between you and th
e Dark Lord. The evidence suggests that at times, when your mind is most relax
ed and vulnerable - when you are asleep, for instance - you are sharing the Da
rk Lord's thoughts and emotions. The Headmaster thinks it inadvisable for this
to continue. He wishes me to teach you how to close your mind to the Dark Lor
d.'
Harry's heart was pumping fast again. None of this added up.
'But why does Professor Dumbledore want to stop it?' he asked abruptly. 'I
don't like it much, but it's been useful, hasn't it? I mean . . . I saw that
snake attack Mr Weasley and if I hadn't, Professor Dumbledore wouldn't have be
en able to save him, would he? Sir?'
Snape stared at Harry for a few moments, still tracing his mouth with his
finger. When he spoke again, it was slowly and deliberately, as though he weig
hed every word.
'It appears that the Dark Lord has bee a unaware of the connection between
you and himself until very recently. Up till now it seems that you have been
experiencing his emotions, and sharing his thoughts, without his being any the
wiser. However, the vision you had shortly before Christmas - '
The one with the snake and Mr Weasley?'
'Do not interrupt me, Potter,' said Snape in a dangerous voice. 'As I was
saying, the vision you had shortly before Christmas represented such a powerfu
l incursion upon the Dark Lord's thoughts -
'I saw inside the snake's head, not his!'
'I thought I just told you not to interrupt me, Potter?'
But Harry did not care if Snape was angry; at last he seemed to be getting
to the bottom of this business; he had moved forwards in his chair so that, w
ithout realising it, he was perched on the very edge, tense as though poised f
or flight.
'How come I saw through the snake's eyes if it's Voldemort's thoughts I'm
sharing?'
'Do not say the Dark Lord's name!' spat Snape.
There was a nasty silence. They glared at each other across the Pensieve.
'Professor Dumbledore says his name.' said Harry quietly.
'Dumbledore is an extremely powerful wizard,' Snape muttered. 'While he ma
y feel secure enough to use the name . . . the rest of us . . .' He rubbed his
left forearm, apparently unconsciously, on the spot where Harry knew the Dark
Mark was burned into his skin.
'I just wanted to know,' Harry began again, forcing his voice back to poli
teness, 'why - '
'You seem to have visited the snake's mind because that was where the Dark
Lord was at that particular moment,' snarled Snape. 'He was possessing the sn
ake at the time and so you dreamed you were inside it, too.'
'And Vol - he - realised I was there?'
'It seems so,' said Snape coolly.
'How do you know?' said Harry urgently. 'Is this just Professor Dumbledore
guessing, or - ?'
'I told you,' said Snape, rigid in his chair, his eyes slits, 'to call me
"sir".
'Yes, sir,' said Harry impatiently, 'but how do you know - '?
'It is enough that we know,' said Snape repressively. The important point
is that the Dark Lord is now aware that you are gaining access to his thoughts
and feelings. He has also deduced that the process is likely to work in rever
se; that is to say, he has realised that he might be able to access your thoug
hts and feelings in return - '
'And he might try and make me do things?' asked Harry. 'Sir?' he added hur
riedly.
'He might,' said Snape, sounding cold and unconcerned. 'Which brings us ba
ck to Occlumency.'
Snape pulled out his wand from an inside pocket of his robes and Harry ten
sed in his chair, but Snape merely raised the wand to his temple and placed it
s tip into the greasy roots of his hair. When he withdrew it, some silvery sub
stance came away, stretching from temple to wand like a thick gossamer strand,
which broke as he pulled the wand away from it and fell gracefully into the P
ensieve, where it swirled silvery-white, neither gas nor liquid. Twice more, S
nape raised the wand to his temple and deposited the silvery substance into th
e stone basin, then, without offering any explanation of his behaviour, he pic
ked up the Pensieve carefully, removed it to a shelf out of their way and retu
rned to face Harry with his wand held at the ready.
'Stand up and take out your wand, Potter.'
Harry got to his feet, feeling nervous. They faced each other with the des
k between them.
'You may use your wand to attempt to disarm me, or defend yourself in any
other way you can think of,' said Snape.
'And what are you going to do?' Harry asked, eyeing Snape's wand apprehens
ively.
'I am about to attempt to break into your mind,' said Snape softly. 'We ar
e going to see how well you resist. I have been told that you have already sho
wn aptitude at resisting the Imperius Curse. You will find that similar powers
are needed for this . . . brace yourself, now. Legilimens!'
Snape had struck before Harry was ready, before he had even begun to summo
n any force of resistance. The office swam in front of his eyes and vanished;
image after image was racing through his mind like a flickering film so vivid
it blinded him to his surroundings.
He was five, watching Dudley riding a new red bicycle, and his heart was b
ursting with jealousy . . . he was nine, and Ripper the bulldog was chasing hi
m up a tree and the Dursleys were laughing below on the lawn . . . he was sitt
ing under the Sorting Hat, and it was telling him he would do well in Slytheri
n . . . Hermione was lying in the hospital wing, her face covered with thick b
lack hair . . . a hundred Dementors were closing in on him beside the dark lak
e . . . Cho Chang was drawing nearer to him under the mistletoe . . .
No, said a voice inside Harry's head, as the memory of Cho drew nearer, yo
u're not watching that, you're not watching it, it's private - '
He felt a sharp pain in his knee. Snape's office had come back into view a
nd he realised that he had fallen to the floor; one of his knees had collided
painfully with the leg of Snape's desk. He looked up at Snape, who had lowered
his wand and was rubbing his wrist. There was an angry weal there, like a sco
rch mark.
'Did you mean to produce a Stinging Hex?' asked Snape coolly.
'No,' said Harry bitterly, getting up from the floor.
'I thought not,' said Snape, watching him closely. 'You let me get in too
far. You lost control.'
'Did you see everything I saw?' Harry asked, unsure whether he wanted to h
ear the answer.
'Flashes of it,' said Snape, his lip curling. To whom did the dog belong?'
'My Aunt Marge,' Harry muttered, hating Snape.
'Well, for a first attempt that was not as poor as it might have been,' sa
id Snape, raising his wand once more. 'You managed to stop me eventually, thou
gh you wasted time and energy shouting. You must remain focused. Repel me with
your brain and you will not need to resort to your wand.'
'I'm trying,' said Harry angrily, 'but you're not telling me how!'
'Manners, Potter,' said Snape dangerously. 'Now, I want you to close your
eyes.'
Harry threw him a filthy look before doing as he was told. He did not like
the idea of standing there with his eyes shut while Snape faced him, carrying
a wand.
'Clear your mind, Potter,' said Snape's cold voice. 'Let go of all emotion
. . .'
But Harry's anger at Snape continued to pound through his veins like venom
. Let go of his anger? He could as easily detach his legs . . .
'You're not doing it, Potter . . . you will need more discipline than this
. . . focus, now . . .'
Harry tried to empty his mind, tried not to think, or remember, or feel .
. .
'Let's go again . . . on the count of three . . . one - two - three - 'Leg
ilimens!'
A great black dragon was rearing in front of him . . . his father and moth
er were waving at him out of an enchanted mirror . . . Cedric Diggory was lyin
g on the ground with blank eyes staring at him . . .
'NOOOOOOO!'
Harry was on his knees again, his face buried in his hands, his brain achi
ng as though someone had been trying to pull it from his skull.
'Get up!' said Snape sharply. 'Get up! You are not trying, you are making
no effort. You are allowing me access to memories you fear, handing me weapons
!'
Harry stood up again, his heart thumping wildly as though he had really ju
st seen Cedric dead in the graveyard. Snape looked paler than usual, and angri
er, though not nearly as angry as Harry was.
'I - am - making - an - effort,' he said through clenched teeth.
'I told you to empty yourself of emotion!'
'Yeah? Well, I'm finding that hard at the moment,' Harry snarled.
Then you will find yourself easy prey for the Dark Lord!' said Snape savag
ely. 'Fools who wear their hearts proudly on their sleeves, who cannot control
their emotions, who wallow in sad memories and allow themselves to be provoke
d so easily - weak people, in other words - they stand no chance against his p
owers! He will penetrate your mind with absurd ease, Potter!'
'I am not weak,' said Harry in a low voice, fury now pumping through him s
o that he thought he might attack Snape in a moment.
'Then prove it! Master yourself!' spat Snape. 'Control your anger, discipl
ine your mind! We shall try again! Get ready, now! Legilimens!'
He was watching Uncle Vernon hammering the letterbox shut . . . a hundred
Dementors were drifting across the lake in the grounds towards him . . . he wa
s running along a windowless passage with Mr Weasley . . . they were drawing n
earer to the plain black door at the end of the corridor . . . Harry expected
to go through it . . . but Mr Weasley led him off to the left, down a flight o
f stone steps . . .
'I KNOW! I KNOW!'
He was on all fours again on Snape's office floor, his scar was prickling
unpleasantly, but the voice that had just issued from his mouth was triumphant
. He pushed himself up again to find Snape storing at him, his wand raised. It
looked as though, this time, Snape had lifted the spell before Harry had even
tried to fight back.
'What happened then, Potter?' he asked, eyeing Harry intently.
'I saw - I remembered,' Harry panted. 'I've just realised . . .'
'Realised what?' asked Snape sharply.
Harry did not answer at once; he was still savouring the moment of blindin
g realisation as he rubbed his forehead . . .
He had been dreaming about a windowless corridor ending in a locked door f
or months, without once realising that it was a real place. Now, seeing the me
mory again, he knew that all along he had been dreaming about the corridor dow
n which he had run with Mr Weasley on the twelfth of August as they hurried to
the courtrooms in the Ministry; it was the corridor leading to the Department
of Mysteries and Mr Weasley had been there the night that he had been attacke
d by Voldemort's snake.
He looked up at Snape.
'What's in the Department of Mysteries?'
'What did you say?' Snape asked quietly and Harry saw, with deep satisfact
ion, that Snape was unnerved.
'I said, what's in the Department of Mysteries, sir?' Harry said.
'And why,' said Snape slowly, 'would you ask such a thing?'
'Because,' said Harry, watching Snape's face closely, 'that corridor I've
just seen - I've been dreaming about it for montns - I've just recognised it -
it leads to the Department of Mysteries . . . and I think Voldemort wants som
ething from - '
'I have told you not to say the Dark Lord's name!'
They glared at each other. Harry's scar seared again, but he did not care.
Snape looked agitated; but when he spoke again he sounded as though he was tr
ying to appear cool and unconcerned.
There are many things in the Department of Mysteries, Potter, few of which
you would understand and none of which concern you. Do I make myself plain?'
'Yes,' Harry said, still rubbing his prickling scar, which was becoming mo
re painful.
'I want you back here same time on Wednesday. We will continue work then.'
'Fine,' said Harry. He was desperate to get out of Snape's office and find
Ron and Hermione.
'You are to rid your mind of all emotion every night before sleep; empty i
t, make it blank and calm, you understand?'
'Yes,' said Harry, who was barely listening.
'And be warned, Potter . . . I shall know if you have not practised . . .'
'Right,' Harry mumbled. He picked up his schoolbag, swung it over his shou
lder and hurried towards the office door. As he opened it, he glanced back at
Snape, who had his back to Harry and was scooping his own thoughts out of the
Pensieve with the tip of his wand and replacing them carefully inside his own
head. Harry left without another word, closing the door carefully behind him,
his scar still throbbing painfully.
Harry found Ron and Hermione in the library, where they were working on Um
bridge's most recent ream of homework. Other students, nearly all of them fift
h-years, sat at lamp-lit tables nearby, noses close to books, quills scratchin
g feverishly, while the sky outside the mullioned windows grew steadily blacke
r. The only other sound was the slight squeaking of one of Madam Pince's shoes
, as the librarian prowled the aisles menacingly, breathing down the necks of
those touching her precious books.
Harry felt shivery; his scar was still aching, he felt almost feverish.
When he sat down opposite Ron and Hermione, he caught sight of himself in
the window opposite; he was very white and his scar seemed to be showing up mo
re clearly than usual.
'How did it go?' Hermione whispered, and then, looking concerned. 'Are you
all right, Harry?'
'Yeah . . . fine . . . I dunno,' said Harry impatiently, wincing as pain s
hot through his scar again. 'Listen . . . I've just realised something . . .'
And he told them what he had just seen and deduced.
'So . . . so are you saying . . .' whispered Ron, as Madam Pince swept pas
t, squeaking slightly 'that the weapon - the thing You-Know-Who's after - is i
n the Ministry of Magic?'
'In the Department of Mysteries, it's got to be,' Harry whispered. 'I saw
that door when your dad took me down to the courtrooms for my hearing and it's
definitely the same one he was guarding when the snake bit him.'
Hermione let out a long, slow sigh.
'Of course,' she breathed.
'Of course what?' said Ron rather impatiently.
'Ron, think about it. . . Sturgis Podmore was trying to get through a door
at the Ministry of Magic . . . it must have been that one, it's too much of a
coincidence!'
'How come Sturgis was trying to break in when he's on our side?' said Ron.
'Well, I don't know,' Hermione admitted. That is a bit odd . . .'
'So what's in the Department of Mysteries?' Harry asked Ron. 'Has your dad
ever mentioned anything about it?'
'I know they call the people who work in there "Unspeakables",' said Ron,
frowning. 'Because no one really seems to know what they do - weird place to h
ave a weapon.'
'It's not weird at all, it makes perfect sense,' said Hermione. 'It will b
e something top secret that the Ministry has been developing, I expect . . . H
arry, are you sure you're all right?'
For Harry had just run both his hands hard over his forehead as though try
ing to iron it.
'Yeah . . . fine . . .' he said, lowering his hands, which were trembling.
'I just feel a bit . . . I don't like Occlumency much.'
I expect anyone would feel snaky if they'd had their mind attacked over an
d over again,' said Hermione sympathetically. 'Look, let's get back to the com
mon room, we'll be a bit more comfortable there.'
But the common room was packed and full of shrieks of laughter and excitem
ent; Fred and George were demonstrating their latest bit of joke shop merchand
ise.
'Headless Hats!' shouted George, as Fred waved a pointed hat decorated wit
h a fluffy pink feather at the watching students. Two Galleons each, watch Fre
d, now!'
Fred swept the hat on to his head, beaming. For a second he merely looked
rather stupid; then both hat and head vanished.
Several girls screamed, but everyone else was roaring with laughter.
'And off again!' shouted George, and Fred's hand groped for a moment in wh
at seemed to be thin air over his shoulder; then his head reappeared as he swe
pt the pink-feathered hat from it.
'How do those hats work, then?' said Hermione, distracted from her homewor
k and watching Fred and George closely. 'I mean, obviously it's some kind of I
nvisibility Spell, but it's rather clever to have extended the field of invisi
bility beyond the boundaries of the charmed object . . . I'd imagine the charm
wouldn't have a very long life though.'
Harry did not answer; he was feeling ill.
'I'm going to have to do this tomorrow,' he muttered, pushing the books he
had just taken out of his bag back inside it.
'Well, write it in your homework planner then!' said Hermione encouragingl
y. 'So you don't forget!'
Harry and Ron exchanged looks as he reached into his bag, withdrew the pla
nner and opened it tentatively.
'Don't leave it till later, you big second-rater!' chided the book as Harr
y scribbled down Umbridge's homework. Hermione beamed at it.
'I think I'll go to bed,' said Harry, stuffing the homework planner back i
nto his bag and making a mental note to drop it in the fire the first opportun
ity he got.
He walked across the common room, dodging George, who tried to put a Headl
ess Hat on him, and reached the peace and cool of the stone staircase to the b
oys' dormitories. He was feeling sick again, just as he had the night he had h
ad the vision of the snake, but thought that if he could just lie down for a w
hile he would be all right.
He opened the door of his dormitory and was one step inside it when he exp
erienced pain so severe he thought that someone must have sliced into the top
of his head. He did not know where be was, whether he was standing or lying do
wn, he did not even know his own name.
Maniacal laughter was ringing in his ears . . . he was happier than he had
been in a very long time . . . jubilant, ecstatic, triumphant . . . a wonderf
ul, wonderful thing had happened . . .
'Harry? HARRY!'
Someone had hit him around the face. The insane laughter was punctuated wi
th a cry of pain. The happiness was draining out of him, but the laughter cont
inued . . .
He opened his eyes and, as he did so, he became aware that the wild laught
er was coming out of his own mouth. The moment he realised this, it died away;
Harry lay panting on the floor, staring up at the ceiling, the scar on his fo
rehead throbbing horribly. Ron was bending over him, looking very worried.
'What happened?' he said.
'I . . . dunno . . .' Harry gasped, sitting up again. 'He's really happy .
. . really happy . . .'
'You-Know-Who is?'
'Something good's happened,' mumbled Harry. He was shaking as badly as he
had done after seeing the snake attack Mr Weasley and felt very sick. 'Somethi
ng he's been hoping for.'
The words came, just as they had back in the Gryffindor changing room, as
though a stranger was speaking them through Harry's mouth, yet he knew they we
re true. He took deep breaths, willing himself not to vomit all over Ron. He w
as very glad that Dean and Seamus were not here to watch this time.
'Hermione told me to come and check on you,' said Ron in a low voice, help
ing Harry to his feet. 'She says your defences will be low at the moment, afte
r Snape's been fiddling around with your mind . . . still, I suppose it'll hel
p in the long run, won't it?' He looked doubtfully at Harry as he helped him t
owards his bed. Harry nodded without any conviction and slumped back on his pi
llows, aching all over from having fallen to the floor so often that evening,
his scar still prickling painfully. He could not help feeling that his first f
oray into Occlumency had weakened his mind's resistance rather than strengthen
ing it, and he wondered, with a feeling of great trepidation, what had happene
d to make Lord Voldemort the happiest he had been in fourteen years.
- CHAPTER TWENTY-FIVE -
The Beetle at Bay
Harry's question was answered the very next morning. When Hermione's Daily Pro
phet arrived she smoothed it out, gazed for a moment at the front page and gav
e a yelp that caused everyone in the vicinity to stare at her.
'What?' said Harry and Ron together.
For answer she spread the newspaper on the table in front of them and poin
ted at ten black-and-white photographs that filled the whole of the front page
, nine showing wizards' faces and the tenth, a witch's. Some of the people in
the photographs were silently jeering; others were tapping their fingers on th
e frame of their pictures, looking insolent. Each picture was captioned with a
name and the crime for which the person had been sent to Azkaban.
Antonin Dolohov, read the legend beneath a wizard with a long, pale, twist
ed face who was sneering up at Harry convicted of the brutal murders of Gideon
and Fabian Prewett.
Algernon Rookwood, said the caption beneath a pockmarked man with greasy h
air who was leaning against the edge of his picture, looking bored, convicted
of leaking Ministry of Magic secrets to He Who Must Not Be Named.
But Harry's eyes were drawn to the picture of the witch. Her face had leap
t out at him the moment he had seen the page. She had long, dark hair that loo
ked unkempt and straggly in the picture, though he had seen it sleek, thick an
d shining. She glared up at him through heavily lidded eyes, an arrogant, disd
ainful smile playing around her thin mouth. Like Sirius, she retained vestiges
of great good looks, but something - perhaps Azkaban - had taken most of her
beauty.
Bellatrix Lestrange, convicted of the torture and permanent mca-pacitation
of Frank and Alice LongbotWm.
Hermione nudged Harry and pointed at the headline over the pictures, which
Harry, concentrating on Bellatrix, had not yet read.
MASS BREAKOUT FROM AZKABAN
MINISTRY FEARS BLACK IS 'RALLYING POINT'
FOR OLD DEATH EATERS
'Black?' said Harry loudly. 'Not - ?'
'Shhh!' whispered Hermione desperately. 'Not so loud - 'just read it!'
The Ministry of Magic announced late last night that there has been a mass bre
akout from Azkaban.
Speaking to reporters in his private office, Cornelius Fudge, Minister for
Magic, confirmed that ten high-security prisoners escaped in the early hours
of yesterday evening and that he has already informed the Muggle Prime Ministe
r of the dangerous nature of these individuals.
'We find ourselves, most unfortunately, in the same position we were two a
nd a half years ago when the murderer Sirius Black escaped,' said Fudge last n
ight. 'Nor do we think the two breakouts are unrelated. An escape of this magn
itude suggests outside help, and we must remember that Black, as the first per
son ever to break out of Azkaban, would be ideally placed to help others follo
w in his footsteps. We think it likely that these individuals, who include Bla
ck's cousin, Bellatrix Lestrange, have rallied around Black as their leader. W
e are, however, doing all we can to round up the criminals, and we beg the mag
ical community to remain alert and cautious. On no account should any of these
individuals be approached.'
There you are, Harry,' said Ron, looking awestruck. That's why he was happy la
st night.'
'I don't believe this,' snarled Harry, 'Fudge is blaming the breakout on S
irius?'
'What other options does he have?' said Hermione bitterly. 'He can hardly
say, "Sorry, everyone, Dumbledore warned me this might happen, the Azkaban gua
rds have joined Lord Voldemort" - stop whimpering, Ron - "and now Voldemort's
worst supporters have broken out, too." I mean, he's spent a good six months t
elling everyone you and Dumbledore are liars, hasn't he?'
Hermione ripped open the newspaper and began to read the report inside whi
le Harry looked around the Great Hall. He could not understand why his fellow
students were not looking scared or at least discussing the terrible piece of
news on the front page, but very few of them took the newspaper every day like
Hermione. There they all were, talking about homework and Quidditch and who k
new what other rubbish, when outside these walls ten more Death Eaters had swo
llen Voldemort's ranks.
He glanced up at the staff table. It was a different story there: Dumbledo
re and Professor McGonagall were deep in conversation, both looking extremely
grave. Professor Sprout had the Prophet propped against a bottle of ketchup an
d was reading the front page with such concentration that she was not noticing
the gentle drip o egg yolk falling into her lap from her stationary spoon. Me
anwhile, at the far end of the table, Professor Umbridge was tucking into a bo
wl of porridge. For once her pouchy toad's eyes were not sweeping the Great Ha
ll looking for misbehaving students. She scowled as she gulped down her food a
nd every now and then she shot a malevolent glance up the table to where Dumbl
edore and McGonagall were talking so intently.
'Oh my - ' said Hermione wonderingly, still staring at the newspaper.
'What now?' said Harry quickly; he was feeling jumpy.
'It's . . . horrible,' said Hermione, looking shaken. She folded back page
ten of the newspaper and handed it to Harry and Ron.
TRAGIC DEMISE OF MINISTRY OF MAGIC WORKER
St Mungo's Hospital promised a full inquiry last night after Ministry of Magic
worker Broderich Bode, 49, was discovered dead in his bed, strangled by a pot
plant. Healers called to the scene were unable to revive Mr Bode, who had bee
n injured in a workplace accident some weeks prior to his death.
Healer Miriam Strout, who was in charge of Mr Bodes ward at the time of th
e incident, has been suspended on full pay and was unavailable for comment yes
terday, but a spokeswizard for the hospital said in a statement:
'St Mungo's deeply regrets the death of Mr Bode, whose health was improvin
g steadily prior to this tragic accident.
'We have strict guidelines on the decorations permitted on our wards but i
t appears that Healer Strout, busy over the Christmas period, overlooked the d
angers of the plant on Mr Bode's bedside table. As his speech and mobility imp
roved, Healer Strout encouraged Mr Bode to look after the plant himself, unawa
re that it was not an innocent Flitterbloom, but a cutting of Devil's Snare wh
ich, when touched by the convalescent Mr Bode, throttled him instantly.
'St Mungo's is as vet unable to account for the presence of the plant on t
he ward and asks any witch or wizard with information to come forward.'
'Bode . . .' said Ron. 'Bode. It rings a bell . . .'
'We saw him,' Hermione whispered. In St Mungo's, remember? He was in the b
ed opposite Lockhart's, just lying there, staring at the ceiling. And we saw t
he Devil's Snare arrive. She - the Healer - said it was a Christmas present.'
Harry looked back at the story. A feeling of horror was rising like bile i
n his throat.
'How come we didn't recognise Devil's Snare? We've seen it before . . . we
could've stopped this from happening.'
'Who expects Devil's Snare to turn up in a hospital disguised as a pot pla
nt?' said Ron sharply. 'It's not our fault, whoever sent it to the bloke is to
blame! They must be a real prat, why didn't they check what they were buying?
'
'Oh, come on, Ron!' said Hermione shakily. 'I don't think anyone could put
Devil's Snare in a pot and not realise it tries to kill whoever touches it? T
his - this was murder . . . a clever murder, as well . . . if the plant was se
nt anonymously, how's anyone ever going to find out who did it?'
Harry was not thinking about Devil's Snare. He was remembering taking the
lift down to the ninth level of the Ministry on the day of his hearing and the
sallow-faced man who had got in on the Atrium level.
'I met Bode,' he said slowly. 'I saw him at the Ministry with your dad.'
Ron's mouth fell open.
'I've heard Dad talk about him at home! He was an Unspeakable
' - he worked in the Department of Mysteries!'
They looked at each other for a moment, then Hermione pulled the newspaper
back towards her, closed it, glared for a moment at the pictures of the ten e
scaped Death Eaters on the front, then leapt to her feet.
'Where are you going?' said Ron, startled.
To send a letter,' said Hermione, swinging her bag on to her shoulder. 'It
. . . well, I don't know whether . . . but it's worth trying . . . and I'm th
e only one who can.'
'I hate it when she does that,' grumbled Ron, as he and Harry got up from
the table and made their own, slower way out of the Great Hall. 'Would it kill
her to tell us what she's up to for once? It'd take her about ten more second
s - hey, Hagrid!'
Hagrid was standing beside the doors into the Entrance Hall, waiting for a
crowd of Ravenclaws to pass. He was still as heavily bruised as he had been o
n the day he had come back from his mission to the giants and there was a new
cut right across the bridge of his nose.
'All righ', you two?' he said, trying to muster a smile but managing only
a kind of pained grimace.
'Are you OK, Hagrid?' asked Harry, following him as he lumbered after the
Ravenclaws.
'Fine, fine,' said Hagrid with a feeble assumption of airiness; he w aved
a hand and narrowly missed concussing a frightened-looking Professor Vector, w
ho was passing. 'Jus' busy, yeh know, usual stuff
' - lessons ter prepare - couple o' salamanders got scale rot - an' I'm on
probation,' he mumbled.
'You're on probation?' said Ron very loudly, so that many of the passing s
tudents looked around curiously. 'Sorry - I mean - you're on probation?' he wh
ispered.
'Yeah,' said Hagrid. ' 'S'no more'n I expected, ter tell yen the truth. Ye
h migh' not've picked up on it, bu' that inspection didn' go too well, yeh kno
w . . . anyway,' he sighed deeply. 'Bes' go an' rub a bit more chilli powder o
n them salamanders or their tails'll be hangin' off 'em next. See yeh, Harry .
. . Ron . . .'
He trudged away, out of the front doors and down the stone steps into the
damp grounds. Harry watched him go, wondering how much more bad news he could
stand.
*
The fact that Hagrid was now on probation became common knowledge within the s
chool over the next few days, but to Harry's indignation, hardly anybody appea
red to be upset about it; indeed, some people, Draco Malfoy prominent among th
em, seemed positively gleeful. As for the freakish death of an obscure Departm
ent of Mysteries employee in St Mungo's, Harry, Ron and Hermione seemed to be
the only people who knew or cared. There was only one topic of conversation in
the corridors now: the ten escaped Death Eaters, whose story had finally filt
ered through the school from those few people who read the newspapers. Rumours
were flying that some of the convicts had been spotted in Hogsmeade, that the
y were supposed to be hiding out in the Shrieking Shack and that they were goi
ng to break into Hogwarts, just as Sirius Black had once done.
Those who came from wizarding families had grown up hearing the names of t
hese Death Eaters spoken with almost as much fear as Voldemorts; the crimes th
ey had committed during the days of Voldemort's reign of terror were legendary
. There were relatives cf their victims among the Hogwarts students, who now f
ound themselves the unwilling objects of a gruesome sort of reflected fame as
they walked the corridors: Susan Bones, whose uncle, aunt and cousins had all
died at the hands of one of the ten, said miserably during Herbology that she
now had a good idea what it felt like to be Harry.
'And I don't know how you stand it - it's horrible,' she said bluntly, dum
ping far too much dragon manure on her tray of Screechsnap seedlings, causing
them to wriggle and squeak in discomfort.
It was true that Harry was the subject of much renewed muttering and point
ing in the corridors these days, yet he thought he detected a slight differenc
e in the lone of the whisperers' voices. They sounded curious rather than host
ile now, and once or twice he was sure he overheard snatches of conversation t
hat, suggested that the speakers were not satisfied with the Prophet's version
of how and why ten Death Eaters had managed to break out of the Azkaban fortr
ess. In their confusion and fear, these doubters now seemed to be turning to t
he only other explanation available to them: the one that Harry and Dumbledore
had been expounding since the previous year.
It was not only the students' mood that had changed. It was now quite comm
on to come across two or three teachers conversing in low, urgent whispers in
the corridors, breaking off their conversations the moment they saw students a
pproaching.
They obviously can't talk freely in the staff room any more,' said Hermion
e in a low voice, as she, Harry and Ron passed Professors McGonagall, Flitwick
and Sprout huddled together outside the Charms classroom one day. 'Not with U
mbridge there.'
'Reckon they know anything new?' said Ron, gazing back over his shoulder a
t the three teachers.
'If they do, we're not going to hear about it, are we?' said Harry angrily
. 'Not after Decree . . . what number are we on now?' For new notices had appe
ared on the house noticeboards the morning after news of the Azkaban breakout:
BY ORDER OF THE HIGH INQUISITOR OF HOGWARTS
Teachers are hereby banned from giving students any information
that is not strictly related to the subjects they are paid to teach.
The above is in accordance with Educational Decree
Number Twenty-six.
Signed: Dolores Jane Umbridge, High Inquisitor
This latest Decree had been the subject of a great number of jokes among the s
tudents. Lee Jordan had pointed out to Umbridge that by the terms of the new r
ule she was not allowed to tell Fred and George off for playing Exploding Snap
in the back of the class.
'Exploding Snap's got nothing to do with Defence Against the Dark Arts, Pr
ofessor! That's not information relating to your subject!'
When Harry next saw Lee, the back of his hand was bleeding rather badly. H
arry recommended essence of Murtlap.
Harry had thought the breakout from Azkaban might have humbled Umbridge a
little, that she might have been abashed at the catastrophe that had occurred
right under the nose of her beloved Fudge. It seemed, however, to have only in
tensified her furious desire to bring every aspect of life at Hogwarts under h
er personal control. She seemed determined at the very least to achieve a sack
ing before long, and the only question was whether it would be Professor Trela
wney or Hagrid who went first.
Every single Divination and Care of Magical Creatures lesson was now condu
cted in the presence of Umbridge and her clipboard. She lurked by the fire in
the heavily perfumed tower room, interrupting Professor Trelawney's increasing
ly hysterical talks with difficult questions about ornithomancy and heptomolog
y, insisting that she predicted students' answers before they gave them and de
manding that she demonstrate her skill at the crystal ball, the tea leaves and
the rune stones in turn. Harry thought Professor Trelawney might soon crack u
nder the strain. Several times he passed her in the corridors - in itself a ve
ry unusual occurrence as she generally remained in her tower room - muttering
wildly to herself, wringing her hands and shooting terrified glances over her
shoulder, and all the while giving off a powerful smell of cooking sherry. If
he had not been so worried about Hagrid, he would have felt sorry for her - bu
t if one of them was to be ousted from their job, there could be only one choi
ce for Harry as to who should remain.
Unfortunately, Harry could not see that Hagrid was putting up a better sho
w than Trelawney. Though he seemed to be following Hermione's advice and had s
hown them nothing more frightening than a Crup - a creature indistinguishable
from a Jack Russell terrier except for its forked tail - since before Christma
s, he too seemed to have lost his nerve. He was oddly distracted and jumpy dur
ing lessons, losing the thread of what he was saying to the class, answering q
uestions wrongly, and all the time glancing anxiously at Umbridge. He was also
more distant with Harry, Ron and Hermione than he had ever been before, and h
ad expressly forbidden them to visit him after dark.
'If she catches yeh, it'll be all of our necks on the line,' he told ;:hem
flatly, and with no desire to do anything that might jeopardise his job furth
er they abstained from walking down to his hut :.n the evenings.
It seemed to Harry that Umbridge was steadily depriving him of everything
that made his life at Hogwarts worth living: visits to Hagrid's house, letters
from Sirius, his Firebolt and Quidditch. He took his revenge the only way he
could - by redoubling his efforts for the DA.
Harry was pleased to see that all of them, even Zacharias Smith, had been
spurred on to work harder than ever by the news that ten more Death Eaters wer
e now on the loose, but in nobody was this improvement more pronounced than in
Neville. The news of his parents' attackers' escape had wrought a strange and
even slightly alarming change in him. He had not once mentioned his meeting w
ith Harry, Ron and Hermione on the closed ward in St Mungo's and, taking their
lead from him, they had kept quiet about it too. Nor had he said anything on
the subject of Bellatrix and her fellow torturers' escape. In fact, Neville ba
rely spoke during the DA meetings any more, but worked relentlessly on every n
ew jinx and counter-curse Harry taught them, his plump face screwed up in conc
entration, apparently indifferent to injuries or accidents and working harder
than anyone else in the room. He was improving so fast it was quite unnerving
and when Harry taught them, the Shield Charm - a means of deflecting minor jin
xes so that they rebounded upon the attacker - only Hermione mastered the charm faster
than Neville.
Harry would have given a great deal to be making as much progress at Occlu
mency as Neville was making during the DA meetings. Harry's sessions with Snap
e, which had started badly enough, were not improving. On the contrary, Harry
felt he was getting \vorse with every lesson.
Before he had started studying Occlumency, his scar had prickled occasiona
lly, usually during the night, or else following one of those strange flashes
of Voldemort's thoughts or mood that he experienced every now and then. Nowada
ys, however, his scar hardly ever stopped prickling, and he often felt lurches
of annoyance or cheerfulness that were unrelated to what was happening to him
at the time, which were always accompanied by a particularly painful twinge f
rom his scar. He had the horrible impression that he was slowly turning into a
kind of aerial that was tuned in to tiny fluctuations in Voldemort's mood, an
d he was sure he could date this increased sensitivity firmly from his first O
cclumency lesson with Snape. What was more, he was now dreaming about walking
down the corridor towards the entrance to the Department of Mysteries almost e
very night, dreams which always culminated in him standing longingly in front
of the plain black door.
'Maybe it's a bit like an illness,' said Hermione, looking concerned when
Harry confided in her and Ron. 'A fever or something. It has to get worse befo
re it gets better.'
The lessons with Snape are making it worse,' said Harry flatly 'I'm gettin
g sick of my scar hurting and I'm getting bored with walking down that corrido
r every night.' He rubbed his forehead angrily. 'I just wish the door would op
en, I'm sick of standing staring at it - '
That's not funny,' said Hermione sharply. 'Dumbledore doesn't want you to
have dreams about that corridor at all, or he wouldn't have asked Snape to tea
ch you Occlumency. You're just going to have to work a bit harder in your less
ons.'
'I am working!' said Harry, nettled. "You try it some time - Snape: trying
to get inside your head - it's not a bundle of laughs, you know!'
'Maybe . . .' said Ron slowly.
'Maybe what?' said Hermione, rather snappishly.
'Maybe it's not Harry's fault he can't close his mind,' said Ron darkly.
'What do you mean?' said Hermione.
'Well, maybe Snape isn't really trying to help Harry . . .'
Harry and Hermione stared at him. Ron looked darkly and meaningfully from
one to the other.
'Maybe,' he said again, in a lower voice, 'he's actually trying to open Ha
rry's mind a bit wider . . . make it easier for You-Know-
'Shut up, Ron,' said Hermione angrily. 'How many times have you suspected
Snape, and when have you ever been right? Dumbledore trusts him, he works for
the Order, that ought to be enough.'
'He used to be a Death Eater,' said Ron stubbornly. 'And we've never seen
proof that he really swapped sides.'
'Dumbledore trusts him,' Hermione repeated. 'And if we can't trust Dumbled
ore, we can't trust anyone.'
*
With so much to worry about and so much to do - startling amounts of homework
that frequently kept the fifth-years working until past midnight, secret DA se
ssions and regular classes with Snape - 'January seemed to be passing alarming
ly fast. Before Harry knew it, February had arrived, bringing with it wetter a
nd warmer weather and the prospect of the second Hogsmeade visit of the year.
Harry had had very little time to spare for conversations with Cho since they
had agreed to visit the village together, but suddenly found himself facing a
Valentine's Day spent entirely in her company.
On the morning of the fourteenth he dressed particularly carefully. He and
Ron arrived at breakfast just in time for the arrival of the post owls, Hedwi
g was not there - not that Harry had expected her - but Hermione was tugging a
letter from the beak of an unfamiliar brown owl as they sat down.
'And about time! If it hadn't come today . . .' she said, eagerly tearing
open the envelope and pulling out a small piece of parchment. Her eyes sped fr
om left to right as she read through the message and a grimly pleased expressi
on spread across her face.
'Listen, Harry,' she said, looking up at him, 'this is really important. D
o you think you could meet me in the Three Broomsticks around midday?'
'Well . . . I dunno,' said Harry uncertainly. 'Cho might be expecting me t
o spend the whole day with her. We never said what we were going to do.'
Well, bring her along if you must,' said Hermione urgently. 'But will you
come?'
'Well . . . all right, but why?'
'I haven't got time to tell you now, I've got to answer this quickly.'
And she hurried out of the Great Hall, the letter clutched in one hand and
a piece of toast in the other.
'Are you coming?' Harry asked Ron, but he shook his head, looking glum.
'I can't come into Hogsmeade at all; Angelina wants a full day's training.
Like it's going to help; we're the worst team I've ever seen. You should see
Sloper and Kirke, they're pathetic, even worse than I am.' He heaved a great s
igh. 'I dunno why Angelina won't just let me resign.'
It's because you're good when you're on form, that's why,' said Harry irri
tably.
He found it very hard to be sympathetic to Ron's plight, when he himself w
ould have given almost anything to be playing in the forthcoming match against
Hufflepuff. Ron seemed to have noticed Harry's tone, because he did not menti
on Quidditch again during breakfast, and there was a slight frostiness in the
way they said goodbye to each other shortly afterwards. Ron departed for the Q
uidditch pitch and Harry, after attempting to flatten his hair while staring a
t his reflection in the back of a teaspoon, proceeded alone to the Entrance Ha
ll to meet Cho, feeling very apprehensive and wondering what on earth they wer
e going to talk about.
She was waiting for him a little to the side of the oak front doors, looki
ng very pretty with her hair tied back in a long pony-tail. Harry's feet seeme
d to be too big for his body as he walked towards her and he was suddenly horr
ibly aware of his arms and how stupid they must look swinging at his sides.
'Hi,' said Cho slightly breathlessly.
'Hi,' said Harry.
They stared at each other for a moment, then Harry said, 'Well - er - shal
l we go, then?'
'Oh - yes . . .'
They joined the queue of people being signed out by Filch, occasionally ca
tching each others eye and grinning shiftily, but not talking to each other. H
arry was relieved when they reached the fresh air, finding it easier to walk a
long in silence than just stand about looking awkward. It was a fresh, breezy
sort of a day and as they passed the Quidditch stadium Harry glimpsed Ron and
Ginny skimming along over the stands and felt a horrible pang that he was
not up there with them.
'You really miss it, don't you?' said Cho.
He looked round and saw her watching him.
'Yeah,' sighed Harry. 'I do.'
'Remember the first time we played against each other, in the third year?'
she asked him.
'Yeah,' said Harry, grinning. 'You kept blocking me.'
'And Wood told you not to be a gentleman and knock me off my broom if you
had to,' said Cho, smiling reminiscently. 'I heard he got taken on by Pride of
Portree, is that right?'
'Nah, it was Puddlemere United; I saw him at the World Cup last year.'
'Oh, I saw you there, too, remember? We were on the same campsite. It was
really good, wasn't it?'
The subject of the Quidditch World Cup carried them all the way down the d
rive and out through the gates. Harry could hardly believe how easy it was to
talk to her - no more difficult, in fact, than talking to Ron and Hermione - a
nd he was just starting to feel confident and cheerful when a large gang of Sl
ytherin girls passed them, including Pansy Parkinson.
'Potter and Chang!' screeched Pansy, to a chorus of snide giggles. 'Urgh,
Chang, I don't think much of your taste . . . at least Diggory was good-lookin
g!'
The girls sped up, talking and shrieking in a pointed fashion with many ex
aggerated glances back at Harry and Cho, leaving an embarrassed silence in the
ir wake. Harry could think of nothing else to say about Quidditch, and Cho, sl
ightly flushed, was watching her feet.
'So . . . where d'you want to go?' Harry asked as they entered Hogsmeade.
The High Street was full of students ambling up and down, peering into the sho
p windows and messing about together on the pavements.
'Oh . . . I don't mind,' said Cho, shrugging. 'Urn . . . shall we just hav
e a look in the shops or something?'
They wandered towards Dervish and Banges. A large poster had been stuck up
in the window and a few Hogsmeaders were looking at it. They moved aside when
Harry and Cho approached and Harry found himself staring once more at the pic
tures of the ten escaped Death Eaters. The poster, 'By Order of the Ministry o
f Magic', offered a thousand-Galleon reward to any witch or wizard with inform
ation leading to the recapture of any of the convicts pictured.
It's funny, isn't it,' said Cho in a low voice, gazing up at the pictures
of the Death Eaters, 'remember when that Sirius Black escaped, and there were
Dementors all over Hogsmeade looking for him? And now ten Death Eaters are on
the loose and there are no Dementors anywhere . . .'
'Yeah,' said Harry, tearing his eyes away from Bellatrix Lestrange's face
to glance up and down the High Street. 'Yeah, that is weird.
He wasn't sorry that there were no Dementors nearby, but now he came to th
ink of it, their absence was highly significant. The) had not only let the Dea
th Eaters escape, they weren't bothering to look for them . . . it looked as t
hough they really were outside Ministry control now.
The ten escaped Death Eaters were staring out of every shop window he and
Cho passed. It started to rain as they passed. Scrivenshaft's; cold, heavy dro
ps of water kept hitting Harry's face and the back of his neck.
'Um . . . d'you want to get a coffee?' said Cho tentatively, as the rain b
egan to fall more heavily.
'Yeah, all right,' said Harry, looking around. 'Where?'
'Oh, there's a really nice place just up here; haven't you ever been to Ma
dam Puddifoot's?' she said brightly, leading him up a side road and into a sma
ll teashop that Harry had never noticed before. It was a cramped, steamy littl
e place where everything seemed to have been decorated with frills or bows. Ha
rry was reminded unpleasantly of Umbndge's office.
'Cute, isn't it?' said Cho happily.
'Er . . . yeah,' said Harry untruthfully.
'Look, she's decorated it for Valentine's Day!' said Cho, indicating a num
ber of golden cherubs that were hovering over each of the small, circular tabl
es, occasionally throwing pink confetti over the occupants.
'Aaah . . .'
They sat down at the last remaining table, which was over by the steamy wi
ndow. Roger Davies, the Ravenclaw Quidditch Captain, was sitting about a foot
and a half away with a pretty blonde girl. They were holding hands. The sight
made Harry feel uncomfortable, particularly when, looking around the teashop,
he saw that t was full of nothing but couples, all of them holding hands. Perh
aps Cho would expect him to hold her hand.
'What can I get you, m'dears?' said Madam Puddifoot, a very stout woman wi
th a shiny black bun, squeezing between their table and Roger Davies's with gr
eat difficulty.
Two coffees, please,' said Cho.
In the time it took for their coffees to arrive, Roger Davies and his girl
friend had started kissing over their sugar bowl. Harry wished they wouldn't;
he felt that Davies was setting a standard with which Cho would soon expect hi
m to compete. He felt his face growing hot and tried staring out of the window
, but it was so steamed up he couldn't see the street outside. To postpone the
moment when he would have to look at Cho, he stared up at the ceiling as thou
gh examining the paintwork and received a handful of confetti in the face from
their hovering cherub.
After a few more painful minutes, Cho mentioned Umbridge. Harry seized on
the subject with relief and they passed a few happy moments abusing her, but t
he subject had already been so thoroughly canvassed during DA meetings it did
not last very long. Silence fell again. Harry was very conscious of the slurpi
ng noises coming from the table next door and cast wildly around for something
else to say.
'Er . . . listen, d'you want to come with me to the Three Broomsticks at l
unchtime? I'm meeting Hermione Granger there.'
Cho raised her eyebrows.
'You're meeting Hermione Granger? Today?'
'Yeah. Well, she asked me to, so I thought I would. D'you want to come wit
h me? She said it wouldn't matter if you did.'
'Oh . . . well . . . that was nice of her.'
But Cho did not sound as though she thought it was nice at all. On the con
trary, her tone was cold and all of a sudden she looked rather forbidding.
A few more minutes passed in total silence, Harry drinking his coffee so f
ast that he would soon need a fresh cup. Beside them,
Roger Davies and his girlfriend seemed glued together at the tips.
Cho's hand was lying on the table beside her coffee and Harry was feeling
a mounting pressure to take hold of it. Just do it, he told himself, as a foun
t of mingled panic and excitement surged up inside his chest, just reach out a
nd grab it. Amazing, how much more difficult it was to extend his arm twelve i
nches and touch her hand than it was to snatch a speeding Snitch from midair .
. .
But just as he moved his hand forwards, Cho took hers off the table. She w
as now watching Roger Davies kissing his girlfriend with a mildly interested e
xpression.
'He asked me out, you know,' she said in a quiet voice. 'A couple: of week
s ago. Roger. I turned him down, though.'
Harry, who had grabbed the sugar bowl to excuse his sudden lunging movemen
t across the table, could not think why she was telling him this. If she wishe
d she were sitting at the next table being heartily kissed by Roger Davies, wh
y had she agreed to come: out with him?
He said nothing. Their cherub threw another handful of confetti over them;
some of it landed in the last cold dregs of coffee Harry had been about to dr
ink.
'I came in here with Cedric last year,' said Cho.
In the second or so it took for him to take in what she had said, Harry's
insides had become glacial. He could not believe she wanted to talk about Cedr
ic now, while kissing couples surrounded them and a cherub floated over their
heads.
Cho's voice was rather higher when she spoke again.
'I've been meaning to ask you for ages . . . did Cedric - did he - m - m -
mention me at all before he died?'
This was the very last subject on earth Harry wanted to discuss, and least
of all with Cho.
'Well - no - ' he said quietly. There - there wasn't time for him to say a
nything. Erm . . . so . . . d'you . . . d'you get to see a lot of Quidditch in
the holidays? You support the Tornados, right?'
His voice sounded falsely bright and cheery. To his horror, he saw that he
r eyes were swimming with tears again, just as they had been after the last DA
meeting before Christmas.
'Look,' he said desperately, leaning in so that nobody else could overhear
, let's not talk about Cedric right now . . . let's talk about something else
. . .'
But this, apparently, was quite the wrong thing to say.
'I thought,' she said, tears spattering down on to the table, 'I thought y
ou'd u - u - understand! I need to talk about it! Surely you n - need to talk
about it t - too! I mean, you saw it happen, d - didn't you?'
Everything was going nightmarishly wrong; Roger Davies's girlfriend had ev
en unglued herself to look round at Cho crying.
'Well - I have talked about it,' Harry said in a whisper, 'to Ron and Herm
ione, but - '
'Oh, you'll talk to Hermione Granger!' she said shrilly, her face now shin
ing with tears. Several more kissing couples broke apart to stare. 'But you wo
n't talk to me! P - perhaps it would be best if we just . . . just p - paid an
d you went and met up with Hermione G - Granger, like you obviously want to!'
Harry stared at her, utterly bewildered, as she seized a frilly napkin and
dabbed at her shining face with it.
'Cho?' he said weakly, wishing Roger would seize his girlfriend and start
kissing her again to stop her goggling at him and Cho.
'Go on, leave!' she said, now crying into the napkin. 'I don't know why yo
u asked me out in the first place if you're going to make arrangements to meet
other girls right after me . . . how many ere you meeting after Hermione?'
'It's not like that!' said Harry, and he was so relieved at finally unders
tanding what she was annoyed about that he laughed, which he realised a split
second too late was also a mistake.
Cho sprang to her feet. The whole tearoom was quiet and everybody was watc
hing them now.
'I'll see you around, Harry,' she said dramatically, and hiccoughing sligh
tly she dashed to the door, wrenched it open and hurried off into the pouring
rain.
'Cho!' Harry called after her, but the door had already swung shut behind
her with a tuneful tinkle.
There was total silence within the teashop. Every eye was on ?larry. He th
rew a Galleon down on to the table, shook pink confetti out of his hair, and f
ollowed Cho out of the door.
It was raining hard now and she was nowhere to be seen, he simply did not
understand what had happened; half an hour ago they had been getting along fin
e.
'Women!' he muttered angrily, sloshing down the rain-washed street with hi
s hands in his pockets. 'What did she want to talk about Cedric for, anyway? W
hy does she always want to drag up a subject that makes her act like a human h
osepipe?'
He turned right and broke into a splashy run, and within minutes he was tu
rning into the doorway of the Three Broomsticks. He knew he was too early to m
eet Hermione, but he thought it likely there would be someone in here with who
m he could spend the intervening time. He shook his wet hair out of his eyes a
nd looked around. Hagrid was sitting alone in a corner, looking morose.
'Hi, Hagrid!' he said, when he had squeezed through the crammed tables and
pulled up a chair beside him.
Hagrid jumped and looked down at Harry as though he barely recognised him.
Harry saw that he had two fresh cuts on his face and several new bruises.
'Oh, it's yeh, Harry,' said Hagrid. 'Yeh all righ?'
'Yeah, I'm fine,' lied Harry; but, next to this battered and mournful-look
ing Hagrid, he felt he didn't really have much to complain about. 'Er - are yo
u OK?'
'Me?' said Hagrid. 'Oh yeah, I'm grand, Harry, grand.'
He gazed into the depths of his pewter tankard, which was the size of a la
rge bucket, and sighed. Harry didn't know what to say to him. They sat side by
side in silence for a moment. Then Hagrid said abruptly, 'In the same boat, y
eh an' me, aren' we, 'Any?'
'Er - ' said Harry.
'Yeah . . . I've said it before . . . both outsiders, like,' said Hagrid,
nodding wisely. 'An' both orphans. Yeah . . . both orphans.'
He took a great swig from his tankard.
'Makes a diff'rence, havin' a decent family,' he said. 'Me dad was decent.
An' your mum an' dad were decent. If they'd lived, life woulda bin diff'rent,
eh?'
'Yeah . . . I s'pose,' said Harry cautiously. Hagrid seemed to be in a ver
y strange mood.
'Family,' said Hagrid gloomily. 'Whatever yeh say, blood's important . . .
'
And he wiped a trickle of it out of his eye.
'Hagrid,' said Harry, unable to stop himself, 'where are you getting all t
hese injuries?'
'Eh?' said Hagrid, looking startled. 'Wha' injuries?'
'All those!' said Harry, pointing at Hagrid's face.
'Oh . . . tha's jus' normal bumps an' bruises, Harry,' said Hagrid c.ismis
sively 'I got a rough job.'
He drained his tankard, set it back on the table and got to his feet.
'I'll be seein' yeh, Harry . . . take care now.'
And he lumbered out of the pub looking wretched, and disappeared into the
torrential rain. Harry watched him go, feeling miserable. Hagrid was unhappy a
nd he was hiding something, but he seemed determined not to accept help. What
was going on? But before Harry could think about it any further, he heard a vo
ice calling his name.
'Harry! Harry, over here!'
Hermione was waving at him from the other side of the room. He got up and
made his way towards her through the crowded pub. He was still a few tables aw
ay when he realised that Hermione was not alone. She was sitting at a table wi
th the unlikeliest pair of drinking mates he could ever have imagined: Luna Lo
vegood and none other than Rita Skeeter, ex-journalist on the Daily Prophet ai
d one of Hermione's least favourite people in the world.
'You're early!' said Hermione, moving along to give him room to sit down.
'] thought you were with Cho, I wasn't expecting you for another hour at least
!'
'Cho?' said Rita at once, twisting round in her seat to stare avidly at Ha
rry. 'A girl?'
She snatched up her crocodile-skin handbag and groped within it.
'Its none of your business if Harry's been with a hundred girls,' Eermione
told Rita coolly. 'So you can put that away right now.'
Rita had been on the point of withdrawing an acid-green quill from her bag
. Looking as though she had been forced to swallow Stinksap, she snapped her b
ag shut again.
'What are you up to?' Harry asked, sitting down and staring from Rita to L
una to Hermione.
'Little Miss Perfect was just about to tell me when you arrived.' said Rit
a, taking a large slurp of her drink. 'I suppose I'm allowed to talk to him, a
m I?' she shot at Hermione.
'Yes, I suppose you are,' said Hermione coldly.
Unemployment did not suit Rita. The hair that had once been set in elabora
te curls now hung lank and unkempt around her face. The scarlet paint on her t
wo-inch talons was chipped and there were a couple of false jewels missing fro
m her winged glasses. She took another great gulp of her drink and said out of
the corner of her mouth, 'Pretty girl, is she, Harry?'
'One more word about Harry's love life and the deal's off and that's a pro
mise,' said Hermione irritably.
'What deal?' said Rita, wiping her mouth on the back of her hand. 'You hav
en't mentioned a deal yet, Miss Prissy you just told me to turn up. Oh, one of
these days . . .' She took a deep shuddering breath.
'Yes, yes, one of these days you'll write more horrible stories about Harr
y and me,' said Hermione indifferently. 'Find someone who cares, why don't you
?'
They've run plenty of horrible stories about Harry this year without my he
lp,' said Rita, shooting a sideways look at him over the top of her glass and
adding in a rough whisper, 'How has that made you feel, Harry? Betrayed? Distr
aught? Misunderstood?'
'He feels angry, of course,' said Hermione in a hard, clear voice. 'Becaus
e he's told the Minister for Magic the truth and the Minister's too much of an
idiot to believe him.'
'So you actually stick to it, do you, that He Who Must Not Be Named is bac
k?' said Rita, lowering her glass and subjecting Harry to a piercing stare whi
le her finger strayed longingly to the clasp of the crocodile bag. 'You stand
by all this garbage Dumbledore'5 been telling everybody about You-Know-Who ret
urning and you being the sole witness?'
'I wasn't the sole witness,' snarled Harry. There were a dozen-odd Death E
aters there as well. Want their names?'
'I'd love them,' breathed Rita, now fumbling in her bag once more and gazi
ng at him as though he was the most beautiful thing she had ever seen. 'A grea
t bold headline: "Potter Accuses . . ." A sub-heading, "Harry Potter Names Dea
th Eaters Still Among Us". And then, beneath a nice big photograph of you, "Di
sturbed teenage survivor of You-Know-Who's attack, Harry Potter, 15, caused ou
trage yesterday by accusing respectable and prominent members of the wizarding
community of being Death Eaters . . ." '
The Quick-Quotes Quill was actually in her hand and halfway to her mouth w
hen the rapturous expression on her face died.
'But of course,' she said, lowering the quill and looking daggers at Hermi
one, 'Little Miss Perfect wouldn't want that story out there, would she?'
'As a matter of fact,' said Hermione sweetly, 'that's exactly what Little
Miss Perfect does want.'
Rita stared at her. So did Harry. Luna, on the other hand, sang 'Weasley i
s our King' dreamily under her breath and stirred her drink with a cocktail on
ion on a stick.
'You want me to report what he says about He Who Must Not Be Named?' Rita
asked Hermione in a hushed voice.
'Yes, I do,' said Hermione. 'The true story. All the facts. Exactly a; Har
ry reports them. He'll give you all the details, he'll tell you the names of t
he undiscovered Death Eaters he saw there, he'll tell you what Voldemort looks
like now - oh, get a grip on yourself,' she added contemptuously, throwing a
napkin across the table, for, at the sound of Voldemort's name, Rita had jumpe
d so badly she had slopped half her glass of Firewhisky down herself.
Rita blotted the front of her grubby raincoat, still staring at Hermione.
Then she said baldly, The Prophet wouldn't print it. In case you haven't notic
ed, nobody believes his cock-and-bull story. Everyone thinks he's delusional.
Now, if you let me write the story from that angle - '
'We don't need another story about how Harry's lost his marbles!' said Her
mione angrily. 'We've had plenty of those already, thank you! I want him given
the opportunity to tell the truth!'
There's no market for a story like that,' said Rita coldly.
'You mean the Prophet won't print it because Fudge won't let them,' said H
ermione irritably.
Rita gave Hermione a long, hard look. Then, leaning forwards across the ta
ble towards her, she said in a businesslike tone, 'All right, Fudge is leaning
on the Prophet, but it comes to the same thing. They won't print a story that
shows Harry in a good light. Nobody wants to read it. It's against the public
mood. This last Azkaban breakout has got people quite worried enough. People
just don't want to believe You-Know-Who's back.'
'So the Daily Prophet exists to tell people what they want to hear, does i
t?' said Hermione scathingly.
Rita sat up straight again, her eyebrows raised, and drained her glass of
Firewhisky,
The Prophet exists to sell itself, you silly girl,' she said coldly
'My dad thinks it's an awful paper,' said Luna, chipping into the conversa
tion unexpectedly. Sucking on her cocktail onion, she gazed at Rita with her e
normous, protuberant, slightly mad eye;. 'He publishes important stories he th
inks the public needs to know. He doesn't care about making money.'
Rita looked disparagingly at Luna.
'I'm guessing your father runs some stupid little village newsletter?' she
said. 'Probably, Twenty-five Ways to Mingle With Muggles and the dates of the
next Bring and Fly Sale?'
'No,' said Luna, dipping her onion back into her Gillywater, 'he's the edi
tor of The Quibbler.'
Rita snorted so loudly that people at a nearby table looked round in alarm
.
' "Important stories he thinks the public needs to know", eh?' she said wi
theringly. 'I could manure my garden with the contends of that rag.'
'Well, this is your chance to raise the tone of it a bit, isn't it?' said
Hermione pleasantly. 'Luna says her father's quite happy to take Harry's inter
view. That's who'll be publishing it.'
Rita stared at them both for a moment, then let out a great whoop of laugh
ter.
'The Quibbler!' she said, cackling. 'You think people will take him seriou
sly if he's published in The Quibbler!'
'Some people won't,' said Hermione in a level voice. 'But the Daily Prophe
t's version of the Azkaban breakout had some gaping holes in it. I think a lot
of people will be wondering whether there isn't a better explanation of what
happened, and if there's an alternative story available, even if it is publish
ed in a - ' she glanced sideways at Luna, 'in a - well, an unusual magazine -
I think they might be rather keen to read it.'
Rita didn't say anything for a while, but eyed Hermione shrewdly, her head
a little to one side.
'All right, let's say for a moment I'll do it,' she said abruptly. 'What k
ind of fee am I going to get?'
'I don't think Daddy exactly pays people to write for the magazine,' said
Luna dreamily. They do it because it's an honour and, of course, to see their
names in print.'
Rita Skeeter looked as though the taste of Stinksap was strong in her mout
h again as she rounded on Hermione.
'I'm supposed to do this for free?'
'Well, yes,' said Hermione calmly, taking a sip of her drink. 'Otherwise,
as you very well know, I will inform the authorities that you are an unregiste
red Animagus. Of course, the Prophet might give you rather a lot for an inside
r's account of life in Azkaban.'
Rita looked as though she would have liked nothing better than to seize th
e paper umbrella sticking out of Hermione's drink and thrust it up her nose.
'I don't suppose I've got any choice, have I?' said Rita, her voice shakin
g slightly. She opened her crocodile bag once more, withdrew a piece of parchm
ent, and raised her Quick-Quotes Quill.
'Daddy will be pleased,' said Luna brightly. A muscle twitched in Rita's j
aw.
'OK, Harry?' said Hermione, turning to him. 'Ready to tell the public the
truth?'
'I suppose,' said Harry, watching Rita balancing the Quick-Quotes Quill at
the ready on the parchment between them.
'Fire away, then, Rita,' said Hermione serenely, fishing a cherry out from
the bottom of her glass.
- CHAPTER TWENTY-SIX -
Seen and Unforseen
Luna said vaguely that she did not know how soon Rita's interview with Harry w
ould appear in The Quibbler, that her father was expecting a lovely long artic
le on recent sightings of Crumple-Horned Snorkacks, ' - and of course, that'll
be a very important story, so Harry's might have to wait for the following is
sue,' said Luna.
Harry had not found it an easy experience to talk about the night when Vol
demort had returned. Rita had pressed him for every little detail and he had g
iven her everything he could remember, knowing that this was his one big oppor
tunity to tell the world the truth. He wondered how people would react to the
story. He guessed that it would confirm a lot of people in the view that he wa
s completely insane, not least because his story would be appearing alongside
utter rubbish about Crumple-Horned Snorkacks. But the breakout of Bellatrix Le
strange and her fellow Death Eaters had given Harry a burning desire to do som
ething, whether or not it worked . . .
'Can't wait to see what Umbridge thinks of you going public,' said Dean, s
ounding awestruck at dinner on Monday night. Seamus was shovelling down large
amounts of chicken and ham pie on Dean's other side, but Harry knew he was lis
tening.
'It's the right thing to do, Harry,' said Neville, who was sitting opposit
e him. He was rather pale, but went on in a low voice, 'It must have been . .
. tough . . . talking about it . . . was it?'
'Yeah,' mumbled Harry, 'but people have got to know what Voldemort's capab
le of, haven't they?'
That's right,' said Neville, nodding, 'and his Death Eaters, too . . . peo
ple should know . . ."
Neville left his sentence hanging and returned to his baked potato. Seamus
looked up, but when he caught Harry's eye he looked quickly back at his plate
again. After a while, Dean, Seamus and Neville departed for the common room,
leaving Harry and Hermione at the table waiting for Ron, who had riot yet had
dinner because of Quidditch practice.
Cho Chang walked into the Hall with her friend Marietta. Harry's stomach g
ave an unpleasant lurch, but she did not look over at the Gryffindor table, an
d sat down with her back to him.
'Oh, I forgot to ask you,' said Hermione brightly, glancing over at the Ra
venclaw table, 'what happened on your date with Cho? How come you were back so
early?'
'Er . . . well, it was . . .' said Harry, pulling a dish of rhubarb crumbl
e towards him and helping himself to seconds, 'a complete fiasco, now you ment
ion it.'
And he told her what had happened in Madam Puddifoot's teashop.
'. . . so then,' he finished several minutes later, as the final bit of cr
umble disappeared, 'she jumps up, right, and says, "I'll see you around, Harry
," and runs out of the place!' He put down his spoon and looked at Hermione. '
I mean, what was all that about? What was going on?'
Hermione glanced over at the back of Clio's head and sighed.
'Oh, Harry' she said sadly. 'Well, I'm sorry but you were a bit tactless.'
'Me, tactless?' said Harry, outraged. 'One minute we were getting on fine,
next minute she was telling me that Roger Davies asked her out and how she us
ed to go and snog Cedric in that stupid teashop - how was I supposed to feel a
bout that?'
Well, you see,' said Hermione, with the patient air of someone explaining
that one plus one equals iwo to an over-emotional toddler, 'you shouldn't have
told her that you wanted to meet me halfway through your date.'
'But, but,' spluttered Harry, 'but - you told me to meet you at twelve and
to bring her along, how was I supposed to do that w:.thout telling her?'
'You should have told her differently' said Hermione, still with that madd
eningly patient air. 'You should have said it was really annoying, but I'd mad
e you promise to come along to the Three Broomsticks, and you really didn't wa
nt to go, you'd much rather spend the whole day with her, but unfortunately yo
u thought you really ought to meet me and would she please, please come along
with you and hopefully you'd be able to get away more quickly. And it might ha
ve been a good idea to mention how ugly you think I am, too,' Hermione added a
s an afterthought.
'But I don't think you're ugly,' said Harry, bemused.
Hermione laughed.
'Harry, you're worse than Ron . . . well, no, you're not,' she sighed, as
Ron himself came stumping into the Hall splattered with mv.d and looking grump
y. 'Look - you upset Cho when you said you were going to meet me, so she tried
to make you jealous. It was her way of trying to find out how much you liked
her.'
'Is that what she was doing?' said Harry, as Ron dropped on .o the bench o
pposite them and pulled every dish within reach towards him. 'Well, wouldn't i
t have been easier if she'd just asked me whether I liked her better than you?
'
'Girls don't often ask questions like that,' said Hermione.
'Well, they should!' said Harry forcefully. 'Then I could've just told her
I fancy her, and she wouldn't have had to get herself all worked up again abo
ut Cedric dying!'
'I'm not saying what she did was sensible,' said Hermione, as Ginny joined
them, just as muddy as Ron and looking equally disgruntled. 'I'm just trying
to make you see how she was feeling at the time.'
'You should write a book,' Ron told Hermione as he cut up his potatoes, 't
ranslating mad things girls do so boys can understand them.'
'Yeah,' said Harry fervently, looking over at the Ravenclaw table. Cho had
just got up, and, still not looking at him, she left the Great Hall. Feeling
rather depressed, he looked back at Ron and Ginny. 'So, how was Quidditch prac
tice?'
'It was a nightmare,' said Ron in a surly voice.
'Oh come on,' said Hermione, looking at Ginny, 'I'm sure it wasn't that -
'
'Yes, it was,' said Ginny. 'It was appalling. Angelina was nearly in tears
by the end of it.'
Ron and Ginny went off for baths after dinner; Harry and Hermione returned
to the busy Gryffindor common room and their usual pile of homework. Harry ha
d been struggling with a new star-chart for Astronomy for half an hour when Fr
ed and George turned up.
'Ron and Ginny not here?' asked Fred, looking around as he pulled up a cha
ir, and when Harry shook his head, he said, 'Good. We were watching their prac
tice. They're going to be slaughtered. They're complete rubbish without us.'
'Come on, Ginny's not bad,' said George fairly, sitting down next to Fred.
'Actually, I dunno how she got so good, seeing how we never let her play with
us.'
'She's been breaking into your broom shed in the garden since the age of s
ix and taking each of your brooms out in turn when you weren't looking,' said
Hermione from behind her tottering pile of Ancient Rune books.
'Oh,' said George, looking mildly impressed. 'Well - that'd explain it.'
'Has Ron saved a goal yet?' asked Hermione, peering over the top of Magica
l Hieroglyphs and Logograms.
'Well, he can do it if he doesn't think anyone's watching him,' said Fred,
rolling his eyes. 'So all we have to do is ask the crowd to turn their backs
and talk among themselves every time the Qua! fie goes up his end on Saturday.
'
He got up again and moved restlessly to the window, staring out across the
dark grounds.
'You know, Quidditch was about the only thing in this place worth staying
for.'
Hermione cast him a stern look.
'You've got exams coming!'
'Told you already, we're not fussed about NEWTs,' said Fred. 'The Snackbox
es are ready to roll, we found out how to get rid of those boils, just a coupl
e of drops of Murtlap essence sorts them, Lee put us on to it.'
George yawned widely and looked out disconsolately at the cloudy night sky
.
'I dunno if I even want to watch this match. 11 Zacharias Smith beats us I
might have to kill myself.'
'Kill him, more like,' said Fred firmly.
'That's the trouble with Quidditch,' said Hermione absent-mindedly, once a
gain bent over her Runes translation, 'it creates all this bad feeling and ten
sion between the houses.'
She looked up to find her copy of Spellman's Syllabary, and caught Fred, G
eorge and Harry all staring at her with expressions of mingled disgust and inc
redulity on their faces.
'Well, it does!' she said impatiently. 'It's only a game, isn't it?'
'Hermione,' said Harry, shaking his head, 'you're good on feelings and stu
ff, but you just don't understand about Quidditch.'
'Maybe not,' she said darkly, returning to her translation, 'but at least
my happiness doesn't depend on Ron's goalkeeping ability.'
And though Harry would rather have jumped off the Astronomy Tower than adm
it it to her, by the time he had watched the game the following Saturday he wo
uld have given any number of Galleons not to care about Quidditch either.
The very best thing you could say about the match was that it was short; t
he Gryffindor spectators had to endure only twenty-two minutes of agony. It wa
s hard to say what the worst thing was: Harry thought it was a close-run conte
st between Ron's fourteenth failed save, Sloper missing the Bludger but hittin
g Angelina in the mouth with his bat, and Kirke shrieking and falling backward
s off his broom when Zacharias Smith zoomed at him carrying the Quaffle. The m
iracle was that Gryffindor only lost by ten points: Ginny managed to snatch th
e Snitch from right under Hufflepuff Seeker Summerby's nose, so that the final
score was two hundred and forty versus two hundred and thirty.
'Good catch,' Harry told Ginny back in the common room, where the atmosphe
re resembled that of a particularly dismal funeral.
'I was lucky,' she shrugged. 'It wasn't a very fast Snitch and Summerby's
got a cold, he sneezed and closed his eyes at exactly the wrong moment. Anyway
, once you're back on the team - '
'Ginny, I've got a lifelong ban.'
'You're banned as long as Umbridge is in the school,' Ginny corrected him.
There's a difference. Anyway, once you're back, I think
I'll, try out for Chaser. Angelina and Alicia are both leaving next year a
nd I prefer goal-scoring to Seeking anyway'
Harry looked over at Ron, who was hunched in a corner, staring at his knee
s, a bottle of Butlerbeer clutched in his hand.
'Angelina still won't let him resign,' Ginny said, as though reading Harry
's mind. 'She says she knows he's got it in him.'
Harry liked Angelina for the faith she was showing in Ron, but at the same
time thought it would really be kinder to let him leave the team. Ron had lef
t the pitch to another booming chorus of 'Weasley is our King' sung with great
gusto by the Slytherins, who were now favourites to win the Quidditch Cup.
Fred and George wandered over.
'I haven't even got the heart to take the mickey out of him,' said Fred, l
ooking over at Ron's crumpled figure. 'Mind you . . . when he missed the fourt
eenth - '
He made wild motions with his arms as though doing an upright dcggy-paddle
.
' - well, I'll save it for parties, eh?'
Ron dragged himself up to bed shortly after this. Out of respect for his f
eelings, Harry waited a while before going up to the dormitory himself, so tha
t Ron could pretend to be asleep if he wanted to Sure enough, when Harry final
ly entered the room Ron was snoring a little too loudly to be entirely plausib
le.
Harry got into bed, thinking about the match. It had been immensely frustr
ating watching from the sidelines. He was quite impressed by Ginny's performan
ce but he knew if he had been playing he could have caught the Snitch sooner .
. . there had been a moment when it had been fluttering near Kirke's ankle; i
f Ginny hadn't hesitated, she might have been able to scrape a win for Gryffin
dor.
Umbridge had been sitting a few rows below Harry and Hermione. Once or twi
ce she had turned squatly in her seat to look at him, her wide toad's mouth st
retched in what he thought had been a gloating smile. The memory of it made hi
m feel hot with anger as he lay there in the dark. After a few minutes, howeve
r, he remembered that he was supposed to be emptying his mind of all emotion b
efore he slept, as Snape kept instructing him at the end of every Occlumency l
esson.
He tried for a moment or two, but the thought of Snape on top of memories
of Umbridge merely increased his sense of grumbling resentment and he found hi
mself focusing instead on how much he loathed the pair of them. Slowly, Ron's
snores died away to be replaced by the sound of deep, slow breathing. It took
Harry much longer to get to sleep; his body was tired, but it took his brain a
long time to close down.
He dreamed that Neville and Professor Sprout were waltzing around the Room
of Requirement while Professor McGonagall played the bagpipes. He watched the
m happily for a while, then decided to go and find the other members of the DA
.
But when he left the room he found himself facing, not the tapestry of Bar
nabas the Barmy, but a torch burning in its bracket on a stone wall. He turned
his head slowly to the left. There, at the far end of the windowless passage,
was a plain, black door.
He walked towards it with a sense of mounting excitement. He had the stran
gest feeling that this time he was going to get lucky at last, and find the wa
y to open it . . . he was feet from it, and saw with a leap of excitement that
there was a glowing strip of faint blue light down the right-hand side . . .
the door was ajar . . . he stretched out his hand to push it wide and - '
Ron gave a loud, rasping, genuine snore and Harry awoke abruptly with his
right hand stretched in front of him in the darkness, to open a door that was
hundreds of miles away. He let it fall with a feeling of mingled disappointmen
t and guilt. He knew he should not have seen the door, but at the same time fe
lt so consumed with curiosity about what was behind it that he could not help
feeling annoyed with Ron . . . if only he could have saved his snore for just
another minute.
*
They entered the Great Hall for breakfast at exactly the same moment as the po
st owls on Monday morning. Hermione was not the only person eagerly awaiting h
er Daily Prophet: nearly everyone was eager for more news about the escaped De
ath Eaters, who, despite many reported sightings, had still not been caught. S
he gave the delivery owl a Knut and unfolded the newspaper eagerly while Harry
helped himself to orange juice; as he had only received one note during the e
ntire year, he was sure, when the first owl landed with a thud in front of him
, that it had made a mistake.
'Who're you after?' he asked it, languidly removing his orange juice from
underneath its beak and leaning forwards to see the recipient's name and addre
ss:
Harry Potter
Great Hall
Hogwarts School
Frowning, he made to take the letter from the owl, but before he could do so,
three, four, five more owls had fluttered down beside it and were jockeying fo
r position, treading in the butter and knocking over the salt as each one atte
mpted to give him their letter first.
'What's going on?' Ron asked in amazement, as the whole of Gryffindor tabl
e leaned forwards to watch and another seven owls landed amongst the first one
s, screeching, hooting and flapping their wings.
'Harry!' said Hermione breathlessly, plunging her hands into the feathery
mass and pulling out a screech owl bearing a long, cylindrical package. 'I thi
nk I know what this means - open this one first!'
Harry ripped off the brown packaging. Out rolled a tightly furled copy of
the March edition of The Quibbler. He unrolled it to see his own face grinning
sheepishly at him from the front cover. In large red letters across this pict
ure were the words:
HARRY POTTER SPEAKS OUT AT LAST:
THE TRUTH ABOUT HE WHO MUST NOT BE NAMED
AND THE NIGHT I SAW HIM RETURN
'It's good, isn't it?' said Luna, who had drifted over to the Gryffindor table
and now squeezed herself on to the bench between Fred and Ron. 'It came out y
esterday, I asked Dad to send you a free copy. I expect all these,' she waved
a hand at the assembled owls still scrabbling around on the table in front of
Harry, 'are letters from readers.'
Thais what I thought,' said Hermione eagerly. Harry, d'you mind if we - ?'
'Help yourself,' said Harry, feeling slightly bemused.
Ron and Hermione both started ripping open envelopes.
'This one's from a bloke who thinks you're off your rocker,' said Ron, gla
ncing down his letter. 'Ah well . . .'
This woman recommends you try a good course of Shock Spells at St Mungo's,
' said Hermione, looking disappointed and crumpling up a second.
This one looks OK, though,' said Harry slowly scanning a long letter from
a witch in Paisley. 'Hey she says she believes me!'
This one's in two minds,' said Fred, who had joined in the letter-opening
with enthusiasm. 'Says you don't come across as a mad person, but he really do
esn't want to believe You-Know-Who's back so he doesn't know what to think now
. Blimey, what a waste of parchment.'
'Here's another one you've convinced, Harry!' said Hermione excitedly. 'Ha
ving read your side of the story, I am forced to the conclusion that the Daily
Prophet has treated you very unfairly . . . little though I want to think tha
t He Who Must Not Be Named has returned, I am forced to accept that you are te
lling the truth . . . Oh, this is wonderful!'
'Another one who thinks you're barking,' said Ron, throwing a crumpled let
ter over his shoulder '. . . but this one says you've got her converted and sh
e now thinks you're a real hero - she's put in a photograph, too - wow!'
'What is going on here?' said a falsely sweet, girlish voice.
Harry looked up with his hands full of envelopes. Professor Umbridge was s
tanding behind Fred and Luna, her bulging toad's eyes scanning the mess of owl
s and letters on the table in front of Harry. Behind her he saw many of the st
udents watching them avidly.
'Why have you got all these letters, Mr Potter?' she asked slowly.
'Is that a crime now?' said Fred loudly. 'Getting mail?'
'Be careful, Mr Weasley or I shall have to put you in detention,' said Umb
ridge. 'Well, Mr Potter?'
Harry hesitated, but he did not see how he could keep what he had done qui
et; it was surely only a matter of time before a copy of The Quibbler came to
Umbridge's attention.
'People have written to me because I gave an interview,' said Harry. 'Abou
t what happened to me last June.'
For some reason he glanced up at the staff table as he said this. Harry ha
d the strangest feeling that Dumbledore had been watching him a second before,
but when he looked towards the Headmaster he seemed to be absorbed in convers
ation with Professor Flitwick.
'An interview?' repeated Umbridge, her voice thinner and higher than ever.
'What do you mean?'
'I mean a reporter asked me questions and I answered them,' said Harry. 'H
ere - '
And he threw the copy of The Quibbler to her. She caught it and stared dow
n at the cover. Her pale, doughy face turned an ugly, patchy violet.
'When did you do this?' she asked, her voice trembling slightly.
'Last Hogsmeade weekend,' said Harry.
She looked up at him, incandescent with rage, the magazine shaking in her
stubby fingers.
There will be no more Hogsmeade trips for you, Mr Potter,' she whispered.
'How you dare . . . how you could . . .' She took a deep breath. 'I have tried
again and again to teach you not to tell lies. The message, apparently, has s
till not sunk in. Fifty points from Gryffindor and another week's worth of det
entions.'
She stalked away, clutching The Quibbler to her chest, the eyes of many st
udents following her.
By mid-morning enormous signs had been put up all over the school, not jus
t on house noticeboards, but in the corridors and classrooms too.
BY ORDER OF THE HIGH INQUISITOR OF HOGWARTS
Any student found in possession of the magazine
The Quibbler will be expelled.
The above is in accordance with Educational Decree Number Twenty-seven.
Signed: Dolores Jane Umbridge, High Inquisitor
For some reason, every time Hermione caught sight of one of these signs she be
amed with pleasure.
'What exactly are you so happy about?' Harry asked her.
'Oh, Harry, don't you see?' Hermione breathed. 'If she could have done one
thing to make absolutely sure that every single person in this school will re
ad your interview, it was banning it!'
And it seemed that Hermione was quite right. By the end of the day, though
Harry had not seen so much as a corner of The Quibbler anywhere in the school
, the whole place seemed to be quoting the interview to each other. Harry hear
d them whispering about it as they queued up outside classes, discussing it ov
er lunch and in the back of lessons, while Hermione even reported that every o
ccupant of the cubicles in the girls' toilets had been talking about it when s
he nipped in there before Ancient Runes.
Then they spotted me, and obviously they know I know you, so they bombarde
d me with questions,' Hermione told Harry, her eyes shining, 'and Harry, I thi
nk they believe you, I really do. I think you've finally got them convinced!'
Meanwhile, Professor Umbridge was stalking the school, stopping students a
t random and demanding that they turn out their books and pockets: Harry knew
she was looking for copies of The Quibbler, but the students were several step
s ahead of her. Tie pages carrying Harry's interview had been bewitched to res
emble extracts from textbooks if anyone but themselves read it, or else wiped
magically blank until they wanted to peruse it again. Soon it seemed that ever
y single person in the school had read it.
The teachers were of course forbidden from mentioning I ie interview by Ed
ucational Decree Number Twenty-six, but they found ways to express their feeli
ngs about it all the same. Professor Sprout awarded Gryffindor twenty points w
hen Harry passed her a watering can; a beaming Professor Flitwick pressed a bo
x of squeaking sugar mice on him at the end of Charms, said, 'Shh!' and hurrie
d away; and Professor Trelawney broke into hysterical sobs during Divination a
nd announced to the startled class, and a very disapproving Umbridge, that Har
ry was not going to suffer an early death after all, but would live to a ripe
old age, become Minister for Magic and have twelve children.
But what made Harry happiest was Cho catching up with him as he was hurryi
ng along to Transfiguration the next day. Before he knew what had happened, he
r hand was in his and she was breathing in his ear, 'I'm really, really sorry.
That interview was so brave . . . it made me cry.'
He was sorry to hear she had shed even more tears over it, but very glad t
hey were on speaking terms again, and even more pleased when she gave him a sw
ift kiss on the cheek and hurried off again. And unbelievably, no sooner had h
e arrived outside Transfiguration than something just as good happened: Seamus
stepped out of the queue to face him.
'I just wanted to say,' he mumbled, squinting at Harry's left knee, 'I bel
ieve you. And I've sent a copy of that magazine to me mam.'
If anything more was needed to complete Harry's happiness, it was the reac
tion he got from Malfoy Crabbe and Goyle, He saw them with their heads togethe
r later that afternoon in the library; they were with a weedy-looking boy Herm
ione whispered was called Theodore Nott. They looked round at Harry as he brow
sed the shelves for the book he needed on Partial Vanishment: Goyle cracked hi
s knuckles threateningly and Malfoy whispered something undoubtedly malevolent
to Crabbe. Harry knew perfectly well why they were acting like this: he had n
amed all of their fathers as Death Eaters.
'And the best bit,' whispered Hermione gleefully, as they left the library
, 'is they can't contradict you, because they can't admit they've read the art
icle!'
To cap it all, Luna told him over dinner that no issue of The Quibbler had
ever sold out faster.
'Dad's reprinting!' she told Harry, her eyes popping excitedly. 'He can't
believe it, he says people seem even more interested in this than the Crumple-
Horned Snorkacks!'
Harry was a hero in the Gryffindor common room that night. Daringly, Fred
and George had put an Enlargement Charm on the front cover of The Quibbler and
hung it on the wall, so that Harry's giant head gazed down upon the proceedin
gs, occasionally saying things like THE MINISTRY ARE MORONS' and 'EAT DUNG, UM
BRIDGE' in a booming voice. Hermione did not find this very amusing; she said
it interfered with her concentration, and she ended up going to bed early out
of irritation. Harry had to admit that the poster was not quite as funny after
an hour or two, especially when the talking spell had started to wear off, so
that it merely shouted disconnected words like 'DUNG' and 'UMBRIDGE' at more
and more frequent intervals in a progressively higher voice. In fact, it start
ed to make his head ache and his scar began prickling uncomfortably again. To
disappointed moans from the many people who were s t-ting around him, asking h
im to relive his interview for the umpteenth time, he announced that he too ne
eded an early night.
The dormitory was empty when he reached it. He rested his forehead for a m
oment against the cool glass of the window beside his bed; it felt soothing ag
ainst his scar. Then he undressed and got into bed, wishing his headache would
go away. He also felt slightly sick. He rolled over on to his side, closed hi
s eyes, and fell asleep almost at once . . .
He was standing in a dark, curtained room lit by a single branch of candle
s. His hands were clenched on the back of a chair in front of him. They were l
ong-fingered and white as though they had not seen sunlight for years and look
ed like large, pale spiders agairst the dark velvet of the chair.
Beyond the chair, in a pool of light cast upon the floor by t'le candles,
knelt a man in black robes.
'I have been badly advised, it seems,' said Harry, in a high, cold voice t
hat pulsed with anger.
'Master, I crave your pardon,' croaked the man kneeling on the floor. The
back of his head glimmered in the candlelight. He seemed to be trembling.
'I do not blame you, Rookwood,' said Harry in that cold, cruel voice.
He relinquished his grip on the chair and walked around it, closer to the
man cowering on the floor, until he stood directly over him in the darkness, l
ooking down from a far greater height than usual.
'You are sure of your facts, Rookwood?' asked Harry.
'Yes, My Lord, yes . . . I used to work in the Department aftet - 'after a
ll . . ."
'Avery told me Bode would be able to remove it.'
'Bode could never have taken it, Master . . . Bode would have known he cou
ld not . . . undoubtedly, that is why he fought so hard against Malfoy's Imper
ius Curse . . ."
'Stand up, Rookwood,' whispered Harry.
The kneeling man almost fell over in his haste to obey. His face was pockm
arked; the scars were thrown into relief by the candlelight. He remained a lit
tle stooped when standing, as though halfway through a bow, and he darted terr
ified looks up at Harry's face.
'You have done well to tell me this,' said Harry. 'Very well . . . I have
wasted months on fruitless schemes, it seems . . . but no matter . . . we begi
n again, from now. You have Lord Voldemort's gratitude, Rookwood . . .'
'My Lord . . . yes, My Lord,' gasped Rookwood, his voice hoarse with relie
f.
'I shall need your help. I shall need all the information you can give me.
'
'Of course, My Lord, of course . . . anything . . .'
'Very well . . . you may go. Send Avery to me.'
Rookwood scurried backwards, bowing, and disappeared through a door.
Left alone in the dark room, Harry turned towards the wall. A cracked, age
-spotted mirror hung on the wall in the shadows. Harry moved towards it. His r
eflection grew larger and clearer in the darkness . . . a face whiter than a s
kull . . . red eyes with slits ior pupils . . .
'NOOOOOOOOO!'
'What?' yelled a voice nearby.
Harry Hailed around madly, became entangled in the hangings and fell out o
f his bed. For a few seconds he did not know where he was; he was convinced he
was about to see the white, skull-like lace looming at him out of the dark ag
ain, then very near to him Ron's voice spoke.
'Will you stop acting like a maniac so I can get you out of here!'
Ron wrenched the hangings apart and Harry stared up at him in the moonligh
t, flat on his back, his scar searing with pain. Ron
looked as though he had just been getting ready for bed; one arm was out o
f his robes.
'Has someone been attacked again?' asked Ron, pulling Harry roughly to his
feet. 'Is it Dad? Is it that snake?'
'No - everyone's fine - ' gasped Harry, whose forehead felt as though it w
ere on fire. 'Well . . . Avery isn't . . . he's in trouble . . . he gave him t
he wrong information . . . Voldemort's really angry . . .'
Harry groaned and sank, shaking, on to his bed, rubbing his scar.
'But Rookwood's going to help him now . . . he's on the right track again
'What are you talking about?' said Ron, sounding scared. 'D'you mean . . .
did you just see You-Know-Who?'
'I was You-Know-Who,' said Harry, and he stretched out his hands in the da
rkness and held them up to his face, to check that they were no longer deathly
white and long-fingered. 'He was with Rookwood, he's one of the Death Eaters
who escaped from Azkaban, remember? Rookwood's just told him Bode couldn't hav
e done it.'
'Done what?'
'Remove something . . . he said Bode would have known he couldn't have don
e it . . . Bode was under the Imperius Curse . . . I think he said Malfoy's da
d put it on him.'
'Bode was bewitched to remove something?' Ron said. 'But - 'Harry, that's
got to be - '
The weapon,' Harry finished the sentence for him. 'I know.'
The dormitory door opened; Dean and Seamus came in. Harry swung his legs b
ack into bed. He did not want to look as though anything odd had just happened
, seeing as Seamus had only just stopped thinking Harry was a nutter.
'Did you say,' murmured Ron, putting his head close to Harry's on the pret
ence of helping himself to water from the jug on his bedside table, 'that you
were You-Know-Who?'
'Yeah,' said Harry quietly.
Ron took an unnecessarily large gulp of water; Harry saw it spill over his
chin on to his chest.
'Harry,' he said, as Dean and Seamus clattered around noisily, pulling off
their robes and talking, 'you've got to tell - '
'I haven't got to tell anyone,' said Harry shortly. 'I wouldn't have seen
it at all if I could do Occlumency. I'm supposed to have learned to shut this
stuff out. That's what they want/
By 'they' he meant Dumbledore. He got back into bed and rolled over on to
his side with his back to Ron and after a while he heard Ron's mattress creak
as he, too, lay back down. Harry's scar began to burn; he bit hard on his pill
ow to stop himself making a noise. Somewhere, he knew, Avery was being punishe
d.
*
Harry and Ron waited until break next morning to tell Hermione exactly what ha
d happened; they wanted to be absolutely sure they could not be overheard. Sta
nding in their usual corner of the cool and breezy courtyard, Harry told her e
very detail of the dream he could remember. When he had finished, she said not
hing at all for a few moments, but stared with a kind of painful intensity at
Fred and George, who were both headless and selling their magical hats from un
der their cloaks on the other side of the yard.
'So that's why they killed him,' she said quietly, withdrawing her gaze fr
om Fred and George at last. 'When Bode tried to steal this weapon, something f
unny happened to him. I think there must be defensive spells on it, or around
it, to stop people touching it. That's why he was in St Mungos, his brain had
gone all funny and he couldn't talk. But remember what the Healer told us? He
was recovering. And they couldn't risk him getting better, could they? I mean,
the shock of whatever happened when he touched that weapon probably made the
Imperius Curse lift. Once he'd got his voice back, he'd explain what he'd been
doing, wouldn't he? They would have known he'd been sent to steal the weapon.
Of course, it would have been easy for Lucius Malfoy to put the curse on him.
Never out of the Ministry, is he?'
'He was even hanging around that day I had my hearing,' said Harry. Tn the
- hang on . . .' he said slowly. 'He was in the Department of Mysteries corri
dor that day! Your dad said he was probably trying to sneak down and find out
what happened in my hearing, but what if - '
'Sturgis!' gasped Hermione, looking thunderstruck.
'Sorry?' said Ron, looking bewildered.
'Sturgis Podmore - ' said Hermione breathlessly, 'arrested for trying to g
et through a door! Lucius Malfoy must have got him too! I bet he did it the da
y you saw him there, Harry. Sturgis had Moody's Invisibility Cloak, right? So,
what if he was standing guard by the door, invisible, and Malfoy heard him mo
ve - or guessed someone was there - or just did the Imperius Curse on the off-
chance there'd be a guard there? So, when Sturgis next had an opportunity - pr
obably when it was his turn on guard duty again - he tried to get into the Dep
artment to steal the weapon for Voldemort - Ron, be quiet - but he got caught
and sent to Azkaban . . .'
She gazed at Harry.
'And now Rookwood's told Voldemort how to get the weapon?'
'I didn't hear all the conversation, but that's what it sounded like,' sai
d Harry. 'Rookwood used to work there . . . maybe Voldemort'll send Rookwood t
o do it?'
Hermione nodded, apparently still lost in thought. Then, quite abruptly, s
he said, 'But you shouldn't have seen this at all, Harry.'
'What?' he said, taken aback.
'You're supposed to be learning how to close your mind to this sort of thi
ng,' said Hermione, suddenly stern.
'I know I am,' said Harry. 'But - '
'Well, I think we should just try and forget what you saw,' said Hermione
firmly. 'And you ought to put in a bit more effort on your Occlumency from now
on.'
Harry was so angry with her he did not talk to her for the rest of the day
, which proved to be another bad one. When people were not discussing the esca
ped Death Eaters in the corridors, they were laughing at Gryffindor's abysmal
performance in their match against Hufflepuff; the Slytherins were singing Wea
sley is our King' so loudly and frequently that by sundown Filch had banned it
from the corridors out of sheer irritation.
The week did not improve as it progressed. Harry received two more 'Ds in
Potions; he was still on tenterhooks that Hagrid might get the sack; and he co
uldn't stop himself dwelling on the dream in which he had been Voldemort - tho
ugh he didn't bring it up with Ron and Hermione again; he didn't want another
telling-off from Hermione. He wished very much that he could have talked to Si
rius about it, but that was out of the question, so he tried to push the matte
r to the back of his mind.
Unfortunately, the back of his mind was no longer the secure place it had
once been.
'Get up, Potter.'
A couple of weeks after his dream of Rookwood, Harry was to be found, yet
again, kneeling on the floor of Snape's office, trying to clear his head. He h
ad just been forced, yet again, to relive a stream of very early memories he h
ad not even realised he still had, most of them concerning humiliations Dudley
and his gang had inflicted upon him in primary school.
That last memory,' said Snape. 'What was it?'
'I don't know,' said Harry, getting wearily to his feet. He was finding it
increasingly difficult to disentangle separate memories from the rush of imag
es and sound that Snape kept calling forth. 'You mean the one where my cousin
tried to make me stand in the toilet?'
'No,' said Snape softly. 'I mean the one with a man kneeling in the middle
of a darkened room . . .'
'Its . . . nothing,' said Harry.
Snape's dark eyes bored into Harry's. Remembering what Snape had said abou
t eye contact being crucial to Legilimency, Harry blinked and looked away.
'How do that man and that room come to be inside your head, Potter?' said
Snape.
'It - ' said Harry, looking everywhere but at Snape, 'it was -just a dream
I had.'
'A dream?' repeated Snape.
There was a pause during which Harry stared fixedly at a large dead frog s
uspended in a jar of purple liquid.
'You do know why we are here, don t you, Potter?' said Snape, in a low, da
ngerous voice. 'You do know why I am giving up my evenings to this tedious job
?'
'Yes,' said Harry stiffly.
'Remind me why we are here, Potter.'
'So I can learn Occlumency, said Harry, now glaring at a dead eel.
'Correct, Potter. And dim though you may be - ' Harry looked back at Snape
, hating him ' - I would have thought that after over two months of lessons yo
u might have made some progress. How many other dreams about the Dark Lord hav
e you had?'
'Just that one,' lied Harry.
'Perhaps,' said Snape, his dark, cold eyes narrowing slightly, 'perhaps yo
u actually enjoy having these visions and dreams, Potter. Maybe they make you
feel special - important?'
'No, they don't,' said Harry, his jaw set and his fingers clenched tightly
around the handle of his wand.
That is just as well, Potter,' said Snape coldly, 'because you a;-e neithe
r special nor important, and it is not up to you to find out what the Dark Lor
d is saying to his Death Eaters.'
'No - that's your job, isn't it?' Harry shot at him.
He had not meant to say it; it had burst out of him in temper. For a long
moment they stared at each other, Harry convinced he had gone too far. But the
re was a curious, almost satisfied expression on Snape's face when he answered
.
'Yes, Potter,' he said, his eyes glinting. That is my job. Now, if you are
ready, we will start again.'
He raised his wand: 'One - two - three - Legilimens!'
A hundred Dementors were swooping towards Harry across the lake in the gro
unds . . . he screwed up his face in concentration . . . they were coming clos
er . . . he could see the dark holes beneath their hoods . . . yet he could al
so see Snape standing in front of him, his eyes fixed on Harry's face, mutteri
ng under his breath . . . and somehow, Snape was growing clearer, and the Deme
ntors were growing fainter . . .
Harry raised his own wand.
'Protego!'
Snape staggered - his wand flew upwards, away from Harry - 'and suddenly H
arry's mind was teeming with memories that were not his: a hook-nosed man was
shouting at a cowering woman, while a small dark-haired boy cried in a corner
. . . a greasy-haired teenager sat alone in a dark bedroom, pointing his wand
at the ceiling, shooting down flies . . . a girl was laughing as a scrawny boy
tried to mount a bucking broomstick - '
'ENOUGH!'
Harry felt as though he had been pushed hard in the chest; he staggered se
veral steps backwards, hit some of the shelves covering Snapes walls and heard
something crack. Snape was shaking slightly, and was very white in the face.
The back of Harry's robes was damp. One of the jars behind him had broken
when he fell against it; the pickled slimy thing within was swirling in its dr
aining potion.
'Reparo,' hissed Snape, and the jar sealed itself at once. 'Well, Potter .
. . that was certainly an improvement . . .' Panting slightly, Snape straight
ened the Pensieve in which he had again stored some of his thoughts before sta
rting the lesson, almost as though he was checking they were still there. 'I d
on't remember telling you to use a Shield Charm . . . but there is no doubt th
at it was effective . . ."
Harry did not speak; he felt that to say anything might be dangerous. He w
as sure he had just broken into Snape's memories, that he had just seen scenes
from Snape's childhood. It was unnerving to think that the little boy who had
been crying as he watched his parents shouting was actually standing in front
of him with such loathing in his eyes.
'Let's try again, shall we?' said Snape.
Harry felt a thrill of dread; he was about to pay for what had just happen
ed, he was sure of it. They moved back into position with the desk between the
m, Harry feeling he was going to find it much harder to empty his mind this ti
me.
'On the count of three, then,' said Snape, raising his wand once more. 'On
e - two - '
Harry did not have time to gather himself together and attempt to clear hi
s mind before Snape cried, 'Legllimens!'
He was hurtling along the corridor towards the Department of Masteries, pa
st the blank stone walls, past the torches - the plain black door was growing
ever larger; he was moving so fast he was going to collide with it, he was fee
t from it and again he could see that chink of faint blue light - '
The door had flown open! He was through it at last, inside a black-walled,
black-floored circular room lit with blue-flamed candles, and there were more
doors all around him - he needed to go on - but which door ought he to take -
'?
'POTTER!'
Harry opened his eyes. He was flat on his back again with no memory of hav
ing got there; he was also panting as though hi; really had run the length of
the Department of Mysteries corridor, really had sprinted through the black do
or and found the circular room.
'Explain yourself!' said Snape, who was standing over him, looking furious
.
'I . . . dunno what happened,' said Harry truthfully, standing up. There w
as a lump on the back of his head from where he had hit the ground and he felt
feverish. 'I've never seen that before. I mean, I told you, I've dreamed abou
t the door . . . but it's never opened before
'You are not working hard enough!'
For some reason, Snape seemed even angrier than he had done two minutes be
fore, when Harry had seen into his teacher's memories.
'You are lazy and sloppy, Potter, it is small wonder that the Dark Lord -
'
'Can you tell me something, sir?' said Harry, firing up again. 'Why do you
call Voldemort the Dark Lord? I've only ever heard Death Eaters call him that
.'
Snape opened his mouth in a snarl - and a woman screamed from somewhere ou
tside the room.
Snape's head jerked upwards; he was gazing at the ceiling.
'What the - ?' he muttered.
Harry could hear a muffled commotion coming from what he thought might be
the Entrance Hall. Snape looked round at him, frowning.
'Did you see anything unusual on your way down here, Potter?'
Harry shook his head. Somewhere above them, the woman screamed again. Snap
e strode to his office door, his wand still held at the ready, and swept out o
f sight. Harry hesitated for a moment, then followed.
The screams were indeed coming from the Entrance Hall; they grew louder as
Harry ran towards the stone steps leading up from the dungeons. When he reach
ed the top he found the Entrance Hall packed; students had come flooding out o
f the Great Hall, where dinner was still in progress, to see what was going on
; others had crammed themselves on to the marble staircase. Harry pushed forwa
rds through a knot of tall Slytherins and saw that the onlookers had formed a
great ring, some of them looking shocked, others even frightened. Professor Mc
Gonagall was directly opposite Harry en the other side of the Hall; she looked
as though what she was watching made her feel faintly sick.
Professor Trelawney was standing in the middle of the Entrance Hall with h
er wand in one hand and an empty sherry bottle in the other, looking utterly m
ad. Her hair was sticking up on end, her glasses were lopsided so that one eye
was magnified more than the other; her innumerable shawls and scarves were tr
ailing haphazardly from her shoulders, giving the impression that she was fall
ing apart at the seams. Two large trunks lay on the floor beside her, one of t
hem upside-down; it looked very much as though it had been thrown down the sta
irs after her. Professor Trelawney was staring, apparently terrified, at somet
hing Harry could not see but which seemed to be standing at the foot of the st
airs.
'No!' she shrieked. 'NO! This cannot be happening . . . it cannot . . . I
retuse to accept it!'
'You didn't realise this was coming?' said a high girlish voice, sounding
callously amused, and Harry, moving slightly to his right, saw that Trelawney'
s terrifying vision was nothing other than Professor Umbridge. 'Incapable thou
gh you are of predicting even tomorrows weather, you must surely have realised
that your pitiful performance during my inspections, and lack of any improvem
ent, would make it inevitable that you would be sacked?'
'You c - can't!' howled Professor Trelawney, tears streaming down her face
from behind her enormous lenses, 'you c - can't sack me! I've b - been here s
ixteen years! H - Hogwarts is m - my h - home!'
'It was your home,' said Professor Umbridge, and Harry was revolted to see
the enjoyment stretching her toadlike face as she watched Professor Trelawney
sink, sobbing uncontrollably, on to one of her trunks, 'until an hour ago, wh
en the Minister for Magic: countersigned your Order of Dismissal. Now kindly r
emove yourself from this Hall. You are embarrassing us.'
But she stood and watched, with an expression of gloating enjoyment, as Pr
ofessor Trelawney shuddered and moaned, rocking backwards and forwards on her
trunk in paroxysms of grief. Harry heard a muffled sob to his left and looked
around. Lavender and Parvati were both crying quietly, their arms round each o
ther. Then he heard footsteps. Professor McGonagall had broken away from the s
pectators, marched straight up to Professor Trelawney and was patting her firm
ly on the back while withdrawing a large handkerchief from within her robes.
There, there, Sybill . . . calm down . . . blow your nose on this . . . it
's not as bad as you think, now . . . you are not going to have to leave Hogwa
rts . . .'
'Oh really, Professor McGonagall?' said Umbridge in a deadly voice, taking
a few steps forward. 'And your authority for that statement is . . . ?'
That would be mine,' said a deep voice.
The oaken front doors had swung open. Students beside them scuttled out of
the way as Dumbledore appeared in the entrance. What he had been doing out in
the grounds Harry could not imagine, but there was something impressive about
the sight of him framed in the doorway against an oddly misty night. Leaving
the doors wide open behind him he strode forwards through the circle of onlook
ers towards Professor Trelawney, tear-stained and trembling, on her trunk, Pro
fessor McGonagall alongside her.
'Yours, Professor Dumbledore?' said Umbridge, with a singularly unpleasant
little laugh. 'I'm afraid you do not understand the position. I have here - '
she pulled a parchment scroll from within her robes'- an Order of Dismissal s
igned by myself and the Minister for Magic. Under the terms of Educational Dec
ree Number Twenty-three, the High Inquisitor of Hogwarts has the power to insp
ect, place upon probation and sack any teacher she - that is to say, I - feel
is not performing to the standards required by the Ministry of Magic. I have d
ecided that Professor Trelawney is not up to scratch. I have dismissed her.'
To Harry's very great surprise, Dumbledore continued to smile. He looked d
own at Professor Trelawney, who was still sobbing and choking on her trunk, an
d said, 'You are quite right, of course, Professor Umbridge. As High Inquisito
r you have every right to dismiss my teachers. You do not, however, have the a
uthority to send them away from the castle. I am afraid,' he went on, with a c
ourteous little bow, 'that the power to do that still resides with the Headmas
ter, and it is my wish that Professor Trelawney continue to live at Hogwarts.'
At this, Professor Trelawney gave a wild little laugh in which a hiccough
was barely hidden.
'No - no, I'll g - go, Dumbledore! I sh - shall - leave Hogwarts and s - s
eek my fortune elsewhere - '
'No,' said Dumbledore sharply. 'It is my wish that you remain, Sybill:
He turned to Professor McGonagall.
'Might I ask you to escort Sybill back upstairs, Professor McGonagall?'
'Of course,' said McGonagall. 'Up you get, Sybill . . .'
Professor Sprout came hurrying forwards out of the crowd and grabbed Profe
ssor Trelawney's other arm. Together, they guided her past Umbridge and up the
marble stairs. Professor Flitwick went scurrying after them, his wand held ou
t before him; he squeaked 'Locomotor trunks!' and Professor Trelawney's luggag
e rose into the air and proceeded up the staircase after her, Professor Flitwi
ck bringing up the rear.
Professor Umbridge was standing stock still, staring at Dumbledore, who co
ntinued to smile benignly.
'And what,' she said, in a whisper that carried all around the Eintrance H
all, 'are you going to do with her once I appoint a new Divination teacher who
needs her lodgings?'
'Oh, that won't be a problem,' said Dumbledore pleasantly. 'You see, I hav
e already found us a new Divination teacher, and he will prefer lodgings on th
e ground floor.'
'You've found - ?' said Umbridge shrilly. 'You've found? Might I remind yo
u, Dumbledore, that under Educational Decree Number Twenty-two - '
'The Ministry has the right to appoint a suitable candidate if - and only
if - the Headmaster is unable to find one,' said Dumbledore. 'And I am happy t
o say that on this occasion I have succeeded. May I introduce you?'
He turned to face the open front doors, through which night mist was now d
rifting. Harry heard hooves. There was a shocked murmur around the Hall and th
ose nearest the doors hastily moved even further backwards, some of them tripp
ing over in their haste to clear a path for the newcomer.
Through the mist came a face Harry had seen once before on a dark, dangero
us night in the Forbidden Forest: white-blond hair and astonishingly blue eyes
; the head and torso of a man joined to the palomino body of a horse.
This is Firenze,' said Dumbledore happily to a thunderstruck Umbridge. 'I
think you'll find him suitable.'
- CHAPTER TWENTY-SEVEN -
The Centaur and
The Sneak
'I'll bet you wish you hadn't given up Divination now, don't you, Hermione?' a
sked Parvati, smirking.
It was breakfast time, two days after the sacking of Professor Trelawney,
and Parvati was curling her eyelashes around her wand and examining the effect
in the back of her spoon. They were to have their first lesson with Firenze t
hat morning.
'Not really,' said Hermione indifferently, who was reading the Daily Proph
et. 'I've never really liked horses.'
She turned a page of the newspaper and scanned its columns.
'He's not a horse, he's a centaur!' said Lavender, sounding shocked.
'A gorgeous centaur . . .' sighed Parvati.
'Either way, he's still got four legs,' said Hermione coolly. 'Anyway, I t
hought you two were all upset that Trelawney had gone?'
'We are!' Lavender assured her. 'We went up to her office to see Ler; we t
ook her some daffodils - not the honking ones that Sprout's got, nice ones.'
'How is she?' asked Harry.
'Not very good, poor thing,' said Lavender sympathetically. 'She v/as cryi
ng and saying she'd rather leave the castle for ever than stay here where Umbr
idge is, and I don't blame her, Umbridge was horrible to her, wasn't she?'
'I've got a feeling Umbridge has only just started being horrible,' said H
ermione darkly.
'Impossible,' said Ron, who was tucking into a large plate of eggs and bac
on. 'She can't get any worse than she's been already.'
'You mark my words, she's going to want revenge on Dumbledore for appointi
ng a new teacher without consulting her,' said Hermione, closing the newspaper
. 'Especially another part-human. You saw the look on her face when she saw Fi
renze.'
After breakfast Hermione departed for her Arithmancy class as Harry and Ro
n followed Parvati and Lavender into the Entrance: Hall, heading for Divinatio
n.
'Aren't we going up to North Tower?' asked Ron, looking puzzled, as Parvat
i bypassed the marble staircase.
Parvati looked at him scornfully over her shoulder.
'How d'you expect Firenze to climb that ladder? We're in classroom eleven
now, it was on the noticeboard yesterday.'
Classroom eleven was on the ground floor along the corridor leading off th
e Entrance Hall from the opposite side to the Great Hall. Harry knew it was on
e of those classrooms that were never used regularly, and therefore had the sl
ightly neglected feeling of a cupboard or storeroom. When he entered it right
behind Ron, and found himself in the middle of a forest clearing, he was there
fore momentarily stunned.
What the - ?'
The classroom floor had become springily mossy and trees were growing out
of it; their leafy branches fanned across the ceiling and windows, so that the
room was full of slanting shafts of soft, dappled, green light. The students
who had already arrived were sitting on the earthy floor with their backs rest
ing against tree trunks or boulders, arms wrapped around their knees or folded
tightly across their chests, and all looking rather nervous. In the middle of
the clearing, where there were no trees, stood Firenze.
'Harry Potter,' he said, holding out a hand when Harry entered.
'Er - hi,' said Harry, shaking hands with the centaur, who surveyed him un
blinkingly through those astonishingly blue eyes but did not smile. 'Er - good
to see you,'
'And you,' said the centaur, inclining his white-blond head. 'It was foret
old that we would meet again.'
Harry noticed there was the shadow of a hoof-shaped bruise on Firenze's ch
est. As he turned to join the rest of the class on the ground, he saw they wer
e all looking at him in awe, apparently deeply impressed that he was on speaki
ng terms with Firenze. whom they seemed to find intimidating.
When the door was closed and the last student had sat down on a tree stump
beside the wastepaper basket, Firenze gestured around the room.
'Professor Dumbledore has kindly arranged this classroom for us,' said Fir
enze, when everyone had settled down, 'in imitation of my natural habitat. I w
ould have preferred to teach you in the Forbidden Forest, which was - until Mo
nday - my home . . . but that is no longer possible.'
'Please - er - sir - ' said Parvati breathlessly, raising her hand, - why
not? We've been in there with Hagrid, we're not frightened!'
'It is not a question of your bravery,' said Firenze, 'but of my position.
I cannot return to the Forest. My herd has banished me.'
'Herd?' said Lavender in a confused voice, and Harry knew she was thinking
of cows. 'What - oh!'
Comprehension dawned on her face. 'There are more of you?' she said, stunn
ed.
'Did Hagrid breed you, like the Thestrals?' asked Dean eagerly.
Firenze turned his head very slowly to face Dean, who seemed to realise at
once that he had said something very offensive.
'I didn't - I meant - sorry' he finished in a hushed voice.
'Centaurs are not the servants or playthings of humans,' said Firenze quie
tly. There was a pause, then Parvati raised her hand again.
'Please, sir . . . why have the other centaurs banished you?'
'Because I have agreed to work for Professor Dumbledore,' said Firenze. Th
ey see this as a betrayal of our kind.'
Harry remembered how, nearly four years ago, the centaur Bane had shouted
at Firenze for allowing Harry to ride to safety on his back; he had called him
a 'common mule'. He wondered whether it had been Bane who had kicked Firenze
in the chest.
'Let us begin,' said Firenze. He swished his long palomino tail, raised hi
s hand towards the leafy canopy overhead, then lowered it slowly, and as he di
d so, the light in the room dimmed, so that they now seemed to be sitting in a
forest clearing by twilight, and stars appeared on the ceiling. There were oo
hs and gasps and Ron said audibly, 'Blimey!'
'Lie back on the floor, said Firenze in his calm voice, and observe the he
avens. Here is written, for those who can see, the fortune of our races.'
Harry stretched out on his back and gazed upwards at the ceiling. A twinkl
ing red star winked at him from overhead.
'I know that you have learned the names of the planets and their moons in
Astronomy,' said Firenze's calm voice, 'and that you have mapped the stars' pr
ogress through the heavens. Centaurs have unravelled the mysteries of these mo
vements over centuries. Our findings teach us that the future may be glimpsed
in the sky above us - '
'Professor Trelawney did astrology with us!' said Parvati excitedly, raisi
ng her hand in front of her so that it stuck up in the air as she lay on her b
ack. 'Mars causes accidents and burns and things like that, and when it makes
an angle to Saturn, like now - ' she drew a right-angle in the air above her '
- that means people need to be extra careful when handling hot things - '
'That,' said Firenze calmly, 'is human nonsense.'
Parvati's hand fell limply to her side.
Trivial hurts, tiny human accidents,' said Firenze, as his hooves thudded
over the mossy floor. These are of no more significance than the scurryings of
ants to the wide universe, and are unaffected by planetary movements.'
'Professor Trelawney - ' began Parvati, in a hurt and indignant voice.
' - is a human,' said Firenze simply. 'And is therefore blinkered and fett
ered by the limitations of your kind.'
Harry turned his head very slightly to look at Parvati. She looked very of
fended, as did several of the people surrounding her.
'Sybill Trelawney may have Seen, I do not know,' continued Firenze, and Ha
rry heard the swishing of his tail again as he walked up and down before them,
'but she wastes her time, in the main, on the self-flattering nonsense humans
call fortune-telling. I, however, am here to explain the wisdom of centaurs,
which is impersonal and impartial. We watch the skies for the great tides of e
vil or change that are sometimes marked there. It may take ten years to be sur
e of what we are seeing.'
Firenze pointed to the red star directly above Harry.
'In the past decade, the indications have been that wizardkind is living t
hrough nothing more than a brief calm between two wars. Mars, bringer of battl
e, shines brightly above us, suggesting that the fight must soon break out aga
in. How soon, centaurs may attempt to divine by the burning of certain herbs a
nd leaves, by the observation of fume and flame . . .'
It was the most unusual lesson Harry had ever attended. They did indeed bu
rn sage and mallowsweet there on the classroom floor, and Firenze told them to
look for certain shapes and symbols in the pungent fumes, but he seemed perfe
ctly unconcerned that not one of them could see any of the signs he described,
telling them that humans were hardly ever good at this, that it took centaurs
years and years to become competent, and finished by telling them that it was
foolish to put too much faith in such things, anyway, because even centaurs s
ometimes read them wrongly. He was nothing like any human teacher Harry had ev
er had. His priority did not seem to be to teach them what he knew, but rather
to impress upon them that nothing, not even centaurs' knowledge, was foolproo
f.
'He's not very definite on anything, is he?' said Ron in a low voice, as t
hey put out their mallowsweet fire. 'I mean, I could do with a few more detail
s about this war we're about to have, couldn't you?'
The bell rang right outside the classroom door and everyone jumped; Harry
had completely forgotten they were still inside the castle, and quite convince
d that he was really in the Forest. The class filed out, looking slightly perp
lexed.
Harry and Ron were on the point of following them when Firenze called, 'Ha
rry Potter, a word, please.'
Harry turned. The centaur advanced a little towards him. Ron hesitated.
'You may stay,' Firenze told him. 'But close the door, please.'
Ron hastened to obey.
'Harry Potter, you are a friend of Hagrid's, are you not?' said the centau
r.
'Yes,' said Harry.
Then give him a warning from me. His attempt is not working. He would do b
etter to abandon it.'
'His attempt is not working?' Harry repeated blankly.
'And he would do better to abandon it,' said Firenze, nodding. 'I would wa
rn Hagrid myself, but I am banished - it would be unwise for me to go too near
the Forest now - Hagrid has troubles enough, without a centaurs' battle.'
'But - what's Hagrid attempting to do?' said Harry nervously.
Firenze surveyed Harry impassively.
'Hagrid has recently rendered me a great service,' said Firenze, 'and he h
as long since earned my respect for the care he shows all living creatures. I
shall not betray his secret. But he must be brought to his senses. The attempt
is not working. Tell him, Harry Potter. Good-day to you.'
*
The happiness Harry had felt in the aftermath of The Quibbler interview had lo
ng since evaporated. As a dull March blurred into a squally April, his life se
emed to have become one long series of worries and problems again.
Umbridge had continued attending all Care of Magical Creatures lessons, so
it had been very difficult to deliver Firenze's warning to Hagrid. At last, H
arry had managed it by pretending he'd lost his copy of Fantastic Beasts and W
here to Find Them, and doubling back after class one day. When he'd repeated F
irenze's words, Hagrid gazed at him for a moment through his puffy, blackened
eyes, apparently taken aback. Then he seemed to pull himself together.
'Nice bloke, Firenze,' he said gruffly 'but he don' know what he's talkin'
abou' on this. The attemp's comin' on fine.'
'Hagrid, what're you up to?' asked Harry seriously. 'Because you've got to
be careful, Umbridge has already sacked Trelawney and, if you ask me, she's o
n a roll. If you're doing anything you shouldn't be, you'll be - '
There's things more importan' than keepin' a job,' said Hagrid. though his
hands shook slightly as he said this and a basin full of Knarl droppings cras
hed to the floor. 'Don' worry abou' me, Harry, jus' get along now, there's a g
ood lad.'
Harry had no choice but to leave Hagrid mopping up the dung all over his f
loor, but he felt thoroughly dispirited as he trudged back up to the castle.
Meanwhile, as the teachers and Hermione persisted in reminding them, the O
WLs were drawing ever nearer. All the fifth-years were suffering from stress t
o some degree, but Hannah Abbott became the first to receive a Calming Draught
from Madam Pomfrey after she burst into tears during Herbology and sobbed tha
t she was too stupid to take exams and wanted to leave school now.
If it had not been for the DA lessons, Harry thought he would have been ex
tremely unhappy. He sometimes felt he was living for the hours he spent in the
Room of Requirement, working hard but thoroughly enjoying himself at the same
time, swelling with pride as he looked around at his fellow DA members and sa
w how far they had come. Indeed, Harry sometimes wondered how Umbridge was goi
ng to react when all the members of the DA received 'Outstanding' in their Def
ence Against the Dark Arts OWLs.
They had finally started work on Patronuses, which everybody had been very
keen to practise, though, as Harry kept reminding them, producing a Patronus
in the middle of a brightly lit classroom when they were not under threat was
very different from producing it when confronted by something like a Dementor.
'Oh, don't be such a killjoy,' said Cho brightly, watching her silvery swa
n-shaped Patronus soar around the Room of Requirement C-Uring their last lesso
n before Easter. They're so pretty!'
They're not supposed to be pretty, they're supposed to protect you,' said
Harry patiently. 'What we really need is a Boggart or something; that's how I
learned, I had to conjure a Patronus while t'le Boggart was pretending to be a
Dementor - '
'But that would be really scary!' said Lavender, who was shooting puffs of
silver vapour out of the end of her wand. 'And I still - 'can't - do it!' she
added angrily.
Neville was having trouble, Loo. His Face was screwed up in concentration,
but only feeble wisps of silver smoke issued from his wand tip.
'You've got to think of something happy,' Harry reminded him.
'I'm trying,' said Neville miserably, who was trying so hard his round fac
e was actually shining with sweat.
'Harry, I think I'm doing it!' yelled Seamus, who had been brought along t
o his first ever DA meeting by Dean. 'Look - ah - 'it's gone . . . but it was
definitely something hairy, Harry!'
Hermione's Patronus, a shining silver otter, was gambolling around her.
They are sort of nice, aren't they?' she said, looking at it fondly.
The door of the Room of Requirement opened, and closed. Harry looked round
to see who had entered, but there did not seem to be anybody there. It was a
few moments before he realised that the people close to the door had fallen si
lent. Next thing he knew, something was tugging at his robes somewhere near th
e knee. He looked down and saw, to his very great astonishment, Dobby the hous
e-elf peering up at him from beneath his usual eight woolly hats.
'Hi, Dobby!' he said. 'What are you - What's wrong?'
The elf's eyes were wide with terror and he was shaking. The members of th
e DA closest to Harry had fallen silent; everybody in the room was watching Do
bby. The few Patronuses people had managed to conjure faded away into silver m
ist, leaving the room looking much darker than before.
'Harry Potter, sir . . .' squeaked the elf, trembling from head to foot, '
Harry Potter, sir . . . Dobby has come to warn you . . . but the house-elves h
ave been warned not to tell . . .'
He ran head-first at the wall. Harry, who had some experience of Dobby s h
abits of self-punishment, made to seize him, but Dobby merely bounced off the
stone, cushioned by his eight hats. Hermione and a few of the other girls let
out squeaks of fear and sympathy.
'What's happened, Dobby?' Harry asked, grabbing the elf's tiny arm and hol
ding him away from anything with which he might seek to hurt himself.
'Harry Potter . . . she . . . she . . .'
Dobby hit himself hard on the nose with his free fist. Harry seized that,
too.
'Who's "she", Dobby?'
But he thought he knew; surely only one 'she' could induce such fear in Do
bby? The elf looked up at him, slightly cross-eyed, and mouthed wordlessly.
'Umbridge?' asked Harry, horrified.
Dobby nodded, then tried to bang his head on Harry's knees. Harry held him
at arm's length.
'What about her? Dobby - she hasn't found out about this - 'about us - abo
ut the DA?'
He read the answer in the elf's stricken face. His hands held fast by Harr
y, the elf tried to kick himself and fell to the floor.
'Is she coming?' Harry asked quietly.
Dobby let out a howl, and began beating his bare feet hard on the floor.
'Yes, Harry Potter, yes!'
Harry straightened up and looked around at the motionless, terrified peopl
e gazing at the thrashing elf.
'WHAT ARE YOU WAITING FOR?' Harry bellowed. 'RUN!'
They all pelted towards the exit at once, forming a scrum at the door, the
n people burst through. Harry could hear them sprinting along the corridors an
d hoped they had the sense not to try and make it all the way to their dormito
ries. It was only ten to nine; if they just took refuge in the library or the
Owlery, which were both nearer - '
'Harry, come on!' shrieked Hermione from the centre of the knot of people
now fighting to get out.
He scooped up Dobby, who was still attempting to do himself serious injury
, and ran with the elf in his arms to join the back of the queue.
'Dobby - this is an order - get back down to the kitchen with the other el
ves and, if she asks you whether you warned me, lie and say no!' said Harry. '
And I forbid you to hurt yourself!' he added, dropping the elf as he made it o
ver the threshold at last and slammed the door behind him.
Thank you, Harry Potter!' squeaked Dobby, and he streaked off. Harry glanc
ed left and right, the others were all moving so fast he :aught only glimpses
of flying heels at either end of the corridor before they vanished; he started
to run right; there was a boys' bathroom up ahead, he could pretend he'd been
in there all the time if he could just reach it - '
'AAARGH!
Something caught him around the ankles and he fell spectacularly, skidding
along on his front for six feet before coming to a halt. Someone behind him w
as laughing. He rolled over on to his, back and saw Malfoy concealed in a nich
e beneath an ugly dragon-shaped vase.
'Trip Jinx, Potter!' he said. 'Hey, Professor - PROFESSOR! I've got one!'
Umbridge came bustling round the far corner, breathless but wearing a deli
ghted smile.
'It's him!' she said jubilantly at the sight of Harry on the floor, 'Excel
lent, Draco, excellent, oh, very good - fifty points to Slytherin! I'll take h
im from here . . . stand up, Potter!'
Harry got to his feet, glaring at the pair of them. He had never seen Umbr
idge looking so happy. She seized his arm in a vice-like grip and turned, beam
ing broadly, to Malfoy.
'You hop along and see if you can round up any more of them, Draco,' she s
aid. 'Tell the others to look in the library - anybody out of breath - check t
he bathrooms, Miss Parkinson can do the girls' ones - off you go - and you,' s
he added in her softest, mos: dangerous voice, as Malfoy walked away, 'you can
come with me to the Headmaster's office, Potter.'
They were at the stone gargoyle within minutes. Harry wondered how many of
the others had been caught. He thought of Ron - Mrs Weasley would kill him -
and of how Hermione would feel if she was expelled before she could take her O
WLs. And it had been Seamus's very first meeting . . . and Neville had been ge
tting so good . . .
'Fizzing Whizzbee,' sang Umbridge; the stone gargoyle jumped aside, the wa
ll behind split open, and they ascended the moving stone staircase. They reach
ed the polished door with the griffin knocker, but Umbridge did not bother to
knock, she strode straight inside, still holding tight to Harry.
The office was full of people. Dumbledore was sitting behind his desk, his
expression serene, the tips of his long fingers together. Professor McGonagal
l stood rigidly beside him, her face extremely tense. Cornelius Fudge, Ministe
r for Magic, was rocking backwards and forwards on his toes beside the fire, a
pparently immensely pleased with the situation; Kingsley Shacklebolt and a tou
gh-looking wizard with very short wiry hair whom Harry did not recognise, were
positioned either side of the door like guards, and the freckled, bespectacle
d form of Percy Weasley hovered excitedly beside the wall, a quill and a heavy
scroll of parchment in his hands, apparently poised to take notes.
The portraits of old headmasters and headmistresses were not shamming slee
p tonight. All of them were alert and serious, watching what was happening bel
ow them. As Harry entered, a few flitted into neighbouring frames and whispere
d urgently into their neighbour's ear.
Harry pulled himself free of Umbridge's grasp as the door swung shut behin
d them. Cornelius Fudge was glaring at him with a kind of vicious satisfaction
on his face.
'Well,' he said. 'Well, well, well . . .'
Harry replied with the dirtiest look he could muster. His heart drummed ma
dly inside him, but his brain was oddly cool and clear.
'He was heading back to Gryffindor Tower,' said Umbridge. There was an ind
ecent excitement in her voice, the same callous pleasure Harry had heard as sh
e watched Professor Trelawney dissolving with misery in the Entrance Hall. The
Malfoy boy cornered him.'
'Did he, did he?' said Fudge appreciatively. 'I must remember to tell Luci
us. Well, Potter . . . I expect you know why you are here?'
Harry fully intended to respond with a defiant 'yes': his mouth had opened
and the word was half-formed when he caught sight of Dumbledore's face. Dumbl
edore was not looking directly at Harry - his eyes were fixed on a point just
over his shoulder - but as Harry stared at him, he shook his head a fraction o
f an inch to each side.
Harry changed direction mid-word.
'Ye - no.'
'I beg your pardon?' said Fudge.
'No,' said Harry, firmly.
You don t know why you are here?'
'No, I don't,' said Harry.
Fudge looked incredulously from Harry to Professor Umbridge. Harry took ad
vantage of his momentary inattention to steal another quick look at Dumbledore
, who gave the carpet the tiniest of nods and the shadow of a wink.
'So you have no idea,' said Fudge, in a voice positively sagging with sarc
asm, 'why Professor Umbridge has brought you to this office? You are not aware
that you have broken any school rules?'
'School rules?' said Harry. 'No.'
'Or Ministry Decrees?' amended Fudge angrily.
'Not that I'm aware of,' said Harry blandly.
His heart was still hammering very fast. It was almost worth telling these
lies to watch Fudges blood pressure rising, but he could not see how on earth
he would get away with them; if somebody had tipped off Umbridge about the DA
then he, the leader, might as well be packing his trunk right now.
'So, it's news to you, is it,' said Fudge, his voice now thick with anger,
'that an illegal student organisation has been discovered within this school?
'
'Yes, it is,' said Harry, hoisting an unconvincing look of innocent surpri
se on to his face.
'I think, Minister,' said Umbridge silkily from beside him, 'we might make
better progress if I fetch our informant.'
'Yes, yes, do,' said Fudge, nodding, and he glanced maliciously at Dumbled
ore as Umbridge left the room. There's nothing like a good witness, is there,
Dumbledore?'
'Nothing at all, Cornelius,' said Dumbledore gravely, inclining his head.
There was a wait of several minutes, in which nobody looked at each other,
then Harry heard the door open behind him. Umbridge moved past him into the r
oom, gripping by the shoulder Cho's curly-haired friend, Marietta, who was hid
ing her face in her hands.
'Don't be scared, dear, don't be frightened,' said Professor Umbridge soft
ly, patting her on the back, 'it's quite all right, now. You have done the rig
ht thing. The Minister is very pleased with you. He'll be telling your mother
what a good girl you've been.
Marietta's mother, Minister,' she added, looking up at Fudge, 'is Madam Ed
gecombe from the Department of Magical Transportation, Floo Network office - s
he's been helping us police the Hogwarts lins, you know.'
'Jolly good, jolly good!' said Fudge heartily. 'Like mother, like daughter
, eh? Well, come on, now, dear, look up, don't be shy, let's hear what you've
got to - galloping gargoyles!'
As Marietta raised her head, Fudge leapt backwards in shock, nearly landin
g himself in the fire. He cursed, and stamped on the hem of his cloak which ha
d started to smoke. Marietta gave a wail and pulled the neck of her robes righ
t up to her eyes, but not before everyone had seen that her face was horribly
disfigured by a series of close-set purple pustules that had spread across her
nose and cheeks to form the word 'SNEAK'.
'Never mind the spots now, dear,' said Umbridge impatiently, 'just take yo
ur robes away from your mouth and tell the Minister - '
But Marietta gave another muffled wail and shook her head frantically.
'Oh, very well, you silly girl, I'll tell him,' snapped Umbridge. She hitc
hed her sickly smile back on to her face and said, 'Well, Minister, Miss Edgec
ombe here came to my office shortly after dinner this evening and told me she
had something she wanted to tell me. She said that if I proceeded to a secret
room on the seventh floor, sometimes known as the Room of Requirement, I would
find out something to my advantage. I questioned her a little further and she
admitted that there was to be some kind of meeting there. Unfortunately, at t
hat point this hex,' she waved impatiently at Marietta's concealed face, 'came
into operation and upon catching sight of her face in my mirror the girl beca
me too distressed to tell me any more.'
'Well, now,' said Fudge, fixing Marietta with what he evidently imagined w
as a kind and fatherly look, 'it is very brave of you, my dear, coming to tell
Professor Umbridge. You did exactly the right thing. Now, will you tell me wh
at happened at this meeting? What was its purpose? Who was there?'
But Marietta would not speak; she merely shook her head again, her eyes wi
de and fearful.
'Haven't we got a counter-jinx for this?' Fudge asked Umbridge impatiently
, gesturing at Marietta's face. 'So she can speak freely?'
'I have not yet managed to find one,' Umbridge admitted grudgingly, and Ha
rry felt a surge of pride in Hermione's jinxing ability 'But it doesn't matter
if she won't speak, I can take up the story from here.
'You will remember, Minister, that I sent you a report back in October tha
t Potter had met a number of fellow students in the Hog's Head in Hogsmeade -
'
'And what is your evidence for that?' cut in Professor McGonagall
'I have testimony from Willy Widdershins, Minerva, who happened to be in t
he bar at the time. He was heavily bandaged, it is true, but his hearing was q
uite unimpaired,' said Umbridge smugly 'He heard every word Potter said and ha
stened straight to the school to report to me - '
'Oh, so that's why he wasn't prosecuted for setting up all those regurgita
ting toilets!' said Professor McGonagall, raising her eyebrows. 'What an inter
esting insight into our justice system!'
'Blatant corruption!' roared the portrait of the corpulent, red-nosed wiza
rd on the wall behind Dumbledore's desk. The Ministry did not cut deals with p
etty criminals in my day, no sir, they did not!'
Thank you, Fortescue, that will do,' said Dumbledore softly.
The purpose of Potters meeting with these students,' continued Professor U
mbridge, 'was to persuade them to join an illegal society, whose aim was to le
arn spells and curses the Ministry has decided are inappropriate for school-ag
e - '
'I think you'll find you're wrong there, Dolores,' said Dumbledore quietly
, peering at her over the half-moon spectacles perched halfway down his crooke
d nose.
Harry stared at him. He could not see how Dumbledore was going to talk him
out of this one; if Willy Widdershins had indeed heard every word he had said
in the Hog's Head there was simply no escaping it.
'Oho!' said Fudge, bouncing up and down on the balls of his feet again. 'Y
es, do let's hear the latest cock-and-bull story designed to pull Potter out o
f trouble! Go on, then, Dumbledore, go on - '
Willy Widdershins was lying, was he? Or was it Potter's identical twin in
the Hog's Head that day? Or is there the usual simple explanation involving a
reversal of time, a dead man coming back to life and a couple of invisible Dem
entors?'
Percy Weasley let out a hearty laugh.
'Oh, very good, Minister, very good!'
Harry could have kicked him. Then he saw, to his astonishment, that Dumble
dore was smiling gently, too.
'Cornelius, I do not deny - and nor, I am sure, does Harry - 'that he was
in the Hog's Head that day, nor that he was trying to recruit students to a De
fence Against the Dark Arts group. I am merely pointing out that Dolores is qu
ite wrong to suggest that such a group was, at that time, illegal. If you reme
mber, the Ministry Decree banning all student societies was not put into effec
t until two days after Harry's Hogsmeade meeting, so he was not breaking any r
ules at all in the Hog's Head.'
Percy looked as though he had been struck in the face by something very he
avy. Fudge remained motionless in mid-bounce, his mouth hanging open.
Umbridge recovered first.
That's all very fine, Headmaster,' she said, smiling sweetly, 'but we are
now nearly six months on from the introduction of Educational Decree Number Tw
enty-four. If the first meeting was not illegal, all those that have happened
since most certainly are.'
'Well,' said Dumbledore, surveying her with polite interest over the top o
f his interlocked fingers, 'they certainly would be, if they had continued aft
er the Decree came into effect. Do you have any evidence that any such meeting
s continued?'
As Dumbledore spoke, Harry heard a rustle behind him and rather thought Ki
ngsley whispered something. He could have sworn, too, that he felt something b
rush against his side, a gentle something like a draught or bird wings, but lo
oking down he saw nothing there.
'Evidence?' repeated Umbridge, with that horrible wide toad-like smile. 'H
ave you not been listening, Dumbledore? Why do you think Miss Edgecombe is her
e?'
'Oh, can she tell us about six months' worth of meetings?' said Dumbledore
, raising his eyebrows. 'I was under the impression that she was merely report
ing a meeting tonight.'
'Miss Edgecombe,' said Umbridge at once, 'tell us how long these meetings
have been going on, dear. You can simply nod or shake your head, I'm sure that
won't make the spots worse. Have they been happening regularly over the last
six months?'
Harry felt a horrible plummeting in his stomach. This was it, they had hit
a dead end of solid evidence that not even Dumbledore would be able to shift
aside.
'Just nod or shake your head, dear,' Umbridge said coaxingly to Marietta,
'come on, now, that won't re-activate the jinx.'
Everyone in the room was gazing at the top of Marietta's face. Only her ey
es were visible between the pulled-up robes and her curly fringe. Perhaps it w
as a trick of the firelight, but her eyes looked oddly blank. And then - to Ha
rry's utter amazement - 'Marietta shook her head.
Umbridge looked quickly at Fudge, then back at Marietta.
'I don't think you understood the question, did you, dear? I'm asking whet
her you've been going to these meetings for the past six months? You have, hav
en't you?'
Again, Marietta shook her head.
'What do you mean by shaking your head, dear?' said Umbridge in a testy vo
ice.
'I would have thought her meaning was quite clear,' said Professor McGonag
all harshly, 'there have been no secret meetings for the past six months. Is t
hat correct, Miss Edgecombe?'
Marietta nodded.
'But there was a meeting tonight!' said Umbridge furiously. There was a me
eting, Miss Edgecombe, you told me about it, in the Room of Requirement! And P
otter was the leader, was he not, Potter organised it, Potter - why are you sh
aking your head, girl?'
'Well, usually when a person shakes their head,' said McGonagall coldly, '
they mean "no". So unless Miss Edgecombe is using a form of sign-language as y
et unknown to humans - '
Professor Umbridge seized Marietta, pulled her round to face her and began
shaking her very hard. A split second later Dumbledore was on his feet, his w
and raised; Kingsley started forwards and Umbridge leapt back from Marietta, w
aving her hands in the air as though they had been burned.
'I cannot allow you to manhandle my students, Dolores,' said Dumbledore an
d, for the first time, he looked angry.
'You want to calm yourself, Madam Umbridge,' said Kingsley, in his deep, s
low voice. 'You don't want to get yourself into trouble, now.'
'No,' said Umbridge breathlessly, glancing up at the towering figure of Ki
ngsley. 'I mean, yes - you're right, Shacklebolt - I - I forgot myself.'
Marietta was standing exactly where Umbridge had released her. She seemed
neither perturbed by Umbridge's sudden attack, nor relieved by her release; sh
e was still clutching her robe up to her oddly blank eyes and staring straight
ahead of her.
A sudden suspicion, connected to Kingsley's whisper and the thing he had f
elt shoot past him, sprang into Harry's mind.
'Dolores,' said Fudge, with the air of trying to settle something once and
for all, 'the meeting tonight - the one we know definitely happened - '
'Yes,' said Umbridge, pulling herself together, 'yes . . . well, Miss Edge
combe tipped me off and I proceeded at once to the seventh floor, accompanied
by certain trustworthy students, so as to catch those in the meeting red-hande
d. It appears that they were forewarned of my arrival, however, because when w
e reached the seventh floor they were running in every direction. It does not
matter, however. I have all their names here, Miss Parkinson ran into the Room
of Requirement for me to see if they had left anything behind. We needed evid
ence and the room provided.'
And to Harry's horror, she withdrew from her pocket the list of names that
had been pinned upon the Room of Requirement's wall and handed it to Fudge.
The moment I saw Potter's name on the list, I knew what we were dealing wi
th,' she said softly.
'Excellent,' said Fudge, a smile spreading across his face, 'excellent, Do
lores. And . . . by thunder . . .'
He looked up at Dumbledore, who was still standing beside Marietta, his wa
nd held loosely in his hand.
'See what they've named themselves?' said Fudge quietly. 'Dumbledore's Arm
y.'
Dumbledore reached out and took the piece of parchment from Fudge. He gaze
d at the heading scribbled by Hermione months before and for a moment seemed u
nable to speak. Then he looked up, smiling.
'Well, the game is up,' he said simply. 'Would you like a written confessi
on from me, Cornelius - or will a statement before these witnesses suffice?'
Harry saw McGonagall and Kingsley look at each other. There was fear in bo
th faces. He did not understand what was going on, and nor, apparently, did Fu
dge.
'Statement?' said Fudge slowly. 'What - I don't - ?'
'Dumbledore's Army, Cornelius,' said Dumbledore, still smiling as he waved
the list of names before Fudge's face. 'Not Potter's Army. Dumbledore's Army.
'
'But - but - '
Understanding blazed suddenly in Fudge's face. He took a horrified step ba
ckwards, yelped, and jumped out of the fire again.
'You?' he whispered, stamping again on his smouldering cloak.
That's right,' said Dumbledore pleasantly.
'You organised this?'
'I did,' said Dumbledore.
'You recruited these students for - for your army?'
'Tonight was supposed to be the first meeting,' said Dumbledore, nodding.
'Merely to see whether they would be interested in joining me. I see now that
it was a mistake to invite Miss Edgecombe, of course.'
Marietta nodded. Fudge looked from her to Dumbledore, his chest swelling.
Then you have been plotting against me!' he yelled.
That's right,' said Dumbledore cheerfully.
'NO!' shouted Harry.
Kingsley flashed a look of warning at him, McGonagall widened her eyes thr
eateningly, but it had suddenly dawned on Harry what Dumbledore was about to d
o, and he could not let it happen.
'No - Professor Dumbledore - '!'
'Be quiet, Harry, or I am afraid you will have to leave my office,' said D
umbledore calmly.
'Yes, shut up, Potter!' barked Fudge, who was still ogling Dumbledore with
a kind of horrified delight. 'Well, well, well - I came here tonight expectin
g to expel Potter and instead - '
'Instead you get to arrest me,' said Dumbledore, smiling. 'It's like losin
g a Knut and finding a Galleon, isn't it?'
'Weasley!' cried Fudge, now positively quivering with delight, 'Weasley, h
ave you written it all down, everything he's said, his confession, have you go
t it?'
'Yes, sir, I think so, sir!' said Percy eagerly, whose nose was splattered
with ink from the speed of his note-taking.
The bit about how he's been trying to build up an army against the Ministr
y, how he's been working to destabilise me?'
'Yes, sir, I've got it, yes!' said Percy, scanning his notes joyfully.
'Very well, then,' said Fudge, now radiant with glee, 'duplicate your note
s, Weasley, and send a copy to the Daily Prophet at once. If we send a fast ow
l we should make the morning edition!' Percy dashed from the room, slamming th
e door behind him, and Fudge turned back to Dumbledore. 'You will now be escor
ted back to the Ministry, where you will be formally charged, then sent to Azk
aban to await trial!'
'Ah,' said Dumbledore gently, 'yes. Yes, I thought we might hit that littl
e snag.'
'Snag?' said Fudge, his voice still vibrating with joy. 'I see no snag, Du
mbledore!'
Well,' said Dumbledore apologetically, 'I'm afraid I do.'
'Oh, really?'
Well - it's just that you seem to be labouring under the delusion that I a
m going to - what is the phrase? - come quietly. I am afraid I am not going to
come quietly at all, Cornelius. I have absolutely no intention of being sent
to Azkaban. I could break out, of course - but what a waste of time, and frank
ly, I can think of a whole host of things I would rather be doing.'
Umbridge's face was growing steadily redder; she looked as though she was
being filled with boiling water. Fudge stared at Dumbledore with a very silly
expression on his face, as though he had just been stunned by a sudden blow an
d could not quite believe it had happened. He made a small choking noise, then
looked round at Kingsley and the man with short grey hair, who alone of every
one in the room had remained entirely silent so fa;-. The latter gave Fudge a
reassuring nod and moved forwards a little, away from the wall. Harry saw his
hand drift, almost casually, towards his pocket.
'Don't be silly, Dawlish,' said Dumbledore kindly. 'I'm sure you are an ex
cellent Auror - I seem to remember that you achieved "Outstanding" in all your
NEWTs - but if you attempt to - er - 'bring me in by force, I will have to hu
rt you.'
The man called Dawlish blinked rather foolishly. He looked towards Fudge a
gain, but this time seemed to be hoping for a clue as to what to do next.
'So,' sneered Fudge, recovering himself, 'you intend to take on Dawlish, S
hacklebolt, Dolores and myself single-handed, do you, Dumbledore?'
'Merlin's beard, no,' said Dumbledore, smiling, 'not unless you are foolis
h enough to force me to.'
'He will not be single-handed!' said Professor McGonagall loudly, plunging
her hand inside her robes.
'Oh yes he will, Minerva!' said Dumbledore sharply. 'Hogwar.s needs you!'
'Enough of this rubbish!' said Fudge, pulling out his own wand. 'Dawlish!
Shacklebolt! Take him!'
A streak of silver light flashed around the room; there was a bang like a
gunshot and the floor trembled; a hand grabbed the scruff of Harry's neck and
forced him down on the floor as a second silver flash went off; several of the
portraits yelled, Fawkes screeched and a cloud of dust filled the air. Coughi
ng in the dust, Harry saw a dark figure fall to the ground with a crash in fro
nt of him; there was a shriek and a thud and somebody cried, 'No!'; then there
was the sound of breaking glass, frantically scuffling footsteps, a groan . .
. and silence.
Harry struggled around to see who was half-strangling him and saw Professo
r McGonagall crouched beside him; she had forced both him and Marietta out of
harm's way. Dust was still floating gently down through the air on to them. Pa
nting slightly, Harry saw a very tall figure moving towards them.
'Are you all right?' Dumbledore asked.
'Yes!' said Professor McGonagall, getting up and dragging Harry and Mariet
ta with her.
The dust was clearing. The wreckage of the office loomed into view: Dumble
dore's desk had been overturned, all of the spindly tables had been knocked to
the floor, their silver instruments in pieces. Fudge, Umbridge, Kingsley and
Dawlish lay motionless on the floor. Fawkes the phoenix soared in wide circles
above them, singing softly.
'Unfortunately, I had to hex Kingsley too, or it would have looked very su
spicious,' said Dumbledore in a low voice. 'He was remarkably quick on the upt
ake, modifying Miss Edgecombe's memory like that while everyone was looking th
e other way - thank him, for me, won't you, Minerva?
'Now, they will all awake very soon and it will be best if they do not kno
w that we had time to communicate - you must act as though no time has passed,
as though they were merely knocked to the ground, they will not remember - '
'Where will you go, Dumbledore?' whispered Professor McGonagall. 'Grimmaul
d Place?'
'Oh no,' said Dumbledore, with a grim smile, 'I am not leaving to go into
hiding. Fudge will soon wish he'd never dislodged me from Hogwarts, I promise
you.'
'Professor Dumbledore . . .' Harry began.
He did not know what to say first: how sorry he was that he had started th
e DA in the first place and caused all this trouble, or how terrible he felt t
hat Dumbledore was leaving to save him from expulsion? But Dumbledore cut him
off before he could say another word.
'Listen to me, Harry,' he said urgently. 'You must study Occlumency as har
d as you can, do you understand me? Do everything Professor Snape tells you an
d practise it particularly every night before sleeping so that you can close y
our mind to bad dreams - you will understand why soon enough, but you must pro
mise me - '
The man called Dawlish was stirring. Dumbledore seized Harry's wrist.
'Remember - close your mind - '
But as Dumbledore's fingers closed over Harry's skin, a pa n shot through
the scar on his forehead and he felt again that terrible, snakelike longing to
strike Dumbledore, to bite him, to hurt him - '
' - you will understand,' whispered Dumbledore.
Fawkes circled the office and swooped low over him. Dumbledore released Ha
rry, raised his hand and grasped the phoenix's long golden tail. There was a f
lash of fire and the pair of them were gone.
'Where is he?' yelled Fudge, pushing himself up from the floor. 'Where is
he?'
'I don't know!' shouted Kingsley, also leaping to his feet.
'Well, he can't have Disapparated!' cried Umbridge. 'You can't do it from
inside this school - '
The stairs!' cried Dawlish, and he flung himself upon the door, wrenched i
t open and disappeared, followed closely by Kingsley and Umbridge. Fudge hesit
ated, then got slowly to his feet, brushing dust from his front. There was a l
ong and painful silence.
'Well, Minerva,' said Fudge nastily, straightening his torn shirtsleeve, '
I'm afraid this is the end of your friend Dumbledore.'
'You think so, do you?' said Professor McGonagall scornfully.
Fudge seemed not to hear her. He was looking around at the wrecked office.
A few of the portraits hissed at him; one or two even made rude hand gestures
.
'You'd better get those two off to bed,' said Fudge, looking back at Profe
ssor McGonagall with a dismissive nod towards Harry and Marietta.
Professor McGonagall said nothing, but marched Harry and Marietta to the d
oor. As it swung closed behind them, Harry heard Phineas Nigellus's voice.
'You know, Minister, I disagree with Dumbledore on many counts . . . but y
ou cannot deny he's got style . . .'
- CHAPTER TWENTY-EIGHT -
Snapes Worst Memory
BY ORDER OF THE MINISTRY OF MAGIC
Dolores Jane Umbridge (High Inquisitor) has replaced
Albus Dumbledore as Head of Hogwarts School of
Witchcraft and Wizardry.
The above is in accordance with Educational Decree Number Twenty-eight.
Signed: Cornelius Oswald Fudge, Minister for Magic
The notices had gone up all around the school overnight, but they did not expl
ain how every single person within the castle seemed to know that Dumbledore h
ad overcome two Aurors, the High Inquisitor, the Minister for Magic and his Ju
nior Assistant to escape. No matter where Harry went within the castle, the so
le topic of conversation was Dumbledore's flight, and though some of the detai
ls may have gone awry in the retelling (Harry overheard one second-year girl a
ssuring another that Fudge was now lying in St Mungo's with a pumpkin for a he
ad) it was surprising how accurate the rest of their information was. Everybod
y knew, for instance, that Harry and Marietta were the only students to have w
itnessed the scene in Dumbledore's office and, as Marietta was now in the hosp
ital wing, Harry found himself besieged with requests to give a first-hand acc
ount.
'Dumbledore will be back before long,' said Ernie Macmillan confidently on
the way back from Herbology, after listening intently to Harry's story. They
couldn't keep him away in our second year and they won't be able to this time.
The Fat Friar told me - ' he dropped his voice conspiratorially, so that Harr
y, Ron and Hermione had to lean closer to him to hear '- that Umbridge tried t
o get back into his office last night after they'd searched the castle and gro
unds for him. Couldn't get past the gargoyle. The Head's office has sealed its
elf against her.' Ernie smirked. 'Apparently, she had a right little tantrum.'
'Oh, I expect she really fancied herself sitting up there in the Head's of
fice,' said Hermione viciously, as they walked up the stone steps into the Ent
rance Hall. 'Lording it over all the other teachers, the stupid puffed-up, pow
er-crazy old - '
'Now, do you really want to finish that sentence, Granger?'
Draco Malfoy had slid out from behind the door, closely followed by Crabbe
and Goyle. His pale, pointed face was alight w th malice.
'Afraid I'm going to have to dock a few points from Gryffincor and Hufflep
uff,' he drawled.
'It's only teachers who can dock points from houses, Malfoy,' said Ernie a
t once.
'Yeah, we're prefects, too, remember?' snarled Ron.
'I know prefects can't dock points, Weasel King,' sneered Maltby. Crabbe a
nd Goyle sniggered. 'But members of the Inquisitorial Squad - '
'The what?' said Hermione sharply.
'The Inquisitorial Squad, Granger,' said Malfoy, pointing towards a tiny s
ilver 'I' on his robes just beneath his prefect's badge. 'A select group of st
udents who are supportive of the Ministry of Magic, hand-picked by Professor U
mbridge. Anyway, members of the Inquisitorial Squad do have the power to dock
points . . . so, Granger, I'll have five from you for being rude about our new
Headmistress. Macmillan, five for contradicting me. Five because I don't like
you, Potter. Weasley, your shirt's untucked, so I'll have another five for th
at. Oh yeah, I forgot, you're a Mudblood, Granger, so ten off for that.'
Ron pulled out his wand, but Hermione pushed it away, whispering, 'Don't!'
'Wise move, Granger,' breathed Malfoy. 'New Head, new times . . . be good
now, Potty . . . Weasel King . . .'
Laughing heartily, he strode away with Crabbe and Goyle.
'He was bluffing,' said Ernie, looking appalled. 'He can't be allowed to d
ock points . . . that would be ridiculous . . . it would completely undermine
the prefect system.'
But Harry, Ron and Hermione had turned automatically towards the giant hou
r-glasses set in niches along the wall behind them, which recorded the house-p
oints. Gryffindor and Ravenclaw had been neck and neck in the lead that mornin
g. Even as they watched, stones flew upwards, reducing the amounts in the lowe
r bulbs. In fact, the only glass that seemed unchanged was the emerald-filled
one of Slytherin.
'Noticed, have you?' said Fred's voice.
He and George had just come down the marble staircase and joined Harry, Ro
n, Hermione and Ernie in front of the hour-glasses.
'Malfoy just docked us all about fifty points,' said Harry furiously, as t
hey watched several more stones fly upwards from the Gryffindor hour-glass.
'Yeah, Montague tried to do us during break,' said George.
'What do you mean, "tried"?' said Ron quickly.
'He never managed to get all the words out,' said Fred, 'due to the fact t
hat we forced him head-first into that Vanishing Cabinet on the first floor.'
Hermione looked very shocked.
'But you'll get into terrible trouble!'
'Not until Montague reappears, and that could take weeks, I dunno where we
sent him,' said Fred coolly. 'Anyway . . . we've decided we don't care about
getting into trouble any more.'
'Have you ever?' asked Hermione.
'Course we have,' said George. 'Never been expelled, have we?'
'We've always known where to draw the line,' said Fred.
We might have put a toe across it occasionally,' said George.
'But we've always stopped short of causing real mayhem,' said Fred.
'But now?' said Ron tentatively.
'Well, now -' said George.
' - what with Dumbledore gone - ' said Fred.
' - we reckon a bit of mayhem - ' said George.
' - is exactly what our dear new Head deserves,' said Fred.
'You mustn't!' whispered Hermione. 'You really mustn't! She'd love a reaso
n to expel you!'
'You don't get it, Hermione, do you?' said Fred, smiling at her. 'We don't
care about staying any more. We'd walk out right now if we weren't determined
to do our bit for Dumbledore first. So, anyway,' he checked his watch, 'phase
one is about to begin. I'd get in the Great Hall for lunch, if I were you, th
at way the teachers will see you can't have had anything to do with it.'
'Anything to do with what?' said Hermione anxiously.
'You'll see,' said George. 'Run along, now.'
Fred and George turned away and disappeared into the swelling crowd descen
ding the stairs towards lunch. Looking highly disconcerted, Ernie muttered som
ething about unfinished Transfiguration homework and scurried away.
'I think we should get out of here, you know,' said Hermione nervously. 'J
ust in case
'Yeah, all right,' said Ron, and the three of them moved towards the doors
to the Great Hall, but Harry had barely glimpsed the day's ceiling of scuddin
g white clouds when somebody tapped him on the shoulder and, turning, he found
himself almost nose-to-nose with Filch the caretaker. He took several hasty s
teps backwards; Filch was best viewed at a distance.
The Headmistress would like to see you, Potter,' he leered.
'I didn't do it,' said Harry stupidly, thinking of whatever Fred and Georg
e were planning. Filch's jowls wobbled with silent laughter.
'Guilty conscience, eh?' he wheezed. 'Follow me.'
Harry glanced back at Ron and Hermione, who were both looking worried. He
shrugged, and followed Filch back into the Entrance Hall, against the tide of
hungry students.
Filch seemed to be in an extremely good mood; he hummed creakily under his
breath as they climbed the marble staircase. As they reached the first landin
g he said, Things are changing around here, Potter.'
'I've noticed,' said Harry coldly.
'Yerse . . . I've been telling Dumbledore for years and years he's too sof
t with you all,' said Filch, chuckling nastily. 'You filthy little beasts woul
d never have dropped Stink Pellets if you'd known I had it in my power to whip
you raw, would you, now? Nobody would have thought of throwing Fanged Frisbee
s down the corridors if I could've strung you up by the ankles in my office, w
ould they? But when Educational Decree Number Twenty-nine comes in, Potter, I'
ll be allowed to do them things . . . and she's asked the Minister to sign an
order for the expulsion of Peeves . . . oh, things are going to be very differ
ent around here with her in charge
Umbridge had obviously gone to some lengths to get Filch on her side, Harr
y thought, and the worst of it was that he would probably prove an important w
eapon; his knowledge of the school's secret passageways and hiding places was
probably second only to that of the Weasley twins.
'Here we are,' he said, leering down at Harry as he rapped three times on
Professor Umbridge's door and pushed it open. The Potter boy to see you, Ma'am
.'
Umbridge's office, so very familiar to Harry from his many detentions, was
the same as usual except for the large wooden block lying across the front of
her desk on which golden letters spelled the word: HEADMISTRESS. Also, his Fi
rebolt and Fred and George's Cleansweeps, which he saw with a pang, were chain
ed and padlocked to a stout iron peg in the wall behind the desk.
Umbridge was sitting behind the desk, busily scribbling on some of her pin
k parchment, but she looked up and smiled widely at their entrance.
'Thank you, Argus,' she said sweetly.
'Not at all, Ma'am, not at all,' said Filch, bowing as low as his rheumati
sm would permit, and exiting backwards.
'Sit,' said Umbridge curtly, pointing towards a chair. Harry sat. She cont
inued to scribble for a few moments. He watched some of the foul kittens gambo
lling around the plates over her head, wondering what fresh horror she had in
store for him.
'Well, now,' she said finally, setting down her quill and surveying him co
mplacently, like a toad about to swallow a particularly juicy fly. 'What would
you like to drink?'
'What? said Harry, quite sure he had misheard her.
To drink, Mr Potter,' she said, smiling still more widely. Tea? Coffee? Pu
mpkin juice?'
As she named each drink, she gave her short wand a wave, and a cup or glas
s of it appeared on her desk.
'Nothing, thank you,' said Harry.
'I wish you to have a drink with me,' she said, her voice becoming dangero
usly sweet. 'Choose one.'
'Fine . . . tea then,' said Harry shrugging.
She got up and made quite a performance of adding milk w.th her back to hi
m. She then bustled around the desk with it, smiling in a sinisterly sweet fas
hion.
There,' she said, handing it to him. 'Drink it before it gets cold, won't
you? Well, now, Mr Potter . . . I thought we ought to have a little chat, afte
r the distressing events of last night.'
He said nothing. She settled herself back into her seat and waited. When s
everal long moments had passed in silence, she said gaily, 'You're not drinkin
g up!'
He raised the cup to his lips and then, just as suddenly, lowered it. One
of the horrible painted kittens behind Umbridge had great round blue eyes just
like Mad-Eye Moody's magical one and it had just occurred to Harry what Mad-E
ye would say if he ever heard that Harry had drunk anything offered by a known
enemy.
'What's the matter?' said Umbridge, who was still watching him closely. 'D
o you want sugar?'
'No,' said Harry.
He raised the cup to his lips again and pretended to take a sip, though ke
eping his mouth tightly closed. Umbridge's smile widened.
'Good,' she whispered. 'Very good. Now then . . .' She leaned forwards a l
ittle. 'Where is Albus Dumbledore?'
'No idea,' said Harry promptly.
'Drink up, drink up,' she said, still smiling. 'Now, Mr Potter, let us not
play childish games. I know that you know where he has gone. You and Dumbledo
re have been in this together from the beginning. Consider your position, Mr P
otter . . .'
'I don't know where he is,' Harry repeated.
He pretended to drink again. She was watching him very closely.
'Very well,' she said, though she looked displeased. 'In that case, you wi
ll kindly tell me the whereabouts of Sirius Black.'
Harry's stomach turned over and his hand holding the teacup shook so that
it rattled in its saucer. He tilted the cup to his mouth with his lips pressed
together, so that some of the hot liquid trickled down on to his robes.
'I don't know,' he said, a little too quickly.
'Mr Potter,' said Umbridge, 'let me remind you that it was I who almost ca
ught the criminal Black in the Gryffindor fire in October. I know perfectly we
ll it was you he was meeting and if I had had any proof neither of you would b
e at large today, I promise you. I repeat, Mr Potter . . . where is Sirius Bla
ck?'
'No idea,' said Harry loudly. 'Haven't got a clue.'
They stared at each other so long that Harry felt his eyes watering. Then
Umbridge stood up.
'Very well, Potter, I will take your word for it this time, but be warned:
the might of the Ministry stands behind me. All channels of communication in
and out of this school are being monitored. A Floo Network Regulator is keepin
g watch over every fire in Hogwarts - except my own, of course. My Inquisitori
al Squad is opening and reading all owl post entering and leaving the castle.
And Mr Filch is observing all secret passages in and out of the castle. If I f
ind a shred of evidence . . .'
BOOM!
The very floor of the office shook. Umbridge slipped sideways, clutching h
er desk for support, and looking shocked.
'What was - ?'
She was gazing towards the door. Harry took the opportunity to empty his a
lmost-full cup of tea into the nearest vase of dried flowers. He could hear pe
ople running and screaming several floors below.
'Back to lunch you go, Potter!' cried Umbridge, raising her wand and dashi
ng out of the office. Harry gave her a few seconds' start, then hurried after
her to see what the source of all the uproar was.
It was not difficult to find. One floor down, pandemonium reigned. Somebod
y (and Harry had a very shrewd idea who) had set off what seemed to be an enor
mous crate of enchanted fireworks.
Dragons comprised entirely of green and gold sparks were soaring up and do
wn the corridors, emitting loud fiery blasts and bangs as they went; shocking-
pink Catherine wheels five feet in diameter were whizzing lethally through the
air like so many flying saucers; rockets with long tails of brilliant silver
stars were ricocheting off the walls; sparklers were writing swear words in mi
dair of their own accord; firecrackers were exploding like mines everywhere Ha
rry looked, and instead of burning themselves out, fading from sight or fizzli
ng to a halt, these pyrotechnical miracles seemed to be gaining in energy and
momentum the longer he watched.
Filch and Umbridge were standing, apparently transfixed in horror, halfway
down the stairs. As Harry watched, one of the larger Catherine wheels seemed
to decide that what it needed was more room to manoeuvre; it whirled towards U
mbridge and Filch with a sinister 'wheeeeeeeeee'. They both yelled with fright
and ducked, and it soared straight out of the window behind them and off acro
ss the grounds. Meanwhile, several of the dragons and a large purple bat that
was smoking ominously took advantage of the open door at the end of the corrid
or to escape towards the second floor.
'Hurry, Filch, hurry!' shrieked Umbridge, 'they'll be all over the school
unless we do something - Stupefy!'
A jet of red light shot out of the end of her wand and hit one of the rock
ets. Instead of freezing in midair, it exploded with such force that it blaste
d a hole in a painting of a soppy-looking witch in the middle of a meadow; she
ran for it just in time, reappearing seconds later squashed into the next pai
nting, where a couple of wizards playing cards stood up hastily to make room f
or her.
'Don't Stun them, Filch!' shouted Umbridge angrily, for all the world as t
hough it had been his incantation.
'Right you are, Headmistress!' wheezed Filch, who as a Squib could no more
have Stunned the fireworks than swallowed them. He dashed to a nearby cupboar
d, pulled out a broom and began swatting at the fireworks in midair; within se
conds the head of the broom was ablaze.
Harry had seen enough; laughing, he ducked down low, ran to a door he knew
was concealed behind a tapestry a little way along the corridor and slipped t
hrough it to find Fred and George hiding just behind it, listening to Umbridge
and Filch's yells and quaking with suppressed mirth.
'Impressive,' Harry said quietly, grinning. 'Very impressive . . . you'll
put Dr Filibuster out of business, no problem . . .'
'Cheers,' whispered George, wiping tears of laughter from his face. 'Oh, I
hope she tries Vanishing them next . . . they multiply by ten every time you
try.'
The fireworks continued to burn and to spread all over the school that aft
ernoon. Though they caused plenty of disruption, particularly the firecrackers
, the other teachers didn't seem to mind them very much.
'Dear, dear,' said Professor McGonagall sardonically, as one of the dragon
s soared around her classroom, emitting loud bangs and exhaling flame. 'Miss B
rown, would you mind running along to the Headmistress and informing her that
we have an escaped firework in our classroom?'
The upshot of it all was that Professor Umbridge spent her first afternoon
as Headmistress running all over the school answering the summonses of the ot
her teachers, none of whom seemed able to rid their rooms of the fireworks wit
hout her. When the final bell rang and they were heading back to Gryffindor To
wer with their bags, Harry saw, with immense satisfaction, a dishevelled and s
oot-blackened Umbridge tottering sweaty-faced from Professor Flitwick's classr
oom.
Thank you so much, Professor!' said Professor Flitwick in his squeaky litt
le voice. 'I could have got rid of the sparklers myself, of course, but I wasn
't sure whether or not I had the authority.'
Beaming, he closed his classroom door in her snarling face.
Fred and George were heroes that night in the Gryffindor common room. Even
Hermione fought her way through the excited crowd to congratulate them.
They were wonderful fireworks,' she said admiringly.
Thanks,' said George, looking both surprised and pleased. 'Weasleys' Wildf
ire Whiz-bangs. Only thing is, we used our whole stock; we're going to have to
start again from scratch now.'
'It was worth it, though,' said Fred, who was taking orders from clamourin
g Gryffindors. 'If you want to add your name to the waiting list, Hermione, it
's five Galleons for your Basic Blaze box and twenty for the Deflagration Delu
xe . . .'
Hermione returned to the table where Harry and Ron were sitting staring at
their schoolbags as though hoping their homework would spring out and start d
oing itself.
'Oh, why don't we have a night off?' said Hermione brightly, as a silver-t
ailed Weasley rocket zoomed past the window. 'After all, the Easter holidays s
tart on Friday, we'll have plenty of time then.'
'Are you feeling all right?' Ron asked, staring at her in disbelief.
'Now you mention it,' said Hermione happily, 'd'you know . . . I think I'm
feeling a bit . . . rebellious.'
Harry could still hear the distant bangs of escaped firecrackers when he a
nd Ron went up to bed an hour later; and as he got undressed a sparkler floate
d past the tower, still resolutely spelling out the word 'POO'.
He got into bed, yawning. With his glasses off, the occasional firework pa
ssing the window had become blurred, looking like sparkling clouds, beautiful
and mysterious against the black sky. He turned on to his side, wondering how
Umbridge was feeling about her first day in Dumbledore's job, and how Fudge wo
uld react when he heard that the school had spent most of the day in a state o
f advanced disruption. Smiling to himself, Harry closed his eyes . . .
The whizzes and bangs of escaped fireworks in the grounds seemed to be gro
wing more distant . . . or perhaps he was simply speeding away from them . . .
He had fallen right into the corridor leading to the Department of Mysteri
es. He was speeding towards the plain black door . . . let it open . . . let i
t open . . .
It did. He was inside the circular room lined with doors . . . he crossed
it, placed his hand on an identical door and it swung inwards . . .
Now he was in a long, rectangular room full of an odd mechanical clicking.
There were dancing flecks of light on the walls but he did not pause to inves
tigate . . . he had to go on . . .
There was a door at the far end . . . it, too, opened at his touch . . .
And now he was in a dimly lit room as high and wide as a church, full of n
othing but rows and rows of towering shelves, each laden with small, dusty, sp
un-glass spheres . . . now Harry's heart was beating fast with excitement . .
. he knew where to go . . . he ran forwards, but his footsteps made no noise i
n the enormous, deserted room . . .
There was something in this room he wanted very, very much . . .
Something he wanted . . . or somebody else wanted . . .
His scar was hurting . . .
BANG!
Harry awoke instantly, confused and angry. The dark dormitory was full of
the sound of laughter.
'Cool!' said Seamus, who was silhouetted against the window. 'I think one
of those Catherine wheels hit a rocket and it's like they mated, come and see!
'
Harry heard Ron and Dean scramble out of bed for a better look. He lay qui
te still and silent while the pain in his scar subsided and disappointment was
hed over him. He felt as though a wonderful treat had been snatched from him a
t the very last moment . . . he had got so close that time.
Glittering pink and silver winged piglets were now soaring past the window
s of Gryffindor Tower. Harry lay and listened to the appreciative whoops of Gr
yffindors in the dormitories below them. His stomach gave a sickening jolt as
he remembered that he had Occlumency the following evening.
*
Harry spent the whole of the next day dreading what Snape was going to say if
he found out how much further into the Department of Mysteries Harry had penet
rated during his last dream. With a surge of guilt he realised that he had not
practised Occlumency once since their last lesson: there had been too much go
ing on since Dumbledore had left; he was sure he would not have been able to e
mpty his mind even if he had tried. He doubted, however, whether Snape would a
ccept that excuse.
He attempted a little last-minute practice during classes that day, but it
was no good. Hermione kept asking him what was wrong whenever he fell silent
trying to rid himself of all thought and emotion and, after all, the best mome
nt to empty his brain was not while teachers were firing revision questions at
the class.
Resigned to the worst, he set off for Snape's office after dinner. Halfway
across the Entrance Hall, however, Cho came hurrying up to him.
'Over here,' said Harry, glad of a reason to postpone his meeting with Sna
pe, and beckoning her across to the corner of the Entrance Hall where the gian
t hour-glasses stood. Gryffindor's was now almost empty. 'Are you OK? Umbridge
hasn't been asking you about the DA, has she?'
'Oh, no,' said Cho hurriedly. 'No, it was only . . . well, I just wanted t
o say . . . Harry, I never dreamed Marietta would tell . .'
'Yeah, well,' said Harry moodily. He did feel Cho might have chosen her fr
iends a bit more carefully; it was small consolation that the last he had hear
d, Marietta was still up in the hospital wing and Madam Pomfrey had not been a
ble to make the slightest improvement to her pimples.
'She's a lovely person really,' said Cho. 'She just made a mistake -
Harry looked at her incredulously.
'A lovely person who made a mistake? She sold us all out, including you!'
'Well . . . we all got away, didn't we?' said Cho pleadingly. 'You know, h
er mum works for the Ministry, it's really difficult for her - '
'Ron's dad works for the Ministry too!' Harry said furiously. 'And in case
you hadn't noticed, he hasn't got sneak written across his face - '
That was a really horrible trick of Hermione Granger's,' said Cho fiercely
. 'She should have told us she'd jinxed that list - '
'I think it was a brilliant idea,' said Harry coldly. Cho flushed and her
eyes grew brighter.
'Oh yes, I forgot - of course, if it was darling Hermione's idea - '
'Don't start crying again,' said Harry warningly.
'I wasn't going to!' she shouted.
'Yeah . . . well . . . good,' he said. 'I've got enough to cope with at th
e moment.'
'Go and cope with it then!' Cho said furiously, turning on her heel and st
alking off.
Fuming, Harry descended the stairs to Snape's dungeon and, though he knew
from experience how much easier it would be for Snape to penetrate his mind if
he arrived angry and resentful, he succeeded in nothing but thinking of a few
more things he should have said to Cho about Marietta before reaching the dun
geon door.
'You're late, Potter,' said Snape coldly, as Harry closed the door behind
him.
Snape was standing with his back to Harry, removing, as usual, certain of
his thoughts and placing them carefully in Dumbledore's Pensieve. He dropped t
he last silvery strand into the stone basin and turned to face Harry.
'So,' he said. 'Have you been practising?'
'Yes,' Harry lied, looking carefully at one of the legs of Snape's desk.
'Well, we'll soon find out, won't we?' said Snape smoothly. 'Wand out, Pot
ter.'
Harry moved into his usual position, facing Snape with the desk between th
em. His heart was pumping last with anger at Cho and anxiety about how much Sn
ape was about to extract from his mind.
'On the count of three then,' said Snape lazily. 'One - two - '
Snape's office door banged open and Draco Malfoy sped in.
'Professor Snape, sir - oh - sorry - '
Malfoy was looking at Snape and Harry in some surprise.
'It's all right, Draco,' said Snape, lowering his wand. 'Potter is here fo
r a little remedial Potions.'
Harry had not seen Malfoy look so gleeful since Umbridge had turned up to
inspect Hagrid.
'I didn't know,' he said, leering at Harry, who knew his face was burning.
He would have given a great deal to be able to shout the truth at Malfoy - or
, even better, to hit him with a good curse.
'Well, Draco, what is it?' asked Snape.
'It's Professor Umbridge, sir - she needs your help,' said Malfoy.
They've found Montague, sir, he's turned up jammed inside a toilet on the
fourth floor.'
'How did he get in there?' demanded Snape.
'I don't know, sir, he's a bit confused.'
'Very well, very well. Potter,' said Snape, 'we shall resume this lesson t
omorrow evening.'
He turned and swept from his office. Malfoy mouthed, 'Remedial Potions?' a
t Harry behind Snape's back before following him.
Seething, Harry replaced his wand inside his robes and made to leave the r
oom. At least he had twenty-four more hours in which to practise; he knew he o
ught to feel grateful for the narrow escape, though it was hard that it came a
t the expense of Malfoy telling the whole school that he needed remedial Potio
ns.
He was at the office door when he saw it: a patch of shivering light danci
ng on the doorframe. He stopped, and stood looking at it, reminded of somethin
g . . . then he remembered: it was a little like the lights he had seen in his
dream last night, the lights n the second room he had walked through on his j
ourney through the Department of Mysteries.
He turned around. The light was coming from the Pensieve sitting on Snape'
s desk. The silver-white contents were ebbing and swirling within. Snape's tho
ughts . . . things he did not want Harry to see if he broke through Snape's de
fences accidentally . . .
Harry gazed at the Pensieve, curiosity welling inside him . . . what was i
t that Snape was so keen to hide from Harry?
The silvery lights shivered on the wall . . . Harry took two steps towards
the desk, thinking hard. Could it possibly be information about the Departmen
t of Mysteries that Snape was determined to keep from him?
Harry looked over his shoulder, his heart now pumping harder and faster th
an ever. How long would it take Snape to release Montague from the toilet? Wou
ld he come straight back to his office afterwards, or accompany Montague to th
e hospital wing? Surely the latter . . . Montague was Captain of the Slytherin
Quidditch team, Snape would want to make sure he was all right.
Harry walked the remaining few feet to the Pensieve and stood over it, gaz
ing into its depths. He hesitated, listening, then pulled out his wand again.
The office and the corridor beyond were completely silent. He gave the content
s of the Pensieve a small prod with the end of his wand.
The silvery stuff within began to swirl very fast. Harry leaned forwards o
ver it and saw that it had become transparent. He was, once again, looking dow
n into a room as though through a circular window in the ceiling . . . in fact
, unless he was much mistaken, he was looking down into the Great Hall.
His breath was actually fogging the surface of Snape's thoughts . . . his
brain seemed to be in limbo . . . it would be insane to do the thing he was so
strongly tempted to do . . . he was trembling . . . Snape could be back at an
y moment . . . but Harry thought of Cho's anger, of Malfoy's jeering face, and
a reckless daring seized him.
He took a great gulp of breath, and plunged his face into the surface of S
nape's thoughts. At once, the floor of the office lurched, tipping Harry head-
first into the Pensieve . . .
He was falling through cold blackness, spinning furiously as he went, and
then - '
He was standing in the middle of the Great Hall, but the four house tables
were gone. Instead, there were more than a hundred smaller tables, all facing
the same way, at each of which sat a student, head bent low, scribbling on a
roll of parchment. The only sound was the scratching of quills and the occasio
nal rustle as somebody adjusted their parchment. It was clearly exam time.
Sunshine was streaming through the high windows on to the bent heads, whic
h shone chestnut and copper and gold in the bright light. Harry looked around
carefully. Snape had to be here somewhere . . . this was his memory . . .
And there he was, at a table right behind Harry. Harry stared. Snape-the-t
eenager had a stringy, pallid look about him, like a plant kept in the dark. H
is hair was lank and greasy and was flopping on to the table, his hooked nose
barely half an inch from the surface of the parchment as he scribbled. Harry m
oved around behind Snape and read the heading of the examination paper: DEFENC
E AGAINST THE DARK ARTS - ORDINARY WIZARDING LEVEL.
So Snape had to be fifteen or sixteen, around Harry's own age. His hand wa
s flying across the parchment; he had written at least a foot more than his cl
osest neighbours, and yet his writing was minuscule and cramped.
'Five more minutes!'
The voice made Harry jump. Turning, he saw the top of Professor Flitwick's
head moving between the desks a short distance away. Professor Flitwick was w
alking past a boy with untidy black hair . . . very untidy black hair . . .
Harry moved so quickly that, had he been solid, he would have knocked desk
s flying. Instead he seemed to slide, dreamlike, across two aisles and up a th
ird. The back of the black-haired boy's head drew nearer and . . . he was stra
ightening up now, putting down his quill, pulling his roll of parchment toward
s him so as to reread what he had written . . .
Harry stopped in front of the desk and gazed down at his fifteen-year-old
father.
Excitement exploded in the pit of his stomach: it was as though he was loo
king at himself but with deliberate mistakes. James's eyes were hazel, his nos
e was slightly longer than Harry's and there was no scar on his forehead, but
they had the same thin face, same mouth, same eyebrows; James's hair stuck up
at the back exactly as Harry's did, his hands could have been Harry's and Harr
y could tell that, when James stood up, they would be within an inch of each o
ther in height.
James yawned hugely and rumpled up his hair, making it even messier than i
t had been. Then, with a glance towards Professor Flitwick, he turned in his s
eat and grinned at a boy sitting four seats behind him.
With another shock of excitement, Harry saw Sirius give James the thumbs-u
p. Sirius was lounging in his chair at his ease, tilting it back on two legs.
He was very good-looking; his dark hair fell into his eyes with a sort of casu
al elegance neither James's nor Harry's could ever have achieved, and a girl s
itting behind him was eyeing him hopefully, though he didn't seem to have noti
ced. And two seats along from this girl - Harry's stomach gave another pleasur
able squirm - was Remus Lupin. He looked rather pale and peaky (was the full m
oon approaching?) and was absorbed in the exam: as he reread his answers, he s
cratched his chin with the end of his quill, frowning slightly.
So that meant Wormtail had to be around here somewhere, too . . . and sure
enough, Harry spotted him within seconds: a small, mousy-haired boy with a po
inted nose. Wormtail looked anxious; he was chewing his fingernails, staring d
own at his paper, scuffing the ground with his toes. Every now and then he gla
nced hopefully at his neighbour's paper. Harry stared at Wormtail for a moment
, then back at James, who was now doodling on a bit of scrap parchment. He had
drawn a Snitch and was now tracing the letters 'L.E.'. What did they stand fo
r?
'Quills down, please!' squeaked Professor Flitwick. That means you too, St
ebbins! Please remain seated while I collect your parchment! Accio!'
Over a hundred rolls of parchment zoomed into the air and into Professor F
litwick's outstretched arms, knocking him backwards off his feet. Several peop
le laughed. A couple of students at the front desks got up, took hold of Profe
ssor Flitwick beneath the elbows and lifted him back on to his feet.
'Thank you . . . thank you,' panted Professor Flitwick. 'Very well, everyb
ody, you're free to go!'
Harry looked down at his father, who had hastily crossed out the 'L.E.' he
had been embellishing, jumped to his feet, stuffed his quill and the exam pap
er into his bag, which he slung over his back, and stood waiting for Sirius to
join him.
Harry looked around and glimpsed Snape a short way away, moving between th
e tables towards the doors to the Entrance Hall, still absorbed in his own exa
m paper. Round-shouldered yet angular, he walked in a twitchy manner that reca
lled a spider, and his oily hair was jumping about his face.
A gang of chattering girls separated Snape from James, Sirius and Lupin, a
nd by planting himself in their midst, Harry managed to keep Snape in sight wh
ile straining his ears to catch the voices of James and his friends.
'Did you like question ten, Moony?' asked Sirius as they emerged into the
Entrance Hall.
Loved it, said Lupin briskly. 'Give five signs that identify the werewolf.
Excellent question.'
'D'you think you managed to get all the signs?' said James in tones of moc
k concern.
'Think I did,' said Lupin seriously, as they joined the crowd thronging ar
ound the front doors eager to get out into the sunlit grounds. 'One: he's sitt
ing on my chair. Two: he's wearing my clothes. Three: his name's Remus Lupin.'
Wormtail was the only one who didn't laugh.
'I got the snout shape, the pupils of the eyes and the tufted tail,' he sa
id anxiously, 'but I couldn't think what else - '
'How thick are you, Wormtail?' said James impatiently. 'You run round with
a werewolf once a month - '
'Keep your voice down,' implored Lupin.
Harry looked anxiously behind him again. Snape remained close by, still bu
ried in his exam questions - but this was Snape's memory and Harry was sure th
at if Snape chose to wander off in a different direction once outside in the g
rounds, he, Harry, would not be able to follow James any further. To his inten
se relief, however, when James and his three friends strode off down the lawn
towards the lake, Snape followed, still poring over the exam paper and apparen
tly with no fixed idea of where he was going. By keeping a little ahead of him
, Harry managed to maintain a close watch on James and the others.
'Well, I thought that paper was a piece of cake,' he heard Sir us say. 'I'
ll be surprised if I don't get "Outstanding" on it at least.'
'Me too,' said James. He put his hand in his pocket and took out a struggl
ing Golden Snitch.
'Where'd you get that?'
'Nicked it,' said James casually. He started playing with the Snitch, allo
wing it to fly as much as a foot away before seizing it again; his reflexes we
re excellent. Wormtail watched him in awe.
They stopped in the shade of the very same beech tree on the edge of the l
ake where Harry, Ron and Hermione had once spent a Sunday finishing their home
work, and threw themselves down on the grass. Harry looked over his shoulder y
et again and saw, to his delight, that Snape had settled himself on the grass
in the dense shadow of a clump of bushes. He was as deeply immersed in the OWL
paper as ever, which left Harry free to sit down on the grass between the bee
ch and the bushes and watch the foursome under the tree. The sunlight was dazz
ling on the smooth surface of the lake, on the bank of which the group of laug
hing girls who had just left the Great Hall were sitting, with their shoes and
socks off, cooling their feet in the water.
Lupin had pulled out a book and was reading. Sirius stared around at the s
tudents milling over the grass, looking rather haughty and bored, but very han
dsomely so. James was still playing with the Snitch, letting it zoom further a
nd further away, almost escaping but always grabbed at the last second. Wormta
il was watching him with his mouth open. Every time James made a particularly
difficult catch, Wormtail gasped and applauded. After five minutes of this, Ha
rry wondered why James didn't tell Wormtail to get a grip on himself, but Jame
s seemed to be enjoying the attention. Harry noticed that his father had a hab
it of rumpling up his hair as though to keep it from getting Loo tidy, and he
also kept looking over at the girls by the waters edge.
'Put that away, will you,' said Sirius finally, as James made a fine catch
and Wormtail let out a cheer, 'before Wormtail wets himself with excitement.'
Wormtail turned slightly pink, but James grinned.
'If it bothers you,' he said, stuffing the Snitch back in his pocket. Harr
y had the distinct impression that Sirius was the only one for whom James woul
d have stopped showing off.
'I'm bored,' said Sirius. 'Wish it was full moon.'
'You might,' said Lupin darkly from behind his book. We've still got Trans
figuration, if you're bored you could test me. Here . . .' and he held out his
book.
But Sirius snorted. 'I don't need to look at that rubbish, I know it all.'
'This'll liven you up, Padfoot,' said James quietly. 'Look who it is Siriu
s's head turned. He became very still, like a dog that has scented a rabbit.
'Excellent,' he said softly. 'Snivellus.'
Harry turned to see what Sirius was looking at.
Snape was on his feet again, and was stowing the OWL paper in his bag. As
he left the shadows of the bushes and set off across the grass, Sirius and Jam
es stood up.
Lupin and Wormtail remained sitting: Lupin was still staring down at his b
ook, though his eyes were not moving and a faint frown line had appeared betwe
en his eyebrows; Wormtail was looking from Sirius and James to Snape with a lo
ok of avid anticipation on his face.
'All right, Snivellus?' said James loudly.
Snape reacted so fast it was as though he had been expecting an attack: dr
opping his bag, he plunged his hand inside his robes and his wand was halfway
into the air when James shouted, 'Expelliarmus!'
Snape's wand flew twelve feet into the air and fell with a little thud in
the grass behind him. Sirius let out a bark of laughter.
'Impedimenta!' he said, pointing his wand at Snape, who was knocked off hi
s feet halfway through a dive towards his own fallen wand.
Students all around had turned to watch. Some of them had got to their fee
t and were edging nearer. Some looked apprehensive, others entertained.
Snape lay panting on the ground. James and Sirius advanced on him, wands r
aised, James glancing over his shoulder at the girls at the water's edge as he
went. Wormtail was on his feet now, watching hungrily, edging around Lupin to
get a clearer view.
'How'd the exam go, Snivelly?' said James.
'I was watching him, his nose was touching the parchment,' said Sirius vic
iously. There'll be great grease marks all over it, they won't be able to read
a word.'
Several people watching laughed; Snape was clearly unpopular. Wormtail sni
ggered shrilly. Snape was trying to get up, but the jinx was still operating o
n him; he was struggling, as though bound by invisible ropes.
'You - wait,' he panted, staring up at James with an expression of purest
loathing, 'you - wait!'
'Wait for what?' said Sirius coolly. 'What're you going to do, Snivelly, w
ipe your nose on us?'
Snape let out a stream of mixed swear words and hexes, but with his wand t
en feet away nothing happened.
'Wash out your mouth,' said James coldly. 'Scourgify!'
Pink soap bubbles streamed from Snape's mouth at once; the froth was cover
ing his lips, making him gag, choking him - '
'Leave him ALONE!'
James and Sirius looked round. James's free hand immediately jumped to his
hair.
It was one of the girls from the lake edge. She had thick, dark red hair t
hat fell to her shoulders, and startlingly green almond-shaped eyes - Harry's
eyes.
Harry's mother.
'All right, Evans?' said James, and the tone of his voice was suddenly ple
asant, deeper, more mature.
'Leave him alone,' Lily repeated. She was looking at James with every sign
of great dislike. 'What's he done to you?'
'Well,' said James, appearing to deliberate the point, 'it's more the fact
that he exists, if you know what I mean . . .'
Many of the surrounding students laughed, Sirius and Wormtail included, bu
t Lupin, still apparently intent on his book, didn't, and nor did Lily.
'You think you're funny,' she said coldly. 'But you're just an arrogant, b
ullying toerag, Potter. Leave him alone.'
'I will if you go out with me, Evans,' said James quickly. 'Go on . . . go
out with me and I'll never lay a wand on old Snivelly again.'
Behind him, the Impediment Jinx was wearing off. Snape was beginning to in
ch towards his fallen wand, spitting out soapsuds as he crawled.
'I wouldn't go out with you if it was a choice between you and the giant s
quid,' said Lily.
'Bad luck, Prongs,' said Sirius briskly, and turned back to Snape. 'OI!'
But too late; Snape had directed his wand straight at James; there was a f
lash of light and a gash appeared on the side of James's face, spattering his
robes with blood. James whirled about: a second flash of light later, Snape wa
s hanging upside-down in the air, his robes falling over his head to reveal sk
inny, pallid legs and a pair of greying underpants.
Many people in the small crowd cheered; Sirius, James and Wormtail roared
with laughter.
Lily, whose furious expression had twitched for an instant as though she w
as going to smile, said, 'Let him down!'
'Certainly,' said James and he jerked his wand upwards; Snape fell into a
crumpled heap on the ground. Disentangling himself from his robes he got quick
ly to his feet, wand up, but Sirius said, 'Petrificus Totalus!' and Snape keel
ed over again, rigid as a board.
'LEAVE HIM ALONE!' Lily shouted. She had her own wand out now. James and S
irius eyed it warily.
'Ah, Evans, don't make me hex you,' said James earnestly.
Take the curse off him, then!'
James sighed deeply, then turned to Snape and muttered the counter-curse.
There you go,' he said, as Snape struggled to his feet. 'You're lucky Evan
s was here, Snivellus - '
'I don't need help from filthy little Mudbloods like her!'
Lily blinked.
'Fine,' she said coolly. 'I won't bother in future. And I'd wash your pant
s if I were you, Snivellus.'
'Apologise to Evans!' James roared at Snape, his wand pointed threateningl
y at him.
'I don't want you to make him apologise,' Lily shouted, rounding on James.
'You're as bad as he is.'
'What?' yelped James. 'Id NEVER call you a - you-know-what!'
'Messing up your hair because you think it looks cool to look like you've
just got off your broomstick, showing off with that stupid Snitch, walking dow
n corridors and hexing anyone who annoys you just because you can - I'm surpri
sed your broomstick can get off the ground with that fat head on it. You make
me SICK.'
She turned on her heel and hurried away.
'Evans!' James shouted after her. 'Hey, EVANS!'
But she didn't look back.
'What is it with her?' said James, trying and failing to look as though th
is was a throwaway question of no real importance to him.
'Reading between the lines, I'd say she thinks you're a bit conceited, mat
e,' said Sirius.
'Right,' said James, who looked furious now, 'right - '
There was another flash of light, and Snape was once again hanging upside-
down in the air.
'Who wants to see me take off Snivelly's pants?'
But whether James really did take off Snape's pants, Harry never found out
. A hand had closed tight over his upper arm, closed with a pincer-like grip.
Wincing, Harry looked round to see who had hold of him, and saw, with a thrill
of horror, a fully grown, adult-sized Snape standing right beside him, white
with rage.
'Having fun?'
Harry felt himself rising into the air; the summer's day evaporated around
him; he was floating upwards through icy blackness, Snape's hand still tight
upon his upper arm. Then, with a swooping feeling as though he had turned head
-over-heels in midair, his feet hit the stone floor of Snape's dungeon and he
was standing again beside the Pensieve on Snape's desk in the shadowy, present
-day Potion master's study.
'So,' said Snape, gripping Harry's arm so tightly Harry's hand was startin
g to feel numb. 'So . . . been enjoying yourself, Potter?'
'N-no,' said Harry, trying to free his arm.
It was scary: Snape's lips were shaking, his face was white, his teeth wer
e bared.
'Amusing man, your father, wasn't he?' said Snape, shaking Harry so hard h
is glasses slipped down his nose.
'I - didn't - '
Snape threw Harry from him with all his might. Harry fell hard on to the d
ungeon floor.
'You will not repeat what you saw to anybody!' Snape bellowed.
'No,' said Harry, getting to his feet as far from Snape as he could. 'No,
of course I w-
'Get out, get out, I don't want to see you in this office ever again!'
And as Harry hurtled towards the door, a jar of dead cockroaches exploded
over his head. He wrenched the door open and Hew along the corridor, stopping
only when he had put three floors between himself and Snape. There he leaned a
gainst the wall, panting, and rubbing his bruised arm.
He had no desire at all to return to Gryffindor Tower so early, nor to tel
l Ron and Hermione what he had just seen. What was making Harry feel so horrif
ied and unhappy was not being shouted at or having jars thrown at him; it was
that he knew how it felt to be humiliated in the middle of a circle of onlooke
rs, knew exactly how Snape had felt as his father had taunted him, and that ju
dging from what he had just seen, his father had been every bit as arrogant as
Snape had always told him.
- CHAPTER TWENTY-NINE -
Careers Advice
'But why haven't you got Occlumency lessons any more?' said Hermione, frowning
.
'I've told you,' Harry muttered. 'Snape reckons I can carry on by myself n
ow I've got the basics.'
'So you've stopped having funny dreams?' said Hermione sceptically.
'Pretty much,' said Harry, not looking at her.
'Well, I don't think Snape should stop until you're absolutely sure you ca
n control them!' said Hermione indignantly. 'Harry, I think you should go back
to him and ask - '
'No,' said Harry forcefully. 'Just drop it, Hermione, OK?'
It was the first day of the Easter holidays and Hermione, as was her custo
m, had spent a large part of the day drawing up revision timetables for the th
ree of them. Harry and Ron had let her do it; ii. was easier than arguing with
her and, in any case, they might come in useful.
Ron had been startled to discover there were only six weeks left until the
ir exams.
'How can that come as a shock?' Hermione demanded, as she tapped each litt
le square on Ron's timetable with her wand so that il flashed a different colo
ur according to its subject.
'I dunno,' said Ron, 'there's been a lot going on.'
'Well, there you are,' she said, handing him his timetable, 'if you follow
that you should do fine.'
Ron looked down it gloomily, but then brightened.
'You've given me an evening off every week!'
'That's for Quidditch practice,' said Hermione.
The smile faded from Ron's face.
'What's the point?' he said dully. 'We've got about as much chance of winn
ing the Quidditch Cup this year as Dad's got of becoming Minister for Magic.'
Hermione said nothing; she was looking at Harry, who was staring blankly a
t the opposite wall of the common room while Crookshanks pawed at his hand, tr
ying to get his ears scratched.
'What's wrong, Harry?'
'What?' he said quickly. 'Nothing.'
He seized his copy of Defensive Magical Theory and pretended to be looking
something up in the index. Crookshanks gave him up as a bad job and slunk awa
y under Hermione's chair.
'I saw Cho earlier,' said Hermione tentatively. 'She looked really miserab
le, too . . . have you two had a row again?'
'Wha- oh, yeah, we have,' said Harry, seizing gratefully on the excuse.
'What about?'
That sneak friend of hers, Marietta,' said Harry.
'Yeah, well, I don't blame you!' said Ron angrily, setting down his revisi
on timetable. 'If it hadn't been for her . . .'
Ron went into a rant about Marietta Edgecombe, which Harry found helpful;
all he had to do was look angry, nod and say 'Yeah' and That's right' whenever
Ron drew breath, leaving his mind free to dwell, ever more miserably, on what
he had seen in the Pensieve.
He felt as though the memory of it was eating him from inside. He had been
so sure his parents were wonderful people that he had never had the slightest
difficulty in disbelieving the aspersions Snape cast on his father's characte
r. Hadn't people like Hagrid and Sirius told Harry how wonderful his father ha
d been? (Yeah, well, look what Sirius was like himself, said a nagging voice i
nside Harry's head . . . he was as bad, wasn't he?) Yes, he had once overheard
Professor McGonagall saying that his father and Sirius had been troublemakers
at school, but she had described them as forerunners of the Weasley twins, an
d Harry could not imagine Fred and George dangling someone upside-down for the
fun of it . . . not unless they really loathed them . . . perhaps Malfoy or s
omebody who really deserved it .
Harry tried to make a case for Snape having deserved what he had suffered
at James's hands: but hadn't Lily asked, 'What's he done to you?' And hadn't J
ames replied, 'It's more the fact that he exists, if you know what I mean.' Ha
dn't James started it all simply because Sirius had said he was bored? Harry r
emembered Lupin saying back in Grimmauld Place that Dumbledore had made him pr
efect in the hope that he would be able to exercise some control over James an
d Sirius . . . but in the Pensieve, he had sat there and let it all happen . .
.
Harry kept reminding himself that Lily had intervened; his mother had been
decent. Yet, the memory of the look on her face as she had shouted at James d
isturbed him quite as much as anything else; she had clearly loathed James, an
d Harry simply could not understand how they could have ended up married. Once
or twice he even wondered whether James had forced her into it . . .
For nearly five years the thought of his father had been a source of comfo
rt, of inspiration. Whenever someone had told him he was like James, he had gl
owed with pride inside. And now . . . now he felt cold and miserable at the th
ought of him.
The weather grew breezier, brighter and warmer as the Easter holidays pass
ed, but Harry, along with the rest of the fifth- and seventh-years, was trappe
d inside, revising, traipsing back and forth to the library. Harry pretended h
is bad mood had no other cause but the approaching exams, and as his fellow Gr
yffindors were sick of studying themselves, his excuse went unchallenged.
'Harry, I'm talking to you, can you hear me?'
'Huh?'
He looked round. Ginny Weasley, looking very windswept, had joined him at
the library table where he had been sitting alone. It was late on Sunday eveni
ng: Hermione had gone back to Gryffindor Tower to revise Ancient Runes, and Ro
n had Quidditch practice.
'Oh, hi,' said Harry, pulling his books towards him. 'How come you're not
at practice?'
'It's over,' said Ginny. 'Ron had to take Jack Sloper up to the hospital w
ing.'
'Why?'
'Well, we're not sure, but we think he knocked himself out with
his own bat.' She sighed heavily. 'Anyway . . . a package just arrived, it
's only just got through Umbridge's new screening process.'
She hoisted a box wrapped in brown paper on to the table; it had clearly b
een unwrapped and carelessly re-wrapped. There was a scribbled note across it
in red ink, reading: Inspected and Passed by the Hogwarts High Inquisitor.
'It's Easter eggs from Mum,' said Ginny. There's one for you . . . there y
ou go.'
She handed him a handsome chocolate egg decorated with small, iced Snitche
s and, according to the packaging, containing a bag of Fizzing Whizzbees. Harr
y looked at it for a moment, then, to his horror, felt a lump rise in his thro
at.
'Are you OK, Harry?' Ginny asked quietly.
'Yeah, I'm fine,' said Harry gruffly. The lump in his throat was painful.
He did not understand why an Easter egg should have made him feel like this.
'You seem really down lately,' Ginny persisted. 'You know, I'm sure if you
just talked to Cho . . .'
'It's not Cho I want to talk to,' said Harry brusquely.
'Who is it, then?' asked Ginny, watching him closely.
'I . . .'
He glanced around to make quite sure nobody was listening. Madam Pince was
several shelves away, stamping out a pile cf books for a frantic-looking Hann
ah Abbott.
'I wish I could talk to Sirius,' he muttered. 'But I know I can't.'
Ginny continued to watch him thoughtfully. More to give himself something
to do than because he really wanted any, Harry unwrapped his Easter egg, broke
off a large bit and put it into his mouth.
'Well,' said Ginny slowly, helping herself to a bit of egg, too, 'if you r
eally want to talk to Sirius, I expect we could think of a way to do it.'
'Come on,' said Harry dully. 'With Umbridge policing the fires and reading
all our mail?'
The thing about growing up with Fred and George,' said Ginny thoughtfully,
'is that you sort of start thinking anything's possible if you've got enough
nerve.'
Harry looked at her. Perhaps it was the effect of the chocolate - '- Lupin
had always advised eating some after encounters with Dementors - or simply be
cause he had finally spoken aloud the wish that had been burning inside him fo
r a week, but he felt a bit more hopeful.
'WHAT DO YOU THINK YOU ARE DOING?'
'Oh damn,' whispered Ginny, jumping to her feet. 'I forgot - '
Madam Pince was swooping down on them, her shrivelled face contorted with
rage.
'Chocolate in the library!' she screamed. 'Out - out - OUT!' And whipping
out her wand, she caused Harry's books, bag and ink bottle to chase him and Gi
nny from the library, whacking them repeatedly over the head as they ran.
*
As though to underline the importance of their upcoming examinations, a batch
of pamphlets, leaflets and notices concerning various wizarding careers appear
ed on the tables in Gryffindor Tower shortly before the end of the holidays, a
long with yet another notice on the board, which read:
CAREERS ADVICE
All fifth-years are required to attend a short meeting with their
Head of House during the first week of the summer term to discuss
their future careers. Times of individual appointments are listed below.
Harry looked down the list and found that he was expected in Professor McGonag
all's office at half past two on Monday, which would mean missing most of Divi
nation. He and the other fifth-years spent a considerable part of the final we
ekend of the Easter break reading all the careers information that had been le
ft there for their perusal.
'Well, I don't fancy Healing,' said Ron on the last evening of the holiday
s. He was immersed in a leaflet that carried the crossed bone-and-wand emblem
of St Mungo's on its front. 'It says here you need at least "E" at NEWT level
in Potions, Herbology, Transfiguration, Charms and Defence Against the Dark Ar
ts. I mean . . . blimey . . . don't want much, do they?'
'Well, it's a very responsible job, isn't it?' said Hermione absently.
She was poring over a bright pink and orange leaflet, that was headed, 'SO
YOU THINK YOU'D LIKE TO WORK IN MUGGLE RELATIONS?' 'You don't seem to need ma
ny qualifications to liaise with Muggles; all they want is an OWL in Muggle St
udies: Much more important is your enthusiasm, patience and a good sense of fu
n!'
'You'd need more than a good sense of fun to liaise with my uncle,' said H
arry darkly. 'Good sense of when to duck, more like.' He was halfway through a
pamphlet on wizard banking. 'Listen to this: Are you seeking a challenging ca
reer involving travel, adventure and substantial, danger-related treasure bonu
ses? Then consider a position with Gringotts Wizarding Bank, who are currently
recruiting Curse-Breakers for thrilling opportunities abroad . . . They want
Arithmancy, though; you could do it, Hermione!'
'I don't much fancy banking,' said Hermione vaguely, now immersed in: 'HAV
E YOU GOT WHAT IT TAKES TO TRAIN SECURITY TROLLS?'
'Hey,' said a voice in Harry's ear. He looked round; Fred and George had c
ome to join them. 'Ginny's had a word with us about you,' said Fred, stretchin
g out his legs on the table in front of them and causing several booklets on c
areers with the Ministry of Magic to slide off on to the floor. 'She says you
need to talk to Sirius?'
'What?' said Hermione sharply, freezing with her hand halfway towards pick
ing up 'MAKE A BANG AT THE DEPARTMENT OF MAGICAL ACCIDENTS AND CATASTROPHES'.
'Yeah . . .' said Harry, trying to sound casual, 'yeah, I thought I'd like
- '
'Don't be so ridiculous,' said Hermione, straightening up and looking at h
im as though she could not believe her eyes. 'With Umbridge groping around in
the fires and frisking all the owls?'
'Well, we think we can find a way around that,' said George, stretching an
d smiling. 'It's a simple matter of causing a diversion. Now, you might have n
oticed that we have been rather quiet on the mayhem front during the Easter ho
lidays?'
'What was the point, we asked ourselves, of disrupting leisure time?' cont
inued Fred. 'No point at all, we answered ourselves. And of course, we'd have
messed up people's revision, too, which would be the very last thing we'd want
to do.'
He gave Hermione a sanctimonious little nod. She looked rather taken aback
by this thoughtfulness.
'But it's business as usual from tomorrow,' Fred continued briskly. 'And i
f we're going to be causing a bit of uproar, why not do it so that Harry can h
ave his chat with Sirius?'
'Yes, but still,' said Hermione, with an air of explaining something very
simple to somebody very obtuse, 'even if you do cause a diversion, how is Harr
y supposed to talk to him?'
'Umbridge's office,' said Harry quietly.
He had been thinking about it for a fortnight and could come up with no al
ternative. Umbridge herself had told him that the only fire that was not being
watched was her own.
'Are - you - insane?' said Hermione in a hushed voice.
Ron had lowered his leaflet on jobs in the Cultivated Fungus Trade and was
watching the conversation warily.
'I don't think so,' said Harry, shrugging.
'And how are you going to get in there in the first place?'
Harry was ready for this question.
'Sirius's knife,' he said.
'Excuse me?'
'Christmas before last Sirius gave me a knife that'll open any lock,' said
Harry. 'So even if she's bewitched the door so Alahomora won't work, which I
bet she has - '
'What do you think about this?' Hermione demanded of Ron, and Harry was re
minded irresistibly of Mrs Weasley appealing to her husband during Harry's fir
st dinner in Grimmauld Place.
'I dunno,' said Ron, looking alarmed at being asked to give an opinion. 'I
f Harry wants to do it, it's up to him, isn't it?'
'Spoken like a true friend and Weasley,' said Fred, clapping Ron hard on t
he back. 'Right, then. We're thinking of doing it tomorrow, just after lessons
, because it should cause maximum impact ii everybody's in the corridors - Har
ry, we'll set it off in the east wing somewhere, draw her right away from her
own office - I reckon we should be able to guarantee you, what, twenty minutes
?' he said, looking at George.
'Easy,' said George.
'What sort of diversion is it?' asked Ron.
'You'll see, little bro', said Fred, as he and George got up again. 'At le
ast, you will if you trot along to Gregory the Smarmy's corridor round about f
ive o'clock tomorrow.'
*
Harry awoke very early the next day, feeling almost as anxious as he had done
on the morning of his disciplinary hearing at the Ministry of Magic. It was no
t only the prospect of breaking into Umbridge's office and using her fire to s
peak to Sirius that was making him feel nervous, though that was certainly bad
enough; today also happened to be the first time Harry would be in close prox
imity to Snape since Snape had thrown him out of his office.
After lying in bed for a while thinking about the day ahead, Harry got up
very quietly and moved across to the window beside Neville's bed, and stared o
ut on a truly glorious morning. The sky was a clear, misty, opalescent blue. D
irectly ahead of him, Harry could see the towering beech tree below which his
father had once tormented Snape. He was not sure what Sirius could possibly sa
y to him that would make up for what he had seen in the Pensieve, but he was d
esperate to hear Sirius's own account of what had happened, to know of any mit
igating factors there might have been, any excuse at all for his fathers behav
iour . . .
Something caught Harry's attention: movement on the edge of the Forbidden
Forest. Harry squinted into the sun and saw Hagrid emerging from between the t
rees. He seemed to be limping. As Harry watched, Hagrid staggered to the door
of his cabin and disappeared inside it. Harry watched the cabin for several mi
nutes. Hagrid did not emerge again, but smoke furled from the chimney, so Hagr
id could not be so badly injured that he was unequal tc stoking the fire.
Harry turned away from the window, headed back to his trunk and started to
dress.
With the prospect of forcing entry into Umbridge's office ahead. Harry had
never expected the day to be a restful one, but he had not reckoned on Hermio
ne's almost continual attempts to dissuade him from what he was planning to do
at five o'clock. For the first time ever, she was at least as inattentive to
Professor Binns in
History of Magic as Harry and Ron were, keeping up a stream of whispered a
dmonitions that Harry tried very hard to ignore.
'. . . and if she does catch you there, apart from being expelled, she'll
be able to guess you've been talking to Snuffles and this time I expect she'll
force you to drink Veritaserum and answer her questions . . .'
'Hermione,' said Ron in a low and indignant voice, 'are you going to stop
telling Harry off and listen to Binns, or am I going to have to take my own no
tes?'
'You take notes for a change, it won't kill you!'
By the time they reached the dungeons, neither Harry nor Ron was speaking
to Hermione. Undeterred, she took advantage of their silence to maintain an un
interrupted flow oi dire warnings, all uttered under her breath in a vehement
hiss that caused Seamus to waste five whole minutes checking his cauldron for
leaks.
Snape, meanwhile, seemed to have decided to act as though Harry were invis
ible. Harry was, of course, well-used to this tactic, as it was one of Uncle V
ernons favourites, and on the whole was grateful he had to suffer nothing wors
e. In fact, compared to what he usually had to endure from Snape in the way of
taunts and snide remarks, he found the new approach something of an improveme
nt, and was pleased to find that when left well alone, he was able to concoct
an Invigoration Draught quite easily. At the end of the lesson he scooped some
of the potion into a flask, corked it and took it up to Snape's desk for mark
ing, feeling that he might at last have scraped an 'E'.
He had just turned away when he heard a smashing noise. Malfoy gave a glee
ful yell of laughter. Harry whipped around. His potion sample lay in pieces on
the floor and Snape was surveying him with a look of gloating pleasure.
'Whoops,' he said softly. 'Another zero, then, Potter.'
Harry was too incensed to speak. He strode back to his cauldron, intending
to fill another flask and force Snape to mark it, but saw to his horror that
the rest of the contents had vanished.
'I'm sorry!' said Hermione, with her hands over her mouth. I'm really sorr
y, Harry. I thought you'd finished, so I cleared up!'
Harry could not bring himself to answer. When the bell rang, he hurried ou
t of the dungeon without a backwards glance, and made sure that he found himse
lf a seat between Neville and Seamus for lunch so that Hermione could not star
t nagging him again about using Umbridge's office.
He was in such a bad mood by the time he got to Divination that he had qui
te forgotten his careers appointment with Professor McGonagall, remembering it
only when Ron asked him why he wasn't in her office. He hurtled back upstairs
and arrived out of breath, only a few minutes late.
'Sorry, Professor,' he panted, as he closed the door. 'I forgot.'
'No matter, Potter,' she said briskly, but as she spoke, somebody else sni
ffed from the corner. Harry looked round.
Professor Umbridge was sitting there, a clipboard on her knee, a fussy lit
tle pie-frill around her neck and a small, horribly smug smile on her face.
'Sit down, Potter,' said Professor McGonagall tersely. Her hands shook sli
ghtly as she shuffled the many pamphlets littering her desk.
Harry sat down with his back to Umbridge and did his best to pretend he co
uld not hear the scratching of her quill on her clipboard.
'Well, Potter, this meeting is to talk over any career ideas you might hav
e, and to help you decide which subjects you should continue into the sixth an
d seventh years,' said Professor McGonagall. 'Have you had any thoughts about
what you would like to do after you leave Hogwarts?'
'Er - ' said Harry.
He was finding the scratching noise from behind him very distracting.
'Yes?' Professor McGonagall prompted Harry.
'Well, I thought of, maybe, being an Auror,' Harry mumbled.
'You'd need top grades for that,' said Professor McGonagall, extracting a
small, dark leaflet from under the mass on her desk and opening it. They ask f
or a minimum of five NEWTs, and nothing under "Exceeds Expectations" grade, I
see. Then you would be required to undergo a stringent series of character and
aptitude tests at the Auror office. It's a difficult career path, Potter, the
y only take the best. In fact, I don't think anybody has been taken on in the
last three years.'
At this moment, Professor Umbridge gave a very tiny cough, as though she w
as trying to see how quietly she could do it. Professor McGonagall ignored her
.
'You'll want to know which subjects you ought to take, I suppose?' she wen
t on, talking a little louder than before.
'Yes,' said Harry. 'Defence Against the Dark Arts, I suppose?'
'Naturally,' said Professor McGonagall crisply. 'I would also advise -'
Professor Umbridge gave another cough, a little more audible this time. Pr
ofessor McGonagall closed her eyes for a moment, opened them again, and contin
ued as though nothing had happened.
'I would also advise Transfiguration, because Aurors frequently need to Tr
ansfigure or Untransfigure in their work. And I ought to tell you now, Potter,
that I do not accept students into my NEWT classes unless they have achieved
"Exceeds Expectations" or higher at Ordinary Wizarding Level. I'd say you're a
veraging "Acceptable" at the moment, so you'll need to put in some good hard w
ork before the exams to stand a chance of continuing. Then you ought to do Cha
rms, always useful, and Potions. Yes, Potter, Potions,' she added, with the me
rest flicker of a smile. 'Poisons and antidotes are essential study for Aurors
. And I must tell you that Professor Snape absolutely refuses to take students
who get anything other than "Outstanding" in their OWLs, so - '
Professor Umbridge gave her most pronounced cough yet.
'May I offer you a cough drop, Dolores?' Professor McGonagall asked curtly
, without looking at Professor Umbridge.
'Oh, no, thank you very much,' said Umbridge, with that simpering laugh Ha
rry hated so much. 'I just wondered whether I could make the teensiest interru
ption, Minerva?'
'I daresay you'll find you can,' said Professor McGonagall through tightly
gritted teeth.
'I was just wondering whether Mr Potter has quite the temperament for an A
uror?' said Professor Umbridge sweetly.
'Were you?' said Professor McGonagall haughtily. 'Well, Potter,' she conti
nued, as though there had been no interruption, if you are serious in this amb
ition, I would advise you to concentrate hard on bringing your Transfiguration
and Potions up to scratch. I see Professor Flitwick has graded you between "A
cceptable" and "Exceeds Expectations" for the last two years, so your Charmwor
k seems satisfactory. As for Defence Against the Dark Arts, your marks have be
en generally high, Professor Lupin in particular thought you - are you quite s
ure you wouldn't like a cough drop, Dolores?'
'Oh, no need, thank you, Minerva,' simpered Professor Umbridge, who had ju
st coughed her loudest yet. 'I was just concerned that you might not have Harr
y's most recent Defence Against the Dark Arts marks in front of you. I'm quite
sure I slipped in a note.'
'What, this thing?' said Professor McGonagall in a tone of revulsion, as s
he pulled a sheet of pink parchment from between the leaves of Harry's folder.
She glanced down it, her eyebrows slightly raised, then placed it back into t
he folder without comment.
'Yes, as I was saying, Potter, Professor Lupin thought you showed a pronou
nced aptitude for the subject, and obviously for an Auror - '
'Did you not understand my note, Minerva?' asked Professor Umbndge in hone
yed tones, quite forgetting to cough.
'Of course I understood it,' said Professor McGonagall, her teeth clenched
so tightly the words came out a little muffled.
'Well, then, I am confused . . . I'm afraid I don't quite understand how y
ou can give Mr Potter false hope that - '
'False hope?' repeated Professor McGonagall, still refusing to look round
at Professor Umbridge. 'He has achieved high marks in all his Defence Against
the Dark Arts tests - '
'I'm terribly sorry to have to contradict you, Minerva, but as you will se
e from my note, Harry has been achieving very poor results in his classes with
me - '
'I should have made my meaning plainer,' said Professor McGonagall, turnin
g at last to look Umbridge directly in the eyes. 'He has achieved high marks i
n all Defence Against the Dark Arts tests set by a competent teacher.'
Professor Umbridge's smile vanished as suddenly as a light bulb blowing. S
he sat back in her chair, turned a sheet on her clipboard and began scribbling
very fast indeed, her bulging eyes rolling from side to side. Professor McGon
agall turned back to Harry, her thin nostrils flared, her eyes burning.
'Any questions, Potter?'
'Yes,' said Harry. 'What sort of character and aptitude tests do the Minis
try do on you, if you get enough NEWTs?'
'Well, you'll need to demonstrate the ability to react well to pressure an
d so forth,' said Professor McGonagall, 'perseverance and dedication, because
Auror training takes a further three years, not to mention very high skills in
practical Defence. It will mean a lot more study even after you've left schoo
l, so unless you're prepared to - '
'I think you'll also find,' said Umbridge, her voice very cold now, 'that
the Ministry looks into the records of those applying to be Aurors. Their crim
inal records.'
'- unless you're prepared to take even more exams after Hogwarts, you shou
ld really look at another - '
'Which means that this boy has as much chance of becoming an Auror as Dumb
ledore has of ever returning to this school.'
'A very good chance, then,' said Professor McGonagall.
'Potter has a criminal record,' said Umbridge loudly.
'Potter has been cleared of all charges,' said McGonagall, even more loudl
y.
Professor Umbridge stood up. She was so short that this did not make a gre
at deal of difference, but her fussy, simpering demeanour had given place to a
hard fury that made her broad, flabby face look oddly sinister.
'Potter has no chance whatsoever of becoming an Auror!'
Professor McGonagall got to her feet, too, and in her case this was a much
more impressive move: she towered over Professor Umbridge.
'Potter,' she said in ringing tones, 'I will assist you to become an Auror
if it is the last thing I do! If I have to coach you nightly, I will make sur
e you achieve the required results!'
The Minister for Magic will never employ Harry Potter!' said Umbridge, her
voice rising furiously.
There may well be a new Minister for Magic by the time Potter is ready to
join!' shouted Professor McGonagall.
'Aha! shrieked Professor Umbridge, pointing a stubby linger at McGonagall.
'Yes! Yes, yes, yes! Of course! That's what you want, isn't it, Minerva McGon
agall? You want Cornelius Fudge replaced by Albus Dumbledore! You think you'll
be where I am, don't you: Senior Undersecretary to the Minister and Headmistr
ess to boot!'
'You are raving,' said Professor McGonagall, superbly disdainful. Totter,
that concludes our careers consultation.'
Harry swung his bag over his shoulder and hurried out of the room, not dar
ing to look at Professor Umbridge. He could hear her and Professor McGonagall
continuing to shout at each other all the way back along the corridor.
Professor Umbridge was still breathing as though she had just run a race w
hen she strode into their Defence Against the Dark Arts lesson that afternoon.
'I hope you've thought better of what you were planning to do, Harry,' Her
mione whispered, the moment they had opened their books to 'Chapter Thirty-fou
r, Non-Retaliation and Negotiation'. 'Umbridge looks like she's in a really ba
d mood already . . .'
Every now and then Umbridge shot glowering looks at Harry, who kept his he
ad down, staring at Defensive Magical Theory, his eyes unfocused, thinking . .
.
He could just imagine Professor McGonagall's reaction if he was caught tre
spassing in Professor Umbridge's office mere hours after she had vouched for h
im . . . there was nothing to stop him simply going back to Gryffindor Tower a
nd hoping that some time during the next summer holidays he would have a chanc
e to ask Sirius about the scene he had witnessed in the Pensieve . . . nothing
, except that the thought of taking this sensible course of action made him fe
el as though a lead weight had dropped into his stomach . . . and then there w
as the matter of Fred and George, whose diversion was already planned, not to
mention the knife Sirius had given him, which was currently residing in his sc
hoolbag along with his father's old Invisibility Cloak.
But the fact remained that if he was caught . . .
'Dumbledore sacrificed himself to keep you in school, Harry!' whispered He
rmione, raising her book to hide her face from
Umbridge. 'And if you get thrown out today it will all have been for nothi
ng!'
He could abandon the plan and simply learn to live with the memory of what
his father had done on a summer's day more than twenty years ago . . .
And then he remembered Sirius in the fire upstairs in the Gryffindor commo
n room . . .
You're less like your father than I thought . . . the risk would've been w
hat made it fun for James . . .
But did he want to be like his father any more?
'Harry, don't do it, please don't do it!' Hermione said in anguished tones
as the bell rang at the end of the class.
He did not answer; he did not know what to do.
Ron seemed determined to give neither his opinion nor his advice; he would
not look at Harry, though when Hermione opened her mouth to try dissuading Ha
rry some more, he said in a low voice, 'Give it a rest, OK? He can make up his
own mind.'
Harry's heart beat very fast as he left the classroom. He was halfway alon
g the corridor outside when he heard the unmistakeable sounds of a diversion g
oing off in the distance. There were screams and yells reverberating from some
where above them; people exiting the classrooms all around Harry were stopping
in their tracks and looking up at the ceiling fearfully - '
Umbridge came pelting out of her classroom as fast as her short legs would
carry her. Pulling out her wand, she hurried off in the opposite direction: i
t was now or never.
'Harry - please!' Hermione pleaded weakly.
But he had made up his mind; hitching his bag more securely on to his shou
lder, he set off at a run, weaving in and out of students now hurrying in the
opposite direction to see what all the fuss was about in the east wing.
Harry reached the corridor to Umbridge's office and found it deserted. Das
hing behind a large suit of armour whose helmet creaked around to watch him, h
e pulled open his bag, seized Sirius's knife and donned the Invisibility Cloak
. He then crept slowly and carefully back out from behind the suit of armour a
nd along the corridor until he reached Umbridge's door.
He inserted the blade of the magical knife into the crack around it and mo
ved it gently up and down, then withdrew it. There was a tiny click, and the d
oor swung open. He ducked inside the office, closed the door quickly behind hi
m and looked around.
Nothing was moving except the horrible kittens that were still frolicking
on the wall plates above the confiscated broomsticks.
Harry pulled off his Cloak and, striding over to the fireplace, found what
he was looking for within seconds: a small box containing glittering Floo pow
der.
He crouched down in front of the empty grate, his hands shaking. He had ne
ver done this before, though he thought he knew how it must work. Sticking his
head into the fireplace, he took a large pinch of powder and dropped it on to
the logs stacked neatly beneath him. They exploded at once into emerald green
flames.
'Number twelve, Grimmauld Place!' Harry said loudly and clearly
It was one of the most curious sensations he had ever experienced. He had
travelled by Floo powder before, of course, but then it had been his entire bo
dy that had spun around and around ir. the flames through the network of wizar
ding fireplaces that stretchec over the country. This time, his knees remained
firm upon the cole floor of Umbridge's office, and only his head hurtled thro
ugh the emerald fire . . .
And then, as abruptly as it had begun, the spinning stopped. Feeling rathe
r sick and as though he were wearing an exceptionally hot muffler around his h
ead, Harry opened his eyes to find that he was looking up out of the kitchen f
ireplace at the long, wooden table, where a man sat poring over a piece of par
chment.
'Sirius?'
The man jumped and looked around. It was not Sirius, bu. Lupin.
'Harry!' he said, looking thoroughly shocked. 'What are you - 'what's happ
ened, is everything all right?'
'Yeah,' said Harry. 'I just wondered - I mean, I just fancied a - 'a chat
with Sirius.'
'I'll call him,' said Lupin, getting to his feet, still looking perplexed,
'he went upstairs to look for Kreacher, he seems to be hiding in the attic ag
ain . . .'
And Harry saw Lupin hurry out of the kitchen. Now he was left with nothing
to look at but the chair and table legs. He wondered why Sirius had never men
tioned how very uncomfortable it was to speak out of the fire; his knees were
already objecting painfully to their prolonged contact with Umbridge's hard st
one floor.
Lupin returned with Sirius at his heels moments later.
'What is it?' said Sirius urgently, sweeping his long dark hair out of his
eyes and dropping to the ground in front of the fire, so that he and Harry we
re on a level. Lupin knelt down too, looking very concerned. 'Are you all righ
t? Do you need help?'
'No,' said Harry, 'it's nothing like that . . . I just wanted to talk . .
. about my dad.'
They exchanged a look of great surprise, but Harry did not have time to fe
el awkward or embarrassed; his knees were becoming sorer by the second and he
guessed five minutes had already passed from the start of the diversion; Georg
e had only guaranteed him twenty. He therefore plunged immediately into the st
ory of what he had seen in the Pensieve.
When he had finished, neither Sirius nor Lupin spoke for a moment. Then Lu
pin said quietly, 'I wouldn't like you to judge your father on what you saw th
ere, Harry. He was only fifteen - '
'I'm fifteen' said Harry heatedly.
'Look, Harry' said Sirius placatingly, 'James and Snape hated each other f
rom the moment they set eyes on each other, it was just one of those things, y
ou can understand that, can't you? I think James was everything Snape wanted t
o be - he was popular, he was good at Quidditch - good at pretty much everythi
ng. And Snape was just this little oddball who was up to his eyes in the Dark
Arts, and James - whatever else he may have appeared to you, Harry - always ha
ted the Dark Arts.'
'Yeah,' said Harry, 'but he just attacked Snape for no good reason, just b
ecause - well, just because you said you were bored,' he finished, with a slig
htly apologetic note in his voice.
'I'm not proud of it,' said Sirius quickly.
Lupin looked sideways at Sirius, then said, 'Look, Harry, what you've got
to understand is that your father and Sirius were the best in the school at wh
atever they did - everyone thought they were the height of cool - if they some
times got a bit carried away - '
'If we were sometimes arrogant little berks, you mean,' said Sirius.
Lupin smiled.
'He kept messing up his hair,' said Harry in a pained voice.
Sirius and Lupin laughed.
'I'd forgotten he used to do that,' said Sirius affectionately.
'Was he playing with the Snitch?' said Lupin eagerly.
'Yeah,' said Harry, watching uncomprehendingly as Sirius and Lupin beamed
reminiscently. 'Well . . . I thought he was a bit of an idiot.'
'Of course he was a bit of an idiot!' said Sirius bracingly, 'we were all
idiots! Well - not Moony so much,' he said fairly, looking at Lupin.
But Lupin shook his head. 'Did I ever tell you to lay off Snape?' he said.
'Did I ever have the guts to tell you I thought you were out of order?'
'Yeah, well,' said Sirius, 'you made us feel ashamed of ourselves sometime
s . . . that was something . . .'
'And,' said Harry doggedly, determined to say everything that was on his m
ind now he was here, 'he kept looking over at the girls by the lake, hoping th
ey were watching him!'
'Oh, well, he always made a fool of himself whenever Lily was around,' sai
d Sirius, shrugging, 'he couldn't stop himself showing off whenever he got nea
r her.'
'How come she married him?' Harry asked miserably. 'She hated him!'
'Nah, she didn't,' said Sirius.
'She started going out with him in seventh year,' said Lupin.
'Once James had deflated his head a bit,' said Sirius.
'And stopped hexing people just for the fun of it,' said Lupin.
'Even Snape?' said Harry.
'Well,' said Lupin slowly, 'Snape was a special case. I mean, he never los
t an opportunity to curse James so you couldn't really expect James to take th
at lying down, could you?'
'And my mum was OK with that?'
'She didn't know too much about it, to tell you the truth,' said Sirius. '
I mean, James didn't take Snape on dates with her and jinx him in front of her
, did he?'
Sirius frowned at Harry, who was still looking unconvinced.
'Look,' he said, 'your father was the best friend I ever had and he was a
good person. A lot of people are idiots at the age of fifteen. He grew out of
it.'
'Yeah, OK,' said Harry heavily. 'I just never thought I'd feel sorry for S
nape.'
'Now you mention it,' said Lupin, a faint crease between his eyebrows, 'ho
w did Snape react when he found you'd seen all this?'
'He told me he'd never teach me Occlumency again,' said Harry indifferentl
y, 'like that's a big disappoint-
'He WHAT?' shouted Sirius, causing Harry to jump and inhale a mouthful of
ashes.
'Are you serious, Harry?' said Lupin quickly. 'He's stopped giving you les
sons?'
'Yeah,' said Harry, surprised at what he considered a great over-reaction.
'But it's OK, I don't care, it's a bit of a relief to tell you the - '
'I'm coming up there to have a word with Snape!' said Sirius forcefully, a
nd he actually made to stand up, but Lupin wrenched him back down again.
'If anyone's going to tell Snape it will be me!' he said firmly. 'But Harr
y, first of all, you're to go back to Snape and tell him that on no account is
he to stop giving you lessons - when Dumbledore hears - '
'I can't tell him that, he'd kill me!' said Harry, outraged. 'You didn't s
ee him when we got out of the Pensieve.'
'Harry there is nothing so important as you learning Occlumency!' said Lup
in sternly. 'Do you understand me? Nothing!'
'OK, OK,' said Harry, thoroughly discomposed, not to mention annoyed. 'I'l
l . . . I'll try and say something to him . . . but it won't be - '
He fell silent. He could hear distant footsteps.
'Is that Kreacher coming downstairs?'
'No,' said Sirius, glancing behind him. 'It must be somebody your end.'
Harry's heart skipped several beats.
'I'd better go!' he said hastily and pulled his head backwards out of the
Grimmauld Place fire. For a moment his head seemed to be revolving on his shou
lders, then he found himself kneeling in front of Umbridge's fire with it firm
ly back on and watching the emerald flames flicker and die.
'Quickly, quickly!' he heard a wheezy voice mutter right outside the offic
e door. 'Ah, she's left it open - '
Harry dived for the Invisibility Cloak and had just managed to pull it bac
k over himself when Filch burst into the office. He looked absolutely delighte
d about something and was talking to himself feverishly as he crossed the room
, pulled open a drawer in Umbridge's desk and began rifling through the papers
inside it.
'Approval for Whipping . . . Approval for Whipping . . . I can do it at la
st . . . they've had it coming to them for years . . .'
He pulled out a piece of parchment, kissed it, then shuffled rapidly back
out of the door, clutching it to his chest.
Harry leapt to his feet and, making sure he had his bag and that the Invis
ibility Cloak was completely covering him, he wrenched open the door and hurri
ed out of the office after Filch, who was hobbling along faster than Harry had
ever seen him go.
One landing down from Umbridge's office, Harry thought it was safe to beco
me visible again. He pulled off the Cloak, shoved it in his bag and hurried on
wards. There was a great deal of shouting and movement coming from the Entranc
e Hall. He ran down the marble staircase and found what looked like most of th
e school assembled there.
It was just like the night when Trelawney had been sacked. Students were s
tanding all around the walls in a great ring (some of them, Harry noticed, cov
ered in a substance that looked very like Stinksap); teachers and ghosts were
also in the crowd. Prominent among the onlookers were members of the Inquisito
rial Squad, who were all looking exceptionally pleased with themselves, and Pe
eves, who was bobbing overhead, gazed down at Fred and George who stood in the
middle of the floor with the unmistakeable look of two people who had just be
en cornered.
'So!' said Umbridge triumphantly. Harry realised she was standing
just a few stairs in front of him, once more looking down upon her prey. '
So - you think it amusing to turn a school corridor into a swamp, do you?'
'Pretty amusing, yeah,' said Fred, looking up at her without the slightest
sign of fear.
Filch elbowed his way closer to Umbridge, almost crying with happiness.
'I've got the form, Headmistress,' he said hoarsely, waving the piece of p
archment Harry had just seen him take from her desk. 'I've got the form and I'
ve got the whips waiting . . . oh, let me do it now . . .'
'Very good, Argus,' she said. 'You two,' she went on, gazing down at Fred
and George, 'are about to learn what happens to wrongdoers in my school.'
'You know what?' said Fred. 'I don't think we are.'
He turned to his twin.
'George,' said Fred, 'I think we've outgrown full-time education.'
'Yeah, I've been feeling that way myself,' said George lightly.
Time to test our talents in the real world, d'you reckon?' asked Fred.
'Definitely,' said George.
And before Umbridge could say a word, they raised their wands and said tog
ether:
'Accio brooms!'
Harry heard a loud crash somewhere in the distance. Looking to his left, h
e ducked just in time. Fred and George's broomsticks, one still trailing the h
eavy chain and iron peg with which Umbridge had fastened them to the wall, wer
e hurtling along the corridor towards their owners; they turned left, streaked
down the stairs and stopped sharply in front of the twins, the chain clatteri
ng loudly on the flagged stone floor.
'We won't be seeing you,' Fred told Professor Umbridge, swinging his leg o
ver his broomstick.
'Yeah, don't bother to keep in touch,' said George, mounting his own.
Fred looked around at the assembled students, at the silent, watchful crow
d.
'It anyone fancies buying a Portable Swamp, as demonstrated upstairs, come
to number ninety-three, Diagon Alley - Weasley' Wizarding Wheezes,' he said i
n a loud voice. 'Our new premises!'
'Special discounts to Hogwarts students who swear they're going to use our
products to get rid of this old bat,' added George, pointing at Professor Umb
ridge.
'STOP THEM!' shrieked Umbridge, but it was too late. As the Inquisitorial
Squad closed in, Fred and George kicked off from the floor, shooting fifteen f
eet into the air, the iron peg swinging dangerously below. Fred looked across
the hall at the poltergeist bobbing on his level above the crowd.
'Give her hell from us, Peeves.'
And Peeves, who Harry had never seen take an order from a student before,
swept his belled hat from his head and sprang to a salute as Fred and George w
heeled about to tumultuous applause from the students below and sped out of th
e open front doors into the glorious sunset.
- CHAPTER THIRTY -
Grawp
The story of Fred and George's flight to freedom was retold so often over the
next few days that Harry could tell it would soon become the stuff of Hogwarts
legend: within a week, even those who had been eye-witnesses were half-convin
ced they had seen the twins dive-bomb Umbridge on their brooms and pelt her wi
th Dungbombs before zooming out of the doors. In the immediate aftermath of th
eir departure there was a great wave of talk about copying them. Harry frequen
tly heard students saying things like, 'Honestly, some days I just feel like j
umping on my broom and leaving this place,' or else, 'One more lesson like tha
t and I might just do a Weasley.'
Fred and George had made sure nobody was likely to forget them too soon. F
or one thing, they had not left instructions on how to remove the swamp that n
ow filled the corridor on the fifth floor of the east wing. Umbridge and Filch
had been observed trying different means of removing it but without success.
Eventually, the area was roped off and Filch, gnashing his teeth furiously, wa
s given the task of punting students across it to their classrooms. Harry was
certain that teachers like McGonagall or Flitwick could have removed the swamp
in an instant but, just as in the case of Fred and George's Wildfire Whiz-ban
gs, they seemed to prefer to watch Umbridge struggle.
Then there were the two large broom-shaped holes in Umbridge's office door
, through which Fred and George's Cleansweeps had smashed to rejoin their mast
ers. Filch fitted a new door and removed Harry's Firebolt to the dungeons wher
e, it was rumoured, Umbridge had set an armed security troll to guard it. Howe
ver, her troubles were far from over.
Inspired by Fred and George's example, a great number of students were now
vying for the newly vacant positions of Troublemakers-in-Chief. In spite of t
he new door, somebody managed to slip a hairy-snouted Niffler into Umbridge's
office, which promptly tore the place apart in its search for shiny objects, l
eapt on Umbridge when she entered and tried to gnaw the rings off her stubby f
ingers. Dungbombs and Stink Pellets were dropped so frequently in the corridor
s that it became the new fashion for students to perform Bubble-Head Charms on
themselves before leaving lessons, which ensured them a supply of fresh air,
even though it gave them all the peculiar appearance of wearing upside-down go
ldfish bowls on their heads.
Filch prowled the corridors with a horsewhip ready in his hands, desperate
to catch miscreants, but the problem was that there were now so many of them
he never knew which way to turn. The Inquisitorial Squad was attempting to hel
p him, but odd things kept happening to its members. Warrington of the Slyther
in Quidditch team reported to the hospital wing with a horrible skin complaint
that made him look as though he had been coated in cornflakes; Pansy Parkinso
n, to Hermione's delight, missed all her lessons the following day as she had
sprouted antlers.
Meanwhile, it became clear just how many Skiving Snackboxes Fred and Georg
e had managed to sell before leaving Hogwarts. Umbridge only had to enter her
classroom for the students assembled there to faint, vomit, develop dangerous
fevers or else spout blood from both nostrils. Shrieking with rage and frustra
tion, she attempted to trace the mysterious symptoms to their source, but the
students told her stubbornly they were suffering from 'Umbridge - 'itis'. Alte
r putting four successive classes in detention and failing to discover their s
ecret, she was forced to give up and allow the bleeding, swooning, sweating an
d vomiting students to leave her classes in droves.
But not even the users of the Snackboxes could compete with that master of
chaos, Peeves, who seemed to have taken Fred's parting words deeply to heart.
Cackling madly, he soared through the school, upending tables, bursting out o
f blackboards, toppling statues and vases; twice he shut Mrs Norris inside a s
uit of armour,
from which she was rescued, yowling loudly, by the furious caretaker. Peev
es smashed lanterns and snuffed out candles, juggled burning torches over the
heads of screaming students, caused neatly stacked piles of parchment to toppl
e into fires or out of windows; flooded the second floor when he pulled off al
l the taps in the bathrooms, dropped a bag of tarantulas in the middle of the
Great Hall during breakfast and, whenever he fancied a break, spent hours at a
time floating along after Umbridge and blowing loud raspberries every time sh
e spoke.
None of the staff but Filch seemed to be stirring themselves to help her.
Indeed, a week after Fred and Georges departure Harry witnessed Professor McGo
nagall walking right past Peeves, who was determinedly loosening a crystal cha
ndelier, and could have sworn he heard her tell the poltergeist out of the cor
ner of her mouth, 'It unscrews the other way.'
To cap matters, Montague had still not recovered from his sojourn in the t
oilet; he remained confused and disorientated and his parents were to be obser
ved one Tuesday morning striding up the front drive, looking extremely angry.
'Should we say something?' said Hermione in a worried voice, pressing her
cheek against the Charms window so that she could see Mr and Mrs Montague marc
hing inside. 'About what happened to him? In case it helps Madam Pomfrey cure
him?'
'Course not, he'll recover,' said Ron indifferently.
'Anyway, more trouble for Umbridge, isn't it?' said Harry in a satisfied v
oice.
He and Ron both tapped the teacups they were supposed to be charming with
their wands. Harry's spouted four very short legs that could not reach the des
k and wriggled pointlessly in midair. Ron's grew four very thin spindly legs t
hat hoisted the cup off the desk with great difficulty, trembled for a few sec
onds, then folded, causing the cup to crack into two.
'Reparo,' said Hermione quickly, mending Ron's cup with a wave of her wand
. That's all very well, but what if Montague's permanently injured?'
'Who cares?' said Ron irritably, while his teacup stood up drunkenly again
, trembling violently at the knees. 'Montague shouldn't have tried to take all
those points from Gryffindor, should he? If you want to worry about anyone, H
ermione, worry about me!'
'You?' she said, catching her teacup as it scampered happily away across t
he desk on four sturdy little willow-patterned legs, and replacing it in front
of her. 'Why should I be worried about you?'
'When Mum's next letter finally gets through Umbridge's screening process,
' said Ron bitterly, now holding his cup up while its frail legs tried feebly
to support its weight, 'I'm going to be in deep trouble. I wouldn't be surpris
ed if she's sent another Howler.'
'But - '
'It'll be my fault Fred and George left, you wait,' said Ron darkly. 'She'
ll say I should've stopped them leaving, I should've grabbed the ends of their
brooms and hung on or something . . . yeah, it'll be all my fault.'
'Well, if she dot's say that it'll be very unfair, you couldn't have done
anything! But I'm sure she won't, I mean, if it's really true they've got prem
ises in Diagon Alley, they must have been planning this for ages.'
'Yeah, but that's another thing, how did they get premises?' said Ron, hit
ting his teacup so hard with his wand that its legs collapsed again and it lay
twitching before him. 'It's a bit dodgy, isn't it? They'll need loads of Gall
eons to afford the rent on a place in Diagon Alley. She'll want to know what t
hey've been up to, to get their hands on that sort of gold.'
'Well, yes, that occurred to me, too,' said Hermione, allowing her teacup
to jog in neat little circles around Harry's, whose stubby little legs were st
ill unable to touch the desktop, 'I've been wondering whether Mundungus has pe
rsuaded them to sell stolen goods or something awful.'
'He hasn't,' said Harry curtly.
'How do you know?' said Ron and Hermione together.
'Because - ' Harry hesitated, but the moment to confess finally seemed to
have come. There was no good to be gained in keeping silent if it meant anyone
suspected that Fred and George were criminals. 'Because they got the gold fro
m me. I gave them my Triwizard winnings last June.'
There was a shocked silence, then Hermione's teacup jogged right over the
edge of the desk and smashed on the floor.
'Oh, Harry, you didn't!' she said.
'Yes, I did,' said Harry mutinously. 'And I don't regret it, either. I did
n't need the gold and they'll be great at running a joke shop.'
'But this is excellent!' said Ron, looking thrilled. 'It's all your fault,
Harry - Mum can't blame me at all! Can I tell her?'
'Yeah, I suppose you'd better,' said Harry dully, "specially if she thinks
they're receiving stolen cauldrons or something.'
Hermione said nothing at all for the rest of the lesson, but Harry had a s
hrewd suspicion that her self-restraint was bound to crack before long. Sure e
nough, once they had left the castle for break and were standing around in the
weak May sunshine, she fixed Harry with a beady eye and opened her mouth with
a determined air.
Harry interrupted her before she had even started.
'It's no good nagging me, it's done,' he said firmly. 'Fred and George hav
e got the gold - spent a good bit of it, too, by the sounds of it - and I can'
t get it back from them and I don't want to. So save your breath, Hermione.'
'I wasn't going to say anything about Fred and George!' she said in an inj
ured voice.
Ron snorted disbelievingly and Hermione threw him a very dirty look.
'No, I wasn't!' she said angrily. 'As a matter of fact, I was going to ask
Harry when he's going to go back to Snape and ask for more Occlumency lessons
!'
Harry's heart sank. Once they had exhausted the subject of Fred and George
's dramatic departure, which admittedly had taken many hours, Ron and Hermione
had wanted to hear news of Sirius. As Harry had not confided in them the reas
on he had wanted to talk to Sirius in the first place, it had been hard to thi
nk of what to tell them; he had ended up saying, truthfully, that Sirius wante
d Harry to resume Occlumency lessons. He had been regretting this ever since;
Hermione would not let the subject drop and kept reverting to it when Harry le
ast expected it.
'You can't tell me you've stopped having funny dreams,' Hermione
said now, 'because Ron told me you were muttering in your sleep again last
night.'
Harry threw Ron a furious look. Ron had the grace to look ashamed of himse
lf.
'You were only muttering a bit,' he mumbled apologetically. 'Something abo
ut "just a bit further".'
'I dreamed I was watching you lot play Quidditch,' Harry lied brutally. 'I
was trying to get you to stretch out a bit further to grab the Quaffle.'
Ron's ears went red. Harry felt a kind of vindictive pleasure; he had not,
of course, dreamed anything of the sort.
Last night, he had once again made the journey along the Department of Mys
teries corridor. He had passed through the circular room, then the room full o
f clicking and dancing light, until he found himself again inside that caverno
us room full of shelves on which were ranged dusty glass spheres.
He had hurried straight towards row number ninety-seven, turned left and r
un along it . . . it had probably been then that he had spoken aloud . . . jus
t a bit further . . . for he felt his conscious self struggling to wake . . .
and before he had reached the end of the row, he had found himself lying in be
d again, gazing up at the canopy of his four-poster.
'You are trying to block your mind, aren't you?' said. Hermione, looking b
eadily at Harry. 'You are keeping going with your Occlumency?'
'Of course I am,' said Harry, trying to sound as though this question was
insulting, but not quite meeting her eye. The truth was he was so intensely cu
rious about what was hidden in that room full of dusty orbs, that he was quite
keen for the dreams to continue.
The problem was that with just under a month to go until the exams and eve
ry free moment devoted to revision, his mind seemed so saturated with informat
ion when he went to bed he found it very difficult to get to sleep at all; and
when he did, his overwrought brain presented him most nights with stupid drea
ms about the exams. He also suspected that part of his mind - the part that of
ten spoke in Hermione's voice - now felt guilty on the occasions
it strayed down that corridor ending in the black door, and sought to wake
him before he could reach the journey's end.
'You know,' said Ron, whose ears were still flaming red, 'if Montague does
n't recover before Slytherin play Hufflepuff, we might be in with a chance of
winning the Cup.'
'Yeah, I s'pose so,' said Harry, glad of a change of subject.
'I mean, we've won one, lost one - if Slytherin lose to Hufflepuff next Sa
turday - '
'Yeah, that's right,' said Harry, losing track of what he was agreeing to.
Cho Chang had just walked across the courtyard, determinedly not looking at h
im.
*
The final match of the Quidditch season, Gryffindor versus Ravenclaw, was to t
ake place on the last weekend of May. Although Slytherin had been narrowly def
eated by Hufflepuff in their last match, Gryffindor were not daring to hope fo
r victory, due mainly (though of course nobody said it to him) to Ron's abysma
l goal-keeping record. He, however, seemed to have found a new optimism.
'I mean, I can't get any worse, can I?' he told Harry and Hermione grimly
over breakfast on the morning of the match. 'Nothing to lose now, is there?'
'You know,' said Hermione, as she and Harry walked down to the pitch a lit
tle later in the midst of a very excitable crowd, 'I think Ron might do better
without Fred and George around. They never exactly gave him a lot of confiden
ce.'
Luna Lovegood overtook them with what appeared to be a live eagle perched
on top of her head.
'Oh, gosh, I forgot!' said Hermione, watching the eagle flapping its wings
as Luna walked serenely past a group of cackling and pointing Slytherins. 'Ch
o will be playing, won't she?'
Harry, who had not forgotten this, merely grunted.
They found seats in the topmost row of the stands. It was a fine, ckar day
; Ron could not wish for better, and Harry found himself hoping against hope t
hat Ron would not give the Slytherins cause for more rousing choruses of 'Weas
ley is our King'.
Lee Jordan, who had been very dispirited since Fred and George
had left, was commentating as usual. As the teams zoomed out on to the pit
ch he named the players with something less than his usual gusto.
'. . . Bradley . . . Davies . . . Chang,' he said, and Harry felt his stom
ach perform, less of a back flip, more a feeble lurch as Cho walked out on to
the pitch, her shiny black hair rippling in the slight breeze.. He was not sur
e what he wanted to happen any more, except that he could not stand any more r
ows. Even the sight of her chatting animatedly to Roger Davies as they prepare
d to mount their brooms caused him only a slight twinge of jealousy.
'And they're off!' said Lee. 'And Davies takes the Quaffle immediately, Ra
venclaw Captain Davies with the Quaffle, he dodges Johnson, he dodges Bell, he
dodges Spinnet as well . . . he's going straight for goal! He's going to shoo
t - and - and - ' Lee swore very loudly. 'And he's scored.'
Harry and Hermione groaned with the rest of the Gryffindors. Predictably,
horribly the Slytherins on the other side of the stands began to sing:
'Weasley cannot save a thing
He cannot block a single ring . . .'
'Harry,' said a hoarse voice in Harry's ear. 'Hermione . . .'
Harry looked round and saw Hagrid's enormous bearded face sticking between
the seats. Apparently, he had squeezed his way all along the row behind, for
the first- and second-years he had just passed had a ruffled, flattened look a
bout them. For some reason, Hagrid was bent double as though anxious not to be
seen, though he was still at least four feet taller than everybody else.
'Listen,' he whispered, 'can yeh come with me? Now? While ev'ryone's watch
in' the match?'
'Er . . . can't it wait, Hagrid?' asked Harry. till the match is over?' 'N
o,' said Hagrid. 'No, Harry, it's gotta be now . . . while ev'ryone's lookin'
the other way . . . please?'
Hagrid's nose was gently dripping blood. His eyes were both blackened. Har
ry had not seen him this close-up since his return to the school; he looked ut
terly woebegone.
'Course,' said Harry at once, 'course we'll come.'
He and Hermione edged back along their row of seats, causing much grumblin
g among the students who had to stand up for them. The people in Hagrid's row
were not complaining, merely attempting to make themselves as small as possibl
e.
'I 'ppreciate this, you two, I really do,' said Hagrid as they reached the
stairs. He kept looking around nervously as they descended towards the lawn b
elow. 'I jus' hope she doesn' notice us goin'.'
'You mean Umbridge?' said Harry. 'She won't, she's got her whole Inquisito
rial Squad sitting with her, didn't you see? She must be expecting trouble at
the match.'
'Yeah, well, a bit o' trouble wouldn' hurt,' said Hagrid, pausing to peer
around the edge of the stands to make sure the stretch of lawn between there a
nd his cabin was deserted. 'Give us more time.'
'What is it, Hagrid?' said Hermione, looking up at him with a concerned ex
pression on her face as they hurried across the grass towards the edge of the
Forest.
'Yeh - yeh'll see in a mo',' said Hagrid, looking over his shoulder as a g
reat roar rose from the stands behind them. 'Hey - did someone jus' score?'
'It'll be Ravenclaw,' said Harry heavily.
'Good . . . good . . .' said Hagrid distractedly. 'Tha's good . . .'
They had to jog to keep up with him as he strode across the lawn, looking
around with every other step. When they reached his cabin, Hermione turned aut
omatically left towards the front door. Hagrid, however, walked straight past
it into the shade of the trees on the outermost edge of the Forest, where he p
icked up a crossbow that was leaning against a tree. When he realised they wer
e no longer with him, he turned.
'We're goin' in here,' he said, jerking his shaggy head behind him.
'Into the Forest?' said Hermione, perplexed.
'Yeah,' said Hagrid. 'C'mon now, quick, before we're spotted!'
Harry and Hermione looked at each other, then ducked into the cover of the
trees behind Hagrid, who was already striding away from them into the green g
loom, his crossbow over his arm. Harry and Hermione ran to catch up with him.
'Hagrid, why are you armed?' said Harry.
'Jus' a precaution,' said Hagrid, shrugging his massive shoulders.
'You didn't bring your crossbow the day you showed us the Thestrals,' said
Hermione timidly.
'Nah, well, we weren' goin' in so far then,' said Hagrid. 'An' anyway, tha
' was before Firenze left the Forest, wasn' it?'
'Why does Firenze leaving make a difference?' asked Hermione curiously
"Cause the other centaurs are good an' riled at me, tha's why,' said Hagri
d quietly, glancing around. They used ter be - well, yeh couldn' call 'em frie
ndly - but we got on all righ'. Kept 'emselves to 'emselves, bu' always turned
up if I wanted a word. Not any more.'
He sighed deeply.
'Firenze said they're angry because he went to work for Dumbledore,' Harry
said, tripping on a protruding root because he was busy watching Hagrid's pro
file.
'Yeah,' said Hagrid heavily. 'Well, angry doesn' cover it. Ruddy livid. If
I hadn' stepped in, I reckon they'd've kicked Firenze ter death - '
They attacked him?' said Hermione, sounding shocked.
'Yep,' said Hagrid gruffly, forcing his way through several low-hanging br
anches. 'He had half the herd on to him.'
'And you stopped it?' said Harry, amazed and impressed. 'By yourself?'
'Course I did, couldn't stand by an' watch 'em kill 'im, cou!d I?' said Ha
grid. 'Lucky I was passin', really . . . an' I'd've thought Firenze mighta rem
embered tha' before he started sendin' me stup d warnin's!' he added hotly and
unexpectedly.
Harry and Hermione looked at each other, startled, but Hagrid, scowling, d
id not elaborate.
'Anyway,' he said, breathing a little more heavily than usud, 'since then
the other centaurs've bin livid with me, an' the trouble is they've got a lot
of influence in the Forest . . . cleverest creatures in here.'
'Is that why we're here, Hagrid?' asked Hermione. The centaurs?'
'Ah, no,' said Hagrid, shaking his head dismissively, 'no, it's not them.
Well, o' course, they could complicate the problem, yeah . . . but yeh'll see
what I mean in a bit.'
On this incomprehensible note he fell silent and forged a little ahead, ta
king one stride for every three of theirs, so that they had great trouble keep
ing up with him.
The path was becoming increasingly overgrown and the trees grew so closely
together as they walked further and further into the Forest that it was as da
rk as dusk. They were soon a long way past the clearing where Hagrid had shown
them the Thestrals, but Harry felt no sense of unease until Hagrid stepped un
expectedly off the path and began wending his way in and out of trees towards
the dark heart of the Forest.
'Hagrid!' said Harry, fighting his way through thickly knotted brambles, o
ver which Hagrid had stepped with ease, and remembering very vividly what had
happened to him on the other occasion he had stepped off the Forest path. 'Whe
re are we going?'
'Bit further,' said Hagrid over his shoulder. 'C'mon, Harry . . . we need
ter keep together now.'
It was a great struggle to keep up with Hagrid, what with branches and thi
ckets of thorn through which Hagrid marched as easily as if they were cobwebs,
but which snagged Harry and Hermione's robes, frequently entangling them so s
everely that they had to stop for minutes at a time to free themselves. Harry'
s arms and legs were soon covered in small cuts and scratches. They were so de
ep in the Forest now that sometimes all Harry could see of Hagrid in the gloom
was a massive dark shape ahead of him. Any sound seemed threatening in the mu
ffled silence. The breaking of a twig echoed loudly and the tiniest rustle of
movement, even though it might have been made by an innocent sparrow, caused H
arry to peer through the gloom for a culprit. It occurred to him that he had n
ever managed to get this far into the Forest without meeting some kind of crea
ture; their absence struck him as rather ominous.
'Hagrid, would it be all right if we lit our wands?' said Hermione quietly
.
'Er . . . all righ',' Hagrid whispered back. Tn fact - '
He stopped suddenly and turned around; Hermione walked right into him and
was knocked over backwards. Harry caught her just before she hit the Forest fl
oor.
'Maybe we bes' jus' stop fer a momen', so I can . . . fill yeh in,' said H
agrid. 'Before we ge' there, like.'
'Good!' said Hermione, as Harry set her back on her feet. They both murmur
ed 'Lumos/' and their wand-tips ignited. Hagrid's face swam through the gloom
by the light of the two wavering beams and Harry saw again that he looked nerv
ous and sad.
'Righ',' said Hagrid. 'Well . . . see . . . the thing is . . .'
He took a great breath.
'Well, there's a good chance I'm goin' ter be gettin' the sack any day now
,' he said.
Harry and Hermione looked at each other, then back at him
'But you've lasted this long - ' Hermione said tentatively. 'What makes yo
u think - '
'Umbridge reckons it was me that put tha' Niffler in her office.'
'And was it?' said Harry, before he could stop himself.
'No, it ruddy well wasn'!' said Hagrid indignantly. 'On'y any-thin' ter do
with magical creatures an' she thinks it's got somethin' ter do with me. Yeh
know she's bin lookin' fer a chance ter get rid of me ever since I got back. I
don' wan' ter go, o' course, but if it wasn' fer . . . well . . . the special
circumstances I'm abou' ter explain to yeh, I'd leave righ' now, before she's
go' the chance ter do it in front o' the whole school, like she did with Trel
awney'
Harry and Hermione both made noises of protest, but Hagrid overrode them w
ith a wave of one of his enormous hands.
'It's not the end o' the world, I'll be able ter help Dumbledo-e once I'm
outta here, I can be useful ter the Order. Air you lot'll have Grubbly-Plank,
yeh'll - yeh'll get through yer exams fine . . .'
His voice trembled and broke.
'Don' worry abou' me,' he said hastily, as Hermione made to pat his arm. H
e pulled his enormous spotted handkerchief from the pocket of his waistcoat an
d mopped his eyes with it. 'Look, I wouldn' be tellin' yer this at all if I di
dn' have ter. See, if I go . . . well, I can' leave withou' . . . withou' tell
in' someone . . . because I'll - I'll need yeh two ter help me. An' Ron, if he
's willin'.'
'Of course we'll help you,' said Harry at once. 'What do you want us to do
?'
Hagrid gave a great sniff and patted Harry wordlessly on the shoulder with
such force Harry was knocked sideways into a tree.
'I knew yeh'd say yes,' said Hagrid into his handkerchief, 'but I won' . .
. never . . . forget . . . well . . . c'mon . . . jus' a little bit further t
hrough here . . . watch yerselves, now, there's nettles . . .'
They walked on in silence for another fifteen minutes; Harry had opened hi
s mouth to ask how much further they had to go when Hagrid threw out his right
arm to signal that they should stop.
'Really easy,' he said softly. 'Very quiet, now . . .'
They crept forwards and Harry saw that they were facing a large, smooth mo
und of earth nearly as tall as Hagrid that he thought, with a jolt of dread, w
as sure to be the lair of some enormous animal. Trees had been ripped up at th
e roots all around the mound, so that it stood on a bare patch of ground surro
unded by heaps of trunks and boughs that formed a kind of fence or barricade,
behind which Harry, Hermione and Hagrid now stood.
'Sleepin',' breathed Hagrid.
Sure enough, Harry could hear a distant, rhythmic rumbling that sounded li
ke a pair of enormous lungs at work. He glanced sideways at Hermione, who was
gazing at the mound with her mouth slightly open. She looked utterly terrified
.
'Hagrid,' she said in a whisper barely audible over the sound of the sleep
ing creature, 'who is he?'
Harry found this an odd question . . . 'What is it?' was the one he; had b
een planning on asking.
'Hagrid, you told us - ' said Hermione, her wand now shaking in her hand,
'you told us none of them, wanted to come!'
Harry looked from her to Hagrid and then, as realisation hit him, he looke
d back at the mound with a small gasp of horror.
The great mound of earth, on which he, Hermione and Hagrid could easily ha
ve stood, was moving slowly up and down in time with the deep, grunting breath
ing. It was not a mound at all. It was the curved back of what was clearly - '
'Well - no - he didn' want ter come,' said Hagrid, sounding desperate. 'Bu
t I had ter bring him, Hermione, I had ter!'
'But why?' asked Hermione, who sounded as though she wanted to cry. 'Why -
what - oh, Hagrid!'
'I knew if I jus' got him back,' said Hagrid, sounding close to tears hims
elf, 'an" - an' taught him a few manners - I'd be able ter take him outside an
' show ev'ryone he's harmless!'
'Harmless!' said Hermione shrilly, and Hagrid made frantic hushing noises
with his hands as the enormous creature before them grunted loudly and shifted
in its sleep. 'He's been hurting you all this time, hasn't he? That's why you
've had all these injuries!'
'He don' know his own strength!' said Hagrid earnestly. 'An' he's gettin'
better, he's not fightin' so much any more -'
'So, this is why it took you two months to get home!' said Hermione distra
ctedly. 'Oh, Hagrid, why did you bring him back if he didn't want to come? Wou
ldn't he have been happier with his own people?'
They were all bullyin' him, Hermione, 'cause he's so small!' said Hagrid.
'Small?' said Hermione. 'Small?'
'Hermione, I couldn' leave him,' said Hagrid, tears now trickling down his
bruised face into his beard. 'See - he's my brother!'
Hermione simply stared at him, her mouth open.
'Hagrid, when you say "brother",' said Harry slowly, 'do you mean - ?'
'Well - half-brother,' amended Hagrid. Turns out me mother took up with an
other giant when she left me dad, an' she went an' had Grawp here - '
'Grawp?' said Harry.
'Yeah . . . well, tha's what it sounds like when he says his name,' said H
agrid anxiously. 'He don' speak a lot of English . . . I've bin tryin' ter tea
ch him . . . anyway, she don' seem ter have liked him much more'n she liked me
. See, with giantesses, what counts is producin' good big kids, and he's alway
s been a bit on the runty side fer a giant - on'y sixteen foot - '
'Oh, yes, tiny!' said Hermione, with a kind of hysterical sarcasm. 'Absolu
tely minuscule!'
'He was bein' kicked aroun' by all o' them - I jus' couldn' leave him -'
'Did Madame Maxime want to bring him back?' asked Harry.
'She - well, she could see it was right importan' ter me,' said Hagrid, tw
isting his enormous hands. 'Bu' - bu' she got a bit tired o' him after a while
, I must admit . . . so we split up on the journey home . . . she promised not
ter tell anyone, though . . ."
'How on earth did you gel him back without anyone noticing?' said Harry.
'Well, tha's why it took so long, see,' said Hagrid. 'Could on'y travel by
nigh' an' through wild country an' stuff. Course, he covers the ground pretty
well when he wants ter, but he kep' wantin' ter go back.'
'Oh, Hagrid, why on earth didn't you let him!' said Hermione, flopping dow
n on to a ripped up tree and burying her face in her hands. 'What do you think
you're going to do with a violent giant who doesn't even want to be here!'
'Well, now - "violent" - tha's a bit harsh,' said Hagrid, still twisting h
is hands agitatedly. 'I'll admit he mighta taken a couple o' swings at me when
he's bin in a bad mood, but he's gettin' better, loads better, settlin' down
well.'
'What are those ropes for, then?' Harry asked.
He had just noticed ropes thick as saplings stretching from around the tru
nks of the largest nearby trees towards the place where Grawp lay curled on th
e ground with his back to them.
'You have to keep him tied up?' said Hermione faintly.
'Well . . . yeah . . .' said Hagrid, looking anxious. 'See - it's like I s
ay - he doesn' really know 'is own strength.'
Harry understood now why there had been such a suspicious lack of any othe
r living creature in this part of the Forest.
'So, what is it you want Harry and Ron and me to do?' Hermione as-ked appr
ehensively.
'Look after him,' said Hagrid croakily. 'After I'm gone.'
Harry and Hermione exchanged miserable looks, Harry uricom-fcriably aware
that he had already promised Hagrid that he would do whatever he asked.
'What - what does that involve, exactly?' Hermione enquired.
'Not food or anythin'!' said Hagrid eagerly. 'He can get his own fcod, no
problem. Birds an' deer an' stuff . . . no, it's company he needs. It I jus' k
new someone was carryin on trym ter help him a bit . . . teachin' him, yeh kno
w.'
Harry said nothing, but turned to look back at the gigantic form lying asl
eep on the ground in front of them. Unlike Hagrid, who simply looked like an o
versized human, Grawp looked strangely misshapen. What Harry had taken to be a
vast mossy boulder to the left of the great earthen mound he now recognised a
s Grawp's head. It was much larger in proportion to the body than a human head
, and was almost perfectly round and covered with tightly curling, close-growi
ng hair the colour of bracken. The rim of a single large, fleshy ear was visib
le on top of the head, which seemed to sit, rather like Uncle Vernon's, direct
ly upon the shoulders with little or no neck in between. The back, under what
looked like a dirty brownish smock comprised of animal skins sewn roughly toge
ther, was very broad; and as Grawp slept, it seemed to strain a little at the
rough seams of the skins. The legs were curled up under the body. Harry could
see the soles of enormous, filthy, bare feet, large as sledges, resting one on
top of the other on the earthy Forest floor.
'You want us to teach him,' Harry said in a hollow voice. He now understoo
d what Firenze's warning had meant. His attempt is not working. He would do be
tter to abandon it. Of course, the other creatures who lived in the Forest wou
ld have heard Hagrid's fruitless attempts to teach Grawp English.
'Yeah - even if yeh jus' talk ter him a bit,' said Hagrid hopefully. "Caus
e I reckon, if he can talk ter people, he'll understand more that we all like
'im really, an' want 'im ter stay.'
Harry looked at Hermione, who peered back at him from between the fingers
over her face.
'Kind of makes you wish we had Norbert back, doesn't it?' he said, and she
gave a very shaky laugh.
'Yeh'll do it, then?' said Hagrid, who did not seem to have caugit what Ha
rry had just said.
'We'll . . .' said Harry, already bound by his promise. 'We'll try, Hagrid
.'
'I knew I could count on yeh, Harry,' Hagrid said, beaming .n a very water
y way and dabbing at his face with his handkerchief
again. 'An' I don' wan' yeh ter put yerself out too much, like . . . I kno
w yeh've got exams . . . if yeh could jus' nip down here in yer Invisibility C
loak maybe once a week an' have a little chat with 'im. I'll wake 'im up, then
- introduce yeh - '
'Wha- no!' said Hermione, jumping up. 'Hagrid, no, don't wake him, really,
we don't need - '
But Hagrid had already stepped over the great tree trunk in front of them
and was proceeding towards Grawp. When he was about ten feet away, he lifted a
long, broken bough from the ground, smiled reassuringly over his shoulder at
Harry and Hermione, then poked Grawp hard in the middle of the back with the e
nd of the bough.
The giant gave a roar that echoed around the silent Forest; birds in the t
reetops overhead rose twittering from their perches and soared away. In front
of Harry and Hermione, meanwhile, the gigantic Grawp was rising from the groun
d, which shuddered as he placed an enormous hand upon it to push himself on to
his knees. He turned his head to see who and what had disturbed him.
'All righ', Grawpy?' said Hagrid, in a would-be cheery voice, backing away
with the long bough raised, ready to poke Grawp again. 'Had a nice sleep, eh?
'
Harry and Hermione retreated as far as they could while still keeping the
giant within their sights. Grawp knelt between two trees he had not yet uproot
ed. They looked up into his startlingly huge face that resembled a grey full m
oon swimming in the gloom of the clearing. It was as though the features had b
een hewn on to a great stone ball. The nose was stubby and shapeless, the mout
h lopsided and full of misshapen yellow teeth the size of half-bricks; the eye
s, small by giant standards, were a muddy greenish-brown and just now were hal
f-gummed together with sleep. Grawp raised dirty knuckles, each as big as a cr
icket ball, to his eyes, rubbed vigorously, then, without warning, pushed hims
elf to his feet with surprising speed and agility.
'Oh my!' Harry heard Hermione squeal, terrified, beside him.
The trees to which the other ends of the ropes around Grawp's wrists and a
nkles were attached creaked ominously. He was, as
Hagrid had said, at least sixteen feet tall. Gazing blearily around, Grawp
reached out a hand the size of a beach umbrella, seized a bird's nest from th
e upper branches of a towering pine and turned it upside-down with a roar of a
pparent displeasure that there was no bird in it; eggs fell like grenades towa
rds the ground and Hagrid threw his arms over his head to protect himself.
'Anyway, Grawpy,' shouted Hagrid, looking up apprehensively in case of fur
ther falling eggs, 'I've brought some friends ter meet yeh. Remember, I told y
eh I might? Remember, when I said I might have ter go on a little trip an' lea
ve them ter look after yeh fer a bit? Remember that, Grawpy?'
But Grawp merely gave another low roar; it was hard to say whether he was
listening to Hagrid or whether he even recognised the sounds Hagrid was making
as speech. He had now seized the top of the pine tree and was pulling it towa
rds him, evidently for the simple pleasure of seeing how far it would spring b
ack when he let go.
'Now, Grawpy, don' do that!' shouted Hagrid. 'Tha's how you ended up pulli
n' up the others - '
And sure enough, Harry could see the earth around the tree's roots beginni
ng to crack.
'I got company for yeh!' Hagrid shouted. 'Company, see! Look down, yeh big
buffoon, I brought yeh some friends!'
'Oh, Hagrid, don't,' moaned Hermione, but Hagrid had already raised the bo
ugh again and gave Grawp's knee a sharp poke.
The giant let go of the top of the tree, which swayed alarmingly and delug
ed Hagrid with a rain of pine needles, and looked down.
This,' said Hagrid, hastening over to where Harry and Herrmone stood, 'is
Harry, Grawp! Harry Potter! He migh' be comin' ter visit yeh if I have ter go
away, understand?'
The giant had only just realised that Harry and Hermione were there. They
watched, in great trepidation, as he lowered his huge boulder of a head so tha
t he could peer blearily at them.
'An' this is Hermione, see? Her-' Hagrid hesitated. Turning to Hermione, h
e said, 'Would yeh mind if he called yeh Hermy, Hermione? On'y it's a difficul
t name fer him ter remember.'
'No, not at all,' squeaked Hermione.
'This is Hermy, Grawp! An' she's gonna be comin' an' all! Is'n' tha' nice?
Eh? Two friends fer yeh ter - GRAWPY, NO!'
Grawp's hand had shot out of nowhere towards Hermione; Harry seized her an
d pulled her backwards behind the tree, so that Grawp's fist scraped the trunk
but closed on thin air.
'BAD BOY, GRAWPY!' they heard Hagrid yelling, as Hermione clung to Harry b
ehind the tree, shaking and whimpering. 'VERY BAD BOY! YEH DON' GRAB - OUCH!'
Harry poked his head out from around the trunk and saw Hagrid lying on his
back, his hand over his nose. Grawp, apparently losing interest, had straight
ened up and was again engaged in pulling back the pine as far as it would go.
'Righ',' said Hagrid thickly, getting up with one hand pinching his bleedi
ng nose and the other grasping his crossbow, 'well . . . there yeh are . . . y
eh've met him an' - an' now he'll know yeh when yeh come back. Yeah . . . well
. . .'
He looked up at Grawp, who was now pulling back the pine with an expressio
n of detached pleasure on his boulderish face; the roots were creaking as he r
ipped them away from the ground.
'Well, I reckon tha's enough fer one day,' said Hagrid. 'We'll - 'er - we'
ll go back now, shall we?'
Harry and Hermione nodded. Hagrid shouldered his crossbow again and, still
pinching his nose, led the way back into the trees.
Nobody spoke for a while, not even when they heard the distant crash that
meant Grawp had pulled over the pine tree at last. Hermione's face was pale an
d set. Harry could not think of a single thing to say. What on earth was going
to happen when somebody found out that Hagrid had hidden Grawp in the Forbidd
en Forest? And he had promised that he, Ron and Hermione would continue Hagrid
's totally pointless attempts to civilise the giant. How could Hagrid, even wi
th his immense capacity to delude himself that fanged monsters were loveably h
armless, fool himself that Grawp would ever be fit to mix with humans?
'Hold it,' said Hagrid abruptly, just as Harry and Hermione were strugglin
g through a patch of thick knotgrass behind him. He pulled an arrow out of the
quiver over his shoulder and fitted it into the crossbow. Harry and Hermione
raised their wands; now that they had stopped walking, they, too, could hear m
ovement close by.
'Oh, blimey,' said Hagrid quietly.
'I thought we told you, Hagrid,' said a deep male voice, 'That you are no
longer welcome here?'
A man's naked torso seemed for an instant to be floating towards them thro
ugh the dappled green half-light; then they saw that his waist joined smoothly
into a horse's chestnut body. This centaur had a proud, high-cheekboned face
and long black hair. Like Hagrid, he was armed; a quiverful of arrows and a lo
ngbow v/ere slung over his shoulders.
'How are yeh, Magorian?' said Hagrid warily.
The trees behind the centaur rustled and four or five more centaurs emerge
d behind him. Harry recognised the black-bodied and bearded Bane, whom he had
met nearly four years ago on the same night he had met Firenze. Bane gave no s
ign that he had ever seen Harry before.
'So,' he said, with a nasty inflection in his voice, before turning immedi
ately to Magorian. 'We agreed, I think, what we would do if this human ever sh
owed his face in the Forest again?'
' "This human" now, am I?' said Hagrid testily. 'Jus' fer stoppin' all of
yeh committin' murder?'
'You ought not to have meddled, Hagrid,' said Magorian. 'Our ways are not
yours, nor are our laws. Firenze has betrayed and dishonoured us.'
'I dunno how yeh work that out,' said Hagrid impatiently. 'He's done nothi
n' except help Albus Dumbledore - '
'Firenze has entered into servitude to humans,' said a grey centaur with a
hard, deeply lined face.
'Servitude!' said Hagrid scathingly. 'He's doin' Dumbledore a favour is al
l - '
'He is peddling our knowledge and secrets among humans,' said Magorian qui
etly. 'There can be no return from such disgrace.'
'If yeh say so,' said Hagrid, shrugging, 'but personally I think yeh're ma
kin' a big mistake - '
'As are you, human,' said Bane, 'coming back into our Forest when we warne
d you - '
'Now, yeh listen ter me,' said Hagrid angrily. 'I'll have less of the "our
" Forest, if it's all the same ter yeh. It's not up ter yeh who comes an' goes
in here - '
'No more is it up to you, Hagrid,' said Magorian smoothly. 'I shall let yo
u pass today because you are accompanied by your young - '
'They're not his!' interrupted Bane contemptuously. 'Students, Magorian, f
rom up at the school! They have probably already profited from the traitor Fir
enze's teachings.'
'Nevertheless,' said Magorian calmly, 'the slaughter of foals is a terribl
e crime - we do not touch the innocent. Today, Hagrid, you pass. Henceforth, s
tay away from this place. You forfeited the friendship of the centaurs when yo
u helped the traitor Firenze escape us.'
'I won' be kept outta the Fores' by a bunch o' old mules like yeh!' said H
agrid loudly.
'Hagrid,' said Hermione in a high-pitched and terrified voice, as both Ban
e and the grey centaur pawed at the ground, 'let's go, please let's go!'
Hagrid moved forwards, but his crossbow was still raised and his eyes were
still fixed threateningly upon Magorian.
'We know what you are keeping in the Forest, Hagrid!' Magorian called afte
r them, as the centaurs slipped out of sight. 'And our tolerance is waning!'
Hagrid turned and gave every appearance of wanting to walk straight back t
o Magorian.
'Yeh'll tolerate 'im as long as he's here, it's as much his Forest as your
s!' he yelled, as Harry and Hermione both pushed with all their might against
Hagrid's moleskin waistcoat in an effort to keep him moving forwards. Still sc
owling, he looked down; his expression changed to mild surprise at the sight o
f them both pushing him; he seemed not to have felt it.
'Calm down, you two,' he said, turning to walk on while they parted along
behind him. 'Ruddy old mules, though, eh?'
'Hagrid,' said Hermione breathlessly, skirting the patch of nettles they h
ad passed on their way there, 'if the centaurs don't want humans in the Forest
, it doesn't really look as though Harry and I will be able - '
Ah, you heard what they said, said Hagrid dismissively, they wouldn't hurt
foals - I mean, kids. Anyway, we can' let ourselves be pushed aroun' by that
lot.'
'Nice try,' Harry murmured to Hermione, who looked crestfallen.
At last they rejoined the path and, after another ten minutes, the trees b
egan to thin; they were able to see patches of clear blue sky again and, in th
e distance, the definite sounds of cheering and shouting.
'Was that another goal?' asked Hagrid, pausing in the shelter of the trees
as the Quidditch stadium came into view. 'Or d'yeh reckon the match is over?'
'I don't know,' said Hermione miserably. Harry saw that she looked much th
e worse for wear; her hair was full of twigs and leaves, her robes were ripped
in several places and there were numerous scratches on her face and arms. He
knew he must look little better.
'I reckon it's over, yeh know!' said Hagrid, still squinting towards the s
tadium. 'Look - there's people comin' out already - if yeh two hurry yeh'll be
able ter blend in with the crowd an' no one'll know yeh weren't there!'
'Good idea,' said Harry. 'Well . . . see you later, then, Hagrid.'
'I don't believe him,' said Hermione in a very unsteady voice, the moment
they were out of earshot of Hagrid. 'I don't believe him. I really don't belie
ve him.'
'Calm down,' said Harry.
'Calm down!' she said feverishly. 'A giant! A giant in the Forest! And we'
re supposed to give him English lessons! Always assuming, of course, we can ge
t past the herd of murderous centaurs on the way in and out! I - don't - belie
ve - him!'
'We haven't got to do anything yet!' Harry tried to reassure her in a quie
t voice, as they joined a stream of jabbering Hufflepuffs heading back towards
the castle. 'He's not asking us to do anything unless he gets chucked out and
that might not even happen.'
'Oh, come off it, Harry!' said Hermione angrily, stopping dead in her trac
ks so that the people behind had to swerve to avoid her. 'Of course he's going
to be chucked out and, to be perfectly honest, after what we've just seen, wh
o can blame Umbridge?'
There was a pause in which Harry glared at her, and her eyes filled slowly
with tears.
'You didn't mean that,' said Harry quietly.
'No . . . well . . . all right . . . I didn't,' she said, wiping her eyes
angrily. 'But why does he have to make life so difficult for himself - for us?
'
'I dunno - '
'Weasley is our King,
Weasley is our King,
He didn't let the Quaffle in,
Weasley is our King . . .'
'And I wish they'd stop singing that stupid song,' said Hermione miserably, 'h
aven't they gloated enough?'
A great tide of students was moving up the sloping lawns from the pitch.
'Oh, let's get in before we have to meet the Slytherins,' said Hermione.
'Weasley can save anything,
He never leaves a single ring,
That's why Gryffindors all sing:
Weasley is our King.'
'Hermione . . .' said Harry slowly.
The song was growing louder, but it was issuing not from a crowd of green-
and-silver-clad Slytherins, but from a mass of red and gold moving slowly towa
rds the castle, bearing a solitary figure upon its many shoulders.
'Weasley is our King,
Weasley is our King,
He didn't let the Quaffle in,
Weasley is our King . . .'
'No?' said Hermione in a hushed voice.
'YES!' said Harry loudly.
'HARRY! HERMIONE!' yelled Ron, waving the silver Quidditch cup in the air
and looking quite beside himself. 'WE DID IT! WE WON!'
They beamed up at him as he passed. There was a scrum at the door of the c
astle and Ron's head got rather badly bumped on the lintel, but nobody seemed
to want to put him down. Still singing, the crowd squeezed itself into the Ent
rance Hall and out of sight. Harry and Hermione watched them go, beaming, unti
l the last echoing strains of 'Weasley is our King' died away. Then they turne
d to each other, their smiles fading.
'We'll save our news till tomorrow, shall we?' said Harry 'Yes, all right,
' said Hermione wearily. 'I'm not in any hurry.' They climbed the steps togeth
er. At the front doors both instinctively looked back at the Forbidden Forest.
Harry was not sure whether or not it was his imagination, but he rather thoug
ht he saw a small cloud of birds erupting into the air over the tree tops in t
he distance, almost as though the tree in which they had been nesting had just
been pulled up by the roots.
- CHAPTER THIRTY-ONE -
OWLs
Ron's euphoria at helping Gryffindor scrape the Quidditch cup was such that he
couldn't settle to anything next day. All he wanted to do was talk over the m
atch, so Harry and Hermione found it very difficult to find an opening in whic
h to mention Grawp. Not that either of them tried very hard; neither was keen
to be the one to bring Ron back to reality in quite such a brutal fashion. As
it was another fine, warm day, they persuaded him to join them in revising und
er the beech tree at the edge of the lake, where they had less chance of being
overheard than in the common room. Ron was not particularly keen on this idea
at first - he was thoroughly enjoying being patted on the back by every Gryff
indor who walked past his chair, not to mention the occasional outbursts of 'W
easley is our King' - but after a while he agreed that some fresh air might do
him good.
They spread their books out in the shade of the beech tree and sat down wh
ile Ron talked them through his first save of the match for what felt like the
dozenth time.
'Well, I mean, I'd already let in that one of Daviess, so I wasn't feeling
all that confident, but I dunno, when Bradley came towards me, just out of no
where, I thought - you can do this! And I had about a second to decide which w
ay to fly, you know, because he looked like he was aiming for the right goalho
op - my right, obviously, his left - but I had a funny feeling that he was fei
nting, and so I took the chance and flew left - his right, I mean - and - well
- you saw what happened,' he concluded modestly, sweeping his hair back quite
unnecessarily so that it looked interestingly windswept and glancing around t
o see whether the people nearest
to them - a bunch of gossiping third-year Hufflepulis - had heard him. 'An
d then, when Chambers came at me about five minutes later - What?' Ron asked,
having stopped mid-sentence at the look on Harry's face. 'Why are you grinning
?'
'I'm not,' said Harry quickly, and looked down at his Transfiguration note
s, attempting to straighten his lace. The truth was that Ron had just reminded
Harry forcibly of another Gryffindor Quidditch player who had once sat rumpli
ng his hair under this very tree. 'I'm just glad we won, that's all.'
'Yeah,' said Ron slowly, savouring the words, 'we won. Did you see the loo
k on Chang's face when Ginny got the Snitch right out from under her nose?'
'I suppose she cried, did she?' said Harry bitterly.
'Well, yeah - more out of temper than anything, though . . .' Ron frowned
slightly. 'But you saw her chuck her broom away when she got back to the groun
d, didn't you?'
'Er - ' said Harry
'Well, actually . . . no, Ron,' said Hermione with a heavy sigh, putting d
own her book and looking at him apologetically. 'As a matter of fact, the only
bit of the match Harry and I saw was Davies's first goal.'
Ron's carefully ruffled hair seemed to wilt with disappointment. 'You didn
't watch?' he said faintly, looking from one to the other. 'You didn't see me
make any of those saves?'
Well - no,' said Hermione, stretching out a placatory hand towards him. 'B
ut Ron, we didn't want to leave - we had to!'
'Yeah?' said Ron, whose face was growing rather red. 'How come?'
'It was Hagrid,' said Harry. 'He decided to tell us why he's been covered
in injuries ever since he got back from the giants. He wanted us to go into th
e Forest with him, we had no choice, you know how he gets. Anyway . . ."
The story was told in five minutes, by the end of which Ron's indignation
had been replaced by a look of total incredulity.
'He brought one back and hid it in the Forest?'
'Yep,' said Harry grimly.
'No,' said Ron, as though by saying this he could make it untrue. 'No, he
can't have.'
'Well, he has,' said Hermione firmly. 'Grawps about sixteen feet tall, enj
oys ripping up twenty-foot pine trees, and knows me,' she snorted, 'as Hermy.'
Ron gave a nervous laugh.
'And Hagrid wants us to . . . ?'
Teach him English, yeah,' said Harry.
'He's lost his mind,' said Ron in an almost awed voice.
'Yes,' said Hermione irritably, turning a page of Intermediate Transfigura
tion and glaring at a series of diagrams showing an owl turning into a pair of
opera glasses. 'Yes, I'm starting to think he has. But, unfortunately, he mad
e Harry and me promise.'
'Well, you're just going to have to break your promise, that's all,' said
Ron firmly. 'I mean, come on . . . we've got exams and we're about that far -
' he held up his hand to show thumb and forefinger almost touching '- from bei
ng chucked out as it is. And anyway . . . remember Norbert? Remember Aragog? H
ave we ever come off better for mixing with any of Hagrid's monster mates?'
'I know, it's just that - we promised,' said Hermione in a small voice.
Ron smoothed his hair flat again, looking preoccupied.
'Well,' he sighed, 'Hagrid hasn't been sacked yet, has he? He's hung on th
is long, maybe he'll hang on till the end of term and we won't have to go near
Grawp at all.'
*
The castle grounds were gleaming in the sunlight as though freshly painted; th
e cloudless sky smiled at itself in the smoothly sparkling lake; the satin gre
en lawns rippled occasionally in a gentle breeze. June had arrived, but to the
fifth-years this meant only one thing: their OWLs were upon them at last.
Their teachers were no longer setting them homework; lessons were devoted
to revising those topics the teachers thought most likely to come up in the ex
ams. The purposeful, feverish atmosphere drove nearly everything but the OWLs
from Harry's mind, though he did wonder occasionally during Potions lessons wh
ether Lupin had ever told Snape that he must continue giving Harry Ooclumency
tuition. If he had, then Snape had ignored Lupin as thoroughly as he was now i
gnoring Harry. This suited Harry very well; he was quite busy and tense enough
without extra classes with Snape, and to his relief Hermione was much too pre
occupied these days to badger him about Occlumency; she was spending a lot of
time muttering to herself, and had not laid out any elf clothes for days.
She was not the only person acting oddly as the OWLs drew steadily nearer.
Ernie Macmillan had developed an irritating habit of interrogating people abo
ut their revision practices.
'How many hours d'you think you're doing a day?' he demanded of Harry and
Ron as they queued outside Herbology, a manic gleam in his eyes.
'I dunno,' said Ron. 'A few.'
'More or less than eight?'
'Less, I s'pose,' said Ron, looking slightly alarmed.
'I'm doing eight,' said Ernie, puffing out his chest. 'Eight or nine. I'm
getting an hour in before breakfast every day. Eights my average. I can do ten
on a good weekend day. I did nine and a half on Monday. Not so good on Tuesda
y - only seven and a quarter. Then on Wednesday - '
Harry was deeply thankful that Professor Sprout ushered them into greenhou
se three at that point, forcing Ernie to abandon his recital.
Meanwhile, Draco Malfoy had found a different way to induce panic.
'Of course, it's not what you know,' he was heard to tell Crabbe and Goyle
loudly outside Potions a few days before the exams were to start, 'it's who y
ou know. Now, Father's been friendly with the head of the Wizarding Examinatio
ns Authority for years - old Griselda Marchbanks - we've had her round for din
ner and everthing . . .'
'Do you think that's true?' Hermione whispered in alarm to Harry and Ron.
'Nothing we can do about it if it is,' said Ron gloomily.
'I don't think it's true,' said Neville quietly from behind them. 'Because
Griselda Marchbanks is a friend of my gran's, and she's never mentioned the M
alfoy's.'
'What's she like, Neville?' asked Hermione at once. 'Is she strict?'
'Bit like Gran, really,' said Neville in a subdued voice.
'Knowing her won't hurt your chances, though, will it?' Ron told him encou
ragingly.
'Oh, I don't think it will make any difference,' said Neville, still more
miserably. 'Gran's always telling Professor Marchbanks I'm not as good as my d
ad . . . well . . . you saw what she's like at St Mungo's
Neville looked fixedly at the floor. Harry, Ron and Hermione glanced at ea
ch other, but didn't know what to say. It was the first time Neville had ackno
wledged that they had met at the wizarding hospital.
Meanwhile, a flourishing black-market trade in aids to concentration, ment
al agility and wakefulness had sprung up among the fifth- and seventh-years. H
arry and Ron were much tempted by the bottle of Baruffio's Brain Elixir offere
d to them by Ravenclaw sixth-year Eddie Carmichael, who swore it was solely re
sponsible for the nine 'Outstanding' OWLs he had gained the previous summer an
d was offering a whole pint for a mere twelve Galleons. Ron assured Harry he w
ould reimburse him for his half the moment he left Hogwarts and got a job, but
before they could close the deal, Hermione had confiscated the bottle from Ca
rmichael and poured the contents down a toilet.
'Hermione, we wanted to buy that!' shouted Ron.
'Don't be stupid,' she snarled. 'You might as well take Harold Dingle's po
wdered dragon claw and have done with it.'
'Dingle's got powdered dragon claw?' said Ron eagerly.
'Not any more,' said Hermione. 'I confiscated that, too. None of these thi
ngs actually work, you know.'
'Dragon claw does work!' said Ron. 'It's supposed to be incredible, really
gives your brain a boost, you come over all cunning for a few hours - Hermion
e, let me have a pinch, go on, it can't hurt - '
This stuff can,' said Hermione grimly. 'I've had a look at it, and it's ac
tually dried Doxy droppings.'
This information took the edge off Harry and Ron's desire for brain stimul
ants.
They received their examination timetables and details of the procedure fo
r OWLs during their next Transfiguration lesson.
'As you can see,' Professor McGonagall told the class as they copied down
the dates and times of their exams from the blackboard, 'your OWLs are spread
over two successive weeks. You will sit the theory papers in the mornings and
the practice in the afternoons. Your practical Astronomy examination will, of
course, take place at night.
'Now, I must warn you that the most stringent anti-cheating charms have be
en applied to your examination papers. Auto-Answer Quills are banned from the
examination hall, as are Remembralls, Detachable Cribbing Cuffs and Self-Corre
cting Ink. Every year, I am afraid to say, seems to harbour at least one stude
nt who thinks that he or she can get around the Wizarding Examinations Authori
ty's rules. I can only hope that it is nobody in Gryffindor. Our new - Headmis
tress - ' Professor McGonagall pronounced the word with the same look on her f
ace that Aunt Petunia had whenever she was contemplating a particularly stubbo
rn bit of dirt '- has asked the Heads of House to tell their students that che
ating will be punished most severely - because, of course, your examination re
sults will reflect upon the Headmistress's new regime at the school - '
Professor McGonagall gave a tiny sigh; Harry saw the nostrils of her sharp
nose flare.
' - however, that is no reason not to do your very best. You have your own
futures to think about.'
'Please, Professor,' said Hermione, her hand in the air, 'when will we fin
d out our results?'
'An owl will be sent to you some time in July,' said Professcr McGonagall.
'Excellent,' said Dean Thomas in an audible whisper, 'so we don't have to
worry about it till the holidays.'
Harry imagined sitting in his bedroom in Privet Drive in six weeks' time,
waiting for his OWL results. Well, he thought dully', at least he would be sur
e of one bit of post that summer.
Their first examination, Theory of Charms, was scheduled for Monday mornin
g. Harry agreed to test Hermione after lunch on Sunday, but regretted it almos
t at once; she was very agitated and kept snatching the book back from him to
check that she had got the answer completely right, finally hitting him hard o
n the nose with the sharp edge of Achievements in Charming.
'Why don't you just do it yourself?' he said firmly, handing the book back
to her, his eyes watering.
Meanwhile, Ron was reading two years' worth of Charms notes with his finge
rs in his ears, his lips moving soundlessly; Seamus Finnigan was lying flat on
his back on the floor, reciting the definition of a Substantive Charm while D
ean checked it against The Standard Book of Spells, Grade 5; and Parvati and L
avender, who were practising basic Locomotion Charms, were making their pencil
-cases race each other around the edge of the table.
Dinner was a subdued affair that night. Harry and Ron did not talk much, b
ut ate with gusto, having studied hard all day. Hermione, on the other hand, k
ept putting down her knife and fork and diving under the table for her bag, fr
om which she would seize a book to check some fact or figure. Ron was just tel
ling her that she ought to eat a decent meal or she would not sleep that night
, when her fork slid from her limp fingers and landed with a loud tinkle on he
r plate.
'Oh, my goodness,' she said faintly, staring into the Entrance Hall. 'Is t
hat them? Is that the examiners?'
Harry and Ron whipped around on their bench. Through the doors to the Grea
t Hall they could see Umbridge standing with a small group of ancient-looking
witches and wizards. Umbridge, Harry was pleased to see, looked rather nervous
.
'Shall we go and have a closer look?' said Ron.
Harry and Hermione nodded and they hastened towards the double doors into
the Entrance Hall, slowing down as they stepped over the threshold to walk sed
ately past the examiners. Harry thought Professor Marchbanks must be the tiny,
stooped witch with a face so lined it looked as though it had been draped in
cobwebs; Umbridge was speaking to her deferentially. Professor Marchbanks seem
ed to be a little deaf; she was answering Professor Umbridge very loudly consi
dering they were only a foot apart.
'Journey was fine, journey was fine, we've made it plenty of times before!
' she said impatiently. 'Now, I haven't heard from Dumbledore lately!' she add
ed, peering around the Hall as though hopeful he might suddenly emerge from a
broom cupboard. 'No idea where he is, I suppose?'
'None at all,' said Umbridge, shooting a malevolent look at Harry, Ron and
Hermione, who were now dawdling around the foot of the stairs as Ron pretende
d to do up his shoelace. 'But I daresay the Ministry of Magic will track him d
own soon enough.'
'I doubt it,' shouted tiny Professor Marchbanks, 'not it Dumbledore doesn'
t want to be found! I should know . . . examined him personally in Transfigura
tion and Charms when he did NEWTs . . . did things with a wand I'd never seen
before.'
'Yes . . . well . . .' said Professor Umbridge as Harry, Ron and Hermione
dragged their feet up the marble staircase as slowly as they dared, 'let me sh
ow you to the staff room. I daresay you'd like a cup of tea after your journey
.'
It was an uncomfortable sort of an evening. Everyone was trying to do some
last-minute revising but nobody seemed to be getting very far. Harry went to
bed early but then lay awake for what felt like hours. He remembered his caree
rs consultation and McGonagall's furious declaration that she would help him b
ecome an Auror if it was the last thing she did. He wished he had expressed a
more achievable ambition now that exam time was here. He knew he was not the o
nly one lying awake, but none of the others in the dormitory spoke and finally
, one by one, they fell asleep.
None of the fifth-years talked very much at breakfast next day, either: Pa
rvati was practising incantations under her breath while the salt cellar in fr
ont of her twitched; Hermione was rereading Achievements in Charming so fast t
hat her eyes appeared blurred; and Neville kept dropping his knife and fork an
d knocking over the marmalade.
Once breakfast was over, the fifth- and seventh-years milled around in the
Entrance Hall while the other students went off to lessons; then, at half pas
t nine, they were called forwards class by class to re-enter the Great Hall, w
hich had been rearranged exactly as Harry had seen it in the Pensieve when his
father, Sirius and Snape had been taking their OWLs; the four house tables ha
d been removed and replaced instead with many tables for one, all facing the s
taff-table end of the Hall where Professor McGonagall stood facing them. When
they were all seated and quiet, she said, 'You may begin,' and turned over an
enormous hour-glass on the desk beside her, on which there were also spare qui
lls, ink bottles and rolls of parchment.
Harry turned over his paper, his heart thumping hard - three rows to his r
ight and four seats ahead Hermione was already scribbling - and lowered his ey
es to the first question: a) Give the incantation and b) describe the wand mov
ement required to make objects fly.
Harry had a fleeting memory of a club soaring high into the air and landin
g loudly on the thick skull of a troll . . . smiling slightly, he bent over th
e paper and began to write.
*
'Well, it wasn't too bad, was it?' asked Hermione anxiously in the Entrance Ha
ll two hours later, still clutching the exam paper. 'I'm not sure I did myself
justice on Cheering Charms, I just ran out of time. Did you put in the counte
r-charm for hiccoughs? I wasn't sure whether I ought to, it felt like too much
- and on question twenty-three - '
'Hermione,' said Ron sternly, 'we've been through this before . . . we're
not going through every exam afterwards, it's bad enough doing them once.'
The fifth-years ate lunch with the rest of the school (the four house tabl
es had reappeared for the lunch hour), then they trooped off into the small ch
amber beside the Great Hall, where they were to wait until called for their pr
actical examination. As small groups of students were called forwards in alpha
betical order, those left behind muttered incantations and practised wand move
ments, occasionally poking each other in the back or eye by mistake.
Hermione's name was called. Trembling, she kit the chamber with Anthony Go
ldstein, Gregory Goyle and Daphne Greengrass. Students who had already been te
sted did not return afterwards, so Harry and Ron had no idea how Hermione had
done.
'She'll be fine, remember she got a hundred and twelve per cent on one of
our Charms tests?' said Ron.
Ten minutes later, Professor Flitwick called, 'Parkinson, Pansy - Patil, P
adma - Patil, Parvati - Potter. Harry.'
'Good luck,' said Ron quietly. Harry walked into the Great Hall, clutching
his wand so tightly his hand shook.
'Professor Tofty is free, Potter,' squeaked Professor Flitwick, who was st
anding just inside the door. He pointed Harry towards what looked like the ver
y oldest and baldest examiner who was sitting behind a small table in a far co
rner, a short distance from Professor Marchbanks, who was halfway through test
ing Draco Malfoy.
'Potter, is it?' said Professor Tofty, consulting his notes and peering ov
er his pince-nez at Harry as he approached. 'The famous Potter?'
Out of the corner of his eye, Harry distinctly saw Malfoy throw a scathing
look over at him; the wine-glass Malfoy had been levitating fell to the floor
and smashed. Harry could not suppress a grin; Professor Tofty smiled back at
him encouragingly.
That's it,' he said in his quavery old voice, 'no need to be nervous. Now,
if I could ask you to take this egg cup and make it do some cartwheels for me
.'
On the whole, Harry thought it went rather well. His Levitation Charm was
certainly much better than Malfoy's had been, though he wished he had not mixe
d up the incantations for Colour Change and Growth Charms, so that the rat he
was supposed to be turning orange swelled shockingly and was the size of a bad
ger before Harry could rectify his mistake. He was glad Hermione had not been
in the Hall at the time and neglected to mention it to her afterwards. He coul
d tell Ron, though; Ron had caused a dinner plate to mutate into a large mushr
oom and had no idea how it had happened.
There was no time to relax that night; they went straight to the common ro
om after dinner and submerged themselves in revision for Transfiguration next
day; Harry went to bed with his head buzzing with complex spell models and the
ories.
He forgot the definition of a Switching Spell during his written paper nex
t morning but thought his practical could have been a lot worse. At least he m
anaged to Vanish the whole of his iguana, whereas poor Hannah Abbott lost her
head completely at the next table and somehow managed to multiply her ferret i
nto a flock of flamingos, causing the examination to be halted for ten minute;
while the birds were captured and carried out of the Hall.
They had their Herbology exam on Wednesday (other than a small bite from a
Fanged Geranium, Harry felt he had done reasonably well); and then, on Thursd
ay, Deience Against the Dark Arts. Here, tor the first time, Harry felt sure h
e had passed. He had no problem with any of the written questions and took par
ticular pleasure, during the practical examination, in performing all the coun
ter-jinxes and defensive spells right in front of Umbridge, who was watching c
oolly from near the doors into the Entrance Hall.
'Oh, bravo!' cried Professor Tolty, who was examining Harry again, when Ha
rry demonstrated a perfect Boggart banishing spell. 'Very good indeed! Well, I
think that's all, Potter . . . unless . . .'
He leaned forwards a little.
'I heard, from my dear friend Tiberius Ogden, that you can produce a Patro
nus? For a bonus point . . . ?'
Harry raised his wand, looked directly at Umbridge and imagined her being
sacked.
'Expecto patronum!'
His silver stag erupted from the end of his wand and cantered the length o
f the Hall. All of the examiners looked around to watch its progress and when
it dissolved into silver mist Professor Tofty clapped his veined and knotted h
ands enthusiastically.
'Excellent!' he said. 'Very well, Potter, you may go!'
As Harry passed Umbridge beside the door, their eyes met. There was a nast
y smile playing around her wide, slack mouth, but he did not care. Unless he w
as very much mistaken (and he was not planning on telling anybody, in case he
was), he had just achieved an 'Outstanding' OWL.
On Friday, Harry and Ron had a day off while Hermione sat her Ancient Rune
s exam, and as they had the whole weekend in front of them they permitted them
selves a break from revision. They stretched and yawned beside the open window
, through which warm summer air was wafting as they played wizard chess. Harry
could see Hagrid in the distance, teaching a class on the edge of the Forest.
He was trying to guess what creatures they were examining - he thought it mus
t be unicorns, because the boys seemed to be standing back a little - when the
portrait hole opened and Hermione clambered in, looking thoroughly bad-temper
ed.
'How were the Runes?' said Ron, yawning and stretching.
'I mis-translated ehwaz,' said Hermione furiously. 'It means partnership,
not defence', I mixed it up with eihwaz.'
'Ah well,' said Ron lazily, 'that's only one mistake, isn't it, you'll sti
ll get - '
'Oh, shut up!' said Hermione angrily. 'It could be the one mistake that ma
kes the difference between a pass and a fail. And what's more, someone's put a
nother Nifiler in Umbridge's office. I don't know how they got it through that
new door, but I just walked past there and Umbridge is shrieking her head off
- by the sound of it, it tried to take a chunk out of her leg - '
'Good,' said Harry and Ron together.
'It is not good!' said Hermione hotly. 'She thinks it's Hagrid doing it, r
emember? And we do not want Hagrid chucked out!'
'He's teaching at the moment; she can't blame him,' said Harry, gesturing
out of the window.
'Oh, you're so naive sometimes, Harry. You really think Umbridge will wait
for proof?' said Hermione, who seemed determined to be in a towering temper,
and she swept off towards the girls' dormitories, banging the door behind her.
'Such a lovely, sweet-tempered girl,' said Ron, very quietly, prodding his
queen forward to beat up one of Harry's knights.
Hermione's bad mood persisted for most of the weekend, though Harry and Ro
n found it quite easy to ignore as they spent most of Saturday and Sunday revi
sing for Potions on Monday, the exam which Harry had been looking forward to l
east - and which he was sure would be the downfall of his ambitions to become
an Auror. Sure enough, he found the written paper difficult, though he thought
he might have got full marks on the question about Polyjuice Potion; he could
describe its effects accurately, having taken it illegally in his second year
.
The afternoon practical was not as dreadful as he had expected, it to be.
With Snape absent from the proceedings, he found that he was much more relaxed
than he usually was while making potions. Neville, who was sitting very near
Harry, also looked happier than Harry had ever seen him during a Potions class
. When Professor Marchbanks said, 'Step away from your cauldrons, please, the
examination is over,' Harry corked his sample flask feeling that he might not
have achieved a good grade but he had, with luck, avoided a fail.
'Only four exams left,' said Parvati Patil wearily as they headed back to
Gryffindor common room.
'Only!' said Hermione snappishly. 'I've got Arithmancy and it's probably t
he toughest subject there is!'
Nobody was foolish enough to snap back, so she was unable to vent her sple
en on any of them and was reduced to telling off some first-years for giggling
too loudly in the common room.
Harry was determined to perform well in Tuesday's Care of Magical Creature
s exam so as not to let Hagrid down. The practical examination took place in t
he afternoon on the lawn on the edge of the Forbidden Forest, where students w
ere required to correctly identify the Knarl hidden among a dozen hedgehogs (t
he trick was to offer them all milk in turn: Knarls, highly suspicious creatur
es whose quills had many magical properties, generally went berserk at what th
ey saw as an attempt to poison them); then demonstrate correct handling of a B
owtruckle; feed and clean out a Fire Crab without sustaining serious burns; an
d choose, from a wide selection of food, the diet they would give a sick unico
rn.
Harry could see Hagrid watching anxiously out of his cabin window. When Ha
rry's examiner, a plump little witch this time, smiled at him and told him he
could leave, Harry gave Hagrid a fleeting thumbs-up before heading back to the
castle.
The Astronomy theory paper on Wednesday morning went well enough. Harry wa
s not convinced he had got the names of all Jupiter's moons right, but was at
least confident that none of them was inhabited by mice. They had to wait unti
l evening for their practical Astronomy; the afternoon was devoted instead to
Divination.
Even by Harry's low standards in Divination, the exam went very badly. He
might as well have tried to see moving pictures on the desktop as in the stubb
ornly blank crystal ball; he lost his head completely during tea-leaf reading,
saying it looked to him as though Professor Marchbanks would shortly be meeti
ng a round, dark, soggy stranger, and rounded off the whole fiasco by mixing u
p the life and head lines on her palm and informing her that she ought to have
died the previous Tuesday.
'Well, we were always going to fail that one,' said Ron gloomily as they a
scended the marble staircase. He had just made Harry feel rather better by tel
ling him how he had told the examiner in detail about the ugly man with a wart
on his nose in his crystal ball, only to look up and realise he had been desc
ribing his examiner's reflection.
'We shouldn't have taken the stupid subject in the first place,' said Harr
y.
'Still, at least we can give it up now.'
'Yeah,' said Harry. 'No more pretending we care what happens when Jupiter
and Uranus get too friendly.'
'And from now on, I don't care if my tea-leaves spell die, Ron, die - I'm
just chucking them in the bin where they belong.'
Harry laughed just as Hermione came running up behind them. He stopped lau
ghing at once, in case it annoyed her.
'Well, I think I've done all right in Arithmancy,' she said, and Harry and
Ron both sighed with relief. 'Just time for a quick look over our star-charts
before dinner, then . . .'
When they reached the top of the Astronomy Tower at eleven o'clock, they f
ound a perfect night for stargazing, cloudless and still. The grounds were bat
hed in silvery moonlight and there was a slight chill in the air. Each of them
set up his or her telescope and, when Professor Marchbanks gave the word, pro
ceeded to fill in the blank star-chart they had been given.
Professors Marchbanks and Tofty strolled among them, watching as they ente
red the precise positions of the stars and planets the) were observing. All wa
s quiet except for the rustle of parchment, the occasional creak of a telescop
e as it was adjusted on its stand, and the scribbling of many quills. Half an
hour passed, then ar hour; the little squares of reflected gold light flickeri
ng on the: ground below started to vanish as lights in the castle windows were
extinguished.
As Harry completed the constellation Orion on his chart, however, the fron
t doors of the castle opened directly below the parapet where he was standing,
so that light spilled down the stone steps a little way across the lawn. Harr
y glanced down as he made a slight adjustment to the position of his telescope
and saw five or six elongated shadows moving over the brightly lit grass befo
re the doors swung shut and the lawn became a sea of darkness once more.
Harry put his eye back to his telescope and refocused it, now examining Ve
nus. He looked down at his chart to enter the planet there, but something dist
racted him; pausing with his quill suspended over the parchment, he squinted d
own into the shadowy grounds and saw half a dozen figures walking over the law
n. If they had not been moving, and the moonlight had not been gilding the top
s of their heads, they would have been indistinguishable from the dark ground
on which they walked. Even at this distance, Harry had a funny feeling he reco
gnised the walk of the squattest of them, who seemed to be leading the group.
He could not think why Umbridge would be taking a stroll outside after mid
night, much less accompanied by five others. Then somebody coughed behind him,
and he remembered that he was halfway through an exam. He had quite forgotten
Venus's position. Jamming his eye to his telescope, he found it again and was
once more about to enter it on his chart when, alert for any odd sound, he he
ard a distant knock which echoed through the deserted grounds, followed immedi
ately by the muffled barking of a large dog.
He looked up, his heart hammering. There were lights on in Hagrids windows
and the people he had observed crossing the lawn were now silhouetted against
them. The door opened and he distinctly saw six sharply defined figures walk
over the threshold. The door closed again and there was silence.
Harry felt very uneasy. He glanced around to see whether Ron or Hermione h
ad noticed what he had, but Professor Marchbanks came walking behind him at th
at moment and, not wanting to look as though he was sneaking looks at anyone e
lse's work, Harry hastily bent over his star-chart and pretended to be adding
notes to it while really peering over the top of the parapet towards Hagrid's
cabin. Figures were now moving across the cabin windows, temporarily blocking
the light.
He could feel Professor Marchbanks's eyes on the back of his neck and pres
sed his eye again to his telescope, staring up at the moon though he had marke
d its position an hour ago, but as Professor Marchbanks moved on he heard a ro
ar from the distant cabin that echoed through the darkness right to the top of
the Astronomy Tower. Several of the people around Harry ducked out from behin
d their telescopes and peered instead in the direction of Hagrid's cabin.
Professor Tofty gave another dry little cough.
Try and concentrate, now, boys and girls,' he said softly.
Most people returned to their telescopes. Harry looked to his left. Hermio
ne was gazing transfixed at Hagrid's cabin.
'Ahem - twenty minutes to go,' said Professor Tofty.
Hermione jumped and returned at once to her star-chart; Harry looked down
at his own and noticed that he had mis-labelled Venus as Mars. He bent to corr
ect it.
There was a loud BANG from the grounds. Several people cried 'Ouch!' when
they poked themselves in the face with the ends of their telescopes as they ha
stened to see what was going on below.
Hagrid's door had burst open and by the light flooding out of the cabin th
ey saw him quite clearly, a massive figure roaring and brandishing his fists,
surrounded by six people, all of whom, judging by the tiny threads of red ligh
t they were casting in his direction, seemed to be attempting to Stun him.
'No!' cried Hermione.
'My dear!' said Professor Tofty in a scandalised voice. This is an examina
tion!'
But nobody was paying the slightest attention to their star-charts any mor
e. Jets of red light were still flying about beside Hagrid's cabin, yet someho
w they seemed to be bouncing off him; he was still upright and still, as far a
s Harry could see, fighting. Cries and yells echoed across the grounds; a man
yelled, 'Be reasonable, Hagrid!'
Hagrid roared, 'Reasonable be damned, yeh won' take me like this, Dawlish!
'
Harry could see the tiny outline of Fang, attempting to defend Hagrid, lea
ping repeatedly at the wizards surrounding him until a Stunning Spell caught h
im and he fell to the ground. Hagrid gave a howl of fury, lifted the culprit b
odily from the ground and threw him; the man flew what looked like ten feet an
d did not get up again. Hermione gasped, both hands over her mouth; Harry look
ed round at Ron and saw that he, too, was looking scared. None of them had eve
r seen Hagrid in a real temper before.
'Look!' squealed Parvati, who was leaning over the parapet and pointing to
the foot of the castle where the front doors had opened again; more light was
spilling out on to the dark lawn and a single long black shadow was now rippl
ing across the lawn.
'Now, really!' said Professor Tofty anxiously. 'Only sixteen minutes left,
you know!'
But nobody paid him the slightest attention: they were watching the person
now sprinting towards the battle beside Hagrid's cabin.
'How dare you!' the figure shouted as she ran. 'How dare you!'
'It's McGonagall!' whispered Hermione.
'Leave him alone! Alone, I say!' said Professor McGonagall's voice through
the darkness. 'On what grounds are you attacking him? He has done nothing, no
thing to warrant such - '
Hermione, Parvati and Lavender all screamed. The figures around the cabin
had shot no fewer than lour Stunners at Professor McGonagall. Halfway between
cabin and castle the red beams collided with her; for a moment she looked lumi
nous and glowed an eerie red, then she lifted right off her feet, landed hard
on her back, and moved no more.
'Galloping gargoyles!' shouted Professor Tofty, who also seemed to have fo
rgotten the exam completely. 'Not so much as a warning! Outrageous behaviour!'
'COWARDS!' bellowed Hagrid; his voice carried clearly to the top of the to
wer, and several lights flickered back on inside the castle. 'RUDDY COWARDS! H
AVE SOME O' THAT - AN' THAT - '
'Oh my - ' gasped Hermione.
Hagrid took two massive swipes at his closest attackers; judging by their
immediate collapse, they had been knocked cold. Harry saw Hagrid double over,
and thought he had finally been overcome by a spell. But, on the contrary, nex
t moment Hagrid was standing again with what appeared to be a sack on his back
- then Harry realised that bangs limp body was draped around his shoulders.
'Get him, get him!' screamed Umbridge, but her remaining helper seemed hig
hly reluctant to go within reach of Hagrid's fists; indeed, he was backing awa
y so fast he tripped over one of his unconscious colleagues and fell over. Hag
rid had turned and begun to run with Fang still hung around his neck. Umbridge
sent one last Stunning Spell after him but it missed; and Hagrid, running ful
l-pelt towards the distant gates, disappeared into the darkness.
There was a long minute's quivering silence as everybody gazed open-mouthe
d into the grounds. Then Professor Tofty's voice said feebly, 'Um . . . five m
inutes to go, everybody.'
Though he had only filled in two-thirds of his chart, Harry was desperate
for the exam to end. When it came at last he, Ron and Hermione forced their te
lescopes haphazardly back into their holders and dashed back down the spiral s
taircase. None of the students were going to bed; they were all talking loudly
and excitedly at the foot of the stairs about what they had witnessed.
That evil woman!' gasped Hermione, who seemed to be having difficulty talk
ing due to rage. Trying to sneak up on Hagrid in the dead of night!'
'She clearly wanted to avoid another scene like Trelawney's,' said Ernie M
acmillan sagely, squeezing over to join them.
'Hagrid did well, didn't he?' said Ron, who looked more alarmed than impre
ssed. 'How come all the spells bounced off him?'
'It'll be his giant blood,' said Hermione shakily. 'Its very hard to Stun
a giant, they're like trolls, really tough . . . but poor Professor McGonagall
. . . four Stunners straight in the chest and she's net exactly young, is she
?'
'Dreadful, dreadful,' said Ernie, shaking his head pompously. 'Well, I'm o
ff to bed. Night, all.'
People around them were drifting away, still talking excitedly about what
they had just seen.
'At least they didn't get to take Hagrid off to Azkaban,' said Ron. 'I 'sp
ect he's gone to join Dumbledore, hasn't he?'
'I suppose so,' said Hermione, who looked tearful. 'Oh, this is awful, I r
eally thought Dumbledore would be back before long, but now we've lost Hagrid
too.'
They traipsed back to the Gryffindor common room to find it full. The comm
otion out in the grounds had woken several people, who had hastened to rouse t
heir friends. Seamus and Dean, who had arrived ahead of Harry, Ron and Hermion
e, were now telling everyone what they had seen and heard from the top of the
Astronomy Tower.
'But why sack Hagrid now?' asked Angelina Johnson, shaking her head. 'It's
not like Trelawney; he's been teaching much better than usual this year!'
'Urnbridge hates part-humans,' said Hermione bitterly, flopping down into
an armchair. 'She was always going to try and get Hagrid out.'
'And she thought Hagrid was putting Nifflers in her office,' piped up Kati
e Bell.
'Oh, blimey,' said Lee Jordan, covering his mouth. 'It's me who's been put
ting the Nifflers in her office. Fred and George left me a couple; I've been l
evitating them in through her window.'
'She'd have sacked him anyway,' said Dean. 'He was too close to Dumbledore
.'
That's true,' said Harry, sinking into an armchair beside Hermione's.
'I just hope Professor McGonagall's all right,' said Lavender tearfully.
They carried her back up to the castle, we watched through the dormitory w
indow,' said Colin Creevey. 'She didn't look very well.'
'Madam Pomfrey will sort her out,' said Alicia Spinnet firmly. 'She's neve
r failed yet.'
It was nearly four in the morning before the common room cleared. Harry fe
lt wide awake; the image of Hagrid sprinting away into the dark was haunting h
im; he was so angry with Umbridge he could not think of a punishment bad enoug
h for her, though Ron's suggestion of having her fed to a box of starving Blas
t-Ended Skrewts had its merits. He fell asleep contemplating hideous revenges
and arose from bed three hours later feeling distinctly unrested.
Their final exam, History of Magic, was not to take place until that after
noon. Harry would very much have liked to go back to bed after breakfast, but
he had been counting on the morning for a spot of last-minute revision, so ins
tead he sat with his head in his hands by the common-room window, trying hard
not to doze off as he read through some of the three-and-a-half-feet-high stac
k of notes that Hermione had lent him.
The fifth-years entered the Great Hall at two o'clock and took their place
s in front of their face-down examination papers. Harry felt exhausted. He jus
t wanted this to be over, so that he could go and sleep; then tomorrow, he and
Ron were going to go down to the Quidditch pitch - he was going to have a fly
on Ron's broom - and savour their freedom from revision.
Turn over your papers,' said Professor Marchbanks from the front of the Ha
ll, flicking over the giant hour-glass. 'You may begin '
Harry stared fixedly at the first question. It was several seconds before
it occurred to him that he had not taken in a word of it; there was a wasp buz
zing distractingly against one of the high windows. Slowly, tortuously, he at
last began to write an answer.
He was finding it very difficult to remember names and kept confusing date
s. He simply skipped question four (In your opinion, did wand legislation cont
ribute to, or lead to better control of, goblin riots of the eighteenth centur
y?), thinking that he would go back to it if he had time at the end. He had a
stab at question five (How was the Statute of Secrecy breached in 1749 and wha
t measures were introduced to prevent a recurrence?) but had a nagging suspici
on that he had missed several important points; he had a feeling vampires had
come into the story somewhere.
He looked ahead for a question he could definitely answer and his eyes ali
ghted upon number ten: Describe the circumstances that led to the formation of
the International Confederation of Wizards and explain why the warlocks of Li
echtenstein refused to join.
I know this, Harry thought, though his brain felt torpid and slack. He cou
ld visualise a heading, in Hermione's handwriting: The formation of the Intern
ational Confederation of Wizards . . . he had read those notes only this morni
ng.
He began to write, looking up now and again to check the large hour-glass
on the desk beside Professor Marchbanks. He was sitting right behind Parvati P
atil, whose long dark hair fell below the back of her chair. Once or twice he
found himself staring at the tiny golden lights that glistened in it when she
moved her head slightly, and had to give his own head a little shake to clear
it.
. . . the first Supreme Mugwump of the International Confederation of Wiza
rds was Pierre Bonaccord, hut his appointment was contested by the wizarding c
ommunity of Liechtenstein, because - '
All around Harry quills were scratching on parchment like scurrying, burro
wing rats. The sun was very hot on the back of his head. What was it that Bona
ccord had done to offend the wizards of Liechtenstein? Harry had a feeling it
had something to do with trolls . . . he gazed blankly at the back of Parvati'
s head again. If he could only perform Legilimency and open a window in the ba
ck of her head and see what it was about trolls that had caused the breach bet
ween Pierre Bonaccord and Liechtenstein . . .
Harry closed his eyes and buried his face in his hands, so that the glowin
g red of his eyelids grew dark and cool. Bonaccord had wanted to stop troll-hu
nting and give the trolls rights . . . but Liechtenstein was having problems w
ith a tribe of particularly vicious mountain trolls . . . that was it.
He opened his eyes; they stung and watered at the sight of the blazing whi
te parchment. Slowly, he wrote two lines about the foils, then read through wh
at he had done so far. It did not seem very informative or detailed, yet he wa
s sure Hermione's notes on the Confederation had gone on for pages and pages.
He closed his eyes again, trying to see them, trying to remember . . . the
Confederation had met for the first time in France, yes, he had written that
already . . .
Goblins had tried to attend and been ousted . . . he had written that, too
. . .
And nobody from Liechtenstein had wanted to come . . .
Think, he told himself, his face in his hands, while all around him quills
scratched out never-ending answers and the sand trickled through the hour-gla
ss at the front . . .
He was walking along the cool, dark corridor to the Department of Mysterie
s again, walking with a firm and purposeful tread, breaking occasionally into
a run, determined to reach his destination at last . . . the black door swung
open for him as usual, and here he was in the circular room with its many door
s . . .
Straight across the stone floor and through the second door . . . patches
of dancing light on the walls and floor and that odd mechanical clicking, but
no time to explore, he must hurry . . .
He jogged the last few feet to the third door, which swung open just like
the others . . .
Once again he was in the cathedral-sized room full of shelves and glass sp
heres . . . his heart was beating very fast now . . . he was going to get ther
e this time . . . when he reached number ninety-seven he turned left and hurri
ed along the aisle between two rows . . .
But there was a shape on the floor at the very end, a black shape moving o
n the floor like a wounded animal . . . Harry's stomach contracted with fear .
. . with excitement . . .
A voice issued from his own mouth, a high, cold voice empty of any human k
indness . . .
'Take it for me . . . lift it down, now . . . I cannot touch it . . . but
you can . . .'
The black shape on the floor shifted a little. Harry saw a long-fingered w
hite hand clutching a wand rise at the end of his own arm . . . heard the high
, cold voice say 'Crucio!'
The man on the floor let out a scream of pain, attempted to stand but fell
back, writhing. Harry was laughing. He raised his wand, the curse lifted and
the figure groaned and became motionless.
'Lord Voldemort is waiting . . .'
Very slowly, his arms trembling, the man on the ground raised his shoulder
s a few inches and lifted his head. His face was bloodstained and gaunt, twist
ed in pain yet rigid with defiance . . .
'You'll have to kill me,' whispered Sirius.
'Undoubtedly I shall in the end,' said the cold voice. 'But you will fetch
it for me first, Black . . . you think you have felt pain thus far? Think aga
in . . . we have hours ahead of us and nobody to hear you scream . . .'
But somebody screamed as Voldemort lowered his wand again; somebody yelled
and fell sideways off a hot desk on to the cold stone floor; Harry awoke as h
e hit the ground, still yelling, his scar on fire, as the Great Hall erupted a
ll around him.
- CHAPTER THIRTY-TWO -
Out of the Fire
'I'm not going . . . I don't need the hospital wing . . . I don't want . . .'
He was gibbering as he tried to pull away from Professor Tofty, who was lo
oking at Harry with much concern after helping him out into the Entrance Hall
with the students all around them staring.
I'm - I'm fine, sir,' Harry stammered, wiping the sweat from his face. 'Re
ally . . . I just fell asleep . . . had a nightmare . . .'
'Pressure of examinations!' said the old wizard sympathetically, patting H
arry shakily on the shoulder. 'It happens, young man, it happens! Now, a cooli
ng drink of water, and perhaps you will be ready to return to the Great Hall?
The examination is nearly over, but you may be able to round off your last ans
wer nicely?'
'Yes,' said Harry wildly. 'I mean . . . no . . . I've done - done z.s much
as I can, I think . . ."
'Very well, very well,' said the old wizard gently. 'I shall go and collec
t your examination paper and I suggest that you go and have a nice lie down.'
'I'll do that,' said Harry, nodding vigorously. 'Thanks very much.'
The second that the old man's heels disappeared over the threshold into th
e Great Hall, Harry ran up the marble staircase, hurtled along the corridors s
o fast the portraits he passed muttered reproaches, up more flights of stairs,
and finally burst like a hurricane through the double doors of the hospital w
ing, causing Madam Pomfrey - who had been spooning some bright blue liquid int
o Montagues open mouth - to shriek in alarm.
'Potter, what do you think you're doing?'
'I need to see Professor McGonagall,' gasped Harry, the breath tearing his
lungs. 'Now . . . it's urgent!'
'She's not here, Potter,' said Madam Pomfrey sadly. 'She was transferred t
o St Mungo's this morning. Four Stunning Spells straight to the chest at her a
ge? It's a wonder they didn't kill her.'
'She's . . . gone?' said Harry, shocked.
The bell rang just outside the dormitory and he heard the usual distant ru
mbling of students starting to flood out into the corridors above and below hi
m. He remained quite still, looking at Madam Pomfrey. Terror was rising inside
him.
There was nobody left to tell. Dumbledore had gone, Hagrid had gone, but h
e had always expected Professor McGonagall to be there, irascible and inflexib
le, perhaps, but always dependably, solidly present . . .
'I don't wonder you're shocked, Potter,' said Madam Pomfrey, with a kind o
f fierce approval in her face. 'As if one of them could have Stunned Minerva M
cGonagall face-on by daylight! Cowardice, that's what it was . . . despicable
cowardice . . . if I wasn't worried what would happen to you students without
me, I'd resign in protest.'
'Yes,' said Harry blankly.
He wheeled around and strode blindly from the hospital wing into the teemi
ng corridor where he stood, buffeted by the crowd, panic expanding inside him
like poison gas so that his head swam and he could not think what to do . . .
Ron and Hermione, said a voice in his head.
He was running again, pushing students out of the way, oblivious to their
angry protests. He sprinted, back down two floors and was at the top of the ma
rble staircase when he saw them hurrying towards him.
'Harry!' said Hermione at once, looking very frightened. 'What happened? A
re you all right? Are you ill?'
'Where have you been?' demanded Ron.
'Come with me,' Harry said quickly. 'Come on, I've got to tell you somethi
ng.'
He led them along the first-floor corridor, peering through doorways, and
at last found an empty classroom into which he dived, closing the door behind
Ron and Hermione the moment they were inside, and leaned against it, facing th
em.
'Voldemorts got Sirius.'
'What?'
'How d'you - ?'
'Saw it. Just now. When I fell asleep in the exam.'
'But - but where? How?' said Hermione, whose face was white.
'I dunno how,' said Harry. 'But I know exactly where. There's a room in th
e Department of Mysteries full of shelves covered in these little glass balls
and they're at the end of row ninety-seven . . . he's trying to use Sirius to
get whatever it is he wants from in there . . . he's torturing him . . . says
he'll end by killing him!'
Harry found his voice was shaking, as were his knees. He moved over to a d
esk and sat down on it, trying to master himself.
'How're we going to get there?' he asked them.
There was a moment's silence. Then Ron said, 'G-get there?'
'Get to the Department of Mysteries, so we can rescue Sirius!' Harry said
loudly.
'But - Harry . . .' said Ron weakly.
'What? What?' said Harry.
He could not understand why they were both gaping at him as though he was
asking them something unreasonable.
'Harry,' said Hermione in a rather frightened voice, 'er . . . how . . . h
ow did Voldemort get into the Ministry of Magic without anybody realising he w
as there?'
'How do I know?' bellowed Harry. The question is how we're going to get in
there!'
'But . . . Harry, think about this,' said Hermione, taking a step towards
him, 'its five o'clock in the afternoon . . . the Ministry of Magic must be fu
ll of workers . . . how would Voldemort and Sirius have got in without being s
een? Harry . . . they're probably the two most wanted wizards in the world . .
. you think they could get into a building full of Aurors undetected?'
'I dunno, Voldemort used an Invisibility Cloak or something!' Harry shoute
d. 'Anyway, the Department of Mysteries has always been completely empty whene
ver I've been - '
'You've never been there, Harry,' said Hermione quietly. 'You've dreamed a
bout the place, that's all.'
'They're not normal dreams!' Harry shouted in her face, standing up and ta
king a step closer to her in turn. He wanted to shake her. 'How d'you explain
Ron's dad then, what was all that about, how come I knew what had happened to
him?'
'He's got a point,' said Ron quietly, looking at Hermione.
'But this is just - just so unlikely!' said Hermione desperately. 'Harry,
how on earth could Voldemort have got hold of Sirius when he's been in Grimmau
ld Place all the time?'
'Sirius might've cracked and just wanted some fresh air,' said Ron, soundi
ng worried. 'He's been desperate to get out of that house for ages - '
'But why,' Hermione persisted, 'why on earth would Voldemort want to use S
irius to get the weapon, or whatever the thing is?'
'I dunno, there could be loads of reasons!' Harry yelled at her. 'Maybe Si
rius is just someone Voldemort doesn't care about seeing hurt - '
'You know what, I've just thought of something,' said Ron in a hushed voic
e. 'Sirius's brother was a Death Eater, wasn't he? Maybe he told Sirius the se
cret of how to get the weapon!'
'Yeah - and that's why Dumbledore's been so keen to keep Sirius locked up
all the time!' said Harry.
'Look, I'm sorry,' cried Hermione, 'but neither of you is making sense, an
d we've got no proof for any of this, no proof Voldemort and Sirius are even t
here - '
'Hermione, Harry's seen them!' said Ron, rounding on her.
'OK,' she said, looking frightened yet determined, 'I've just got to say t
his - '
'What?'
'You . . . this isn't a criticism, Harry! But you do . . . sort of . . . I
mean - don't you think you've got a bit of a - a - saving-people thing?' she
said.
He glared at her.
'And what's that supposed to mean, a "saving-people thing"?'
'Well . . . you . . .' she looked more apprehensive than ever. 'I mean . .
. last year, for instance . . . in the lake . . . during the Tournament . . .
you shouldn't have . . . I mean, you didn't need to save that little Delacour
girl . . . you got a bit . . . carried away . . .'
A wave of not, prickly anger swept through Harry's body; now could she rem
ind him of that blunder now?
'I mean, it was really great of you and everything,' said Hermione quickly
, looking positively petrified at the look on Harry's face, 'everyone thought
it was a wonderful thing to do -
That's funny,' said Harry through gritted teeth, 'because I definitely rem
ember Ron saying I'd wasted time acting the hero . . . is that what you think
this is? You reckon I want to act the hero again?'
'No, no, no!' said Hermione, looking aghast. That's not what I mean at all
!'
'Well, spit out what you've got to say, because we're wasting time here!'
Harry shouted.
I'm trying to say - Voldemort knows you, Harry! He took Ginny down into th
e Chamber of Secrets to lure you there, it's the kind of thing he does, he kno
ws you're the - the sort of person who'd go to Sirius's aid! What if he's just
trying to get you into the Department of Myst - ?'
'Hermione, it doesn't matter if he's done it to get me there or not - they
've taken McGonagall to St Mungo's, there isn't anyone from the Order left at
Hogwarts who we can tell, and if we don't go, Sirius is dead!'
'But Harry - what if your dream was - was just that, a dream?'
Harry let out a roar of frustration. Hermione actually stepped back from h
im, looking alarmed.
'You don't get it!' Harry shouted at her, 'I'm not having nightmares, I'm
not just dreaming! What d'you think all the Occlumency was for, why d'you thin
k Dumbledore wanted me prevented from seeing these things? Because they're REA
L, Hermione - Sirius is trapped, I've seen him. Voldemort's got him, and no on
e else knows, and that means we're the only ones who can save him, and if you
don't want to do it, fine, but I'm going, understand? And if I remember rightl
y, you didn't have a problem with my saving-people thing when it was you I was
saving from the Dementors, or - ' he rounded on Ron - when it was your sister
I was saving from the Basilisk - '
'I never said I had a problem!' said Ron heatedly.
'But Harry, you've just said it,' said Hermione fiercely, 'Dumbledore want
ed you to learn to shut these things out of your mind, if you'd done Occlumenc
y properly you'd never have seen this - '
'IF YOU THINK I'M JUST GOING TO ACT LIKE I HAVEN'T SEEN - '
'Sirius told you there was nothing more important than you learning to clo
se your mind!'
'WELL, I EXPECT HE'D SAY SOMETHING DIFFERENT IF HE KNEW WHAT I'D JUST - '
The classroom door opened. Harry, Ron and Hermione whipped around. Ginny w
alked in, looking curious, closely followed by Luna, who as usual looked as th
ough she had drifted in accidentally.
'Hi,' said Ginny uncertainly. 'We recognised Harry's voice. What are you y
elling about?'
'Never you mind,' said Harry roughly.
Ginny raised her eyebrows.
'There's no need to take that tone with me,' she said coolly, T was only w
ondering whether I could help.'
'Well, you can't,' said Harry shortly.
'You're being rather rude, you know,' said Luna serenely.
Harry swore and turned away. The very last thing he wanted now was a conve
rsation with Luna Lovegood.
'Wait,' said Hermione suddenly. 'Wait . . . Harry, they can help.'
Harry and Ron looked at her.
'Listen,' she said urgently, 'Harry, we need to establish whether Sirius r
eally has left Headquarters.'
'I've told you, I saw - '
'Harry, I'm begging you, please!' said Hermione desperately. 'Please let's
just check that Sirius isn't at home before we go charging off to London. If
we find out he's not there, then I swear I won't try to stop you. I'll come, I
'll d - do whatever it takes to try and save him.'
'Sirius is being tortured NOW!' shouted Harry. 'We haven't got time to was
te.'
'But if this is a trick of Voldemort's, Harry, we've got to check, we've g
ot to.'
'How?' Harry demanded. 'How're we going to check?'
'We'll have to use Umbridge's fire and see if we can contact him, said Her
mione, who looked positively terrified at the thought. 'We'll draw Umbridge aw
ay again, but we'll need lookouts, and that's where we can use Ginny and Luna.
'
Though clearly struggling to understand what was going on, Ginny said imme
diately, 'Yeah, we'll do it,' and Luna said, 'When you say "Sirius", are you t
alking about Stubby Boardman?'
Nobody answered her.
'OK,' Harry said aggressively to Hermione, 'OK, if you can think of a way
of doing this quickly, I'm with you, otherwise I'm going to the Department of
Mysteries right now.'
The Department of Mysteries?' said Luna, looking mildly surprised. 'But ho
w are you going to get there?'
Again, Harry ignored her.
'Right,' said Hermione, twisting her hands together and pacing up and down
between the desks. 'Right . . . well . . . one of us has to go and find Umbri
dge and - and send her off in the wrong direction, keep her away from her offi
ce. They could tell her - I don't know - that Peeves is up to something awful
as usual . . .'
'I'll do it,' said Ron at once. 'I'll tell her Peeves is smashing up the T
ransfiguration department or something, it's miles away from her office. Come
to think of it, I could probably persuade Peeves to do it if I met him on the
way.'
It was a mark of the seriousness of the situation that Hermione made no ob
jection to the smashing up of the Transfiguration department.
'OK,' she said, her brow furrowed as she continued to pace. 'Now, we need
to keep students right away from her office while we force entry, or some Slyt
herin's bound to go and tip her off.
'Luna and I can stand at either end of the corridor," said Ginny promptly,
'and warn people not to go down there because someone's let off a load of Gar
rotting Gas.' Hermione looked surprised at the readiness with which Ginny had
come up with this lie; Ginny shrugged and said, 'Fred and George were planning
to do it before they left.'
'OK,' said Hermione. 'Well then, Harry, you and I will be under the Invisi
bility Cloak and we'll sneak into the office and you can talk to Sirius - '
'He's not there, Hermione!'
'I mean, you can - can check whether Sirius is at home or not while I keep
watch, I don't think you should be in there alone, Lee's already proved the w
indows a weak spot, sending those Nifflers through it.'
Even through his anger and impatience, Harry recognised Hermione's offer t
o accompany him into Umbridge's office as a sign of solidarity and loyalty.
'I . . . OK, thanks,' he muttered.
'Right, well, even if we do all of that, I don't think we're going to be a
ble to bank on more than five minutes,' said Hermione, looking relieved that H
arry seemed to have accepted the plan, 'not with Filch and the wretched Inquis
itorial Squad floating around.'
'Five minutes'll be enough,' said Harry 'C'mon, let's go - '
'Now?' said Hermione, looking shocked.
'Of course now!' said Harry angrily. 'What did you think, we're going to w
ait until after dinner or something? Hermione, Sirius is being tortured right
now!'
'I - oh, all right,' she said desperately. 'You go and get the Invisibilit
y Cloak and we'll meet you at the end of Umbridge's corridor, OK?'
Harry didn't answer, but flung himself out of the room and began to fight
his way through the milling crowds outside. Two floors up he met Seamus and De
an, who hailed him jovially and told him they were planning a dusk-till-dawn e
nd-of-exams celebration in the common room. Harry barely heard them. He scramb
led through the portrait hole while they were still arguing about how many bla
ck-market Butterbeers they would need and was climbing back out of it, the Inv
isibility Cloak and Sirius's knife secure in his bag, before they noticed he h
ad left them.
'Harry, d'you want to chip in a couple of Galleons? Harold Dingle reckons
he could sell us some Firewhisky - '
But Harry was already tearing away back along the corridor, and a couple o
f minutes later was jumping the last few stairs to join Ron, Hermione, Ginny a
nd Luna, who were huddled together at the end of Umbridge's corridor.
'Got it,' he panted. 'Ready to go, then?'
All right, whispered Hermione as a gang of loud sixth-years passed them. '
So Ron - you go and head Umbridge off . . . Ginny, Luna, if you can start movi
ng people out of the corridor . . . Harry and I will get the Cloak on and wait
until the coast is clear . . ."
Ron strode away, his bright-red hair visible right to the end of the passa
ge; meanwhile Ginny's equally vivid head bobbed between the jostling students
surrounding them in the other direction, trailed by. Luna's blonde one.
'Get over here,' muttered Hermione, tugging at Harry's wrist and pulling h
im back into a recess where the ugly stone head of a medieval wizard stood mut
tering to itself on a column. 'Are - are you sure you're OK, Harry? You're sti
ll very pale.'
'I'm fine,' he said shortly, tugging the Invisibility Cloak from out of hi
s bag. In truth, his scar was aching, but not so badly that he thought Voldemo
rt had yet dealt Sirius a fatal blow; it had hurt much worse than this when Vo
ldemort had been punishing Avery . . .
'Here,' he said; he threw the Invisibility Cloak over both of them and the
y stood listening carefully over the Latin mumblings of the bust in front of t
hem.
'You can't come down here!' Ginny was calling to the crowd. 'No, sorry, yo
u're going to have to go round by the swivelling staircase, someone's let off
Garrotting Gas just along here - '
They could hear people complaining; one surly voice said, 'I can't see no
gas.'
That's because it's colourless,' said Ginny in a convincingly exasperated
voice, 'but if you want to walk through it, carry on, then we'll have your bod
y as proof for the next idiot who doesn't believe us.'
Slowly, the crowd thinned. The news about the Garrotting Gas seemed to hav
e spread; people were not coming this way any more. When at last the surroundi
ng area was quite clear, Hermione said quietly, 'I think that's as good as we'
re going to get, Harry - cone on, let's do it.'
They moved forwards, covered by the Cloak. Luna was standing with her back
to them at the far end of the corridor. As they passed Ginny, Hermione whispe
red, 'Good one . . . don't forget the signal.'
'What's the signal?' muttered Harry, as they approached Umbridge's door.
'A loud chorus of "Weasley is our King" if they see Umbridge coming,' repl
ied Hermione, as Harry inserted the blade of Sirius's knife in the crack betwe
en door and wall. The lock clicked open and they entered the office.
The garish kittens were basking in the late-afternoon sunshine that was wa
rming their plates, but otherwise the office was as still and unoccupied as la
st time. Hermione breathed a sigh of relief.
'I thought she might have added extra security after the second Niffler.'
They pulled off the Cloak; Hermione hurried over to the window and stood o
ut of sight, peering down into the grounds with her wand out. Harry dashed ove
r to the fireplace, seized the pot of Floo powder and threw a pinch into the g
rate, causing emerald flames to burst into life there. He knelt down quickly,
thrust his head into the dancing fire and cried, 'Number twelve, Grimmauld Pla
ce!'
His head began to spin as though he had just got off a fairground ride tho
ugh his knees remained firmly planted on the cold office floor. He kept his ey
es screwed up against the whirling ash and when the spinning stopped he opened
them to find himself looking out at the long, cold kitchen of Grimmauld Place
.
There was nobody there. He had expected this, yet was not prepared for the
molten wave of dread and panic that seemed to burst through his stomach at th
e sight of the deserted room.
'Sirius?' he shouted. 'Sirius, are you there?'
His voice echoed around the room, but there was no answer except a tiny sc
uffing sound to the right of the tire.
'Who's there?' he called, wondering whether it was just a mouse.
Kreacher the house-elf crept into view. He looked highly delighted about s
omething, though he seemed to have recently sustained a nasty injury to both h
ands, which were heavily bandaged.
'It's the Potter boys head in the fire,' Kreacher informed the empty kitch
en, stealing furtive, oddly triumphant glances at Harry. 'What has he come for
, Kreacher wonders?'
'Where's Sirius, Kreacher?' Harry demanded.
The house-elf gave a wheezy chuckle.
'Master has gone out, Harry Potter.'
'Where's he gone? Where's he gone, Kreacher?'
Kreacher merely cackled.
'I'm warning you!' said Harry, fully aware that his scope for inflicting p
unishment upon Kreacher was almost non-existent in this position. 'What about
Lupin? Mad-Eye? Any of them, are any of them there?'
'Nobody here but Kreacher!' said the elf gleefully, and turning away from
Harry he began to walk slowly towards the door at the end of the kitchen. 'Kre
acher thinks he will have a little chat with his mistress now, yes, he hasn't
had a chance in a long time, Kreacher's master has been keeping him away from
her - '
'Where has Sirius gone?' Harry yelled after the elf. 'Kreacher, has he gon
e to the Department of Mysteries?'
Kreacher stopped in his tracks. Harry could just make out the back of his
bald head through the forest of chair legs before him.
'Master does not tell poor Kreacher where he is going,' said the elf quiet
ly.
'But you know!' shouted Harry. 'Don't you? You know where he is!'
There was a moment's silence, then the elf let out his loudest cackle yet.
'Master will not come back from the Department of Mysteries!' he said glee
fully. 'Kreacher and his mistress are alone again!'
And he scurried forwards and disappeared through the door to the hall.
'You - '!'
But before he could utter a single curse or insult, Harry felt a great pai
n at the top of his head; he inhaled a lot of ash and, choking, found himself
being dragged backwards through the flames, until with a horrible abruptness h
e was staring up into the wide, pallid face of Professor Umbridge who had drag
ged him backwards out of the fire by the hair and was now bending his neck bac
k as far as it would go, as though she were going to slit his throat.
'You think,' she whispered, bending Harry's neck back even further, so tha
t he was looking up at the ceiling, 'that after two Nifflers
I was going to let one more foul, scavenging little creature enter my offi
ce without my knowledge? I had Stealth Sensoring Spells placed all around my d
oorway after the last one got in, you foolish boy. Take his wand,' she barked
at someone he could not see, and he felt a hand grope inside the chest pocket
of his robes and remove the wand. 'Hers, too.'
Harry heard a scuffle over by the door and knew that Hermione had also jus
t had her wand wrested from her.
'I want to know why you are in my office,' said Umbridge, shaking the fist
clutching his hair so that he staggered.
'I was - trying to get my Firebolt!' Harry croaked.
'Liar.' She shook his head again. 'Your Firebolt is under strict guard in
the dungeons, as you very well know, Potter. You had your head in my fire. Wit
h whom have you been communicating?'
'No one - ' said Harry, trying to pull away from her. He felt several hair
s part company with his scalp.
'Liar!' shouted Umbridge. She threw him from her and he slammed into the d
esk. Now he could see Hermione pinioned against the wall by Millicent Bulstrod
e. Malfoy was leaning on the windowsill, smirking as he threw Harry's wand int
o the air one-handed and caught it again.
There was a commotion outside and several large Slytherins entered, each g
ripping Ron, Ginny, Luna and - to Harry's bewilderment - Neville, who was trap
ped in a stranglehold by Crabbe and looked in imminent danger of suffocation.
All four of them had been gagged.
'Got 'em all,' said Warrington, shoving Ron roughly forwards into the room
. That one,' he poked a thick finger at Neville, 'tried to stop me taking her,
' he pointed at Ginny, who was trying to kick the shins of the large Slytherin
girl holding her, 'so I brought him along too.'
'Good, good,' said Umbridge, watching Ginny's struggles. 'Well, it looks a
s though Hogwarts will shortly be a Weasley-free zone, doesn't it?'
Malfoy laughed loudly and sycophantically. Umbridge gave her wide, complac
ent smile and settled herself into a chintz-covered armchair, blinking up at h
er captives like a toad in a flowerbed.
'So, Potter,' she said. 'You stationed lookouts around my office and you s
ent this buffoon,' she nodded at Ron - Malfoy laughed even louder - 'to tell m
e the poltergeist was wreaking havoc in the Transfiguration department when I
knew perfectly well that he was busy smearing ink on the eyepieces of all the
school telescopes - 'Mr Filch having just informed me so.
'Clearly, it was very important for you to talk to somebody. Was it Albus
Dumbledore? Or the half-breed, Hagrid? I doubt it was Minerva McGonagall, I he
ar she is still too ill to talk to anyone.'
Malfoy and a few of the other members of the Inquisitorial Squad laughed s
ome more at that. Harry found he was so full of rage and hatred he was shaking
.
'It's none of your business who I talk to,' he snarled.
Umbridge's slack face seemed to tighten.
'Very well,' she said in her most dangerous and falsely sweet voice. 'Very
well, Mr Potter . . . I offered you the chance to tell me freely. You refused
. I have no alternative but to force you. Draco
' - fetch Professor Snape.'
Malfoy slowed Harry's wand inside his robes and left the room smirking, bu
t Harry hardly noticed. He had just realised something; he could not believe h
e had been so stupid as to forget it. He had thought that all the members of t
he Order, all those who could help him save Sirius, were gone - but he had bee
n wrong. There was still a member of the Order of the Phoenix at Hogwarts - Sn
ape.
There was silence in the office except for the fidgetings and scufflings r
esulting from the Slytherins' efforts to keep Ron and the others under control
. Ron's lip was bleeding on to Umbridge's carpet as he struggled against Warri
ngton's half-nelson; Ginny was still trying to stamp on the feel of the sixth-
year girl who had both her upper arms in a tight grip; Neville was turning ste
adily more purple in the face while lugging at Crabbe's arms; and Hermione was
attempting, in vain, to throw Millicent Bulstrode off her. Luna, however, sto
od limply by the side of her captor, gazing vaguely out of the window as thoug
h rather bored by the proceedings.
Harry looked back at Umbridge, who was watching him closely. He kept his f
ace deliberately smooth and blank as footsteps were heard in the corridor outs
ide and Draco Malfoy entered the room, closely followed by Snape.
'You wanted to see me, Headmistress?' said Snape, looking around at all th
e pairs of struggling students with an expression of complete indifference.
'Ah, Professor Snape,' said Umbridge, smiling widely and standing up again
. 'Yes, I would like another bottle of Veritaserum, as quick as you can, pleas
e.'
'You took my last bottle to interrogate Potter,' he said, surveying her co
olly through his greasy curtains of black hair. 'Surely you did not use it all
? I told you that three drops would be sufficient.'
Umbridge flushed.
'You can make some more, can't you?' she said, her voice becoming more swe
etly girlish as it always did when she was furious.
'Certainly,' said Snape, his lip curling. 'It takes a full moon-cycle to m
ature, so I should have it ready for you in around a month.'
'A month?' squawked Umbndge, swelling toadishly. 'A month! But I need it t
his evening, Snape! I have just found Potter using my fire to communicate with
a person or persons unknown!'
'Really?' said Snape, showing his first, faint sign of interest as he look
ed round at Harry. 'Well, it doesn't surprise me. Potter has never shown much
inclination to follow school rules.'
His cold, dark eyes were boring into Harry's, who met his gaze unflinching
ly, concentrating hard on what he had seen in his dream, willing Snape to read
it in his mind, to understand . . .
'I wish to interrogate him!' repeated Umbridge angrily, and Snape looked a
way from Harry back into her furiously quivering lace. 'I wish you to provide
me with a potion that will force him to tell me the truth!'
'I have already told you,' said Snape smoothly, 'that I have no further st
ocks of Veritaserum. Unless you wish to poison Potter - 'and I assure you I wo
uld have the greatest sympathy with you if you did - I cannot help you. The on
ly trouble is that most venoms act too fast to give the victim much lime for t
ruth-telling.'
Snape looked back at Harry, who stared at him, frantic to communicate with
out words.
Voldemort's got Sirius in the Department of Mysteries, he thought desperat
ely. Voldemorts got Sirius - '
'You are on probation!' shrieked Professor Umbridge, and Snape looked back
at her, his eyebrows slightly raised. 'You arc being deliberately unhelpful!
I expected better, Lucius Malfoy always speaks most highly of you! Now get out
of my office!'
Snape gave her an ironic bow and turned to leave. Harry knew his last chan
ce of letting the Order know what was going on was walking out of the door.
'He's got Padfoot!' he shouted. 'He's got Padfoot at the place where it's
hidden!'
Snape had stopped with his hand on Umbridge's door handle.
'Padfoot?' cried Professor Umbridge, looking eagerly from Harry to Snape.
'What is Padfoot? Where what is hidden? What does he mean, Snape?'
Snape looked round at Harry. His face was inscrutable. Harry could not tel
l whether he had understood or not, but he did not dare speak more plainly in
front of Umbridge.
'I have no idea,' said Snape coldly. 'Potter, when I want nonsense shouted
at me I shall give you a Babbling Beverage. And Crabbe, loosen your hold a li
ttle. If Longbottom suffocates it will mean a lot of tedious paperwork and I a
m afraid I shall have to mention it on your reference if ever you apply for a
job.'
He closed the door behind him with a snap, leaving Harry in a state of wor
se turmoil than before: Snape had been his very last hope. He looked at Umbrid
ge, who seemed to be feeling the same way; her chest was heaving with rage and
frustration.
'Very well,' she said, and she pulled out her wand. 'Very well . . . I am
left with no alternative . . . this is more than a matter of school discipline
. . . this is an issue of Ministry security . . . yes . . . yes . . .'
She seemed to be talking herself into something. She was shifting her weig
ht nervously from foot to foot, staring at Harry, beating her wand against her
empty palm and breathing heavily As he watched her, Harry felt horribly power
less without his own wand.
'You are forcing me, Potter . . . I do not want to,' said Umbridge, still
moving restlessly on the spot, 'but sometimes circumstances justify the use .
. . I am sure the Minister will understand that I had no choice . . .'
Malfoy was watching her with a hungry expression on his face.
The Cruciatus Curse ought to loosen your tongue,' said Umbridge quietly.
'No!' shrieked Hermione. 'Professor Umbridge - it's illegal.'
But Umbridge took no notice. There was a nasty eager, excited look on her
face that Harry had never seen before. She raised her wand.
The Minister wouldn't want you to break the law, Professor Umbridge!' crie
d Hermione.
'What Cornelius doesn't know won't hurt him,' said Umbridge, who was now p
anting slightly as she pointed her wand at different parts of Harry's body in
turn, apparently trying to decide where it would hurt most. 'He never knew I o
rdered Dementors to go after Potter last summer, but he was delighted to be gi
ven the chance to expel him, all the same.'
'It was you?' gasped Harry. 'You sent the Dementors after me?'
'Somebody had to act,' breathed Umbridge, as her wand came to rest pointin
g directly at Harry's forehead. They were all bleating about silencing you som
ehow - discrediting you - but I was the one who actually did something about i
t . . . only you wriggled out of that one, didn't you, Potter? Not today thoug
h, not now - ' And taking a deep breath, she cried, 'Cruc-
'NO!' shouted Hermione in a cracked voice from behind Millicent Bulstrode.
'No - Harry - we'll have to tell her!'
'No way!' yelled Harry, staring at the little of Hermione he could see.
'We'll have to, Harry, she'll force it out of you anyway, what's . . . wha
t's the point?'
And Hermione began to cry weakly into the back of Millicent Bulstrode's ro
bes. Millicent stopped trying to squash her against the wall immediately and d
odged out of her way looking disgusted.
'Well, well, well!' said Umbridge, looking triumphant. 'Little Miss Questi
on-all is going to give us some answers! Come on then, girl, come on!'
'Er - my - nee - no!' shouted Ron through his gag.
Ginny was staring at Hermione as though she had never seen her before. Nev
ille, still choking for breath, was gazing at her, too. But Harry had just not
iced something. Though Hermione was sobbing desperately into her hands, there
was no trace of a tear.
'I'm - I'm sorry everyone,' said Hermione. 'But - I can't stand it - '
That's right, that's right, girl!' said Umbridge, seizing Hermione by the
shoulders, thrusting her into the abandoned chintz chair and leaning over her.
'Now then . . . with whom was Potter communicating just now?'
'Well,' gulped Hermione into her hands, 'well, he was trying to speak to P
rofessor Dumbledore.'
Ron froze, his eyes wide; Ginny stopped trying to stamp on her Slytherin c
aptor's toes; and even Luna looked mildly surprised. Fortunately, the attentio
n of Umbridge and her minions was focused too exclusively upon Hermione to not
ice these suspicious signs
'Dumbledore?' said Umbridge eagerly. 'You know where Dumbledore is, then?'
'Well . . . no!' sobbed Hermione. 'We've tried the Leaky Cauldron in Diago
n Alley and the Three Broomsticks and even the Hog's Head - '
'Idiot girl - Dumbledore won't be sitting in a pub when the whole Ministry
's looking for him!' shouted Umbridge, disappointment etched in every sagging
line of her face.
'But - but we needed to tell him something important!' wailed Hermione, ho
lding her hands more tightly over her face, not, Harry knew, out of anguish, b
ut to disguise the continued absence of tears.
'Yes?' said Umbridge with a sudden resurgence of excitement. 'What was it
you wanted to tell him?'
'We . . . we wanted to tell him it's r - ready!' choked Hermione.
'What's ready?' demanded Umbridge, and now she grabbed Hermione's shoulder
s again and shook her slightly. 'What's ready, girl?'
The . . . the weapon,' said Hermione.
'Weapon? Weapon?' said Umbridge, and her eyes seemed to pop with excitemen
t. 'You have been developing some method of resistance? A weapon you could use
against the Ministry? On Professor Dumbledore's orders, of course?'
'Y - y - yes,' gasped Hermione, 'but he had to leave before it was finishe
d and n - n - now we've finished it for him, and we c - c - can't find him t -
t - to tell him!'
'What kind of weapon is it?' said Umbridge harshly, her stubby hands still
tight on Hermione's shoulders.
'We don't r - r - really understand it,' said Hermione, sniffing loudly. '
We j - j - just did what P - P - Professor Dumbledore told us t - t - to do.'
Umbridge straightened up, looking exultant.
'Lead me to the weapon,' she said.
'I'm not showing . . . them,' said Hermione shrilly, looking around at the
Slytherins through her fingers.
'It is not for you to set conditions,' said Professor Umbridge harshly.
'Fine,' said Hermione, now sobbing into her hands again. Tine . . . let th
em see it, I hope they use it on you! In fact, I wish you'd invite loads and l
oads of people to come and see! Th - that would serve you right - oh, I'd love
it if the wh - whole school knew where it was, and how to u - use it, and the
n if you annoy any of them they'll, be able to s - sort you out!'
These words had a powerful impact on Umbridge: she glanced swiftly and sus
piciously around at her Inquisitorial Squad, her bulging eyes resting for a mo
ment on Malfoy, who was too slow to disguise the look of eagerness and greed t
hat had appeared on his lace.
Umbridge contemplated Hermione for another long moment, then spoke in what
she clearly thought was a motherly voice.
'All right, dear, let's make it just you and me . . . and we'll take Potte
r, loo, shall we? Get up, now.'
'Professor,' said Malfoy eagerly, 'Professor Umbridge, I think some of the
Squad should come with you to look after - '
'I am a fully qualified Ministry official, Malfoy, do you really think I c
annot manage two wandless teenagers alone?' asked Umbridge sharply. 'In any ca
se, it does not sound as though this weapon is something that schoolchildren s
hould see. You will
remain here until I return and make sure none of these - she gestured arou
nd at Ron, Ginny, Neville and Luna ' - escape.'
'All right,' said Malfoy, looking sulky and disappointed.
'And you two can go ahead of me and show me the way,' said Umbridge, point
ing at Harry and Hermione with her wand. 'Lead on.'
- CHAPTER THIRTY-THREE -
Fight and Flight
Harry had no idea what Hermione was planning, or even whether she had a plan.
He walked half a pace behind her as they headed down the corridor outside Umbr
idge's office, knowing it would look very suspicious if he appeared not to kno
w where they were going. He did not dare attempt to talk to her; Umbridge was
walking so closely behind them that he could hear her ragged breathing.
Hermione led the way down the stairs into the Entrance Hall. The din of lo
ud voices and the clatter of cutlery on plates echoed from out of the double d
oors to the Great Hall - it seemed incredible to Harry that twenty feet away w
ere people who were enjoying dinner, celebrating the end of exams, not a care
in the world . . .
Hermione walked straight out of the oak front doors and down the stone ste
ps into the balmy evening air. The sun was falling towards the tops of the tre
es in the Forbidden Forest now, and as Hermione marched purposefully across th
e grass - Umbridge jogging to keep up - their long dark shadows rippled over t
he grass behind them like cloaks.
'It's hidden in Hagrid's hut, is it?' said Umbridge eagerly in Harry's ear
.
'Of course not,' said Hermione scathingly. 'Hagrid might have set it off a
ccidentally.'
'Yes,' said Umbridge, whose excitement seemed to be mounting. 'Yes, he wou
ld have done, of course, the great half-breed oaf.'
She laughed. Harry felt a strong urge to swing round and seize her by the
throat, but resisted. His scar was throbbing in the soft evening air but it ha
d not yet burned white-hot, as he knew it would if Voldemort had moved in for
the kill.
'Then . . . where is it? asked Umbridge, with a hint or uncertainty in her
voice as Hermione continued to stride towards the Forest.
'In there, of course,' said Hermione, pointing into the dark trees. 'It ha
d to be somewhere that students weren't going to find it accidentally, didn't
it?'
'Of course,' said Umbridge, though she sounded a little apprehensive now.
'Of course . . . very well, then . . . you two stay ahead of me.'
'Can we have your wand, then, if we're going first?' Harry asked her.
'No, I don't think so, Mr Potter,' said Umbridge sweetly, poking him in th
e back with it. The Ministry places a rather higher value on my life than your
s, I'm afraid.'
As they reached the cool shade of the first trees, Harry tried to catch He
rmione s eye; walking into the Forest without wands seemed to him to be more f
oolhardy than anything they had done so far this evening. She, however, merely
gave Umbridge a contemptuous glance and plunged straight into the trees, movi
ng at such a pace that Umbridge, with her shorter legs, had difficulty in keep
ing up.
'Is it very far in?' Umbridge asked, as her robe ripped on a bramble.
'Oh yes,' said Hermione, 'yes, it's well hidden.'
Harry's misgivings increased. Hermione was not taking the path they had fo
llowed to visit Grawp, but the one he followed three years ago to the lair of
the monster Aragog. Hermione had not been with him on that occasion; he doubte
d she had any idea what danger lay at the end of it.
'Er - are you sure this is the right way?' he asked her pointedly.
'Oh yes,' she said in a steely voice, crashing through the undergrowth wit
h what he thought was a wholly unnecessary amount of noise. Behind them, Umbri
dge tripped over a fallen sapling. Neither of them paused to help her up again
; Hermione merely strode on, calling loudly over her shoulder, 'It's a bit fur
ther in!'
'Hermione, keep your voice down,' Harry muttered, hurrying to catch up wit
h her. 'Anything could be listening in here - '
'I want us heard,' she answered quietly, as Umbridge jogged noisily after
them. 'You'll see . . .'
They walked on for what seemed a long time, until they were once again so
deep into the Forest that the dense tree canopy blocked out all light. Harry h
ad the feeling he had had before in the Forest, one of being watched by unseen
eyes.
'How much further?' demanded Umbridge angrily from behind him.
'Not far now!' shouted Hermione, as they emerged into a dim, dank clearing
. 'Just a little bit - '
An arrow flew through the air and landed with a menacing thud in the tree
just over her head. The air was suddenly full of the sound of hooves; Harry co
uld feel the Forest floor trembling; Umbridge gave a little scream and pushed
him in front of her like a shield - '
He wrenched himself free of her and turned. Around fifty centaurs were eme
rging on every side, their bows raised and loaded, pointing at Harry, Hermione
and Umbridge. They backed slowly into the centre of the clearing, Umbridge ut
tering odd little whimpers of terror. Harry looked sideways at Hermione. She w
as wearing a triumphant smile.
'Who are you?' said a voice.
Harry looked left. The chestnut-bodied centaur called Magorian was walking
towards them out of the circle: his bow, like those of the others, was raised
. On Harry's right, Umbridge was still whimpering, her wand trembling violentl
y as she pointed it at the advancing centaur.
'I asked you who are you, human,' said Magorian roughly.
'I am Dolores Umbridge!' said Umbridge in a high-pitched, terrified voice.
'Senior Undersecretary to the Minister for Magic and Headmistress and High In
quisitor of Hogwarts!'
'You are from the Ministry of Magic?' said Magorian, as many of the centau
rs in the surrounding circle shifted restlessly.
'That's right!' said Umbridge, in an even higher voice, 'so be very carefu
l! By the laws laid down by the Department for the Regulation and Control of M
agical Creatures, any attack by half-breeds such as yourselves on a human - '
'What did you call us?' shouted a wild-looking black centaur, whom Harry r
ecognised as Bane. There was a great deal of angry muttering and tightening of
bowstrings around them.
'Don't call them that!' Hermione said furiously, but Umbridge did not appe
ar to have heard her. Still pointing her shaking wand at Magorian, she continu
ed, 'Law Fifteen "B" states clearly that "any attack by a magical creature who
is deemed to have near-human intelligence, and therefore considered responsib
le for its actions - '
' "Near-human intelligence"?' repeated Magorian, as Bane and several other
s roared with rage and pawed the ground. 'We consider that a great insult, hum
an! Our intelligence, thankfully, far outstrips your own.'
'What are you doing in our Forest?' bellowed the hard-faced grey centaur H
arry and Hermione had seen on their last trip into the Forest. 'Why are you he
re?'
'Your Forest?' said Umbridge, shaking now not only with fright but also, i
t seemed, with indignation. 'I would remind you that you live here only becaus
e the Ministry of Magic permits you certain areas of land - '
An arrow flew so close to her head that it caught at her mousy hair in pas
sing: she let out an ear-splitting scream and threw her hands over her head, w
hile some of the centaurs bellowed their approval and others laughed raucously
. The sound of their wild, neighing laughter echoing around the dimly lit clea
ring and the sight of their pawing hooves was extremely unnerving.
'Whose Forest is it now, human?' bellowed Bane.
'Filthy half-breeds!' she screamed, her hands still tight over her head. '
Beasts! Uncontrolled animals!'
'Be quiet!' shouted Hermione, but it was too late: Umbridge pointed her wa
nd at Magorian and screamed, 'Incarcerous!'
Ropes flew out of midair like thick snakes, wrapping themselves tightly ar
ound the centaur's torso and trapping his arms: he gave a cry of rage and rear
ed on to his hind legs, attempting to free himself, while the other centaurs c
harged.
Harry grabbed Hermione and pulled her to the ground; face down on the Fore
st floor, he knew a moment of terror as hooves thundered around him, but the c
entaurs leapt over and around them, bellowing and screaming with rage.
'Nooooo!' he heard Umbridge shriek. 'Noooooo . . . I am Senior Undersecret
ary . . . you cannot - Unhand me, you animals . . . nooooo!'
Harry saw a flash of red light and knew she had attempted to Stun one of t
hem; then she screamed very loudly. Lifting his head a few inches, Harry saw t
hat Umbridge had been seized from behind by Bane and lifted high into the air,
wriggling and yelling with fright. Her wand fell from her hand to the ground,
and Harry's heart leapt. If he could just reach it - '
But as he stretched out a hand towards it, a centaur's hoof descended upon
the wand and it broke cleanly in half.
'Now!' roared a voice in Harry's ear and a thick hairy arm descended from
thin air and dragged him upright. Hermione, too, had been pulled to her feet.
Over the plunging, many-coloured backs and heads of the centaurs, Harry saw Um
bridge being borne away through the trees by Bane. Screaming non-stop, her voi
ce grew fainter and fainter until they could no longer hear it over the trampl
ing of hooves surrounding them.
'And these?' said the hard-faced, grey centaur holding Hermione.
'They are young,' said a slow, doleful voice from behind Harry. 'We do not
attack foals.'
'They brought her here, Ronan,' replied the centaur who had such a firm gr
ip on Harry. 'And they are not so young . . . he is nearing manhood, this one.
'
He shook Harry by the neck of his robes.
'Please,' said Hermione breathlessly, 'please, don't attack us, We don't t
hink like her, we aren't Ministry of Magic employees! We only came in here bec
ause we hoped you'd drive her off for us.'
Harry knew at once, from the look on the face of the grey centaur holding
Hermione, that she had made a terrible mistake in saying this. The grey centau
r threw back his head, his back legs stamping furiously, and bellowed, 'You se
e, Ronan? They already have the arrogance of their kind! So we were to do your
dirty work, were we, human girl? We were to act as your servants, drive away
your enemies like obedient hounds?'
'No!' said Hermione in a horrorstruck squeak. 'Please - I didn't mean that
! I just hoped you'd be able to - to help us - '
But she seemed to be going from bad to worse.
'We do not help humans!' snarled the centaur holding Harry, tightening his
grip and rearing a little at the same time, so that Harry's feet left the gro
und momentarily. 'We are a race apart and proud to be so. We will not permit y
ou to walk from here, boasting that we did your bidding!'
'We're not going to say anything like that!' Harry shouted. 'We know you d
idn't do what you did because we wanted you to - '
But nobody seemed to be listening to him.
A bearded centaur towards the back of the crowd shouted, They came here un
asked, they must pay the consequences!'
A roar of approval met these words and a dun-coloured centaur shouted, 'Th
ey can join the woman!'
'You said you didn't hurt the innocent!' shouted Hermione, real tears slid
ing down her face now. 'We haven't done anything to hurt you, we haven't used
wands or threats, we just want to go back to school, please let us go back - '
'We are not all like the traitor Firenze, human girl!' shouted the grey ce
ntaur, to more neighing roars of approval from his fellows. 'Perhaps you thoug
ht us pretty talking horses? We are an ancient people who will not stand wizar
d invasions and insults! We do not recognise your laws, we do not acknowledge
your superiority, we are - '
But they did not hear what else centaurs were, for at that moment there ca
me a crashing noise on the edge of the clearing so loud that all of them, Harr
y, Hermione and the fifty or so centaurs filling the clearing, looked around.
Harry's centaur let him fall to the ground again as his hands flew to his bow
and quiver of arrows. Hermione had been dropped, too, and Harry hurried toward
s her as two thick tree trunks parted ominously and the monstrous form of Graw
p the giant appeared in the gap.
The centaurs nearest him backed into those behind; the clearing was now a
forest of bows and arrows waiting to be fired, all pointing upwards at the eno
rmous greyish face now looming over them from just beneath the thick canopy of
branches. Grawp's lopsided mouth was gaping stupidly; they could see his bric
klike yellow teeth glimmering in the half-light, his dull sludge-coloured eyes
narrowed as he squinted down at the creatures at his feet. Broken ropes trail
ed from both ankles.
He opened his mouth even wider.
'Hagger.'
Harry did not know what 'hagger' meant, or what language it was from, nor
did he much care; he was watching Grawp's feet, which were almost as long as H
arry's whole body. Hermione gripped his arm tightly; the centaurs were quite s
ilent, staring up at the giant, whose huge, round head moved from side to side
as he continued to peer amongst them as though looking for something he had d
ropped.
'Hagger!' he said again, more insistently.
'Get away from here, giant!' called Magorian. 'You are not welcome among u
s!'
These words seemed to make no impression whatsoever on Grawp. He stooped a
little (the centaurs' arms tensed on their bows), then bellowed, 'HAGGER!'
A few of the centaurs looked worried now. Hermione, however, gave a gasp.
'Harry!' she whispered. 'I think he's trying to say "Hagrid"!'
At this precise moment Grawp caught sight of them, the only two humans in
a sea of centaurs. He lowered his head another foot or so, staring intently at
them. Harry could feel Hermione shaking as Grawp opened his mouth wide again
and said, in a deep, rumbling voice, 'Hermy.'
'Goodness,' said Hermione, gripping Harry's arm so tightly it was growing
numb and looking as though she was about to faint, 'he - he remembered!'
'HERMY!' roared Grawp. 'WHERE HAGGER?'
'I don't know!' squealed Hermione, terrified. 'I'm sorry, Grawp, I don't k
now!'
'GRAWP WANT HAGGER!'
One of the giants massive hands reached down. Hermione let out a real scre
am, ran a few steps backwards and fell over. Devoid of a wand, Harry braced hi
mself to punch, kick, bite or whatever else it took as the hand swooped toward
s him and knocked a snow-white centaur off his legs.
It was what the centaurs had been waiting for - Grawp's outstretched finge
rs were a foot from Harry when fifty arrows soared through the air at the gian
t, peppering his enormous face, causing him to howl with pain and rage and str
aighten up, rubbing his face with his enormous hands, breaking off the arrow s
hafts but forcing the arrowheads in still deeper.
He yelled and stamped his enormous feet and the centaur; scattered out of
the way; pebble-sized droplets of Grawp's blood showered Harry as he pulled He
rmione to her feet and the pair of them ran as fast as they could for the shel
ter of the trees. Once there they looked back; Grawp was snatching blindly at
the centaurs as blood ran down his face; they were retreating in disorder, gal
loping away through the trees on the other side of the clearing. Harry and Her
mione watched Grawp give another roar of fury and plunge after them, smashing
more trees aside as he went.
'Oh no,' said Hermione, quaking so badly that her knees gave way. 'Oh, tha
t was horrible. And he might kill them all.'
'I'm not that fussed, to be honest,' said Harry bitterly.
The sounds of the galloping centaurs and the blundering giant grew fainter
and fainter. As Harry listened to them, his scar gave another great throb and
a wave of terror swept over him.
They had wasted so much time - they were even further from rescuing Sirius
than they had been when he had had the vision. Not only had Harry managed to
lose his wand but they were stuck in the middle of the Forbidden Forest with n
o means of transport whatsoever.
'Smart plan,' he spat at Hermione, having to release some of his fury. 'Re
ally smart plan. Where do we go from here?'
'We need to get back up to the castle,' said Hermione faintly.
'By the time we've done that, Sirius'll probably be dead!' said Harry, kic
king a nearby tree in temper. A high-pitched chattering started up overhead an
d he looked up to see an angry Bowtruckle flexing its long twiglike fingers at
him.
'Well, we can't do anything without wands,' said Hermione hopelessly, drag
ging herself up again. 'Anyway, Harry, how exactly were you planning to get al
l the way to London?'
'Yeah, we were just wondering that.' said a familiar voice from behind her
.
Harry and Hermione moved together instinctively and peered through the tre
es.
Ron came into sight, closely followed by Ginny, Neville and Luna. All of t
hem looked a little the worse for wear - there were several long scratches run
ning the length of Ginny's cheek; a large purple lump was swelling above Nevil
le's right eye; Ron's lip was bleeding worse than ever - but all were looking
rather pleased with themselves.
'So,' said Ron, pushing aside a low-hanging branch and holding out Harry's
wand, 'had any ideas?'
'How did you get away?' asked Harry in amazement, taking his wand from Ron
.
'Couple of Stunners, a Disarming Charm, Neville brought off a really nice
little Impediment Jinx,' said Ron airily, now handing back Hermione's wand, to
o. 'But Ginny was best, she got Malfoy - Bat Bogey Hex - it was superb, his wh
ole face was covered in the great flapping things. Anyway, we saw you out of t
he window heading into the Forest and followed. What've you done with Umbridge
?'
'She got carried away,' said Harry. 'By a herd of centaurs.'
'And they left you behind?' asked Ginny, looking astonished.
'No, they got chased off by Grawp,' said Harry.
'Who's Grawp?' Luna asked interestedly.
'Hagrid's little brother,' said Ron promptly. 'Anyway, never mind that now
. Harry, what did you find out in the fire? Has You-Know-Who got Sirius or - ?
'
'Yes,' said Harry, as his scar gave another painful prickle, 'and I'm sure
Sirius is still alive, but I can't see how we're going to get there to help h
im.'
They all fell silent, looking rather scared; the problem facing them seeme
d insurmountable.
'Well, we'll have to fly, won't we?' said Luna, in the closest thing to a
matter-of-fact voice Harry had ever heard her use.
'OK,' said Harry irritably, rounding on her. 'First of all, "we" aren't do
ing anything if you're including yourself in that, and second of all, Ron's me
only one with a broomstick that isn't being guarded by a security troll, so -
'
'I've got a broom!' said Ginny.
'Yeah, but you're not coming,' said Ron angrily.
'Excuse me, but I care what happens to Sirius as much as you do!' said Gin
ny, her jaw set so that her resemblance to Fred and George was suddenly striki
ng.
'You're too - ' Harry began, but Ginny said fiercely, 'I'm three years old
er than you were when you fought You-Know-Who over the Philosophers Stone, and
it's because of me that Malfoy's stuck back in Umbridge's office with giant f
lying bogies attacking him - '
'Yeah, but - '
'We were all in the DA together,' said Neville quietly. 'It was all suppos
ed to be about fighting You-Know-Who, wasn't it? And this is the first chance
we've had to do something real - or was that all just a game or something?'
'No - of course it wasn't - ' said Harry impatiently.
'Then we should come too,' said Neville simply. 'We want to help.'
'That's right,' said Luna, smiling happily.
Harry's eyes met Ron's. He knew Ron was thinking exactly what he was: if h
e could have chosen any members of the DA, in addition to himself, Ron and Her
mione, to join him in the attempt to rescue Sirius, he would not have picked G
inny, Neville or Luna.
'Well, it doesn't matter, anyway,' said Harry through gritted teeth, 'beca
use we still don't know how to get there - '
'I thought we'd settled that,' said Luna maddeningly. 'We're flying!'
'Look,' said Ron, barely containing his anger, 'you might be able to fly w
ithout a broomstick but the rest of us can't sprout wings whenever we - '
There are ways of flying other than with broomsticks,' said Luna serenely.
'I s'pose we're going to ride on the back of the Kacky Snorgle or whatever
it is?' Ron demanded.
The Crumple-Horned Snorkack can't fly,' said Luna in a dignified voice, 'b
ut they can, and Hagrid says they're very good at finding places their riders
are looking for.'
Harry whirled round. Standing between two trees, their white eyes gleaming
eerily, were two Thestrals, watching the whispered conversation as though the
y understood every word.
'Yes!' he whispered, moving towards them. They tossed their reptilian head
s, throwing back long black manes, and Harry stretched out his hand eagerly an
d patted the nearest one's shining neck; how could he ever have thought them u
gly?
'Is it those mad horse things?' said Ron uncertainly, staring at a point s
lightly to the left of the Thestral Harry was patting. 'Those ones you can't s
ee unless you've watched someone snuff it?'
'Yeah,' said Harry.
'How many?'
'Just two.'
'Well, we need three,' said Hermione, who was still looking a little shake
n, but determined just the same.
'Four, Hermione,' said Ginny, scowling.
'I think there are six of us, actually,' said Luna calmly, counting.
'Don't be stupid, we can't all go!' said Harry angrily. 'Look, you three -
' he pointed at Neville, Ginny and Luna, 'you're not involved in this, you're
not - '
They burst into more protests. His scar gave another, more painful, twinge
. Every moment they delayed was precious; he did not have time to argue.
'OK, fine, it's your choice,' he said curtly, 'but unless we can find more
Thestrals you're not going to be able - '
'Oh, more of them will come,' said Ginny confidently, who like Ron was squ
inting in quite the wrong direction, apparently under the impression that she
was looking at the horses.
'What makes you think that?'
'Because, in case you hadn't noticed, you and Hermione are both covered in
blood,' she said coolly, 'and we know Hagrid lures Thestrals with raw meat. T
hat's probably why these two turned up in the first place.'
Harry felt a soft tug on his robes at that moment and looked down to see t
he closest Thestral licking his sleeve, which was damp with Grawp's blood.
'OK, then,' he said, a bright idea occurring, 'Ron and I will take these t
wo and go ahead, and Hermione can stay here with you three and she'll attract
more Thestrals - '
'I'm not staying behind!' said Hermione furiously.
There's no need,' said Luna, smiling. 'Look, here come more now . . . you
two must really smell . . .'
Harry turned: no fewer than six or seven Thestrals were picking their way
through the trees, their great leathery wings folded tight to their bodies, th
eir eyes gleaming through the darkness. He had no excuse now.
'All right,' he said angrily, 'pick one and get on, then.'
- CHAPTER THIRTY-FOUR -
The Department
Of Mysteries
Harry wound his hand tightly into the mane of the nearest Thestral, placed a f
oot on a stump nearby and scrambled clumsily on to the horse's silken back. It
did not object, but twisted its head around, fangs bared, and attempted to co
ntinue its eager licking of his robes.
He found there was a way of lodging his knees behind the wing joints that
made him feel more secure, then looked around at the others. Neville had heave
d himself over the back of the next Thestral and was now attempting to swing o
ne short leg over the creature's back. Luna was already in place, sitting side
-saddle and adjusting her robes as though she did this every day. Ron, Hermion
e and Ginny, however, were still standing motionless on the spot, open-mouthed
and staring.
'What?' he said.
'How're we supposed to get on?' said Ron faintly. 'When we can't see the t
hings?'
'Oh, it's easy,' said Luna, sliding obligingly from her Thestral and march
ing over to him, Hermione and Ginny. 'Come here . . .'
She pulled them over to the other Thestrals standing around and one by one
managed to help them on to the back of their mount. All three looked extremel
y nervous as she wound their hands into their horses mane and told them to gri
p tightly before she got back on to her own steed.
This is mad,' Ron murmured, moving his free hand gingerly up and down his
horses neck. 'Mad . . . if I could just see it - '
'You'd better hope it stays invisible,' said Harry darkly. 'We all ready,
then?'
They all nodded and he saw live pairs of knees tighten beneath their robes
.
'OK . . .'
He looked down at the back of his Thestral's glossy black head and swallow
ed.
'Ministry of Magic, visitors' entrance, London, then,' he said uncertainly
. 'Er . . . if you know . . . where to go . . .'
For a moment Harry's Thestral did nothing at all; then, with a sweeping mo
vement that nearly unseated him, the wings on either side extended; the horse
crouched slowly, then rocketed upwards so fast and so steeply that Harry had t
o clench his arms and legs tightly around the horse to avoid sliding backwards
over its bony rump. He closed his eyes and pressed his face down into the hor
ses silky mane as they burst through the topmost branches of the trees and soa
red out into a blood-red sunset.
Harry did not think he had ever moved so fast: the Thestral streaked over
the castle, its wide wings hardly beating; the cooling air was slapping Harry'
s face; eyes screwed up against the rushing wind, he looked round and saw his
five fellows soaring along behind him, each of them bent as low as possible in
to the neck of their Thestral to protect themselves from his slipstream.
They were over the Hogwarts grounds, they had passed Hogsmeade; Harry coul
d see mountains and gullies below them. As the daylight began to fail, Harry s
aw small collections of lights as they passed over more villages, then a windi
ng road on which a single car was beetling its way home through the hills . .
.
This is bizarre!' Harry barely heard Ron yell from somewhere behind him, a
nd he imagined how it must feel to be speeding along at this height with no vi
sible means of support.
Twilight fell: the sky was turning to a light, dusky purple littered with
tiny silver stars, and soon only the lights of Muggle towns gave them any clue
of how far from the ground they were, or how very fast they were travelling.
Harry's arms were wrapped tightly around his horse's neck as he willed it to g
o even faster. How much time had elapsed since he had seen Sirius lying on the
Department of Mysteries floor? How much longer would Sirius be able to resist
Voldemort? All Harry knew for sure was that his godfather had neither done as
Voldemort wanted, nor died, for he was convinced that either outcome would ha
ve caused him to feel Voldemort's jubilation or fury course through his own bo
dy, making his scar sear as painfully as it had on the night Mr Weasley was at
tacked.
On they flew through the gathering darkness; Harry's face felt stiff and c
old, his legs numb from gripping the Thestral's sides so tightly, but he did n
ot dare shift his position lest he slip . . . he was deaf from the thundering
rush of air in his ears, and his mouth was dry and frozen from the cold night
wind. He had lost all sense of how far they had come; all his faith was in the
beast beneath him, still streaking purposefully through the night, barely fla
pping its wings as it sped ever onwards.
If they were too late . . .
He's still alive, he's still fighting, I can feel it . . .
If Voldemort decided Sirius was not going to crack . . .
I'd know . . .
Harry's stomach gave a jolt; the Thestral's head was suddenly pointing tow
ards the ground and he actually slid forwards a few inches along its neck. The
y were descending at last . . . he thought he heard a shriek behind him and tw
isted around dangerously, but could see no sign of a falling body . . . presum
ably they had all received a shock from the change of direction, just as he ha
d.
And now bright orange lights were growing larger and rounder on all sides;
they could see the tops of buildings, streams of headlights like luminous ins
ect eyes, squares of pale yellow that were windows. Quite suddenly, it seemed,
they were hurtling towards the pavement; Harry gripped the Thestral with ever
y last ounce of his strength, braced for a sudden impact, but the horse touche
d the dark ground as lightly as a shadow and Harry slid from its back, looking
around at the street where the overflowing skip still stood a short way from
the vandalised telephone box, both drained of colour in the flat orange glare
of the streetlights.
Ron landed a short way off and toppled immediately from his Thestral on to
the pavement.
'Never again,' he said, struggling to his feet. He made as though to strid
e away from his Thestral, but, unable to see it, collided with its hindquarter
s and almost tell over again. Never, ever again . . . that was the worst - '
Hermione and Ginny touched down on either side of him: both slid off their
mounts a little more gracefully than Ron, though with similar expressions of
relief at being back on firm ground; Neville jumped down, shaking; and Luna di
smounted smoothly.
'Where do we go from here, then?' she asked Harry in a politely interested
voice, as though this was all a rather interesting day-trip.
'Over here,' he said. He gave his Thestral a quick, grateful pat, then led
the way quickly to the battered telephone box and opened the door. 'Come on!'
he urged the others, as they hesitated.
Ron and Ginny marched in obediently; Hermione, Neville and Luna squashed t
hemselves in after them; Harry took one glance back at the Thestrals, now fora
ging for scraps of rotten food inside the skip, then forced himself into the b
ox after Luna.
'Whoever's nearest the receiver, dial six two four four two!' he said.
Ron did it, his arm bent bizarrely to reach the dial; as it whirred back i
nto place the cool female voice sounded inside the box.
'Welcome to the Ministry of Magic. Please state your name and business.'
'Harry Potter, Ron Weasley, Hermione Granger,' Harry said very quickly, 'G
inny Weasley, Neville Longbottom, Luna Lovegood . . . we're here to save someo
ne, unless your Ministry can do it first!'
Thank you,' said the cool female voice. 'Visitors, please take the badges
and attach them to the front of your robes.'
Half a dozen badges slid out of the metal chute where returned coins norma
lly appeared. Hermione scooped them up and handed them mutely to Harry over Gi
nny's head; he glanced at the topmost one, Harry Potter, Rescue Mission.
'Visitors to the Ministry, you are required to submit to a search and pres
ent your wands for registration at the security desk, which is located at the
far end of the Atrium.'
'Fine!' Harry said loudly, as his scar gave another throb. 'Now can we mov
e?'
The floor of the telephone box shuddered and the pavement rose up past its
glass windows; the scavenging Thestrals were sliding out of sight; blackness
closed over their heads and with a dull grinding noise they sank down into the
depths of the Ministry of Magic.
A chink of soft golden light hit their feet and, widening, rose up their b
odies. Harry bent his knees and held his wand as ready as he could in such cra
mped conditions as he peered through the glass to see whether anybody was wait
ing for them in the Atrium, but it seemed, to be completely empty. The light w
as dimmer than it had been by day; there were no fires burning under the mante
lpieces set into the walls, but as the lift slid smoothly to a halt he saw tha
t golden symbols continued to twist sinuously in the dark blue ceiling.
The Ministry of Magic wishes you a pleasant evening,' said the woman's voi
ce.
The door of the telephone box burst open; Harry toppled out of it, closely
followed by Neville and Luna. The only sound in the Atrium was the steady rus
h of water from the golden fountain, where jets from the wands of the witch an
d wizard, the point of the centaur's arrow, the tip of the goblin's hat and th
e house-elf's ears continued to gush into the surrounding pool.
'Come on, said Harry quietly and the six of them sprinted off down the hal
l, Harry in the lead, past the fountain towards the desk where the watchwizard
who had weighed Harry's wand had sat, and which was now deserted.
Harry felt sure there ought to be a security person there, sure their abse
nce was an ominous sign, and his feeling of foreboding increased as they passe
d through the golden gates to the lifts. He pressed the nearest 'down' button
and a lift clattered into sight almost immediately, the golden grilles slid ap
art with a great, echoing clanking and they dashed inside. Harry stabbed the n
umber nine button; the grilles closed with a bang and the lift began to descen
d, jangling and rattling. Harry had not realised how noisy the lifts were on t
he day he had come with Mr Weasley; he was sure the din would raise every secu
rity person within the building, yet when the lilt halted, the cool female voi
ce said, 'Department of Mysteries,' and the grilles slid open. They stepped ou
t into the corridor where nothing was moving out but the nearest torches, flic
kering in the rush of air from the lift.
Harry turned towards the plain black door. After months and months of drea
ming about it, he was here at last.
'Let's go,' he whispered, and he led the way down the corridor, Luna right
behind him, gazing around with her mouth slightly open.
'OK, listen,' said Harry, stopping again within six feet of the door. 'May
be . . . maybe a couple of people should stay here as a - as a lookout, and -
'
'And how're we going to let you know something's coming?' asked Ginny, her
eyebrows raised. 'You could be miles away.'
'We're coming with you, Harry,' said Neville.
'Let's get on with it,' said Ron firmly.
Harry still did not want to take them all with him, but it seemed he had n
o choice. He turned to face the door and walked forwards . . . just as it had
in his dream, it swung open and he marched over the threshold, the others at h
is heels.
They were standing in a large, circular room. Everything in here was black
including the floor and ceiling; identical, unmarked, handleless black doors
were set at intervals all around the black walls, interspersed with branches o
f candles whose flames burned blue; their cool, shimmering light reflected in
the shining marble floor made it look as though there was dark water underfoot
.
'Someone shut the door,' Harry muttered.
He regretted giving this order the moment Neville had obeyed it. Without t
he long chink of light from the torchlit corridor behind them, the place becam
e so dark that for a moment the only things they could see were the bunches of
shivering blue flames on the walls and their ghostly reflections in the floor
.
In his dream, Harry had always walked purposefully across this room to the
door immediately opposite the entrance and walked on. But there were around a
dozen doors here. Just as he was gazing ahead at the doors opposite him, tryi
ng to decide which was the right one, there was a great rumbling noise and the
candles began to move sideways. The circular wall was rotating.
Hermione grabbed Harry's arm as though frightened the floor might move, to
o, but it did not. For a few seconds, the blue flames around them were blurred
to resemble neon lines as the wall sped around; then, quite as suddenly as it
had started, the rumbling stopped and everything became stationary once again
.
Harry's eyes had blue streaks burned into them; it was all he could see.
'What was that about?' whispered Ron fearfully.
'I think it was to stop us knowing which door we came in through,' said Gi
nny in a hushed voice.
Harry realised at once she was right: he could no sooner identify the exit
door than locate an ant on the jet-black floor; and the door through which th
ey needed to proceed could be any one of the dozen surrounding them.
'How're we going to get back out?' said Neville uncomfortably.
'Well, that doesn't matter now,' said Harry forcefully, blinking to try to
erase the blue lines from his vision, and clutching his wand tighter than eve
r, 'we won't need to get out till we've found Sirius - '
'Don't go calling for him, though!' Hermione said urgently; but Harry had
never needed her advice less, his instinct was to keep as quiet as possible.
'Where do we go, then, Harry?' Ron asked.
'I don't - ' Harry began. He swallowed. 'In the dreams I went through the
door at the end of the corridor from the lifts into a dark room - that's this
one - and then I went through another door into a room that kind of . . . glit
ters. We should try a few doors,' he said hastily, 'I'll know the right way wh
en I see it. C'mon.'
He marched straight at the door now facing him, the others following close
behind him, set his left hand against its cool, shining surface, raised his w
and ready to strike the moment it opened, and pushed.
It swung open easily.
After the darkness of the first room, the lamps hanging low on golden chai
ns from this ceiling gave the impression that this long rectangular room was m
uch brighter, though there were no glittering, shimmering lights as Harry had
seen in his dreams. The place was quite empty except for a few desks and, in t
he very middle of the room, an enormous glass tank of deep green liquid, big e
nough for all of them to swim in; a number of pearly-white objects were drifti
ng around lazily in it.
'What're those things?' whispered Ron.
'Dunno,' said Harry.
'Are they fish?' breathed Ginny.
'Aquavirius Maggots!' said Luna excitedly. 'Dad said the Ministry were bre
eding - '
'No,' said Hermione. She sounded odd. She moved forward to look through th
e side of the tank. They're brains.'
'Brains?'
'Yes . . . I wonder what they're doing with them?'
Harry joined her at the tank. Sure enough, there could be no mistake now h
e saw them at close quarters. Glimmering eerily, they drifted in and out of si
ght in the depths of the green liquid, looking something like slimy cauliflowe
rs.
'Let's get out of here,' said Harry. This isn't right, we need to try anot
her door.'
There are doors here, too,' said Ron, pointing around the walls. Harry's h
eart sank; how big was this place?
'In my dream I went through that dark room into the second one,' he said.
'I think we should go back and try from there.'
So they hurried back into the dark, circular room; the ghostly shapes of t
he brains were now swimming before Harry's eyes instead of the blue candle fla
mes.
'Wait!' said Hermione sharply, as Luna made to close the door of the brain
room behind them. 'Flagrate!'
She drew with her wand in midair and a fiery 'X' appeared on the door. No
sooner had the door clicked shut behind them than there was a great rumbling,
and once again the wall began to revolve very fast, but now there was a great
red-gold blur in amongst the faint blue and, when all became still again, the
fiery cross still burned, showing the door they had already tried.
'Good thinking,' said Harry. 'OK, let's try this one - '
Again, he strode directly at the door facing him and pushed it open, his w
and still raised, the others at his heels.
This room was larger than the last, dimly lit and rectangular, and the cen
tre of it was sunken, forming a great stone pit some twenty feet deep. They we
re standing on the topmost tier of what seemed to be stone benches running all
around the room and descending in steep steps like an amphitheatre, or the co
urtroom in which Harry had been tried by the Wizengamot. Instead, of a chained
chair, however, there was a raised stone dais in the centre of the pit, on wh
ich stood a stone archway that looked so ancient, cracked and crumbling that H
arry was amazed the thing was still standing. Unsupported by any surrounding w
all, the archway was hung with a tattered black curtain or veil which, despite
the complete stillness of the cold surrounding air, was fluttering very sligh
tly as though it had just been touched.
'Who's there?' said Harry, jumping down on to the bench below. There was n
o answering voice, but the veil continued to flutter and sway.
'Careful!' whispered Hermione.
Harry scrambled down the benches one by one until he reached the stone bot
tom of the sunken pit. His footsteps echoed loudly as he walked slowly towards
the dais. The pointed archway looked much taller from where he now stood than
it had when he'd been looking down on it from above. Still the veil swayed ge
ntly, as though somebody had just passed through it.
'Sirius?' Harry spoke again, but more quietly now that he was nearer.
He had the strangest feeling that there was someone standing right behind
the veil on the other side of the archway. Gripping his wand very tightly, he
edged around the dais, but there was nobody there; all that could be seen was
the other side of the tattered black veil.
'Let's go,' called Hermione from halfway up the stone steps. This isn't ri
ght, Harry, come on, let's go.'
She sounded scared, much more scared than she had in the room where the br
ains swam, yet Harry thought the archway had a kind of beauty about it, old th
ough it was. The gently rippling veil intrigued him; he felt a very strong inc
lination to climb up on the dais and walk through it.
Marry, lets go, OK? Said Hermione more forcefully.
'OK,' he said, but did not move. He had just heard something. There were f
aint whispering, murmuring noises coming from the other side of the veil.
'What are you saying?' he said, very loudly, so that his words echoed all
around the stone benches.
'Nobody's talking, Harry!' said Hermione, now moving over to him.
'Someone's whispering behind there,' he said, moving out of her reach and
continuing to frown at the veil. 'Is that you, Ron?'
'I'm here, mate,' said Ron, appearing around the side of the archway.
'Can't anyone else hear it?' Harry demanded, for the whispering and murmur
ing was becoming louder; without really meaning to put it there, he found his
foot was on the dais.
'I can hear them too,' breathed Luna, joining them around the side of the
archway and gazing at the swaying veil. 'There are people in there!'
'What do you mean, "in there"?' demanded Hermione, jumping down from the b
ottom step and sounding much angrier than the occasion warranted, 'there isn't
any "in there", it's just an archway, there's no room for anybody to be there
. Harry, stop it, come away - '
She grabbed his arm and pulled, but he resisted.
'Harry, we are supposed to be here for Sirius!' she said in a high-pitched
, strained voice.
'Sirius,' Harry repeated, still gazing, mesmerised, at the continuously sw
aying veil. 'Yeah . . .'
Something finally slid back into place in his brain; Sirius, captured, bou
nd and tortured, and he was staring at this archway . . .
He took several paces back from the dais and wrenched his eyes from the ve
il.
'Let's go,' he said.
That's what I've been trying to - well, come on, then!' said Hermione, and
she led the way back around the dais. On the other side, Ginny and Neville we
re staring, apparently entranced, at the veil too. Without speaking, Hermione
took hold of Ginny's arm,
Ron grabbed Neville's, and they marched them firmly back to the lowest sto
ne bench and clambered all the way back up to the door.
'What d'you reckon that arch was?' Harry asked Hermione as they regained t
he dark circular room.
'I don't know, but whatever it was, it was dangerous,' she said firmly, ag
ain inscribing a fiery cross on the door.
Once more, the wall span and became still again. Harry approached another
door at random and pushed. It did not move.
'What's wrong?' said Hermione.
'It's . . . locked . . .' said Harry, throwing his weight at the door, but
it didn't budge.
This is it, then, isn't it?' said Ron excitedly, joining Harry in the atte
mpt to force the door open. 'Bound to be!'
'Get out of the way!' said Hermione sharply. She pointed her wand at the p
lace where a lock would have been on an ordinary door and said, 'Alohomora!'
Nothing happened.
'Sirius's knife!' said Harry. He pulled it out from inside his robes and s
lid it into the crack between the door and the wall. The others all watched ea
gerly as he ran it from top to bottom, withdrew it and then flung his shoulder
again at the door. It remained as firmly shut as ever. What was more, when Ha
rry looked down at the knife, he saw the blade had melted.
'Right, we're leaving that room,' said Hermione decisively.
'But what if that's the one?' said Ron, staring at it with a mixture of ap
prehension and longing.
'It can't be, Harry could get through all the doors in his dream,' said He
rmione, marking the door with another fiery cross as Harry replaced the now-us
eless handle of Sirius's knife in his pocket.
'You know what could be in there?' said Luna eagerly, as the wall started
to spin yet again.
'Something blibbering, no doubt,' said Hermione under her breath and Nevil
le gave a nervous little laugh.
The wall slid to a halt and Harry, with a feeling of increasing desperatio
n, pushed the next door open.
This is it!'
He knew it at once by the beautiful, dancing, diamond-sparkling light. As
Harry's eyes became accustomed to the brilliant glare, he saw clocks gleaming
from every surface, large and small, grandfather and carriage, hanging in spac
es between the bookcases or standing on desks ranging the length of the room,
so that a busy, relentless ticking filled the place like thousands of minuscul
e, marching footsteps. The source of the dancing, diamond-bright light was a t
owering crystal bell jar that stood at the far end of the room.
'This way!'
Harry's heart was pumping frantically now that he knew they were on the ri
ght track; he led the way down the narrow space between the lines of desks, he
ading, as he had done in his dream, for the source of the light, the crystal b
ell jar quite as tall as he was that stood on a desk and appeared to be full o
f a billowing, glittering wind.
'Oh, took!' said Ginny, as they drew nearer, pointing at the very heart of
the bell jar.
Drifting along in the sparkling current inside was a tiny, jewel-bright eg
g. As it rose in the jar, it cracked open and a hummingbird emerged, which was
carried to the very top of the jar, but as it fell on the draught its feather
s became bedraggled and damp again, and by the time it had been borne back to
the bottom of the jar it had been enclosed once more in its egg.
'Keep going!' said Harry sharply, because Ginny showed signs of wanting to
stop and watch the egg's progress back into a bird.
'You dawdled enough by that old arch!' she said crossly, but followed him
past the bell jar to the only door behind it.
This is it,' Harry said again, and his heart was now pumping so hard and f
ast he felt it must interfere with his speech, 'it's through here - '
He glanced around at them all; they had their wands out and looked suddenl
y serious and anxious. He looked back at the door and pushed. It swung open.
They were there, they had found the place: high as a church and full of no
thing but towering shelves covered in small, dusty glass orbs. They glimmered
dully in the light issuing from more candle-brackets set at intervals along th
e shelves. Like those in the circular room behind them, their flames were burn
ing blue. The room was very cold.
Harry edged forward and peered down one of the shadowy aisles between two
rows of shelves. He could not hear anything or see the slightest sign of movem
ent.
'You said it was row ninety-seven,' whispered Hermione.
'Yeah,' breathed Harry, looking up at the end of the closest row. Beneath
the branch of blue-glowing candles protruding from it glimmered the silver fig
ure fifty-three.
'We need to go right, I think,' whispered Hermione, squinting to the next
row. 'Yes . . . that's fifty-four . . . '
'Keep your wands ready,' Harry said softly.
They crept forward, glancing behind them as they went on down the long all
eys of shelves, the further ends of which were in near-total darkness. Tiny, y
ellowing labels had been stuck beneath each glass orb on the shelves. Some of
them had a weird, liquid glow; others were as dull and dark within as blown li
ght bulbs.
They passed row eighty-four . . . eighty-five . . . Harry was listening ha
rd for the slightest sound of movement, but Sirius might be gagged now, or els
e unconscious . . . or, said an unbidden voice inside his head, he might alrea
dy be dead . . .
I'd have felt it, he told himself, his heart now hammering against his Ada
m's apple, I'd already know . . .
'Ninety-seven!' whispered Hermione.
They stood grouped around the end of the row, gazing down the alley beside
it. There was nobody there.
'He's right down at the end,' said Harry, whose mouth had become slightly
dry. 'You can't see properly from here.'
And he led them between the towering rows of glass balls, some of which gl
owed softly as they passed . . .
'He should be near here,' whispered Harry, convinced that every step was g
oing to bring the ragged form of Sirius into view on the darkened floor. 'Anyw
here here . . . really close . . .'
'Harry?' said Hermione tentatively, but he did not want to respond. His mo
uth was very dry.
'Somewhere about . . . here . . .' he said.
They had reached the end of the row and emerged into more dim candlelight,
There was nobody there. All was echoing, dusty silence.
'He might be . . .' Harry whispered hoarsely, peering down the next alley.
'Or maybe . . .' He hurried to look down the one beyond that.
'Harry?' said Hermione again.
'What?' he snarled.
'I . . . I don't think Sirius is here.'
Nobody spoke. Harry did not want to look at any of them. He felt sick. He
did not understand why Sirius was not here. He had to be here. This was where
he, Harry, had seen him . . .
He ran up the space at the end of the rows, staring down them. Empty aisle
after empty aisle flickered past. He ran the other way, back past his staring
companions. There was no sign of Sirius anywhere, nor any hint of a struggle.
'Harry?' Ron called.
'What?'
He did not want to hear what Ron had to say; did not want to hear Ron tell
him he had been stupid or suggest that they ought to go back to Hogwarts, but
the heat was rising in his face and h; felt as though he would like to skulk
down here in the darkness for a long while before facing the brightness of the
Atrium above and the others' accusing stares . . .
'Have you seen this?' said Ron.
'What?' said Harry, but eagerly this time - it had to be a sign that Siriu
s had been there, a clue. He strode back to where they were all standing, a li
ttle way down row ninety-seven, but found nothing except Ron staring at one of
the dusty glass spheres on the shelf.
'What?' Harry repeated glumly.
'It's - it's got your name on,' said Ron.
Harry moved a little closer. Ron was pointing at one of the small glass sp
heres that glowed with a dull inner light, though it was very dusty and appear
ed not to have been touched for many years.
'My name?' said Harry blankly.
He stepped forwards. Not as tall as Ron, he had to crane his neck to read
the yellowish label affixed to the shelf right beneath
the dusty glass ball. In spidery writing was written a date of some sixtee
n years previously, and below that:
S.P.T. to A.P.W.B.D.
Dark Lord
and (?)Harry Potter
Harry stared at it.
'What is it?' Ron asked, sounding unnerved. 'What's your name doing down h
ere?'
He glanced along at the other labels on that stretch of shelf.
'I'm not here,' he said, sounding perplexed. 'None of the rest of us are h
ere.'
'Harry, I don't think you should touch it,' said Hermione sharply, as he s
tretched out his hand.
'Why not?' he said. 'It's something to do with me, isn't it?'
'Don't, Harry,' said Neville suddenly. Harry looked at him. Neville's roun
d face was shining slightly with sweat. He looked as though he could not take
much more suspense.
'It's got my name on,' said Harry.
And feeling slightly reckless, he closed his fingers around the dusty ball
's surface. He had expected it to feel cold, but it did not. On the contrary,
it felt as though it had been lying in the sun for hours, as though the glow o
f light within was warming it. Expecting, even hoping, that something dramatic
was going to happen, something exciting that might make their long and danger
ous journey worth while after all, Harry lifted the glass ball down from its s
helf and stared at it.
Nothing whatsoever happened. The others moved in closer around Harry, gazi
ng at the orb as he brushed it free of the clogging dust.
And then, from right behind them, a drawling voice spoke.
'Very good, Potter. Now turn around, nice and slowly, and give that to me.
'
- CHAPTER THIRTY-FIVE -
Beyond the Veil
Black shapes were emerging out of thin air all around them, blocking their way
left and right; eyes glinted through slits in hoods, a dozen lit wand tips we
re pointing directly at their hearts; Ginny gave a gasp of horror.
'To me, Potter,' repeated the drawling voice of Lucius Malfoy as he held o
ut his hand, palm up.
Harry's insides plummeted sickeningly. They were trapped, and outnumbered
two to one.
'To me,' said Malfoy yet again.
'Where's Sirius?' Harry said.
Several of the Death Eaters laughed; a harsh female voice from the midst o
f the shadowy figures to Harry's left said triumphantly, The Dark Lord always
knows!'
'Always,' echoed Malfoy softly. 'Now, give me the prophecy, Potter.'
'I want to know where Sirius is!'
'I want to know where Sirius is!' mimicked the woman to his left.
She and her fellow Death Eaters had closed in so that they were mere feet
away from Harry and the others, the light from their wands dazzling Harry's ey
es.
'You've got him,' said Harry, ignoring the rising panic in his chest, the
dread he had been fighting since they had first entered the ninety-seventh row
. 'He's here. I know he is.'
'The little baby woke up fwightened and fort what it dweamed was twoo,' sa
id the woman in a horrible, mock baby voice. Harry felt Ron stir beside him.
'Don't do anything,' Harry muttered. 'Not yet - '
The woman who had mimicked him let out a raucous scream of laughter.
'You hear him? You hear him? Giving instructions to the other children as
though he thinks of fighting us!'
'Oh, you don't know Potter as I do, Bellatrix,' said Malfoy softly. 'He ha
s a great weakness for heroics; the Dark Lord understands this about him. Now
give me the prophecy, Potter.'
'I know Sirius is here,' said Harry, though panic was causing his chest to
constrict and he felt as though he could not breathe properly. 'I know you've
got him!'
More of the Death Eaters laughed, though the woman laughed loudest of all.
'It's time you learned the difference between life and dreams, Potter,' sa
id Malfoy. 'Now give me the prophecy, or we start using wands.'
'Go on, then,' said Harry, raising his own wand to chest height. As he did
so, the five wands of Ron, Hermione, Neville, Ginny and Luna rose on either s
ide of him. The knot in Harry's stomach tightened. If Sirius really was not he
re, he had led his friends to their deaths for no reason at all . . .
But the Death Eaters did not strike.
'Hand over the prophecy and no one need get hurt,' said Malfoy coolly.
It was Harry's turn to laugh.
'Yeah, right!' he said. 'I give you this - prophecy, is it? And you'll jus
t let us skip off home, will you?'
The words were hardly out of his mouth when the female Death Eater shrieke
d: 'Accio proph-
Harry was just ready for her: he shouted 'Protego' before she had finished
her spell, and though the glass sphere slipped to the tips of his fingers he
managed to cling on to it.
'Oh, he knows how to play, little bitty baby Potter,' she said, her mad ey
es staring through the slits in her hood. 'Very well, then - '
'I TOLD YOU, NO!' Lucius Malfoy roared at the woman. 'If you smash it - !'
Harry's mind was racing. The Death Eaters wanted this dusty spun-glass sph
ere. He had no interest in it. He just wanted to get them all out of this aliv
e, to make sure none of his friends paid a terrible price for his stupidity .
. .
The woman stepped forward, away from her fellows, and pulled off her hood.
Azkaban had hollowed Bellatrix Lestrange's face, making it gaunt and skull-li
ke, but it was alive with a feverish, fanatical glow.
'You need more persuasion?' she said, her chest rising and falling rapidly
. 'Very well - take the smallest one,' she ordered the Death Eaters beside her
. 'Let him watch while we torture the little girl. I'll do it.'
Harry felt the others close in around Ginny; he stepped sideways so that h
e was right in front of her, the prophecy held up to his chest.
'You'll have to smash this if you want to attack any of us,' he told Bella
trix. 'I don't think your boss will be too pleased if you come back without it
, will he?'
She did not move; she merely stared at him, the tip of her tongue moisteni
ng her thin mouth.
'So,' said Harry, 'what kind of prophecy are we talking about, anyway?'
He could not think what to do but to keep talking. Neville's arm was press
ed against his, and he could feel him shaking; he could feel one of the others
' quickened breath on the back of his head. He was hoping they were all thinki
ng hard about ways to get out of this, because his mind was blank.
'What kind of prophecy?' repeated Bellatrix, the grin fading from her face
. 'You jest, Harry Potter.'
'Nope, not jesting,' said Harry, his eyes flicking from Death Eater to Dea
th Eater, looking for a weak link, a space through which they could escape. 'H
ow come Voldemort wants it?
Several of the Death Eaters let out low hisses.
'You dare speak his name?' whispered Bellatrix.
'Yeah,' said Harry, maintaining his tight grip on the glass ball, expectin
g another attempt to bewitch it from him. 'Yeah, I've got no problem with sayi
ng Vol-
'Shut your mouth!' Bellatrix shrieked. 'You dare speak his name with your
unworthy lips, you dare besmirch it with your half-blood's tongue, you dare -
'
'Did you know he's a half-blood too?' said Harry recklessly. Hermione gave
a little moan in his ear. 'Voldemort? Yeah, his mother was a witch but his da
d was a Muggle - or has he been telling you lot he's pure-blood?'
'STUPEF-'
'NO!'
A jet of red light had shot from the end of Bellatrix Lestrange's wand, bu
t Malfoy had deflected it; his spell caused hers to hit the shelf a foot to th
e left of Harry and several of the glass orbs there shattered.
Two figures, pearly-white as ghosts, fluid as smoke, unfurled themselves f
rom the fragments of broken glass upon the floor and each began to speak; thei
r voices vied with each other, so that only fragments of what they were saying
could be heard over Malfoy and Bellatrix's shouts.
'. . . at the solstice will come a new . . .' said the figure of an old, b
earded man.
'DO NOT ATTACK! WE NEED THE PROPHECY!'
'He dared - he dares - ' shrieked Bellatrix incoherently, 'he stands there
- filthy half-blood - '
'WAIT UN'I'LL WE'VE GOT THE PROPHECY!' bawled Malfoy.
'. . . and none will come after . . .' said the figure of a young woman.
The two figures that had burst from the shattered spheres had melted into
thin air. Nothing remained of them or their erstwhile homes but fragments of g
lass upon the floor. They had, however, given Harry an idea. The problem was g
oing to be conveying it to the others.
'You haven't told me what's so special about this prophecy I'm supposed to
be handing over,' he said, playing for time. He moved his foot slowly sideway
s, feeling around for someone else's.
'Do not play games with us, Potter,' said Malfoy.
'I'm not playing games,' said Harry, half his mind on the conversation, ha
lf on his wandering foot. And then he found someone's toes and pressed down up
on them. A sharp intake of breath behind him told him they were Hermione's.
'What?' she whispered.
'Dumbledore never told you the reason you bear that scar was hidden in the
bowels of the Department of Mysteries?' Malfoy sneered.
'I - what?' said Harry. And for a moment he quite forgot his plan. 'What a
bout my scar?'
'What?' whispered Hermione more urgently behind him.
'Can this be?' said Malfoy, sounding maliciously delighted; some of the De
ath Eaters were laughing again, and under cover of their laughter, Harry hisse
d to Hermione, moving his lips as little as possible, 'Smash shelves - '
'Dumbledore never told you?' Malfoy repeated. 'Well, this explains why you
didn't come earlier, Potter, the Dark Lord wondered why - '
' - when I say now - '
' - you didn't come running when he showed you the place where it was hidd
en in your dreams. He thought natural curiosity would make you want to hear th
e exact wording . . .'
'Did he?' said Harry. Behind him he felt rather than heard Hermione passin
g his message to the others and he sought to keep talking, to distract the Dea
th Eaters. 'So he wanted me to come and get it, did he? Why?'
'Why?' Malfoy sounded incredulously delighted. 'Because the only people wh
o are permitted to retrieve a prophecy from the Department of Mysteries, Potte
r, are those about whom it was made, as the Dark Lord discovered when he attem
pted to use others .o steal it for him.'
'And why did he want to steal a prophecy about me?'
'About both of you, Potter, about both of you . . . haven't you ever wonde
red why the Dark Lord tried to kill you as a baby?'
Harry stared into the slitted eye-holes through which Malfoy's grey eyes w
ere gleaming. Was this prophecy the reason Harry's parents had died, the reaso
n he carried his lightning-bolt scar? Was the answer to all of this clutched i
n his hand?
'Someone made a prophecy about Voldemort and me?' he said quietly, gazing
at Lucius Malfoy, his fingers tightening over the warm glass sphere in his han
d. It was hardly larger than a Snitch and still gritty with dust. 'And he's ma
de me come and get it for him? Why couldn't he come and get it himself?'
'Get it himself?' shrieked Bellatrix, over a cackle of mad laughter.
The Dark Lord, walk into the Ministry of Magic, when they are so sweetly i
gnoring his return? The Dark Lord, reveal himself to the Aurors, when at the m
oment they are wasting their time on my dear cousin?'
'So, he's got you doing his dirty work for him, has he?' said Harry. 'Like
he tried to get Sturgis to steal it - and Bode?'
'Very good, Potter, very good . . .' said Malfoy slowly. 'But the Dark Lor
d knows you are not unintell-
'NOW!' yelled Harry.
Five different voices behind him bellowed, 'REDUCTO!' Five curses flew in
five different directions and the shelves opposite them exploded as they hit;
the towering structure swayed as a hundred glass spheres burst apart, pearly-w
hite figures unfurled into the air and floated there, their voices echoing fro
m who knew what long-dead past amid the torrent of crashing glass and splinter
ed wood now raining down upon the floor - '
'RUN!' Harry yelled, as the shelves swayed precariously and more glass sph
eres began to fall from above. He seized a handful of Hermione's robes and dra
gged her forwards, holding one arm over his head as chunks of shelf and shards
of glass thundered down upon them. A Death Eater lunged forwards through the
cloud of dust and Harry elbowed him hard in the masked face; they were all yel
ling, there were cries of pain, and thunderous crashes as the shelves collapse
d upon themselves, weirdly echoing fragments of the Seers unleashed from their
spheres - '
Harry found the way ahead clear and saw Ron, Ginny and Luna sprint past hi
m, their arms over their heads; something heavy struck him on the side of the
face but he merely ducked his head and sprinted onwards; a hand caught him by
the shoulder; he: heard Hermione shout, 'Stupefy!' The hand released him at on
ce - '
They were at the end of row ninety-seven; Harry turned right and began to
sprint in earnest; he could hear footsteps right behind him and Hermione's voi
ce urging Neville on; straight ahead, the door through which they had come was
ajar; Harry could see the glittering light of the bell jar; he pelted through
the doorway, the prophecy still clutched tight and safe in his hand, and wait
ed for the others to hurtle over the threshold before slamming the door behind
them - '
'Colloportus!' gasped Hermione and the door sealed itself with an odd sque
lching noise.
'Where - where are the others?' gasped Harry.
He had thought Ron, Luna and Ginny were ahead of them, that they would be
waiting in this room, but there was nobody there.
'They must have gone the wrong way!' whispered Hermione, terror in her fac
e.
'Listen!' whispered Neville.
Footsteps and shouts echoed from behind the door they had just sealed; Har
ry put his ear close to the door to listen and heard Lucius Malfoy roar, 'Leav
e Nott, leave him, I say - his injuries will be nothing to the Dark Lord compa
red to losing that prophecy. Jugson, come back here, we need to organise! We'l
l split into pairs and search, and don't forget, be gentle with Potter until w
e've got the prophecy, you can kill the others if necessary - 'Bellatrix, Rodo
lphus, you take the left; Crabbe, Rabastan, go right - 'Jugson, Dolohov, the d
oor straight ahead - Macnair and Avery, through here - Rookwood, over there -
Mulciber, come with me!'
'What do we do?' Hermione asked Harry, trembling from head to foot.
'Well, we don't stand here waiting for them to find us, for a start,' said
Harry. 'Let's get away from this door.'
They ran as quietly as they could, past the shimmering bell jar where the
tiny egg was hatching and unhatching, towards the exit into the circular hallw
ay at the far end of the room. They were almost there when Harry heard somethi
ng large and heavy collide with the door Hermione had charmed shut.
'Stand aside!' said a rough voice. 'Alohomora!'
As the door flew open, Harry, Hermione and Neville dived under desks. They
could see the bottom of the two Death Eaters' robes drawing nearer, their fee
t moving rapidly.
They might've run straight through to the hall,' said the rough voice.
'Check under the desks,' said another.
Harry saw the knees of the Death Eaters bend; poking his wand out from und
er the desk, he shouted, 'STUPEFY!'
A jet of red light hit the nearest Death Eater; he fell backwards into a g
randfather clock and knocked it over; the second Death Eater, however, had lea
pt aside to avoid Harry's spell and was pointing his own wand at Hermione, who
was crawling out from under the desk to get a better aim.
'Avada -'
Harry launched himself across the floor and grabbed the Death Eater around
the knees, causing him to topple and his aim to go awry. Neville overturned a
desk in his anxiety to help; and pointing his wand wildly at the struggling p
air, he cried:
'EXPELLIARMUS!'
Both Harry's and the Death Eater's wands flew out of their hands and soare
d back towards the entrance to the Hall of Prophecy; both scrambled to their f
eet and charged after them, the Death Eater in front, Harry hot on his heels,
and Neville bringing up the rear, plainly horrorstruck by what he had done.
'Get out of the way, Harry!' yelled Neville, clearly determined to repair
the damage.
Harry flung himself sideways as Neville took aim again and shouted:
'STUPEFY!'
The jet of red light flew right over the Death Eaters shoulder and hit a g
lass-fronted cabinet on the wall full of variously shaped hour-glasses; the ca
binet fell to the floor and burst apart, glass flying everywhere, sprang back
up on to the wall, fully mended, then fell down again, and shattered - '
The Death Eater had snatched up his wand, which lay on the floor beside th
e glittering bell jar. Harry ducked down behind another desk as the man turned
; his mask had slipped so that he couldn't see. He ripped it off with his free
hand and shouted: 'STUP-'
'STUPEFY!' screamed Hermione, who had just caught up with them. The jet of
red light hit the Death Eater in the middle of his chest: he froze, his arm s
till raised, his wand fell to the floor with a flatter and he collapsed backwa
rds towards the bell jar. Harry expected to hear a clunk, for the man to hit s
olid glass and slide off the jar on to the floor, but instead, his head sank t
hrough the surface of the bell jar as though it were nothing but a soap bubble
and he came to rest, sprawled on his back on the table, with his head lying i
nside the jar full of glittering wind.
'Accio wand!' cried Hermione. Harry's wand flew from a dark corner into he
r hand and she threw it to him.
'Thanks,' he said. 'Right, let's get out of - '
'Look out!' said Neville, horrified. He was staring at the Deati Eater's h
ead in the bell jar.
All three of them raised their wands again, but none of them struck: they
were all gazing, open-mouthed, appalled, at what was happening to the man's he
ad.
It was shrinking very fast, growing balder and balder, the black hair and
stubble retracting into his skull; his cheeks becoming smooth, his skull round
and covered with a peachlike fuzz . . .
A baby's head now sat grotesquely on top of the thick, muscled neck of the
Death Eater as he struggled to get up again; but even as they watched, their
mouths open, the head began to swell to its previous proportions again; thick
black hair was sprouting frori the pate and chin . . .
'It's Time,' said Hermione in an awestruck voice. Time . . .'
The Death Eater shook his ugly head again, trying to clear it, but before
he could pull himself together it began to shrink back to babyhood once more .
. .
There was a shout from a room nearby, then a crash and a scream.
'RON?' Harry yelled, turning quickly from the monstrous transformation tak
ing place before them. 'GINNY? LUNA?'
'Harry!' Hermione screamed.
The Death Eater had pulled his head out of the bell jar. His appearance wa
s utterly bizarre, his tiny baby's head bawling loudly while his thick arms fl
ailed dangerously in all directions, narrowly missing Harry, who had ducked. H
arry raised his wand but to his amazement Hermione seized his arm.
'You can't hurt a baby!'
There was no time to argue the point; Harry could hear more footsteps grow
ing louder from the Hall of Prophecy and knew, too late, that he ought not to
have shouted and given away their position.
'Come on!' he said, and leaving the ugly baby-headed Death Eater staggerin
g behind them they took off for the door that stood open at the other end of t
he room, leading back into the black hallway.
They had run halfway towards it when Harry saw through the open door two m
ore Death Eaters running across the black room towards them; veering left, he
burst instead into a small, dark, cluttered office and slammed the door behind
them.
'Collo - ' began Hermione, but before she could complete the spell the doo
r had burst open and the two Death Eaters had come hurtling inside.
With a cry of triumph, both yelled:
'IMPEDIMENTA.'
Harry, Hermione and Neville were all knocked backwards off their feet; Nev
ille was thrown over the desk and disappeared from view; Hermione smashed into
a bookcase and was promptly deluged in a cascade of heavy books; the back of
Harry's head slammed into the stone wall behind him, tiny lights burst in fron
t of his eyes and for a moment he was too dizzy and bewildered to react.
'WE'VE GOT HIM!' yelled the Death Eater nearest Harry. 'IN AN OFFICE OFF -
'
'Silencio!' cried Hermione and the man's voice was extinguished. He contin
ued to mouth through the hole in his mask, but no sound came out. He was thrus
t aside by his fellow Death Eater.
'Petrificus Totalus!' shouted Harry, as the second Death Eater raised his
wand. His arms and legs snapped together and he fell forwards, face down on to
the rug at Harry's feet, stiff as a board and unable to move.
'Well done, Ha-'
But the Death Eater Hermione had just struck dumb made a sudden slashing m
ovement with his wand; a streak of what looked like purple flame passed right
across Hermione's chest. She gave a tiny 'Oh!' as though of surprise and crump
led on to the floor, where she lay motionless.
'HERMIONE!'
Harry fell to his knees beside her as Neville crawled rapidly towards her
from under the desk, his wand held up in front of him. The Death Eater kicked
out hard at Neville's head as he emerged - his foot broke Neville's wand in tw
o and connected with his face. Neville gave a howl of pain and recoiled, clutc
hing his mouth and nose. Harry twisted around, his own wand held high, and saw
that the Death Eater had ripped off his mask and was pointing his wand direct
ly at Harry, who recognised the long, pale, twisted face from the Daily Prophe
t: Antonin Dolohov, the wizard who had murdered the Prewetts.
Dolohov grinned. With his free hand, he pointed from the prophecy still cl
utched in Harry's hand, to himself, then at Hermione. Though he could no longe
r speak, his meaning could not have been clearer. Give me the prophecy, or you
get the same as her . . .
'Like you won't kill us all anyway, the moment I hand it over!' said Harry
.
A whine of panic inside his head was preventing him thinking properly: he
had one hand on Hermione's shoulder, which was still warm, yet did not dare lo
ok at her properly. Don't let her be dead, don't let her be dead, it's my faul
t if she's dead . . .
"Whaddever you do, Harry,' said Neville fiercely from under the desk, lowe
ring his hands to show a clearly broken nose and blood pouring down his mouth
and chin, 'don'd gib it to him!'
Then there was a crash outside the door and Dolohov looked over his should
er - the baby-headed Death Eater had appeared in the doorway, his head bawling
, his great fists still flailing uncontrollably at everything around him. Harr
y seized his chance:
'PETRIF1CUS TOTALUS!'
The spell hit Dolohov before he could block it and he toppled forwards acr
oss his comrade, both of them rigid as boards and unable to move an inch.
'Hermione,' Harry said at once, shaking her as the baby-headed Death Eater
blundered out of sight again. 'Hermione, wake up
'Whaddid he do to her?' said Neville, crawling out from under the desk to
kneel at her other side, blood streaming from his rapidly swelling nose.
'I dunno . . . '
Neville groped for Hermione's wrist.
'Dat's a pulse, Harry, I'b sure id is.'
Such a powerful wave of relief swept through Harry that for a moment he fe
lt light-headed.
'She's alive?'
'Yeah, I dink so.'
There was a pause in which Harry listened hard for the sound of more foots
teps, but all he could hear were the whimpers and blunderings of the baby-head
ed Death Eater in the next room.
'Neville, we're not far from the exit,' Harry whispered, 'we're right next
to that circular room . . . if we can just get you across it and find the rig
ht: door before any more Death Eaters come, I'll bet you can get Hermione up t
he corridor and into the lift . . . then you could find someone . . . raise th
e alarm . . .'
'And whad are you going do do?' said Neville, mopping his bleeding nose wi
th his sleeve and frowning at Harry.
'I've got to find the others,' said Harry.
'Well, I'b going do find dem wid you,' said Neville firmly.
'But Hermione - '
'We'll dake her wid us,' said Neville firmly. 'I'll carry her - you're bed
der at fighding dem dan I ab -
He stood up and seized one of Hermione's arms, glaring at Harry, who hesit
ated, then grabbed the other and helped hoist Hermione's limp form over Nevill
e's shoulders.
'Wait,' said Harry, snatching up Hermione's wand from the floor and shovin
g it into Neville's hand, 'you'd better take this.'
Neville kicked aside the broken fragments of his own wand as they walked s
lowly towards the door.
'My gran's going do kill be,' said Neville thickly, blood spattering from
his nose as he spoke, 'dat was by dad's old wand.'
Harry stuck his head out of the door and looked around cautiously. The bab
y-headed Death Eater was screaming and banging into things, toppling grandfath
er clocks and overturning desks, bawling and confused, while the glass-fronted
cabinet that Harry now suspected had contained Time-Turners continued to fall
, shatter and repair itself on the wall behind them.
'He's never going to notice us, he whispered. 'C'mon . . . keep close behi
nd me . . .'
They crept out of the office and back towards the door into the black hall
way, which now seemed completely deserted. They walked a few steps forwards, N
eville tottering slightly due to Hermione's weight; the door of the Time Room
swung shut behind them and the walls began to rotate once more. The recent blo
w on the back of Harry's head seemed to have unsteadied him; he narrowed his e
yes, swaying slightly, until the walls stopped moving again. With a sinking he
art, Harry saw that Hermione's fiery crosses had faded from the doors.
'So which way d'you reck-?'
But before they could make a decision as to which way to try, a door to th
eir right sprang open and three people fell out of it.
'Ron!' croaked Harry, dashing towards them. 'Ginny - are you all - ?'
'Harry,' said Ron, giggling weakly, lurching forwards, seizing the front o
f Harry's robes and gazing at him with unfocused eyes, 'there you are . . . ha
ha ha . . . you look funny, Harry . . . you're all messed up . . .'
Ron's face was very white and something dark was trickling from the corner
of his mouth. Next moment his knees had given way, but he still clutched the
front of Harry's robes, so that Harry was pulled into a kind of bow.
'Ginny?' Harry said fearfully. 'What happened?'
But Ginny shook her head and slid down the wall into a sitting position, p
anting and holding her ankle.
'I think her ankle's broken, I heard something crack,' whispered Luna, who
was bending over her and who alone seemed to be unhurt. 'Four of them chased
us into a dark room full of planets; it was a very odd place, some of the time
we were just floating in the dark - '
'Harry, we saw Uranus up close!' said Ron, still giggling feebly. 'Get it,
Harry? We saw Uranus - ha ha ha - '
A bubble of blood grew at the corner of Ron's mouth and burst.
' - anyway, one of them grabbed Ginny's foot, I used the Reductcr Curse an
d blew up Pluto in his face, but . . .'
Luna gestured hopelessly at Ginny, who was breathing in a very shallow way
, her eyes still closed.
'And what about Ron?' said Harry fearfully, as Ron continued to giggle, st
ill hanging off the front of Harry's robes.
'I don't know what they hit him with,' said Luna sadly, 'but he's gone a b
it funny, I could hardly get him along at all.'
'Harry,' said Ron, pulling Harry's ear down to his mouth and still gigglin
g weakly, 'you know who this girl is, Harry? She's Loony . . . Loony Lovegood
. . . ha ha ha . . .'
'We've got to get out of here,' said Harry firmly. 'Luna, can you help Gin
ny?'
'Yes,' said Luna, sticking her wand behind her ear for safekeeping, then p
utting an arm around Ginny's waist and pulling her up.
'It's only my ankle, I can do it myself!' said Ginny impatiently, but next
moment she had collapsed sideways and grabbed Luna for support. Harry pulled
Ron's arm over his shoulder just as, so many months ago, he had pulled Dudley'
s. He looked around: they had a one in twelve chance of getting the exit right
first time - '
He heaved Ron towards a door; they were within a few feet of it when anoth
er door across the hall burst open and three Death Eaters sped in, led. by Bel
latrix Lestrange.
'There they are!' she shrieked.
Stunning Spells shot across the room: Harry smashed his way through the do
or ahead, flung Ron unceremoniously from him and ducked back to help Neville i
n with Hermione: they were all over the threshold just in time to slam the doo
r against Bellatrix.
'Colloportus!' shouted Harry, and he heard three bodies slam into the door
on the other side.
'It doesn't matter!' said a man's voice. There are other ways in - WE'VE G
OT THEM, THEY'RE HERE!'
Harry span around; they were back in the Brain Room and, sure enough, ther
e were doors all around the walls. He could hear footsteps in the hall behind
them as more Death Eaters came running to join the first.
'Luna - Neville - help me!'
The three of them tore around the room, sealing the doors as they went; Ha
rry crashed into a tbale and rolled over the top of it in his haste to reach t
he next door:
'Colloportus!'
There were footsteps running along behind the doors, every now and then an
other heavy body would launch itself against one, so it creaked and shuddered;
Luna and Neville were bewitching the doors along the opposite wall - then, as
Harry reached the very top of the room, he heard Luna cry:
'Collo- aaaaaaaaargh . . .'
He turned in time to see her flying through the air; five Death Eaters wer
e surging into the room through the door she had not reached in time; Luna hit
a desk, slid over its surface and on to the floor on the other side where she
lay sprawled, as still as Hermione.
'Get Potter!' shrieked Bellatrix, and she ran at him; he dodged her and sp
rinted back up the room; he was safe as long as they thought they might hit th
e prophecy - '
'Hey!' said Ron, who had staggered to his feet and was now tottering drunk
enly towards Harry, giggling. 'Hey, Harry, there are brains in here, ha ha ha,
isn't that weird, Harry?'
'Ron, get out of the way, get down - '
But Ron had already pointed his wand at the tank.
'Honest, Harry, they're brains - look - Accio brain!'
The scene seemed momentarily frozen. Harry, Ginny and Neville and each of
the Death Eaters turned in spite of themselves to watch the top of the tank as
a brain burst from the green liquid like a leaping fish: for a moment it seem
ed suspended in midair, then t soared towards Ron, spinning as it came, and wh
at looked like ribbons of moving images flew from it, unravelling like rolls o
f film -
'Ha ha ha, Harry, look at it - ' said Ron, watching it disgorge its gaudy
innards, 'Harry, come and touch it; bet it's weird - '
'RON, NO!'
Harry did not know what would happen if Ron touched the tentacles of thoug
ht now flying behind the brain, but he was sure it would not be anything good.
He darted forwards but Ron had already caught the brain in his outstretched h
ands.
The moment they made contact with his skin, the tentacles began wrapping t
hemselves around Ron's arms like ropes.
'Harry, look what's happen- No - no - I don't like it - no, stop - stop -
'
But the thin ribbons were spinning around Ron's chest now; he tugged and t
ore at them as the brain was pulled tight against him like an octopus's body.
'Diffindo!' yelled Harry, trying to sever the feelers wrapping themselves
tightly around Ron before his eyes, but they would not break. Ron fell over, s
till thrashing against his bonds.
'Harry, it'll suffocate him!' screamed Ginny, immobilised by her broken an
kle on the floor - then a jet of red light flew from one of the Death Eater's
wands and hit her squarely in the face. She keeled over sideways and lay there
unconscious.
'STUBEFY!' shouted Neville, wheeling around and waving Hermione's wand at
the oncoming Death Eaters, 'STUBEFY, STUBEFY!'
But nothing happened.
One of the Death Eaters shot their own Stunning Spell at Neville; it misse
d him by inches. Harry and Neville were now the only two left fighting the fiv
e Death Eaters, two of whom sent off streams of silver light like arrows which
missed but left craters in the wall behind them. Harry ran for it as Bellatri
x Lestrange raced right at him: holding the prophecy high above his head, he s
printed back up the room; all he could think of doing was to draw the Death Ea
ters away from the others.
It seemed to have worked; they streaked after him, knocking chairs and tab
les flying but not daring to bewitch him in case they hurt the prophecy, and h
e dashed through the only door still open, the one through which the Death Eat
ers themselves had come; inwardly praying that Neville would stay with Ron and
find some way of releasing him. He ran a few feet into the new room and felt
the floor vanish - '
He was falling down steep stone step after steep stone step, bouncing on e
very tier until at last, with a crash that knocked all the breath out of his b
ody, he landed flat on his back in the sunken p t where the stone archway stoo
d on its dais. The whole room was ringing with the Death Eater's laughter: he
looked up and saw the five who had been in the Brain Room descending towards h
im, while as many more emerged through other doorways and began leaping from b
ench to bench towards him. Harry got to his feet though his legs were tremblin
g so badly they barely supported him: the prophecy was still miraculously unbr
oken in his left hand, his wand clutched tightly in his right. He backed away,
looking around, trying to keep all the Death Eaters within his sight. The bac
k of his legs hit something solid: he had reached the dais where the archway s
tood. He climbed backwards onto it.
The Death Eaters all halted, gazing at him. Some were panting as hard as h
e was. One was bleeding badly; Dolohov, freed of the Body-Bind Curse, was leer
ing, his wand pointing straight at Harry's face.
'Potter, your race is run,' drawled Lucius Malfoy, pulling off his mask, '
now hand me the prophecy like a good boy.'
'Let - let the others go, and I'll give it to you!' said Harry desperately
.
A few of the Death Eaters laughed.
'You are not in a position to bargain, Potter,' said Lucius Malfoy, his pa
le face flushed with pleasure. 'You see, there are ten of us and only one of y
ou . . . or hasn't Dumbledore ever taught you how to count?'
'He's dot alone!' shouted a voice from above them. 'He's still god be!'
Harry's heart sank: Neville was scrambling down the stone benches towards
them, Hermione's wand held fast in his trembling hand.
'Neville - no - go back to Ron - '
'STUBEFY!' Neville shouted again, pointing his wand at each Death Eater in
turn. 'STUBEFY! 'STUBE - '
One of the largest Death Eaters seized Neville from behind, pinioning his
arms to his sides. He struggled and kicked; several of the Death Eaters laughe
d.
'It's Longbottom, isn't it?' sneered Lucius Malfoy. 'Well, your grandmothe
r is used to losing family members to our cause . . . your death will not come
as a great shock.'
'Longbottom?' repeated Bellatrix, and a truly evil smile lit her gaunt fac
e. 'Why, I have had the pleasure of meeting your parents, boy.'
'I DOE YOU HAB!' roared Neville, and he fought so hard against his captor'
s encircling grip that the Death Eater shouted, 'Someone Stun him!'
'No, no, no,' said Bellatrix. She looked transported, alive with excitemen
t as she glanced at Harry, then back at Neville. 'No, let's see how long Longb
ottom lasts before he cracks like his parents . . . unless Potter wants to giv
e us the prophecy.'
'DON'D GIB ID DO DEM!' roared Neville, who seemed beside himself, kicking
and writhing as Bellatrix drew nearer to him and his captor, her wand raised.
'DON'D GIB ID DO DEM, HARRY!'
Bellatrix raised her wand. 'Crucio!'
Neville screamed, his legs drawn up to his chest so that the Death Eater h
olding him was momentarily holding him off the ground. The Death Eater dropped
him and he fell to the floor, twitching and screaming in agony.
'That was just a taster!' said Bellatrix, raising her wand so that Neville
's screams stopped and he lay sobbing at her feet. She turned and gazed up at
Harry. 'Now, Potter, either give us the prophecy, or watch your little friend
die the hard way!'
Harry did not have to think; there was no choice. The prophecy was hot wit
h the heat of his clutching hand as he held it out. Malfoy jumped forwards to
take it.
Then, high above them, two more doors burst open and five more people spri
nted into the room: Sirius, Lupin, Moody, Tonks and Kingsley.
Malfoy turned, and raised his wand, but Tonks had already sent a Stunning
Spell right at him. Harry did not wait to see whether it had made contact, but
dived off the dais out of the way. The Death Eaters were completely distracte
d by the appearance of the members of the Order, who were now raining spells d
own upon them as they jumped from step to step towards the sunken floor. Throu
gh the darting bodies, the flashes of light, Harry could see Neville crawling
along. He dodged another jet of red light and flung himself flat on the ground
to reach Neville.
Are you OK? he yelled, as another spell soared inches over their heads.
'Yes,' said Neville, trying to pull himself up.
'And Ron?'
'I dink he's all righd - he was still fighding de brain when I lefd - '
The stone floor between them exploded as a spell hit it, leaving a crater
right where Neville's hand had been only seconds before; both scrambled away f
rom the spot, then a thick arm came out of nowhere, seized Harry around the ne
ck and pulled him upright, so that his toes were barely touching the floor.
'Give it to me,' growled a voice in his ear, 'give me the prophecy - '
The man was pressing so tightly on Harry's windpipe that he could not brea
the. Through watering eyes he saw Sirius duelling with a Death Eater some ten
feet away; Kingsley was fighting two at once; Tonks, still halfway up the tier
ed seats, was firing spells down at Bellatrix - nobody seemed to realise that
Harry was dying. He turned his wand backwards towards the man's side, but had
no breath to utter an incantation, and the man's free hand was groping towards
the hand in which Harry was grasping the prophecy - '
'AARGH!'
Neville had come lunging out of nowhere; unable to articulate a spell, he
had jabbed Hermione's wand hard into the eyehole of the Death Eater's mask. Th
e man relinquished Harry at once with a howl of pain. Harry whirled around to
face him and gasped:
'STUPEFY!'
The Death Eater keeled over backwards and his mask slipped off: it was Mac
nair, Buckbeak's would-be killer, one of his eyes now swollen and bloodshot.
Thanks!' Harry said to Neville, pulling him aside as Sirius and his Death
Eater lurched past, duelling so fiercely that their wands were blurs; then Har
ry's foot made contact with something round and hard and he slipped. For a mom
ent he thought he had dropped the prophecy, but then he saw Moody's magical ey
e spinning away across the floor.
Its owner was lying on his side, bleeding from the head, and
his attacker was now bearing down upon Harry and Neville: Dolohov, his lon
g pale face twisted with glee.
'Tarantallegra!' he shouted, his wand pointing at Neville, whose legs went
immediately into a kind of frenzied tap-dance, unbalancing him and causing hi
m to fall to the floor again. 'Now, Potter - '
He made the same slashing movement with his wand that he had used on Hermi
one just as Harry yelled, 'Protego!'
Harry felt something streak across his face like a blunt knife; the force
of it knocked him sideways and he fell over Neville's jerking legs, but the Sh
ield Charm had stopped the worst of the spell.
Dolohov raised his wand again. 'Accio proph-'
Sirius had hurtled out of nowhere, rammed Dolohov with his shoulder and se
nt him flying out of the way. The prophecy had again flown to the tips of Harr
y's fingers but he had managed to cling on to it. Now Sirius and Dolohov were
duelling, their wands flashing like swords, sparks flying from their wand-tips
- '
Dolohov drew back his wand to make the same slashing movement he had used
on Harry and Hermione. Springing up, Harry yelled, 'Petrificus Totalus!' Once
again, Dolohov's arms and legs snapped together and he keeled over backwards,
landing with a crash on his back.
'Nice one!' shouted Sirius, forcing Harry's head down as a pair of Stunnin
g Spells flew towards them. 'Now I want you to get out of- '
They both ducked again; a jet of green light had narrowly missed Sirius. A
cross the room Harry saw Tonks fall from halfway up the stone steps, her limp
form toppling from stone seat to stone seat and Bellatrix, triumphant, running
back towards the fray.
'Harry, take the prophecy, grab Neville and run!' Sirius yelled, dashing t
o meet Bellatrix. Harry did not see what happened next: Kingsley swayed across
his field of vision, battling with the pockmarked and no longer masked Rookwo
od; another jet of green light flew over Harry's head as he launched himself t
owards Neville - '
'Can you stand?' he bellowed in Neville's ear, as Neville's legs jerked an
d twitched uncontrollably. 'Put your arm round my neck -
Neville did so - Harry heaved - Neville's legs were still lying in every d
irection, they would not support him, and then, out of nowhere, a man lunged a
t them: both fell backwards, Neville's legs waving wildly like an overturned b
eetle's, Harry with his left arm held up in the air to try to save the small g
lass ball from being smashed.
'The prophecy, give me the prophecy, Potter!' snarled Lucus Malfoy's voice
in his ear, and Harry felt the tip of Malfoy's wand pressing hard between his
ribs.
'No - get - off - me . . . Neville - catch it!'
Harry flung the prophecy across the floor, Neville span himself around on
his back and scooped the ball to his chest. Malfoy pointed the wand instead at
Neville, but Harry jabbed his own wand back over his shoulder and yelled, 'Im
pedimenta!'
Malfoy was blasted off his back. As Harry scrambled up again he looked aro
und and saw Malfoy smash into the dais on which Sirius and Bellatrix were now
duelling. Malfoy aimed his wand at Harry and Neville again, but before he coul
d draw breath to strike, Lupin had jumped between them.
'Harry, round up the others and GO!'
Harry seized Neville by the shoulder of his robes and lifted him bodily on
to the first tier of stone steps; Neville's legs twitched and jerked and woul
d not support his weight; Harry heaved again with all the strength he possesse
d and they climbed another step - '
A spell hit the stone bench at Harry's heel; it crumbled away and he fell
back to the step below. Neville sank to the ground, his legs still jerking and
thrashing, and he thrust the prophecy into his pocket.
'Come on!' said Harry desperately, hauling at Neville's robes. 'Just try a
nd push with your legs -'
He gave another stupendous heave and Neville's robes tore all along the le
ft seam - the small spun-glass ball dropped from his pocket and, before either
of them could catch it, one of Neville's floundering feet kicked it: it flew
some ten feet to their right and smashed on the step beneath them. As both of
them stared at the place where it had broken, appalled at what had happened, a
pearly-white figure with hugely magnified eyes rose into the air, unnoticed b
y any but them. Harry could see its mouth moving, but in all the crashes and s
creams and yells surrounding them, not one word of the prophecy could he hear.
The figure stopped speaking and dissolved into nothingness.
'Harry, I'b sorry!' cried Neville, his face anguished as his legs continue
d to flounder. Tb so sorry, Harry, I didn'd bean do - '
'It doesn't matter!' Harry shouted. 'Just try and stand, let's get out of
- '
'Dubbledore!' said Neville, his sweaty face suddenly transported, staring
over Harry's shoulder.
'What?'
'DUBBLEDORE!'
Harry turned to look where Neville was staring. Directly above them, frame
d in the doorway from the Brain Room, stood Albus Dumbledore, his wand aloft,
his face white and furious. Harry felt a kind of electric charge surge through
every particle of his body - they were saved.
Dumbledore sped down the steps past Neville and Harry, who had no more tho
ughts of leaving. Dumbledore was already at the foot of the steps when the Dea
th Eaters nearest realised he was there and yelled to the others. One of the D
eath Eaters ran for it, scrabbling like a monkey up the stone steps opposite.
Dumbledore's spell pulled him back as easily and effortlessly as though he had
hooked him with an invisible line - '
Only one pair was still battling, apparently unaware of the new arrival. H
arry saw Sirius duck Bellatrix's jet of red light: he was laughing at her.
'Come on, you can do better than that!' he yelled, his voice echoing aroun
d the cavernous room.
The second jet of light hit him squarely on the chest.
The laughter had not quite died from his face, but his eyes widened in sho
ck.
Harry released Neville, though he was unaware of doing so. He was jumping
down the steps again, pulling out his wand, as Dumbledore, too, turned towards
the dais.
It seemed to take Sirius an age to tall: his body curved in a graceful arc
as he sank backwards through the ragged veil hanging from the arch.
Harry saw the look of mingled fear and surprise on his godfathers wasted,
once-handsome face as he fell through the ancient doorway and disappeared behi
nd the veil, which fluttered for a moment as though in a high wind, then fell
back into place.
Harry heard Bellatrix Lestrange's triumphant scream, but knew it meant not
hing - Sirius had only just fallen through the archway, he would reappear from
the other side any second . . .
But Sirius did not reappear.
'SIRIUS!' Harry yelled. 'SIRIUS!'
He had reached the floor, his breath coming in searing gasps. Sirius must
be just behind the curtain, he, Harry, would pull him back out . . .
But as he reached the ground and sprinted towards the dais, Lupin grabbed
Harry around the chest, holding him back.
There's nothing you can do, Harry - '
'Get him, save him, he's only just gone through!'
' - it's too late, Harry.'
'We can still reach him - ' Harry struggled hard and viciously, but Lupin
would not let go . . .
There's nothing you can do, Harry . . . nothing . . . he's gone.'
- CHAPTER THIRTY-SIX -
The Only One
He Ever Feared
'He hasn't gone!' Harry yelled.
He did not believe it; he would not believe it; still he fought Lupin with
every bit of strength he had. Lupin did not understand; people hid behind tha
t curtain; Harry had heard them whispering the first time he had entered the r
oom. Sirius was hiding, simply lurking out of sight - '
'SIRIUS!' he bellowed. 'SIRIUS!'
'He can't come back, Harry,' said Lupin, his voice breaking as he struggle
d to contain Harry. 'He can't come back, because he's d-
'HE - IS - NOT - DEAD!' roared Harry. 'SIRIUS!'
There was movement going on around them, pointless bustling, the flashes o
f more spells. To Harry it was meaningless noise, the deflected curses flying
past them did not matter, nothing mattered except that Lupin should stop prete
nding that Sirius - who was standing feet from them behind that old curtain -
was not going to emerge at any moment, shaking back his dark hair and eager to
re-enter the battle.
Lupin dragged Harry away from the dais. Harry still staring at the archway
, was angry at Sirius now for keeping him waiting - '
But some part of him realised, even as he fought to break free from Lupin,
that Sirius had never kept him waiting before . . . Sirius had risked everyth
ing, always, to see Harry to help him . . . if Sirius was not reappearing out
of that archway when Harry was yelling for him as though his life depended on
it, the only possible explanation was that he could not come back . . . that h
e really was - '
Dumbledore had most of the remaining Death haters grouped in the middle of
the room, seemingly immobilised by invisible ropes; Mad-Eye Moody had crawled
across the room to where Tonks lay, and was attempting to revive her; behind
the dais there were still flashes of light, grunts and cries - Kingsley had ru
n forward to continue Sirius's duel with Bellatrix.
'Harry?'
Neville had slid down the stone benches one by one to the place where Harr
y stood. Harry was no longer struggling against Lupin, who maintained a precau
tionary grip on his arm nevertheless.
'Harry . . . I'b really sorry . . .' said Neville. His legs were still dan
cing uncontrollably. 'Was dad man - was Sirius Black a - a friend of yours?'
Harry nodded.
'Here,' said Lupin quietly, and pointing his wand at Neville's legs he sai
d, 'Finite.' The spell was lifted: Neville's legs fell back to the floor and r
emained still. Lupin's face was pale. 'Let's - let's find the others. Where ar
e they all, Neville?'
Lupin turned away from the archway as he spoke. It sounded as though every
word was causing him pain.
'Dey're all back dere,' said Neville. 'A brain addacked Ron bud I dink he'
s all righd - and Herbione's unconscious, bud we cou'.d feel a bulse - '
There was a loud bang and a yell from behind the dais. Harry saw Kingsley
hit the ground yelling in pain: Bellatrix Lestrange turned tail and ran as Dum
bledore whipped around. He aimed a spell at her but she deflected it; she was
halfway up the steps now - '
'Harry - no!' cried Lupin, but Harry had already ripped his arm from Lupin
's slackened grip.
'SHE KILLED SIRIUS!' bellowed Harry. 'SHE KILLED HIM - 'I'LL KILL HER!'
And he was off, scrambling up the stone benches; people were shouting behi
nd him but he did not care. The hem of Bellatrix's robes whipped out of sight
ahead and they were back in the room where the brains were swimming . . .
She aimed a curse over her shoulder. The tank rose into the air and tipped
. Harry was deluged in the foul-smelling potion within: the brains slipped and
slid over him and began spinning their long coloured tentacles, but he shoute
d, "Wingardium Leviosa!' and they flew off him up into the air. Slipping and s
liding, he ran on towards the door; he leapt over Luna, who was groaning on th
e floor, past Ginny, who said, 'Harry - what - ?', past Ron, who giggled feebl
y, and Hermione, who was still unconscious. He wrenched open the door into the
circular black hall and saw Bellatrix disappearing through a door on the othe
r side of the room; beyond her was the corridor leading back to the lifts.
He ran, but she had slammed the door behind her and the walls were already
rotating. Once more, he was surrounded by streaks of blue light from the whir
ling candelabra.
'Where's the exit?' he shouted desperately, as the wall rumbled to a halt
again. 'Where's the way out?'
The room seemed to have been waiting for him to ask. The door right behind
him flew open and the corridor towards the lifts stretched ahead of him, torc
h-lit and empty. He ran . . .
He could hear a lift clattering ahead; he sprinted up the passageway, swun
g around the corner and slammed his fist on to the button to call a second lif
t. It jangled and banged lower and lower; the grilles slid open and Harry dash
ed inside, now hammering the button marked 'Atrium'. The doors slid shut and h
e was rising . . .
He forced his way out of the lift before the grilles were fully open and l
ooked around. Bellatrix was almost at the telephone lift at the other end of t
he hall, but she looked back as he sprinted towards her and aimed another spel
l at him. He dodged behind the Fountain of Magical Brethren: the spell zoomed
past him and hit the wrought-gold gates at the other end of the Atrium so that
they rang like bells. There were no more footsteps. She had stopped running.
He crouched behind the statues, listening.
'Come out, come out, little Harry!' she called in her mock baby voice, whi
ch echoed off the polished wooden floors. 'What did you come after me for, the
n? I thought you were here to avenge my dear cousin!'
'I am!' shouted Harry, and a score of ghostly Harry's seemed to chorus I a
m! I am! I am! all around the room.
'Aaaaaah . . . did you love him, little baby Potter?
Hatred rose in Harry such as he had never known before; he flung himself o
ut from behind the fountain and bellowed, 'Crucio!'
Bellatrix screamed: the spell had knocked her off her feet, but she did no
t writhe and shriek with pain as Neville had - she was already back on her fee
t, breathless, no longer laughing. Harry dodged behind the golden fountain aga
in. Her counter-spell hit the head of the handsome wizard, which was blown off
and landed twenty feet away, gouging long scratches into the wooden floor.
'Never used an Unforgivable Curse before, have you, boy?' she yelled. She
had abandoned her baby voice now. 'You need to mean them, Potter! You need to
really want to cause pain - to enjoy it - righteous anger won't hurt me for lo
ng - I'll show you how it is done, shall I? I'll give you a lesson - '
Harry was edging around the fountain on the other side when she screamed,
'Crucio!' and he was forced to duck down again as the centaur's arm, holding i
ts bow, span off and landed with a crash on the floor a short distance from th
e golden wizard's head.
'Potter, you cannot win against me!' she cried.
He could hear her moving to the right, trying to get a clear shot of him.
He backed around the statue away from her, crouching behind the centaur's legs
, his head level with the house-elf's.
'I was and am the Dark Lord's most loyal servant. I learned the Dark Arts
from him, and I know spells of such power that you, pathetic little boy, can n
ever hope to compete - '
'Stupefy!' yelled Harry. He had edged right around to where the goblin sto
od beaming up at the now headless wizard and taken aim at her back as she peer
ed around the fountain. She reacted so fast he barely had time to duck.
'Protege!'
The jet of red light, his own Stunning Spell, bounced back at him. Harry s
crambled back behind the fountain and one of the goblin's ears went flying acr
oss the room.
'Potter, I'm going to give you one chance!' shouted Bellatrix. 'Give me th
e prophecy - roll it out towards me now - and I may spare your life!'
'Well, you're going to have to kill me, because it's gone!' Harry roared a
nd, as he shouted it, pain seared across his forehead; his scar was on fire ag
ain, and he felt a surge of fury that was quite unconnected with his own rage.
'And he knows!' said Harry, with a mad laugh to match Bellatrix's own. 'Your
dear old mate Voldemort knows it's gone! He's not going to be happy with you,
is he?'
'What? What do you mean?' she cried, and for the first time there was fear
in her voice.
The prophecy smashed when I was trying to get Neville up the steps! What d
o you think Voldemort'll say about that, then?'
His scar seared and burned . . . the pain of it was making his eyes stream
. . .
'LIAR!' she shrieked, but he could hear the terror behind the anger now. '
YOU'VE GOT IT, POTTER, AND YOU WILL GIVE IT TO ME! Accio prophecy! ACCIO PROPH
ECY!'
Harry laughed again because he knew it would incense her, the pain buildin
g in his head so badly he thought his skull might burst. He waved his empty ha
nd from behind the one-eared goblin and withdrew it quickly as she sent anothe
r jet of green light flying at him.
'Nothing there!' he shouted. 'Nothing to summon! It smashed and nobody hea
rd what it said, tell your boss that!'
'No!' she screamed. 'It isn't true, you're lying! MASTER, I TRIED, I TRIED
- DO NOT PUNISH ME - '
'Don't waste your breath!' yelled Harry, his eyes screwed up against the p
ain in his scar, now more terrible than ever. 'He can't hear you from here!'
'Can't I, Potter?' said a high, cold voice.
Harry opened his eyes.
Tall, thin and black-hooded, his terrible snakelike face white and gaunt,
his scarlet, slit-pupilled eyes staring . . . Lord Voldemort had appeared in t
he middle of the hall, his wand pointing at Harry who stood frozen, quite unab
le to move.
'So, you smashed my prophecy?' said Voldemort softly, staring at Harry wit
h those pitiless red eyes. 'No, Bella, he is not lying . . . I see the truth l
ooking at me from within his worthless mind . . . months of preparation, month
s of effort . . . and my Death Eaters have let Harry Potter thwart me again .
. .'
'Master, I am sorry, I knew not, I was fighting the Animagus Black!' sobbe
d Bellatrix, flinging herself down at Voldemort's feet as he paced slowly near
er. 'Master, you should know - '
'Be quiet, Bella,' said Voldemort dangerously. 'I shall deal with you in a
moment. Do you think I have entered the Ministry of Magic to hear your snivel
ling apologies?'
'But Master - he is here - he is below - '
Voldemort paid no attention.
'I have nothing more to say to you, Potter,' he said quietly. 'You have ir
ked me too often, for too long. AVADA KEDAVRA!'
Harry had not even opened his mouth to resist; his mind was blank, his wan
d pointing uselessly at the floor.
But the headless golden statue of the wizard in the fountain had sprung al
ive, leaping from its plinth to land with a crash on the floor between Harry a
nd Voldemort. The spell merely glanced off its chest as the statue flung out i
ts arms to protect Harry.
'What - ?' cried Voldemort, staring around. And then he breathed, 'Dumbled
ore!'
Harry looked behind him, his heart pounding. Dumbledore was standing in fr
ont of the golden gates.
Voldemort raised his wand and another jet of green light streaked at Dumbl
edore, who turned and was gone in a whirling of his cloak. Next second, he had
reappeared behind Voldemort and waved his wand towards the remnants of the fo
untain. The other statues sprang to life. The statue of the witch ran at Bella
trix, who screamed and sent spells streaming uselessly off its chest, before i
t dived at her, pinning her to the floor. Meanwhile, the goblin and the house-
elf scuttled towards the fireplaces set along the wall and the one-armed centa
ur galloped at Voldemort, who vanished and reappeared beside the pool. The hea
dless statue thrust Harry backwards, away from the fight, as Dumbledore advanc
ed on Voldemort and the golden centaur cantered around them both.
'It was foolish to come here tonight, Tom,' said Dumbledore calmly. The Au
rors are on their way - '
'By which time I shall be gone, and you will be dead!' spat Voldemort. He
sent another killing curse at Dumbledore but missed, instead hitting the secur
ity guard's desk, which burst into flame.
Dumbledore flicked his own wand: the force of the spell that emanated from
it was such that Harry, though shielded by his golden guard, felt his hair st
and on end as it passed and this time Voldemort was forced to conjure a shinin
g silver shield out of thin air to deflect it. The spell, whatever it was, cau
sed no visible damage to the shield, though a deep, gong-like note reverberate
d from it - an oddly chilling sound.
'You do not seek to kill me, Dumbledore?' called Voldemort, his scarlet ey
es narrowed over the top of the shield. 'Above such brutality, are you?'
'We both know that there are other ways of destroying a man, Tom,' Dumbled
ore said calmly, continuing to walk towards Voldemort as though he had not a f
ear in the world, as though nothing had happened to interrupt his stroll up th
e hall. 'Merely taking your life would not satisfy me, I admit - '
There is nothing worse than death, Dumbledore!' snarled Voldemort.
'You are quite wrong,' said Dumbledore, still closing in upon Voldemort an
d speaking as lightly as though they were discussing the matter over drinks. H
arry felt scared to see him walking along, undefended, shieldless; he wanted t
o cry out a warning, but his headless guard kept shunting him backwards toward
s the wall, blocking his every attempt to gel out from behind it. 'Indeed, you
r failure to understand that there are things much worse than death has always
been your greatest weakness - '
Another jet of green light flew from behind the silver shield. This time i
t was the one-armed centaur, galloping in front of Dumbledore, that took the b
last and shattered into a hundred pieces, but before the fragments had even hi
t the floor, Dumbledore had drawn back his wand and waved it as though brandis
hing a whip. A long thin flame flew from the tip; it wrapped itself around Vol
demort, shield and all. For a moment, it seemed Dumbledore had won, but then t
he fiery rope became a serpent, which relinquished its hold on Voldemort at on
ce and turned, hissing furiously, to face Dumbledore.
Voldemort vanished; the snake reared from the floor, ready to strike - '
There was a burst of flame in midair above Dumbledore just as Voldemort re
appeared, standing on the plinth in the middle of the pool where so recently t
he five statues had stood.
'Look out!' Harry yelled.
But even as he shouted, another jet of green light flew at Dumbledore from
Voldemort's wand and the snake struck - '
Fawkes swooped down in front of Dumbledore, opened his beak wide and swall
owed the jet of green light whole: he burst into flame and fell to the floor,
small, wrinkled and flightless. At the same moment, Dumbledore brandished his
wand in one long, fluid movement - the snake, which had been an instant from s
inking its fangs into him, flew high into the air and vanished in a wisp of da
rk smoke; and the water in the pool rose up and covered Voldemort like a cocoo
n of molten glass.
For a few seconds Voldemort was visible only as a dark, rippling, faceless
figure, shimmering and indistinct upon the plinth, clearly struggling to thro
w off the suffocating mass - '
Then he was gone and the water fell with a crash back into its pool, slopp
ing wildly over the sides, drenching the polished floor.
'MASTER!' screamed Bellatrix.
Sure it was over, sure Voldemort had decided to flee, Harry made to run ou
t from behind his statue guard, but Dumbledore bellowed: 'Stay where you are,
Harry!'
For the first time, Dumbledore sounded frightened. Harry could not see why
: the hall was quite empty but for themselves, the sobbing Bellatrix still tra
pped under the witch statue, and the baby phoenix Fawkes croaking feebly on th
e floor - '
Then Harry's scar burst open and he knew he was dead: it was pain beyond i
magining, pain past endurance - '
He was gone from the hall, he was locked in the coils of a creature with r
ed eyes, so tightly bound that Harry did not know where his body ended and the
creatures began: they were fused together, bound by pain, and there was no es
cape - '
And when the creature spoke, it used Harry's mouth, so that in his agony h
e felt his jaw move . . .
'Kill me now, Dumbledore . . .'
Blinded and dying, every part of him screaming for release, Harry felt the
creature use him again . . .
'If death is nothing, Dumbledore, kill the boy . . .'
Let the pain stop, thought Harry . . . let him kill us . . . end it, Dumbl
edore . . . death is nothing compared to this . . .
And I'll see Sirius again . . .
And as Harry's heart filled with emotion, the creatures coils loosened, th
e pain was gone; Harry was lying face down on the floor, his glasses gone, shi
vering as though he lay upon ice, not wood . . .
And there were voices echoing through the hall, more voices than there sho
uld have been . . . Harry opened his eyes, saw his glasses lying by the heel o
f the headless statue that had been guarding him, but which now lay flat on it
s back, cracked and immobile. He put them on and raised his head a little to f
ind Dumbledore's crooked nose inches from his own.
'Are you all right, Harry?'
'Yes,' said Harry, shaking so violently he could not hold his head up prop
erly. 'Yeah, I'm - where's Voldemort, where - who are all these - what's - '
The Atrium was full of people; the floor was reflecting the emerald green
flames that had burst into fire in all the fireplaces along one wall; and stre
ams of witches and wizards were emerging from them. As Dumbledore pulled him b
ack to his feet, Harry saw the tiny gold statues of the house-elf and the gobl
in, leading a stunned-looking Cornelius Fudge forward.
'He was there!' shouted a scarlet-robed man with a ponytail, who was point
ing at a pile of golden rubble on the other side of the hall, where Bellatrix
had lain trapped only moments before. 'I saw him, Mr Fudge, I swear it was You
-Know-Who, he grabbed a woman and Disapparated!'
'I know, Williamson, I know, I saw him too!' gibbered Fudge, who was weari
ng pyjamas under his pinstriped cloak and was gasping as though he had just ru
n miles. 'Merlin's beard - here - here! - in the Ministry of Magic! - great he
avens above - it doesn't seem possible - my word - how can this be - ?'
'If you proceed downstairs into the Department of Mysteries, Cornelius,' s
aid Dumbledore - apparently satisfied that Harry was all right, and walking fo
rwards so that the newcomers realised he was there for the first time (a few o
f them raised their wands; others simply looked amazed; the statues of the elf
and goblin applauded and Fudge jumped so much that his slipper-clad feet left
the floor) - 'you will find several escaped Death Eaters contained in the Dea
th Chamber, bound by an Anti-Disapparation Jinx and awaiting your decision as
to what to do with them.'
'Dumbledore!' gasped Fudge, beside himself with amazement. 'You - here - I
- I - '
He looked wildly around at the Aurors he had brought with him and it could
not have been clearer that he was in half a mind to cry, 'Seize him!'
'Cornelius, I am ready to fight your men - and win, again!' said Dumbledor
e in a thunderous voice. 'But a few minutes ago you saw proof, with your own e
yes, that I have been telling you the truth for a year. Lord Voldemort has ret
urned, you have been chasing the wrong man for twelve months, and it is time y
ou listened to sense!'
'I - don't - well -' blustered Fudge, looking around as though hoping some
body was going to tell him what to do. When nobody did, he said, 'Very well -
Dawlish! Williamson! Go down to the Department of Mysteries and see . . . Dumb
ledore, you - you will need to tell me exactly - the Fountain of Magical Breth
ren - what happened?' he added in a kind of whimper, staring around at the flo
or, where the remains of the statues of the witch, wizard and centaur now lay
scattered.
'We can discuss that after I have sent Harry back to Hogwarts,' said Dumbl
edore.
'Harry - Harry Potter?'
Fudge wheeled around and stared at Harry, who was still standing against t
he wall beside the fallen statue that had guarded him during Dumbledore and Vo
ldemort's duel.
'He - here?' said Fudge, goggling at Harry. 'Why - what's all this about?'
'I shall explain everything,' repeated Dumbledore, 'when Harry is back at
school.'
He walked away from the pool to the place where the golden wizard's head l
ay on the floor. He pointed his wand at it and muttered, 'Portus.' The head gl
owed blue and trembled noisily against the wooden floor for a few seconds, the
n became still once more.
'Now see here, Dumbledore!' said Fudge, as Dumbledore picked up the head a
nd walked back to Harry carrying it. 'You haven't got authorisation for that P
ortkey! You can't do things like that right in front of the Minister for Magic
, you - you - '
His voice faltered as Dumbledore surveyed him magisterially over his half-
moon spectacles.
'You will give the order to remove Dolores Umbridge from Hogwarts,' said D
umbledore. 'You will tell your Aurors to stop searching for my Care of Magical
Creatures teacher so that he can return to work. I will give you . . .' Dumbl
edore pulled a watch with twelve hands from his pocket and surveyed it. . . ha
lf an hour of my time tonight, in which I think we shall be more than able to
cover the important points of what has happened here. After that, I shall need
to return to my school. If you need more help from me you are, of course, mor
e than welcome to contact me at Hogwarts. Letters addressed to the Headmaster
will find me.'
Fudge goggled worse than ever; his mouth was open and his round face grew
pinker under his rumpled grey hair.
'I - you - '
Dumbledore turned his back on him.
'Take this Portkey, Harry.'
He held out the golden head of the statue and Harry placed his hand on it,
past caring what he did next or where he went.
'I shall see you in half an hour,' said Dumbledore quietly 'One . . . two
. . . three
Harry felt the familiar sensation of a hook being jerked behind his navel.
The polished wooden floor was gone from beneath his feet; the Atrium, Fudge a
nd Dumbledore had all disappeared and he was flying forwards in a whirlwind of
colour and sound . . .
- CHAPTER THIRTY-SEVEN -
The Lost Prophecy
Harry's feet hit solid ground; his knees buckled a little and the golden wizar
d's head fell with a resounding clunk to the floor. He looked around and saw t
hat he had arrived in Dumbledore's office.
Everything seemed to have repaired itself during the Headmasters absence.
The delicate silver instruments stood once more on the spindle-legged tables,
puffing and whirring serenely. The portraits of the headmasters and headmistre
sses were snoozing in their frames, heads lolling back in armchairs or against
the edge of the; picture. Harry looked through the window. There was a cool l
ine of pale green along the horizon: dawn was approaching.
The silence and the stillness, broken only by the occasional grunt or snuf
fle of a sleeping portrait, was unbearable to him. If his surroundings could h
ave reflected the feelings inside him, the pictures would have been screaming
in pain. He walked around the quiet, beautiful office, breathing quickly, tryi
ng not to think. But he had to think . . . there was no escape . . .
It was his fault Sirius had died; it was all his fault. If he, Harry, had
not been stupid enough to fall for Voldemort's trick, if he had not been so co
nvinced that what he had seen in his dream was real, if he had only opened his
mind to the possibility that Voldemort was, as Hermione had said, banking on
Harry's love of playing the hero . . .
It was unbearable, he would not think about it, he could not stand it . .
. there was a terrible hollow inside him he did not want to feel or examine, a
dark hole where Sirius had been, where Sirius had vanished; he did not want t
o have to be alone with that great, silent space, he could not stand it - '
A picture behind him gave a particularly loud grunting snore, and a cool v
oice said, 'Ah . . . Harry Potter . . .'
Phineas Nigellus gave a long yawn, stretching his arms as he surveyed Harr
y out of shrewd, narrow eyes.
'And what brings you here in the early hours of the morning?' said Phineas
eventually. This office is supposed to be barred to all but the rightful Head
master. Or has Dumbledore sent you here? Oh, don't tell me . . .' He gave anot
her shuddering yawn. 'Another message for my worthless great-great-grandson?'
Harry could not speak. Phineas Nigellus did not know that Sirius was dead,
but Harry could not tell him. To say it aloud would be to make it final, abso
lute, irretrievable.
A few more of the portraits had stirred now. Terror of being interrogated
made Harry stride across the room and seize the doorknob.
It would not turn. He was shut in.
'I hope this means,' said the corpulent, red-nosed wizard who hung on the
wall behind the Headmasters desk, 'that Dumbledore will soon be back among us?
'
Harry turned. The wizard was surveying him with great interest. Harry nodd
ed. He tugged again on the doorknob behind his back, but it remained immovable
.
'Oh good,' said the wizard. 'It has been very dull without him, very dull
indeed.'
He settled himself on the throne-like chair on which he had been painted a
nd smiled benignly upon Harry.
'Dumbledore thinks very highly of you, as I am sure you know,' he said com
fortably. 'Oh yes. Holds you in great esteem.'
The guilt filling the whole of Harry's chest like some monstrous, weighty
parasite, now writhed and squirmed. Harry could not stand this, he could not s
tand being himself any more . . . he had never felt more trapped inside his ow
n head and body, never wished so intensely that he could be somebody, anybody
else . . .
The empty fireplace burst into emerald green flame, making Harry leap away
from the door, staring at the man spinning inside the grate. As Dumbledore's
tall form unfolded itself from the fire, the wizards and witches on the surrou
nding walls jerked awake, many of them giving cries of welcome.
Thank you,' said Dumbledore softly.
He did not look at Harry at first, but walked over to the perch beside the
door and withdrew, from an inside pocket of his robes, the tiny, ugly, feathe
rless Fawkes, whom he placed gently on the tray of soft ashes beneath the gold
en post where the full-grown Fawkes usually stood.
'Well, Harry,' said Dumbledore, finally turning away from the baby bird, '
you will be pleased to hear that none of your fellow students are going to suf
fer lasting damage from the night's events.'
Harry tried to say, 'Good,' but no sound came out. It seemed to him that D
umbledore was reminding him of the amount of damage he had caused, and althoug
h Dumbledore was for once looking at him directly, and although his expression
was kindly rather than accusatory, Harry could not bear to meet his eyes.
'Madam Pomfrey is patching everybody up,' said Dumbledore 'Nymphadora Tonk
s may need to spend a little time in St Mungos, but it seems she will make a f
ull recovery.'
Harry contented himself with nodding at the carpet, which was growing ligh
ter as the sky outside grew paler. He was sure all the: portraits around the r
oom were listening closely to every wore! Dumbledore spoke, wondering where Du
mbledore and Harry had been, and why there had been injuries.
'I know how you're feeling, Harry,' said Dumbledore very quietly.
'No, you don't,' said Harry, and his voice was suddenly loud and strong; w
hite-hot anger leapt inside him; Dumbledore knew nothing about his feelings.
'You see, Dumbledore?' said Phineas Nigellus slyly. 'Never try to understa
nd the students. They hate it. They would much rather be tragically misunderst
ood, wallow in self-pity, stew in their own - '
That's enough, Phineas,' said Dumbledore.
Harry turned his back on Dumbledore and stared determinedly out of the win
dow. He could see the Quidditch stadium in the distance. Sirius had appeared t
here once, disguised as the shaggy black dog, so he could watch Harry play . .
. he had probably come to see whether Harry was as good as James had been . .
. Harry had never asked him . . .
There is no shame in what you are feeling, Harry,' said Dumble
dore's voice. 'On the contrary . . . the fact that you can feel pain like this
is your greatest strength.'
Harry felt the white-hot anger lick his insides, blazing in the terrible e
mptiness, filling him with the desire to hurt Dumbledore for his calmness and
his empty words.
'My greatest strength, is it?' said Harry, his voice shaking as he stared
out at the Quidditch stadium, no longer seeing it. 'You haven't got a clue . .
. you don't know . . ."
'What don't I know?' asked Dumbledore calmly.
It was too much. Harry turned around, shaking with rage.
'I don't want to talk about how I feel, all right?'
'Harry, suffering like this proves you are still a man! This pain is part
of being human - '
'THEN - I - DON'T - WANT - TO - BE - HUMAN!' Harry roared, and he seized t
he delicate silver instrument from the spindle-legged table beside him and flu
ng it across the room; it shattered into a hundred tiny pieces against the wal
l. Several of the pictures let out yells of anger and fright, and the portrait
of Armando Dippet said, 'Really!'
'I DON'T CARE!' Harry yelled at them, snatching up a lunascope and throwin
g it into the fireplace. 'I'VE HAD ENOUGH, I'VE SEEN ENOUGH, I WANT OUT, I WAN
T IT TO END, I DON'T CARE ANY MORE - '
He seized the table on which the silver instrument had stood and threw tha
t, too. It broke apart on the floor and the legs rolled in different direction
s.
'You do care,' said Dumbledore. He had not flinched or made a single move
to stop Harry demolishing his office. His expression was calm, almost detached
. 'You care so much you feel as though you will bleed to death with the pain o
f it.'
'I - DON'T!' Harry screamed, so loudly that he felt his throat might tear,
and for a second he wanted to rush at Dumbledore and break him, too; shatter
that calm old face, shake him, hurt him, make him feel some tiny part of the h
orror inside himself.
'Oh, yes, you do,' said Dumbledore, still more calmly. 'You have now lost
your mother, your father, and the closest thing to a parent you have ever know
n. Of course you care.'
'YOU DON'T KNOW HOW I FEEL!' Harry roared. 'YOU - STANDING THERE - YOU - '
But words were no longer enough, smashing things was no more help; he want
ed to run, he wanted to keep running and never look back, he wanted to be some
where he could not see the clear blue eyes staring at him, that hatefully calm
old face. He turned on his heel and ran to the door, seized the doorknob agai
n and wrenched at it.
But the door would not open.
Harry turned back to Dumbledore.
'Let me out,' he said. He was shaking from head to foot.
'No,' said Dumbledore simply.
For a few seconds they stared at each other.
'Let me out,' Harry said again.
'No,' Dumbledore repeated.
'If you don't - if you keep me in here - if you don't let me - '
'By all means continue destroying my possessions,' said Dumbledore serenel
y. 'I daresay I have too many.'
He walked around his desk and sat down behind it, watching Harry.
'Let me out,' Harry said yet again, in a voice that was cold and almost as
calm as Dumbledore's.
'Not until I have had my say,' said Dumbledore.
'Do you - do you think I want to - do you think I give a - I DON'T CARE WH
AT YOU'VE GOT TO SAY!' Harry roared. 'I don't want to hear anything you've got
to say!'
'You will,' said Dumbledore steadily. 'Because you are not nearly as angry
with me as you ought to be. If you are to attack me, as I know you are close
to doing, I would like to have thoroughly earned it.'
'What are you talking - ?'
'It is my fault that Sirius died,' said Dumbledore clearly. 'Or should I s
ay, almost entirely my fault - I will not be so arrogant as to claim responsib
ility for the whole. Sirius was a brave, clever and energetic man, and such me
n are not usually content to sit at home in hiding while they believe others t
o be in danger. Nevertheless, you should never have believed for an instant th
at there was any necessity for you to go to the Department of Mysteries tonigh
t. If I had been open with you, Harry, as I should have been, you would have k
nown a long time ago that Voldemort might try and lure you to the Department o
f Mysteries, and you would never have been tricked into going there tonight. A
nd Sirius would not have had to come after you. That blame lies with me, and w
ith me alone.'
Harry was still standing with his hand on the doorknob but was unaware of
it. He was gazing at Dumbledore, hardly breathing, listening yet barely unders
tanding what he was hearing.
'Please sit down,' said Dumbledore. It was not an order, it was a request.
Harry hesitated, then walked slowly across the room now littered with silv
er cogs and fragments of wood, and took the seat facing Dumbledore's desk.
'Am I to understand,' said Phineas Nigellus slowly from Harry's left, 'tha
t my great-great-grandson - the last of the Blacks - is dead?'
'Yes, Phineas,' said Dumbledore.
'I don't believe it,' said Phineas brusquely.
Harry turned his head in time to see Phineas marching out of his portrait
and knew that he had gone to visit his other painting in Grimmauld Place. He w
ould walk, perhaps, from portrait to portrait, calling for Sirius through the
house . . .
'Harry, I owe you an explanation,' said Dumbledore. 'An explanation of an
old man's mistakes. For I see now that what I have done, and not done, with re
gard to you, bears all the hallmarks of the failings of age. Youth cannot know
how age thinks and feels. But old men are guilty if they forget what it was t
o be young . . . and I seem to have forgotten, lately . . .'
The sun was rising properly now; there was a rim of dazzling orange visibl
e over the mountains and the sky above it was colourless and bright. The light
fell upon Dumbledore, upon the silver of his eyebrows and beard, upon the lin
es gouged deeply into his lace.
'I guessed, fifteen years ago,' said Dumbledore, 'when I saw the scar on y
our forehead, what it might mean. I guessed that it might be the sign of a con
nection forged between you and Voldemort.'
'You've told me this before, Professor,' said Harry bluntly. He did not ca
re about being rude. He did not care about anything very much any more.
'Yes,' said Dumbledore apologetically. 'Yes, but you see - it is necessary
to start with your scar. For it became apparent, shortly after you rejoined t
he magical world, that I was correct, and that your scar was giving you warnin
gs when Voldemort was close to you, or else feeling powerful emotion.'
'I know,' said Harry wearily.
'And this ability of yours - to detect Voldemort's presence, even when he
is disguised, and to know what he is feeling when his emotions are roused - ha
s become more and more pronounced since Voldemort returned to his own body and
his full powers.'
Harry did not bother to nod. He knew all of this already.
'More recently,' said Dumbledore, 'I became concerned that Voldemort might
realise that this connection between you exists. Sure enough, there came a ti
me when you entered so far into his mind and thoughts that he sensed your pres
ence. I am speaking, of course, of the night when you witnessed the attack on
Mr Weasley'
'Yeah, Snape told me,' Harry muttered.
'Professor Snape, Harry' Dumbledore corrected him quietly. 'But did you no
t wonder why it was not I who explained this to you? Why I did not teach you O
cclumency? Why I had not so much as looked at you for months?'
Harry looked up. He could see now that Dumbledore looked sad and tired.
'Yeah,' Harry mumbled. 'Yeah, I wondered.'
'You see,' Dumbledore continued, 'I believed it could not be long before V
oldemort attempted to force his way into your mind, to manipulate and misdirec
t your thoughts, and I was not eager to give him more incentives to do so. I w
as sure that if he realised that our relationship was - or had ever been - clo
ser than that of headmaster and pupil, he would seize his chance to use you as
a means to spy on me. I feared the uses to which he would put you, the possib
ility that he might try and possess you. Harry, I believe I was right to think
that Voldemort would have made use of you in such a way. On those rare occasi
ons when we had close contact, I thought I saw a shadow of him stir behind you
r eyes . . .'
Harry remembered the feeling that a dormant snake had risen in him, ready
to strike, in those moments when he and Dumbledore had made eye-contact.
'Voldemort's aim in possessing you, as he demonstrated tonight, would not
have been my destruction. It would have been yours. He hoped, when he possesse
d you briefly a short while ago, that I would sacrifice you in the hope of kil
ling him. So you see, I have been trying, in distancing myself from you, to pr
otect you, Harry. An old man s mistake . . ."
He sighed deeply. Harry was letting the words wash over him. He would have
been so interested to know all this a few months ago, but now it was meaningl
ess compared to the gaping chasm inside him that was the loss of Sirius; none
of it mattered . . .
'Sirius told me you felt Voldemort awake inside you the very night that yo
u had the vision of Arthur Weasley's attack. I knew at once that my worst fear
s were correct: Voldemort had realised he could use you. In an attempt to arm
you against Voldemort s assaults on your mind, I arranged Occlumency lessons w
ith Professor Snape.'
He paused. Harry watched the sunlight, which was sliding slowly across the
polished surface of Dumbledore's desk, illuminate a silver ink pot and a hand
some scarlet quill. Harry could tell that the portraits all around them were a
wake and listening raptly to Dumbledore's explanation; he could hear the occas
ional rustle of robes, the slight clearing of a throat. Phineas Nigellus had s
till not returned . . .
'Professor Snape discovered,' Dumbledore resumed, 'that you had been dream
ing about the door to the Department of Mysteries for months. Voldemort, of co
urse, had been obsessed with the possibility of hearing the prophecy ever sinc
e he regained his body; and as he dwelled on the door, so did you, though you
did not <now what it meant.
'And then you saw Rookwood, who worked in the Department of Mysteries befo
re his arrest, telling Voldemort what we had known all along - that the prophe
cies held in the Ministry of Magic are
heavily protected. Only the people to whom they refer can lilt them from t
he shelves without suffering madness: in this case, either Voldemort himself w
ould have to enter the Ministry of Magic, and risk revealing himself at last -
or else you would have to take it for him. It became a matter of even greater
urgency that you should master Occlumency.'
'But I didn't,' muttered Harry. He said it aloud to try and ease the dead
weight of guilt inside him: a confession must surely relieve some of the terri
ble pressure squeezing his heart. 'I didn't practise, I didn't bother, I could
've stopped myself having those dreams, Hermione kept telling me to do it, if
I had he'd never have been able to show me where to go, and - Sirius wouldn't
- 'Sirius wouldn't - '
Something was erupting inside Harry's head: a need to justify himself, to
explain - '
'I tried to check he'd really taken Sirius, I went to Umbridge's office, I
spoke to Kreacher in the fire and he said Sirius wasn't there, he said he'd g
one!'
'Kreacher lied,' said Dumbledore calmly. 'You are not his master, he could
lie to you without even needing to punish himself. Kreacher intended you to g
o to the Ministry of Magic.'
'He - he sent me on purpose?'
'Oh yes. Kreacher, I am afraid, has been serving more than one master for
months.'
'How?' said Harry blankly. 'He hasn't been out of Grimmauld Place for year
s.'
'Kreacher seized his opportunity shortly before Christmas,' said Dumbledor
e, 'when Sirius, apparently, shouted at him to "get out". He took Sirius at hi
s word, and interpreted this as an order to leave the house. He went to the on
ly Black family member for whom he had any respect left . . . Black's cousin N
arcissa, sister of Bellatrix and wife of Lucius Malfoy.'
'How do you know all this?' Harry said. His heart was beating very fast. H
e felt sick. He remembered worrying about Kreacher's odd absence over Christma
s, remembered him turning up again in the attic . . .
'Kreacher told me last night,' said Dumbledore. 'You see, when
you gave Professor Snape that cryptic warning, he realised that you had ha
d a vision of Sirius trapped in the bowels of the Department of Mysteries. He,
like you, attempted to contact Sirius at once. I should explain that members
of the Order of the Phoenix have more reliable methods of communicating than t
he fire in Dolores Umbridge's office. Professor Snape found that Sirius was al
ive and safe in Grimmauld Place.
'When, however, you did not return from your trip into the Forest with Dol
ores Umbridge, Professor Snape grew worried that you still believed Sirius to
be a captive of Lord Voldemort's. He alerted certain Order members at once.'
Dumbledore heaved a great sigh and continued, 'Alastor Moody, Nymphadora T
onks, Kingsley Shacklebolt and Remus Lupin were at Headquarters when he made c
ontact. All agreed to go to your aid at once. Professor Snape requested that S
irius remain behind, as he needed somebody to remain at Headquarters to tell m
e what had happened, for I was due there at any moment. In the meantime he, Pr
ofessor Snape, intended to search the Forest for you.
'But Sirius did not wish to remain behind while the others went to search
for you. He delegated to Kreacher the task of telling me what had happened. An
d so it was that when I arrived in Grimmauld Place shortly after they had all
left for the Ministry, it was the elf who told me - laughing fit to burst - wh
ere Sirius had gone.'
'He was laughing?' said Harry in a hollow voice.
'Oh, yes,' said Dumbledore. 'You see, Kreacher was not able to betray us t
otally. He is not Secret Keeper for the Order, he could not give the Malfoy's
our whereabouts, or tell them any of the Order's confidential plans that he ha
d been forbidden to reveal. He was bound by the enchantments of his kind, whic
h is to say that he could not disobey a direct order from his master, Sirius.
But he gave Narcissa information of the sort that is very valuable lo Voldemor
t, yet must have seemed much too trivial for Sirius to think of banning him fr
om repeating it.'
'Like what?' said Harry.
'Like the fact that the person Sirius cared most about in the world was yo
u,' said Dumbledore quietly. 'Like the fact that you were coming to regard Sir
ius as a mixture of father and brother.
Voldemort knew already, of course, that Sirius was in the Order, and that
you knew where he was - but Kreacher's information made him realise that the o
ne person for whom you would go to any lengths to rescue was Sirius Black.'
Harry's lips were cold and numb.
'So . . . when I asked Kreacher if Sirius was there last night . . .'
The Malfoy's - undoubtedly on Voldemort's instructions - had told him he m
ust find a way of keeping Sirius out of the way once you had seen the vision o
f Sirius being tortured. Then, if you decided to check whether Sirius was at h
ome or not, Kreacher would be able to pretend he was not. Kreacher injured Buc
kbeak the Hippogriff yesterday, and, at the moment when you made your appearan
ce in the fire, Sirius was upstairs tending to him.'
There seemed to be very little air in Harry's lungs; his breathing was qui
ck and shallow.
'And Kreacher told you all this . . . and laughed?' he croaked.
'He did not wish to tell me,' said Dumbledore. 'But I am a sufficiently ac
complished Legilimens myself to know when I am being lied to and I - persuaded
him - to tell me the full story, before I left for the Department of Mysterie
s.'
'And,' whispered Harry, his hands curled in cold fists on his knees, 'and
Hermione kept telling us to be nice to him - '
'She was quite right, Harry,' said Dumbledore. 'I warned Sirius when we ad
opted twelve Grimmauld Place as our Headquarters that Kreacher must be treated
with kindness and respect. I also told him that Kreacher could be dangerous t
o us. I do not think Sirius took me very seriously, or that he ever saw Kreach
er as a being with feelings as acute as a human's - '
'Don't you blame - don't you - talk - about Sirius like - ' Harry's breath
was constricted, he could not get the words out properly; but the rage that h
ad subsided briefly flared in him again: he would not let Dumbledore criticise
Sirius. 'Kreacher's a lying - foul - he deserved - '
'Kreacher is what he has been made by wizards, Harry,' said Dumbledore. 'Y
es, he is to be pitied. His existence has been as miserable as your friend Dob
by's. He was forced to do Sirius's bidding, because Sirius was the last of the
family to which he was enslaved, but he felt no true loyalty to him. And what
ever Kreacher's faults, it must be admitted that Sirius did nothing to make Kr
eacher's lot easier - '
'DON'T TALK ABOUT SIRIUS LIKE THAT!' Harry yelled.
He was on his feet again, furious, ready to fly at Dumbledore, who had pla
inly not understood Sirius at all, how brave he was, how much he had suffered
. . .
'What about Snape?' Harry spat. 'You're not talking about him, are you? Wh
en I told him Voldemort had Sirius he just sneered at me as usual - '
'Harry you know Professor Snape had no choice but to pretend not to take y
ou seriously in front of Dolores Umbridge,' said Dumbledore steadily, 'but as
I have explained, he informed the Order as soon as possible about what you had
said. It was he who deduced where you had gone when you did not return from t
he Forest. It was he, too, who gave Professor Umbridge fake Veritaserum when s
he was attempting to force you to tell her Sirius's whereabouts.'
Harry disregarded this; he felt a savage pleasure in blaming Snape, it see
med to be easing his own sense of dreadful guilt, and he wanted to hear Dumble
dore agree with him.
'Snape - Snape g - goaded Sirius about staying in the house - 'he made out
Sirius was a coward - '
'Sirius was much too old and clever to have allowed such feeble taunts to
hurt him,' said Dumbledore.
'Snape stopped giving me Occlumency lessons!' Harry snarled. 'He threw me
out of his office!'
'I am aware of it,' said Dumbledore heavily. 'I have already said that it
was a mistake for me not to teach you myself, though I was sure, at the time,
that nothing could have been more dangerous than to open your mind even furthe
r to Voldemort while in my presence - '
'Snape made it worse, my scar always hurt worse after lessons with him - '
Harry remembered Ron's thoughts on the subject and plunged on '- how do you k
now he wasn't trying to soften me up for Voldemort, make it easier for him to
get inside my - '
'I trust Severus Snape,' said Dumbledore simply. 'But I forgot - another o
ld man's mistake - that some wounds run too deep for the healing. I thought Pr
ofessor Snape could overcome his feelings about your father - I was wrong.'
'But that's OK, is it?' yelled Harry, ignoring the scandalised faces and d
isapproving mutterings of the portraits on the walls. 'It's OK: for Snape to h
ate my dad, but it's not OK for Sirius to hate Kreacher?'
'Sirius did not hate Kreacher,' said Dumbledore. 'He regarded him as a ser
vant unworthy of much interest or notice. Indifference and neglect often do mu
ch more damage than outright dislike . . . the fountain we destroyed tonight t
old a lie. We wizards have mistreated and abused our fellows for too long, and
we are now reaping our reward.'
'SO SIRIUS DESERVED WHAT HE GOT, DID HE?' Harry yelled.
'I did not say that, nor will you ever hear me say it,' Dumbledore: replie
d quietly. 'Sirius was not a cruel man, he was kind to house - 'elves in gener
al. He had no love for Kreacher, because Kreacher was a living reminder of the
home Sirius had hated.'
'Yeah, he did hate it!' said Harry, his voice cracking, turning his back o
n Dumbledore and walking away. The sun was bright inside the room now and the
eyes of all the portraits followed him as he walked, without realising what he
was doing, without seeing the office at all. 'You made him stay shut up in th
at house and he hated it, that's why he wanted to get out last night - '
'I was trying to keep Sirius alive,' said Dumbledore quietly.
'People don't like being locked up!' Harry said furiously, rounding on him
. 'You did it to me all last summer - '
Dumbledore closed his eyes and buried his face in his long-fingered hands.
Harry watched him, but this uncharacteristic sign of exhaustion, or sadness,
or whatever it was from Dumbledore, did not soften him. On the contrary, he fe
lt even angrier that Dumbledore was showing signs of weakness. He had no busin
ess being weak when Harry wanted to rage and storm at him.
Dumbledore lowered his hands and surveyed Harry through his half-moon glas
ses.
'It is time,' he said, 'for me to tell you what I should have told you fiv
e years ago, Harry. Please sit down. I am going to tell you everything. I ask
only a little patience. You will have your chance to rage at me - to do whatev
er you like - when I have finished. I will not stop you.'
Harry glared at him for a moment, then flung himself back into the chair o
pposite Dumbledore and waited.
Dumbledore stared for a moment at the sunlit grounds outside the window, t
hen looked back at Harry and said, 'Five years ago you arrived at Hogwarts, Ha
rry, safe and whole, as I had planned and intended. Well - not quite whole. Yo
u had suffered. I knew you would when I left you on your aunt and uncle's door
step. I knew I was condemning you to ten dark and difficult years.'
He paused. Harry said nothing.
'You might ask - and with good reason - why it had to be so. Why could som
e wizarding family not have taken you in? Many would have done so more than gl
adly, would have been honoured and delighted to raise you as a son.
'My answer is that my priority was to keep you alive. You were in more dan
ger than perhaps anyone but I realised. Voldemort had been vanquished hours be
fore, but his supporters - and many of them are almost as terrible as he - wer
e still at large, angry, desperate and violent. And I had to make my decision,
too, with regard to the years ahead. Did I believe that Voldemort was gone fo
r ever? No. I knew not whether it would be ten, twenty or fifty years before h
e returned, but I was sure he would do so, and I was sure, too, knowing him as
I have done, that he would not rest until he killed you.
'I knew that Voldemort's knowledge of magic is perhaps more extensive than
any wizard alive. I knew that even my most complex and powerful protective sp
ells and charms were unlikely to be invincible if he ever returned to full pow
er.
'But I knew, too, where Voldemort was weak. And so I made my decision. You
would be protected by an ancient magic of which he knows, which he despises,
and which he has always, therefore, underestimated - to his cost. I am speakin
g, of course, of the fact that your mother died to save you. She gave you a li
ngering protection he never expected, a protection that flows in your veins to
this day. I put my trust, therefore, in your mother's blood. I delivered you
to her sister, her only remaining relative.'
'She doesn't love me,' said Harry at once. 'She doesn't give a damn - '
'But she took you,' Dumbledore cut across him. 'She may have taken you gru
dgingly, furiously, unwillingly, bitterly, yet still she took you, and in doin
g so, she sealed the charm I placed upon you. Your mother's sacrifice made the
bond of blood the strongest shield I could give you.'
'I still don't - '
'While you can still call home the place where your mother's blood dwells,
there you cannot be touched or harmed by Voldemort. He shed her blood, but it
lives on in you and her sister. Her blood became your refuge. You need return
there only once a year, but as long as you can still call it home, whilst you
are there he cannot hurt you. Your aunt knows this. I explained what I had do
ne in the letter I left, with you, on her doorstep. She knows that allowing yo
u houseroom may well have kept you alive for the past fifteen years.'
'Wait,' said Harry. 'Wait a moment.'
He sat up straighter in his chair, staring at Dumbledore.
'You sent that Howler. You told her to remember - it was your voice - '
'I thought,' said Dumbledore, inclining his head slightly, 'that she might
need reminding of the pact she had sealed by taking you. I suspected the Deme
ntor attack might have awoken her to the dangers of having you as a surrogate
son.'
'It did,' said Harry quietly. 'Well - my uncle more than her. He wanted to
chuck me out, but after the Howler came she - she said I had to stay.'
He stared at the floor for a moment, then said, 'But what's this got to do
with - '
He could not say Sirius's name.
'Five years ago, then,' continued Dumbledore, as though he had not paused
in his story, 'you arrived at Hogwarts, neither as happy nor as well-nourished
as I would have liked, perhaps, yet alive and healthy. You were not a pampere
d little prince, but as normal a boy as I could have hoped under the circumsta
nces. Thus far, my plan was working well.
'And then . . . well, you will remember the events of your first year at H
ogwarts quite as clearly as I do. You rose magnificently to the challenge that
faced you and sooner - much sooner - than I had anticipated, you found yourse
lf face to face with Voldemort. You survived again. You did more. You delayed
his return to full power and strength. You fought a man's fight. I was . . . p
rouder of you than I can say.
'Yet there was a flaw in this wonderful plan of mine,' said Dumbledore. 'A
n obvious flaw that I knew, even then, might be the undoing of it all. And yet
, knowing how important it was that my plan should succeed, I told myself that
I would not permit this flaw to ruin it. I alone could prevent this, so I alo
ne must be strong. And here was my first test, as you lay in the hospital wing
, weak from your struggle with Voldemort.'
'I don't understand what you're saying,' said Harry.
'Don't you remember asking me, as you lay in the hospital wing, why Voldem
ort had tried to kill you when you were a baby?'
Harry nodded.
'Ought I to have told you then?'
Harry stared into the blue eyes and said nothing, but his heart was racing
again.
'You do not see the flaw in the plan yet? No . . . perhaps not. Well, as y
ou know, I decided not to answer you. Eleven, I told myself, was much too youn
g to know. I had never intended to tell you when you were eleven. The knowledg
e would be too much at such a young age.
'I should have recognised the danger signs then. I should have asked mysel
f why I did not feel more disturbed that you had already asked me the question
to which I knew, one day, I must give a terrible answer. I should have recogn
ised that I was too happy to think that I did not have to do it on that partic
ular day . . . you were too young, much too young.
'And so we entered your second year at Hogwarts. And once again you met ch
allenges even grown wizards have never faced; once again you acquitted yoursel
f beyond my wildest dreams. You did not ask me again, however, why Voldemort h
ad left that mark on you. We discussed your scar, oh yes . . . we came very, v
ery close to the subject. Why did I not tell you everything;
'Well, it seemed to me that twelve was, after all, hardly better than elev
en to receive such information. I allowed you to leave my presence, bloodstain
ed, exhausted but exhilarated, and if I felt a twinge of unease that I ought,
perhaps, to have told you then, it was swiftly silenced. You were still so you
ng, you see, and I could not find it in myself to spoil that night of triumph
. . .
'Do you see, Harry? Do you see the flaw in my brilliant plan now? I had fa
llen into the trap I had foreseen, that I had told myself I could avoid, that
I must avoid.'
'I don't - '
'I cared about you too much,' said Dumbledore simply. 'I cared more for yo
ur happiness than your knowing the truth, more for your peace of mind than my
plan, more for your life than the lives that might be lost if the plan failed.
In other words, I acted exactly as Voldemort expects we fools who love to act
.
'Is there a defence? I defy anyone who has watched you as I have - and I h
ave watched you more closely than you can have imagined - not to want to save
you more pain than you had already suffered. What did I care if numbers of nam
eless and faceless people and creatures were slaughtered in the vague future,
if in the here and now you were alive, and well, and happy? I never dreamed th
at I would have such a person on my hands.
'We entered your third year. I watched from afar as you struggled to repel
Dementors, as you found Sirius, learned what he was and rescued him. Was I to
tell you then, at the moment when you had triumphantly snatched your godfathe
r from the jaws of the Ministry? But now, at the age of thirteen, my excuses w
ere running out. Young you might be, but you had proved you were exceptional.
My conscience was uneasy, Harry. I knew the time must come soon . . .
'But you came out of the maze last year, having watched Cedric Diggory die
, having escaped death so narrowly yourself . . . and I did not tell you, thou
gh I knew, now Voldemort had returned, I must do it soon. And now, tonight, I
know you have long been ready for the knowledge I have kept from you for so lo
ng, because you have proved that I should have placed the burden upon you
before this. My only defence is this: I have watched you struggling under
more burdens than any student who has ever passed through this school and I co
uld not bring myself to add another - the greatest one of all.'
Harry waited, but Dumbledore did not speak.
'I still don't understand.'
'Voldemort tried to kill you when you were a child because of a prophecy m
ade shortly before your birth. He knew the prophecy had been made, though he d
id not know its full contents. He set out to kill you when you were still a ba
by, believing he was fulfilling the terms of the prophecy. He discovered, to h
is cost, that he was mistaken, when the curse intended to kill you backfired.
And so, since his return to his body, and particularly since your extraordinar
y escape from him last year, he has been determined to hear that prophecy in i
ts entirety. This is the weapon he has been seeking so assiduously since his r
eturn: the knowledge of how to destroy you.'
The sun had risen fully now: Dumbledore's office was bathed in it. The gla
ss case in which the sword of Godric Gryffindor resided gleamed white and opaq
ue, the fragments of the instruments Harry had thrown to the floor glistened l
ike raindrops, and behind him, the baby Fawkes made soft chirruping noises in
his nest of ashes.
The prophecy's smashed,' Harry said blankly. 'I was pulling Neville up tho
se benches in the - the room where the archway was, and I ripped his robes and
it fell . . .'
The thing that smashed was merely the record of the prophecy kept by the D
epartment of Mysteries. But the prophecy was made to somebody, and that person
has the means of recalling it perfectly.'
'Who heard it?' asked Harry, though he thought he knew the answer already.
'I did,' said Dumbledore. 'On a cold, wet night sixteen years ago, in a ro
om above the bar at the Hog's Head inn. I had gone there to see an applicant f
or the post of Divination teacher, though it was against my inclination to all
ow the subject of Divination to continue at all. The applicant, however, was t
he great-great-granddaughter of a very famous, very gifted Seer and I thought
it common politeness to meet her. I was disappointed. It seemed to me that she
had not a trace of the gift herself. I told her, courteously I hope, that I d
id not think she would be suitable for the post. I turned to leave.'
Dumbledore got to his feet and walked past Harry to the black cabinet that
stood beside Fawkes's perch. He bent down, slid back a catch and took from in
side it the shallow stone basin, carved with runes around the edges, in which
Harry had seen his father tormenting Snape. Dumbledore walked back to the desk
, placed the Pensieve upon it, and raised his wand to his own temple. From it,
he withdrew silvery, gossamer-fine strands of thought clinging to the wand an
d deposited them into the basin. He sat back down behind his desk and watched
his thoughts swirl and drift inside the Pensieve for a moment. Then, with a si
gh, he raised his wand and prodded the silvery substance with its tip.
A figure rose out of it, draped in shawls, her eyes magnified to enormous
size behind her glasses, and she revolved slowly, her feet in the basin. But w
hen Sybill Trelawney spoke, it was not in her usual ethereal, mystic voice, bu
t in the harsh, hoarse tones Harry had heard her use once before:
'The one with the power to vanquish the Dark Lord approaches . . . born to
those who have thrice defied him, born as the seventh month dies . . . and th
e Dark Lord will mark him as his equal, but he will have power the Dark Lord k
nows not . . . and either must die at the hand of the other for neither can li
ve while the other survives . . . the one with the power to vanquish the Dark
Lord will be born as the seventh month dies . . .'
The slowly revolving Professor Trelawney sank back into the silver mass be
low and vanished.
The silence within the office was absolute. Neither Dumbledore nor Harry n
or any of the portraits made a sound. Even Fawkes had fallen silent.
'Professor Dumbledore?' Harry said very quietly, for Dumbledore, still sta
ring at the Pensieve, seemed completely lost in thought. 'It . . . did that me
an . . . what did that mean?'
'It meant,' said Dumbledore, 'that the person who has the only chance of c
onquering Lord Voldemort for good was born at the end of July, nearly sixteen
years ago. This boy would be born to parents who had already defied Voldemort
three times.'
Harry felt as though something was closing in on him. His breathing seemed
difficult again.
'It means - me?'
Dumbledore surveyed him for a moment through his glasses.
The odd thing, Harry,' he said softly, 'is that it may not have meant you
at all. Sybill's prophecy could have applied to two wizard boys, both born at
the end of July that year, both of whom had parents in the Order of the Phoeni
x, both sets of parents having narrowly escaped Voldemort three times. One, of
course, was you. The other was Neville Longbottom.'
'But then . . . but then, why was it my name on the prophecy and not Nevil
le's?'
The official record was re-labelled after Voldemort's attack on you as a c
hild,' said Dumbledore. 'It seemed plain to the keeper of the Hall of Prophecy
that Voldemort could only have tried to kill you because he knew you to be th
e one to whom Sybill was referring.'
'Then - it might not be me?' said Harry.
'I am afraid,' said Dumbledore slowly, looking as though every word cost h
im a great effort, 'that there is no doubt that it is you.'
'But you said - Neville was born at the end of July, too - and his mum and
dad - '
'You are forgetting the next part of the prophecy, the final identifying f
eature of the boy who could vanquish Voldemort . . . Voldemort himself would m
ark him as his equal. And so he did, Harry. He chose you, not Neville. He gave
you the scar that has proved both blessing and curse.'
'But he might have chosen wrong!' said Harry. 'He might have marked the wr
ong person!'
'He chose the boy he thought most likely to be a danger to him,' said Dumb
ledore. 'And notice this, Harry: he chose, not the pure-blood (which, accordin
g to his creed, is the only kind of wizard worth being or knowing) but the hal
f-blood, like himself. He saw himself in you before he had ever seen you, and
in marking you with that scar, he did not kill you, as he intended, but gave y
ou powers, and a future, which have fitted you to escape him not once, but fou
r times so far - something that neither your parents, nor Neville's parents, e
ver achieved.'
'Why did he do it, then?' said Harry, who felt numb and cold. 'Why did he
try and kill me as a baby? He should have waited to see whether Neville or I l
ooked more dangerous when we were older and tried to kill whoever it was then
- '
That might, indeed, have been the more practical course,' said Dumbledore,
'except that Voldemort's information about the prophecy was incomplete. The H
og's Head inn, which Sybill chose for its cheapness, has long attracted, shall
we say, a more interesting clientele than the Three Broomsticks. As you and y
our friends found out to your cost, and I to mine that night, it is a place wh
ere it is never safe to assume you are not being overheard. Of course, I had n
ot dreamed, when I set out to meet Sybill Trelawney, that I would hear anythin
g worth overhearing. My - our - one stroke of good fortune was that the eavesd
ropper was detected only a short way into the prophecy and thrown from the bui
lding.'
'So he only heard - ?'
'He heard only the beginning, the part foretelling the birth of a boy in J
uly to parents who had thrice defied Voldemort. Consequently, he could not war
n his master that to attack you would be to risk transferring power to you, an
d marking you as his equal. So Voldemort never knew that there might be danger
in attacking you, that it might be wise to wait, to learn more. He did not kn
ow that you would have power the Dark Lord knows not - '
'But I don't!' said Harry, in a strangled voice. 'I haven't any powers he
hasn't got, I couldn't fight the way he did tonight, I can't possess people or
- or kill them - '
There is a room in the Department of Mysteries,' interrupted Dumbledore, '
that is kept locked at all times. It contains a force that is at once more won
derful and more terrible than death, than human intelligence, than the forces
of nature. It is also, perhaps, the most mysterious of the many subjects for s
tudy that reside there. It is the power held within that room that you possess
in such quantities and which Voldemort has not at all. That power took you to
save Sirius tonight. That power also saved you from possession by Voldemort,
because he could not bear to reside in a body so full of the force he detests.
In the end, it mattered not that you could not close your mind. It was your h
eart that saved you.'
Harry closed his eyes. If he had not gone to save Sirius, Sirius would not
have died . . . More to stave off the moment when he would have to think of S
irius again, Harry asked, without caring much about the answer, The end of the
prophecy . . . it was something about . . . neither can live . . .'
'. . . while the other survives,' said Dumbledore.
'So,' said Harry, dredging up the words from what felt like a deep well of
despair inside him, 'so does that mean that . . . that one of us has got to k
ill the other one . . . in the end?'
'Yes,' said Dumbledore.
For a long time, neither of them spoke. Somewhere far beyond the office wa
lls, Harry could hear the sound of voices, students heading down to the Great
Hall for an early breakfast, perhaps. It seemed impossible that there could be
people in the world who still desired food, who laughed, who neither knew nor
cared that Sirius Black was gone for ever. Sirius seemed a million miles away
already; even now a part of Harry still believed that if he had only pulled b
ack that veil, he would have found Sirius looking back at him, greeting him, p
erhaps, with his laugh like a bark . . .
'I feel I owe you another explanation, Harry,' said Dumbledore hesitantly.
'You may, perhaps, have wondered why I never chose you as a prefect? I must c
onfess . . . that I rather thought . . . you had enough responsibility to be g
oing on with.'
Harry looked up at him and saw a tear trickling down Dumbledore's face int
o his long silver beard.
- CHAPTER THIRTY-EIGHT -
The Second War Begins
HE WHO MUST NOT BE NAMED RETURNS
'In a brief statement on Friday night, Minister for Magic Cornelius Fudge conf
irmed that He Who Must Not Be Named has returned to this country and is once m
ore active.
' "It is with great regret that I must confirm that the wizard styling him
self Lord - well, you know who I mean - is alive and among us again," said Fud
ge, looking tired and flustered as he addressed reporters. "It is with almost
equal regret that we report the mass revolt of the Dementors of Azkaban, who h
ave shown themselves averse to continuing in the Ministry's employ. We believe
the Dementors are currently taking direction from Lord - Thingy.
' "We urge the magician population to remain vigilant. The Ministry is cur
rently publishing guides to elementary home and personal defence which will be
delivered free to all wizarding homes within the coming month."
'The Minister's statement was met with dismay and alarm from the wizarding
community, which as recently as last Wednesday was receiving Ministry assuran
ces that there was "no truth whatsoever in these persistent rumours that You-K
now-Who is operating amongst us once more".
'Details of the events that led to the Ministry turnaround are still hazy,
though it is believed that He Who Must Not Be Named and a select band of foll
owers (known as Death Eaters) gained entry to the Ministry of Magic itself on
Thursday evening.
'Albus Dumbledore, newly reinstated Headmaster of Hogwarts School of Witch
craft and Wizardry, reinstated member of the International Confederation of Wi
zards and reinstated Chief
Warlock of the Wizengamot, has so far been unavailable for comment. He has
insisted over the past year that You-Know-Who is not dead, as was widely hope
d and believed, but is recruiting followers once more for afresh attempt to se
ize power. Meanwhile, the "Boy Who Lived" - '
There you are, Harry, I knew they'd drag you into it somehow,' said Hermione,
looking over the top of the paper at him.
They were in the hospital wing. Harry was sitting on the end of Ron's bed
and they were both listening to Hermione read the front page of the Sunday Pro
phet. Ginny, whose ankle had been mended in a trice by Madam Pomfrey, was curl
ed up at the foot of Hermione's bed; Neville, whose nose had likewise been ret
urned to its normal size and shape, was in a chair between the two beds; and L
una, who had dropped in to visit, clutching the latest edition of The Quibbler
, was reading the magazine upside-down and apparently not taking in a word Her
mione was saying.
'He's the "boy who lived" again now, though, isn't he?' said Ron darkly. '
Not such a deluded show-off any more, eh?'
He helped himself to a handful of Chocolate Frogs from the immense pile on
his bedside cabinet, threw a few to Harry, Ginny and Neville and ripped off t
he wrapper of his own with his teeth. There were still deep welts on his forea
rms where the brain's tentacles had wrapped around him. According to Madam Pom
frey, thoughts could leave deeper scarring than almost anything else, though s
ince she had started applying copious amounts of Dr Ubbly's Oblivious Unction
there seemed to have been some improvement.
'Yes, they're very complimentary about you now, Harry,' said Hermione, sca
nning down the article. ' "A lone voice of truth . . . perceived as unbalanced
, yet never wavered in his story . . . forced to bear ridicule and slander . .
." Hmmm,' she said, frowning, 'I notice they don't mention the fact that it w
as them doing all the ridiculing and slandering in the Prophet . . .'
She winced slightly and put a hand to her ribs. The curse Dolohov had used
on her, though less effective than it would have been had he been able to say
the incantation aloud, had nevertheless caused, in Madam Pomfrey's words, 'qu
ite enough damage to be going on with'. Hermione was having to take ten differ
ent types of potion every day, was improving greatly, and was already bored wi
th the hospital wing.
'You-Know- Who's Last Attempt to Take Over, pages two to Jour, What the Mi
nistry Should Have Told Us, page five, Why Nobody Listened to Albus Dumbledore
, pages six to eight, Exclusive Interview with Harry Potter, page nine . . . W
ell,' said Hermione, folding up the newspaper and throwing it aside, 'it's cer
tainly given them lots to write about. And that interview with Harry isn't exc
lusive, it's the one that was in The Quibbler months ago . . .'
'Daddy sold it to them,' said Luna vaguely, turning a page of The Quibbler
. 'He got a very good price for it, too, so we're going to go on an expedition
to Sweden this summer to see if we can catch a Crumple-Horned Snorkack.'
Hermione seemed to struggle with herself for a moment, then said, That sou
nds lovely.'
Ginny caught Harry's eye and looked away quickly, grinning.
'So, anyway,' said Hermione, sitting up a little straighter and wincing ag
ain, 'what's going on in school?'
'Well, Flitwick's got rid of Fred and George's swamp,' said Ginny, 'he did
it in about three seconds. But he left a tiny patch under the window and he's
roped it off - '
'Why?' said Hermione, looking startled.
'Oh, he just says it was a really good bit of magic,' said Ginny, shruggin
g.
'I think he left it as a monument to Fred and George,' said Ron, through a
mouthful of chocolate. They sent me all these, you know,' he told Harry, poin
ting at the small mountain of Frogs beside him. 'Must be doing all right out o
f that joke shop, eh?'
Hermione looked rather disapproving and asked, 'So has all the trouble sto
pped now Dumbledore's back?'
'Yes,' said Neville, 'everything's settled right back to normal.'
'I s'pose Filch is happy, is he?' asked Ron, propping a Chocolate Frog Car
d featuring Dumbledore against his water jug.
'Not at all,' said Ginny. 'He's really, really miserable, actually . . .'
She lowered her voice to a whisper. 'He keeps saying Umbridge was the best thi
ng that ever happened to Hogwarts . . .'
All six of them looked around. Professor Umbridge was lying in a bed oppos
ite them, gazing up at the ceiling. Dumbledore had strode alone into the Fores
t to rescue her from the centaurs; how he had done it - how he had emerged fro
m the trees supporting Professor Umbridge without so much as a scratch on him
- nobody knew, and Umbridge was certainly not telling. Since she had returned
to the castle she had not, as far as any of them knew, uttered a single word.
Nobody really knew what was wrong with her, either. Her usually neat mousy hai
r was very untidy and there were still bits of twigs and leaves in it, but oth
erwise she seemed to be quite unscathed.
'Madam Pomfrey says she's just in shock,' whispered Hermione.
'Sulking, more like,' said Ginny.
'Yeah, she shows signs of life if you do this,' said Ron, and with his ton
gue he made soft clip-clopping noises. Umbridge sat bolt upright, looking arou
nd wildly.
'Anything wrong, Professor?' called Madam Pomfrey, poking her head around
her office door.
'No . . . no . . .' said Umbridge, sinking back into her pillows. 'No, I m
ust have been dreaming . . .'
Hermione and Ginny muffled their laughter in the bedclothes.
'Speaking of centaurs,' said Hermione, when she had recovered a little, 'w
ho's Divination teacher now? Is Firenze staying?'
'He's got to,' said Harry, 'the other centaurs won't take him back, will t
hey?'
'It looks like he and Trelawney are both going to teach,' said Ginny.
'Bet Dumbledore wishes he could've got rid of Trelawney for good,' said Ro
n, now munching on his fourteenth Frog. 'Mind you, the whole subject's useless
if you ask me, Firenze isn't a lot better . . .'
'How can you say that?' Hermione demanded. 'After we've just found out tha
t there are real prophecies?'
Harry's heart began to race. He had not told Ron, Hermione or anyone else
what the prophecy had contained. Neville had told them it had smashed while Ha
rry was pulling him up the steps in the Death Room and Harry had not yet corre
cted this impression. He was not ready to see their expressions when he told t
hem that he must be either murderer or victim, there was no other way . . .
'It is a pity it broke,' said Hermione quietly, shaking her head.
'Yeah, it is,' said Ron. 'Still, at least You-Know-Who never found out wha
t was in it either - where are you going?' he added, looking both surprised an
d disappointed as Harry stood up.
'Er - Hagrid's,' said Harry. 'You know, he just got back and I promised I'
d go down and see him and tell him how you two are.'
'Oh, all right then,' said Ron grumpily, looking out of the dormitory wind
ow at the patch of bright blue sky beyond. 'Wish we could come.'
'Say hello to him for us!' called Hermione, as Harry proceeded down the wa
rd. 'And ask him what's happening about . . . about his little friend!'
Harry gave a wave of his hand to show he had heard and understood as he le
ft the dormitory.
The castle seemed very quiet even for a Sunday. Everybody was clearly out
in the sunny grounds, enjoying the end of their exams and the prospect of a la
st few days of term unhampered by revision or homework. Harry walked slowly al
ong the deserted corridor, peering out of windows as he went; he could see peo
ple messing around in the air over the Quidditch pitch and a couple of student
s swimming in the lake, accompanied by the giant squid.
He was finding it hard to decide whether he wanted to be with people or no
t; whenever he was in company he wanted to get away and whenever he was alone
he wanted company. He thought he might really go and visit Hagrid, though, as
he had not talked to him properly since he'd returned . . .
Harry had just descended the last marble step into the Entrance Hall when
Malfoy, Crabbe and Goyle emerged from a door on the right that Harry knew led
down to the Slytherin common room. Harry stopped dead; so did Malfoy and the o
thers. The only sounds were the shouts, laughter and splashes drifting into th
e Hall from the grounds through the open front doors.
Malfoy glanced around - Harry knew he was checking for signs of teachers -
then he looked back at Harry and said in a low voice, 'You're dead, Potter.'
Harry raised his eyebrows.
'Funny' he said, 'you'd think I'd have stopped walking around
Malfoy looked angrier than Harry had ever seen him; he felt a kind of deta
ched satisfaction at the sight of his pale, pointed face contorted with rage.
'You're going to pay,' said Malfoy, in a voice barely louder than a whispe
r. 'I'm going to make you pay for what you've done to my father . . .'
'Well, I'm terrified now,' said Harry sarcastically. 'I s'pose Lord Voldem
ort's just a warm-up act compared to you three - what's the matter?' he added,
for Malfoy, Crabbe and Goyle had all looked stricken at the sound of the name
. 'He's a mate of your dad, isn't he? Not scared of him, are you?'
'You think you're such a big man, Potter,' said Malfoy, advancing now, Cra
bbe and Goyle flanking him. 'You wait. I'll have you. You can't land my father
in prison - '
'I thought I just had,' said Harry.
The Dementors have left Azkaban,' said Malfoy quietly. 'Dad and the others
'll be out in no time . . .'
'Yeah, I expect they will,' said Harry. 'Still, at least everyone knows wh
at scumbags they are now - '
Malfoy's hand flew towards his wand, but Harry was too quick for him; he h
ad drawn his own wand before Malfoy's fingers had even entered the pocket of h
is robes.
'Potter!'
The voice rang across the Entrance Hall. Snape had emerged from the stairc
ase leading down to his office and at the sight of him Harry felt a great rush
of hatred beyond anything he felt towards Malfoy . . . whatever Dumbledore sa
id, he would never forgive Snape . . . never . . .
'What are you doing, Potter?' said Snape, as coldly as ever, as he strode
over to the four of them.
'I'm trying to decide what curse to use on Malfoy, sir,' said Harry fierce
ly.
Snape stared at him.
'Put that wand away at once,' he said curtly. Ten points from Gryff - '
Snape looked towards the giant hour-glasses on the walls and gave a sneeri
ng smile.
'Ah. I see there are no longer any points left in the Gryffindor hour-glas
s to take away. In that case, Potter, we will simply have to - '
'Add some more?'
Professor McGonagall had just stumped up the stone, steps into the castle;
she was carrying a tartan carpetbag in one hand and leaning heavily on a walk
ing stick with her other, but otherwise looked quite well.
'Professor McGonagall!' said Snape, striding forwards. 'Out of St Mungo's,
I see!'
'Yes, Professor Snape,' said Professor McGonagall. shrugging off her trave
lling cloak, 'I'm quite as good as new. You two - Crabbe - Goyle - '
She beckoned them forwards imperiously and they came, shuffling their larg
e feet and looking awkward.
'Here,' said Professor McGonagall, thrusting her carpetbag into Crabbe's c
hest and her cloak into Goyle's, 'take these up to my office for me.'
They turned and stumped away up the marble staircase.
'Right then,' said Professor McGonagall, looking up at the hourglasses on
the wall. 'Well, I think Potter and his friends ought to have fifty points api
ece for alerting the world to the return of You-Know-Who! What say you, Profes
sor Snape?'
'What?' snapped Snape, though Harry knew he had heard perfectly well. 'Oh
- well - I suppose . . .'
'So that's fifty each for Potter, the two Weasleys, Longbottom and Miss Gr
anger,' said Professor McGonagall, and a shower of rubies fell down into the b
ottom bulb of Gryffindor s hour-glass as she spoke. 'Oh - and fifty for Miss L
ovegood, I suppose,' she added, and a number of sapphires fell into Ravenclaw'
s glass. 'Now, you wanted to take ten from Mr Potter, I think, Professor Snape
- so there we are . . .'
A few rubies retreated into the upper bulb, leaving a respectable amount b
elow nevertheless.
'Well, Potter, Malfoy, I think you ought to be outside on a glorious day l
ike this,' Professor McGonagall continued briskly.
Harry did not need telling twice; he thrust his wand back inside his robes
and headed straight for the front doors without another glance at Snape and M
alfoy.
The hot sun hit him with a blast as he walked across the lawns towards Hag
rid's cabin. Students lying around on the grass sunbathing, talking, reading t
he Sunday Prophet and eating sweets, looked up at him as he passed; some calle
d out to him, or else waved, clearly eager to show that they, like the Prophet
, had decided he was something of a hero. Harry said nothing to any of them. H
e had no idea how much they knew of what had happened three days ago, but he h
ad so far avoided being questioned and preferred to keep it that way.
He thought at first when he knocked on Hagrid's cabin door that he was out
, but then Fang came charging around the corner and almost bowled him over wit
h the enthusiasm of his welcome. Hagrid, it transpired, was picking runner bea
ns in his back garden.
'All righ', Harry!' he said, beaming, when Harry approached the fence. 'Co
me in, come in, we'll have a cup o' dandelion juice . . .
'How's things?' Hagrid asked him, as they settled down at his wooden table
with a glass apiece of iced juice. 'Yeh - er - feelin' all righ', are yeh?'
Harry knew from the look of concern on Hagrid's face that he was not refer
ring to Harry's physical well-being.
'I'm fine,' Harry said quickly, because he could not bear to discuss the t
hing that he knew was in Hagrid's mind. 'So, where've you been?'
'Bin hidin' out in the mountains,' said Hagrid. 'Up in a cave, like Sirius
did when he - '
Hagrid broke off, cleared his throat gruffly, looked at Harry, and took a
long draught of juice.
'Anyway, back now,' he said feebly.
'You - you look better,' said Harry, who was determined to keep the conver
sation moving away from Sirius.
'Wha?' said Hagrid, raising a massive hand and feeling his face. 'Oh - oh
yeah. Well, Grawpy's loads better behaved now, loads. Seemed right pleased ter
see me when I got back, ter tell yeh the truth. He's a good lad, really . . .
Ive bin thmkin abou tryin ter find him a lady friend, actually . . .'
Harry would normally have tried to persuade Hagrid out of this idea at onc
e; the prospect of a second giant taking up residence in the Forest, possibly
even wilder and more brutal than Grawp, was positively alarming, but somehow H
arry could not muster the energy necessary to argue the point. He was starting
to wish he was alone again, and with the idea of hastening his departure he t
ook several large gulps of his dandelion juice, half-emptying bis glass.
'Ev'ryone knows yeh've bin tellin' the truth now, Harry' said Hagrid softl
y and unexpectedly. He was watching Harry closely. Tha's gotta be better, hasn
' it?'
Harry shrugged.
'Look . . .' Hagrid leaned towards him across the table, 'I knew Sirius lo
nger 'n yeh did . . . he died in battle, an tha's the way he'd've wanted ter g
o - '
'He didn't want to go at all!' said Harry angrily.
Hagrid bowed his great shaggy head.
'Nah, I don' reckon he did,' he said quietly. 'But still, Harry . . . he w
as never one ter sit aroun' at home an' let other people do the fightin'. He c
ouldn've lived with himself if he hadn' gone ter help - '
Harry leapt up.
'I've got to go and visit Ron and Hermione in the hospital wing,' he said
mechanically.
'Oh,' said Hagrid, looking rather upset. 'Oh . . . all righ' then, Harry .
. . take care o' yerself then, an' drop back in if yeh've got a mo . . .'
'Yeah . . . right
Harry crossed to the door as fast as he could and pulled it open; he was o
ut in the sunshine again before Hagrid had finished saying goodbye, and walkin
g away across the lawn. Once again, people called out to him as he passed. He
closed his eyes for a few moments, wishing they would all vanish, that he coul
d open his eyes and find himself alone in the grounds . . .
A few days ago, before his exams had finished and he had seen the vision V
oldemort had planted in his mind, he would have given almost anything for the
wizarding world to know he had been telling the truth, for them to believe tha
t Voldemort was back, and to know that he was neither a liar nor mad. Now, how
ever . . .
He walked a short way around the lake, sat down on its bank, sheltered fro
m the gaze of passers-by behind a tangle of shrubs, and stared out over the gl
eaming water, thinking . . .
Perhaps the reason he wanted to be alone was because he had felt isolated
from everybody since his talk with Dumbledore. An invisible barrier separated
him from the rest of the world. He was - he had always been - a marked man. It
was just that he had never really understood what that meant . . .
And yet sitting here on the edge of the lake, with the terrible weight of
grief dragging at him, with the loss of Sirius so raw and fresh inside, he cou
ld not muster any great sense of fear. It was sunny, and the grounds around hi
m were full of laughing people, and even though he felt as distant from them a
s though he belonged to a different race, it was still very hard to believe as
he sat here that his life must include, or end in, murder . . .
He sat there for a long time, gazing out at the water, trying not to think
about his godfather or to remember that it was directly across from here, on
the opposite bank, that Sirius had once collapsed trying to fend off a hundred
Dementors . . .
The sun had set before he realised he was cold. He got up and returned to
the castle, wiping his face on his sleeve as he went.
*
Ron and Hermione left the hospital wing completely cured three days before the
end of term. Hermione kept showing signs of wanting to talk about Sirius, but
Ron tended to make 'hushing' noises every time she mentioned his name. Harry
was still not sure whether or not he wanted to talk about his godfather yet; h
is wishes varied with his mood. He knew one thing, though: unhappy as he felt
at the moment, he would greatly miss Hogwarts in a few days' time when he was
back at number four, Privet Drive. Even though he now understood exactly why h
e had to return there every summer, he did not feel any better about it. Indee
d, he had never dreaded his return more.
Professor Umbridge left Hogwarts the day before the end of term. It seemed
she had crept out of the hospital wing during dinnertime, evidently hoping to
depart undetected, but unfortunately for her, she met Peeves on the way, who
seized his last chance to do as Fred had instructed, and chased her gleefully
from the premises whacking her alternately with a walking stick and a sock ful
l of chalk. Many students ran out into the Entrance Hall to watch her running
away down the path and the Heads of Houses tried only half-heartedly to restra
in them. Indeed, Professor McGonagall sank back into her chair at the staff ta
ble after a few feeble remonstrances and was clearly heard to express a regret
that she could not run cheering after Umbridge herself, because Peeves had bo
rrowed her walking stick.
Their last evening at school arrived; most people had finished packing and
were already heading down to the end-of-term leaving feast, but Harry had not
even started.
'Just do it tomorrow!' said Ron, who was waiting by the door of their dorm
itory. 'Come on, I'm starving.'
'I won't be long . . . look, you go ahead . . ."
But when the dormitory door closed behind Ron, Harry made no effort to spe
ed up his packing. The very last thing he wanted to do was to attend the Leavi
ng Feast. He was worried that Dumbledore would make some reference to him in h
is speech. He was sure to mention Voldemort's return; he had talked to them ab
out it last year, after all . . .
Harry pulled some crumpled robes out of the very bottom of his trunk to ma
ke way for folded ones and, as he did so, noticed a badly wrapped package lyin
g in a corner of it. He could not think what it was doing there. He bent down,
pulled it out from underneath his trainers and examined it.
He realised what it was within seconds. Sirius had given it to him just in
side the front door of number twelve Grimmauld Place. 'Use it if you need me,
all right?'
Harry sank down on to his bed and unwrapped the package. Out fell a small,
square mirror. It looked old; it was certainly dirty. Harry held it up to his
face and saw his own reflection looking back at him.
He turned the mirror over. There on the reverse side was a scribbled note
from Sirius.
This is a two-way mirror, I've got the other one of the pair. If you need to s
peak to me, just say my name into it; you'll appear in my mirror and I'll be a
ble to talk in yours. James and I used to use them when we were in separate de
tentions.
Harry's heart began to race. He remembered seeing his dead parents in the Mirr
or of Erised four years ago. He was going to be able to talk to Sirius again,
right now, he knew it - '
He looked around to make sure there was nobody else there; the dormitory w
as quite empty. He looked back at the mirror, raised it in front of his face w
ith trembling hands and said, loudly and clearly, 'Sirius.'
His breath misted the surface of the glass. He held the mirror even closer
, excitement flooding through him, but the eyes blinking back at him through t
he fog were definitely his own.
He wiped the mirror clear again and said, so that every syllable rang clea
rly through the room:
'Sirius Black!'
Nothing happened. The frustrated face looking back out of the mirror was s
till, definitely, his own . . .
Sirius didn't have his mirror on him when he went through the archway, sai
d a small voice in Harry's head. That's why it's riot working . . .
Harry remained quite still for a moment, then hurled the mirror back into
the trunk where it shattered. He had been convinced, for a whole, shining minu
te, that he was going to see Sirius, talk to him again . . .
Disappointment was burning in his throat; he got up and began throwing his
things pell-mell into the trunk on top of the broken mirror - '
But then an idea struck him . . . a better idea than a mirror . . . a much
bigger, more important idea . . . how had he never thought of it before - why
had he never asked?
He was sprinting out of the dormitory and down the spiral staircase, hitti
ng the walls as he ran and barely noticing; he hurtled across the empty common
room, through the portrait hole and off along the corridor, ignoring the Fat
Lady, who called after him: The feast is about to start, you know, you're cutt
ing it very fine!'
But Harry had no intention of going to the feast . . .
How could it be that the place was full of ghosts whenever you didn't need
one, yet now . . .
He ran down staircases and along corridors and met nobody either alive or
dead. They were all, clearly, in the Great Hall. Outside his Charms classroom
he came to a halt, panting and thinking disconsolately that he would have to w
ait until later, until after the end of the feast . . .
But just as he had given up hope, he saw it - a translucent somebody drift
ing across the end of the corridor.
'Hey - hey, Nick! NICK!'
The ghost stuck its head back out of the wall, revealing the extravagantly
plumed hat and dangerously wobbling head of Sir Nicholas de Mimsy-Porpington.
'Good evening,' he said, withdrawing the rest of his body from the solid s
tone and smiling at Harry. 'I am not the only one who is late, then? Though,'
he sighed, 'in a rather different sense, of course . . .'
'Nick, can I ask you something?'
A most peculiar expression stole over Nearly Headless Nick's face as he in
serted a finger in the stiff ruff at his neck and tugged it a little straighte
r, apparently to give himself thinking time. He desisted only when his partial
ly severed neck seemed about to give way completely.
'Er - now, Harry?' said Nick, looking discomfited. 'Can't it wait until af
ter the feast?'
'No - Nick - please,' said Harry, 'I really need to talk to you. Can we go
in here?'
Harry opened the door of the nearest classroom and Nearly Headless Nick si
ghed.
'Oh, very well,' he said, looking resigned. 'I can't pretend I haven't bee
n expecting it.'
Harry was holding the door open for him, but he drifted through the wall i
nstead.
'Expecting what?' Harry asked, as he closed the door.
'You to come and find me,' said Nick, now gliding over to the window and l
ooking out at the darkening grounds. 'It happens, sometimes . . . when somebod
y has suffered a . . . loss.'
'Well,' said Harry, refusing to be deflected. 'You were right, I've - I've
come to find you.'
Nick said nothing.
'It's - ' said Harry, who was finding this more awkward than he had antici
pated, 'it's just - you're dead. But you're still here, aren't you?'
Nick sighed and continued to gaze out at the grounds.
That's right, isn't it?' Harry urged him. 'You died, but I'm talking to yo
u . . . you can walk around Hogwarts and everything, can't you?'
'Yes,' said Nearly Headless Nick quietly, 'I walk and talk, yes.'
'So, you came back, didn't you?' said Harry urgently. 'People can come bac
k, right? As ghosts. They don't have to disappear completely. Well?' he added
impatiently, when Nick continued to say nothing.
Nearly Headless Nick hesitated, then said, 'Not everyone can come back as
a ghost.'
'What d'you mean?' said Harry quickly.
'Only . . . only wizards.'
'Oh,' said Harry, and he almost laughed with relief. 'Well, that's OK then
, the person I'm asking about is a wizard. So he can come back, right?'
Nick turned away from the window and looked mournfully at Harry.
'He won't come back.'
Who?'
'Sirius Black,' said Nick.
'But you did!' said Harry angrily. 'You came back - you're dead and you di
dn't disappear - '
'Wizards can leave an imprint of themselves upon the earth, to walk palely
where their living selves once trod,' said Nick miserably. 'But very few wiza
rds choose that path.'
'Why not?' said Harry. 'Anyway - it doesn't matter - Sirius won't care if
it's unusual, he'll come back, I know he will!'
And so strong was his belief, Harry actually turned his head to check the
door, sure, for a split second, that he was going to see Sirius, pearly-white
and transparent but beaming, walking through it towards him.
'He will not come back,' repeated Nick. 'He will have . . . gone on.'
'What d'you mean, "gone on"?' said Harry quickly. 'Gone on where? Listen -
what happens when you die, anyway? Where do you go? Why doesn't everyone come
back? Why isn't this place full of ghosts? Why - ?'
'I cannot answer,' said Nick.
'You're dead, aren't you?' said Harry exasperatedly. 'Who can answer bette
r than you?'
'I was afraid of death,' said Nick softly. 'I chose to remain behind. I so
metimes wonder whether I oughtn't to have . . . well, that is neither here nor
there . . . in fact, I am neither here nor there . . .' He gave a small sad c
huckle. 'I know nothing of the secrets of death, Harry, for I chose my feeble
imitation of life instead. I believe learned wizards study the matter in the D
epartment of Mysteries - '
'Don't talk to me about that place!' said Harry fiercely.
'I am sorry not to have been more help,' said Nick gently. 'Well . . . wel
l, do excuse me . . . the feast, you know . . .'
And he left the room, leaving Harry there alone, gazing blankly at the wal
l through which Nick had disappeared.
Harry felt almost as though he had lost his godfather all over again in lo
sing the hope that he might be able to see or speak to him once more. He walke
d slowly and miserably back up through the empty castle, wondering whether he
would ever feel cheerful again.
He had turned the corner towards the Fat Lady's corridor when he saw someb
ody up ahead fastening a note to a board on the wall. A second glance showed h
im it was Luna. There were no good hiding places nearby, she was bound to have
heard his footsteps, and in any case, Harry could hardly muster the energy to
avoid anyone at the moment.
'Hello,' said Luna vaguely, glancing around at him as she stepped back fro
m the notice.
'How come you're not at the feast?' Harry asked.
'Well, I've lost most of my possessions,' said Luna serenely. 'People take
them and hide them, you know. But as it's the last night, I really do need th
em back, so I've been putting up signs.'
She gestured towards the noticeboard, upon which, sure enough, she had pin
ned a list of all her missing books and clothes, with a plea for their return.
An odd feeling rose in Harry; an emotion quite different from the anger an
d grief that had filled him since Sirius's death. It was a few moments before
he realised that he was feeling sorry for Luna.
'How come people hide your stuff?' he asked her, frowning.
'Oh . . . well . . .' she shrugged. 'I think they think I'm a bit odd, you
know. Some people call me "Loony" Lovegood, actually.'
Harry looked at her and the new feeling of pity intensified rather painful
ly.
That's no reason for them to take your things,' he said flatly. 'D'you wan
t help finding them?'
'Oh, no,' she said, smiling at him. They'll come back, they always do in t
he end. It was just that I wanted to pack tonight. Anyway . . . why aren't you
at the feast?'
Harry shrugged. 'Just didn't feel like it.'
'No,' said Luna, observing him with those oddly misty, protuberant eyes. '
I don't suppose you do. That man the Death Eaters killed was your godfather, w
asn't he? Ginny told me.'
Harry nodded curtly, but found that for some reason he did not mind Luna t
alking about Sirius. He had just remembered that she, too, could see Thestrals
.
'Have you . . .' he began. 'I mean, who . . . has anyone you known ever di
ed?'
'Yes,' said Luna simply, 'my mother. She was a quite extraordinary witch,
you know, but she did like to experiment and one of her spells went rather bad
ly wrong one day. I was nine.'
'I'm sorry,' Harry mumbled.
'Yes, it was rather horrible,' said Luna conversationally. 'I still feel v
ery sad about it sometimes. But I've still got Dad. And anyway, it's not as th
ough I'll never see Mum again, is it?'
'Er - isn't it?' said Harry uncertainly.
She shook her head in disbelief.
'Oh, come on. You heard them, just behind the veil, didn't you?'
'You mean . . .'
'In that room with the archway. They were just lurking out of sight, that'
s all. You heard them.'
They looked at each other. Luna was smiling slightly. Harry did not know w
hat to say, or to think; Luna believed so many extraordinary things . . . yet
he had been sure he had heard voices behind the veil, too.
'Are you sure you don't want me to help you look for your stuff?' he said.
'Oh, no,' said Luna. 'No, I think I'll just go down and have some pudding
and wait for it all to turn up . . . it always does in the end . . . well, hav
e a nice holiday, Harry.'
'Yeah . . . yeah, you too.'
She walked away from him and, as he watched her go, he found that the terr
ible weight in his stomach seemed to have lessened slightly.
*
The journey home on the Hogwarts Express next day was eventful in several ways
. Firstly, Malfoy, Crabbe and Goyle, who had clearly been waiting all week for
the opportunity to strike without teacher witnesses, attempted to ambush Harr
y halfway down the train as he made his way back from the toilet. The attack m
ight have succeeded had it not been for the fact that they unwittingly chose t
o stage the attack right outside a compartment full of DA members, who saw wha
t was happening through the glass and rose as one to rush to Harry's aid. By t
he time Ernie Macmillan, Hannah Abbott, Susan Bones, Justin Finch-Fletchley, A
nthony Goldstein and Terry Boot, had finished using a wide variety of the hexe
s and jinxes Harry had taught them, Malfoy, Crabbe and Goyle resembled nothing
so much as three gigantic slugs squeezed into Hogwarts uniform as Harry, Erni
e and Justin hoisted them into the luggage rack and left them there to ooze.
'I must say, I'm looking forward to seeing Malfoy's mothers face when he g
ets off the train,' said Ernie, with some satisfaction, as
he watched Malfoy squirm above him. Ernie had never quite got over the ind
ignity of Malfoy docking points from Hufflepuff during his brief spell as a me
mber of the Inquisitorial Squad.
'Goyle's mum'll be really pleased, though,' said Ron, who had come to inve
stigate the source of the commotion. 'He's loads better-looking now . . . anyw
ay, Harry, the food trolley's just stopped if you want anything . . .'
Harry thanked the others and accompanied Ron back to their compartment, wh
ere he bought a large pile of cauldron cakes and pumpkin pasties. Hermione was
reading the Daily Prophet again, Ginny was doing a quiz in The Quibbler and N
eville was stroking his Mimbulus mimbletonia, which had grown a great deal ove
r the year and now made odd crooning noises when touched.
Harry and Ron whiled away most of the journey playing wizard chess while H
ermione read out snippets from the Prophet. It was now full of articles about
how to repel Dementors, attempts by the Ministry to track down Death Eaters an
d hysterical letters claiming that the writer had seen Lord Voldemort walking
past their house that very morning . . .
'It hasn't really started yet,' sighed Hermione gloomily, folding up the n
ewspaper again. 'But it won't be long now
'Hey, Harry,' said Ron softly, nodding towards the glass window on to the
corridor.
Harry looked around. Cho was passing, accompanied by Marietta Edgecombe, w
ho was wearing a balaclava. His and Cho's eyes met for a moment. Cho blushed a
nd kept walking. Harry looked back down at the chessboard just in time to see
one of his pawns chased off its square by Ron's knight.
'What's - er - going on with you and her, anyway?' Ron asked quietly.
'Nothing,' said Harry truthfully.
'I - er - heard she's going out with someone else now,' said Hermione tent
atively.
Harry was surprised to find that this information did not hurt at all. Wan
ting to impress Cho seemed to belong to a past that was no longer quite connec
ted with him; so much of what he had wanted before Sirius's death felt that wa
y these days . . . the week that had elapsed since he had last seen Sirius see
med to have lasted much, much longer; it stretched across two universes, the o
ne with Sirius in it, and the one without.
'You're well out of it, mate,' said Ron forcefully. 'I mean, she's quite g
ood-looking and all that, but you want someone a bit more cheerful.'
'She's probably cheerful enough with someone else,' said Harry, shrugging.
'Who's she with now, anyway?' Ron asked Hermione, but it was Ginny who ans
wered.
'Michael Corner,' she said.
'Michael - but - ' said Ron, craning around in his seat to state at her. '
But you were going out with him!'
'Not any more,' said Ginny resolutely. 'He didn't like Gryffindor beating
Ravenclaw at Quidditch, and got really sulky, so I ditched him and he ran off
to comfort Cho instead.' She scratched her nose absently with the end of her q
uill, turned The Quibbler upside-down and began marking her answers. Ron looke
d highly delighted.
'Well, I always thought he was a bit of an idiot,' he said, prodding his q
ueen forwards towards Harry's quivering castle. 'Good for you. Just choose som
eone - better - next time.
He cast Harry an oddly furtive look as he said it.
'Well, I've chosen Dean Thomas, would you say he's better?' asked Ginny va
guely.
'WHAT?' shouted Ron, upending the chessboard: Crookshanks went plunging af
ter the pieces and Hedwig and Pigwidgeon twittered and hooted angrily from ove
rhead.
As the train slowed down in the approach to King's Cross, Harry thought he
had never wanted to leave it less. He even wondered fleetingly what would hap
pen if he simply refused to get off, but remained stubbornly sitting there unt
il the first of September, when it would take him back to Hogwarts. When it fi
nally puffed to a standstill, however, he lifted down Hedwig's cage and prepar
ed to drag his trunk from the train as usual.
When the ticket inspector signalled to Harry, Ron and Hermione that it was
safe to walk through the magical barrier between platforms nine and ten, howe
ver, he found a surprise awaiting him on the other side: a group of people sta
nding there to greet him who he had not expected at all.
There was Mad-Eye Moody, looking quite as sinister with his bowler hat pul
led low over his magical eye as he would have done without it, his gnarled han
ds clutching a long staff, his body wrapped in a voluminous travelling cloak.
Tonks stood just behind him, her bright bubble-gum-pink hair gleaming in the s
unlight filtering through the dirty glass of the station ceiling, wearing heav
ily patched jeans and a bright purple T-shirt bearing the legend The Weird Sis
ters. Next to Tonks was Lupin, his face pale, his hair greying, a long and thr
eadbare overcoat covering a shabby jumper and trousers. At the front of the gr
oup stood Mr and Mrs Weasley, dressed in their Muggle best, and Fred and Georg
e, who were both wearing brand-new jackets in some lurid green, scaly material
.
'Ron, Ginny!' called Mrs Weasley, hurrying forwards and hugging her childr
en tightly. 'Oh, and Harry dear - how are you?'
'Fine,' lied Harry, as she pulled him into a tight embrace. Over her shoul
der he saw Ron goggling at the twins' new clothes.
'What are they supposed to be?' he asked, pointing at the jackets.
'Finest dragonskin, little bro',' said Fred, giving his zip a little tweak
. 'Business is booming and we thought we'd treat ourselves.'
'Hello, Harry,' said Lupin, as Mrs Weasley let go of Harry and turned to g
reet Hermione.
'Hi,' said Harry. 'I didn't expect . . . what are you all doing here?'
'Well,' said Lupin with a slight smile, 'we thought we might have a little
chat with your aunt and uncle before letting them take you home.'
'I dunno if that's a good idea,' said Harry at once.
'Oh, I think it is,' growled Moody, who had limped a little closer. That'l
l be them, will it, Potter?'
He pointed with his thumb over his shoulder; his magical eye was evidently
peering through the back of his head and his bowler hat. Harry leaned an inch
or so to the left to see where Mad-Eye was pointing and there, sure enough, w
ere the three Dursleys, who looked positively appalled to see Harry's receptio
n committee.
'Ah, Harry!' said Mr Weasley, turning from Hermione's parents, who he had
just greeted enthusiastically, and who were now taking it in turns to hug Herm
ione. 'Well - shall we do it, then?'
'Yeah, I reckon so, Arthur,' said Moody.
He and Mr Weasley took the lead across the station towards the Dursleys, w
ho were apparently rooted to the floor. Hermione disengaged herself gently fro
m her mother to join the group.
'Good afternoon,' said Mr Weasley pleasantly to Uncle Vernon as he came to
a halt right in front of him. 'You might remember me, my name's Arthur Weasle
y.'
As Mr Weasley had single-handedly demolished most of the Dursleys' living
room two years previously, Harry would have been very surprised if Uncle Verno
n had forgotten him. Sure enough, Uncle Vernon turned a deeper shade of puce a
nd glared at Mr Weasley, but chose not to say anything, partly, perhaps, becau
se the Dursleys were outnumbered two to one. Aunt Petunia looked both frighten
ed and embarrassed; she kept glancing around, &s though terrified somebody she
knew would see her in such company. Dudley, meanwhile, seemed to be trying to
look small and insignificant, a feat at which he was failing extravagantly.
'We thought we'd just have a few words with you about Harry,' said Mr Weas
ley, still smiling.
'Yeah,' growled Moody. 'About how he's treated when he's at your place.'
Uncle Vernon's moustache seemed to bristle with indignation. Possibly beca
use the bowler hat gave him the entirely mistaken impression that he was deali
ng with a kindred spirit, he addressed himself to Moody.
'I am not aware that it is any of your business what goes on in my house -
'
'I expect what you're not aware of would fill several books, Dursley,' gro
wled Moody.
'Anyway, that's not the point,' interjected Tonks, whose pink hair seemed
to offend Aunt Petunia more than all the rest put together, for she closed her
eyes rather than look at her. 'The point is, if we find out you've been horri
ble to Harry - '
- And make no mistake, we'll hear about it,' added Lupin pleasantly.
'Yes,' said Mr Weasley, 'even if you won't let Harry use the felly-tone -
'Telephone,' whispered Hermione.
- Yeah, if we get any hint that Potter's been mistreated in any way, you'l
l have us to answer to,' said Moody.
Uncle Vernon swelled ominously. His sense of outrage seemed to outweigh ev
en his fear of this bunch of oddballs.
'Are you threatening me, sir?' he said, so loudly that passers-by actually
turned to stare.
'Yes, I am,' said Mad-Eye, who seemed rather pleased that Uncle Vernon had
grasped this fact so quickly.
'And do I look like the kind of man who can be intimidated?' barked Uncle
Vernon.
'Well . . .' said Moody, pushing back his bowler hat to reveal his siniste
rly revolving magical eye. Uncle Vernon leapt backwards in horror and collided
painfully with a luggage trolley. 'Yes, I'd have to say you do, Dursley.'
He turned away from Uncle Vernon to survey Harry.
'So, Potter . . . give us a shout if you need us. If we don't hear from yo
u for three days in a row, we'll send someone along . . .'
Aunt Petunia whimpered piteously. It could not have been plainer that she
was thinking of what the neighbours would say if they caught sight of these pe
ople marching up the garden path.
'Bye, then, Potter,' said Moody, grasping Harry's shoulder for a moment wi
th a gnarled hand.
'Take care, Harry,' said Lupin quietly. 'Keep in touch.'
'Harry, we'll have you away from there as soon as we can,' Mrs Weasley whi
spered, hugging him again.
'We'll see you soon, mate,' said Ron anxiously, shaking Harry's hand.
'Really soon, Harry,' said Hermione earnestly. 'We promise.
Harry nodded. He somehow could not find words to tell them what it meant t
o him, to see them all ranged there, on his side. Instead, he smiled, raised a
hand in farewell, turned around and led the way out of the station towards th
e sunlit street, with Uncle Vernon, Aunt Petunia and Dudley hurrying along in
his wake.
=====END
Downloaded from UNDERnet #pottermania
For pumbers.
Jiao
--
妩媚春天 …… 妖娆万千
流域无边 — 望眼欲穿
清风深意 § 谁解阑珊
白山黄泉 极恶华年
共得三尺
舔甜
※ 修改:·kslive 于 May 22 19:45:08 修改本文·[FROM: 202.118.235.50]
※ 来源:·哈工大紫丁香 http://bbs.hit.edu.cn·[FROM: 202.118.235.50]
Powered by KBS BBS 2.0 (http://dev.kcn.cn)
页面执行时间:5,896.319毫秒